This is a modern-English version of The Last of the Mohicans; A narrative of 1757, originally written by Cooper, James Fenimore. It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.

The Last of the Mohicans

A Narrative of 1757

by James Fenimore Cooper


Contents

INTRODUCTION
CHAPTER I.
CHAPTER II.
CHAPTER III.
CHAPTER IV.
CHAPTER V.
CHAPTER VI.
CHAPTER VII.
CHAPTER VIII.
CHAPTER IX.
CHAPTER X.
CHAPTER XI.
CHAPTER XII.
CHAPTER XIII.
CHAPTER XIV.
CHAPTER XV.
CHAPTER XVI.
CHAPTER XVII.
CHAPTER XVIII.
CHAPTER XIX.
CHAPTER XX.
CHAPTER XXI.
CHAPTER XXII.
CHAPTER XXIII.
CHAPTER XXIV.
CHAPTER XXV.
CHAPTER XXVI.
CHAPTER XXVII.
CHAPTER XXVIII.
CHAPTER XXIX.
CHAPTER XXX.
CHAPTER XXXI.
CHAPTER XXXII.
CHAPTER XXXIII.
[Illustration]

INTRODUCTION

It is believed that the scene of this tale, and most of the information necessary to understand its allusions, are rendered sufficiently obvious to the reader in the text itself, or in the accompanying notes. Still there is so much obscurity in the Indian traditions, and so much confusion in the Indian names, as to render some explanation useful.

It is believed that the setting of this story, along with most of the details needed to grasp its references, is made clear enough to the reader in the text itself or in the notes provided. However, there is still a lot of ambiguity in the Indian traditions and a lot of confusion with the Indian names, so some explanation would be helpful.

Few men exhibit greater diversity, or, if we may so express it, greater antithesis of character, than the native warrior of North America. In war, he is daring, boastful, cunning, ruthless, self-denying, and self-devoted; in peace, just, generous, hospitable, revengeful, superstitious, modest, and commonly chaste. These are qualities, it is true, which do not distinguish all alike; but they are so far the predominating traits of these remarkable people as to be characteristic.

Few men show greater diversity or, if we can put it that way, greater contrast in character than the native warrior of North America. In war, he is bold, boastful, clever, ruthless, self-sacrificing, and dedicated; in peace, he is fair, generous, hospitable, vengeful, superstitious, modest, and usually chaste. These are qualities, it’s true, that don’t apply to everyone equally; but they are significant enough to be characteristic of these remarkable people.

It is generally believed that the Aborigines of the American continent have an Asiatic origin. There are many physical as well as moral facts which corroborate this opinion, and some few that would seem to weigh against it.

It is widely accepted that the indigenous people of the American continent have Asian origins. There are numerous physical and cultural evidence that support this view, along with a few that might contradict it.

The color of the Indian, the writer believes, is peculiar to himself, and while his cheek-bones have a very striking indication of a Tartar origin, his eyes have not. Climate may have had great influence on the former, but it is difficult to see how it can have produced the substantial difference which exists in the latter. The imagery of the Indian, both in his poetry and in his oratory, is oriental; chastened, and perhaps improved, by the limited range of his practical knowledge. He draws his metaphors from the clouds, the seasons, the birds, the beasts, and the vegetable world. In this, perhaps, he does no more than any other energetic and imaginative race would do, being compelled to set bounds to fancy by experience; but the North American Indian clothes his ideas in a dress which is different from that of the African, and is oriental in itself. His language has the richness and sententious fullness of the Chinese. He will express a phrase in a word, and he will qualify the meaning of an entire sentence by a syllable; he will even convey different significations by the simplest inflections of the voice.

The color of the Native American, the writer believes, is unique to him, and while his cheekbones strongly suggest Tartar ancestry, his eyes do not. Climate may have greatly influenced the former, but it’s hard to see how it could have created the significant difference seen in the latter. The imagery of the Native American, both in his poetry and speech, is oriental; refined, and maybe enhanced, by the limited scope of his practical knowledge. He pulls his metaphors from clouds, seasons, birds, beasts, and plant life. In this sense, he might not be doing anything different from any other dynamic and imaginative culture, having to limit his imagination through experience; yet, the North American Native American expresses his ideas in a way that’s distinct from that of the African and is inherently oriental. His language boasts the richness and thoughtful depth of Chinese. He can express a whole phrase in a single word, and he can fine-tune the meaning of an entire sentence with just a syllable; he can even convey different meanings through the simplest variations in voice.

Philologists have said that there are but two or three languages, properly speaking, among all the numerous tribes which formerly occupied the country that now composes the United States. They ascribe the known difficulty one people have to understand another to corruptions and dialects. The writer remembers to have been present at an interview between two chiefs of the Great Prairies west of the Mississippi, and when an interpreter was in attendance who spoke both their languages. The warriors appeared to be on the most friendly terms, and seemingly conversed much together; yet, according to the account of the interpreter, each was absolutely ignorant of what the other said. They were of hostile tribes, brought together by the influence of the American government; and it is worthy of remark, that a common policy led them both to adopt the same subject. They mutually exhorted each other to be of use in the event of the chances of war throwing either of the parties into the hands of his enemies. Whatever may be the truth, as respects the root and the genius of the Indian tongues, it is quite certain they are now so distinct in their words as to possess most of the disadvantages of strange languages; hence much of the embarrassment that has arisen in learning their histories, and most of the uncertainty which exists in their traditions.

Linguists have stated that there are only two or three true languages among all the various tribes that used to inhabit the land that is now the United States. They believe the difficulty one group has in understanding another stems from different dialects and language changes. The author recalls witnessing a meeting between two chiefs from the Great Prairies west of the Mississippi, with an interpreter present who spoke both languages. The warriors seemed to be on friendly terms and appeared to have a lengthy conversation, yet, according to the interpreter, neither knew what the other was saying. They belonged to rival tribes brought together by the influence of the American government, and it's interesting to note that a shared goal led them to discuss the same topic. They encouraged each other to be helpful if war put either of them in the hands of their enemies. Regardless of the actual roots and characteristics of Indian languages, it’s clear that they are now distinct enough in their vocabulary to face many of the challenges of foreign languages, which contributes to the difficulties in understanding their histories and the uncertainties in their traditions.

Like nations of higher pretensions, the American Indian gives a very different account of his own tribe or race from that which is given by other people. He is much addicted to overestimating his own perfections, and to undervaluing those of his rival or his enemy; a trait which may possibly be thought corroborative of the Mosaic account of the creation.

Like other nations with high aspirations, the American Indian presents a very different view of his own tribe or race compared to what others say. He tends to exaggerate his own strengths and downplay those of his rivals or enemies; a characteristic that might be seen as supporting the biblical account of creation.

The whites have assisted greatly in rendering the traditions of the Aborigines more obscure by their own manner of corrupting names. Thus, the term used in the title of this book has undergone the changes of Mahicanni, Mohicans, and Mohegans; the latter being the word commonly used by the whites. When it is remembered that the Dutch (who first settled New York), the English, and the French, all gave appellations to the tribes that dwelt within the country which is the scene of this story, and that the Indians not only gave different names to their enemies, but frequently to themselves, the cause of the confusion will be understood.

The white people have significantly contributed to making the traditions of the Aborigines more unclear by altering their names. For example, the term used in the title of this book has transformed through Mahicanni, Mohicans, and Mohegans—the last being the term most commonly used by white people. It's important to remember that the Dutch (who were the first to settle New York), the English, and the French all assigned names to the tribes living in the area where this story takes place, and that the Native Americans not only used different names for their enemies but often for themselves as well. This explains the confusion surrounding these names.

In these pages, Lenni-Lenape, Lenope, Delawares, Wapanachki, and Mohicans, all mean the same people, or tribes of the same stock. The Mengwe, the Maquas, the Mingoes, and the Iroquois, though not all strictly the same, are identified frequently by the speakers, being politically confederated and opposed to those just named. Mingo was a term of peculiar reproach, as were Mengwe and Maqua in a less degree.

In these pages, Lenni-Lenape, Lenope, Delawares, Wapanachki, and Mohicans all refer to the same people or tribes from the same background. The Mengwe, the Maquas, the Mingoes, and the Iroquois, while not entirely the same, are often grouped together by speakers because they were politically united and opposed to those mentioned earlier. "Mingo" was especially used as an insult, while "Mengwe" and "Maqua" were considered less offensive.

The Mohicans were the possessors of the country first occupied by the Europeans in this portion of the continent. They were, consequently, the first dispossessed; and the seemingly inevitable fate of all these people, who disappear before the advances, or it might be termed the inroads, of civilization, as the verdure of their native forests falls before the nipping frosts, is represented as having already befallen them. There is sufficient historical truth in the picture to justify the use that has been made of it.

The Mohicans were the original inhabitants of the land first settled by Europeans in this part of the continent. As a result, they were the first to be displaced. The seemingly unavoidable fate of all these people, who vanish before the progress, or perhaps we should call it the encroachment, of civilization—much like the lush greenery of their native forests succumbs to the biting cold—is shown to have already happened to them. There is enough historical truth in this portrayal to validate its use.

In point of fact, the country which is the scene of the following tale has undergone as little change, since the historical events alluded to had place, as almost any other district of equal extent within the whole limits of the United States. There are fashionable and well-attended watering-places at and near the spring where Hawkeye halted to drink, and roads traverse the forests where he and his friends were compelled to journey without even a path. Glen’s has a large village; and while William Henry, and even a fortress of later date, are only to be traced as ruins, there is another village on the shores of the Horican. But, beyond this, the enterprise and energy of a people who have done so much in other places have done little here. The whole of that wilderness, in which the latter incidents of the legend occurred, is nearly a wilderness still, though the red man has entirely deserted this part of the state. Of all the tribes named in these pages, there exist only a few half-civilized beings of the Oneidas, on the reservations of their people in New York. The rest have disappeared, either from the regions in which their fathers dwelt, or altogether from the earth.

In fact, the area where this story takes place has barely changed since the historical events mentioned happened, much like any other region of similar size in the entire United States. There are trendy and popular resorts at and near the spring where Hawkeye stopped to drink, and roads go through the forests where he and his friends had to travel without any clear path. Glen has a large village; and while Fort William Henry and even a later fortress are just ruins now, there’s another village on the shores of Lake Horican. However, the initiative and drive of a people who have accomplished so much elsewhere have done little here. Most of the wilderness where the later events of the legend took place is still mostly untouched, even though Native Americans have completely left this part of the state. Of all the tribes mentioned in this text, only a few semi-civilized members of the Oneidas remain on their reservations in New York. The rest have either vanished from the lands where their ancestors lived or have completely disappeared from existence.

There is one point on which we would wish to say a word before closing this preface. Hawkeye calls the Lac du Saint Sacrement, the “Horican.” As we believe this to be an appropriation of the name that has its origin with ourselves, the time has arrived, perhaps, when the fact should be frankly admitted. While writing this book, fully a quarter of a century since, it occurred to us that the French name of this lake was too complicated, the American too commonplace, and the Indian too unpronounceable, for either to be used familiarly in a work of fiction. Looking over an ancient map, it was ascertained that a tribe of Indians, called “Les Horicans” by the French, existed in the neighborhood of this beautiful sheet of water. As every word uttered by Natty Bumppo was not to be received as rigid truth, we took the liberty of putting the “Horican” into his mouth, as the substitute for “Lake George.” The name has appeared to find favor, and all things considered, it may possibly be quite as well to let it stand, instead of going back to the House of Hanover for the appellation of our finest sheet of water. We relieve our conscience by the confession, at all events leaving it to exercise its authority as it may see fit.

There’s one thing we’d like to mention before wrapping up this preface. Hawkeye refers to the Lac du Saint Sacrement as the “Horican.” We believe this name comes from us, and we think it’s time to be upfront about that. While writing this book over 25 years ago, we realized that the French name for the lake was too complicated, the American name was too ordinary, and the Indian name was too hard to pronounce for casual use in a fictional work. Checking an old map, we discovered that a tribe of Indians, called “Les Horicans” by the French, lived near this beautiful body of water. Since not everything Natty Bumppo says should be taken as absolute truth, we decided to have him use “Horican” instead of “Lake George.” The name seems to have been well-received, and considering everything, it might be just as good to keep it rather than going back to the House of Hanover for the name of our finest lake. We feel better acknowledging this, leaving it to the conscience of the public to judge as they wish.

CHAPTER I.

“Mine ear is open, and my heart prepared:
The worst is wordly loss thou canst unfold:—
Say, is my kingdom lost?”—Shakespeare

“I'm listening, and my heart is ready:
The worst thing you can tell me is a loss in this world:—
So, have I lost my kingdom?”—Shakespeare

It was a feature peculiar to the colonial wars of North America, that the toils and dangers of the wilderness were to be encountered before the adverse hosts could meet. A wide and apparently an impervious boundary of forests severed the possessions of the hostile provinces of France and England. The hardy colonist, and the trained European who fought at his side, frequently expended months in struggling against the rapids of the streams, or in effecting the rugged passes of the mountains, in quest of an opportunity to exhibit their courage in a more martial conflict. But, emulating the patience and self-denial of the practiced native warriors, they learned to overcome every difficulty; and it would seem that, in time, there was no recess of the woods so dark, nor any secret place so lovely, that it might claim exemption from the inroads of those who had pledged their blood to satiate their vengeance, or to uphold the cold and selfish policy of the distant monarchs of Europe.

It was a unique aspect of the colonial wars in North America that the challenges and dangers of the wilderness had to be faced before the opposing armies could confront each other. A vast and seemingly impenetrable barrier of forests separated the territories of the rival provinces of France and England. The resilient colonists and the trained Europeans fighting alongside them often spent months battling the rapids of the rivers or navigating the rough mountain paths, all in search of a chance to show their bravery in more traditional combat. However, by following the example of the patient and self-disciplined native warriors, they learned to overcome every obstacle; it eventually seemed that there was no part of the woods so dark, nor any hidden place so beautiful, that it could escape the advances of those who had sworn to spill their blood for revenge or to support the cold and selfish interests of the distant kings of Europe.

Perhaps no district throughout the wide extent of the intermediate frontiers can furnish a livelier picture of the cruelty and fierceness of the savage warfare of those periods than the country which lies between the head waters of the Hudson and the adjacent lakes.

Perhaps no area across the vast stretch of the intermediate frontiers can provide a more vivid image of the brutality and intensity of the savage warfare of those times than the land situated between the source waters of the Hudson and the nearby lakes.

The facilities which nature had there offered to the march of the combatants were too obvious to be neglected. The lengthened sheet of the Champlain stretched from the frontiers of Canada, deep within the borders of the neighboring province of New York, forming a natural passage across half the distance that the French were compelled to master in order to strike their enemies. Near its southern termination, it received the contributions of another lake, whose waters were so limpid as to have been exclusively selected by the Jesuit missionaries to perform the typical purification of baptism, and to obtain for it the title of lake “du Saint Sacrément.” The less zealous English thought they conferred a sufficient honor on its unsullied fountains, when they bestowed the name of their reigning prince, the second of the house of Hanover. The two united to rob the untutored possessors of its wooded scenery of their native right to perpetuate its original appellation of “Horican.”[1]

The natural advantages that the area provided for the fighters were too clear to ignore. The long stretch of Lake Champlain ran from the Canadian border deep into the neighboring state of New York, creating a natural route that covered half the distance the French needed to traverse to confront their enemies. Near its southern end, it was fed by another lake, whose clear waters were exclusively chosen by Jesuit missionaries for the traditional ritual of baptism, earning it the name "Lake du Saint Sacrément." The less devoted English believed that naming it after their reigning monarch, the second from the House of Hanover, was a fitting tribute to its pure springs. Both names combined to strip the original native owners of its wooded beauty of their right to keep its original name of "Horican."[1]

[1] As each nation of the Indians had its language or its dialect, they usually gave different names to the same places, though nearly all of their appellations were descriptive of the object. Thus a literal translation of the name of this beautiful sheet of water, used by the tribe that dwelt on its banks, would be “The Tail of the Lake.” Lake George, as it is vulgarly, and now, indeed, legally, called, forms a sort of tail to Lake Champlain, when viewed on the map. Hence, the name.

[1] As each Native American tribe had its own language or dialect, they often gave different names to the same places, although most of their names were descriptive of the features. So, a literal translation of the name for this beautiful body of water, used by the tribe living along its shores, would be “The Tail of the Lake.” Lake George, as it is commonly and now legally called, resembles a tail extending from Lake Champlain when you look at it on a map. That's how it got its name.

Winding its way among countless islands, and imbedded in mountains, the “holy lake” extended a dozen leagues still further to the south. With the high plain that there interposed itself to the further passage of the water, commenced a portage of as many miles, which conducted the adventurer to the banks of the Hudson, at a point where, with the usual obstructions of the rapids, or rifts, as they were then termed in the language of the country, the river became navigable to the tide.

Winding its way among countless islands and nestled in the mountains, the “holy lake” stretched another twelve leagues further south. With the high plain blocking the way for the water, a portage of several miles began, leading the adventurer to the banks of the Hudson, where, with the usual obstacles of the rapids—or rifts, as they were called back then—the river became navigable to the tide.

While, in the pursuit of their daring plans of annoyance, the restless enterprise of the French even attempted the distant and difficult gorges of the Alleghany, it may easily be imagined that their proverbial acuteness would not overlook the natural advantages of the district we have just described. It became, emphatically, the bloody arena, in which most of the battles for the mastery of the colonies were contested. Forts were erected at the different points that commanded the facilities of the route, and were taken and retaken, razed and rebuilt, as victory alighted on the hostile banners. While the husbandman shrank back from the dangerous passes, within the safer boundaries of the more ancient settlements, armies larger than those that had often disposed of the scepters of the mother countries, were seen to bury themselves in these forests, whence they rarely returned but in skeleton bands, that were haggard with care or dejected by defeat. Though the arts of peace were unknown to this fatal region, its forests were alive with men; its shades and glens rang with the sounds of martial music, and the echoes of its mountains threw back the laugh, or repeated the wanton cry, of many a gallant and reckless youth, as he hurried by them, in the noontide of his spirits, to slumber in a long night of forgetfulness.

While chasing their bold plans for annoyance, the French even ventured into the remote and challenging gorges of the Alleghany. It’s easy to imagine that their well-known sharpness didn’t miss the natural advantages of the area we just described. It became, without a doubt, the bloody battleground where most of the fights for control of the colonies took place. Forts were built at various strategic points along the route and were taken and retaken, destroyed and rebuilt, depending on which side was victorious. While farmers avoided the perilous routes and stayed within the safer confines of older settlements, armies larger than those that had often controlled the crowns of their home countries were seen disappearing into these forests, rarely returning except as thin, weary bands, worn down by worry or disheartened by defeat. Although the peaceful arts were absent from this cursed land, its forests buzzed with people; its shadows and valleys resonated with the sounds of military music, and the echoes of its mountains bounced back the laughter or the boisterous shouts of many a brave and reckless young man, as he rushed past, buoyed by the height of his spirits, only to fall into a long night of forgetfulness.

It was in this scene of strife and bloodshed that the incidents we shall attempt to relate occurred, during the third year of the war which England and France last waged for the possession of a country that neither was destined to retain.

It was in this scene of conflict and violence that the events we’re about to describe took place, during the third year of the war that England and France fought over a land neither of them was meant to keep.

The imbecility of her military leaders abroad, and the fatal want of energy in her councils at home, had lowered the character of Great Britain from the proud elevation on which it had been placed by the talents and enterprise of her former warriors and statesmen. No longer dreaded by her enemies, her servants were fast losing the confidence of self-respect. In this mortifying abasement, the colonists, though innocent of her imbecility, and too humble to be the agents of her blunders, were but the natural participators. They had recently seen a chosen army from that country, which, reverencing as a mother, they had blindly believed invincible—an army led by a chief who had been selected from a crowd of trained warriors, for his rare military endowments, disgracefully routed by a handful of French and Indians, and only saved from annihilation by the coolness and spirit of a Virginian boy, whose riper fame has since diffused itself, with the steady influence of moral truth, to the uttermost confines of Christendom.[2] A wide frontier had been laid naked by this unexpected disaster, and more substantial evils were preceded by a thousand fanciful and imaginary dangers. The alarmed colonists believed that the yells of the savages mingled with every fitful gust of wind that issued from the interminable forests of the west. The terrific character of their merciless enemies increased immeasurably the natural horrors of warfare. Numberless recent massacres were still vivid in their recollections; nor was there any ear in the provinces so deaf as not to have drunk in with avidity the narrative of some fearful tale of midnight murder, in which the natives of the forests were the principal and barbarous actors. As the credulous and excited traveler related the hazardous chances of the wilderness, the blood of the timid curdled with terror, and mothers cast anxious glances even at those children which slumbered within the security of the largest towns. In short, the magnifying influence of fear began to set at naught the calculations of reason, and to render those who should have remembered their manhood, the slaves of the basest passions. Even the most confident and the stoutest hearts began to think the issue of the contest was becoming doubtful; and that abject class was hourly increasing in numbers, who thought they foresaw all the possessions of the English crown in America subdued by their Christian foes, or laid waste by the inroads of their relentless allies.

The incompetence of her military leaders overseas and the complete lack of energy in her government at home had diminished Great Britain's status from the proud position it once held thanks to the skills and ambition of its past warriors and statesmen. No longer feared by her enemies, her officials were quickly losing their self-respect. In this humiliating decline, the colonists, although innocent of her failures and too modest to be blamed for her mistakes, were merely experiencing the consequences. They had recently witnessed a chosen army from that country, which they had seen as a mother and had blindly believed to be invincible—an army led by a commander chosen from a group of trained soldiers for his exceptional military qualities—being disgracefully defeated by a small group of French and Native Americans, only saved from total destruction by the calmness and determination of a young Virginian, whose later fame has spread, along with the steady influence of moral truth, to the farthest reaches of Christendom.[2] A wide frontier had been left exposed by this unexpected disaster, and more significant problems were preceded by countless imaginary threats. The frightened colonists believed the cries of the savages mingled with every gust of wind that blew from the endless forests to the west. The terrifying nature of their ruthless enemies greatly intensified the natural fears associated with war. Recent massacres were still fresh in their minds; there was no one in the provinces so oblivious as not to have eagerly absorbed some dreadful story of nighttime murder, with the forest natives as the brutal main actors. As the gullible and excited traveler recounted the dangerous risks of the wilderness, the blood of the timid ran cold with fear, and mothers cast worried glances even at those children safely tucked away in the largest towns. In short, the overwhelming influence of fear began to disregard rational thought, making those who should have remembered their courage slaves to their lowest instincts. Even the most confident and courageous began to doubt the outcome of the conflict; and that cowardly group was growing daily, convinced they could see all the possessions of the English crown in America falling to their Christian enemies or being destroyed by the relentless advances of their allies.

[2] Washington, who, after uselessly admonishing the European general of the danger into which he was heedlessly running, saved the remnants of the British army, on this occasion, by his decision and courage. The reputation earned by Washington in this battle was the principal cause of his being selected to command the American armies at a later day. It is a circumstance worthy of observation, that while all America rang with his well-merited reputation, his name does not occur in any European account of the battle; at least the author has searched for it without success. In this manner does the mother country absorb even the fame, under that system of rule.

[2] Washington, who, after fruitlessly warning the European general about the danger he was carelessly heading into, managed to save the remnants of the British army with his decisiveness and bravery. The reputation Washington gained from this battle was the main reason he was later chosen to lead the American armies. It's worth noting that while all of America celebrated his well-deserved fame, his name doesn’t appear in any European accounts of the battle; at least the author has looked for it without success. This is how the mother country claims even the glory, under that system of governance.

When, therefore, intelligence was received at the fort which covered the southern termination of the portage between the Hudson and the lakes, that Montcalm had been seen moving up the Champlain, with an army “numerous as the leaves on the trees,” its truth was admitted with more of the craven reluctance of fear than with the stern joy that a warrior should feel, in finding an enemy within reach of his blow. The news had been brought, toward the decline of a day in midsummer, by an Indian runner, who also bore an urgent request from Munro, the commander of a work on the shore of the “holy lake,” for a speedy and powerful reinforcement. It has already been mentioned that the distance between these two posts was less than five leagues. The rude path, which originally formed their line of communication, had been widened for the passage of wagons; so that the distance which had been traveled by the son of the forest in two hours, might easily be effected by a detachment of troops, with their necessary baggage, between the rising and setting of a summer sun. The loyal servants of the British crown had given to one of these forest-fastnesses the name of William Henry, and to the other that of Fort Edward, calling each after a favorite prince of the reigning family. The veteran Scotchman just named held the first, with a regiment of regulars and a few provincials; a force really by far too small to make head against the formidable power that Montcalm was leading to the foot of his earthen mounds. At the latter, however, lay General Webb, who commanded the armies of the king in the northern provinces, with a body of more than five thousand men. By uniting the several detachments of his command, this officer might have arrayed nearly double that number of combatants against the enterprising Frenchman, who had ventured so far from his reinforcements, with an army but little superior in numbers.

When the fort at the southern end of the portage between the Hudson and the lakes received word that Montcalm had been spotted moving up the Champlain with an army "as numerous as the leaves on the trees," the news was met with more cowardly fear than the fierce joy a warrior should feel at finding an enemy within striking distance. An Indian runner brought the news late in the day during midsummer, along with an urgent request from Munro, the commander of a post on the shore of the "holy lake," for quick and powerful reinforcements. The distance between these two posts was less than five leagues. The rough path that had originally served as their line of communication had been widened for wagons, so the distance that the runner covered in two hours could easily be managed by a troop with their gear within the span of a summer day. The loyal subjects of the British crown named one of these forest fortresses William Henry and the other Fort Edward, each after a favored prince of the reigning family. The veteran Scotsman mentioned earlier commanded the first, along with a regiment of regulars and a few provincial troops; a force that was far too small to stand against the formidable power Montcalm was bringing to his earthen mounds. However, at Fort Edward lay General Webb, who commanded the king's armies in the northern provinces, with a force of over five thousand men. By gathering the several detachments under his command, this officer could have mustered nearly double that number of fighters against the daring Frenchman, who had ventured so far from his reinforcements with an army that was only slightly larger in numbers.

But under the influence of their degraded fortunes, both officers and men appeared better disposed to await the approach of their formidable antagonists, within their works, than to resist the progress of their march, by emulating the successful example of the French at Fort du Quesne, and striking a blow on their advance.

But influenced by their unfortunate circumstances, both the officers and the soldiers seemed more willing to wait for their powerful enemies to come to them rather than try to stop their advance by following the successful example of the French at Fort du Quesne and taking action against them.

After the first surprise of the intelligence had a little abated, a rumor was spread through the entrenched camp, which stretched along the margin of the Hudson, forming a chain of outworks to the body of the fort itself, that a chosen detachment of fifteen hundred men was to depart, with the dawn, for William Henry, the post at the northern extremity of the portage. That which at first was only rumor, soon became certainty, as orders passed from the quarters of the commander-in-chief to the several corps he had selected for this service, to prepare for their speedy departure. All doubts as to the intention of Webb now vanished, and an hour or two of hurried footsteps and anxious faces succeeded. The novice in the military art flew from point to point, retarding his own preparations by the excess of his violent and somewhat distempered zeal; while the more practiced veteran made his arrangements with a deliberation that scorned every appearance of haste; though his sober lineaments and anxious eye sufficiently betrayed that he had no very strong professional relish for the, as yet, untried and dreaded warfare of the wilderness. At length the sun set in a flood of glory, behind the distant western hills, and as darkness drew its veil around the secluded spot the sounds of preparation diminished; the last light finally disappeared from the log cabin of some officer; the trees cast their deeper shadows over the mounds and the rippling stream, and a silence soon pervaded the camp, as deep as that which reigned in the vast forest by which it was environed.

Once the initial shock of the news faded, a rumor spread through the entrenched camp along the Hudson, forming a line of defenses leading to the fort itself, that a select group of fifteen hundred men would be leaving at dawn for William Henry, the post at the northern end of the portage. What began as mere gossip quickly became fact as orders circulated from the commander-in-chief to the units chosen for the mission to get ready for their immediate departure. All uncertainty about Webb's intentions vanished, followed by an hour or two filled with hurried footsteps and worried faces. The inexperienced soldier rushed around, slowing his own preparations with his excessive and somewhat erratic enthusiasm, while the more seasoned veteran organized his tasks with a calmness that dismissed any hint of urgency, though his serious expression and anxious gaze clearly showed he wasn't entirely comfortable with the unknown and daunting challenges of wilderness warfare. Finally, the sun set in a brilliant display behind the distant western hills, and as darkness enveloped the secluded area, the sounds of preparation faded; the last light disappeared from an officer's log cabin; the trees deepened their shadows over the mounds and the flowing stream, and a profound silence settled over the camp, as deep as that which surrounded it in the vast forest.

According to the orders of the preceding night, the heavy sleep of the army was broken by the rolling of the warning drums, whose rattling echoes were heard issuing, on the damp morning air, out of every vista of the woods, just as day began to draw the shaggy outlines of some tall pines of the vicinity, on the opening brightness of a soft and cloudless eastern sky. In an instant the whole camp was in motion; the meanest soldier arousing from his lair to witness the departure of his comrades, and to share in the excitement and incidents of the hour. The simple array of the chosen band was soon completed. While the regular and trained hirelings of the king marched with haughtiness to the right of the line, the less pretending colonists took their humbler position on its left, with a docility that long practice had rendered easy. The scouts departed; strong guards preceded and followed the lumbering vehicles that bore the baggage; and before the gray light of the morning was mellowed by the rays of the sun, the main body of the combatants wheeled into column, and left the encampment with a show of high military bearing, that served to drown the slumbering apprehensions of many a novice, who was now about to make his first essay in arms. While in view of their admiring comrades, the same proud front and ordered array was observed, until the notes of their fifes growing fainter in distance, the forest at length appeared to swallow up the living mass which had slowly entered its bosom.

According to the orders from the previous night, the army's deep sleep was broken by the sound of warning drums, their booming echoes resonating in the damp morning air from every path in the woods, just as the day began to outline the tall pines nearby under the bright, soft, cloudless eastern sky. In an instant, the entire camp sprang to life; even the lowliest soldier woke from his spot to see his comrades depart and to share in the excitement of the moment. The simple formation of the chosen group quickly came together. While the regular, trained soldiers of the king marched proudly to the right of the line, the less showy colonists took their modest place on the left, moving with an ease that came from long practice. The scouts set out; strong guards moved ahead of and behind the heavy vehicles carrying the baggage; and before the gray morning light was warmed by the sun, the main body of fighters formed up and left the camp with a display of military pride that helped ease the nerves of many newcomers, who were about to make their first venture into battle. In view of their admiring comrades, the same proud formation was maintained until the sound of their fifes faded into the distance, and the forest seemed to engulf the mass of men that had slowly entered its depths.

The deepest sounds of the retiring and invisible column had ceased to be borne on the breeze to the listeners, and the latest straggler had already disappeared in pursuit; but there still remained the signs of another departure, before a log cabin of unusual size and accommodations, in front of which those sentinels paced their rounds, who were known to guard the person of the English general. At this spot were gathered some half dozen horses, caparisoned in a manner which showed that two, at least, were destined to bear the persons of females, of a rank that it was not usual to meet so far in the wilds of the country. A third wore trappings and arms of an officer of the staff; while the rest, from the plainness of the housings, and the traveling mails with which they were encumbered, were evidently fitted for the reception of as many menials, who were, seemingly, already waiting the pleasure of those they served. At a respectful distance from this unusual show, were gathered divers groups of curious idlers; some admiring the blood and bone of the high-mettled military charger, and others gazing at the preparations, with the dull wonder of vulgar curiosity. There was one man, however, who, by his countenance and actions, formed a marked exception to those who composed the latter class of spectators, being neither idle, nor seemingly very ignorant.

The loud sounds of the departing and hidden group had stopped echoing in the breeze for the listeners, and the last straggler had already vanished in pursuit; but there were still signs of another departure in front of a large log cabin with extra amenities, where sentinels kept their watch, known to protect the English general. A small group of about six horses was gathered there, dressed in a way that indicated that at least two were meant to carry women of a rank not often seen so deep in the wilderness. A third horse was equipped with the gear and arms of a staff officer; while the others, with their simple coverings and the heavy travel bags they carried, were clearly meant for the service of several attendants, who seemed to already be waiting on their masters. At a respectful distance from this unusual scene were various groups of curious onlookers; some admired the impressive, spirited military charger, while others watched the preparations with the dull wonder of simple curiosity. However, one man stood out from the rest of the spectators with his demeanor and actions; he was neither idle nor seemingly uninformed.

The person of this individual was to the last degree ungainly, without being in any particular manner deformed. He had all the bones and joints of other men, without any of their proportions. Erect, his stature surpassed that of his fellows; though seated, he appeared reduced within the ordinary limits of the race. The same contrariety in his members seemed to exist throughout the whole man. His head was large; his shoulders narrow; his arms long and dangling; while his hands were small, if not delicate. His legs and thighs were thin, nearly to emaciation, but of extraordinary length; and his knees would have been considered tremendous, had they not been outdone by the broader foundations on which this false superstructure of blended human orders was so profanely reared. The ill-assorted and injudicious attire of the individual only served to render his awkwardness more conspicuous. A sky-blue coat, with short and broad skirts and low cape, exposed a long, thin neck, and longer and thinner legs, to the worst animadversions of the evil-disposed. His nether garment was a yellow nankeen, closely fitted to the shape, and tied at his bunches of knees by large knots of white ribbon, a good deal sullied by use. Clouded cotton stockings, and shoes, on one of the latter of which was a plated spur, completed the costume of the lower extremity of this figure, no curve or angle of which was concealed, but, on the other hand, studiously exhibited, through the vanity or simplicity of its owner.

The person was incredibly awkward-looking, but not specifically deformed. He had the same bones and joints as everyone else, but none of their proportions. Standing up, he was taller than his peers; when he sat down, he seemed to shrink to the average size for his kind. This contrast in his body was evident throughout. His head was large, his shoulders narrow, his arms long and hanging; his hands were small, if not delicate. His legs and thighs were thin to the point of looking emaciated, yet they were extraordinarily long; his knees would have seemed huge if they weren’t overshadowed by the larger base on which his oddly constructed body was built. The mismatched and poorly chosen clothing only made his awkwardness more noticeable. He wore a sky-blue coat with short, wide skirts and a low cape, which emphasized his long, thin neck and even thinner legs, exposing him to harsh comments from those with ill intentions. His pants were made of yellow nankeen, fitting tightly, and tied at his knee with large bows of slightly dirty white ribbon. He wore clouded cotton stockings and shoes, one of which had a metal spur, completing the outfit that left no curve or angle hidden, but rather showcased it through the vanity or naivety of its owner.

From beneath the flap of an enormous pocket of a soiled vest of embossed silk, heavily ornamented with tarnished silver lace, projected an instrument, which, from being seen in such martial company, might have been easily mistaken for some mischievous and unknown implement of war. Small as it was, this uncommon engine had excited the curiosity of most of the Europeans in the camp, though several of the provincials were seen to handle it, not only without fear, but with the utmost familiarity. A large, civil cocked hat, like those worn by clergymen within the last thirty years, surmounted the whole, furnishing dignity to a good-natured and somewhat vacant countenance, that apparently needed such artificial aid, to support the gravity of some high and extraordinary trust.

From beneath the flap of a huge pocket on a dirty vest made of embossed silk, heavily decorated with tarnished silver lace, poked out an instrument that, due to its presence among such martial company, could easily be mistaken for some mischievous and unknown weapon of war. While it was small, this unusual gadget had piqued the curiosity of most Europeans in the camp, although several locals were seen handling it, not only without fear but with complete familiarity. A large, stylish cocked hat, similar to those worn by clergymen in the last thirty years, topped it all off, giving dignity to a friendly yet somewhat vacant face that seemingly required such artificial support to uphold the seriousness of some significant and extraordinary responsibility.

While the common herd stood aloof, in deference to the quarters of Webb, the figure we have described stalked into the center of the domestics, freely expressing his censures or commendations on the merits of the horses, as by chance they displeased or satisfied his judgment.

While the crowd kept their distance out of respect for Webb's place, the figure we described walked right into the midst of the servants, openly sharing his criticisms or praises about the horses, depending on whether they met or failed his standards.

“This beast, I rather conclude, friend, is not of home raising, but is from foreign lands, or perhaps from the little island itself over the blue water?” he said, in a voice as remarkable for the softness and sweetness of its tones, as was his person for its rare proportions; “I may speak of these things, and be no braggart; for I have been down at both havens; that which is situate at the mouth of Thames, and is named after the capital of Old England, and that which is called ‘Haven’, with the addition of the word ‘New’; and have seen the scows and brigantines collecting their droves, like the gathering to the ark, being outward bound to the Island of Jamaica, for the purpose of barter and traffic in four-footed animals; but never before have I beheld a beast which verified the true scripture war-horse like this: ‘He paweth in the valley, and rejoiceth in his strength; he goeth on to meet the armed men. He saith among the trumpets, Ha, ha; and he smelleth the battle afar off, the thunder of the captains, and the shouting.’ It would seem that the stock of the horse of Israel had descended to our own time; would it not, friend?”

"This beast, I have to say, friend, doesn’t seem to be from around here, but rather from distant lands, or maybe from that little island across the blue water?” he said, in a voice as notable for its softness and sweetness as his figure was for its unique proportions; “I can talk about these things without being boastful; I’ve visited both havens: the one at the mouth of the Thames, named after the capital of Old England, and the one called ‘Haven’, with ‘New’ added to its name; I’ve seen the scows and brigantines gathering their loads, like animals boarding an ark, setting off to the Island of Jamaica to trade in livestock; but I’ve never seen a beast that exemplifies the true scripture war-horse like this: ‘He paws in the valley and delights in his strength; he charges toward the armed men. He rejoices among the trumpets, Ha, ha; and he senses the battle from afar, the thunder of the captains, and the shout of victory.’ It seems like the lineage of the war-horse of Israel has made its way to our time; doesn’t it, friend?"

Receiving no reply to this extraordinary appeal, which in truth, as it was delivered with the vigor of full and sonorous tones, merited some sort of notice, he who had thus sung forth the language of the holy book turned to the silent figure to whom he had unwittingly addressed himself, and found a new and more powerful subject of admiration in the object that encountered his gaze. His eyes fell on the still, upright, and rigid form of the “Indian runner,” who had borne to the camp the unwelcome tidings of the preceding evening. Although in a state of perfect repose, and apparently disregarding, with characteristic stoicism, the excitement and bustle around him, there was a sullen fierceness mingled with the quiet of the savage, that was likely to arrest the attention of much more experienced eyes than those which now scanned him, in unconcealed amazement. The native bore both the tomahawk and knife of his tribe; and yet his appearance was not altogether that of a warrior. On the contrary, there was an air of neglect about his person, like that which might have proceeded from great and recent exertion, which he had not yet found leisure to repair. The colors of the war-paint had blended in dark confusion about his fierce countenance, and rendered his swarthy lineaments still more savage and repulsive than if art had attempted an effect which had been thus produced by chance. His eye, alone, which glistened like a fiery star amid lowering clouds, was to be seen in its state of native wildness. For a single instant his searching and yet wary glance met the wondering look of the other, and then changing its direction, partly in cunning, and partly in disdain, it remained fixed, as if penetrating the distant air.

Receiving no response to this extraordinary appeal, which truly deserved some acknowledgment as it was delivered with full, powerful tones, the one who had just spoken the words of the holy book turned to the silent figure he had unknowingly addressed and found a new, even more fascinating subject to admire in what he saw. His gaze fell on the still, upright, and rigid form of the “Indian runner,” who had brought the unwelcome news to the camp the evening before. Although he appeared perfectly calm and seemed to be stoically ignoring the excitement and commotion around him, there was a sullen fierceness mingling with the calm of the savage that would likely capture the attention of even more seasoned observers than those who now watched him in open amazement. The native carried both the tomahawk and knife of his tribe, yet he didn't completely resemble a warrior. On the contrary, there was a sense of neglect about him, as if he had just undergone a significant effort that he hadn’t had the chance to recover from. The colors of his war paint had blended chaotically across his fierce face, making his dark features look even more savage and repulsive than if the effect had been deliberately created. His eye, however, glimmered like a fiery star amid stormy clouds, showing its unrefined wildness. For a brief moment, his piercing yet cautious gaze met the other’s astonished look, and then, shifting its direction—partly out of cunning and partly in disdain—it remained fixed, as if seeing beyond the distant horizon.

It is impossible to say what unlooked-for remark this short and silent communication, between two such singular men, might have elicited from the white man, had not his active curiosity been again drawn to other objects. A general movement among the domestics, and a low sound of gentle voices, announced the approach of those whose presence alone was wanted to enable the cavalcade to move. The simple admirer of the war-horse instantly fell back to a low, gaunt, switch-tailed mare, that was unconsciously gleaning the faded herbage of the camp nigh by; where, leaning with one elbow on the blanket that concealed an apology for a saddle, he became a spectator of the departure, while a foal was quietly making its morning repast, on the opposite side of the same animal.

It's hard to say what unexpected comment this short and silent exchange between two such unique men might have sparked from the white man, if his curiosity hadn’t been drawn to other things. A general movement among the staff and a soft murmur of voices signaled the arrival of those whose presence was needed for the group to set off. The simple admirer of the war-horse quickly shifted his attention to a tall, thin mare with a switch tail that was unknowingly munching on the dried grass nearby. Leaning on one elbow on the blanket that covered a makeshift saddle, he watched the departure while a foal peacefully enjoyed its breakfast on the other side of the same horse.

A young man, in the dress of an officer, conducted to their steeds two females, who, as it was apparent by their dresses, were prepared to encounter the fatigues of a journey in the woods. One, and she was the more juvenile in her appearance, though both were young, permitted glimpses of her dazzling complexion, fair golden hair, and bright blue eyes, to be caught, as she artlessly suffered the morning air to blow aside the green veil which descended low from her beaver.

A young man, dressed like an officer, led two women to their horses. From their outfits, it was clear they were ready for a journey through the woods. One of them, looking a bit younger than the other, had a radiant complexion, shiny golden hair, and bright blue eyes. She playfully let the morning breeze lift her green veil, which hung low from her hat.

The flush which still lingered above the pines in the western sky was not more bright nor delicate than the bloom on her cheek; nor was the opening day more cheering than the animated smile which she bestowed on the youth, as he assisted her into the saddle. The other, who appeared to share equally in the attention of the young officer, concealed her charms from the gaze of the soldiery with a care that seemed better fitted to the experience of four or five additional years. It could be seen, however, that her person, though molded with the same exquisite proportions, of which none of the graces were lost by the traveling dress she wore, was rather fuller and more mature than that of her companion.

The glow that still lingered above the pines in the western sky was neither brighter nor more delicate than the blush on her cheek; nor was the new day more uplifting than the lively smile she gave the young man as he helped her into the saddle. The other girl, who also seemed to attract the young officer's attention, kept her beauty hidden from the soldiers with a care that suggested she had four or five more years of experience. However, it was clear that her figure, although shaped with the same exquisite proportions that the traveling dress she wore did not hide, was a bit fuller and more mature than her companion's.

No sooner were these females seated, than their attendant sprang lightly into the saddle of the war-horse, when the whole three bowed to Webb, who in courtesy, awaited their parting on the threshold of his cabin and turning their horses’ heads, they proceeded at a slow amble, followed by their train, toward the northern entrance of the encampment. As they traversed that short distance, not a voice was heard among them; but a slight exclamation proceeded from the younger of the females, as the Indian runner glided by her, unexpectedly, and led the way along the military road in her front. Though this sudden and startling movement of the Indian produced no sound from the other, in the surprise her veil also was allowed to open its folds, and betrayed an indescribable look of pity, admiration, and horror, as her dark eye followed the easy motions of the savage. The tresses of this lady were shining and black, like the plumage of the raven. Her complexion was not brown, but it rather appeared charged with the color of the rich blood, that seemed ready to burst its bounds. And yet there was neither coarseness nor want of shadowing in a countenance that was exquisitely regular, and dignified and surpassingly beautiful. She smiled, as if in pity at her own momentary forgetfulness, discovering by the act a row of teeth that would have shamed the purest ivory; when, replacing the veil, she bowed her face, and rode in silence, like one whose thoughts were abstracted from the scene around her.

As soon as the women were seated, their attendant jumped onto the war-horse, and the three of them bowed to Webb, who politely waited for them to leave from the doorway of his cabin. Turning their horses' heads, they began to move at a slow pace, followed by their group, toward the northern entrance of the camp. As they made that short distance, not a word was spoken among them, but the younger woman let out a small gasp when the Indian runner unexpectedly zipped past her, leading the way along the military road in front of her. Although the sudden movement of the Indian didn’t provoke any sound from the others, the surprise caused her veil to drop slightly, revealing an indescribable expression of pity, admiration, and horror as her dark eyes followed the fluid movements of the savage. This lady's hair was shining and black like raven feathers. Her skin wasn't brown; it seemed vibrant with the rich color of blood, ready to overflow. Yet there was neither roughness nor lack of depth in a face that was extraordinarily symmetrical, dignified, and incredibly beautiful. She smiled, as if in self-compassion for her momentary distraction, revealing a set of teeth that would put the finest ivory to shame; then, as she replaced her veil, she lowered her face and rode in silence, like someone lost in her own thoughts, detached from the world around her.

CHAPTER II.

“Sola, sola, wo ha, ho, sola!”
—Shakespeare

“Sola, sola, wo ha, ho, sola!”
—Shakespeare

While one of the lovely beings we have so cursorily presented to the reader was thus lost in thought, the other quickly recovered from the alarm which induced the exclamation, and, laughing at her own weakness, she inquired of the youth who rode by her side:

While one of the lovely beings we briefly introduced to the reader was lost in thought, the other quickly got over the surprise that caused her to exclaim, and, laughing at her own weakness, she asked the young man riding next to her:

“Are such specters frequent in the woods, Heyward, or is this sight an especial entertainment ordered on our behalf? If the latter, gratitude must close our mouths; but if the former, both Cora and I shall have need to draw largely on that stock of hereditary courage which we boast, even before we are made to encounter the redoubtable Montcalm.”

“Are these kinds of ghosts common in the woods, Heyward, or is this vision a special show set up for us? If it’s the latter, we should stay silent out of gratitude; but if it’s the former, both Cora and I will need to rely heavily on that inherited bravery we claim to have, even before we face the formidable Montcalm.”

“Yon Indian is a ‘runner’ of the army; and, after the fashion of his people, he may be accounted a hero,” returned the officer. “He has volunteered to guide us to the lake, by a path but little known, sooner than if we followed the tardy movements of the column; and, by consequence, more agreeably.”

“that Indian is a ‘runner’ of the army; and, like his people, he can be considered a hero,” the officer replied. “He has volunteered to lead us to the lake along a lesser-known path, which will get us there faster than if we waited for the slow progress of the column; and, as a result, it will be more pleasant.”

“I like him not,” said the lady, shuddering, partly in assumed, yet more in real terror. “You know him, Duncan, or you would not trust yourself so freely to his keeping?”

“I don't like him,” said the lady, shuddering, partly out of pretense, but more out of genuine fear. “You know him, Duncan, or you wouldn't put yourself in his care so freely?”

“Say, rather, Alice, that I would not trust you. I do know him, or he would not have my confidence, and least of all at this moment. He is said to be a Canadian too; and yet he served with our friends the Mohawks, who, as you know, are one of the six allied nations. He was brought among us, as I have heard, by some strange accident in which your father was interested, and in which the savage was rigidly dealt by; but I forget the idle tale, it is enough, that he is now our friend.”

“Say instead, Alice, that I wouldn’t trust you. I do know him, or he wouldn’t have my confidence, especially not at this moment. They say he’s Canadian too; yet he fought alongside our friends the Mohawks, who, as you know, are one of the six allied nations. I’ve heard he was brought among us by some strange accident that involved your father, and the savage was dealt with severely; but I forget the pointless story, it’s enough that he is now our friend.”

“If he has been my father’s enemy, I like him still less!” exclaimed the now really anxious girl. “Will you not speak to him, Major Heyward, that I may hear his tones? Foolish though it may be, you have often heard me avow my faith in the tones of the human voice!”

“If he’s been my father’s enemy, I like him even less!” exclaimed the now truly anxious girl. “Won’t you talk to him, Major Heyward, so I can hear his voice? Silly as it may be, you know I’ve often admitted my belief in the power of the human voice!”

“It would be in vain; and answered, most probably, by an ejaculation. Though he may understand it, he affects, like most of his people, to be ignorant of the English; and least of all will he condescend to speak it, now that the war demands the utmost exercise of his dignity. But he stops; the private path by which we are to journey is, doubtless, at hand.”

“It would be pointless; and most likely, it would just get a quick reaction. Even if he understands it, he pretends to be ignorant of English, like most of his people, and he certainly won't lower himself to speak it, especially now that the war requires him to uphold his dignity to the highest degree. But he pauses; the private path we need to take is probably nearby.”

The conjecture of Major Heyward was true. When they reached the spot where the Indian stood, pointing into the thicket that fringed the military road; a narrow and blind path, which might, with some little inconvenience, receive one person at a time, became visible.

The guess of Major Heyward was right. When they got to the place where the Indian was standing, pointing into the bushes next to the military road, a narrow and hidden path, which could only fit one person at a time with a bit of difficulty, appeared.

“Here, then, lies our way,” said the young man, in a low voice. “Manifest no distrust, or you may invite the danger you appear to apprehend.”

“Here’s our path,” the young man said quietly. “Don’t show any doubt, or you might attract the danger you seem to fear.”

“Cora, what think you?” asked the reluctant fair one. “If we journey with the troops, though we may find their presence irksome, shall we not feel better assurance of our safety?”

“Cora, what do you think?” asked the hesitant beauty. “If we travel with the troops, even if we might find them annoying, won't we feel safer?”

“Being little accustomed to the practices of the savages, Alice, you mistake the place of real danger,” said Heyward. “If enemies have reached the portage at all, a thing by no means probable, as our scouts are abroad, they will surely be found skirting the column, where scalps abound the most. The route of the detachment is known, while ours, having been determined within the hour, must still be secret.”

“Not being very used to the ways of the savages, Alice, you're misunderstanding where the real danger lies,” said Heyward. “If any enemies have made it to the portage, which is by no means likely since our scouts are out there, they'll definitely be found moving along the column, where the scalps are most plentiful. The path of our group is known, but ours—decided just within the hour—has to remain a secret.”

“Should we distrust the man because his manners are not our manners, and that his skin is dark?” coldly asked Cora.

“Should we distrust him just because his manners are different from ours and because his skin is dark?” Cora asked coldly.

Alice hesitated no longer; but giving her Narrangansett[1] a smart cut of the whip, she was the first to dash aside the slight branches of the bushes, and to follow the runner along the dark and tangled pathway. The young man regarded the last speaker in open admiration, and even permitted her fairer, though certainly not more beautiful companion, to proceed unattended, while he sedulously opened the way himself for the passage of her who has been called Cora. It would seem that the domestics had been previously instructed; for, instead of penetrating the thicket, they followed the route of the column; a measure which Heyward stated had been dictated by the sagacity of their guide, in order to diminish the marks of their trail, if, haply, the Canadian savages should be lurking so far in advance of their army. For many minutes the intricacy of the route admitted of no further dialogue; after which they emerged from the broad border of underbrush which grew along the line of the highway, and entered under the high but dark arches of the forest. Here their progress was less interrupted; and the instant the guide perceived that the females could command their steeds, he moved on, at a pace between a trot and a walk, and at a rate which kept the sure-footed and peculiar animals they rode at a fast yet easy amble. The youth had turned to speak to the dark-eyed Cora, when the distant sound of horses hoofs, clattering over the roots of the broken way in his rear, caused him to check his charger; and, as his companions drew their reins at the same instant, the whole party came to a halt, in order to obtain an explanation of the unlooked-for interruption.

Alice didn't hesitate any longer; with a quick flick of her whip, she was the first to push aside the thin branches of the bushes and follow the runner down the dark and tangled path. The young man looked at the last speaker with open admiration and even let her prettier, though not necessarily more beautiful, companion proceed without him, while he carefully cleared the way for Cora. It seemed the servants had been given prior instructions; instead of pushing into the thicket, they followed the column's path, a decision Heyward said was made by their wise guide, to minimize their trail in case the Canadian natives were lying in wait ahead of their army. For several minutes, the complexity of the route allowed no further conversation; then they broke free from the thick underbrush lining the highway and entered the dark, towering arches of the forest. Here their progress was less obstructed, and as soon as the guide noticed the women were able to manage their horses, he moved on at a pace between a trot and a walk, keeping the sure-footed and unique animals they rode at a fast but comfortable amble. The young man had turned to talk to the dark-eyed Cora when the distant noise of horses' hooves clattering over the uneven path behind him made him pull up his horse. Just as his companions pulled on their reins, the whole group came to a stop to figure out the unexpected interruption.

[1] In the state of Rhode Island there is a bay called Narragansett, so named after a powerful tribe of Indians, which formerly dwelt on its banks. Accident, or one of those unaccountable freaks which nature sometimes plays in the animal world, gave rise to a breed of horses which were once well known in America, and distinguished by their habit of pacing. Horses of this race were, and are still, in much request as saddle horses, on account of their hardiness and the ease of their movements. As they were also sure of foot, the Narragansetts were greatly sought for by females who were obliged to travel over the roots and holes in the “new countries.”

[1] In the state of Rhode Island, there’s a bay called Narragansett, named after a powerful tribe of Native Americans that once lived along its shores. Due to an accident or one of those strange occurrences that nature sometimes creates in the animal kingdom, a breed of horses emerged that was once well-known in America and recognized for their pacing style. Horses of this breed were, and still are, highly sought after as saddle horses because of their toughness and smooth movements. Since they were also sure-footed, the Narragansett horses were especially popular among women who had to navigate the rough terrain in the “new countries.”

In a few moments a colt was seen gliding, like a fallow deer, among the straight trunks of the pines; and, in another instant, the person of the ungainly man, described in the preceding chapter, came into view, with as much rapidity as he could excite his meager beast to endure without coming to an open rupture. Until now this personage had escaped the observation of the travelers. If he possessed the power to arrest any wandering eye when exhibiting the glories of his altitude on foot, his equestrian graces were still more likely to attract attention.

In a moment, a colt was seen moving gracefully, like a deer, among the straight trunks of the pines; and just as quickly, the awkward man described in the previous chapter appeared, urging his skinny horse to move as fast as it could without falling apart. Until now, the travelers hadn’t noticed him. If he could catch anyone’s eye while showing off his height on foot, his skills on horseback were even more likely to draw attention.

Notwithstanding a constant application of his one armed heel to the flanks of the mare, the most confirmed gait that he could establish was a Canterbury gallop with the hind legs, in which those more forward assisted for doubtful moments, though generally content to maintain a loping trot. Perhaps the rapidity of the changes from one of these paces to the other created an optical illusion, which might thus magnify the powers of the beast; for it is certain that Heyward, who possessed a true eye for the merits of a horse, was unable, with his utmost ingenuity, to decide by what sort of movement his pursuer worked his sinuous way on his footsteps with such persevering hardihood.

Even with his constant kick to the mare's sides, the fastest pace he could manage was a Canterbury gallop with her back legs, while the front ones occasionally joined in for brief moments, but generally stuck with a slow trot. Maybe the quick shifts between these paces created an optical illusion that made the horse seem more powerful; because it's clear that Heyward, who had a keen eye for a horse’s abilities, couldn’t figure out how his pursuer managed to trail him so persistently with such a winding movement, no matter how hard he tried.

The industry and movements of the rider were not less remarkable than those of the ridden. At each change in the evolutions of the latter, the former raised his tall person in the stirrups; producing, in this manner, by the undue elongation of his legs, such sudden growths and diminishings of the stature, as baffled every conjecture that might be made as to his dimensions. If to this be added the fact that, in consequence of the ex parte application of the spur, one side of the mare appeared to journey faster than the other; and that the aggrieved flank was resolutely indicated by unremitted flourishes of a bushy tail, we finish the picture of both horse and man.

The movements of the rider were just as impressive as those of the horse. With every shift in the horse's movements, the rider would lift his tall frame in the stirrups, making it seem like his legs were stretching too much, which created unexpected changes in his height that left everyone guessing about his true size. Adding to this, because the rider was using the spur on just one side, it looked like one side of the mare was moving faster than the other; the side that was getting the brunt of it was clearly shown by the constant swishing of her bushy tail. That completes the picture of both the horse and the rider.

The frown which had gathered around the handsome, open, and manly brow of Heyward, gradually relaxed, and his lips curled into a slight smile, as he regarded the stranger. Alice made no very powerful effort to control her merriment; and even the dark, thoughtful eye of Cora lighted with a humor that it would seem, the habit, rather than the nature, of its mistress repressed.

The frown on Heyward's handsome, open, and masculine brow slowly faded, and his lips turned up into a slight smile as he looked at the stranger. Alice didn't try too hard to stifle her laughter, and even Cora's dark, thoughtful eyes sparkled with a humor that seemed to be held back more by habit than by her true nature.

“Seek you any here?” demanded Heyward, when the other had arrived sufficiently nigh to abate his speed; “I trust you are no messenger of evil tidings?”

“Are you looking for someone here?” asked Heyward as the other got close enough to slow down; “I hope you’re not bringing bad news?”

“Even so,” replied the stranger, making diligent use of his triangular castor, to produce a circulation in the close air of the woods, and leaving his hearers in doubt to which of the young man’s questions he responded; when, however, he had cooled his face, and recovered his breath, he continued, “I hear you are riding to William Henry; as I am journeying thitherward myself, I concluded good company would seem consistent to the wishes of both parties.”

“Even so,” replied the stranger, making good use of his triangular hat to stir up the stagnant air in the woods, leaving his listeners unsure which of the young man’s questions he was answering; once he had cooled his face and caught his breath, he continued, “I hear you’re riding to William Henry; since I’m headed that way too, I thought it would be nice for both of us to travel together.”

“You appear to possess the privilege of a casting vote,” returned Heyward; “we are three, while you have consulted no one but yourself.”

“You seem to have the advantage of a casting vote,” Heyward replied; “there are three of us, and you haven’t talked to anyone but yourself.”

“Even so. The first point to be obtained is to know one’s own mind. Once sure of that, and where women are concerned it is not easy, the next is, to act up to the decision. I have endeavored to do both, and here I am.”

“Even so. The first thing to do is to understand your own mind. Once you're sure of that, and when it comes to women, it's not easy, the next step is to act on your decision. I've tried to do both, and here I am.”

“If you journey to the lake, you have mistaken your route,” said Heyward, haughtily; “the highway thither is at least half a mile behind you.”

“If you're heading to the lake, you've taken a wrong turn,” Heyward said arrogantly; “the road to get there is at least half a mile back.”

“Even so,” returned the stranger, nothing daunted by this cold reception; “I have tarried at ‘Edward’ a week, and I should be dumb not to have inquired the road I was to journey; and if dumb there would be an end to my calling.” After simpering in a small way, like one whose modesty prohibited a more open expression of his admiration of a witticism that was perfectly unintelligible to his hearers, he continued, “It is not prudent for any one of my profession to be too familiar with those he has to instruct; for which reason I follow not the line of the army; besides which, I conclude that a gentleman of your character has the best judgment in matters of wayfaring; I have, therefore, decided to join company, in order that the ride may be made agreeable, and partake of social communion.”

“Even so,” replied the stranger, unfazed by the chilly welcome. “I’ve been at ‘Edward’ for a week now, and I’d be foolish not to ask about the road I need to take; and if I were foolish, there would be no point in me being here.” After giving a slight smile, like someone whose shyness kept them from fully showing their appreciation for a joke that was completely lost on the others, he continued, “It’s not wise for someone in my line of work to get too close with those they’re teaching; that’s why I don’t follow the military route. Besides, I figure someone like you has great judgment when it comes to traveling; so I’ve decided to travel together to make the journey more enjoyable and share some company.”

“A most arbitrary, if not a hasty decision!” exclaimed Heyward, undecided whether to give vent to his growing anger, or to laugh in the other’s face. “But you speak of instruction, and of a profession; are you an adjunct to the provincial corps, as a master of the noble science of defense and offense; or, perhaps, you are one who draws lines and angles, under the pretense of expounding the mathematics?”

“A totally random, if not rushed decision!” Heyward exclaimed, unsure whether to express his growing anger or laugh in the other’s face. “But you talk about teaching and a profession; are you attached to the provincial forces as a master of the noble art of defense and attack? Or, maybe you just draw lines and angles while pretending to explain math?”

The stranger regarded his interrogator a moment in wonder; and then, losing every mark of self-satisfaction in an expression of solemn humility, he answered:

The stranger looked at his questioner for a moment in surprise; and then, dropping all signs of self-importance for a look of serious humility, he replied:

“Of offense, I hope there is none, to either party: of defense, I make none—by God’s good mercy, having committed no palpable sin since last entreating his pardoning grace. I understand not your allusions about lines and angles; and I leave expounding to those who have been called and set apart for that holy office. I lay claim to no higher gift than a small insight into the glorious art of petitioning and thanksgiving, as practiced in psalmody.”

“Regarding any offense, I hope there isn’t any from either side: as for defense, I don’t make one—thankfully, having committed no obvious sin since I last asked for forgiveness. I don’t understand your references to lines and angles; I’ll leave that explanation to those who are trained for that important work. I don’t claim any greater gift than a little understanding of the wonderful art of making requests and giving thanks, as it’s practiced in psalm singing.”

“The man is, most manifestly, a disciple of Apollo,” cried the amused Alice, “and I take him under my own especial protection. Nay, throw aside that frown, Heyward, and in pity to my longing ears, suffer him to journey in our train. Besides,” she added, in a low and hurried voice, casting a glance at the distant Cora, who slowly followed the footsteps of their silent, but sullen guide, “it may be a friend added to our strength, in time of need.”

“The man is clearly a follower of Apollo,” laughed Alice, “and I’m going to take him under my special protection. Come on, drop that frown, Heyward, and for the sake of my eager ears, let him travel with us. Besides,” she added in a low, rushed voice, glancing at the distant Cora, who was slowly keeping pace with their quiet but gloomy guide, “he might be an ally for us when we need it.”

“Think you, Alice, that I would trust those I love by this secret path, did I imagine such need could happen?”

“Do you really think, Alice, that I would put the people I care about in danger by taking this secret route, if I believed there was any possibility of it being necessary?”

“Nay, nay, I think not of it now; but this strange man amuses me; and if he ‘hath music in his soul’, let us not churlishly reject his company.” She pointed persuasively along the path with her riding whip, while their eyes met in a look which the young man lingered a moment to prolong; then, yielding to her gentle influence, he clapped his spurs into his charger, and in a few bounds was again at the side of Cora.

“Nah, I don’t think about that right now; but this strange guy is entertaining me; and if he ‘has music in his soul,’ let’s not rudely turn away his company.” She pointed encouragingly along the path with her riding whip, while their eyes met in a glance that the young man held a moment longer; then, giving in to her gentle persuasion, he kicked his spurs into his horse, and in a few jumps was back at Cora’s side.

“I am glad to encounter thee, friend,” continued the maiden, waving her hand to the stranger to proceed, as she urged her Narragansett to renew its amble. “Partial relatives have almost persuaded me that I am not entirely worthless in a duet myself; and we may enliven our wayfaring by indulging in our favorite pursuit. It might be of signal advantage to one, ignorant as I, to hear the opinions and experience of a master in the art.”

“I’m glad to see you, friend,” the young woman said, waving her hand at the stranger to keep walking while she encouraged her Narragansett to pick up the pace. “Some relatives have almost convinced me that I’m not completely terrible at singing duets myself; and we can make our journey more enjoyable by indulging in our favorite pastime. It could be really beneficial for someone like me, who knows so little, to hear the thoughts and experiences of a master in the art.”

“It is refreshing both to the spirits and to the body to indulge in psalmody, in befitting seasons,” returned the master of song, unhesitatingly complying with her intimation to follow; “and nothing would relieve the mind more than such a consoling communion. But four parts are altogether necessary to the perfection of melody. You have all the manifestations of a soft and rich treble; I can, by especial aid, carry a full tenor to the highest letter; but we lack counter and bass! Yon officer of the king, who hesitated to admit me to his company, might fill the latter, if one may judge from the intonations of his voice in common dialogue.”

“It’s refreshing for both the spirit and the body to enjoy singing at the right times,” the master of song said, eagerly agreeing to her suggestion to join her; “and nothing would soothe the mind more than such a comforting experience. But we need all four parts to make the music complete. You have the soft and rich high notes; I can, with some help, reach a strong tenor at the highest pitch; but we’re missing the counter and bass! That officer of the king, who was hesitant to let me join him, could fill the bass role, judging by how his voice sounds in regular conversation.”

“Judge not too rashly from hasty and deceptive appearances,” said the lady, smiling; “though Major Heyward can assume such deep notes on occasion, believe me, his natural tones are better fitted for a mellow tenor than the bass you heard.”

“Don’t judge too quickly based on misleading appearances,” the lady said with a smile; “even though Major Heyward can hit those deep notes sometimes, trust me, his natural voice is more suited for a smooth tenor than the bass you just heard.”

“Is he, then, much practiced in the art of psalmody?” demanded her simple companion.

“Is he, then, very skilled in singing psalms?” asked her straightforward friend.

Alice felt disposed to laugh, though she succeeded in suppressing her merriment, ere she answered:

Alice felt like laughing, but she managed to hold back her amusement before she replied:

“I apprehend that he is rather addicted to profane song. The chances of a soldier’s life are but little fitted for the encouragement of more sober inclinations.”

“I realize that he is pretty hooked on dirty songs. The nature of a soldier’s life doesn’t really support more serious interests.”

“Man’s voice is given to him, like his other talents, to be used, and not to be abused. None can say they have ever known me to neglect my gifts! I am thankful that, though my boyhood may be said to have been set apart, like the youth of the royal David, for the purposes of music, no syllable of rude verse has ever profaned my lips.”

“Man’s voice is a gift, just like his other talents, meant to be used, not misused. No one can say they’ve ever known me to ignore my gifts! I’m grateful that, even though my childhood could be considered dedicated, like that of young David the king, to music, I’ve never spoken a single rude word.”

“You have, then, limited your efforts to sacred song?”

“You’ve only focused your efforts on sacred song, then?”

“Even so. As the psalms of David exceed all other language, so does the psalmody that has been fitted to them by the divines and sages of the land, surpass all vain poetry. Happily, I may say that I utter nothing but the thoughts and the wishes of the King of Israel himself; for though the times may call for some slight changes, yet does this version which we use in the colonies of New England so much exceed all other versions, that, by its richness, its exactness, and its spiritual simplicity, it approacheth, as near as may be, to the great work of the inspired writer. I never abide in any place, sleeping or waking, without an example of this gifted work. ’Tis the six-and-twentieth edition, promulgated at Boston, Anno Domini 1744; and is entitled, ‘The Psalms, Hymns, and Spiritual Songs of the Old and New Testaments; faithfully translated into English Metre, for the Use, Edification, and Comfort of the Saints, in Public and Private, especially in New England’.”

“Even so. Just as the psalms of David are greater than all other language, the psalmody adapted to them by the divines and wise people of this land outshines all meaningless poetry. Fortunately, I can say that I express nothing but the thoughts and wishes of the King of Israel himself; for although the times may require some minor adjustments, this version we use in the New England colonies surpasses all other versions so significantly that, through its richness, precision, and spiritual simplicity, it comes as close as possible to the remarkable work of the inspired writer. I never stay anywhere, awake or asleep, without a copy of this exceptional work. It’s the twenty-sixth edition, published in Boston, in the year 1744; and it’s titled, ‘The Psalms, Hymns, and Spiritual Songs of the Old and New Testaments; faithfully translated into English Metre, for the Use, Edification, and Comfort of the Saints, in Public and Private, especially in New England’.”

During this eulogium on the rare production of his native poets, the stranger had drawn the book from his pocket, and fitting a pair of iron-rimmed spectacles to his nose, opened the volume with a care and veneration suited to its sacred purposes. Then, without circumlocution or apology, first pronounced the word “Standish,” and placing the unknown engine, already described, to his mouth, from which he drew a high, shrill sound, that was followed by an octave below, from his own voice, he commenced singing the following words, in full, sweet, and melodious tones, that set the music, the poetry, and even the uneasy motion of his ill-trained beast at defiance:

During his praise of the rare work by his hometown poets, the stranger took a book out of his pocket, adjusted a pair of iron-rimmed glasses on his face, and opened the book with a care and respect fitting for its sacred purpose. Then, without any lengthy explanations or excuses, he simply said the word “Standish” and brought the previously described instrument to his mouth. He produced a high, shrill sound, followed by a deeper octave from his own voice, and began to sing the following words in full, sweet, and melodic tones, completely disregarding the music, the poetry, and even the restless movements of his poorly trained horse:

“How good it is, O see,
    And how it pleaseth well,
Together e’en in unity,
    For brethren so to dwell.

It’s like the choice ointment,
    From the head to the beard did go;
Down Aaron’s head, that downward went
    His garment’s skirts unto.”

“How nice it is, oh see,
    And how pleasing it is,
Together in unity,
    For brothers to live together.

It’s like the best ointment,
    Flowing from the head to the beard;
Down Aaron’s head, it flowed down
    To the hems of his garments.”

The delivery of these skillful rhymes was accompanied, on the part of the stranger, by a regular rise and fall of his right hand, which terminated at the descent, by suffering the fingers to dwell a moment on the leaves of the little volume; and on the ascent, by such a flourish of the member as none but the initiated may ever hope to imitate. It would seem long practice had rendered this manual accompaniment necessary; for it did not cease until the preposition which the poet had selected for the close of his verse had been duly delivered like a word of two syllables.

The delivery of these clever rhymes was accompanied by the stranger's right hand moving rhythmically up and down, finishing each descent by letting his fingers linger on the pages of the little book, and on the way up with a flourish that only the trained could hope to imitate. It looked like long practice had made this hand movement essential; it didn't stop until the preposition the poet chose to end his verse was clearly spoken, like a two-syllable word.

Such an innovation on the silence and retirement of the forest could not fail to enlist the ears of those who journeyed at so short a distance in advance. The Indian muttered a few words in broken English to Heyward, who, in his turn, spoke to the stranger; at once interrupting, and, for the time, closing his musical efforts.

Such a change in the quiet and solitude of the forest couldn’t help but catch the attention of those who were traveling just ahead. The Indian muttered a few words in broken English to Heyward, who then spoke to the stranger, stopping his music for the moment.

“Though we are not in danger, common prudence would teach us to journey through this wilderness in as quiet a manner as possible. You will then, pardon me, Alice, should I diminish your enjoyments, by requesting this gentleman to postpone his chant until a safer opportunity.”

“Even though we’re not in danger, common sense suggests we move through this wilderness as quietly as we can. So, if you don’t mind, Alice, I may have to ask this gentleman to hold off on his singing until there’s a safer moment.”

“You will diminish them, indeed,” returned the arch girl; “for never did I hear a more unworthy conjunction of execution and language than that to which I have been listening; and I was far gone in a learned inquiry into the causes of such an unfitness between sound and sense, when you broke the charm of my musings by that bass of yours, Duncan!”

“You will definitely make them less impressive,” replied the clever girl; “because I’ve never heard a more unworthy mix of performance and words than what I’ve just been listening to; I was really deep into a thoughtful examination of why there’s such an awkward mismatch between sound and meaning, when you interrupted my thoughts with that bass of yours, Duncan!”

“I know not what you call my bass,” said Heyward, piqued at her remark, “but I know that your safety, and that of Cora, is far dearer to me than could be any orchestra of Handel’s music.” He paused and turned his head quickly toward a thicket, and then bent his eyes suspiciously on their guide, who continued his steady pace, in undisturbed gravity. The young man smiled to himself, for he believed he had mistaken some shining berry of the woods for the glistening eyeballs of a prowling savage, and he rode forward, continuing the conversation which had been interrupted by the passing thought.

“I don’t know what you call my music,” said Heyward, annoyed by her comment, “but I care way more about your safety and Cora’s than I ever could about any orchestra playing Handel.” He paused and quickly turned his head toward some bushes, then looked suspiciously at their guide, who kept moving forward with steady composure. The young man smiled to himself, thinking he had confused a shiny berry in the woods for the gleaming eyes of a lurking savage, and he rode ahead, picking up the conversation that had been interrupted by his wandering thoughts.

Major Heyward was mistaken only in suffering his youthful and generous pride to suppress his active watchfulness. The cavalcade had not long passed, before the branches of the bushes that formed the thicket were cautiously moved asunder, and a human visage, as fiercely wild as savage art and unbridled passions could make it, peered out on the retiring footsteps of the travelers. A gleam of exultation shot across the darkly-painted lineaments of the inhabitant of the forest, as he traced the route of his intended victims, who rode unconsciously onward, the light and graceful forms of the females waving among the trees, in the curvatures of their path, followed at each bend by the manly figure of Heyward, until, finally, the shapeless person of the singing master was concealed behind the numberless trunks of trees, that rose, in dark lines, in the intermediate space.

Major Heyward was wrong only in letting his youthful pride get in the way of staying alert. Not long after the group passed, the branches of the bushes in the thicket were carefully pushed aside, revealing a face that looked wild and fierce, as if shaped by savage instincts and uncontrolled emotions, peering out at the travelers as they moved away. A spark of triumph crossed the dark features of the forest dweller as he watched his intended targets, who rode on unaware. The light and graceful forms of the women swayed among the trees as they turned along the path, followed at each bend by Heyward's strong figure, until finally, the shapeless form of the singing master disappeared behind the countless tree trunks that stood in dark lines in the space between.

CHAPTER III.

“Before these fields were shorn and till’d,
Full to the brim our rivers flow’d;
The melody of waters fill’d
The fresh and boundless wood;
And torrents dash’d, and rivulets play’d,
And fountains spouted in the shade.”—Bryant

“Before these fields were cleared and cultivated,
Our rivers were overflowing;
The sound of water filled
The fresh and endless woods;
And torrents rushed, and streams danced,
And fountains sprayed in the shade.” —Bryant

Leaving the unsuspecting Heyward and his confiding companions to penetrate still deeper into a forest that contained such treacherous inmates, we must use an author’s privilege, and shift the scene a few miles to the westward of the place where we have last seen them.

Leaving the unaware Heyward and his trusting companions to venture further into a forest filled with hidden dangers, we’ll take a moment to shift the scene a few miles west of where we last saw them.

On that day, two men were lingering on the banks of a small but rapid stream, within an hour’s journey of the encampment of Webb, like those who awaited the appearance of an absent person, or the approach of some expected event. The vast canopy of woods spread itself to the margin of the river, overhanging the water, and shadowing its dark current with a deeper hue. The rays of the sun were beginning to grow less fierce, and the intense heat of the day was lessened, as the cooler vapors of the springs and fountains rose above their leafy beds, and rested in the atmosphere. Still that breathing silence, which marks the drowsy sultriness of an American landscape in July, pervaded the secluded spot, interrupted only by the low voices of the men, the occasional and lazy tap of a woodpecker, the discordant cry of some gaudy jay, or a swelling on the ear, from the dull roar of a distant waterfall. These feeble and broken sounds were, however, too familiar to the foresters to draw their attention from the more interesting matter of their dialogue. While one of these loiterers showed the red skin and wild accouterments of a native of the woods, the other exhibited, through the mask of his rude and nearly savage equipments, the brighter, though sun-burned and long-faced complexion of one who might claim descent from a European parentage. The former was seated on the end of a mossy log, in a posture that permitted him to heighten the effect of his earnest language, by the calm but expressive gestures of an Indian engaged in debate. His body, which was nearly naked, presented a terrific emblem of death, drawn in intermingled colors of white and black. His closely-shaved head, on which no other hair than the well-known and chivalrous scalping tuft[1] was preserved, was without ornament of any kind, with the exception of a solitary eagle’s plume, that crossed his crown, and depended over the left shoulder. A tomahawk and scalping knife, of English manufacture, were in his girdle; while a short military rifle, of that sort with which the policy of the whites armed their savage allies, lay carelessly across his bare and sinewy knee. The expanded chest, full formed limbs, and grave countenance of this warrior, would denote that he had reached the vigor of his days, though no symptoms of decay appeared to have yet weakened his manhood.

On that day, two men were hanging out by the banks of a small but fast-flowing stream, about an hour's walk from Webb's camp, like they were waiting for someone to show up or for something expected to happen. The vast stretch of woods extended to the river's edge, hanging over the water and darkening its current. The sun's rays were becoming less intense, and the heat of the day was subsiding as cooler vapors from the springs and fountains rose from their leafy beds into the air. Still, that heavy silence typical of a hot July day in America filled the secluded spot, interrupted only by the soft voices of the men, the occasional lazy tap of a woodpecker, the harsh cry of a colorful jay, or the distant roar of a waterfall. However, these faint sounds were too familiar to the foresters to distract them from the more engaging conversation they were having. One of the loiterers had the red skin and wild gear of a native, while the other, beneath his rough and nearly savage attire, revealed the sunburned and long-faced complexion of someone who might have European ancestry. The former sat on the end of a mossy log, in a position that allowed him to emphasize his passionate speech with calm but expressive gestures typical of an Indian in debate. His nearly naked body displayed a fearsome emblem of death in mixed colors of white and black. His closely-shaved head had no other hair except for the known and brave scalping tuft[1], and he wore no ornaments except for a single eagle's plume that crossed his crown and hung over his left shoulder. A tomahawk and scalping knife, made in England, were tucked into his belt, while a short military rifle, the kind used by whites to arm their savage allies, rested carelessly across his bare, muscular knee. The warrior’s broad chest, well-formed limbs, and serious expression indicated that he was in the prime of his life, though he showed no signs of decline in his manhood.

[1] The North American warrior caused the hair to be plucked from his whole body; a small tuft was left on the crown of his head, in order that his enemy might avail himself of it, in wrenching off the scalp in the event of his fall. The scalp was the only admissible trophy of victory. Thus, it was deemed more important to obtain the scalp than to kill the man. Some tribes lay great stress on the honor of striking a dead body. These practices have nearly disappeared among the Indians of the Atlantic states.

[1] The North American warrior had all the hair removed from his body, except for a small tuft left on the top of his head, so that if he were killed, his enemy could grab it while taking his scalp. The scalp was the only acceptable trophy of victory. It was considered more important to take the scalp than to kill the person. Some tribes placed a high value on the honor of hitting a dead body. These practices have mostly disappeared among the Native Americans of the Atlantic states.

The frame of the white man, judging by such parts as were not concealed by his clothes, was like that of one who had known hardships and exertion from his earliest youth. His person, though muscular, was rather attenuated than full; but every nerve and muscle appeared strung and indurated by unremitted exposure and toil. He wore a hunting shirt of forest-green, fringed with faded yellow[2], and a summer cap of skins which had been shorn of their fur. He also bore a knife in a girdle of wampum, like that which confined the scanty garments of the Indian, but no tomahawk. His moccasins were ornamented after the gay fashion of the natives, while the only part of his under dress which appeared below the hunting-frock was a pair of buckskin leggings, that laced at the sides, and which were gartered above the knees, with the sinews of a deer. A pouch and horn completed his personal accouterments, though a rifle of great length[3], which the theory of the more ingenious whites had taught them was the most dangerous of all firearms, leaned against a neighboring sapling. The eye of the hunter, or scout, whichever he might be, was small, quick, keen, and restless, roving while he spoke, on every side of him, as if in quest of game, or distrusting the sudden approach of some lurking enemy. Notwithstanding the symptoms of habitual suspicion, his countenance was not only without guile, but at the moment at which he is introduced, it was charged with an expression of sturdy honesty.

The build of the white man, based on the visible parts of his body that weren't hidden by his clothes, resembled someone who had faced challenges and hard work since childhood. His physique, while muscular, was lean rather than full; yet every nerve and muscle seemed tight and hardened from constant exposure and labor. He wore a forest-green hunting shirt, fringed with faded yellow[2], and a summer cap made of fur-less skins. He also had a knife in a wampum belt, similar to the one an Indian would wear to hold up his minimal clothing, but he didn’t carry a tomahawk. His moccasins were decorated in the colorful style of the natives, and the only visible part of his undergarments beneath the hunting-frock was a pair of buckskin leggings, laced at the sides and tied above the knees with deer sinews. A pouch and horn completed his gear, although a long rifle[3], which some clever white folks claimed was the most dangerous type of firearm, leaned against a nearby sapling. The hunter's or scout’s eye, depending on his role, was small, quick, sharp, and restless, darting around while he spoke as if searching for game or wary of a sudden attack from a hidden threat. Despite the signs of constant vigilance, his face not only lacked deceit but, at the moment of his introduction, radiated a strong sense of honesty.

[2] The hunting-shirt is a picturesque smock-frock, being shorter, and ornamented with fringes and tassels. The colors are intended to imitate the hues of the wood, with a view to concealment. Many corps of American riflemen have been thus attired, and the dress is one of the most striking of modern times. The hunting-shirt is frequently white.

[2] The hunting shirt is a stylish short coat, decorated with fringes and tassels. The colors are meant to blend in with the forest, aiming for camouflage. Many groups of American riflemen have worn this outfit, and it stands out as one of the most notable styles of today. The hunting shirt is often white.

[3] The rifle of the army is short; that of the hunter is always long.

[3] The army's rifle is short, while the hunter's is always long.

“Even your traditions make the case in my favor, Chingachgook,” he said, speaking in the tongue which was known to all the natives who formerly inhabited the country between the Hudson and the Potomac, and of which we shall give a free translation for the benefit of the reader; endeavoring, at the same time, to preserve some of the peculiarities, both of the individual and of the language. “Your fathers came from the setting sun, crossed the big river[4], fought the people of the country, and took the land; and mine came from the red sky of the morning, over the salt lake, and did their work much after the fashion that had been set them by yours; then let God judge the matter between us, and friends spare their words!”

“Even your traditions support my case, Chingachgook,” he said, using the language known to all the natives who once lived between the Hudson and the Potomac, which we will translate freely for the reader’s benefit, while trying to keep some of the unique features of both the speaker and the language. “Your ancestors came from the west, crossed the big river[4], battled the local people, and took the land; mine came from the red sky of the morning, over the salt lake, and did their work much in the same way yours did; so let God decide between us, and friends hold their tongues!”

[4] The Mississippi. The scout alludes to a tradition which is very popular among the tribes of the Atlantic states. Evidence of their Asiatic origin is deduced from the circumstances, though great uncertainty hangs over the whole history of the Indians.

[4] The Mississippi. The scout references a tradition that is quite popular among the tribes of the Atlantic states. Evidence of their Asian origin is inferred from the circumstances, although there is a lot of uncertainty surrounding the entire history of the Native Americans.

“My fathers fought with the naked red man!” returned the Indian, sternly, in the same language. “Is there no difference, Hawkeye, between the stone-headed arrow of the warrior, and the leaden bullet with which you kill?”

“My fathers fought with the bare-skinned red man!” the Indian replied sternly in the same language. “Is there really no difference, Hawkeye, between the stone-headed arrow of the warrior and the lead bullet with which you kill?”

“There is reason in an Indian, though nature has made him with a red skin!” said the white man, shaking his head like one on whom such an appeal to his justice was not thrown away. For a moment he appeared to be conscious of having the worst of the argument, then, rallying again, he answered the objection of his antagonist in the best manner his limited information would allow:

“There’s logic in an Indian, even if nature has given him a red skin!” said the white man, shaking his head as if he was someone who wouldn’t disregard such an appeal to his sense of justice. For a moment, he seemed aware that he was losing the argument, but then, regaining his composure, he responded to his opponent’s objection in the best way his limited knowledge allowed:

“I am no scholar, and I care not who knows it; but, judging from what I have seen, at deer chases and squirrel hunts, of the sparks below, I should think a rifle in the hands of their grandfathers was not so dangerous as a hickory bow and a good flint-head might be, if drawn with Indian judgment, and sent by an Indian eye.”

“I’m no scholar, and I don’t care who knows it; but, based on what I’ve seen at deer chases and squirrel hunts with the folks down below, I’d say a rifle in the hands of their grandfathers wasn’t as dangerous as a hickory bow with a good flint tip, if it was used with Indian skill and aimed by an Indian eye.”

“You have the story told by your fathers,” returned the other, coldly waving his hand. “What say your old men? Do they tell the young warriors that the pale faces met the red men, painted for war and armed with the stone hatchet and wooden gun?”

“You have the story passed down from your fathers,” the other replied, dismissively waving his hand. “What do your elders say? Do they tell the young warriors that the white men faced the Native Americans, painted for battle and equipped with the stone axe and wooden gun?”

“I am not a prejudiced man, nor one who vaunts himself on his natural privileges, though the worst enemy I have on earth, and he is an Iroquois, daren’t deny that I am genuine white,” the scout replied, surveying, with secret satisfaction, the faded color of his bony and sinewy hand, “and I am willing to own that my people have many ways, of which, as an honest man, I can’t approve. It is one of their customs to write in books what they have done and seen, instead of telling them in their villages, where the lie can be given to the face of a cowardly boaster, and the brave soldier can call on his comrades to witness for the truth of his words. In consequence of this bad fashion, a man, who is too conscientious to misspend his days among the women, in learning the names of black marks, may never hear of the deeds of his fathers, nor feel a pride in striving to outdo them. For myself, I conclude the Bumppos could shoot, for I have a natural turn with a rifle, which must have been handed down from generation to generation, as, our holy commandments tell us, all good and evil gifts are bestowed; though I should be loath to answer for other people in such a matter. But every story has its two sides; so I ask you, Chingachgook, what passed, according to the traditions of the red men, when our fathers first met?”

“I’m not a prejudiced guy, nor do I flaunt my natural privileges, even though my worst enemy on this earth, who happens to be an Iroquois, can’t deny that I’m truly white,” the scout replied, looking with secret satisfaction at the faded color of his bony and sinewy hand. “I admit my people have some customs that I honestly can’t approve of. One of their practices is to write down what they’ve done and seen in books instead of sharing it in their villages, where a cowardly braggart could be confronted with the truth, and a brave soldier could call on his comrades to back up his words. Because of this bad habit, a man who is too honest to waste his days among the women, learning names of meaningless marks, might never hear about the achievements of his ancestors or feel pride in trying to surpass them. As for me, I believe the Bumppos could shoot well, since I have a natural skill with a rifle, which must have been passed down through generations, just as our sacred teachings tell us that all good and evil gifts are given; though I wouldn't want to speak for others on this. But every story has two sides, so I ask you, Chingachgook, what happened, according to the traditions of the red men, when our ancestors first met?”

A silence of a minute succeeded, during which the Indian sat mute; then, full of the dignity of his office, he commenced his brief tale, with a solemnity that served to heighten its appearance of truth.

A minute of silence followed, during which the Indian sat quietly; then, full of the dignity of his position, he began his short story with a seriousness that made it seem even more believable.

“Listen, Hawkeye, and your ear shall drink no lie. ’Tis what my fathers have said, and what the Mohicans have done.” He hesitated a single instant, and bending a cautious glance toward his companion, he continued, in a manner that was divided between interrogation and assertion. “Does not this stream at our feet run toward the summer, until its waters grow salt, and the current flows upward?”

“Listen, Hawkeye, and you can trust what I say. It’s what my ancestors have told me and what the Mohicans have proven.” He paused for a moment, then glanced cautiously at his companion and continued, his tone a mix of questioning and certainty. “Doesn’t this stream at our feet flow toward the summer until its waters become salty and the current goes upstream?”

“It can’t be denied that your traditions tell you true in both these matters,” said the white man; “for I have been there, and have seen them, though why water, which is so sweet in the shade, should become bitter in the sun, is an alteration for which I have never been able to account.”

“It’s clear that your traditions have a basis in truth regarding both of these things,” said the white man; “because I’ve been there and witnessed it myself, though I’ve never understood why water, which tastes so sweet in the shade, becomes bitter in the sun.”

“And the current!” demanded the Indian, who expected his reply with that sort of interest that a man feels in the confirmation of testimony, at which he marvels even while he respects it; “the fathers of Chingachgook have not lied!”

“And the current!” demanded the Indian, who awaited his reply with that kind of interest that one feels in the validation of evidence, marveling at it even while respecting it; “the ancestors of Chingachgook have not lied!”

“The holy Bible is not more true, and that is the truest thing in nature. They call this up-stream current the tide, which is a thing soon explained, and clear enough. Six hours the waters run in, and six hours they run out, and the reason is this: when there is higher water in the sea than in the river, they run in until the river gets to be highest, and then it runs out again.”

“The holy Bible isn’t any more true than the truest thing in nature. They call this current going upstream the tide, which is easy to explain and pretty straightforward. For six hours, the water flows in, and for six hours, it flows out, and the reason is this: when the water level in the sea is higher than in the river, it flows in until the river reaches its highest point, and then it flows out again.”

“The waters in the woods, and on the great lakes, run downward until they lie like my hand,” said the Indian, stretching the limb horizontally before him, “and then they run no more.”

“The waters in the woods and on the great lakes flow downward until they lie like my hand,” said the Indian, extending his arm straight out in front of him, “and then they don’t flow anymore.”

“No honest man will deny it,” said the scout, a little nettled at the implied distrust of his explanation of the mystery of the tides; “and I grant that it is true on the small scale, and where the land is level. But everything depends on what scale you look at things. Now, on the small scale, the ’arth is level; but on the large scale it is round. In this manner, pools and ponds, and even the great fresh-water lakes, may be stagnant, as you and I both know they are, having seen them; but when you come to spread water over a great tract, like the sea, where the earth is round, how in reason can the water be quiet? You might as well expect the river to lie still on the brink of those black rocks a mile above us, though your own ears tell you that it is tumbling over them at this very moment.”

“No honest person would argue with that,” said the scout, a bit annoyed by the implied skepticism about his explanation of the tides' mystery. “I admit it’s true on a small scale, where the land is flat. But it all depends on the scale you’re looking at. On a small scale, the earth seems flat; but on a larger scale, it’s round. In this way, puddles and ponds, and even the large freshwater lakes can be stagnant, which we both know from seeing them. But when you spread water across a vast area, like the ocean, where the earth is round, how can you expect the water to be calm? It’s like expecting the river to be still on the edge of those black rocks a mile above us, even though you can hear it rushing over them right now.”

If unsatisfied by the philosophy of his companion, the Indian was far too dignified to betray his unbelief. He listened like one who was convinced, and resumed his narrative in his former solemn manner.

If he was unhappy with his companion's philosophy, the Indian was too dignified to show his disbelief. He listened as if he were convinced and continued his story in the same serious manner as before.

“We came from the place where the sun is hid at night, over great plains where the buffaloes live, until we reached the big river. There we fought the Alligewi, till the ground was red with their blood. From the banks of the big river to the shores of the salt lake, there was none to meet us. The Maquas followed at a distance. We said the country should be ours from the place where the water runs up no longer on this stream, to a river twenty sun’s journey toward the summer. We drove the Maquas into the woods with the bears. They only tasted salt at the licks; they drew no fish from the great lake; we threw them the bones.”

“We came from the place where the sun is hidden at night, across vast plains where the buffalo roam, until we reached the big river. There we fought the Alligewi until the ground was soaked with their blood. From the banks of the big river to the shores of the salt lake, no one stood in our way. The Maquas trailed behind us. We claimed the land should be ours from the point where the water no longer flows upstream on this stream, to a river twenty sun journeys toward the summer. We forced the Maquas into the woods with the bears. They only got a taste of salt at the licks; they didn’t catch any fish from the great lake; we threw them the bones.”

“All this I have heard and believe,” said the white man, observing that the Indian paused; “but it was long before the English came into the country.”

“All of this I’ve heard and I believe,” said the white man, noticing that the Indian hesitated; “but it was a long time before the English arrived in the country.”

“A pine grew then where this chestnut now stands. The first pale faces who came among us spoke no English. They came in a large canoe, when my fathers had buried the tomahawk with the red men around them. Then, Hawkeye,” he continued, betraying his deep emotion, only by permitting his voice to fall to those low, guttural tones, which render his language, as spoken at times, so very musical; “then, Hawkeye, we were one people, and we were happy. The salt lake gave us its fish, the wood its deer, and the air its birds. We took wives who bore us children; we worshipped the Great Spirit; and we kept the Maquas beyond the sound of our songs of triumph.”

"A pine tree grew here where this chestnut stands now. The first white people who came to us didn't speak any English. They arrived in a big canoe, just as my ancestors had buried the tomahawk with the Native Americans around them. Then, Hawkeye,” he continued, showing his deep emotion by letting his voice drop to those low, guttural tones that make his speech sound so melodic at times; “then, Hawkeye, we were one people, and we were happy. The salt lake provided us with fish, the woods gave us deer, and the air brought us birds. We took wives who bore us children; we worshipped the Great Spirit; and we kept the Maquas far from the sound of our songs of victory.”

“Know you anything of your own family at that time?” demanded the white. “But you are just a man, for an Indian; and as I suppose you hold their gifts, your fathers must have been brave warriors, and wise men at the council-fire.”

“Do you know anything about your family from that time?” asked the white man. “But you’re just a man, for an Indian; and since I assume you have their gifts, your fathers must have been brave warriors and wise men at the council fire.”

“My tribe is the grandfather of nations, but I am an unmixed man. The blood of chiefs is in my veins, where it must stay forever. The Dutch landed, and gave my people the fire-water; they drank until the heavens and the earth seemed to meet, and they foolishly thought they had found the Great Spirit. Then they parted with their land. Foot by foot, they were driven back from the shores, until I, that am a chief and a Sagamore, have never seen the sun shine but through the trees, and have never visited the graves of my fathers.”

“My tribe is the ancestor of nations, but I am a pure man. The blood of leaders flows in my veins, where it will remain forever. The Dutch arrived and offered my people alcohol; they drank until it felt like the heavens and the earth were one, and they naively thought they had discovered the Great Spirit. Then they gave away their land. Inch by inch, they were pushed back from the shores, until I, as a chief and a Sagamore, have never seen the sun shine except through the trees, and have never been to the graves of my ancestors.”

“Graves bring solemn feelings over the mind,” returned the scout, a good deal touched at the calm suffering of his companion; “and they often aid a man in his good intentions; though, for myself, I expect to leave my own bones unburied, to bleach in the woods, or to be torn asunder by the wolves. But where are to be found those of your race who came to their kin in the Delaware country, so many summers since?”

“Graves bring serious feelings to mind,” replied the scout, quite moved by the quiet pain of his companion; “and they often help a person with their good intentions; though, for me, I expect to leave my own bones unburied, to decay in the woods, or to be ripped apart by wolves. But where can you find those of your people who came to their relatives in the Delaware country so many summers ago?”

“Where are the blossoms of those summers!—fallen, one by one; so all of my family departed, each in his turn, to the land of spirits. I am on the hilltop and must go down into the valley; and when Uncas follows in my footsteps there will no longer be any of the blood of the Sagamores, for my boy is the last of the Mohicans.”

“Where are the blossoms of those summers?—fallen, one by one; just like my family, each in their turn, has gone to the land of spirits. I am on the hilltop and must descend into the valley; and when Uncas follows in my footsteps, there will be no more of the blood of the Sagamores, for my boy is the last of the Mohicans.”

“Uncas is here,” said another voice, in the same soft, guttural tones, near his elbow; “who speaks to Uncas?”

“Uncas is here,” said another voice, in the same soft, guttural tones, close to his elbow; “who's talking to Uncas?”

The white man loosened his knife in his leathern sheath, and made an involuntary movement of the hand toward his rifle, at this sudden interruption; but the Indian sat composed, and without turning his head at the unexpected sounds.

The white man loosened his knife in its leather sheath and instinctively reached for his rifle at the sudden interruption; however, the Indian remained calm, not turning his head at the unexpected noise.

At the next instant, a youthful warrior passed between them, with a noiseless step, and seated himself on the bank of the rapid stream. No exclamation of surprise escaped the father, nor was any question asked, or reply given, for several minutes; each appearing to await the moment when he might speak, without betraying womanish curiosity or childish impatience. The white man seemed to take counsel from their customs, and, relinquishing his grasp of the rifle, he also remained silent and reserved. At length Chingachgook turned his eyes slowly toward his son, and demanded:

At that moment, a young warrior walked silently between them and sat down on the riverbank. The father didn’t express any surprise, nor did he ask questions or offer answers for several minutes; both seemed to be waiting for the right moment to speak without showing any unnecessary curiosity or impatience. The white man appeared to respect their customs as well, letting go of his rifle and remaining quiet and composed. Finally, Chingachgook turned his gaze slowly toward his son and asked:

“Do the Maquas dare to leave the print of their moccasins in these woods?”

“Do the Maquas dare to leave the marks of their moccasins in these woods?”

“I have been on their trail,” replied the young Indian, “and know that they number as many as the fingers of my two hands; but they lie hid like cowards.”

“I've been tracking them,” replied the young Indian, “and I know there are as many of them as the fingers on my two hands; but they’re hiding like cowards.”

“The thieves are outlying for scalps and plunder,” said the white man, whom we shall call Hawkeye, after the manner of his companions. “That busy Frenchman, Montcalm, will send his spies into our very camp, but he will know what road we travel!”

“The thieves are hunting for scalps and loot,” said the white man, whom we’ll call Hawkeye, like his companions do. “That active Frenchman, Montcalm, will send his spies right into our camp, but he’ll know what path we take!”

“’Tis enough,” returned the father, glancing his eye toward the setting sun; “they shall be driven like deer from their bushes. Hawkeye, let us eat to-night, and show the Maquas that we are men to-morrow.”

“That's enough,” said the father, looking at the setting sun. “They'll be driven out like deer from their bushes. Hawkeye, let’s eat tonight and show the Maquas that we’re men tomorrow.”

“I am as ready to do the one as the other; but to fight the Iroquois ’tis necessary to find the skulkers; and to eat, ’tis necessary to get the game—talk of the devil and he will come; there is a pair of the biggest antlers I have seen this season, moving the bushes below the hill! Now, Uncas,” he continued, in a half whisper, and laughing with a kind of inward sound, like one who had learned to be watchful, “I will bet my charger three times full of powder, against a foot of wampum, that I take him atwixt the eyes, and nearer to the right than to the left.”

“I’m just as ready to do one as the other; but to fight the Iroquois, we need to find those hiding out; and to eat, we have to get the game—speak of the devil and he will show up; there’s a pair of the biggest antlers I’ve seen this season moving through the bushes below the hill! Now, Uncas,” he continued in a half whisper, laughing quietly, like someone who has learned to be cautious, “I’ll bet my horse three full bags of powder against a foot of wampum that I’ll hit him right between the eyes, and closer to the right than to the left.”

“It cannot be!” said the young Indian, springing to his feet with youthful eagerness; “all but the tips of his horns are hid!”

“It can't be!” said the young Indian, jumping to his feet with youthful excitement; “only the tips of his horns are showing!”

“He’s a boy!” said the white man, shaking his head while he spoke, and addressing the father. “Does he think when a hunter sees a part of the creature’, he can’t tell where the rest of him should be!”

“He's a boy!” said the white man, shaking his head as he spoke to the father. “Does he think that when a hunter sees part of the creature, he can’t figure out where the rest of it should be!”

Adjusting his rifle, he was about to make an exhibition of that skill on which he so much valued himself, when the warrior struck up the piece with his hand, saying:

Adjusting his rifle, he was about to show off the skill he valued so much when the warrior hit the piece with his hand, saying:

“Hawkeye! will you fight the Maquas?”

“Hawkeye! Will you fight the Maquas?”

“These Indians know the nature of the woods, as it might be by instinct!” returned the scout, dropping his rifle, and turning away like a man who was convinced of his error. “I must leave the buck to your arrow, Uncas, or we may kill a deer for them thieves, the Iroquois, to eat.”

“These Indians understand the woods, probably by instinct!” replied the scout, putting down his rifle and turning away like someone who realized he was wrong. “I have to leave the deer for your shot, Uncas, or we might end up killing a deer for those thieves, the Iroquois, to eat.”

The instant the father seconded this intimation by an expressive gesture of the hand, Uncas threw himself on the ground, and approached the animal with wary movements. When within a few yards of the cover, he fitted an arrow to his bow with the utmost care, while the antlers moved, as if their owner snuffed an enemy in the tainted air. In another moment the twang of the cord was heard, a white streak was seen glancing into the bushes, and the wounded buck plunged from the cover, to the very feet of his hidden enemy. Avoiding the horns of the infuriated animal, Uncas darted to his side, and passed his knife across the throat, when bounding to the edge of the river it fell, dyeing the waters with its blood.

The moment the father confirmed this idea with a hand gesture, Uncas dropped to the ground and crept towards the animal cautiously. When he was just a few yards away from the brush, he carefully fitted an arrow onto his bow while the buck's antlers shifted, as if the creature sensed an enemy in the air. In an instant, the twang of the bowstring echoed, a white streak darted into the bushes, and the wounded buck leaped out of the cover, collapsing right at Uncas's feet. Dodging the horns of the enraged animal, Uncas sprinted to its side and swiftly slashed its throat, causing the buck to leap towards the river’s edge, staining the water with its blood.

[Illustration]

“’Twas done with Indian skill,” said the scout laughing inwardly, but with vast satisfaction; “and ’twas a pretty sight to behold! Though an arrow is a near shot, and needs a knife to finish the work.”

“It's done with Indian skill,” the scout said, laughing inside but feeling quite satisfied; “and it was a beautiful sight to see! Even though an arrow is close, it still needs a knife to complete the job.”

“Hugh!” ejaculated his companion, turning quickly, like a hound who scented game.

“Hugh!” his companion exclaimed, turning quickly, like a hound that smelled prey.

“By the Lord, there is a drove of them!” exclaimed the scout, whose eyes began to glisten with the ardor of his usual occupation; “if they come within range of a bullet I will drop one, though the whole Six Nations should be lurking within sound! What do you hear, Chingachgook? for to my ears the woods are dumb.”

“By God, there are a ton of them!” shouted the scout, his eyes lighting up with the excitement of his usual work; “if they come within shooting range, I’ll take one down, even if the whole Six Nations are hiding nearby! What do you hear, Chingachgook? Because to me, the woods are silent.”

“There is but one deer, and he is dead,” said the Indian, bending his body till his ear nearly touched the earth. “I hear the sounds of feet!”

“There’s only one deer, and he’s dead,” said the Indian, bending down until his ear was almost touching the ground. “I hear footsteps!”

“Perhaps the wolves have driven the buck to shelter, and are following on his trail.”

“Maybe the wolves have chased the buck into hiding and are following his tracks.”

“No. The horses of white men are coming!” returned the other, raising himself with dignity, and resuming his seat on the log with his former composure. “Hawkeye, they are your brothers; speak to them.”

“No. The horses of white people are coming!” replied the other, lifting himself up with dignity and sitting back down on the log with his earlier calmness. “Hawkeye, they are your brothers; talk to them.”

“That I will, and in English that the king needn’t be ashamed to answer,” returned the hunter, speaking in the language of which he boasted; “but I see nothing, nor do I hear the sounds of man or beast; ’tis strange that an Indian should understand white sounds better than a man who, his very enemies will own, has no cross in his blood, although he may have lived with the red skins long enough to be suspected! Ha! there goes something like the cracking of a dry stick, too—now I hear the bushes move—yes, yes, there is a trampling that I mistook for the falls—and—but here they come themselves; God keep them from the Iroquois!”

“I will, and in English that the king won’t be embarrassed to answer,” said the hunter, speaking in the language he bragged about; “but I see nothing, nor do I hear the sounds of people or animals; it’s strange that an Indian understands white sounds better than a man who, even his enemies would agree, doesn't have any mixed heritage, even though he might have lived with the natives long enough to raise suspicion! Ha! there’s something that sounds like a dry stick breaking—now I hear the bushes moving—yes, yes, there’s a sound I mistook for the waterfalls—and—but here they come themselves; God protect them from the Iroquois!”

CHAPTER IV.

“Well go thy way: thou shalt not from this grove
Till I torment thee for this injury.”—Midsummer Night’s Dream.

“Well, go on your way: you won’t leave this grove
Until I make you suffer for this offense.”—Midsummer Night’s Dream.

The words were still in the mouth of the scout, when the leader of the party, whose approaching footsteps had caught the vigilant ear of the Indian, came openly into view. A beaten path, such as those made by the periodical passage of the deer, wound through a little glen at no great distance, and struck the river at the point where the white man and his red companions had posted themselves. Along this track the travelers, who had produced a surprise so unusual in the depths of the forest, advanced slowly toward the hunter, who was in front of his associates, in readiness to receive them.

The words were still in the scout's mouth when the leader of the group, whose approaching footsteps had caught the Indian's attentive ear, came into view. A worn path, like those created by the regular passage of deer, wound through a small glen not far away and led to the river at the spot where the white man and his Native companions had set up. Along this path, the travelers, who had created such an unexpected surprise in the heart of the forest, moved slowly toward the hunter, who was ahead of his companions, ready to greet them.

“Who comes?” demanded the scout, throwing his rifle carelessly across his left arm, and keeping the forefinger of his right hand on the trigger, though he avoided all appearance of menace in the act. “Who comes hither, among the beasts and dangers of the wilderness?”

“Who’s there?” the scout asked, casually slinging his rifle over his left arm and resting his right finger on the trigger, though he made sure not to look threatening. “Who’s coming here, among the beasts and dangers of the wild?”

“Believers in religion, and friends to the law and to the king,” returned he who rode foremost. “Men who have journeyed since the rising sun, in the shades of this forest, without nourishment, and are sadly tired of their wayfaring.”

“Believers in faith, supporters of the law and the king,” replied the one leading the group. “Men who have traveled since sunrise, through the shadows of this forest, without food, and are very weary from their journey.”

“You are, then, lost,” interrupted the hunter, “and have found how helpless ’tis not to know whether to take the right hand or the left?”

“You're lost, then,” interrupted the hunter, “and you’ve realized how helpless it is not to know whether to go right or left?”

“Even so; sucking babes are not more dependent on those who guide them than we who are of larger growth, and who may now be said to possess the stature without the knowledge of men. Know you the distance to a post of the crown called William Henry?”

“Even so, babies aren’t more dependent on those who care for them than we, who are older and may now have the appearance of adults without the knowledge of men. Do you know the distance to a place called William Henry?”

“Hoot!” shouted the scout, who did not spare his open laughter, though instantly checking the dangerous sounds he indulged his merriment at less risk of being overheard by any lurking enemies. “You are as much off the scent as a hound would be, with Horican atwixt him and the deer! William Henry, man! if you are friends to the king and have business with the army, your way would be to follow the river down to Edward, and lay the matter before Webb, who tarries there, instead of pushing into the defiles, and driving this saucy Frenchman back across Champlain, into his den again.”

“Hoot!” shouted the scout, laughing out loud but quickly muffling it to avoid alerting any hidden enemies. “You’re as clueless as a hound would be with Horican between him and the deer! William Henry, man! If you’re loyal to the king and have business with the army, you should follow the river down to Edward and talk to Webb, who's waiting there, instead of charging into the narrow passes and pushing this arrogant Frenchman back across Champlain into his hideout again.”

Before the stranger could make any reply to this unexpected proposition, another horseman dashed the bushes aside, and leaped his charger into the pathway, in front of his companion.

Before the stranger could respond to this unexpected suggestion, another horseman pushed the bushes aside and jumped his horse into the pathway, right in front of his companion.

“What, then, may be our distance from Fort Edward?” demanded a new speaker; “the place you advise us to seek we left this morning, and our destination is the head of the lake.”

“What’s our distance from Fort Edward?” asked a new speaker. “We left the place you told us to go to this morning, and our destination is the head of the lake.”

“Then you must have lost your eyesight afore losing your way, for the road across the portage is cut to a good two rods, and is as grand a path, I calculate, as any that runs into London, or even before the palace of the king himself.”

“Then you must have lost your sight before losing your way, because the road across the portage is about two rods wide and is as great a path, I’d say, as any that leads into London, or even in front of the king’s palace itself.”

“We will not dispute concerning the excellence of the passage,” returned Heyward, smiling; for, as the reader has anticipated, it was he. “It is enough, for the present, that we trusted to an Indian guide to take us by a nearer, though blinder path, and that we are deceived in his knowledge. In plain words, we know not where we are.”

“We won’t argue about the quality of the passage,” Heyward replied, smiling, because, as you’ve guessed, it was him. “For now, it’s enough that we relied on an Indian guide to take us by a shorter, though less certain, route, and that we’re mistaken in his knowledge. To put it simply, we don’t know where we are.”

“An Indian lost in the woods!” said the scout, shaking his head doubtingly; “When the sun is scorching the tree tops, and the water courses are full; when the moss on every beech he sees will tell him in what quarter the north star will shine at night. The woods are full of deer-paths which run to the streams and licks, places well known to everybody; nor have the geese done their flight to the Canada waters altogether! ’Tis strange that an Indian should be lost atwixt Horican and the bend in the river! Is he a Mohawk?”

"An Indian lost in the woods!" said the scout, shaking his head in disbelief. "When the sun is blazing down on the treetops, and the streams are full; when the moss on every beech he sees can tell him where the North Star will shine at night. The woods are filled with deer paths that lead to streams and water holes, places that everyone knows; and the geese haven't entirely migrated to Canada yet! It's odd that an Indian would be lost between Horican and the bend in the river! Is he a Mohawk?"

“Not by birth, though adopted in that tribe; I think his birthplace was farther north, and he is one of those you call a Huron.”

“Not by birth, even though he was adopted into that tribe; I believe he was born further north, and he's one of those you call a Huron.”

“Hugh!” exclaimed the two companions of the scout, who had continued until this part of the dialogue, seated immovable, and apparently indifferent to what passed, but who now sprang to their feet with an activity and interest that had evidently got the better of their reserve by surprise.

“Hugh!” exclaimed the two friends of the scout, who had remained seated and seemingly indifferent during this part of the conversation, but who now jumped to their feet with a surprising energy and interest that clearly overcame their usual restraint.

“A Huron!” repeated the sturdy scout, once more shaking his head in open distrust; “they are a thievish race, nor do I care by whom they are adopted; you can never make anything of them but skulks and vagabonds. Since you trusted yourself to the care of one of that nation, I only wonder that you have not fallen in with more.”

“A Huron!” repeated the sturdy scout, shaking his head again in clear distrust; “they're a thieving group, and I don't care who takes them in; you can never turn them into anything but sneaks and drifters. Since you put yourself in the hands of one from that tribe, I’m just surprised you haven’t encountered more.”

“Of that there is little danger, since William Henry is so many miles in our front. You forget that I have told you our guide is now a Mohawk, and that he serves with our forces as a friend.”

“There's hardly any risk of that, since William Henry is so far ahead of us. You seem to forget that I mentioned our guide is now a Mohawk, and he's working with our troops as an ally.”

“And I tell you that he who is born a Mingo will die a Mingo,” returned the other positively. “A Mohawk! No, give me a Delaware or a Mohican for honesty; and when they will fight, which they won’t all do, having suffered their cunning enemies, the Maquas, to make them women—but when they will fight at all, look to a Delaware, or a Mohican, for a warrior!”

“And I’m telling you that someone born a Mingo will die a Mingo,” the other replied firmly. “A Mohawk! No, give me a Delaware or a Mohican for honesty; and when they do fight, which isn’t always since their crafty enemies, the Maquas, have made them soft—but when they do fight at all, you can count on a Delaware or a Mohican to be a warrior!”

“Enough of this,” said Heyward, impatiently; “I wish not to inquire into the character of a man that I know, and to whom you must be a stranger. You have not yet answered my question; what is our distance from the main army at Edward?”

“Enough of this,” Heyward said, impatiently. “I don’t want to question the character of a man I know, and who you must not know. You still haven’t answered my question; how far are we from the main army at Edward?”

“It seems that may depend on who is your guide. One would think such a horse as that might get over a good deal of ground atwixt sun-up and sun-down.”

“It seems that might depend on who your guide is. You would think a horse like that could cover a lot of ground between sunrise and sunset.”

“I wish no contention of idle words with you, friend,” said Heyward, curbing his dissatisfied manner, and speaking in a more gentle voice; “if you will tell me the distance to Fort Edward, and conduct me thither, your labor shall not go without its reward.”

“I don’t want to argue with you, friend,” said Heyward, controlling his frustration and speaking in a softer tone. “If you can tell me how far it is to Fort Edward and take me there, I’ll make sure you’re rewarded for your effort.”

“And in so doing, how know I that I don’t guide an enemy and a spy of Montcalm, to the works of the army? It is not every man who can speak the English tongue that is an honest subject.”

“And in doing so, how do I know that I’m not leading an enemy and a spy of Montcalm to the army’s positions? Not everyone who can speak English is a loyal subject.”

“If you serve with the troops, of whom I judge you to be a scout, you should know of such a regiment of the king as the Sixtieth.”

“If you’re serving with the troops, and I believe you’re a scout, you should know about the king’s regiment called the Sixtieth.”

“The Sixtieth! you can tell me little of the Royal Americans that I don’t know, though I do wear a hunting-shirt instead of a scarlet jacket.”

“The Sixtieth! You can tell me very little about the Royal Americans that I don’t already know, even though I’m wearing a hunting shirt instead of a red jacket.”

“Well, then, among other things, you may know the name of its major?”

“Well, then, among other things, do you know the name of its major?”

“Its major!” interrupted the hunter, elevating his body like one who was proud of his trust. “If there is a man in the country who knows Major Effingham, he stands before you.”

“Its major!” interrupted the hunter, standing tall like someone who was proud of his position. “If there's anyone in this country who knows Major Effingham, it’s me.”

“It is a corps which has many majors; the gentleman you name is the senior, but I speak of the junior of them all; he who commands the companies in garrison at William Henry.”

“It’s a unit with several majors; the man you mentioned is the senior, but I’m talking about the junior of them all; the one who leads the companies stationed at William Henry.”

“Yes, yes, I have heard that a young gentleman of vast riches, from one of the provinces far south, has got the place. He is over young, too, to hold such rank, and to be put above men whose heads are beginning to bleach; and yet they say he is a soldier in his knowledge, and a gallant gentleman!”

“Yes, yes, I’ve heard that a young man with a lot of money, from one of the provinces far south, has gotten the position. He’s too young to hold such a rank and to be placed above men whose hair is starting to turn gray; yet they say he’s knowledgeable like a soldier and a brave gentleman!”

“Whatever he may be, or however he may be qualified for his rank, he now speaks to you and, of course, can be no enemy to dread.”

“Regardless of who he is or how he fits his position, he’s speaking to you now and, of course, can't be someone to fear.”

The scout regarded Heyward in surprise, and then lifting his cap, he answered, in a tone less confident than before—though still expressing doubt.

The scout looked at Heyward in surprise, and then, taking off his cap, he replied in a tone that was less sure than earlier—still showing doubt.

“I have heard a party was to leave the encampment this morning for the lake shore?”

“I heard a group was leaving the camp this morning for the lakeshore?”

“You have heard the truth; but I preferred a nearer route, trusting to the knowledge of the Indian I mentioned.”

“You've heard the truth; but I chose a closer way, relying on what the Indian I mentioned knew.”

“And he deceived you, and then deserted?”

“And he tricked you, and then left?”

“Neither, as I believe; certainly not the latter, for he is to be found in the rear.”

“Neither, as I think; definitely not the latter, because he is at the back.”

“I should like to look at the creature; if it is a true Iroquois I can tell him by his knavish look, and by his paint,” said the scout; stepping past the charger of Heyward, and entering the path behind the mare of the singing master, whose foal had taken advantage of the halt to exact the maternal contribution. After shoving aside the bushes, and proceeding a few paces, he encountered the females, who awaited the result of the conference with anxiety, and not entirely without apprehension. Behind these, the runner leaned against a tree, where he stood the close examination of the scout with an air unmoved, though with a look so dark and savage, that it might in itself excite fear. Satisfied with his scrutiny, the hunter soon left him. As he repassed the females, he paused a moment to gaze upon their beauty, answering to the smile and nod of Alice with a look of open pleasure. Thence he went to the side of the motherly animal, and spending a minute in a fruitless inquiry into the character of her rider, he shook his head and returned to Heyward.

"I want to take a look at the creature; if it's a real Iroquois, I can identify him by his sneaky expression and his paint," said the scout, stepping past Heyward's horse and moving into the path behind the mare of the singing master, whose foal had taken the chance to get a little something from its mother during the stop. After pushing aside the bushes and walking a few steps, he came across the women, who were anxiously waiting for news from the meeting, not without some worry. Behind them, the runner leaned against a tree, appearing calm under the close examination of the scout, though his expression was so dark and savage that it could easily inspire fear. Satisfied with his inspection, the hunter moved on. As he walked back past the women, he paused for a moment to admire their beauty, returning Alice's smile and nod with a look of genuine pleasure. Then he approached the motherly mare, spending a minute trying to figure out who her rider was but ultimately shook his head and returned to Heyward.

“A Mingo is a Mingo, and God having made him so, neither the Mohawks nor any other tribe can alter him,” he said, when he had regained his former position. “If we were alone, and you would leave that noble horse at the mercy of the wolves to-night, I could show you the way to Edward myself, within an hour, for it lies only about an hour’s journey hence; but with such ladies in your company ’tis impossible!”

“A Mingo is a Mingo, and God made him that way, so neither the Mohawks nor any other tribe can change that,” he said, once he had taken his original position again. “If we were by ourselves, and you would leave that noble horse at the mercy of the wolves tonight, I could show you the way to Edward myself in less than an hour, because it’s only about an hour’s journey from here; but with such ladies with you, it’s impossible!”

“And why? They are fatigued, but they are quite equal to a ride of a few more miles.”

“And why? They are tired, but they can easily handle a few more miles.”

“’Tis a natural impossibility!” repeated the scout; “I wouldn’t walk a mile in these woods after night gets into them, in company with that runner, for the best rifle in the colonies. They are full of outlying Iroquois, and your mongrel Mohawk knows where to find them too well to be my companion.”

“It's a natural impossibility!” the scout repeated. “I wouldn't walk a mile in these woods after dark, even with that runner, for the best rifle in the colonies. They’re full of roaming Iroquois, and your mixed-breed Mohawk knows exactly where to find them, so he can’t be my companion.”

“Think you so?” said Heyward, leaning forward in the saddle, and dropping his voice nearly to a whisper; “I confess I have not been without my own suspicions, though I have endeavored to conceal them, and affected a confidence I have not always felt, on account of my companions. It was because I suspected him that I would follow no longer; making him, as you see, follow me.”

“Do you really think so?” said Heyward, leaning forward in the saddle and lowering his voice to almost a whisper. “I admit I’ve had my own doubts, even though I tried to hide them and put on a brave face for my friends. The reason I wanted to stop following him is that I suspected him, so now I’m making him follow me.”

“I knew he was one of the cheats as soon as I laid eyes on him!” returned the scout, placing a finger on his nose, in sign of caution.

“I knew he was one of the cheats as soon as I laid eyes on him!” the scout replied, putting a finger on his nose as a sign of caution.

“The thief is leaning against the foot of the sugar sapling, that you can see over them bushes; his right leg is in a line with the bark of the tree, and,” tapping his rifle, “I can take him from where I stand, between the angle and the knee, with a single shot, putting an end to his tramping through the woods, for at least a month to come. If I should go back to him, the cunning varmint would suspect something, and be dodging through the trees like a frightened deer.”

“The thief is leaning against the base of the sugar sapling, which you can see over those bushes; his right leg is in line with the bark of the tree, and,” tapping his rifle, “I can take him out from where I stand, between the angle and the knee, with one shot, stopping his wandering through the woods for at least a month. If I were to go back to him, that clever trickster would get suspicious and dart through the trees like a scared deer.”

“It will not do. He may be innocent, and I dislike the act. Though, if I felt confident of his treachery—”

“It won't work. He might be innocent, and I don't like what he did. But, if I were sure of his betrayal—”

“’Tis a safe thing to calculate on the knavery of an Iroquois,” said the scout, throwing his rifle forward, by a sort of instinctive movement.

“It's a safe bet to count on the trickery of an Iroquois,” said the scout, instinctively raising his rifle.

“Hold!” interrupted Heyward, “it will not do—we must think of some other scheme—and yet, I have much reason to believe the rascal has deceived me.”

“Wait!” interrupted Heyward, “that won't work—we need to come up with a different plan—and still, I have strong reasons to think the scoundrel has tricked me.”

The hunter, who had already abandoned his intention of maiming the runner, mused a moment, and then made a gesture, which instantly brought his two red companions to his side. They spoke together earnestly in the Delaware language, though in an undertone; and by the gestures of the white man, which were frequently directed towards the top of the sapling, it was evident he pointed out the situation of their hidden enemy. His companions were not long in comprehending his wishes, and laying aside their firearms, they parted, taking opposite sides of the path, and burying themselves in the thicket, with such cautious movements, that their steps were inaudible.

The hunter, who had already given up on trying to harm the runner, paused for a moment, then signaled for his two red companions to join him. They quickly began speaking earnestly in Delaware, albeit in hushed tones. The white man's gestures, often directed at the top of the sapling, clearly indicated the location of their hidden enemy. His companions swiftly understood his intentions, and after setting aside their firearms, they split up, taking different sides of the path and stealthily moving into the thicket, their steps so quiet that they were completely inaudible.

“Now, go you back,” said the hunter, speaking again to Heyward, “and hold the imp in talk; these Mohicans here will take him without breaking his paint.”

“Now, you go back,” said the hunter, speaking again to Heyward, “and keep the kid talking; these Mohicans here will take him without messing up his paint.”

“Nay,” said Heyward, proudly, “I will seize him myself.”

“Nah,” said Heyward, confidently, “I’ll take him down myself.”

“Hist! what could you do, mounted, against an Indian in the bushes!”

“Shh! What could you do, mounted, against a Native in the bushes!”

“I will dismount.”

“I will get off.”

“And, think you, when he saw one of your feet out of the stirrup, he would wait for the other to be free? Whoever comes into the woods to deal with the natives, must use Indian fashions, if he would wish to prosper in his undertakings. Go, then; talk openly to the miscreant, and seem to believe him the truest friend you have on ’arth.”

“And, do you think that when he saw one of your feet out of the stirrup, he would wait for the other to be free? Whoever goes into the woods to deal with the natives has to adopt Indian ways if they want to succeed in their efforts. So go ahead; speak openly to the scoundrel and act like you believe he’s the best friend you have on earth.”

Heyward prepared to comply, though with strong disgust at the nature of the office he was compelled to execute. Each moment, however, pressed upon him a conviction of the critical situation in which he had suffered his invaluable trust to be involved through his own confidence. The sun had already disappeared, and the woods, suddenly deprived of his light[1], were assuming a dusky hue, which keenly reminded him that the hour the savage usually chose for his most barbarous and remorseless acts of vengeance or hostility, was speedily drawing near. Stimulated by apprehension, he left the scout, who immediately entered into a loud conversation with the stranger that had so unceremoniously enlisted himself in the party of travelers that morning. In passing his gentler companions Heyward uttered a few words of encouragement, and was pleased to find that, though fatigued with the exercise of the day, they appeared to entertain no suspicion that their present embarrassment was other than the result of accident. Giving them reason to believe he was merely employed in a consultation concerning the future route, he spurred his charger, and drew the reins again when the animal had carried him within a few yards of the place where the sullen runner still stood, leaning against the tree.

Heyward got ready to follow through, though he felt strong disgust about the task he had to do. Each moment, though, pushed him to realize the serious situation he had put his valuable trust in through his own belief. The sun had already set, and the woods, suddenly without its light, were taking on a dark color, sharply reminding him that the hour the savage usually picked for his most brutal and relentless acts of revenge or aggression was quickly approaching. Driven by fear, he left the scout, who immediately started a loud conversation with the stranger who had so abruptly joined their group of travelers that morning. As he passed by his more gentle companions, Heyward offered a few words of encouragement and was pleased to see that, although tired from the day's activities, they didn't seem to suspect that their current trouble was anything other than an accident. Giving them the impression he was just involved in planning the next route, he urged his horse forward and pulled the reins again when the animal brought him within a few yards of where the gloomy runner still stood, leaning against the tree.

[1] The scene of this tale was in the 42d degree of latitude, where the twilight is never of long continuation.

[1] The setting of this story is at the 42nd degree of latitude, where twilight doesn't last for very long.

“You may see, Magua,” he said, endeavoring to assume an air of freedom and confidence, “that the night is closing around us, and yet we are no nearer to William Henry than when we left the encampment of Webb with the rising sun.

"You can see, Magua," he said, trying to act confident and relaxed, "that the night is closing in on us, and yet we're no closer to William Henry than we were when we left Webb's camp at dawn."

“You have missed the way, nor have I been more fortunate. But, happily, we have fallen in with a hunter, he whom you hear talking to the singer, that is acquainted with the deerpaths and by-ways of the woods, and who promises to lead us to a place where we may rest securely till the morning.”

“You’ve missed the path, and I haven’t had any better luck. But luckily, we’ve run into a hunter, the one you hear talking to the singer. He knows the deer trails and back roads of the woods and promises to take us to a safe place where we can rest until morning.”

The Indian riveted his glowing eyes on Heyward as he asked, in his imperfect English, “Is he alone?”

The Indian fixed his intense gaze on Heyward and asked in his broken English, “Is he alone?”

“Alone!” hesitatingly answered Heyward, to whom deception was too new to be assumed without embarrassment. “Oh! not alone, surely, Magua, for you know that we are with him.”

“Alone!” Heyward replied hesitantly, feeling too inexperienced with deception to say it without feeling awkward. “Oh! Not alone, of course, Magua, because you know that we are with him.”

“Then Le Renard Subtil will go,” returned the runner, coolly raising his little wallet from the place where it had lain at his feet; “and the pale faces will see none but their own color.”

“Then the Subtle Fox will go,” the runner replied, casually picking up his small wallet from where it had been resting at his feet; “and the pale faces will see no one but their own kind.”

“Go! Whom call you Le Renard?”

“Go! Who do you call Le Renard?”

“’Tis the name his Canada fathers have given to Magua,” returned the runner, with an air that manifested his pride at the distinction. “Night is the same as day to Le Subtil, when Munro waits for him.”

“It's the name his Canadian fathers have given to Magua,” replied the runner, with an attitude that showed his pride in the title. “Night is just like day for Le Subtil when Munro is waiting for him.”

“And what account will Le Renard give the chief of William Henry concerning his daughters? Will he dare to tell the hot-blooded Scotsman that his children are left without a guide, though Magua promised to be one?”

“And what will Le Renard tell the chief of William Henry about his daughters? Will he have the courage to inform the hot-blooded Scotsman that his children are left without a guide, even though Magua promised to be one?”

“Though the gray head has a loud voice, and a long arm, Le Renard will not hear him, nor feel him, in the woods.”

“Even though the old man has a loud voice and a long reach, Le Renard will neither hear him nor feel him in the woods.”

“But what will the Mohawks say? They will make him petticoats, and bid him stay in the wigwam with the women, for he is no longer to be trusted with the business of a man.”

“But what will the Mohawks think? They’ll dress him in petticoats and tell him to stay in the wigwam with the women because he can no longer be trusted with a man’s responsibilities.”

“Le Subtil knows the path to the great lakes, and he can find the bones of his fathers,” was the answer of the unmoved runner.

“Le Subtil knows the way to the great lakes, and he can find his ancestors' bones,” was the response of the unbothered runner.

“Enough, Magua,” said Heyward; “are we not friends? Why should there be bitter words between us? Munro has promised you a gift for your services when performed, and I shall be your debtor for another. Rest your weary limbs, then, and open your wallet to eat. We have a few moments to spare; let us not waste them in talk like wrangling women. When the ladies are refreshed we will proceed.”

“Enough, Magua,” Heyward said. “Aren’t we friends? Why should we have harsh words between us? Munro has promised you a reward for your services once they're done, and I’ll owe you one too. So, take a break and pull out some food. We have a few minutes to spare; let’s not waste them arguing like bickering women. Once the ladies are rested, we’ll move on.”

“The pale faces make themselves dogs to their women,” muttered the Indian, in his native language, “and when they want to eat, their warriors must lay aside the tomahawk to feed their laziness.”

“The pale faces turn themselves into dogs for their women,” muttered the Indian, in his native language, “and when they want to eat, their warriors have to put down the tomahawk to cater to their laziness.”

“What say you, Renard?”

“What do you think, Renard?”

“Le Subtil says it is good.”

"Le Subtil says it's great."

The Indian then fastened his eyes keenly on the open countenance of Heyward, but meeting his glance, he turned them quickly away, and seating himself deliberately on the ground, he drew forth the remnant of some former repast, and began to eat, though not without first bending his looks slowly and cautiously around him.

The Indian then fixed his gaze intently on Heyward's open face, but when their eyes met, he quickly looked away. He deliberately sat down on the ground, pulled out what was left of a previous meal, and started to eat, but not before he cautiously scanned his surroundings.

“This is well,” continued Heyward; “and Le Renard will have strength and sight to find the path in the morning”; he paused, for sounds like the snapping of a dried stick, and the rustling of leaves, rose from the adjacent bushes, but recollecting himself instantly, he continued, “we must be moving before the sun is seen, or Montcalm may lie in our path, and shut us out from the fortress.”

“This is good,” Heyward said; “and Le Renard will have the strength and sight to find the way in the morning.” He paused, as sounds like a dry stick snapping and leaves rustling came from the nearby bushes, but quickly gathering his thoughts, he added, “we need to get going before the sun rises, or Montcalm might block our way and prevent us from reaching the fortress.”

The hand of Magua dropped from his mouth to his side, and though his eyes were fastened on the ground, his head was turned aside, his nostrils expanded, and his ears seemed even to stand more erect than usual, giving to him the appearance of a statue that was made to represent intense attention.

The hand of Magua dropped from his mouth to his side, and even though his eyes were focused on the ground, his head was turned aside, his nostrils flared, and his ears seemed to stand even taller than usual, making him look like a statue designed to depict intense concentration.

Heyward, who watched his movements with a vigilant eye, carelessly extricated one of his feet from the stirrup, while he passed a hand toward the bear-skin covering of his holsters.

Heyward, who kept a close watch on his movements, casually freed one of his feet from the stirrup while reaching toward the bear-skin covering of his holsters.

Every effort to detect the point most regarded by the runner was completely frustrated by the tremulous glances of his organs, which seemed not to rest a single instant on any particular object, and which, at the same time, could be hardly said to move. While he hesitated how to proceed, Le Subtil cautiously raised himself to his feet, though with a motion so slow and guarded, that not the slightest noise was produced by the change. Heyward felt it had now become incumbent on him to act. Throwing his leg over the saddle, he dismounted, with a determination to advance and seize his treacherous companion, trusting the result to his own manhood. In order, however, to prevent unnecessary alarm, he still preserved an air of calmness and friendship.

Every attempt to pinpoint what the runner was most focused on was completely hindered by the shaky movements of his eyes, which seemed to dart around without settling on anything specific and appeared to barely move at all. While he hesitated on how to proceed, Le Subtil carefully got to his feet, doing so so slowly and quietly that he didn’t make a sound. Heyward realized it was now his responsibility to take action. Throwing his leg over the saddle, he dismounted with the resolve to move forward and confront his deceitful companion, relying on his own courage for the outcome. However, to avoid causing unnecessary alarm, he maintained an air of calmness and friendship.

“Le Renard Subtil does not eat,” he said, using the appellation he had found most flattering to the vanity of the Indian. “His corn is not well parched, and it seems dry. Let me examine; perhaps something may be found among my own provisions that will help his appetite.”

“Le Renard Subtil doesn’t eat,” he said, using the title he found most flattering to the Indian's vanity. “His corn isn’t well roasted, and it looks dry. Let me take a look; maybe I can find something in my own supplies that will boost his appetite.”

Magua held out the wallet to the proffer of the other. He even suffered their hands to meet, without betraying the least emotion, or varying his riveted attitude of attention. But when he felt the fingers of Heyward moving gently along his own naked arm, he struck up the limb of the young man, and, uttering a piercing cry, he darted beneath it, and plunged, at a single bound, into the opposite thicket. At the next instant the form of Chingachgook appeared from the bushes, looking like a specter in its paint, and glided across the path in swift pursuit. Next followed the shout of Uncas, when the woods were lighted by a sudden flash, that was accompanied by the sharp report of the hunter’s rifle.

Magua extended the wallet towards the other person. He even allowed their hands to touch without showing the slightest emotion or changing his focused stance. But when he felt Heyward's fingers gently moving along his bare arm, he quickly grabbed the young man's arm, let out a piercing cry, then dove beneath it and leaped into the dense thicket. In the next moment, Chingachgook emerged from the bushes, looking like a ghost with his paint, and swiftly crossed the path in pursuit. Then came Uncas's shout as the woods were suddenly illuminated by a flash that coincided with the sharp crack of the hunter's rifle.

CHAPTER V.

...”In such a night
Did This be fearfully o’ertrip the dew;
And saw the lion’s shadow ere himself.”—Merchant of Venice

...”On a night like this
Did fearfully overtake the dew;
And saw the lion’s shadow before himself.”—Merchant of Venice

The suddenness of the flight of his guide, and the wild cries of the pursuers, caused Heyward to remain fixed, for a few moments, in inactive surprise. Then recollecting the importance of securing the fugitive, he dashed aside the surrounding bushes, and pressed eagerly forward to lend his aid in the chase. Before he had, however, proceeded a hundred yards, he met the three foresters already returning from their unsuccessful pursuit.

The sudden departure of his guide and the frantic shouts of the pursuers left Heyward momentarily stunned and unable to move. But then, realizing the importance of catching the runaway, he pushed through the nearby bushes and hurried ahead to help in the chase. However, before he had gone a hundred yards, he encountered the three foresters already coming back from their unsuccessful pursuit.

“Why so soon disheartened!” he exclaimed; “the scoundrel must be concealed behind some of these trees, and may yet be secured. We are not safe while he goes at large.”

“Why are you so down already?” he exclaimed; “the villain must be hiding behind some of these trees, and we might still catch him. We're not safe while he's still out there.”

“Would you set a cloud to chase the wind?” returned the disappointed scout; “I heard the imp brushing over the dry leaves, like a black snake, and blinking a glimpse of him, just over ag’in yon big pine, I pulled as it might be on the scent; but ’twouldn’t do! and yet for a reasoning aim, if anybody but myself had touched the trigger, I should call it a quick sight; and I may be accounted to have experience in these matters, and one who ought to know. Look at this sumach; its leaves are red, though everybody knows the fruit is in the yellow blossom in the month of July!”

“Would you send a cloud to chase the wind?” replied the disappointed scout. “I heard the imp rustling through the dry leaves, like a black snake, and catching a glimpse of him just beyond that big pine, I tried to follow the scent; but it didn’t work! Still, if anyone else had pulled the trigger, I’d call it a quick shot; and I like to think I have experience in these matters and should know what I’m talking about. Look at this sumac; its leaves are red, even though everyone knows the fruit comes from the yellow blossoms in July!”

“’Tis the blood of Le Subtil! he is hurt, and may yet fall!”

“It’s the blood of Le Subtil! He’s hurt and might still fall!”

“No, no,” returned the scout, in decided disapprobation of this opinion, “I rubbed the bark off a limb, perhaps, but the creature leaped the longer for it. A rifle bullet acts on a running animal, when it barks him, much the same as one of your spurs on a horse; that is, it quickens motion, and puts life into the flesh, instead of taking it away. But when it cuts the ragged hole, after a bound or two, there is, commonly, a stagnation of further leaping, be it Indian or be it deer!”

“No, no,” the scout replied, clearly disagreeing with this opinion, “I might have rubbed the bark off a branch, but that only made the creature jump longer. A rifle bullet hitting a running animal, when it grazes them, works much like your spurs on a horse; it speeds them up and energizes their body instead of slowing them down. But once it creates that nasty hole after a jump or two, there's usually a stop to any further leaping, whether it's an Indian or a deer!”

“We are four able bodies, to one wounded man!”

“We have four healthy people for every one injured person!”

“Is life grievous to you?” interrupted the scout. “Yonder red devil would draw you within swing of the tomahawks of his comrades, before you were heated in the chase. It was an unthoughtful act in a man who has so often slept with the war-whoop ringing in the air, to let off his piece within sound of an ambushment! But then it was a natural temptation! ’twas very natural! Come, friends, let us move our station, and in such fashion, too, as will throw the cunning of a Mingo on a wrong scent, or our scalps will be drying in the wind in front of Montcalm’s marquee, ag’in this hour to-morrow.”

“Is life hard for you?” interrupted the scout. “That red devil would lure you right into the path of his comrades' tomahawks before you even got warmed up in the chase. It was thoughtless of a man who has often heard the war cries ringing in the air to fire his weapon close to an ambush! But then it was a natural temptation! It’s very natural! Come on, friends, let’s move our position, and let’s do it in a way that will lead the crafty Mingo off our trail, or our scalps will be hanging in the wind in front of Montcalm’s tent by this time tomorrow.”

This appalling declaration, which the scout uttered with the cool assurance of a man who fully comprehended, while he did not fear to face the danger, served to remind Heyward of the importance of the charge with which he himself had been intrusted. Glancing his eyes around, with a vain effort to pierce the gloom that was thickening beneath the leafy arches of the forest, he felt as if, cut off from human aid, his unresisting companions would soon lie at the entire mercy of those barbarous enemies, who, like beasts of prey, only waited till the gathering darkness might render their blows more fatally certain. His awakened imagination, deluded by the deceptive light, converted each waving bush, or the fragment of some fallen tree, into human forms, and twenty times he fancied he could distinguish the horrid visages of his lurking foes, peering from their hiding places, in never ceasing watchfulness of the movements of his party. Looking upward, he found that the thin fleecy clouds, which evening had painted on the blue sky, were already losing their faintest tints of rose-color, while the imbedded stream, which glided past the spot where he stood, was to be traced only by the dark boundary of its wooded banks.

This shocking statement, made by the scout with the calm confidence of someone who understood the situation and wasn’t afraid to confront the danger, reminded Heyward of the crucial responsibility he had been given. As he glanced around, trying futilely to see through the thickening darkness under the leafy arches of the forest, he felt that, cut off from help, his helpless companions would soon be entirely at the mercy of those savage enemies, who, like predatory animals, were just waiting for the darkness to make their attacks more deadly. His imagination, stirred by the misleading light, turned every rustling bush or fallen tree trunk into human figures, and twenty times he thought he could see the terrifying faces of hidden foes watching intently for any movement from his group. Looking up, he noticed that the thin, fluffy clouds painted by evening on the blue sky were already losing the last hints of pink, while the stream that flowed past where he stood could only be traced by the dark outline of its wooded banks.

“What is to be done!” he said, feeling the utter helplessness of doubt in such a pressing strait; “desert me not, for God’s sake! remain to defend those I escort, and freely name your own reward!”

“What should I do?” he said, feeling completely helpless with doubt in such a critical situation; “please don’t abandon me, for God’s sake! Stay to protect those I’m escorting, and feel free to ask for whatever reward you want!”

His companions, who conversed apart in the language of their tribe, heeded not this sudden and earnest appeal. Though their dialogue was maintained in low and cautious sounds, but little above a whisper, Heyward, who now approached, could easily distinguish the earnest tones of the younger warrior from the more deliberate speeches of his seniors. It was evident that they debated on the propriety of some measure, that nearly concerned the welfare of the travelers. Yielding to his powerful interest in the subject, and impatient of a delay that seemed fraught with so much additional danger, Heyward drew still nigher to the dusky group, with an intention of making his offers of compensation more definite, when the white man, motioning with his hand, as if he conceded the disputed point, turned away, saying in a sort of soliloquy, and in the English tongue:

His companions, who were talking separately in their tribal language, ignored this sudden and urgent plea. Even though their conversation was kept at a low and cautious volume, just above a whisper, Heyward, who was now approaching, could easily tell the intense tone of the younger warrior from the more measured words of the older ones. It was clear they were discussing whether to take some action that almost affected the safety of the travelers. Giving in to his strong concern about the situation and feeling impatient with a delay that seemed to hold so much extra danger, Heyward moved closer to the dark-skinned group, intending to make his offers of compensation clearer, when the white man gestured with his hand, as if he was conceding the argument, turned away, and spoke to himself in English:

“Uncas is right! it would not be the act of men to leave such harmless things to their fate, even though it breaks up the harboring place forever. If you would save these tender blossoms from the fangs of the worst of serpents, gentleman, you have neither time to lose nor resolution to throw away!”

“Uncas is right! It wouldn’t be right for people to abandon such innocent things to their fate, even if it means permanently disrupting their home. If you want to save these delicate flowers from the worst of serpents, gentlemen, you have no time to waste and no courage to squander!”

“How can such a wish be doubted! Have I not already offered—”

“How can anyone doubt such a wish! Haven’t I already offered—”

“Offer your prayers to Him who can give us wisdom to circumvent the cunning of the devils who fill these woods,” calmly interrupted the scout, “but spare your offers of money, which neither you may live to realize, nor I to profit by. These Mohicans and I will do what man’s thoughts can invent, to keep such flowers, which, though so sweet, were never made for the wilderness, from harm, and that without hope of any other recompense but such as God always gives to upright dealings. First, you must promise two things, both in your own name and for your friends, or without serving you we shall only injure ourselves!”

“Pray to Him who can give us the wisdom to outsmart the tricks of the devils that haunt these woods,” the scout interrupted calmly, “but don’t offer money, which neither of us may live to see or benefit from. These Mohicans and I will do everything we can to protect these beautiful flowers, which, although lovely, were never meant for the wild, and we do this without expecting anything in return except the reward that God gives for honest behavior. First, you need to promise two things, both for yourself and for your friends, or instead of helping you, we’ll end up harming ourselves!”

“Name them.”

“List them.”

“The one is, to be still as these sleeping woods, let what will happen and the other is, to keep the place where we shall take you, forever a secret from all mortal men.”

“The first is to be as quiet as these sleeping woods, letting whatever happens, happen; and the other is to keep the location where we’ll take you a secret from everyone.”

“I will do my utmost to see both these conditions fulfilled.”

“I will do my best to make sure both of these conditions are met.”

“Then follow, for we are losing moments that are as precious as the heart’s blood to a stricken deer!”

“Then follow, because we are wasting moments that are as precious as the blood of a wounded deer!”

Heyward could distinguish the impatient gesture of the scout, through the increasing shadows of the evening, and he moved in his footsteps, swiftly, toward the place where he had left the remainder of the party. When they rejoined the expecting and anxious females, he briefly acquainted them with the conditions of their new guide, and with the necessity that existed for their hushing every apprehension in instant and serious exertions. Although his alarming communication was not received without much secret terror by the listeners, his earnest and impressive manner, aided perhaps by the nature of the danger, succeeded in bracing their nerves to undergo some unlooked-for and unusual trial. Silently, and without a moment’s delay, they permitted him to assist them from their saddles, and when they descended quickly to the water’s edge, where the scout had collected the rest of the party, more by the agency of expressive gestures than by any use of words.

Heyward could see the impatient gesture of the scout as evening shadows grew, and he quickly followed in his footsteps toward the spot where he had left the others. When they rejoined the worried and anxious women, he briefly explained the situation with their new guide and the need for them to silence any fears and act swiftly. Although his alarming news caused much hidden fear among the listeners, his serious and convincing manner, perhaps made more effective by the nature of the threat, helped them gather their courage for an unexpected and unusual challenge. Without hesitation, they allowed him to help them off their horses, and they quickly moved to the water’s edge, where the scout had gathered the rest of the group, mostly using gestures rather than words.

“What to do with these dumb creatures!” muttered the white man, on whom the sole control of their future movements appeared to devolve; “it would be time lost to cut their throats, and cast them into the river; and to leave them here would be to tell the Mingoes that they have not far to seek to find their owners!”

“What should I do with these stupid creatures!” muttered the white man, who seemed to have full control over their future movements; “it would be a waste of time to slit their throats and throw them into the river, and leaving them here would just signal to the Mingoes that their owners are close by!”

“Then give them their bridles, and let them range the woods,” Heyward ventured to suggest.

“Then give them their bridles and let them roam the woods,” Heyward suggested.

“No; it would be better to mislead the imps, and make them believe they must equal a horse’s speed to run down their chase. Ay, ay, that will blind their fireballs of eyes! Chingach—Hist! what stirs the bush?”

“No; it would be better to trick the imps into thinking they have to match a horse's speed to catch their prey. Yeah, that should throw off their fiery eyes! Chingach—Wait! What’s rustling in the bushes?”

“The colt.”

"The young horse."

“That colt, at least, must die,” muttered the scout, grasping at the mane of the nimble beast, which easily eluded his hand; “Uncas, your arrows!”

“That colt, at least, has to die,” muttered the scout, reaching for the mane of the quick beast, which effortlessly dodged his grasp; “Uncas, your arrows!”

“Hold!” exclaimed the proprietor of the condemned animal, aloud, without regard to the whispering tones used by the others; “spare the foal of Miriam! it is the comely offspring of a faithful dam, and would willingly injure naught.”

“Stop!” shouted the owner of the condemned animal, ignoring the hushed voices of the others; “save Miriam's foal! It is the beautiful offspring of a loyal mother and would gladly harm no one.”

“When men struggle for the single life God has given them,” said the scout, sternly, “even their own kind seem no more than the beasts of the wood. If you speak again, I shall leave you to the mercy of the Maquas! Draw to your arrow’s head, Uncas; we have no time for second blows.”

“When men fight for the one life God has given them,” the scout said sternly, “even their own kind seem no more than the animals of the forest. If you say another word, I will leave you at the mercy of the Maquas! Aim your arrow, Uncas; we don’t have time for second chances.”

The low, muttering sounds of his threatening voice were still audible, when the wounded foal, first rearing on its hinder legs, plunged forward to its knees. It was met by Chingachgook, whose knife passed across its throat quicker than thought, and then precipitating the motions of the struggling victim, he dashed into the river, down whose stream it glided away, gasping audibly for breath with its ebbing life. This deed of apparent cruelty, but of real necessity, fell upon the spirits of the travelers like a terrific warning of the peril in which they stood, heightened as it was by the calm though steady resolution of the actors in the scene. The sisters shuddered and clung closer to each other, while Heyward instinctively laid his hand on one of the pistols he had just drawn from their holsters, as he placed himself between his charge and those dense shadows that seemed to draw an impenetrable veil before the bosom of the forest.

The low, muttering sounds of his threatening voice were still audible when the injured foal, first rearing up on its hind legs, lunged forward onto its knees. It was met by Chingachgook, whose knife flashed across its throat faster than thought, and then, as the victim struggled, he jumped into the river, down which it drifted away, gasping for breath as its life faded. This act of apparent cruelty, but of real necessity, weighed heavily on the spirits of the travelers like a terrible warning of the danger they faced, intensified by the calm yet determined resolve of those involved in the scene. The sisters shuddered and clung closer to each other, while Heyward instinctively placed his hand on one of the pistols he had just drawn from their holsters, positioning himself between his charge and the dense shadows that seemed to create an impenetrable veil over the heart of the forest.

The Indians, however, hesitated not a moment, but taking the bridles, they led the frightened and reluctant horses into the bed of the river.

The Indians, however, didn’t hesitate for a moment. Grabbing the reins, they guided the scared and unwilling horses into the riverbed.

At a short distance from the shore they turned, and were soon concealed by the projection of the bank, under the brow of which they moved, in a direction opposite to the course of the waters. In the meantime, the scout drew a canoe of bark from its place of concealment beneath some low bushes, whose branches were waving with the eddies of the current, into which he silently motioned for the females to enter. They complied without hesitation, though many a fearful and anxious glance was thrown behind them, toward the thickening gloom, which now lay like a dark barrier along the margin of the stream.

At a short distance from the shore, they turned and were quickly hidden by the overhang of the bank, under which they moved away from the flow of the water. Meanwhile, the scout pulled a bark canoe from its hiding spot beneath some low bushes that were swaying in the currents, silently signaling for the women to get in. They did so without hesitation, although they cast many anxious and fearful glances behind them toward the growing darkness, which now loomed like a dark barrier along the edge of the stream.

So soon as Cora and Alice were seated, the scout, without regarding the element, directed Heyward to support one side of the frail vessel, and posting himself at the other, they bore it up against the stream, followed by the dejected owner of the dead foal. In this manner they proceeded, for many rods, in a silence that was only interrupted by the rippling of the water, as its eddies played around them, or the low dash made by their own cautious footsteps. Heyward yielded the guidance of the canoe implicitly to the scout, who approached or receded from the shore, to avoid the fragments of rocks, or deeper parts of the river, with a readiness that showed his knowledge of the route they held. Occasionally he would stop; and in the midst of a breathing stillness, that the dull but increasing roar of the waterfall only served to render more impressive, he would listen with painful intenseness, to catch any sounds that might arise from the slumbering forest. When assured that all was still, and unable to detect, even by the aid of his practiced senses, any sign of his approaching foes, he would deliberately resume his slow and guarded progress. At length they reached a point in the river where the roving eye of Heyward became riveted on a cluster of black objects, collected at a spot where the high bank threw a deeper shadow than usual on the dark waters. Hesitating to advance, he pointed out the place to the attention of his companion.

As soon as Cora and Alice were seated, the scout, ignoring the weather, told Heyward to support one side of the fragile canoe while he took his position on the other side. They steadied it against the current, followed by the dejected owner of the dead foal. They moved like this for quite a while in silence, which was only broken by the gentle sounds of the water swirling around them or the soft splashes made by their careful footsteps. Heyward fully trusted the scout to guide the canoe as he skillfully navigated closer to or away from the shore to avoid rocks or deeper parts of the river, clearly showing his familiarity with the route. Occasionally, he would stop, and in the profound stillness, which was made even more striking by the dull roar of the waterfall, he would listen intently for any sounds from the quiet forest. When he felt assured that all was calm and couldn't detect any signs of his incoming enemies, even with his trained senses, he would carefully continue their slow progress. Eventually, they came to a spot in the river where Heyward's attention was drawn to a cluster of dark shapes gathered in a place where the high bank cast a deeper shadow over the dark waters. Unsure about approaching, he pointed the location out to his companion.

“Ay,” returned the composed scout, “the Indians have hid the beasts with the judgment of natives! Water leaves no trail, and an owl’s eyes would be blinded by the darkness of such a hole.”

“Ay,” replied the calm scout, “the Indians have concealed the animals with the skill of locals! Water leaves no trace, and even an owl’s eyes would be blinded by the darkness of such a place.”

The whole party was soon reunited, and another consultation was held between the scout and his new comrades, during which, they, whose fates depended on the faith and ingenuity of these unknown foresters, had a little leisure to observe their situation more minutely.

The whole group was soon back together, and another discussion took place between the scout and his new teammates, during which they, whose futures depended on the trust and cleverness of these unfamiliar woodsmen, had a brief moment to carefully examine their circumstances.

The river was confined between high and cragged rocks, one of which impended above the spot where the canoe rested. As these, again, were surmounted by tall trees, which appeared to totter on the brows of the precipice, it gave the stream the appearance of running through a deep and narrow dell. All beneath the fantastic limbs and ragged tree tops, which were, here and there, dimly painted against the starry zenith, lay alike in shadowed obscurity. Behind them, the curvature of the banks soon bounded the view by the same dark and wooded outline; but in front, and apparently at no great distance, the water seemed piled against the heavens, whence it tumbled into caverns, out of which issued those sullen sounds that had loaded the evening atmosphere. It seemed, in truth, to be a spot devoted to seclusion, and the sisters imbibed a soothing impression of security, as they gazed upon its romantic though not unappalling beauties. A general movement among their conductors, however, soon recalled them from a contemplation of the wild charms that night had assisted to lend the place to a painful sense of their real peril.

The river was squeezed between steep, jagged rocks, one of which loomed over where the canoe was resting. Tall trees topped these rocks, swaying precariously at the edge of the cliff, making the stream look like it was flowing through a deep, narrow valley. Everything beneath the twisted branches and ragged tree tops, which were faintly outlined against the starry sky, lay in shadowy obscurity. Behind them, the curves of the banks quickly blocked the view with the same dark, wooded outline; but ahead, and seemingly not far away, the water appeared to reach up to the sky, tumbling down into caverns that produced those gloomy sounds that filled the evening air. It really felt like a place meant for solitude, and the sisters felt a comforting sense of safety as they admired its romantic, though slightly unsettling, beauty. However, a general stir among their guides soon pulled them from their daze, bringing a painful reminder of their true danger, despite the wild allure that the night had cast over the scene.

The horses had been secured to some scattering shrubs that grew in the fissures of the rocks, where, standing in the water, they were left to pass the night. The scout directed Heyward and his disconsolate fellow travelers to seat themselves in the forward end of the canoe, and took possession of the other himself, as erect and steady as if he floated in a vessel of much firmer materials. The Indians warily retraced their steps toward the place they had left, when the scout, placing his pole against a rock, by a powerful shove, sent his frail bark directly into the turbulent stream. For many minutes the struggle between the light bubble in which they floated and the swift current was severe and doubtful. Forbidden to stir even a hand, and almost afraid to breath, lest they should expose the frail fabric to the fury of the stream, the passengers watched the glancing waters in feverish suspense. Twenty times they thought the whirling eddies were sweeping them to destruction, when the master-hand of their pilot would bring the bows of the canoe to stem the rapid. A long, a vigorous, and, as it appeared to the females, a desperate effort, closed the struggle. Just as Alice veiled her eyes in horror, under the impression that they were about to be swept within the vortex at the foot of the cataract, the canoe floated, stationary, at the side of a flat rock, that lay on a level with the water.

The horses had been tied to some scattered shrubs growing in the cracks of the rocks, where they stood in the water, left to spend the night. The scout instructed Heyward and his unhappy companions to sit in the front of the canoe while he took the back, sitting up straight and steady as if he were in a sturdier boat. The Indians carefully retraced their steps to the spot they had left when the scout, positioning his pole against a rock, pushed hard and sent his fragile canoe into the rushing stream. For many minutes, the battle between the little bubble they were in and the swift current was intense and uncertain. Forbidden to move even a hand, and nearly afraid to breathe to avoid risking the fragile boat to the angry waters, the passengers watched the fast-flowing water with anxious anticipation. Twenty times they thought the swirling eddies were going to pull them under, but the skill of their pilot kept the front of the canoe facing the rapids. A long, vigorous, and, from the women’s perspective, desperate effort marked the end of the fight. Just as Alice covered her eyes in horror, believing they were about to be sucked into the whirlpool at the bottom of the waterfall, the canoe floated, coming to rest beside a flat rock that was level with the water.

“Where are we, and what is next to be done!” demanded Heyward, perceiving that the exertions of the scout had ceased.

“Where are we, and what do we do next?” Heyward asked, noticing that the scout had stopped working.

“You are at the foot of Glenn’s,” returned the other, speaking aloud, without fear of consequences within the roar of the cataract; “and the next thing is to make a steady landing, lest the canoe upset, and you should go down again the hard road we have traveled faster than you came up; ’tis a hard rift to stem, when the river is a little swelled; and five is an unnatural number to keep dry, in a hurry-skurry, with a little birchen bark and gum. There, go you all on the rock, and I will bring up the Mohicans with the venison. A man had better sleep without his scalp, than famish in the midst of plenty.”

“You're at the bottom of Glenn’s,” replied the other, speaking aloud without worrying about the consequences over the sound of the waterfall; “and the next step is to make a smooth landing, so the canoe doesn’t tip over, and you end up going down the tough path we just traveled even faster than you came up; it’s a tough current to fight when the river’s a bit swollen; and five is an odd number to keep dry in a scramble with just some birch bark and gum. There, you all go over to the rock, and I’ll bring up the Mohicans with the deer meat. A guy would be better off sleeping without his scalp than starving in the middle of abundance.”

His passengers gladly complied with these directions. As the last foot touched the rock, the canoe whirled from its station, when the tall form of the scout was seen, for an instant, gliding above the waters, before it disappeared in the impenetrable darkness that rested on the bed of the river. Left by their guide, the travelers remained a few minutes in helpless ignorance, afraid even to move along the broken rocks, lest a false step should precipitate them down some one of the many deep and roaring caverns, into which the water seemed to tumble, on every side of them. Their suspense, however, was soon relieved; for, aided by the skill of the natives, the canoe shot back into the eddy, and floated again at the side of the low rock, before they thought the scout had even time to rejoin his companions.

His passengers happily followed these instructions. As the last foot hit the rock, the canoe spun away from its spot, and the tall figure of the scout was briefly seen gliding over the water before disappearing into the thick darkness that hung over the riverbed. Abandoned by their guide, the travelers stood for a few minutes in helpless confusion, afraid to move along the jagged rocks, worried that a wrong step might send them crashing into one of the many deep and roaring pits that the water seemed to plunge into on all sides. However, their anxiety was quickly eased; thanks to the skill of the locals, the canoe raced back into the eddy and floated next to the low rock again, before they even thought the scout would have time to rejoin his companions.

“We are now fortified, garrisoned, and provisioned,” cried Heyward cheerfully, “and may set Montcalm and his allies at defiance. How, now, my vigilant sentinel, can see anything of those you call the Iroquois, on the main land!”

“We're now all set up, well-guarded, and stocked with supplies,” shouted Heyward happily, “and we can now stand up to Montcalm and his allies. So, my watchful guard, can you see any of those you call the Iroquois on the mainland?”

“I call them Iroquois, because to me every native, who speaks a foreign tongue, is accounted an enemy, though he may pretend to serve the king! If Webb wants faith and honesty in an Indian, let him bring out the tribes of the Delawares, and send these greedy and lying Mohawks and Oneidas, with their six nations of varlets, where in nature they belong, among the French!”

“I call them Iroquois because, to me, anyone native who speaks a foreign language is considered an enemy, even if they claim to serve the king! If Webb wants faith and honesty from an Indian, he should bring out the Delaware tribes and send these greedy and deceitful Mohawks and Oneidas, along with their six nations of scoundrels, back to where they naturally belong, among the French!”

“We should then exchange a warlike for a useless friend! I have heard that the Delawares have laid aside the hatchet, and are content to be called women!”

“We should then trade a hostile friend for a useless one! I’ve heard that the Delawares have put down their weapons and are okay with being called women!”

“Aye, shame on the Hollanders and Iroquois, who circumvented them by their deviltries, into such a treaty! But I have known them for twenty years, and I call him liar that says cowardly blood runs in the veins of a Delaware. You have driven their tribes from the seashore, and would now believe what their enemies say, that you may sleep at night upon an easy pillow. No, no; to me, every Indian who speaks a foreign tongue is an Iroquois, whether the castle[1] of his tribe be in Canada, or be in York.”

“Aye, shame on the Dutch and Iroquois, who tricked them with their schemes into such a treaty! But I've known them for twenty years, and I call anyone a liar who says there’s cowardice in the blood of a Delaware. You’ve pushed their tribes away from the coast, and now you’d believe what their enemies say just so you can sleep soundly at night. No, no; to me, every Indian who speaks another language is an Iroquois, whether the stronghold of his tribe is in Canada or in York.”

[1] The principal villages of the Indians are still called “castles” by the whites of New York. “Oneida castle” is no more than a scattered hamlet; but the name is in general use.

[1] The main villages of the Native Americans are still referred to as “castles” by the white people in New York. “Oneida castle” is really just a small community, but the name is widely used.

Heyward, perceiving that the stubborn adherence of the scout to the cause of his friends the Delawares, or Mohicans, for they were branches of the same numerous people, was likely to prolong a useless discussion, changed the subject.

Heyward, noticing that the scout's stubborn loyalty to his friends the Delawares, or Mohicans, since they were branches of the same large group, was likely to drag out a pointless conversation, switched topics.

“Treaty or no treaty, I know full well that your two companions are brave and cautious warriors! have they heard or seen anything of our enemies?”

“Treaty or no treaty, I know very well that your two friends are brave and careful fighters! Have they heard or seen anything about our enemies?”

“An Indian is a mortal to be felt afore he is seen,” returned the scout, ascending the rock, and throwing the deer carelessly down. “I trust to other signs than such as come in at the eye, when I am outlying on the trail of the Mingoes.”

“An Indian is someone you can sense before you actually see them,” replied the scout, climbing the rock and tossing the deer aside casually. “I rely on other clues besides what I can see when I’m tracking the Mingoes.”

“Do your ears tell you that they have traced our retreat?”

“Do your ears say that they have followed our escape?”

“I should be sorry to think they had, though this is a spot that stout courage might hold for a smart scrimmage. I will not deny, however, but the horses cowered when I passed them, as though they scented the wolves; and a wolf is a beast that is apt to hover about an Indian ambushment, craving the offals of the deer the savages kill.”

“I would hate to think they did, even though this is a place where strong courage could stand up to a tough fight. I won't deny, though, that the horses flinched as I walked by, as if they could smell the wolves; and a wolf is an animal that tends to hang around Native American ambushes, looking for the remains of the deer that the hunters kill.”

“You forget the buck at your feet! or, may we not owe their visit to the dead colt? Ha! what noise is that?”

“You're forgetting the deer at your feet! Or could their visit be because of the dead colt? Ha! What was that noise?”

“Poor Miriam!” murmured the stranger; “thy foal was foreordained to become a prey to ravenous beasts!” Then, suddenly lifting up his voice, amid the eternal din of the waters, he sang aloud:

“Poor Miriam!” whispered the stranger; “your foal was meant to fall victim to hungry beasts!” Then, suddenly raising his voice, amid the constant noise of the waters, he sang out:

“First born of Egypt, smite did he,
Of mankind, and of beast also:
O, Egypt! wonders sent ’midst thee,
On Pharaoh and his servants too!”

“Firstborn of Egypt, he struck down,
Both people and animals:
Oh, Egypt! Wonders were sent among you,
On Pharaoh and his servants too!”

“The death of the colt sits heavy on the heart of its owner,” said the scout; “but it’s a good sign to see a man account upon his dumb friends. He has the religion of the matter, in believing what is to happen will happen; and with such a consolation, it won’t be long afore he submits to the rationality of killing a four-footed beast to save the lives of human men. It may be as you say,” he continued, reverting to the purport of Heyward’s last remark; “and the greater the reason why we should cut our steaks, and let the carcass drive down the stream, or we shall have the pack howling along the cliffs, begrudging every mouthful we swallow. Besides, though the Delaware tongue is the same as a book to the Iroquois, the cunning varlets are quick enough at understanding the reason of a wolf’s howl.”

“The death of the colt weighs heavily on its owner's heart,” said the scout. “But it’s a good sign to see a man caring about his silent companions. He has a certain belief that whatever will happen, will happen; and with that comfort, it won’t be long before he accepts the logic of killing a four-legged animal to save human lives. It could be as you say,” he continued, going back to the point of Heyward’s last comment, “and the more reason we have to cut our steaks and let the carcass drift downstream, or we’ll have the pack howling along the cliffs, resenting every bite we take. Plus, even though the Delaware language is as clear as a book to the Iroquois, those clever tricksters are quick to understand the reason behind a wolf’s howl.”

The scout, while making his remarks, was busied in collecting certain necessary implements; as he concluded, he moved silently by the group of travelers, accompanied by the Mohicans, who seemed to comprehend his intentions with instinctive readiness, when the whole three disappeared in succession, seeming to vanish against the dark face of a perpendicular rock that rose to the height of a few yards, within as many feet of the water’s edge.

The scout, while making his comments, was busy gathering some essential tools; as he finished, he quietly passed the group of travelers, accompanied by the Mohicans, who seemed to instinctively understand what he was up to. Then all three quickly vanished, blending into the dark surface of a steep rock that rose a few yards high, just a few feet from the water's edge.

CHAPTER VI.

“Those strains that once did sweet in Zion glide;
He wales a portion with judicious care;
And ‘Let us worship God’, he says, with solemn air.”—Burns

“Those melodies that once flowed sweetly in Zion;
He chooses a part with thoughtful attention;
And ‘Let us worship God,’ he says, with a serious expression.”—Burns

Heyward and his female companions witnessed this mysterious movement with secret uneasiness; for, though the conduct of the white man had hitherto been above reproach, his rude equipments, blunt address, and strong antipathies, together with the character of his silent associates, were all causes for exciting distrust in minds that had been so recently alarmed by Indian treachery.

Heyward and his female companions observed this strange movement with hidden unease; even though the white man's behavior had been beyond reproach until now, his rough appearance, straightforward manner, and strong dislikes, along with the nature of his quiet companions, all stirred feelings of distrust in minds that had recently been unsettled by Indian treachery.

The stranger alone disregarded the passing incidents. He seated himself on a projection of the rocks, whence he gave no other signs of consciousness than by the struggles of his spirit, as manifested in frequent and heavy sighs. Smothered voices were next heard, as though men called to each other in the bowels of the earth, when a sudden light flashed upon those without, and laid bare the much-prized secret of the place.

The stranger seemed completely unfazed by what was happening around him. He sat on a ledge of the rocks, showing no signs of awareness except for the deep, heavy sighs that revealed his inner turmoil. Then, muffled voices could be heard, like men calling out to each other from deep within the earth, when a sudden light burst forth for those outside, revealing the valuable secret of the location.

At the further extremity of a narrow, deep cavern in the rock, whose length appeared much extended by the perspective and the nature of the light by which it was seen, was seated the scout, holding a blazing knot of pine. The strong glare of the fire fell full upon his sturdy, weather-beaten countenance and forest attire, lending an air of romantic wildness to the aspect of an individual, who, seen by the sober light of day, would have exhibited the peculiarities of a man remarkable for the strangeness of his dress, the iron-like inflexibility of his frame, and the singular compound of quick, vigilant sagacity, and of exquisite simplicity, that by turns usurped the possession of his muscular features. At a little distance in advance stood Uncas, his whole person thrown powerfully into view. The travelers anxiously regarded the upright, flexible figure of the young Mohican, graceful and unrestrained in the attitudes and movements of nature. Though his person was more than usually screened by a green and fringed hunting-shirt, like that of the white man, there was no concealment to his dark, glancing, fearless eye, alike terrible and calm; the bold outline of his high, haughty features, pure in their native red; or to the dignified elevation of his receding forehead, together with all the finest proportions of a noble head, bared to the generous scalping tuft. It was the first opportunity possessed by Duncan and his companions to view the marked lineaments of either of their Indian attendants, and each individual of the party felt relieved from a burden of doubt, as the proud and determined, though wild expression of the features of the young warrior forced itself on their notice. They felt it might be a being partially benighted in the vale of ignorance, but it could not be one who would willingly devote his rich natural gifts to the purposes of wanton treachery. The ingenuous Alice gazed at his free air and proud carriage, as she would have looked upon some precious relic of the Grecian chisel, to which life had been imparted by the intervention of a miracle; while Heyward, though accustomed to see the perfection of form which abounds among the uncorrupted natives, openly expressed his admiration at such an unblemished specimen of the noblest proportions of man.

At the far end of a narrow, deep cave in the rock, which seemed longer due to the perspective and the type of light illuminating it, sat the scout, holding a blazing stick of pine. The bright light from the fire illuminated his rugged, weathered face and outdoor clothing, giving him an air of romantic wildness. If seen in the clear light of day, he would have appeared as a man notable for the unusualness of his outfit, the unyielding stiffness of his frame, and the strange mix of sharp, watchful intelligence and pure simplicity that alternately took over his strong features. A little ahead stood Uncas, his whole figure prominently displayed. The travelers watched intently as they observed the upright, flexible figure of the young Mohican, graceful and unrestrained in his natural movements. Although his form was mostly hidden by a green, fringed hunting shirt similar to that of a white man, there was no masking his dark, piercing, fearless eye, which was both terrifying and calm; the bold outline of his high, proud features, pure in their native red; or the dignified slope of his forehead, along with all the finest characteristics of a noble head, topped by a distinctive scalping tuft. This was the first chance Duncan and his companions had to see the distinct features of either of their Indian guides, and each member of the group felt a weight lifted off their shoulders as the proud and determined yet wild expression of the young warrior drew their attention. They realized he might be someone partially lost in ignorance, but he could never be one who would willingly use his valuable natural gifts for treacherous purposes. The innocent Alice gazed at his free spirit and proud demeanor as if she were looking at some precious relic of ancient Greece brought to life by a miracle, while Heyward, though used to the beauty of the untainted natives, openly voiced his admiration for such an unblemished example of the finest human proportions.

“I could sleep in peace,” whispered Alice, in reply, “with such a fearless and generous-looking youth for my sentinel. Surely, Duncan, those cruel murders, those terrific scenes of torture, of which we read and hear so much, are never acted in the presence of such as he!”

“I could sleep peacefully,” whispered Alice in response, “with such a brave and kind-hearted young man as my guard. Surely, Duncan, those brutal murders, those horrific scenes of torture that we read and hear so much about, are never carried out in the presence of someone like him!”

“This certainly is a rare and brilliant instance of those natural qualities in which these peculiar people are said to excel,” he answered. “I agree with you, Alice, in thinking that such a front and eye were formed rather to intimidate than to deceive; but let us not practice a deception upon ourselves, by expecting any other exhibition of what we esteem virtue than according to the fashion of the savage. As bright examples of great qualities are but too uncommon among Christians, so are they singular and solitary with the Indians; though, for the honor of our common nature, neither are incapable of producing them. Let us then hope that this Mohican may not disappoint our wishes, but prove what his looks assert him to be, a brave and constant friend.”

“This is definitely a rare and impressive example of the natural traits these unique people are said to excel in,” he replied. “I agree with you, Alice, in believing that such a face and eyes are meant more to intimidate than to deceive; but let’s not fool ourselves by expecting any display of what we consider virtue other than what is characteristic of the savage. Just as shining examples of great qualities are all too rare among Christians, they are equally few and far between among the Indians; although, for the sake of our shared humanity, neither is incapable of producing them. So let’s hope that this Mohican won’t let us down and truly be what his appearance suggests: a brave and loyal friend.”

“Now Major Heyward speaks as Major Heyward should,” said Cora; “who that looks at this creature of nature, remembers the shade of his skin?”

“Now Major Heyward is speaking like he should,” said Cora; “who looks at this natural being and thinks about the color of his skin?”

A short and apparently an embarrassed silence succeeded this remark, which was interrupted by the scout calling to them, aloud, to enter.

A brief and seemingly awkward silence followed this comment, which was broken when the scout called out to them to come in.

“This fire begins to show too bright a flame,” he continued, as they complied, “and might light the Mingoes to our undoing. Uncas, drop the blanket, and show the knaves its dark side. This is not such a supper as a major of the Royal Americans has a right to expect, but I’ve known stout detachments of the corps glad to eat their venison raw, and without a relish, too[1]. Here, you see, we have plenty of salt, and can make a quick broil. There’s fresh sassafras boughs for the ladies to sit on, which may not be as proud as their my-hog-guinea chairs, but which sends up a sweeter flavor, than the skin of any hog can do, be it of Guinea, or be it of any other land. Come, friend, don’t be mournful for the colt; ’twas an innocent thing, and had not seen much hardship. Its death will save the creature many a sore back and weary foot!”

“This fire is getting a bit too bright,” he continued, as they complied, “and it might attract the Mingoes and lead to our downfall. Uncas, drop the blanket and show those fools the dark side. This isn’t the kind of meal a major of the Royal Americans should expect, but I’ve seen tough units happy to eat their venison raw, without any seasoning, too[1]. Here, you see, we have plenty of salt, and can make a quick grill. There are fresh sassafras branches for the ladies to sit on, which might not be as fancy as their fancy chairs, but they give off a sweeter smell than the skin of any hog, whether it's from Guinea or anywhere else. Come on, friend, don’t be sad about the colt; it was an innocent creature and hadn’t faced much hardship. Its death will spare it many sore backs and tired feet!”

[1] In vulgar parlance the condiments of a repast are called by the American “a relish,” substituting the thing for its effect. These provincial terms are frequently put in the mouths of the speakers, according to their several conditions in life. Most of them are of local use, and others quite peculiar to the particular class of men to which the character belongs. In the present instance, the scout uses the word with immediate reference to the “salt,” with which his own party was so fortunate as to be provided.

[1] In everyday language, Americans refer to the toppings of a meal as “a relish,” using the term to describe its impact rather than the actual item. These regional terms are often reflective of the speakers’ different social statuses. Many of them are specific to certain areas, while others are unique to the particular group of people to which the character belongs. In this case, the scout uses the term specifically to refer to the “salt” that his group was lucky enough to have.

Uncas did as the other had directed, and when the voice of Hawkeye ceased, the roar of the cataract sounded like the rumbling of distant thunder.

Uncas followed the other's instructions, and when Hawkeye's voice stopped, the roar of the waterfall sounded like the rumble of distant thunder.

“Are we quite safe in this cavern?” demanded Heyward. “Is there no danger of surprise? A single armed man, at its entrance, would hold us at his mercy.”

“Are we really safe in this cave?” Heyward asked. “Is there no risk of being caught off guard? Just one armed man at the entrance could have us completely at his mercy.”

A spectral-looking figure stalked from out of the darkness behind the scout, and seizing a blazing brand, held it toward the further extremity of their place of retreat. Alice uttered a faint shriek, and even Cora rose to her feet, as this appalling object moved into the light; but a single word from Heyward calmed them, with the assurance it was only their attendant, Chingachgook, who, lifting another blanket, discovered that the cavern had two outlets. Then, holding the brand, he crossed a deep, narrow chasm in the rocks which ran at right angles with the passage they were in, but which, unlike that, was open to the heavens, and entered another cave, answering to the description of the first, in every essential particular.

A ghostly figure emerged from the darkness behind the scout, and grabbing a flaming torch, held it toward the far end of their hiding place. Alice let out a faint scream, and even Cora stood up as this terrifying figure stepped into the light; but a single word from Heyward reassured them that it was just their companion, Chingachgook, who, lifting another blanket, revealed that the cavern had two exits. Then, holding the torch, he crossed a deep, narrow chasm in the rocks that ran at a right angle to the passage they were in, but unlike that one, it was open to the sky, leading into another cave that matched the first in every important way.

“Such old foxes as Chingachgook and myself are not often caught in a barrow with one hole,” said Hawkeye, laughing; “you can easily see the cunning of the place—the rock is black limestone, which everybody knows is soft; it makes no uncomfortable pillow, where brush and pine wood is scarce; well, the fall was once a few yards below us, and I dare to say was, in its time, as regular and as handsome a sheet of water as any along the Hudson. But old age is a great injury to good looks, as these sweet young ladies have yet to l’arn! The place is sadly changed! These rocks are full of cracks, and in some places they are softer than at othersome, and the water has worked out deep hollows for itself, until it has fallen back, ay, some hundred feet, breaking here and wearing there, until the falls have neither shape nor consistency.”

“Old foxes like Chingachgook and me don’t usually get caught in a trap with only one exit,” Hawkeye said, laughing. “You can easily see how clever the spot is—the rock is black limestone, which everyone knows is soft; it makes a pretty comfortable pillow when brush and pine wood are hard to find. Well, the falls used to be just a few yards below us, and I dare say it used to be as regular and beautiful a waterfall as any along the Hudson. But aging does a real number on good looks, as these sweet young ladies still have to learn! The place has changed a lot! These rocks are full of cracks, and in some spots they’re softer than in others, and the water has carved out deep hollows for itself, until it has receded, yes, several hundred feet, breaking off here and wearing away there, until the falls have no shape or consistency.”

“In what part of them are we?” asked Heyward.

“In what part of them are we?” asked Heyward.

“Why, we are nigh the spot that Providence first placed them at, but where, it seems, they were too rebellious to stay. The rock proved softer on each side of us, and so they left the center of the river bare and dry, first working out these two little holes for us to hide in.”

“Why, we are almost at the place that Providence first put them, but it seems they were too rebellious to stay. The rock became softer on each side of us, so they left the center of the river exposed and dry, first creating these two little holes for us to hide in.”

“We are then on an island!”

"We're on an island now!"

“Ay! there are the falls on two sides of us, and the river above and below. If you had daylight, it would be worth the trouble to step up on the height of this rock, and look at the perversity of the water. It falls by no rule at all; sometimes it leaps, sometimes it tumbles; there it skips; here it shoots; in one place ’tis white as snow, and in another ’tis green as grass; hereabouts, it pitches into deep hollows, that rumble and crush the ’arth; and thereaways, it ripples and sings like a brook, fashioning whirlpools and gullies in the old stone, as if ’twas no harder than trodden clay. The whole design of the river seems disconcerted. First it runs smoothly, as if meaning to go down the descent as things were ordered; then it angles about and faces the shores; nor are there places wanting where it looks backward, as if unwilling to leave the wilderness, to mingle with the salt. Ay, lady, the fine cobweb-looking cloth you wear at your throat is coarse, and like a fishnet, to little spots I can show you, where the river fabricates all sorts of images, as if having broke loose from order, it would try its hand at everything. And yet what does it amount to! After the water has been suffered so to have its will, for a time, like a headstrong man, it is gathered together by the hand that made it, and a few rods below you may see it all, flowing on steadily toward the sea, as was foreordained from the first foundation of the ’arth!”

“Ay! There are the falls on both sides of us, and the river above and below. If it were daytime, it would be worth the effort to climb up on this rock and watch how the water behaves. It flows with no pattern at all; sometimes it leaps, sometimes it tumbles; there it skips; here it shoots; in one spot it’s white as snow, and in another it’s green as grass; around here, it crashes into deep hollows that rumble and shake the earth; and over there, it ripples and sings like a brook, creating whirlpools and troughs in the old stone, as if it were as soft as clay. The whole flow of the river seems disrupted. First, it runs smoothly, as if it plans to peacefully go down the slope; then it angles around and curves toward the banks; there are even places where it looks back, as if reluctant to leave the wilderness and mix with the salty sea. Ay, lady, the delicate cloth you wear around your neck is coarse and resembles a fishnet, compared to little spots I can show you, where the river creates all sorts of images, as if breaking free from order, it wants to try everything. And yet, what does it really mean? After the water is allowed to do its thing for a while, like a stubborn man, it is gathered back by the hand that created it, and a little ways downstream, you can see it all flowing steadily toward the sea, just as it was meant to from the very beginning of the earth!”

While his auditors received a cheering assurance of the security of their place of concealment from this untutored description of Glenn’s,[2] they were much inclined to judge differently from Hawkeye, of its wild beauties. But they were not in a situation to suffer their thoughts to dwell on the charms of natural objects; and, as the scout had not found it necessary to cease his culinary labors while he spoke, unless to point out, with a broken fork, the direction of some particularly obnoxious point in the rebellious stream, they now suffered their attention to be drawn to the necessary though more vulgar consideration of their supper.

While his listeners received a reassuring assurance about the safety of their hiding spot from Glenn's unrefined description, they leaned toward a different opinion than Hawkeye regarding its wild beauty. However, they weren't in a position to focus on the allure of nature, and since the scout saw no reason to stop cooking while he talked—except to use a broken fork to indicate a particularly troublesome spot in the unruly stream—they turned their attention to the more practical, though less glamorous, matter of their dinner.

[2] Glenn’s Falls are on the Hudson, some forty or fifty miles above the head of tide, or that place where the river becomes navigable for sloops. The description of this picturesque and remarkable little cataract, as given by the scout, is sufficiently correct, though the application of the water to uses of civilized life has materially injured its beauties. The rocky island and the two caverns are known to every traveler, since the former sustains the pier of a bridge, which is now thrown across the river, immediately above the fall. In explanation of the taste of Hawkeye, it should be remembered that men always prize that most which is least enjoyed. Thus, in a new country, the woods and other objects, which in an old country would be maintained at great cost, are got rid of, simply with a view of “improving” as it is called.

[2] Glenn’s Falls are on the Hudson River, about forty or fifty miles upstream from where the tide reaches, or the spot where the river is deep enough for sloops to navigate. The way the scout describes this beautiful and notable little waterfall is quite accurate, although using the water for modern purposes has significantly affected its natural charm. The rocky island and the two caves are familiar to every traveler, since the island supports a bridge that has been built across the river just above the falls. To understand Hawkeye’s taste, it’s important to remember that people tend to value what they have less access to. So, in a developing area, the natural features that would be preserved at great expense in an older place are often removed just for the sake of so-called "improvement."

The repast, which was greatly aided by the addition of a few delicacies that Heyward had the precaution to bring with him when they left their horses, was exceedingly refreshing to the weary party. Uncas acted as attendant to the females, performing all the little offices within his power, with a mixture of dignity and anxious grace, that served to amuse Heyward, who well knew that it was an utter innovation on the Indian customs, which forbid their warriors to descend to any menial employment, especially in favor of their women. As the rights of hospitality were, however, considered sacred among them, this little departure from the dignity of manhood excited no audible comment. Had there been one there sufficiently disengaged to become a close observer, he might have fancied that the services of the young chief were not entirely impartial. That while he tendered to Alice the gourd of sweet water, and the venison in a trencher, neatly carved from the knot of the pepperidge, with sufficient courtesy, in performing the same offices to her sister, his dark eye lingered on her rich, speaking countenance. Once or twice he was compelled to speak, to command the attention of those he served. In such cases he made use of English, broken and imperfect, but sufficiently intelligible, and which he rendered so mild and musical, by his deep, guttural voice, that it never failed to cause both ladies to look up in admiration and astonishment. In the course of these civilities, a few sentences were exchanged, that served to establish the appearance of an amicable intercourse between the parties.

The meal, which was greatly enhanced by some treats that Heyward had the foresight to bring when they left their horses, was incredibly refreshing for the tired group. Uncas took care of the women, doing all the little things he could with a blend of dignity and eager grace that amused Heyward, who knew it was a total break from Indian customs that forbade their warriors from doing any menial tasks, especially for their women. However, since the rules of hospitality were considered sacred among them, this small deviation from the dignity of manhood drew no audible comments. If someone had been close enough to observe closely, they might have thought that the young chief's attentions weren’t completely impartial. While he offered Alice the gourd of sweet water and the venison on a neatly carved trencher from the pepperidge knot with courtesy, his dark eyes lingered on her beautiful, expressive face as he did the same for her sister. A couple of times, he had to speak to get the attention of those he was serving. In those moments, he used English, which was broken and imperfect but understandable enough. He made it so soft and melodic with his deep, guttural voice that it always made both ladies look up in admiration and surprise. During these polite exchanges, a few sentences were shared that helped create the impression of a friendly interaction between the groups.

In the meanwhile, the gravity of Chingcachgook remained immovable. He had seated himself more within the circle of light, where the frequent, uneasy glances of his guests were better enabled to separate the natural expression of his face from the artificial terrors of the war paint. They found a strong resemblance between father and son, with the difference that might be expected from age and hardships. The fierceness of his countenance now seemed to slumber, and in its place was to be seen the quiet, vacant composure which distinguishes an Indian warrior, when his faculties are not required for any of the greater purposes of his existence. It was, however, easy to be seen, by the occasional gleams that shot across his swarthy visage, that it was only necessary to arouse his passions, in order to give full effect to the terrific device which he had adopted to intimidate his enemies. On the other hand, the quick, roving eye of the scout seldom rested. He ate and drank with an appetite that no sense of danger could disturb, but his vigilance seemed never to desert him. Twenty times the gourd or the venison was suspended before his lips, while his head was turned aside, as though he listened to some distant and distrusted sounds—a movement that never failed to recall his guests from regarding the novelties of their situation, to a recollection of the alarming reasons that had driven them to seek it. As these frequent pauses were never followed by any remark, the momentary uneasiness they created quickly passed away, and for a time was forgotten.

Meanwhile, Chingachgook's seriousness remained unwavering. He had positioned himself deeper into the light, allowing his guests to distinguish the natural expression on his face from the artificial horrors of the war paint. They noticed a strong resemblance between father and son, with the expected differences due to age and hardship. The fierceness in his expression now seemed to be at rest, replaced by the calm, vacant demeanor that characterizes an Indian warrior when he doesn't need to be engaged in the more significant aspects of his existence. However, it was clear from the occasional flashes across his dark face that it would only take a spark to awaken his emotions, giving full force to the frightening appearance he had adopted to intimidate his foes. On the other hand, the scout’s quick, wandering gaze seldom settled. He ate and drank with an appetite that no sense of danger could shake, but his vigilance never wavered. Twenty times, the gourd or venison was brought to his lips while he turned his head away, as if listening to some distant and unsettling sounds—a movement that always brought his guests back from their wonder at their unusual surroundings to the troubling reasons that had led them there. Since these frequent pauses were never followed by any comment, the brief uneasiness they caused quickly faded away and was soon forgotten.

“Come, friend,” said Hawkeye, drawing out a keg from beneath a cover of leaves, toward the close of the repast, and addressing the stranger who sat at his elbow, doing great justice to his culinary skill, “try a little spruce; ’twill wash away all thoughts of the colt, and quicken the life in your bosom. I drink to our better friendship, hoping that a little horse-flesh may leave no heart-burnings atween us. How do you name yourself?”

“Come on, buddy,” said Hawkeye, pulling out a keg from under some leaves as the meal was winding down and speaking to the stranger sitting next to him, who was enjoying his cooking, “try some spruce beer; it’ll wash away any thoughts of the horse and boost the spirit in your heart. I toast to our growing friendship, hoping that a bit of horse meat won’t cause any hard feelings between us. What’s your name?”

“Gamut—David Gamut,” returned the singing master, preparing to wash down his sorrows in a powerful draught of the woodsman’s high-flavored and well-laced compound.

“Gamut—David Gamut,” replied the singing master, getting ready to drown his sorrows in a strong drink of the woodsman’s flavorful and well-mixed concoction.

“A very good name, and, I dare say, handed down from honest forefathers. I’m an admirator of names, though the Christian fashions fall far below savage customs in this particular. The biggest coward I ever knew was called Lyon; and his wife, Patience, would scold you out of hearing in less time than a hunted deer would run a rod. With an Indian ’tis a matter of conscience; what he calls himself, he generally is—not that Chingachgook, which signifies Big Sarpent, is really a snake, big or little; but that he understands the windings and turnings of human natur’, and is silent, and strikes his enemies when they least expect him. What may be your calling?”

“A very good name, and I dare say, it’s been passed down from honest ancestors. I’m a fan of names, although Christian names don't quite match the uniqueness of savage customs in this regard. The biggest coward I ever knew was named Lyon; and his wife, Patience, could scold you so loudly you'd barely hear yourself think in the time it takes for a hunted deer to run a short distance. With an Indian, it’s a matter of integrity; what he names himself is usually what he truly is—not that Chingachgook, which means Big Serpent, is actually a snake, big or small; but he knows the twists and turns of human nature, stays quiet, and strikes his enemies when they least expect it. What do you do for a living?”

“I am an unworthy instructor in the art of psalmody.”

“I am not a great teacher in the art of psalm singing.”

“Anan!”

“Anan!”

“I teach singing to the youths of the Connecticut levy.”

“I teach singing to the young people of the Connecticut levy.”

“You might be better employed. The young hounds go laughing and singing too much already through the woods, when they ought not to breathe louder than a fox in his cover. Can you use the smoothbore, or handle the rifle?”

“You could be doing something more useful. The young hounds are already laughing and singing too much in the woods when they should be as quiet as a fox in his den. Can you use the shotgun, or handle the rifle?”

“Praised be God, I have never had occasion to meddle with murderous implements!”

“Thank God, I have never had to deal with weapons meant to kill!”

“Perhaps you understand the compass, and lay down the watercourses and mountains of the wilderness on paper, in order that they who follow may find places by their given names?”

“Maybe you get the compass and map out the rivers and mountains of the wild on paper so that those who come after can find locations by their names?”

“I practice no such employment.”

“I don’t do that job.”

“You have a pair of legs that might make a long path seem short! you journey sometimes, I fancy, with tidings for the general.”

“You have a pair of legs that could make a long journey feel short! I imagine you travel sometimes with news for everyone.”

“Never; I follow no other than my own high vocation, which is instruction in sacred music!”

“Never! I only follow my own calling, which is teaching sacred music!”

“’Tis a strange calling!” muttered Hawkeye, with an inward laugh, “to go through life, like a catbird, mocking all the ups and downs that may happen to come out of other men’s throats. Well, friend, I suppose it is your gift, and mustn’t be denied any more than if ’twas shooting, or some other better inclination. Let us hear what you can do in that way; ’twill be a friendly manner of saying good-night, for ’tis time that these ladies should be getting strength for a hard and a long push, in the pride of the morning, afore the Maquas are stirring.”

“It’s a strange job!” Hawkeye muttered, with a silent laugh, “to go through life, like a mockingbird, imitating all the ups and downs that might come from other people’s mouths. Well, my friend, I guess it’s your talent, and it shouldn’t be dismissed any more than if it were shooting or some other better skill. Let’s see what you can do in that way; it’ll be a friendly way to say goodnight, since it’s time these ladies should gather their strength for a tough and long day ahead, before the Maquas start moving.”

“With joyful pleasure do I consent”, said David, adjusting his iron-rimmed spectacles, and producing his beloved little volume, which he immediately tendered to Alice. “What can be more fitting and consolatory, than to offer up evening praise, after a day of such exceeding jeopardy!”

“With great joy, I agree,” said David, adjusting his metal-rimmed glasses and pulling out his cherished little book, which he handed to Alice. “What could be more fitting and comforting than to offer evening praise after a day full of danger!”

Alice smiled; but, regarding Heyward, she blushed and hesitated.

Alice smiled; however, when she looked at Heyward, she blushed and hesitated.

“Indulge yourself,” he whispered; “ought not the suggestion of the worthy namesake of the Psalmist to have its weight at such a moment?”

“Treat yourself,” he whispered; “shouldn’t the recommendation of the esteemed namesake of the Psalmist carry some weight at a time like this?”

Encouraged by his opinion, Alice did what her pious inclinations, and her keen relish for gentle sounds, had before so strongly urged. The book was open at a hymn not ill adapted to their situation, and in which the poet, no longer goaded by his desire to excel the inspired King of Israel, had discovered some chastened and respectable powers. Cora betrayed a disposition to support her sister, and the sacred song proceeded, after the indispensable preliminaries of the pitchpipe, and the tune had been duly attended to by the methodical David.

Encouraged by his thoughts, Alice acted on her religious instincts and her love for gentle sounds that had previously urged her strongly. The book was open to a hymn that fit their situation well, where the poet, no longer driven by the need to outshine the inspired King of Israel, had shown some refined and respectable talent. Cora showed a willingness to back her sister, and the sacred song began after the necessary warm-up with the pitchpipe, and the tune had been properly managed by the organized David.

The air was solemn and slow. At times it rose to the fullest compass of the rich voices of the females, who hung over their little book in holy excitement, and again it sank so low, that the rushing of the waters ran through their melody, like a hollow accompaniment. The natural taste and true ear of David governed and modified the sounds to suit the confined cavern, every crevice and cranny of which was filled with the thrilling notes of their flexible voices. The Indians riveted their eyes on the rocks, and listened with an attention that seemed to turn them into stone. But the scout, who had placed his chin in his hand, with an expression of cold indifference, gradually suffered his rigid features to relax, until, as verse succeeded verse, he felt his iron nature subdued, while his recollection was carried back to boyhood, when his ears had been accustomed to listen to similar sounds of praise, in the settlements of the colony. His roving eyes began to moisten, and before the hymn was ended scalding tears rolled out of fountains that had long seemed dry, and followed each other down those cheeks, that had oftener felt the storms of heaven than any testimonials of weakness. The singers were dwelling on one of those low, dying chords, which the ear devours with such greedy rapture, as if conscious that it is about to lose them, when a cry, that seemed neither human nor earthly, rose in the outward air, penetrating not only the recesses of the cavern, but to the inmost hearts of all who heard it. It was followed by a stillness apparently as deep as if the waters had been checked in their furious progress, at such a horrid and unusual interruption.

The atmosphere was serious and slow. At times, it swelled with the powerful voices of the women, who leaned over their little book in holy excitement, and then it would drop so low that the rush of the water blended with their melody, like a hollow background. David's natural talent and true ear shaped the sounds to fit the cramped cave, every crevice and corner filled with the thrilling notes of their flexible voices. The Indians stared at the rocks, listening with an intensity that seemed to turn them into stone. But the scout, who had rested his chin on his hand with a look of cold indifference, gradually let his stiff features soften, and as the verses flowed on, he felt his hardened nature give way, while memories of his childhood returned, when his ears were used to similar songs of praise in the colony's settlements. His wandering eyes began to fill with tears, and before the hymn ended, hot tears streamed down cheeks that had more often endured storms than shown any sign of weakness. The singers lingered on one of those low, fading chords that the ear eagerly consumes, as if aware it’s about to lose them, when a cry arose that sounded neither human nor earthly. It pierced not just the depths of the cave, but the innermost hearts of everyone who heard it. This was followed by a silence as profound as if the waters had halted in their furious flow at such a terrifying and unusual interruption.

“What is it?” murmured Alice, after a few moments of terrible suspense.

“What is it?” whispered Alice, after a few moments of intense suspense.

[Illustration]

“What is it?” murmured Alice, after a few moments of terrible suspense.

“What is it?” Alice murmured after a few moments of intense suspense.

“What is it?” repeated Hewyard aloud.

“What is it?” Hewyard repeated aloud.

Neither Hawkeye nor the Indians made any reply. They listened, as if expecting the sound would be repeated, with a manner that expressed their own astonishment. At length they spoke together, earnestly, in the Delaware language, when Uncas, passing by the inner and most concealed aperture, cautiously left the cavern. When he had gone, the scout first spoke in English.

Neither Hawkeye nor the Indians responded. They listened, as if anticipating the sound would happen again, their expressions revealing their own surprise. Finally, they spoke together, earnestly, in the Delaware language, as Uncas, slipping through the innermost and most hidden opening, carefully exited the cavern. Once he was gone, the scout was the first to speak in English.

“What it is, or what it is not, none here can tell, though two of us have ranged the woods for more than thirty years. I did believe there was no cry that Indian or beast could make, that my ears had not heard; but this has proved that I was only a vain and conceited mortal.”

“What it is, or what it isn’t, no one here can say, even though two of us have explored the woods for over thirty years. I used to think there was no sound that an Indian or beast could make that I hadn’t heard; but this has shown that I was just a proud and foolish person.”

“Was it not, then, the shout the warriors make when they wish to intimidate their enemies?” asked Cora who stood drawing her veil about her person, with a calmness to which her agitated sister was a stranger.

“Was it not, then, the shout that warriors make when they want to scare their enemies?” asked Cora, who stood wrapping her veil around herself, with a calmness that her anxious sister lacked.

“No, no; this was bad, and shocking, and had a sort of unhuman sound; but when you once hear the war-whoop, you will never mistake it for anything else. Well, Uncas!” speaking in Delaware to the young chief as he re-entered, “what see you? do our lights shine through the blankets?”

“No, no; this was bad and shocking, and it had an almost inhuman sound; but once you hear the war-whoop, you’ll never confuse it with anything else. Well, Uncas!” he said in Delaware to the young chief as he came back in, “what do you see? Do our lights shine through the blankets?”

The answer was short, and apparently decided, being given in the same tongue.

The response was brief and clearly final, spoken in the same language.

“There is nothing to be seen without,” continued Hawkeye, shaking his head in discontent; “and our hiding-place is still in darkness. Pass into the other cave, you that need it, and seek for sleep; we must be afoot long before the sun, and make the most of our time to get to Edward, while the Mingoes are taking their morning nap.”

“There’s nothing to see outside,” continued Hawkeye, shaking his head in frustration; “and our hiding place is still in the dark. Go into the other cave if you need to, and try to sleep; we need to be up long before sunrise and make the most of our time to reach Edward while the Mingoes are still asleep.”

Cora set the example of compliance, with a steadiness that taught the more timid Alice the necessity of obedience. Before leaving the place, however, she whispered a request to Duncan, that he would follow. Uncas raised the blanket for their passage, and as the sisters turned to thank him for this act of attention, they saw the scout seated again before the dying embers, with his face resting on his hands, in a manner which showed how deeply he brooded on the unaccountable interruption which had broken up their evening devotions.

Cora set an example of compliance, showing Alice, who was more timid, the importance of obedience. Before leaving, though, she whispered a request to Duncan, asking him to follow. Uncas lifted the blanket for them to pass, and as the sisters turned to thank him for his consideration, they saw the scout sitting back down in front of the dying embers, his face resting on his hands, revealing how deeply he was troubled by the strange interruption that had disrupted their evening together.

Heyward took with him a blazing knot, which threw a dim light through the narrow vista of their new apartment. Placing it in a favorable position, he joined the females, who now found themselves alone with him for the first time since they had left the friendly ramparts of Fort Edward.

Heyward brought a burning torch, which cast a faint light through the narrow view of their new apartment. After setting it down in a good spot, he joined the women, who for the first time since leaving the protective walls of Fort Edward, were alone with him.

“Leave us not, Duncan,” said Alice: “we cannot sleep in such a place as this, with that horrid cry still ringing in our ears.”

“Don’t leave us, Duncan,” Alice said. “We can’t sleep in a place like this with that awful noise still echoing in our ears.”

“First let us examine into the security of your fortress,” he answered, “and then we will speak of rest.”

“First, let’s check the security of your fortress,” he replied, “and then we’ll talk about resting.”

He approached the further end of the cavern, to an outlet, which, like the others, was concealed by blankets; and removing the thick screen, breathed the fresh and reviving air from the cataract. One arm of the river flowed through a deep, narrow ravine, which its current had worn in the soft rock, directly beneath his feet, forming an effectual defense, as he believed, against any danger from that quarter; the water, a few rods above them, plunging, glancing, and sweeping along in its most violent and broken manner.

He walked to the far end of the cave, towards an exit that, like the others, was hidden by blankets. After moving the heavy barrier aside, he took in the fresh, refreshing air from the waterfall. One branch of the river wound through a deep, narrow gorge that its current had carved into the soft rock, directly below him, creating a solid defense, as he thought, against any threat from that direction; the water a short distance upstream was rushing, sparkling, and tumbling violently in a chaotic flow.

“Nature has made an impenetrable barrier on this side,” he continued, pointing down the perpendicular declivity into the dark current before he dropped the blanket; “and as you know that good men and true are on guard in front I see no reason why the advice of our honest host should be disregarded. I am certain Cora will join me in saying that sleep is necessary to you both.”

“Nature has created an impassable barrier over here,” he said, pointing down the steep slope into the dark water before he dropped the blanket. “And as you know, good people are keeping watch out front, so I don’t see any reason to ignore the advice of our trustworthy host. I'm sure Cora would agree with me that you both need to get some sleep.”

“Cora may submit to the justice of your opinion though she cannot put it in practice,” returned the elder sister, who had placed herself by the side of Alice, on a couch of sassafras; “there would be other causes to chase away sleep, though we had been spared the shock of this mysterious noise. Ask yourself, Heyward, can daughters forget the anxiety a father must endure, whose children lodge he knows not where or how, in such a wilderness, and in the midst of so many perils?”

“Cora might agree with your opinion even if she can't act on it,” replied the elder sister, who had settled next to Alice on a sassafras couch. “There would still be other reasons to lose sleep, even if we hadn’t been jolted by that strange noise. Ask yourself, Heyward, can daughters really forget the worry a father must feel when he has no idea where or how his children are staying in such a wilderness, surrounded by so many dangers?”

“He is a soldier, and knows how to estimate the chances of the woods.”

“He's a soldier and knows how to assess the risks of the woods.”

“He is a father, and cannot deny his nature.”

"He is a father and cannot deny who he is."

“How kind has he ever been to all my follies, how tender and indulgent to all my wishes!” sobbed Alice. “We have been selfish, sister, in urging our visit at such hazard.”

“How kind has he always been to all my mistakes, how gentle and understanding to all my desires!” cried Alice. “We have been selfish, sister, in pushing our visit at such risk.”

“I may have been rash in pressing his consent in a moment of much embarrassment, but I would have proved to him, that however others might neglect him in his strait his children at least were faithful.”

“I might have been impulsive in pushing for his agreement during a very embarrassing moment, but I wanted to show him that, even if others let him down during his tough times, his children would always be there for him.”

“When he heard of your arrival at Edward,” said Heyward, kindly, “there was a powerful struggle in his bosom between fear and love; though the latter, heightened, if possible, by so long a separation, quickly prevailed. ‘It is the spirit of my noble-minded Cora that leads them, Duncan’, he said, ‘and I will not balk it. Would to God, that he who holds the honor of our royal master in his guardianship, would show but half her firmness!’”

“when he heard you were coming to Edward,” Heyward said kindly, “he felt a strong battle inside him between fear and love; although, with so much time apart, love quickly won out. ‘It’s the spirit of my noble Cora that drives them, Duncan,’ he said, ‘and I won’t stand in its way. I wish to God that the one who protects the honor of our royal master would show just half of her strength!’”

“And did he not speak of me, Heyward?” demanded Alice, with jealous affection; “surely, he forgot not altogether his little Elsie?”

“And didn’t he mention me, Heyward?” Alice asked, with a hint of jealousy in her affection. “Surely, he didn’t completely forget his little Elsie?”

“That were impossible,” returned the young man; “he called you by a thousand endearing epithets, that I may not presume to use, but to the justice of which, I can warmly testify. Once, indeed, he said—”

“That’s impossible,” the young man replied; “he called you a thousand sweet names that I can't dare to use, but I can honestly vouch for their accuracy. Once, in fact, he said—”

Duncan ceased speaking; for while his eyes were riveted on those of Alice, who had turned toward him with the eagerness of filial affection, to catch his words, the same strong, horrid cry, as before, filled the air, and rendered him mute. A long, breathless silence succeeded, during which each looked at the others in fearful expectation of hearing the sound repeated. At length, the blanket was slowly raised, and the scout stood in the aperture with a countenance whose firmness evidently began to give way before a mystery that seemed to threaten some danger, against which all his cunning and experience might prove of no avail.

Duncan stopped talking; while he was focused on Alice, who had turned to him with the enthusiasm of a loving child, trying to catch his words, the same intense, chilling cry filled the air again, leaving him speechless. A long, breathless silence followed, during which everyone looked at each other, anxiously expecting to hear the sound again. Finally, the blanket was slowly lifted, and the scout stood in the opening with a face that clearly started to show concern in the face of a mystery that seemed to pose a danger which all his skills and experience might not be able to handle.

CHAPTER VII.

“They do not sleep,
On yonder cliffs, a grizzly band,
I see them sit.”—Gray

“They don’t sleep,
On those cliffs, a rough group,
I see them sitting.”—Gray

“’Twould be neglecting a warning that is given for our good to lie hid any longer,” said Hawkeye “when such sounds are raised in the forest. These gentle ones may keep close, but the Mohicans and I will watch upon the rock, where I suppose a major of the Sixtieth would wish to keep us company.”

“It's neglecting a warning meant for our benefit to hide any longer,” said Hawkeye, “when there are such sounds in the forest. These kind folks can stay close, but the Mohicans and I will keep watch on the rock, where I assume a major of the Sixtieth would like to join us.”

“Is, then, our danger so pressing?” asked Cora.

“Is our danger really that urgent?” Cora asked.

“He who makes strange sounds, and gives them out for man’s information, alone knows our danger. I should think myself wicked, unto rebellion against His will, was I to burrow with such warnings in the air! Even the weak soul who passes his days in singing is stirred by the cry, and, as he says, is ‘ready to go forth to the battle’ If ’twere only a battle, it would be a thing understood by us all, and easily managed; but I have heard that when such shrieks are atween heaven and ’arth, it betokens another sort of warfare!”

“He who makes strange sounds and shares them for our awareness knows our danger alone. I would think it wrong and a rebellion against His will to ignore such warnings in the air! Even the fragile soul who spends his days singing is moved by the cry and, as he says, is 'ready to go forth to battle.' If it were just a battle, it would be something we all understand and could easily handle; but I have heard that when such screams are between heaven and earth, it signals a different kind of warfare!"

“If all our reasons for fear, my friend, are confined to such as proceed from supernatural causes, we have but little occasion to be alarmed,” continued the undisturbed Cora, “are you certain that our enemies have not invented some new and ingenious method to strike us with terror, that their conquest may become more easy?”

“If all our reasons to be afraid, my friend, come only from supernatural causes, we shouldn't be too worried,” continued the calm Cora. “Are you sure our enemies haven't come up with some new and clever way to scare us so that it's easier for them to conquer us?”

“Lady,” returned the scout, solemnly, “I have listened to all the sounds of the woods for thirty years, as a man will listen whose life and death depend on the quickness of his ears. There is no whine of the panther, no whistle of the catbird, nor any invention of the devilish Mingoes, that can cheat me! I have heard the forest moan like mortal men in their affliction; often, and again, have I listened to the wind playing its music in the branches of the girdled trees; and I have heard the lightning cracking in the air like the snapping of blazing brush as it spitted forth sparks and forked flames; but never have I thought that I heard more than the pleasure of him who sported with the things of his hand. But neither the Mohicans, nor I, who am a white man without a cross, can explain the cry just heard. We, therefore, believe it a sign given for our good.”

“Lady,” the scout replied solemnly, “I have listened to all the sounds of the woods for thirty years, like a man whose life depends on how sharp his ears are. There’s no growl of the panther, no whistle of the catbird, nor any trick from the devilish Mingoes that can fool me! I’ve heard the forest moan like men in pain; time and again, I’ve listened to the wind making music in the branches of the felled trees; and I’ve heard the lightning crack in the air like the burning brush snapping as it spits out sparks and flames; but I never thought I heard more than the pleasure of someone playing with what is his. However, neither the Mohicans nor I, who am a white man without a cross, can explain the cry we just heard. So, we believe it’s a sign meant for our good.”

“It is extraordinary!” said Heyward, taking his pistols from the place where he had laid them on entering; “be it a sign of peace or a signal of war, it must be looked to. Lead the way, my friend; I follow.”

“It’s amazing!” said Heyward, grabbing his pistols from where he had set them down when he entered. “Whether it’s a sign of peace or a call to war, we need to pay attention to it. Show me the way, my friend; I’ll follow.”

On issuing from their place of confinement, the whole party instantly experienced a grateful renovation of spirits, by exchanging the pent air of the hiding-place for the cool and invigorating atmosphere which played around the whirlpools and pitches of the cataract. A heavy evening breeze swept along the surface of the river, and seemed to drive the roar of the falls into the recesses of their own cavern, whence it issued heavily and constant, like thunder rumbling beyond the distant hills. The moon had risen, and its light was already glancing here and there on the waters above them; but the extremity of the rock where they stood still lay in shadow. With the exception of the sounds produced by the rushing waters, and an occasional breathing of the air, as it murmured past them in fitful currents, the scene was as still as night and solitude could make it. In vain were the eyes of each individual bent along the opposite shores, in quest of some signs of life, that might explain the nature of the interruption they had heard. Their anxious and eager looks were baffled by the deceptive light, or rested only on naked rocks, and straight and immovable trees.

As they left their hiding place, the whole group instantly felt a refreshing lift in their spirits, trading the stale air of confinement for the cool, invigorating breeze around the waterfalls. A strong evening wind swept over the river, seeming to push the roar of the falls deep into their cavern, where it sounded like distant thunder rolling over the hills. The moon had risen, casting its light on the waters above them, but the edge of the rock where they stood was still in shadow. Aside from the sounds of the rushing water and the occasional whisper of the wind as it flowed past them in bursts, the scene was as quiet as night and solitude could make it. Each person scanned the opposite shores in vain, hoping to catch a glimpse of life that could explain the interruption they had heard. Their worried and eager gazes were thwarted by the misleading light or fell only on bare rocks and perfectly still trees.

“Here is nothing to be seen but the gloom and quiet of a lovely evening,” whispered Duncan; “how much should we prize such a scene, and all this breathing solitude, at any other moment, Cora! Fancy yourselves in security, and what now, perhaps, increases your terror, may be made conducive to enjoyment—”

“There's nothing to see but the darkness and peace of a beautiful evening,” whispered Duncan; “how much we should value such a scene, and all this peaceful solitude, at any other time, Cora! Imagine yourselves safe, and what now, perhaps, adds to your fear, can also lead to enjoyment—”

“Listen!” interrupted Alice.

“Listen!” Alice interrupted.

The caution was unnecessary. Once more the same sound arose, as if from the bed of the river, and having broken out of the narrow bounds of the cliffs, was heard undulating through the forest, in distant and dying cadences.

The caution was unnecessary. Once again, the same sound emerged, as if from the riverbed, and having broken free from the narrow confines of the cliffs, it spread through the forest, echoing in distant and fading tones.

“Can any here give a name to such a cry?” demanded Hawkeye, when the last echo was lost in the woods; “if so, let him speak; for myself, I judge it not to belong to ’arth!”

“Can anyone here name that cry?” Hawkeye asked, as the last echo faded in the woods. “If you can, speak up; for my part, I don’t think it comes from this world!”

“Here, then, is one who can undeceive you,” said Duncan; “I know the sound full well, for often have I heard it on the field of battle, and in situations which are frequent in a soldier’s life. ’Tis the horrid shriek that a horse will give in his agony; oftener drawn from him in pain, though sometimes in terror. My charger is either a prey to the beasts of the forest, or he sees his danger, without the power to avoid it. The sound might deceive me in the cavern, but in the open air I know it too well to be wrong.”

“Here’s someone who can set you straight,” said Duncan. “I know that sound well because I've heard it many times on the battlefield and in the kinds of situations that come up often in a soldier’s life. It's the terrible shriek a horse makes when it’s in pain; usually it’s a cry of pain, though sometimes it’s from fear. My horse is either being hunted by wild animals or he sees danger but can’t escape it. That sound might fool me in a cave, but out in the open, I know it too well to be mistaken.”

The scout and his companions listened to this simple explanation with the interest of men who imbibe new ideas, at the same time that they get rid of old ones, which had proved disagreeable inmates. The two latter uttered their usual expressive exclamation, “hugh!” as the truth first glanced upon their minds, while the former, after a short, musing pause, took upon himself to reply.

The scout and his friends listened to this straightforward explanation with the curiosity of people open to new ideas while letting go of old ones that had become unwelcome. The other two let out their typical exclamation, “hugh!” as the truth began to dawn on them, while the scout, after a brief reflective pause, took it upon himself to respond.

“I cannot deny your words,” he said, “for I am little skilled in horses, though born where they abound. The wolves must be hovering above their heads on the bank, and the timorsome creatures are calling on man for help, in the best manner they are able. Uncas”—he spoke in Delaware—“Uncas, drop down in the canoe, and whirl a brand among the pack; or fear may do what the wolves can’t get at to perform, and leave us without horses in the morning, when we shall have so much need to journey swiftly!”

“I can’t deny what you’re saying,” he said, “because I don’t know much about horses, even though I was born in a place where they’re everywhere. The wolves must be lurking above them on the bank, and those scared animals are calling out to us for help in the best way they can. Uncas”—he spoke in Delaware—“Uncas, get down in the canoe and throw a torch among the pack; or fear might do what the wolves can’t and leave us without horses in the morning, when we’ll really need to travel fast!”

The young native had already descended to the water to comply, when a long howl was raised on the edge of the river, and was borne swiftly off into the depths of the forest, as though the beasts, of their own accord, were abandoning their prey in sudden terror. Uncas, with instinctive quickness, receded, and the three foresters held another of their low, earnest conferences.

The young native had already gone down to the water to comply when a long howl echoed from the riverbank and quickly faded into the dense forest, as if the animals were fleeing their prey in sudden fear. Uncas quickly pulled back, and the three foresters held another low, serious meeting.

“We have been like hunters who have lost the points of the heavens, and from whom the sun has been hid for days,” said Hawkeye, turning away from his companions; “now we begin again to know the signs of our course, and the paths are cleared from briers! Seat yourselves in the shade which the moon throws from yonder beech—’tis thicker than that of the pines—and let us wait for that which the Lord may choose to send next. Let all your conversation be in whispers; though it would be better, and, perhaps, in the end, wiser, if each one held discourse with his own thoughts, for a time.”

“We’ve been like hunters who’ve lost sight of the stars, and it’s been days since the sun has shone on us,” Hawkeye said, turning away from his friends. “Now we’re starting to recognize the signs of our path again, and the way is clear of thorns! Sit down in the shade that the moon casts from that beech tree—it’s denser than the shade from the pines—and let’s wait for whatever the Lord decides to send us next. Keep your conversation quiet; although it might be better, and maybe wiser in the long run, if each of us talks to our own thoughts for a while.”

The manner of the scout was seriously impressive, though no longer distinguished by any signs of unmanly apprehension. It was evident that his momentary weakness had vanished with the explanation of a mystery which his own experience had not served to fathom; and though he now felt all the realities of their actual condition, that he was prepared to meet them with the energy of his hardy nature. This feeling seemed also common to the natives, who placed themselves in positions which commanded a full view of both shores, while their own persons were effectually concealed from observation. In such circumstances, common prudence dictated that Heyward and his companions should imitate a caution that proceeded from so intelligent a source. The young man drew a pile of the sassafras from the cave, and placing it in the chasm which separated the two caverns, it was occupied by the sisters, who were thus protected by the rocks from any missiles, while their anxiety was relieved by the assurance that no danger could approach without a warning. Heyward himself was posted at hand, so near that he might communicate with his companions without raising his voice to a dangerous elevation; while David, in imitation of the woodsmen, bestowed his person in such a manner among the fissures of the rocks, that his ungainly limbs were no longer offensive to the eye.

The scout's demeanor was seriously impressive, now no longer marked by any signs of unmanly fear. It was clear that his brief moment of weakness had disappeared with the explanation of a mystery that his own experience hadn't been able to solve; and even though he was fully aware of their current situation, he was ready to face it with the resilience of his tough nature. This feeling seemed to be shared by the locals, who positioned themselves where they could see both shores while staying hidden from view. Given these circumstances, it made sense for Heyward and his friends to adopt the caution that came from such a smart source. The young man took a pile of sassafras from the cave and placed it in the gap between the two caverns, where the sisters were protected by the rocks from any projectiles, and their worries eased with the knowledge that no danger could approach without warning. Heyward was positioned close enough to communicate with his companions without having to raise his voice to a risky level, while David, following the woodsmen’s lead, positioned himself among the rock crevices so that his awkward limbs were no longer visually distracting.

In this manner hours passed without further interruption. The moon reached the zenith, and shed its mild light perpendicularly on the lovely sight of the sisters slumbering peacefully in each other’s arms. Duncan cast the wide shawl of Cora before a spectacle he so much loved to contemplate, and then suffered his own head to seek a pillow on the rock. David began to utter sounds that would have shocked his delicate organs in more wakeful moments; in short, all but Hawkeye and the Mohicans lost every idea of consciousness, in uncontrollable drowsiness. But the watchfulness of these vigilant protectors neither tired nor slumbered. Immovable as that rock, of which each appeared to form a part, they lay, with their eyes roving, without intermission, along the dark margin of trees, that bounded the adjacent shores of the narrow stream. Not a sound escaped them; the most subtle examination could not have told they breathed. It was evident that this excess of caution proceeded from an experience that no subtlety on the part of their enemies could deceive. It was, however, continued without any apparent consequences, until the moon had set, and a pale streak above the treetops, at the bend of the river a little below, announced the approach of day.

In this way, hours passed without any further interruptions. The moon reached its peak and cast a soft light straight down on the beautiful sight of the sisters peacefully sleeping in each other’s arms. Duncan spread Cora's wide shawl over a scene he loved to admire, then let his head rest on the rock. David started to make sounds that would have shocked his sensitive ears if he were more awake; in short, everyone except Hawkeye and the Mohicans lost all awareness in uncontrollable drowsiness. But the vigilance of these watchful protectors never tired or dozed off. As steady as the rock they seemed to be part of, they lay with their eyes scanning the dark line of trees along the shores of the narrow stream without pause. Not a sound escaped them; a close examination wouldn’t have revealed that they breathed. It was clear that this heightened level of caution came from an experience that no clever tricks from their enemies could fool. However, it continued without any obvious consequences until the moon set, and a faint light above the treetops at the river bend just below signaled the approach of day.

Then, for the first time, Hawkeye was seen to stir. He crawled along the rock and shook Duncan from his heavy slumbers.

Then, for the first time, Hawkeye was seen to move. He crawled across the rock and shook Duncan awake from his deep sleep.

“Now is the time to journey,” he whispered; “awake the gentle ones, and be ready to get into the canoe when I bring it to the landing-place.”

“Now is the time to go,” he whispered; “wake the gentle ones, and be ready to get in the canoe when I bring it to the shore.”

“Have you had a quiet night?” said Heyward; “for myself, I believe sleep has got the better of my vigilance.”

“Did you have a peaceful night?” Heyward asked; “as for me, I think sleep has overtaken my alertness.”

“All is yet still as midnight. Be silent, but be quick.”

“All is still like midnight. Stay quiet, but hurry.”

By this time Duncan was thoroughly awake, and he immediately lifted the shawl from the sleeping females. The motion caused Cora to raise her hand as if to repulse him, while Alice murmured, in her soft, gentle voice, “No, no, dear father, we were not deserted; Duncan was with us!”

By this time, Duncan was fully awake, and he quickly lifted the shawl from the sleeping women. The movement made Cora raise her hand as if to push him away, while Alice softly said, “No, no, dear father, we weren’t abandoned; Duncan was with us!”

“Yes, sweet innocence,” whispered the youth; “Duncan is here, and while life continues or danger remains, he will never quit thee. Cora! Alice! awake! The hour has come to move!”

“Yes, sweet innocence,” whispered the young man; “Duncan is here, and as long as there's life or danger, he will never leave you. Cora! Alice! Wake up! It’s time to move!”

A loud shriek from the younger of the sisters, and the form of the other standing upright before him, in bewildered horror, was the unexpected answer he received.

A loud scream from the younger sister, and the sight of the other standing in shock and horror before him, was the surprising response he got.

While the words were still on the lips of Heyward, there had arisen such a tumult of yells and cries as served to drive the swift currents of his own blood back from its bounding course into the fountains of his heart. It seemed, for near a minute, as if the demons of hell had possessed themselves of the air about them, and were venting their savage humors in barbarous sounds. The cries came from no particular direction, though it was evident they filled the woods, and, as the appalled listeners easily imagined, the caverns of the falls, the rocks, the bed of the river, and the upper air. David raised his tall person in the midst of the infernal din, with a hand on either ear, exclaiming:

While Heyward was still speaking, a loud uproar of yells and screams erupted, causing his own blood to rush back into his heart. For nearly a minute, it felt like the demons of hell had taken over the area around them, expressing their wildness through brutal sounds. The cries were coming from everywhere, and it was clear they filled the woods, along with the caverns of the falls, the rocks, the riverbed, and the sky above. David stood up tall amidst the chaos, covering his ears and shouting:

“Whence comes this discord! Has hell broke loose, that man should utter sounds like these!”

“Where is this conflict coming from! Has all hell broken loose for a person to speak like this?”

The bright flashes and the quick reports of a dozen rifles, from the opposite banks of the stream, followed this incautious exposure of his person, and left the unfortunate singing master senseless on that rock where he had been so long slumbering. The Mohicans boldly sent back the intimidating yell of their enemies, who raised a shout of savage triumph at the fall of Gamut. The flash of rifles was then quick and close between them, but either party was too well skilled to leave even a limb exposed to the hostile aim. Duncan listened with intense anxiety for the strokes of the paddle, believing that flight was now their only refuge. The river glanced by with its ordinary velocity, but the canoe was nowhere to be seen on its dark waters. He had just fancied they were cruelly deserted by their scout, as a stream of flame issued from the rock beneath them, and a fierce yell, blended with a shriek of agony, announced that the messenger of death sent from the fatal weapon of Hawkeye, had found a victim. At this slight repulse the assailants instantly withdrew, and gradually the place became as still as before the sudden tumult.

The bright flashes and rapid gunfire from a dozen rifles on the opposite bank followed this careless display of his body, leaving the unfortunate singing master unconscious on the rock where he had been resting for so long. The Mohicans boldly responded with a fierce yell to their enemies, who cheered in savage triumph at Gamut's fall. The rifle fire then erupted quickly and close between the two sides, but both were too skilled to leave any part of themselves exposed to enemy fire. Duncan listened anxiously for the sound of paddles, believing that escape was now their only option. The river flowed by at its usual pace, but the canoe was nowhere to be seen on its dark surface. Just as he thought they had been brutally abandoned by their scout, a burst of flame erupted from the rock below them, and a fierce yell combined with a scream of pain indicated that the deadly shot from Hawkeye's weapon had claimed a victim. At this small setback, the attackers quickly pulled back, and soon the area fell silent again, just as it had been before the sudden chaos.

Duncan seized the favorable moment to spring to the body of Gamut, which he bore within the shelter of the narrow chasm that protected the sisters. In another minute the whole party was collected in this spot of comparative safety.

Duncan took the chance to leap to Gamut's body, which he carried into the shelter of the narrow chasm that protected the sisters. In just a minute, the whole group had gathered in this relatively safe spot.

“The poor fellow has saved his scalp,” said Hawkeye, coolly passing his hand over the head of David; “but he is a proof that a man may be born with too long a tongue! ’Twas downright madness to show six feet of flesh and blood, on a naked rock, to the raging savages. I only wonder he has escaped with life.”

“The poor guy has managed to keep his head,” said Hawkeye, calmly running his hand over David's head; “but he’s a clear example that someone can be born with a big mouth! It was pure madness to expose six feet of flesh and blood on a bare rock to the furious savages. I’m just surprised he made it out alive.”

“Is he not dead?” demanded Cora, in a voice whose husky tones showed how powerfully natural horror struggled with her assumed firmness. “Can we do aught to assist the wretched man?”

“Is he not dead?” Cora demanded, her voice rough with the struggle between genuine horror and her attempt to stay strong. “Is there anything we can do to help the poor man?”

“No, no! the life is in his heart yet, and after he has slept awhile he will come to himself, and be a wiser man for it, till the hour of his real time shall come,” returned Hawkeye, casting another oblique glance at the insensible body, while he filled his charger with admirable nicety. “Carry him in, Uncas, and lay him on the sassafras. The longer his nap lasts the better it will be for him, as I doubt whether he can find a proper cover for such a shape on these rocks; and singing won’t do any good with the Iroquois.”

“No, no! He’s still alive, and after he sleeps for a bit, he’ll wake up, and he’ll be a wiser man for it, until it’s really his time,” Hawkeye said, glancing again at the unconscious body while he filled his charger with great care. “Carry him inside, Uncas, and lay him on the sassafras. The longer he sleeps, the better it will be for him, since I doubt he could find decent shelter for such a shape on these rocks; and singing won’t help with the Iroquois.”

“You believe, then, the attack will be renewed?” asked Heyward.

“You think, then, that the attack will happen again?” asked Heyward.

“Do I expect a hungry wolf will satisfy his craving with a mouthful! They have lost a man, and ’tis their fashion, when they meet a loss, and fail in the surprise, to fall back; but we shall have them on again, with new expedients to circumvent us, and master our scalps. Our main hope,” he continued, raising his rugged countenance, across which a shade of anxiety just then passed like a darkening cloud, “will be to keep the rock until Munro can send a party to our help! God send it may be soon and under a leader that knows the Indian customs!”

“Do I really think a hungry wolf will be satisfied with just one bite? They’ve lost a man, and it’s their way, when faced with a loss and caught off guard, to retreat; but we’ll see them again, coming up with new tricks to outsmart us and take our scalps. Our main hope,” he continued, raising his weathered face, which momentarily showed a flicker of worry like a passing storm cloud, “is to hold the rock until Munro can send a group to help us! God willing, it will be soon and led by someone who understands Indian customs!”

“You hear our probable fortunes, Cora,” said Duncan, “and you know we have everything to hope from the anxiety and experience of your father. Come, then, with Alice, into this cavern, where you, at least, will be safe from the murderous rifles of our enemies, and where you may bestow a care suited to your gentle natures on our unfortunate comrade.”

“You’ve heard about our likely futures, Cora,” said Duncan, “and you know we have every reason to hope from your father’s worry and experience. Come, then, with Alice, into this cave, where you’ll at least be safe from the deadly rifles of our enemies, and where you can offer the kind of care that fits your gentle natures to our unfortunate friend.”

The sisters followed him into the outer cave, where David was beginning, by his sighs, to give symptoms of returning consciousness, and then commending the wounded man to their attention, he immediately prepared to leave them.

The sisters followed him into the outer cave, where David was starting to show signs of waking up, and then, after asking the sisters to take care of the injured man, he got ready to leave them.

“Duncan!” said the tremulous voice of Cora, when he had reached the mouth of the cavern. He turned and beheld the speaker, whose color had changed to a deadly paleness, and whose lips quivered, gazing after him, with an expression of interest which immediately recalled him to her side. “Remember, Duncan, how necessary your safety is to our own—how you bear a father’s sacred trust—how much depends on your discretion and care—in short,” she added, while the telltale blood stole over her features, crimsoning her very temples, “how very deservedly dear you are to all of the name of Munro.”

“Duncan!” said Cora's shaky voice as he reached the entrance of the cave. He turned and saw her, her face drained of color and her lips trembling, looking after him with an intensity that immediately pulled him back to her side. “Remember, Duncan, how crucial your safety is to us—how you carry a father's sacred trust—how much relies on your judgment and caution—in short,” she continued, as the telltale flush crept over her face, coloring her temples, “how very much we all care for you in the Munro family.”

“If anything could add to my own base love of life,” said Heyward, suffering his unconscious eyes to wander to the youthful form of the silent Alice, “it would be so kind an assurance. As major of the Sixtieth, our honest host will tell you I must take my share of the fray; but our task will be easy; it is merely to keep these blood-hounds at bay for a few hours.”

“If anything could enhance my own simple love of life,” said Heyward, letting his eyes drift to the youthful figure of the quiet Alice, “it would be such a kind assurance. As the major of the Sixtieth, our honest host will tell you I have to do my part in the fight; but our job will be easy; it’s just to hold off these bloodhounds for a few hours.”

Without waiting for a reply, he tore himself from the presence of the sisters, and joined the scout and his companions, who still lay within the protection of the little chasm between the two caves.

Without waiting for a response, he pulled away from the sisters and joined the scout and his friends, who were still sheltered in the small gap between the two caves.

“I tell you, Uncas,” said the former, as Heyward joined them, “you are wasteful of your powder, and the kick of the rifle disconcerts your aim! Little powder, light lead, and a long arm, seldom fail of bringing the death screech from a Mingo! At least, such has been my experience with the creatur’s. Come, friends: let us to our covers, for no man can tell when or where a Maqua[1] will strike his blow.”

“I tell you, Uncas,” said the former, as Heyward joined them, “you’re wasting your ammo, and the kick of the rifle is throwing off your aim! A little powder, light lead, and a long barrel usually get the job done and bring out the death screech from a Mingo! At least, that’s been my experience with those creatures. Come on, friends: let’s get to our spots, because no one can predict when or where a Maqua[1] will strike.”

[1] Mingo was the Delaware term of the Five Nations. Maquas was the name given them by the Dutch. The French, from their first intercourse with them, called them Iroquois.

[1] Mingo was the Delaware name for the Five Nations. Maquas was the term used by the Dutch. The French, from their first contact with them, referred to them as Iroquois.

The Indians silently repaired to their appointed stations, which were fissures in the rocks, whence they could command the approaches to the foot of the falls. In the center of the little island, a few short and stunted pines had found root, forming a thicket, into which Hawkeye darted with the swiftness of a deer, followed by the active Duncan. Here they secured themselves, as well as circumstances would permit, among the shrubs and fragments of stone that were scattered about the place. Above them was a bare, rounded rock, on each side of which the water played its gambols, and plunged into the abysses beneath, in the manner already described. As the day had now dawned, the opposite shores no longer presented a confused outline, but they were able to look into the woods, and distinguish objects beneath a canopy of gloomy pines.

The Indians quietly moved to their designated positions, which were crevices in the rocks where they could watch the paths leading to the base of the falls. In the middle of the small island, a few short, scraggly pines had taken root, creating a thicket where Hawkeye rushed in with the speed of a deer, followed closely by the quick Duncan. They took cover as best as they could among the shrubs and scattered stones around them. Above them was a bare, rounded rock, with water playing around it and plunging into the depths below, just like described earlier. Now that day had broken, the opposite shores were no longer just a blur; they could see into the woods and make out shapes beneath a canopy of dark pines.

A long and anxious watch succeeded, but without any further evidences of a renewed attack; and Duncan began to hope that their fire had proved more fatal than was supposed, and that their enemies had been effectually repulsed. When he ventured to utter this impression to his companions, it was met by Hawkeye with an incredulous shake of the head.

A long and tense wait followed, but there were no signs of a renewed attack; Duncan started to hope that their fire had been more deadly than expected and that their enemies had been effectively beaten back. When he shared this thought with his companions, Hawkeye responded with a doubtful shake of his head.

“You know not the nature of a Maqua, if you think he is so easily beaten back without a scalp!” he answered. “If there was one of the imps yelling this morning, there were forty! and they know our number and quality too well to give up the chase so soon. Hist! look into the water above, just where it breaks over the rocks. I am no mortal, if the risky devils haven’t swam down upon the very pitch, and, as bad luck would have it, they have hit the head of the island. Hist! man, keep close! or the hair will be off your crown in the turning of a knife!”

“You don't know what a Maqua is like if you think they can be easily put off without a fight!” he replied. “If there was just one of those creatures screaming this morning, there were forty! They know our size and strength too well to back off this quickly. Listen! Look into the water up ahead, right where it spills over the rocks. I’d bet anything that those tricky devils have swum down to the very edge, and, as luck would have it, they've landed right at the front of the island. Pay attention, man, stay close! Or you’ll lose your hair in the blink of an eye!”

Heyward lifted his head from the cover, and beheld what he justly considered a prodigy of rashness and skill. The river had worn away the edge of the soft rock in such a manner as to render its first pitch less abrupt and perpendicular than is usual at waterfalls. With no other guide than the ripple of the stream where it met the head of the island, a party of their insatiable foes had ventured into the current, and swam down upon this point, knowing the ready access it would give, if successful, to their intended victims.

Heyward lifted his head from cover and saw what he rightly thought was an incredible mix of recklessness and skill. The river had eroded the edge of the soft rock so that its initial drop was less steep and vertical than usual for waterfalls. With nothing to guide them except the ripples of the stream where it met the head of the island, a group of their relentless enemies had dared to enter the current and swim toward this spot, aware of the easy access it would provide, if they succeeded, to their intended targets.

As Hawkeye ceased speaking, four human heads could be seen peering above a few logs of drift-wood that had lodged on these naked rocks, and which had probably suggested the idea of the practicability of the hazardous undertaking. At the next moment, a fifth form was seen floating over the green edge of the fall, a little from the line of the island. The savage struggled powerfully to gain the point of safety, and, favored by the glancing water, he was already stretching forth an arm to meet the grasp of his companions, when he shot away again with the shirling current, appeared to rise into the air, with uplifted arms and starting eyeballs, and fell, with a sudden plunge, into that deep and yawning abyss over which he hovered. A single, wild, despairing shriek rose from the cavern, and all was hushed again as the grave.

As Hawkeye stopped talking, four heads could be seen peeking above some logs of driftwood that had gotten caught on these bare rocks, which probably inspired the idea of attempting the dangerous task. In the next moment, a fifth person was seen floating over the green edge of the waterfall, slightly off the island's line. The savage fought hard to reach safety, and with the help of the rushing water, he was already stretching out an arm to grab his companions when he was suddenly swept away by the swirling current, appearing to rise into the air with outstretched arms and wide-open eyes, before plunging into the deep, gaping abyss below. A single, wild, desperate scream echoed from the cavern, and then everything fell silent as a grave.

The first generous impulse of Duncan was to rush to the rescue of the hapless wretch; but he felt himself bound to the spot by the iron grasp of the immovable scout.

Duncan's first instinct was to rush to help the unfortunate person, but he found himself rooted in place by the unyielding grip of the immovable scout.

“Would ye bring certain death upon us, by telling the Mingoes where we lie?” demanded Hawkeye, sternly; “’Tis a charge of powder saved, and ammunition is as precious now as breath to a worried deer! Freshen the priming of your pistols—the midst of the falls is apt to dampen the brimstone—and stand firm for a close struggle, while I fire on their rush.”

“Are you trying to bring certain death upon us by telling the Mingoes where we are?” asked Hawkeye sharply. “It’s a waste of gunpowder, and ammunition is as valuable now as air is to a scared deer! Reload your pistols—the dampness from the falls can soak the powder—and get ready for a close fight while I shoot at them as they charge.”

He placed a finger in his mouth, and drew a long, shrill whistle, which was answered from the rocks that were guarded by the Mohicans. Duncan caught glimpses of heads above the scattered drift-wood, as this signal rose on the air, but they disappeared again as suddenly as they had glanced upon his sight. A low, rustling sound next drew his attention behind him, and turning his head, he beheld Uncas within a few feet, creeping to his side. Hawkeye spoke to him in Delaware, when the young chief took his position with singular caution and undisturbed coolness. To Heyward this was a moment of feverish and impatient suspense; though the scout saw fit to select it as a fit occasion to read a lecture to his more youthful associates on the art of using firearms with discretion.

He put a finger in his mouth and let out a long, sharp whistle, which was answered from the rocks watched over by the Mohicans. Duncan caught glimpses of heads above the scattered driftwood as the signal echoed in the air, but they disappeared just as quickly as they appeared. A soft rustling sound caught his attention behind him, and when he turned his head, he saw Uncas just a few feet away, creeping up beside him. Hawkeye spoke to him in Delaware, and the young chief took his position with remarkable caution and calmness. For Heyward, this was a moment of anxious and restless suspense; meanwhile, the scout thought it was the perfect time to give a lecture to his younger companions on how to use firearms wisely.

“Of all we’pons,” he commenced, “the long barreled, true-grooved, soft-metaled rifle is the most dangerous in skillful hands, though it wants a strong arm, a quick eye, and great judgment in charging, to put forth all its beauties. The gunsmiths can have but little insight into their trade when they make their fowling-pieces and short horsemen’s—”

“Of all weapons,” he began, “the long-barreled, true-grooved, soft-metal rifle is the most dangerous in skilled hands, even though it requires a strong arm, a sharp eye, and excellent judgment in loading to bring out its full potential. Gunsmiths have little understanding of their craft when they create their shotguns and short cavalry rifles—”

He was interrupted by the low but expressive “hugh” of Uncas.

He was interrupted by the soft yet expressive "hugh" of Uncas.

“I see them, boy, I see them!” continued Hawkeye; “they are gathering for the rush, or they would keep their dingy backs below the logs. Well, let them,” he added, examining his flint; “the leading man certainly comes on to his death, though it should be Montcalm himself!”

“I see them, kid, I see them!” Hawkeye kept saying; “they’re getting ready to rush, or else they’d stay hidden behind the logs. Well, let them,” he added, checking his flint; “the guy in front is definitely heading to his death, even if it's Montcalm himself!”

At that moment the woods were filled with another burst of cries, and at the signal four savages sprang from the cover of the driftwood. Heyward felt a burning desire to rush forward to meet them, so intense was the delirious anxiety of the moment; but he was restrained by the deliberate examples of the scout and Uncas.

At that moment, the woods erupted with another wave of shouts, and at the signal, four warriors leaped from behind the driftwood. Heyward felt a strong urge to charge toward them, so intense was the frantic anxiety of the moment; but he held back, influenced by the calm actions of the scout and Uncas.

When their foes, who had leaped over the black rocks that divided them, with long bounds, uttering the wildest yells, were within a few rods, the rifle of Hawkeye slowly rose among the shrubs, and poured out its fatal contents. The foremost Indian bounded like a stricken deer, and fell headlong among the clefts of the island.

When their enemies, who had jumped over the dark rocks separating them with long strides while shouting wildly, got within a few yards, Hawkeye’s rifle slowly lifted among the bushes and fired its deadly shot. The leading Indian lunged forward like a wounded deer and collapsed dramatically into the crevices of the island.

“Now, Uncas!” cried the scout, drawing his long knife, while his quick eyes began to flash with ardor, “take the last of the screeching imps; of the other two we are sartain!”

“Now, Uncas!” shouted the scout, pulling out his long knife, while his sharp eyes began to shine with excitement, “take down the last of the screeching imps; we’re sure about the other two!”

He was obeyed; and but two enemies remained to be overcome. Heyward had given one of his pistols to Hawkeye, and together they rushed down a little declivity toward their foes; they discharged their weapons at the same instant, and equally without success.

He was followed; and only two enemies were left to defeat. Heyward had handed one of his pistols to Hawkeye, and together they charged down a small slope toward their opponents; they fired their weapons at the same time, and just as unsuccessfully.

“I know’d it! and I said it!” muttered the scout, whirling the despised little implement over the falls with bitter disdain. “Come on, ye bloody minded hell-hounds! ye meet a man without a cross!”

“I knew it! and I said it!” muttered the scout, spinning the hated little gadget over the falls with bitter contempt. “Come on, you ruthless hell-hounds! you face a man without a cross!”

The words were barely uttered, when he encountered a savage of gigantic stature, of the fiercest mien. At the same moment, Duncan found himself engaged with the other, in a similar contest of hand to hand. With ready skill, Hawkeye and his antagonist each grasped that uplifted arm of the other which held the dangerous knife. For near a minute they stood looking one another in the eye, and gradually exerting the power of their muscles for the mastery.

The words were barely spoken when he came face to face with a massive, fierce-looking savage. At the same time, Duncan found himself in a similar struggle with another opponent. With quick reflexes, Hawkeye and his adversary each grabbed the other's raised arm that held the dangerous knife. For almost a minute, they stared each other in the eye, gradually using their strength to gain the upper hand.

[Illustration]

At length, the toughened sinews of the white man prevailed over the less practiced limbs of the native. The arm of the latter slowly gave way before the increasing force of the scout, who, suddenly wresting his armed hand from the grasp of the foe, drove the sharp weapon through his naked bosom to the heart. In the meantime, Heyward had been pressed in a more deadly struggle. His slight sword was snapped in the first encounter. As he was destitute of any other means of defense, his safety now depended entirely on bodily strength and resolution. Though deficient in neither of these qualities, he had met an enemy every way his equal. Happily, he soon succeeded in disarming his adversary, whose knife fell on the rock at their feet; and from this moment it became a fierce struggle who should cast the other over the dizzy height into a neighboring cavern of the falls. Every successive struggle brought them nearer to the verge, where Duncan perceived the final and conquering effort must be made. Each of the combatants threw all his energies into that effort, and the result was, that both tottered on the brink of the precipice. Heyward felt the grasp of the other at his throat, and saw the grim smile the savage gave, under the revengeful hope that he hurried his enemy to a fate similar to his own, as he felt his body slowly yielding to a resistless power, and the young man experienced the passing agony of such a moment in all its horrors. At that instant of extreme danger, a dark hand and glancing knife appeared before him; the Indian released his hold, as the blood flowed freely from around the severed tendons of the wrist; and while Duncan was drawn backward by the saving hand of Uncas, his charmed eyes still were riveted on the fierce and disappointed countenance of his foe, who fell sullenly and disappointed down the irrecoverable precipice.

Eventually, the strong muscles of the white man overpowered the less experienced limbs of the native. The latter's arm slowly gave in to the growing strength of the scout, who suddenly freed his armed hand from the enemy’s grip and plunged the sharp weapon into his bare chest, striking his heart. Meanwhile, Heyward was caught in a deadlier struggle. His flimsy sword broke in the first clash. Without any other means of defense, his safety now relied entirely on his physical strength and determination. Although he lacked neither, he faced an opponent who was equally matched. Fortunately, he soon managed to disarm his adversary, whose knife clattered to the rock at their feet. From that moment on, it became a fierce battle to throw the other over the dizzy edge into a nearby cavern created by the falls. With each struggle, they were pushed closer to the edge, where Duncan realized that the final, decisive effort needed to be made. Each fighter poured all his strength into that effort, resulting in both of them wobbling precariously on the edge of the cliff. Heyward felt the other’s grip around his throat and saw the grim smile of the savage, who hoped to send his enemy to a fate like his own. As he felt his body gradually giving in to an unstoppable force, the young man experienced the sheer terror of the moment. At that critical instant, a dark hand and flashing knife appeared before him; the Indian let go as blood flowed freely from his severed wrist tendons. While Duncan was pulled backward by Uncas’s saving hand, his captivated eyes remained fixed on the fierce, disappointed face of his foe, who fell sourly and despondently down the unforgiving cliff.

“To cover! to cover!” cried Hawkeye, who just then had despatched the enemy; “to cover, for your lives! the work is but half ended!”

“Take cover! Take cover!” shouted Hawkeye, who had just taken down the enemy. “Get to cover, for your lives! The job is only half done!”

The young Mohican gave a shout of triumph, and followed by Duncan, he glided up the acclivity they had descended to the combat, and sought the friendly shelter of the rocks and shrubs.

The young Mohican let out a shout of victory, and followed by Duncan, he smoothly made his way up the slope they had come down to fight, looking for the protective cover of the rocks and bushes.

CHAPTER VIII.

“They linger yet,
Avengers of their native land.”—Gray

“They still linger,
Avengers of their homeland.” —Gray

The warning call of the scout was not uttered without occasion. During the occurrence of the deadly encounter just related, the roar of the falls was unbroken by any human sound whatever. It would seem that interest in the result had kept the natives on the opposite shores in breathless suspense, while the quick evolutions and swift changes in the positions of the combatants effectually prevented a fire that might prove dangerous alike to friend and enemy. But the moment the struggle was decided, a yell arose as fierce and savage as wild and revengeful passions could throw into the air. It was followed by the swift flashes of the rifles, which sent their leaden messengers across the rock in volleys, as though the assailants would pour out their impotent fury on the insensible scene of the fatal contest.

The scout's warning call was definitely called for. During the deadly encounter just described, the roar of the falls drowned out any human sound. It seemed that the natives on the opposite shores were holding their breath in suspense over the outcome, while the quick moves and rapid changes in position of the fighters kept anyone from firing, which could have been dangerous for both sides. But as soon as the struggle ended, a yell erupted as fierce and savage as any wild and vengeful emotion could muster. This was followed by quick flashes from the rifles, firing their bullets across the rocks in volleys, as if the attackers wanted to unleash their useless rage on the lifeless setting of the deadly fight.

A steady, though deliberate return was made from the rifle of Chingachgook, who had maintained his post throughout the fray with unmoved resolution. When the triumphant shout of Uncas was borne to his ears, the gratified father raised his voice in a single responsive cry, after which his busy piece alone proved that he still guarded his pass with unwearied diligence. In this manner many minutes flew by with the swiftness of thought; the rifles of the assailants speaking, at times, in rattling volleys, and at others in occasional, scattering shots. Though the rock, the trees, and the shrubs, were cut and torn in a hundred places around the besieged, their cover was so close, and so rigidly maintained, that, as yet, David had been the only sufferer in their little band.

A steady, yet intentional return was made from Chingachgook's rifle, who had held his ground throughout the fight with unwavering determination. When he heard Uncas's triumphant shout, the pleased father called out in response, after which his gun continued to show that he was still guarding his position with tireless effort. In this way, many minutes passed quickly; the attackers fired their rifles in loud bursts at times and in occasional, scattered shots at others. Although the rock, trees, and bushes around them were damaged in numerous places, their cover was so close and strictly maintained that David was the only one in their small group who had been harmed so far.

“Let them burn their powder,” said the deliberate scout, while bullet after bullet whizzed by the place where he securely lay; “there will be a fine gathering of lead when it is over, and I fancy the imps will tire of the sport afore these old stones cry out for mercy! Uncas, boy, you waste the kernels by overcharging; and a kicking rifle never carries a true bullet. I told you to take that loping miscreant under the line of white point; now, if your bullet went a hair’s breadth it went two inches above it. The life lies low in a Mingo, and humanity teaches us to make a quick end to the sarpents.”

“Let them waste their bullets,” said the careful scout, as bullet after bullet zipped past the spot where he lay secure; “there will be a nice pile of lead when it’s all over, and I bet those demons will get tired of this game before these old stones beg for mercy! Uncas, boy, you’re wasting your shots by overloading; a rifle that kicks won’t shoot straight. I told you to aim for that loping troublemaker below the white point; now, if your bullet missed by a hair, it went two inches high. The vital spot is low on a Mingo, and common sense tells us to end the serpents quickly.”

A quiet smile lighted the haughty features of the young Mohican, betraying his knowledge of the English language as well as of the other’s meaning; but he suffered it to pass away without vindication of reply.

A quiet smile softened the proud expression of the young Mohican, showing that he understood both the English language and the other person’s meaning; however, he let it fade away without defending himself.

“I cannot permit you to accuse Uncas of want of judgment or of skill,” said Duncan; “he saved my life in the coolest and readiest manner, and he has made a friend who never will require to be reminded of the debt he owes.”

“I can’t let you accuse Uncas of lacking judgment or skill,” said Duncan; “he saved my life in the most composed and immediate way, and he has gained a friend who will never need to be reminded of the debt he owes.”

Uncas partly raised his body, and offered his hand to the grasp of Heyward. During this act of friendship, the two young men exchanged looks of intelligence which caused Duncan to forget the character and condition of his wild associate. In the meanwhile, Hawkeye, who looked on this burst of youthful feeling with a cool but kind regard made the following reply:

Uncas partially lifted himself and extended his hand to Heyward. In this moment of camaraderie, the two young men shared knowing glances that made Duncan overlook the nature and background of his wild companion. Meanwhile, Hawkeye, who observed this display of youthful emotion with a calm yet warm demeanor, responded with the following:

“Life is an obligation which friends often owe each other in the wilderness. I dare say I may have served Uncas some such turn myself before now; and I very well remember that he has stood between me and death five different times; three times from the Mingoes, once in crossing Horican, and—”

“Life is a responsibility that friends often have towards each other in tough times. I can honestly say I’ve helped Uncas out like that before; I clearly remember him saving me from death five times—three times from the Mingoes, once while crossing Horican, and—”

“That bullet was better aimed than common!” exclaimed Duncan, involuntarily shrinking from a shot which struck the rock at his side with a smart rebound.

“That shot was better aimed than usual!” Duncan exclaimed, instinctively flinching from a bullet that hit the rock beside him with a sharp rebound.

Hawkeye laid his hand on the shapeless metal, and shook his head, as he examined it, saying, “Falling lead is never flattened, had it come from the clouds this might have happened.”

Hawkeye placed his hand on the formless metal and shook his head as he looked it over, saying, “Falling lead doesn’t get flattened; if it had come from the clouds, this could have happened.”

But the rifle of Uncas was deliberately raised toward the heavens, directing the eyes of his companions to a point, where the mystery was immediately explained. A ragged oak grew on the right bank of the river, nearly opposite to their position, which, seeking the freedom of the open space, had inclined so far forward that its upper branches overhung that arm of the stream which flowed nearest to its own shore. Among the topmost leaves, which scantily concealed the gnarled and stunted limbs, a savage was nestled, partly concealed by the trunk of the tree, and partly exposed, as though looking down upon them to ascertain the effect produced by his treacherous aim.

But Uncas raised his rifle deliberately towards the sky, directing his companions' gaze to a point where the mystery was quickly clarified. A ragged oak stood on the right bank of the river, almost directly across from their position. It had leaned so far forward in search of open space that its upper branches hung over the part of the stream closest to its own shore. Among the top leaves, which barely hid the gnarled and stunted limbs, a savage was nestled, partly concealed by the trunk of the tree and partly exposed, as if he were looking down on them to gauge the effect of his treacherous aim.

“These devils will scale heaven to circumvent us to our ruin,” said Hawkeye; “keep him in play, boy, until I can bring ‘killdeer’ to bear, when we will try his metal on each side of the tree at once.”

“These devils will go to great lengths to take us down,” said Hawkeye; “keep him distracted, kid, until I can aim ‘killdeer,’ then we’ll see what he’s made of on both sides of the tree at the same time.”

Uncas delayed his fire until the scout uttered the word.

Uncas held off on firing until the scout gave the signal.

The rifles flashed, the leaves and bark of the oak flew into the air, and were scattered by the wind, but the Indian answered their assault by a taunting laugh, sending down upon them another bullet in return, that struck the cap of Hawkeye from his head. Once more the savage yells burst out of the woods, and the leaden hail whistled above the heads of the besieged, as if to confine them to a place where they might become easy victims to the enterprise of the warrior who had mounted the tree.

The rifles fired, sending leaves and bark from the oak flying into the air and scattering in the wind, but the Indian responded with a mocking laugh, shooting back another bullet that knocked Hawkeye's cap off his head. Again, savage yells erupted from the woods, and the whistling bullets passed over the heads of those under siege, as if to trap them in a spot where they could be easy targets for the warrior perched in the tree.

“This must be looked to,” said the scout, glancing about him with an anxious eye. “Uncas, call up your father; we have need of all our we’pons to bring the cunning varmint from his roost.”

“This needs to be addressed,” said the scout, looking around with a worried expression. “Uncas, summon your father; we need all our weapons to flush the clever critter out of his hideout.”

The signal was instantly given; and, before Hawkeye had reloaded his rifle, they were joined by Chingachgook. When his son pointed out to the experienced warrior the situation of their dangerous enemy, the usual exclamatory “hugh” burst from his lips; after which, no further expression of surprise or alarm was suffered to escape him. Hawkeye and the Mohicans conversed earnestly together in Delaware for a few moments, when each quietly took his post, in order to execute the plan they had speedily devised.

The signal was quickly given, and before Hawkeye could reload his rifle, Chingachgook joined them. When his son pointed out their dangerous enemy to the seasoned warrior, he let out his usual exclamation of “hugh.” After that, he didn’t show any more surprise or alarm. Hawkeye and the Mohicans had a serious discussion in Delaware for a few moments, and then each of them quietly took their position to carry out the plan they had quickly come up with.

The warrior in the oak had maintained a quick, though ineffectual fire, from the moment of his discovery. But his aim was interrupted by the vigilance of his enemies, whose rifles instantaneously bore on any part of his person that was left exposed. Still his bullets fell in the center of the crouching party. The clothes of Heyward, which rendered him peculiarly conspicuous, were repeatedly cut, and once blood was drawn from a slight wound in his arm.

The warrior in the oak had been shooting quickly, but it wasn’t effective, ever since he was found out. However, his aim was disrupted by the watchfulness of his enemies, who immediately targeted any part of him that was visible. Still, his bullets struck the middle of the crouching group. Heyward's distinctive clothing made him stand out, and his clothes were repeatedly shot at, resulting in a small cut that drew blood from his arm.

At length, emboldened by the long and patient watchfulness of his enemies, the Huron attempted a better and more fatal aim. The quick eyes of the Mohicans caught the dark line of his lower limbs incautiously exposed through the thin foliage, a few inches from the trunk of the tree. Their rifles made a common report, when, sinking on his wounded limb, part of the body of the savage came into view. Swift as thought, Hawkeye seized the advantage, and discharged his fatal weapon into the top of the oak. The leaves were unusually agitated; the dangerous rifle fell from its commanding elevation, and after a few moments of vain struggling, the form of the savage was seen swinging in the wind, while he still grasped a ragged and naked branch of the tree with hands clenched in desperation.

At last, encouraged by the long and patient watch of his enemies, the Huron tried for a better and deadlier shot. The keen eyes of the Mohicans spotted the dark line of his exposed legs barely visible through the thin foliage, just a few inches from the tree trunk. Their rifles fired simultaneously, and as he sank onto his injured leg, part of the savage's body became visible. Quick as a flash, Hawkeye took his chance and fired his deadly weapon into the top of the oak. The leaves rustled unusually; the dangerous rifle tumbled from its high position, and after a few moments of futile struggling, the savage's body swung in the wind, still gripping a jagged, bare branch of the tree with hands clenched in desperation.

“Give him, in pity, give him the contents of another rifle,” cried Duncan, turning away his eyes in horror from the spectacle of a fellow creature in such awful jeopardy.

“Out of pity, give him the contents of another rifle,” Duncan shouted, turning away from the horrifying sight of a fellow human in such terrible danger.

“Not a karnel!” exclaimed the obdurate Hawkeye; “his death is certain, and we have no powder to spare, for Indian fights sometimes last for days; ’tis their scalps or ours! and God, who made us, has put into our natures the craving to keep the skin on the head.”

“Not a bullet!” shouted the stubborn Hawkeye. “His death is guaranteed, and we don’t have any gunpowder to waste, because Native American fights can go on for days. It’s their scalps or ours! And God, who created us, has given us the instinct to keep our heads intact.”

Against this stern and unyielding morality, supported as it was by such visible policy, there was no appeal. From that moment the yells in the forest once more ceased, the fire was suffered to decline, and all eyes, those of friends as well as enemies, became fixed on the hopeless condition of the wretch who was dangling between heaven and earth. The body yielded to the currents of air, and though no murmur or groan escaped the victim, there were instants when he grimly faced his foes, and the anguish of cold despair might be traced, through the intervening distance, in possession of his swarthy lineaments. Three several times the scout raised his piece in mercy, and as often, prudence getting the better of his intention, it was again silently lowered. At length one hand of the Huron lost its hold, and dropped exhausted to his side. A desperate and fruitless struggle to recover the branch succeeded, and then the savage was seen for a fleeting instant, grasping wildly at the empty air. The lightning is not quicker than was the flame from the rifle of Hawkeye; the limbs of the victim trembled and contracted, the head fell to the bosom, and the body parted the foaming waters like lead, when the element closed above it, in its ceaseless velocity, and every vestige of the unhappy Huron was lost forever.

Against this strict and relentless moral code, backed by such obvious policy, there was no chance of appeal. From that moment, the screams in the forest faded away, the fire was allowed to dim, and all eyes, both friends and enemies, focused on the dire situation of the unfortunate person hanging between heaven and earth. The body swayed with the currents of air, and although no sound or groan escaped the victim, there were moments when he defiantly confronted his enemies, and the pain of cold despair could be seen, through the distance, on his dark features. Three times the scout raised his weapon in mercy, but each time, caution won out over his intention, and it was silently lowered again. At last, one hand of the Huron slipped its grip and fell weakly to his side. A desperate and futile effort to regain the branch followed, and then the savage was seen for a brief moment, grasping wildly at the empty air. The flash from Hawkeye’s rifle was faster than lightning; the victim's limbs shook and contorted, his head fell to his chest, and his body sank into the churning waters like a stone, as the element closed over it in its relentless motion, erasing every trace of the unfortunate Huron forever.

No shout of triumph succeeded this important advantage, but even the Mohicans gazed at each other in silent horror. A single yell burst from the woods, and all was again still. Hawkeye, who alone appeared to reason on the occasion, shook his head at his own momentary weakness, even uttering his self-disapprobation aloud.

No shout of victory followed this significant advantage, but even the Mohicans looked at each other in quiet shock. A single scream came from the woods, and everything went still again. Hawkeye, the only one who seemed to think clearly about what had happened, shook his head at his own brief moment of weakness, even voicing his self-criticism out loud.

“’Twas the last charge in my horn and the last bullet in my pouch, and ’twas the act of a boy!” he said; “what mattered it whether he struck the rock living or dead! feeling would soon be over. Uncas, lad, go down to the canoe, and bring up the big horn; it is all the powder we have left, and we shall need it to the last grain, or I am ignorant of the Mingo nature.”

“It was the last shot in my rifle and the last bullet in my pack, and it was the act of a boy!” he said; “what difference does it make whether he hit the rock alive or dead! Soon, it’ll all be over. Uncas, buddy, go down to the canoe and bring up the big horn; it’s all the gunpowder we have left, and we’re going to need every last bit of it, or I don’t know anything about the way Mingo thinks.”

The young Mohican complied, leaving the scout turning over the useless contents of his pouch, and shaking the empty horn with renewed discontent. From this unsatisfactory examination, however, he was soon called by a loud and piercing exclamation from Uncas, that sounded, even to the unpracticed ears of Duncan, as the signal of some new and unexpected calamity. Every thought filled with apprehension for the previous treasure he had concealed in the cavern, the young man started to his feet, totally regardless of the hazard he incurred by such an exposure. As if actuated by a common impulse, his movement was imitated by his companions, and, together they rushed down the pass to the friendly chasm, with a rapidity that rendered the scattering fire of their enemies perfectly harmless. The unwonted cry had brought the sisters, together with the wounded David, from their place of refuge; and the whole party, at a single glance, was made acquainted with the nature of the disaster that had disturbed even the practiced stoicism of their youthful Indian protector.

The young Mohican agreed, leaving the scout to sift through the useless contents of his pouch and shake the empty horn with renewed frustration. However, he was soon interrupted by a loud and piercing shout from Uncas, which, even to Duncan's inexperienced ears, signaled some new and unexpected trouble. Filled with worry about the treasure he had hidden in the cave, the young man jumped to his feet, completely ignoring the danger he faced by exposing himself. As if moved by a shared instinct, his companions mimicked his actions, and together they rushed down the path to the safe chasm, moving quickly enough that the enemy's scattered gunfire posed no threat. The unusual cry had brought the sisters, along with the injured David, from their hiding spot; and the whole group quickly understood the nature of the disaster that had even shaken the usual composure of their young Indian protector.

At a short distance from the rock, their little bark was to be seen floating across the eddy, toward the swift current of the river, in a manner which proved that its course was directed by some hidden agent. The instant this unwelcome sight caught the eye of the scout, his rifle was leveled as by instinct, but the barrel gave no answer to the bright sparks of the flint.

At a short distance from the rock, their small boat was floating across the eddy toward the fast current of the river, in a way that indicated it was being guided by some unseen force. The moment this unwelcome sight caught the scout's eye, he instinctively aimed his rifle, but the barrel did not respond to the bright sparks of the flint.

“’Tis too late, ’tis too late!” Hawkeye exclaimed, dropping the useless piece in bitter disappointment; “the miscreant has struck the rapid; and had we powder, it could hardly send the lead swifter than he now goes!”

“It's too late, it's too late!” Hawkeye exclaimed, dropping the useless piece in bitter disappointment; “the villain has hit the rapids, and even if we had gunpowder, it could hardly send the lead faster than he’s moving now!”

The adventurous Huron raised his head above the shelter of the canoe, and, while it glided swiftly down the stream, he waved his hand, and gave forth the shout, which was the known signal of success. His cry was answered by a yell and a laugh from the woods, as tauntingly exulting as if fifty demons were uttering their blasphemies at the fall of some Christian soul.

The daring Huron lifted his head above the cover of the canoe, and while it smoothly moved down the stream, he waved his hand and let out a shout, which was the familiar signal of success. His cry was met with a yell and a laugh from the woods, mockingly triumphant as if fifty demons were celebrating the downfall of some Christian soul.

“Well may you laugh, ye children of the devil!” said the scout, seating himself on a projection of the rock, and suffering his gun to fall neglected at his feet, “for the three quickest and truest rifles in these woods are no better than so many stalks of mullein, or the last year’s horns of a buck!”

“Well may you laugh, kids of the devil!” said the scout, sitting down on a ledge of the rock and letting his gun fall carelessly at his feet, “for the three fastest and most reliable rifles in these woods are no better than a bunch of mullein stalks or last year’s antlers from a buck!”

“What is to be done?” demanded Duncan, losing the first feeling of disappointment in a more manly desire for exertion; “what will become of us?”

“What should we do?” Duncan asked, pushing aside his initial disappointment for a stronger urge to take action. “What’s going to happen to us?”

Hawkeye made no other reply than by passing his finger around the crown of his head, in a manner so significant, that none who witnessed the action could mistake its meaning.

Hawkeye didn't say anything else, just ran his finger around the crown of his head in a way that was so clear that everyone who saw it understood exactly what it meant.

“Surely, surely, our case is not so desperate!” exclaimed the youth; “the Hurons are not here; we may make good the caverns, we may oppose their landing.”

“Surely, surely, our situation isn’t that hopeless!” the young man exclaimed. “The Hurons aren’t here; we can secure the caves, we can resist their landing.”

“With what?” coolly demanded the scout. “The arrows of Uncas, or such tears as women shed! No, no; you are young, and rich, and have friends, and at such an age I know it is hard to die! But,” glancing his eyes at the Mohicans, “let us remember we are men without a cross, and let us teach these natives of the forest that white blood can run as freely as red, when the appointed hour is come.”

“With what?” the scout asked coolly. “The arrows of Uncas, or the tears that women shed? No, no; you’re young, wealthy, and have friends, and I know it’s hard to face death at your age! But,” he said, glancing at the Mohicans, “let’s remember we’re men without a cross, and let’s show these natives of the forest that white blood can flow as freely as red when the time comes.”

Duncan turned quickly in the direction indicated by the other’s eyes, and read a confirmation of his worst apprehensions in the conduct of the Indians. Chingachgook, placing himself in a dignified posture on another fragment of the rock, had already laid aside his knife and tomahawk, and was in the act of taking the eagle’s plume from his head, and smoothing the solitary tuft of hair in readiness to perform its last and revolting office. His countenance was composed, though thoughtful, while his dark, gleaming eyes were gradually losing the fierceness of the combat in an expression better suited to the change he expected momentarily to undergo.

Duncan quickly turned in the direction the other was looking and saw confirmation of his worst fears in the behavior of the Indians. Chingachgook, standing tall on another piece of rock, had already put down his knife and tomahawk. He was in the process of removing the eagle’s plume from his head and smoothing his single tuft of hair in preparation for his final and disturbing task. His face was calm but thoughtful, while his dark, shining eyes were gradually softening from the intensity of battle to reflect a mood more fitting for the change he anticipated would happen soon.

“Our case is not, cannot be so hopeless!” said Duncan; “even at this very moment succor may be at hand. I see no enemies! They have sickened of a struggle in which they risk so much with so little prospect of gain!”

“Our situation is not, and cannot be, that hopeless!” said Duncan; “even right now help might be on the way. I don’t see any enemies! They’ve grown tired of a fight where they risk a lot with hardly any chance of winning!”

“It may be a minute, or it may be an hour, afore the wily sarpents steal upon us, and it is quite in natur’ for them to be lying within hearing at this very moment,” said Hawkeye; “but come they will, and in such a fashion as will leave us nothing to hope! Chingachgook”—he spoke in Delaware—“my brother, we have fought our last battle together, and the Maquas will triumph in the death of the sage man of the Mohicans, and of the pale face, whose eyes can make night as day, and level the clouds to the mists of the springs!”

“It might be a minute or it might be an hour before the crafty snakes come for us, and it’s totally in their nature to be listening right now,” said Hawkeye. “But they will come, and in a way that will leave us no hope! Chingachgook”—he spoke in Delaware—“my brother, we have fought our last battle together, and the Maquas will celebrate the death of the wise man of the Mohicans and the pale-faced one, whose eyes can turn night into day and bring the clouds down to the mists of the springs!”

“Let the Mingo women go weep over the slain!” returned the Indian, with characteristic pride and unmoved firmness; “the Great Snake of the Mohicans has coiled himself in their wigwams, and has poisoned their triumph with the wailings of children, whose fathers have not returned! Eleven warriors lie hid from the graves of their tribes since the snows have melted, and none will tell where to find them when the tongue of Chingachgook shall be silent! Let them draw the sharpest knife, and whirl the swiftest tomahawk, for their bitterest enemy is in their hands. Uncas, topmost branch of a noble trunk, call on the cowards to hasten, or their hearts will soften, and they will change to women!”

“Let the Mingo women weep over the dead!” replied the Indian, with his usual pride and unwavering strength; “the Great Snake of the Mohicans has wrapped himself around their homes, and has tainted their victory with the cries of children whose fathers have not come back! Eleven warriors have been hidden from their people's graves since the snow melted, and no one will say where to find them when Chingachgook's voice falls silent! Let them wield the sharpest knife and throw the fastest tomahawk, for their worst enemy is right in their hands. Uncas, the crowning branch of a noble family, urge the cowards to hurry, or their hearts will soften, and they’ll turn into women!”

“They look among the fishes for their dead!” returned the low, soft voice of the youthful chieftain; “the Hurons float with the slimy eels! They drop from the oaks like fruit that is ready to be eaten! and the Delawares laugh!”

“They search among the fish for their dead!” replied the soft, low voice of the young chieftain; “the Hurons drift with the slimy eels! They fall from the oaks like fruit that's ripe for picking! And the Delawares laugh!”

“Ay, ay,” muttered the scout, who had listened to this peculiar burst of the natives with deep attention; “they have warmed their Indian feelings, and they’ll soon provoke the Maquas to give them a speedy end. As for me, who am of the whole blood of the whites, it is befitting that I should die as becomes my color, with no words of scoffing in my mouth, and without bitterness at the heart!”

“Ay, ay,” muttered the scout, who had listened to this strange outburst from the natives with deep attention; “they have stirred up their Indian feelings, and they’ll soon provoke the Maquas to put an end to them quickly. As for me, being fully of the white race, it is right that I should die in line with my background, with no mocking words on my lips, and without bitterness in my heart!”

“Why die at all!” said Cora, advancing from the place where natural horror had, until this moment, held her riveted to the rock; “the path is open on every side; fly, then, to the woods, and call on God for succor. Go, brave men, we owe you too much already; let us no longer involve you in our hapless fortunes!”

“Why die at all!” Cora exclaimed, stepping away from the spot where fear had kept her frozen on the rock until now. “The way is clear in every direction; hurry to the woods and call on God for help. Go, brave men, we already owe you too much; let’s not drag you into our unfortunate fate any longer!”

“You but little know the craft of the Iroquois, lady, if you judge they have left the path open to the woods!” returned Hawkeye, who, however, immediately added in his simplicity, “the down stream current, it is certain, might soon sweep us beyond the reach of their rifles or the sound of their voices.”

“You hardly understand the skills of the Iroquois, ma'am, if you think they’ve left the path clear to the woods!” replied Hawkeye, who then simply added, “It’s true that the current downstream could quickly carry us out of range of their rifles or the sound of their voices.”

“Then try the river. Why linger to add to the number of the victims of our merciless enemies?”

“Then try the river. Why wait to become another victim of our ruthless enemies?”

“Why,” repeated the scout, looking about him proudly; “because it is better for a man to die at peace with himself than to live haunted by an evil conscience! What answer could we give Munro, when he asked us where and how we left his children?”

“Why,” repeated the scout, glancing around him with pride; “because it’s better for someone to die feeling good about themselves than to live tormented by a guilty conscience! What could we tell Munro when he asked us where and how we left his children?”

“Go to him, and say that you left them with a message to hasten to their aid,” returned Cora, advancing nigher to the scout in her generous ardor; “that the Hurons bear them into the northern wilds, but that by vigilance and speed they may yet be rescued; and if, after all, it should please heaven that his assistance come too late, bear to him,” she continued, her voice gradually lowering, until it seemed nearly choked, “the love, the blessings, the final prayers of his daughters, and bid him not mourn their early fate, but to look forward with humble confidence to the Christian’s goal to meet his children.” The hard, weather-beaten features of the scout began to work, and when she had ended, he dropped his chin to his hand, like a man musing profoundly on the nature of the proposal.

“Go to him and tell him that you delivered a message urging them to hurry to help,” Cora said, stepping closer to the scout with her generous spirit; “that the Hurons are taking them into the northern wilderness, but if they are careful and quick, they might still be saved. And if, in the end, it turns out that his help arrives too late, tell him,” she continued, her voice gradually lowering until it sounded almost choked, “the love, the blessings, the final prayers of his daughters, and ask him not to grieve for their early fate, but to look forward with humble confidence to the Christian’s goal of reuniting with his children.” The scout's rugged, weathered features began to show emotion, and when she finished speaking, he rested his chin on his hand, like someone deep in thought about what she proposed.

“There is reason in her words!” at length broke from his compressed and trembling lips; “ay, and they bear the spirit of Christianity; what might be right and proper in a red-skin, may be sinful in a man who has not even a cross in blood to plead for his ignorance. Chingachgook! Uncas! hear you the talk of the dark-eyed woman?”

“There’s sense in what she’s saying!” he finally exclaimed through his tight and shaking lips; “yes, and it reflects the essence of Christianity; what might be acceptable for a native might be wrong for a person who doesn’t even have a mark in blood to justify his ignorance. Chingachgook! Uncas! do you hear the words of the dark-eyed woman?”

He now spoke in Delaware to his companions, and his address, though calm and deliberate, seemed very decided. The elder Mohican heard with deep gravity, and appeared to ponder on his words, as though he felt the importance of their import. After a moment of hesitation, he waved his hand in assent, and uttered the English word “Good!” with the peculiar emphasis of his people. Then, replacing his knife and tomahawk in his girdle, the warrior moved silently to the edge of the rock which was most concealed from the banks of the river. Here he paused a moment, pointed significantly to the woods below, and saying a few words in his own language, as if indicating his intended route, he dropped into the water, and sank from before the eyes of the witnesses of his movements.

He spoke in Delaware to his companions, and though his tone was calm and thoughtful, it felt very firm. The elder Mohican listened seriously, appearing to reflect on his words, as if he understood their significance. After a brief pause, he waved his hand in agreement and said the English word “Good!” with the distinct emphasis of his people. Then, putting his knife and tomahawk back in his belt, the warrior quietly moved to the part of the rock that was most hidden from the riverbanks. Here he stopped for a moment, pointed meaningfully toward the woods below, and said a few words in his own language, as if showing his planned route. He then dropped into the water and disappeared from the view of those watching him.

The scout delayed his departure to speak to the generous girl, whose breathing became lighter as she saw the success of her remonstrance.

The scout postponed his departure to talk to the kind girl, whose breathing relaxed as she noticed the success of her plea.

“Wisdom is sometimes given to the young, as well as to the old,” he said; “and what you have spoken is wise, not to call it by a better word. If you are led into the woods, that is such of you as may be spared for awhile, break the twigs on the bushes as you pass, and make the marks of your trail as broad as you can, when, if mortal eyes can see them, depend on having a friend who will follow to the ends of the ’arth afore he desarts you.”

“Wisdom can sometimes be found in both the young and the old,” he said. “What you’ve said is wise, if I may say so. If you find yourself in the woods, use what you can spare for now, break twigs on the bushes as you go, and make your trail as noticeable as possible. If mortal eyes can see them, you can count on having a friend who will follow you to the ends of the earth before leaving you.”

He gave Cora an affectionate shake of the hand, lifted his rifle, and after regarding it a moment with melancholy solicitude, laid it carefully aside, and descended to the place where Chingachgook had just disappeared. For an instant he hung suspended by the rock, and looking about him, with a countenance of peculiar care, he added bitterly, “Had the powder held out, this disgrace could never have befallen!” then, loosening his hold, the water closed above his head, and he also became lost to view.

He gave Cora a warm handshake, picked up his rifle, and after looking at it for a moment with a sad expression, set it down carefully and went to the spot where Chingachgook had just vanished. For a moment, he hung there by the rock, looking around with a troubled face, and bitterly said, “If the powder had lasted, this shame would never have happened!” Then, letting go, the water closed over his head, and he disappeared too.

All eyes now were turned on Uncas, who stood leaning against the ragged rock, in immovable composure. After waiting a short time, Cora pointed down the river, and said:

All eyes were now on Uncas, who stood leaning against the jagged rock, completely calm. After waiting a moment, Cora pointed down the river and said:

“Your friends have not been seen, and are now, most probably, in safety. Is it not time for you to follow?”

“Your friends haven’t been seen, and they are probably safe now. Isn’t it time for you to follow?”

“Uncas will stay,” the young Mohican calmly answered in English.

“Uncas will stay,” the young Mohican replied calmly in English.

“To increase the horror of our capture, and to diminish the chances of our release! Go, generous young man,” Cora continued, lowering her eyes under the gaze of the Mohican, and perhaps, with an intuitive consciousness of her power; “go to my father, as I have said, and be the most confidential of my messengers. Tell him to trust you with the means to buy the freedom of his daughters. Go! ’tis my wish, ’tis my prayer, that you will go!”

“To make our capture even more terrifying and to reduce the chances of us being freed! Go, kind young man,” Cora continued, lowering her eyes under the Mohican’s gaze, perhaps aware of her influence; “go to my father, as I’ve said, and be my most trusted messenger. Tell him to trust you with what he needs to buy the freedom of his daughters. Go! It’s my wish, it’s my prayer, that you will go!”

The settled, calm look of the young chief changed to an expression of gloom, but he no longer hesitated. With a noiseless step he crossed the rock, and dropped into the troubled stream. Hardly a breath was drawn by those he left behind, until they caught a glimpse of his head emerging for air, far down the current, when he again sank, and was seen no more.

The calm, composed expression of the young chief shifted to one of sadness, but he didn't hesitate any longer. With a silent step, he crossed the rock and jumped into the turbulent stream. Those he left behind barely breathed until they caught sight of his head breaking the surface for air, far down the current, before he sank again and disappeared.

These sudden and apparently successful experiments had all taken place in a few minutes of that time which had now become so precious. After a last look at Uncas, Cora turned and with a quivering lip, addressed herself to Heyward:

These sudden and apparently successful experiments had all happened in just a few minutes of that time which had now become so precious. After taking one last look at Uncas, Cora turned and, with a trembling lip, spoke to Heyward:

“I have heard of your boasted skill in the water, too, Duncan,” she said; “follow, then, the wise example set you by these simple and faithful beings.”

“I’ve heard about your bragged skills in the water, too, Duncan,” she said; “so, follow the wise example set for you by these simple and loyal beings.”

“Is such the faith that Cora Munro would exact from her protector?” said the young man, smiling mournfully, but with bitterness.

“Is that the kind of faith Cora Munro expects from her protector?” the young man said, smiling sadly, but with a hint of bitterness.

“This is not a time for idle subtleties and false opinions,” she answered; “but a moment when every duty should be equally considered. To us you can be of no further service here, but your precious life may be saved for other and nearer friends.”

“This isn’t a time for pointless details and misleading opinions,” she replied; “but a moment when every obligation should be taken seriously. You can’t be of any more help to us here, but your valuable life might be saved for other closer friends.”

He made no reply, though his eye fell wistfully on the beautiful form of Alice, who was clinging to his arm with the dependency of an infant.

He didn’t respond, but his gaze lingered longingly on Alice’s beautiful figure, who was holding onto his arm like a child.

“Consider,” continued Cora, after a pause, during which she seemed to struggle with a pang even more acute than any that her fears had excited, “that the worst to us can be but death; a tribute that all must pay at the good time of God’s appointment.”

“Think about it,” Cora continued after a pause, during which she seemed to wrestle with a pain even sharper than any her fears had stirred up, “the worst that can happen to us is just death; a price that everyone has to pay at the right moment set by God.”

“There are evils worse than death,” said Duncan, speaking hoarsely, and as if fretful at her importunity, “but which the presence of one who would die in your behalf may avert.”

“There are evils worse than death,” said Duncan, speaking hoarsely and sounding annoyed by her insistence, “but the presence of someone who would die for you might keep them away.”

Cora ceased her entreaties; and veiling her face in her shawl, drew the nearly insensible Alice after her into the deepest recess of the inner cavern.

Cora stopped pleading; and covering her face with her shawl, pulled the almost unconscious Alice with her into the darkest corner of the inner cave.

CHAPTER IX.

“Be gay securely;
Dispel, my fair, with smiles, the tim’rous clouds,
That hang on thy clear brow.”—Death of Agrippina

“Be happy safely;
Chase away, my beautiful, with smiles, the fearful clouds,
That linger on your clear forehead.”—Death of Agrippina

The sudden and almost magical change, from the stirring incidents of the combat to the stillness that now reigned around him, acted on the heated imagination of Heyward like some exciting dream. While all the images and events he had witnessed remained deeply impressed on his memory, he felt a difficulty in persuading him of their truth. Still ignorant of the fate of those who had trusted to the aid of the swift current, he at first listened intently to any signal or sounds of alarm, which might announce the good or evil fortune of their hazardous undertaking. His attention was, however, bestowed in vain; for with the disappearance of Uncas, every sign of the adventurers had been lost, leaving him in total uncertainty of their fate.

The sudden and almost magical shift from the intense moments of battle to the silence surrounding him felt like a thrilling dream to Heyward's heated imagination. Even though all the images and events he had witnessed were etched deeply in his memory, he struggled to convince himself of their reality. Still unaware of what happened to those who had trusted the swift current for help, he initially listened closely for any signals or sounds of alarm that might indicate the success or failure of their risky venture. However, his attention was in vain; with Uncas's disappearance, all trace of the adventurers had vanished, leaving him completely uncertain about their fate.

In a moment of such painful doubt, Duncan did not hesitate to look around him, without consulting that protection from the rocks which just before had been so necessary to his safety. Every effort, however, to detect the least evidence of the approach of their hidden enemies was as fruitless as the inquiry after his late companions. The wooded banks of the river seemed again deserted by everything possessing animal life. The uproar which had so lately echoed through the vaults of the forest was gone, leaving the rush of the waters to swell and sink on the currents of the air, in the unmingled sweetness of nature. A fish-hawk, which, secure on the topmost branches of a dead pine, had been a distant spectator of the fray, now swooped from his high and ragged perch, and soared, in wide sweeps, above his prey; while a jay, whose noisy voice had been stilled by the hoarser cries of the savages, ventured again to open his discordant throat, as though once more in undisturbed possession of his wild domains. Duncan caught from these natural accompaniments of the solitary scene a glimmering of hope; and he began to rally his faculties to renewed exertions, with something like a reviving confidence of success.

In a moment of intense uncertainty, Duncan didn’t hesitate to look around him, without the safety of the rocks that had seemed so crucial just moments before. Every attempt to find even a hint of the hidden enemies was as fruitless as searching for his lost companions. The wooded banks of the river felt completely deserted of any animal life. The noise that had recently echoed through the forest was gone, leaving only the soft rush of water blending with the air, in the pure beauty of nature. A fish-hawk, perched securely on the top branches of a dead pine and having watched the commotion from a distance, now swooped down from his high, jagged spot and circled above his prey; meanwhile, a jay, whose loud calls had been silenced by the harsher cries of the savages, dared to speak up again, as if reclaiming his wild territory. Duncan derived a glimmer of hope from these natural accompaniments of the lonely scene; and he began to gather his strength for renewed efforts, feeling a spark of renewed confidence in his success.

“The Hurons are not to be seen,” he said, addressing David, who had by no means recovered from the effects of the stunning blow he had received; “let us conceal ourselves in the cavern, and trust the rest to Providence.”

“The Hurons can’t be seen,” he said to David, who still hadn’t recovered from the effects of the hard blow he’d taken; “let’s hide in the cave and leave the rest to Providence.”

“I remember to have united with two comely maidens, in lifting up our voices in praise and thanksgiving,” returned the bewildered singing-master; “since which time I have been visited by a heavy judgment for my sins. I have been mocked with the likeness of sleep, while sounds of discord have rent my ears, such as might manifest the fullness of time, and that nature had forgotten her harmony.”

“I remember coming together with two lovely young women to raise our voices in praise and gratitude,” said the confused singing master. “Since then, I’ve faced a heavy punishment for my wrongs. I've been teased with the illusion of sleep, while dissonant sounds have pierced my ears, as if to show that the time is full and nature has forgotten her harmony.”

“Poor fellow! thine own period was, in truth, near its accomplishment! But arouse, and come with me; I will lead you where all other sounds but those of your own psalmody shall be excluded.”

“Poor guy! Your time is really coming to an end! But wake up, and come with me; I'll take you to a place where all other sounds except your own singing will be gone.”

“There is melody in the fall of the cataract, and the rushing of many waters is sweet to the senses!” said David, pressing his hand confusedly on his brow. “Is not the air yet filled with shrieks and cries, as though the departed spirits of the damned—”

“There’s music in the sound of the waterfall, and the rush of all that water is pleasant to the senses!” said David, pressing his hand awkwardly on his forehead. “Isn’t the air still filled with screams and cries, as if the restless souls of the damned—”

“Not now, not now,” interrupted the impatient Heyward, “they have ceased, and they who raised them, I trust in God, they are gone, too! everything but the water is still and at peace; in, then, where you may create those sounds you love so well to hear.”

“Not now, not now,” interrupted the impatient Heyward, “they have stopped, and I hope to God that those who made them are gone too! Everything except the water is calm and peaceful; so go on, where you can make those sounds you love to hear.”

David smiled sadly, though not without a momentary gleam of pleasure, at this allusion to his beloved vocation. He no longer hesitated to be led to a spot which promised such unalloyed gratification to his wearied senses; and leaning on the arm of his companion, he entered the narrow mouth of the cave. Duncan seized a pile of the sassafras, which he drew before the passage, studiously concealing every appearance of an aperture. Within this fragile barrier he arranged the blankets abandoned by the foresters, darkening the inner extremity of the cavern, while its outer received a chastened light from the narrow ravine, through which one arm of the river rushed to form the junction with its sister branch a few rods below.

David smiled sadly, though there was a brief spark of joy at this reference to his cherished profession. He no longer hesitated to follow his companion to a place that promised such pure satisfaction to his tired senses; and leaning on his friend's arm, he entered the narrow entrance of the cave. Duncan grabbed a pile of sassafras and pulled it in front of the opening, carefully hiding any signs of a gap. Behind this delicate barrier, he arranged the blankets left by the foresters, darkening the back of the cave, while the front let in softened light from the narrow ravine, where one arm of the river rushed to merge with its sister branch just a few yards away.

“I like not the principle of the natives, which teaches them to submit without a struggle, in emergencies that appear desperate,” he said, while busied in this employment; “our own maxim, which says, ‘while life remains there is hope’, is more consoling, and better suited to a soldier’s temperament. To you, Cora, I will urge no words of idle encouragement; your own fortitude and undisturbed reason will teach you all that may become your sex; but cannot we dry the tears of that trembling weeper on your bosom?”

“I don’t agree with the natives’ belief that they should give in without a fight during desperate times,” he said while busy with his task. “Our saying, ‘while life remains, there is hope,’ is much more comforting and fits a soldier's mindset better. As for you, Cora, I won’t offer any empty words of encouragement; your own strength and calm reasoning will guide you in what’s appropriate for a woman. But can’t we wipe the tears of that shaking person in your arms?”

“I am calmer, Duncan,” said Alice, raising herself from the arms of her sister, and forcing an appearance of composure through her tears; “much calmer, now. Surely, in this hidden spot we are safe, we are secret, free from injury; we will hope everything from those generous men who have risked so much already in our behalf.”

“I’m feeling calmer, Duncan,” Alice said, sitting up from her sister’s embrace, trying to look composed despite her tears. “Much calmer now. Surely, in this secluded place we’re safe, we’re hidden, free from harm; we can count on those kind men who have already risked so much for us.”

“Now does our gentle Alice speak like a daughter of Munro!” said Heyward, pausing to press her hand as he passed toward the outer entrance of the cavern. “With two such examples of courage before him, a man would be ashamed to prove other than a hero.” He then seated himself in the center of the cavern, grasping his remaining pistol with a hand convulsively clenched, while his contracted and frowning eye announced the sullen desperation of his purpose. “The Hurons, if they come, may not gain our position so easily as they think,” he slowly muttered; and propping his head back against the rock, he seemed to await the result in patience, though his gaze was unceasingly bent on the open avenue to their place of retreat.

“Now our gentle Alice speaks like a true daughter of Munro!” Heyward said, stopping to hold her hand as he walked toward the entrance of the cave. “With two such examples of bravery in front of him, a man would feel ashamed to be anything less than a hero.” He then sat down in the middle of the cave, gripping his remaining pistol with a tightly clenched hand, while his narrowed and frowning eyes showed the grim determination of his intent. “The Hurons, if they come, might not take our position as easily as they believe,” he muttered slowly; and leaning his head back against the rock, he appeared to wait patiently for the outcome, although his gaze was constantly fixed on the open path to their escape.

With the last sound of his voice, a deep, a long, and almost breathless silence succeeded. The fresh air of the morning had penetrated the recess, and its influence was gradually felt on the spirits of its inmates. As minute after minute passed by, leaving them in undisturbed security, the insinuating feeling of hope was gradually gaining possession of every bosom, though each one felt reluctant to give utterance to expectations that the next moment might so fearfully destroy.

With the final echo of his voice, a deep, long, and almost breathless silence followed. The fresh morning air seeped into the space, and its effect slowly lifted the spirits of those inside. As minute after minute went by, leaving them in peaceful safety, a comforting sense of hope quietly took hold of everyone, even though each person hesitated to express thoughts that could be shattered in an instant.

David alone formed an exception to these varying emotions. A gleam of light from the opening crossed his wan countenance, and fell upon the pages of the little volume, whose leaves he was again occupied in turning, as if searching for some song more fitted to their condition than any that had yet met their eye. He was, most probably, acting all this time under a confused recollection of the promised consolation of Duncan. At length, it would seem, his patient industry found its reward; for, without explanation or apology, he pronounced aloud the words “Isle of Wight,” drew a long, sweet sound from his pitch-pipe, and then ran through the preliminary modulations of the air whose name he had just mentioned, with the sweeter tones of his own musical voice.

David was the only one who stood out from these changing emotions. A ray of light from the opening hit his pale face and shone on the pages of the little book he was once again flipping through, as if he were looking for a song that better suited their mood than any they had seen so far. He was likely trying to remember the comforting words Duncan had promised. Finally, it seemed his persistent effort paid off; without any explanation or apology, he said the words “Isle of Wight” aloud, pulled a long, sweet note from his pitch-pipe, and then began to play the opening notes of the song he had just named, blending them with the beautiful tones of his own singing voice.

“May not this prove dangerous?” asked Cora, glancing her dark eye at Major Heyward.

“Could this be dangerous?” asked Cora, glancing her dark eye at Major Heyward.

“Poor fellow! his voice is too feeble to be heard above the din of the falls,” was the answer; “beside, the cavern will prove his friend. Let him indulge his passions since it may be done without hazard.”

“Poor guy! His voice is too weak to be heard over the noise of the falls,” was the reply; “besides, the cave will be on his side. Let him follow his desires since there's no risk in doing so.”

“Isle of Wight!” repeated David, looking about him with that dignity with which he had long been wont to silence the whispering echoes of his school; “’tis a brave tune, and set to solemn words! let it be sung with meet respect!”

“Isle of Wight!” David said again, scanning his surroundings with the kind of authority he had long used to quiet the murmuring echoes of his school. “It’s a great song, paired with serious words! Let it be sung with appropriate respect!”

After allowing a moment of stillness to enforce his discipline, the voice of the singer was heard, in low, murmuring syllables, gradually stealing on the ear, until it filled the narrow vault with sounds rendered trebly thrilling by the feeble and tremulous utterance produced by his debility. The melody, which no weakness could destroy, gradually wrought its sweet influence on the senses of those who heard it. It even prevailed over the miserable travesty of the song of David which the singer had selected from a volume of similar effusions, and caused the sense to be forgotten in the insinuating harmony of the sounds. Alice unconsciously dried her tears, and bent her melting eyes on the pallid features of Gamut, with an expression of chastened delight that she neither affected or wished to conceal. Cora bestowed an approving smile on the pious efforts of the namesake of the Jewish prince, and Heyward soon turned his steady, stern look from the outlet of the cavern, to fasten it, with a milder character, on the face of David, or to meet the wandering beams which at moments strayed from the humid eyes of Alice. The open sympathy of the listeners stirred the spirit of the votary of music, whose voice regained its richness and volume, without losing that touching softness which proved its secret charm. Exerting his renovated powers to their utmost, he was yet filling the arches of the cave with long and full tones, when a yell burst into the air without, that instantly stilled his pious strains, choking his voice suddenly, as though his heart had literally bounded into the passage of his throat.

After a moment of silence to regain his focus, the singer's voice emerged, softly murmuring as it gradually filled the narrow space with sounds that were even more moving due to his weak delivery. The melody, untouched by his frailty, began to cast its sweet influence on everyone listening. It even overcame the pitiful rendition of David's song that the singer had picked from a similar collection, making them forget the lyrics in the alluring harmony. Alice instinctively wiped away her tears and gazed at Gamut's pale face with a look of sincere joy that she neither pretended nor tried to hide. Cora smiled approvingly at the efforts of the singer, who bore the same name as the Jewish prince, while Heyward shifted his steady, serious gaze from the cave's entrance to focus, more gently, on David’s face or to catch the glimmers from Alice's moist eyes. The open warmth from the listeners sparked the spirit of the musician, who regained his richness and volume without sacrificing the tender softness that gave his voice its real appeal. As he pushed his renewed strengths to the limit, filling the cave's arches with deep, full notes, a yell suddenly pierced the air outside, abruptly stopping his sacred song, choking his voice as if his heart had leapt into his throat.

“We are lost!” exclaimed Alice, throwing herself into the arms of Cora.

“We're lost!” Alice exclaimed, throwing herself into Cora's arms.

“Not yet, not yet,” returned the agitated but undaunted Heyward: “the sound came from the center of the island, and it has been produced by the sight of their dead companions. We are not yet discovered, and there is still hope.”

“Not yet, not yet,” replied the anxious but determined Heyward. “The sound came from the center of the island, and it was triggered by the sight of their dead companions. We haven't been discovered yet, and there’s still hope.”

Faint and almost despairing as was the prospect of escape, the words of Duncan were not thrown away, for it awakened the powers of the sisters in such a manner that they awaited the results in silence. A second yell soon followed the first, when a rush of voices was heard pouring down the island, from its upper to its lower extremity, until they reached the naked rock above the caverns, where, after a shout of savage triumph, the air continued full of horrible cries and screams, such as man alone can utter, and he only when in a state of the fiercest barbarity.

Faint and almost hopeless as the chance of escape was, Duncan's words weren’t wasted. They stirred the sisters’ abilities in a way that had them waiting in silence for what would happen next. A second yell quickly followed the first, and a wave of voices came pouring down the island, from its highest point to its lowest, until they reached the bare rock above the caves. After a shout of savage triumph, the air was filled with horrible cries and screams that only humans can make, and even then only when in a state of the fiercest savagery.

The sounds quickly spread around them in every direction. Some called to their fellows from the water’s edge, and were answered from the heights above. Cries were heard in the startling vicinity of the chasm between the two caves, which mingled with hoarser yells that arose out of the abyss of the deep ravine. In short, so rapidly had the savage sounds diffused themselves over the barren rock, that it was not difficult for the anxious listeners to imagine they could be heard beneath, as in truth they were above on every side of them.

The sounds quickly spread around them in every direction. Some called to their friends from the water's edge and were answered from the heights above. Cries echoed in the startling area near the gap between the two caves, blending with louder yells that came from the depths of the ravine. In short, the savage sounds spread so quickly over the barren rock that it was easy for the anxious listeners to imagine they could hear them below, just as they could above on every side.

In the midst of this tumult, a triumphant yell was raised within a few yards of the hidden entrance to the cave. Heyward abandoned every hope, with the belief it was the signal that they were discovered. Again the impression passed away, as he heard the voices collect near the spot where the white man had so reluctantly abandoned his rifle. Amid the jargon of Indian dialects that he now plainly heard, it was easy to distinguish not only words, but sentences, in the patois of the Canadas. A burst of voices had shouted simultaneously, “La Longue Carabine!” causing the opposite woods to re-echo with a name which, Heyward well remembered, had been given by his enemies to a celebrated hunter and scout of the English camp, and who, he now learned for the first time, had been his late companion.

In the middle of all this chaos, a triumphant shout rang out just a few yards away from the hidden entrance to the cave. Heyward lost all hope, believing it was the signal that they had been found. But that feeling passed again as he heard voices gathering near the spot where the white man had reluctantly left his rifle. Among the mix of Indian dialects that he could now clearly hear, it was easy to pick out not just words, but full sentences in the dialects from Canada. A chorus of voices had shouted at the same time, “La Longue Carabine!” sending the name echoing back through the woods— a name that Heyward remembered well from his enemies, given to a famous hunter and scout from the English camp, who he just learned for the first time had been his recent companion.

“La Longue Carabine! La Longue Carabine!” passed from mouth to mouth, until the whole band appeared to be collected around a trophy which would seem to announce the death of its formidable owner. After a vociferous consultation, which was, at times, deafened by bursts of savage joy, they again separated, filling the air with the name of a foe, whose body, Heywood could collect from their expressions, they hoped to find concealed in some crevice of the island.

“La Longue Carabine! La Longue Carabine!” spread from person to person until the whole group gathered around a trophy that seemed to signal the death of its powerful owner. After a loud discussion, occasionally drowned out by fits of wild excitement, they dispersed again, filling the air with the name of an enemy, whose body, Heywood could tell from their expressions, they hoped to discover hidden in some nook of the island.

“Now,” he whispered to the trembling sisters, “now is the moment of uncertainty! if our place of retreat escape this scrutiny, we are still safe! In every event, we are assured, by what has fallen from our enemies, that our friends have escaped, and in two short hours we may look for succor from Webb.”

“Now,” he whispered to the trembling sisters, “this is the moment of uncertainty! If our hiding place avoids this scrutiny, we’re still safe! In any case, we know from what our enemies have said that our friends have made it out, and in just two short hours we can expect help from Webb.”

There were now a few minutes of fearful stillness, during which Heyward well knew that the savages conducted their search with greater vigilance and method. More than once he could distinguish their footsteps, as they brushed the sassafras, causing the faded leaves to rustle, and the branches to snap. At length, the pile yielded a little, a corner of a blanket fell, and a faint ray of light gleamed into the inner part of the cave. Cora folded Alice to her bosom in agony, and Duncan sprang to his feet. A shout was at that moment heard, as if issuing from the center of the rock, announcing that the neighboring cavern had at length been entered. In a minute, the number and loudness of the voices indicated that the whole party was collected in and around that secret place.

There were now a few minutes of tense silence, during which Heyward knew the savages were searching with more awareness and precision. More than once, he could hear their footsteps as they brushed the sassafras, causing the dry leaves to rustle and the branches to snap. Finally, the pile shifted a bit, a corner of a blanket slipped, and a faint beam of light shone into the inner part of the cave. Cora hugged Alice tightly in distress, and Duncan jumped to his feet. At that moment, a shout was heard, as if coming from the center of the rock, announcing that the nearby cavern had finally been accessed. In a minute, the volume and number of voices made it clear that the entire group had gathered in and around that hidden spot.

As the inner passages to the two caves were so close to each other, Duncan, believing that escape was no longer possible, passed David and the sisters, to place himself between the latter and the first onset of the terrible meeting. Grown desperate by his situation, he drew nigh the slight barrier which separated him only by a few feet from his relentless pursuers, and placing his face to the casual opening, he even looked out with a sort of desperate indifference, on their movements.

As the entrances to the two caves were very close to each other, Duncan, thinking that escape was no longer an option, walked past David and the sisters to position himself between them and the initial attack of their terrifying encounter. Driven to desperation by his situation, he approached the thin barrier that separated him by only a few feet from his relentless pursuers, and pressing his face to the small opening, he looked out with a sort of reckless indifference at their movements.

Within reach of his arm was the brawny shoulder of a gigantic Indian, whose deep and authoritative voice appeared to give directions to the proceedings of his fellows. Beyond him again, Duncan could look into the vault opposite, which was filled with savages, upturning and rifling the humble furniture of the scout. The wound of David had dyed the leaves of sassafras with a color that the native well knew as anticipating the season. Over this sign of their success, they sent up a howl, like an opening from so many hounds who had recovered a lost trail. After this yell of victory, they tore up the fragrant bed of the cavern, and bore the branches into the chasm, scattering the boughs, as if they suspected them of concealing the person of the man they had so long hated and feared. One fierce and wild-looking warrior approached the chief, bearing a load of the brush, and pointing exultingly to the deep red stains with which it was sprinkled, uttered his joy in Indian yells, whose meaning Heyward was only enabled to comprehend by the frequent repetition of the name “La Longue Carabine!” When his triumph had ceased, he cast the brush on the slight heap Duncan had made before the entrance of the second cavern, and closed the view. His example was followed by others, who, as they drew the branches from the cave of the scout, threw them into one pile, adding, unconsciously, to the security of those they sought. The very slightness of the defense was its chief merit, for no one thought of disturbing a mass of brush, which all of them believed, in that moment of hurry and confusion, had been accidentally raised by the hands of their own party.

Within arm's reach was the muscular shoulder of a giant Indian, whose deep, commanding voice seemed to guide the actions of his companions. Further beyond, Duncan could see into the opposite vault, filled with savages rummaging through the scout's meager belongings. David's wound had stained the sassafras leaves with a color that the natives recognized as a sign of the season. In response to this sign of their success, they erupted into a howl, like a pack of hounds that had picked up a lost scent. After their victorious yell, they tore up the fragrant bedding of the cave and dragged the branches into the chasm, scattering the boughs as if they suspected them of hiding the man they had long hated and feared. One fierce, wild-looking warrior approached the chief, carrying a load of brush, and pointed excitedly to the deep red stains on it, expressing his joy in Indian yells, which Heyward could only partially understand through the repeated mention of "La Longue Carabine!" When his celebration ended, he dropped the brush onto a small heap Duncan had made in front of the entrance of the second cave, blocking the view. Others followed his lead; as they pulled branches from the scout's cave, they added them to one pile, unknowingly increasing the security of those they were trying to find. The very simplicity of the defense was its main advantage, as no one considered disturbing a mass of brush that, in their haste and confusion, they believed had been accidentally piled up by their own group.

As the blankets yielded before the outward pressure, and the branches settled in the fissure of the rock by their own weight, forming a compact body, Duncan once more breathed freely. With a light step and lighter heart, he returned to the center of the cave, and took the place he had left, where he could command a view of the opening next the river. While he was in the act of making this movement, the Indians, as if changing their purpose by a common impulse, broke away from the chasm in a body, and were heard rushing up the island again, toward the point whence they had originally descended. Here another wailing cry betrayed that they were again collected around the bodies of their dead comrades.

As the blankets gave way to the pressure from outside and the branches settled into the crack in the rock under their own weight, forming a solid mass, Duncan breathed easily once more. With a light step and a lighter heart, he moved back to the center of the cave and took the spot he had left, where he could see the opening by the river. Just as he was doing this, the Indians, as if they had a sudden change of mind, moved away from the chasm together and were heard rushing back up the island toward the spot they had originally come down from. There, another wailing cry revealed that they had gathered again around the bodies of their fallen comrades.

Duncan now ventured to look at his companions; for, during the most critical moments of their danger, he had been apprehensive that the anxiety of his countenance might communicate some additional alarm to those who were so little able to sustain it.

Duncan now dared to look at his companions; during the most critical moments of their danger, he had worried that the anxiety on his face might add to the fear of those who were already so unable to handle it.

“They are gone, Cora!” he whispered; “Alice, they are returned whence they came, and we are saved! To Heaven, that has alone delivered us from the grasp of so merciless an enemy, be all the praise!”

“They're gone, Cora!” he whispered; “Alice, they've gone back to where they came from, and we're saved! All the praise goes to Heaven, who alone has delivered us from the grip of such a merciless enemy!”

“Then to Heaven will I return my thanks!” exclaimed the younger sister, rising from the encircling arm of Cora, and casting herself with enthusiastic gratitude on the naked rock; “to that Heaven who has spared the tears of a gray-headed father; has saved the lives of those I so much love.”

“Then I will give my thanks to Heaven!” the younger sister exclaimed, rising from Cora's embrace and throwing herself onto the bare rock with heartfelt gratitude. “To that Heaven that has saved the tears of a gray-haired father and spared the lives of those I love so much.”

Both Heyward and the more temperate Cora witnessed the act of involuntary emotion with powerful sympathy, the former secretly believing that piety had never worn a form so lovely as it had now assumed in the youthful person of Alice. Her eyes were radiant with the glow of grateful feelings; the flush of her beauty was again seated on her cheeks, and her whole soul seemed ready and anxious to pour out its thanksgivings through the medium of her eloquent features. But when her lips moved, the words they should have uttered appeared frozen by some new and sudden chill. Her bloom gave place to the paleness of death; her soft and melting eyes grew hard, and seemed contracting with horror; while those hands, which she had raised, clasped in each other, toward heaven, dropped in horizontal lines before her, the fingers pointed forward in convulsed motion. Heyward turned the instant she gave a direction to his suspicions, and peering just above the ledge which formed the threshold of the open outlet of the cavern, he beheld the malignant, fierce and savage features of Le Renard Subtil.

Both Heyward and the more composed Cora watched the involuntary emotion with deep sympathy, the former secretly believing that piety had never looked so beautiful as it did now in the young woman Alice. Her eyes sparkled with gratitude; the glow of her beauty returned to her cheeks, and her entire being seemed ready and eager to express her thanks through her expressive features. But when her lips moved, the words that should have come out seemed frozen by a sudden and unexpected chill. Her rosy complexion turned pale as death; her soft, gentle eyes became hard and appeared to shrink in horror; while those hands, which she had raised, clasped together toward heaven, fell limp in front of her, the fingers pointed forward in a convulsed motion. Heyward turned the moment she gave a hint to his suspicions, and peering just above the ledge that formed the threshold of the open exit of the cave, he saw the cruel, fierce, and savage face of Le Renard Subtil.

In that moment of surprise, the self-possession of Heyward did not desert him. He observed by the vacant expression of the Indian’s countenance, that his eye, accustomed to the open air had not yet been able to penetrate the dusky light which pervaded the depth of the cavern. He had even thought of retreating beyond a curvature in the natural wall, which might still conceal him and his companions, when by the sudden gleam of intelligence that shot across the features of the savage, he saw it was too late, and that they were betrayed.

In that moment of surprise, Heyward remained calm. He noticed from the blank look on the Indian’s face that his eyes, used to the outdoors, hadn't been able to adjust to the dim light inside the cave. He even considered moving back behind a curve in the natural wall that might still hide him and his friends when he saw a sudden spark of realization on the savage's face. At that point, he knew it was too late and that they had been betrayed.

The look of exultation and brutal triumph which announced this terrible truth was irresistibly irritating. Forgetful of everything but the impulses of his hot blood, Duncan leveled his pistol and fired. The report of the weapon made the cavern bellow like an eruption from a volcano; and when the smoke it vomited had been driven away before the current of air which issued from the ravine the place so lately occupied by the features of his treacherous guide was vacant. Rushing to the outlet, Heyward caught a glimpse of his dark figure stealing around a low and narrow ledge, which soon hid him entirely from sight.

The look of joy and brutal victory that revealed this awful truth was incredibly annoying. Forgetting everything except the urges of his fierce anger, Duncan aimed his gun and shot. The sound of the gun echoed through the cavern like a volcanic eruption; and when the smoke cleared away in the breeze from the ravine, the spot where his deceitful guide had just been was empty. Rushing to the exit, Heyward caught a glimpse of his dark figure sneaking around a low, narrow ledge, which soon concealed him completely from view.

Among the savages a frightful stillness succeeded the explosion, which had just been heard bursting from the bowels of the rock. But when Le Renard raised his voice in a long and intelligible whoop, it was answered by a spontaneous yell from the mouth of every Indian within hearing of the sound.

Among the natives, a terrifying silence followed the explosion that had just erupted from the depths of the rock. But when Le Renard shouted out in a lengthy and clear whoop, every Indian within earshot responded with an instinctive yell.

The clamorous noises again rushed down the island; and before Duncan had time to recover from the shock, his feeble barrier of brush was scattered to the winds, the cavern was entered at both its extremities, and he and his companions were dragged from their shelter and borne into the day, where they stood surrounded by the whole band of the triumphant Hurons.

The loud noises once again echoed across the island; and before Duncan could recover from the shock, his weak barrier of brush was blown away, the cave was entered from both ends, and he and his companions were pulled from their hiding spot and brought into the daylight, where they found themselves surrounded by the entire group of victorious Hurons.

CHAPTER X.

“I fear we shall outsleep the coming morn
As much as we this night have overwatched!”
—Midsummer Night’s Dream

“I’m afraid we’ll sleep through the morning
Just like we’ve stayed awake all night!”
—Midsummer Night’s Dream

The instant the shock of this sudden misfortune had abated, Duncan began to make his observations on the appearance and proceedings of their captors. Contrary to the usages of the natives in the wantonness of their success they had respected, not only the persons of the trembling sisters, but his own. The rich ornaments of his military attire had indeed been repeatedly handled by different individuals of the tribes with eyes expressing a savage longing to possess the baubles; but before the customary violence could be resorted to, a mandate in the authoritative voice of the large warrior, already mentioned, stayed the uplifted hand, and convinced Heyward that they were to be reserved for some object of particular moment.

As soon as the shock of this sudden misfortune wore off, Duncan began to observe the appearance and actions of their captors. Unlike what was typical for the natives, who often acted recklessly after a victory, they showed respect not only for the frightened sisters but for him as well. The lavish decorations on his military uniform had indeed been touched by several members of the tribe, their eyes reflecting a fierce desire to have the trinkets; however, before they could resort to their usual violence, a command from the large warrior, previously mentioned, halted the raised hand and made Heyward realize that they were being kept for a specific purpose.

While, however, these manifestations of weakness were exhibited by the young and vain of the party, the more experienced warriors continued their search throughout both caverns, with an activity that denoted they were far from being satisfied with those fruits of their conquest which had already been brought to light. Unable to discover any new victim, these diligent workers of vengeance soon approached their male prisoners, pronouncing the name “La Longue Carabine,” with a fierceness that could not be easily mistaken. Duncan affected not to comprehend the meaning of their repeated and violent interrogatories, while his companion was spared the effort of a similar deception by his ignorance of French. Wearied at length by their importunities, and apprehensive of irritating his captors by too stubborn a silence, the former looked about him in quest of Magua, who might interpret his answers to questions which were at each moment becoming more earnest and threatening.

While these displays of weakness were showing through the young and arrogant members of the group, the more experienced warriors continued their search through both caves, clearly unhappy with the spoils of their conquest that had already been found. Unable to locate any new victim, these relentless seekers of revenge soon approached their male prisoners, repeatedly calling out “La Longue Carabine” with an intensity that was hard to misinterpret. Duncan pretended not to understand the meaning of their aggressive and persistent questions, while his companion didn’t need to pretend, as he didn’t know any French. Eventually exhausted by their demands and worried about pushing his captors further with stubborn silence, Duncan looked around for Magua, who could interpret his responses to questions that were growing more serious and threatening by the moment.

The conduct of this savage had formed a solitary exception to that of all his fellows. While the others were busily occupied in seeking to gratify their childish passion for finery, by plundering even the miserable effects of the scout, or had been searching with such bloodthirsty vengeance in their looks for their absent owner, Le Renard had stood at a little distance from the prisoners, with a demeanor so quiet and satisfied, as to betray that he had already effected the grand purpose of his treachery. When the eyes of Heyward first met those of his recent guide, he turned them away in horror at the sinister though calm look he encountered. Conquering his disgust, however, he was able, with an averted face, to address his successful enemy.

The behavior of this savage was a rare exception compared to his companions. While the others were busy trying to satisfy their childish urge for fancy items by stealing the meager possessions of the scout, or searching with a murderous glare for their missing leader, Le Renard stood a short distance away from the prisoners, looking so calm and satisfied that it was clear he had already achieved the main goal of his betrayal. When Heyward's eyes first met those of his former guide, he quickly looked away in horror at the sinister yet calm expression he saw. Overcoming his disgust, he managed to address his successful enemy with his face turned away.

“Le Renard Subtil is too much of a warrior,” said the reluctant Heyward, “to refuse telling an unarmed man what his conquerors say.”

“Le Renard Subtil is too much of a warrior,” said the hesitant Heyward, “to refuse to tell an unarmed man what his conquerors say.”

“They ask for the hunter who knows the paths through the woods,” returned Magua, in his broken English, laying his hand, at the same time, with a ferocious smile, on the bundle of leaves with which a wound on his own shoulder was bandaged. “‘La Longue Carabine’! His rifle is good, and his eye never shut; but, like the short gun of the white chief, it is nothing against the life of Le Subtil.”

“They’re looking for the hunter who knows the trails through the woods,” Magua replied in his broken English, smirking fiercely as he placed his hand on the bundle of leaves that was bandaging the wound on his shoulder. “‘La Longue Carabine’! His rifle is strong, and his aim is always sharp; but, just like the white chief’s short gun, it’s no match for the life of Le Subtil.”

“Le Renard is too brave to remember the hurts received in war, or the hands that gave them.”

“Le Renard is too brave to dwell on the wounds from war or the hands that caused them.”

“Was it war, when the tired Indian rested at the sugartree to taste his corn! who filled the bushes with creeping enemies! who drew the knife, whose tongue was peace, while his heart was colored with blood! Did Magua say that the hatchet was out of the ground, and that his hand had dug it up?”

“Was it war when the exhausted Native American took a break under the sugar tree to enjoy his corn! Who filled the bushes with sneaky enemies! Who pulled out the knife, whose words were peaceful while his heart was stained with blood! Did Magua say that the hatchet was out of the ground and that his hand had unearthed it?”

As Duncan dared not retort upon his accuser by reminding him of his own premeditated treachery, and disdained to deprecate his resentment by any words of apology, he remained silent. Magua seemed also content to rest the controversy as well as all further communication there, for he resumed the leaning attitude against the rock from which, in momentary energy, he had arisen. But the cry of “La Longue Carabine” was renewed the instant the impatient savages perceived that the short dialogue was ended.

As Duncan didn’t dare respond to his accuser by bringing up his own planned betrayal, and didn’t want to reduce his anger with any apologies, he stayed quiet. Magua also seemed fine with leaving the argument and any further communication there, as he returned to leaning against the rock from which he had briefly risen. But the shout of “La Longue Carabine” was repeated the moment the restless savages noticed that the brief conversation was over.

“You hear,” said Magua, with stubborn indifference: “the red Hurons call for the life of ‘The Long Rifle’, or they will have the blood of him that keep him hid!”

“You hear,” said Magua, with stubborn indifference: “the red Hurons are demanding the life of ‘The Long Rifle’, or they will take the blood of whoever is keeping him hidden!”

“He is gone—escaped; he is far beyond their reach.”

“He's gone—escaped; he's way beyond their reach.”

Renard smiled with cold contempt, as he answered:

Renard smiled with icy disdain as he replied:

“When the white man dies, he thinks he is at peace; but the red men know how to torture even the ghosts of their enemies. Where is his body? Let the Hurons see his scalp.”

“When a white man dies, he believes he is at peace; but the Native Americans know how to torment even the spirits of their foes. Where is his body? Let the Hurons see his scalp.”

“He is not dead, but escaped.”

“He's not dead, but he got away.”

Magua shook his head incredulously.

Magua shook his head in disbelief.

“Is he a bird, to spread his wings; or is he a fish, to swim without air! The white chief read in his books, and he believes the Hurons are fools!”

“Is he a bird, able to spread his wings; or is he a fish, able to swim without air! The white chief read in his books, and he thinks the Hurons are fools!”

“Though no fish, ‘The Long Rifle’ can swim. He floated down the stream when the powder was all burned, and when the eyes of the Hurons were behind a cloud.”

“Though no fish, ‘The Long Rifle’ can swim. He floated down the stream when the powder was all burned, and when the eyes of the Hurons were behind a cloud.”

“And why did the white chief stay?” demanded the still incredulous Indian. “Is he a stone that goes to the bottom, or does the scalp burn his head?”

“And why did the white chief stay?” asked the still skeptical Indian. “Is he a stone that sinks to the bottom, or does the scalp burn his head?”

“That I am not stone, your dead comrade, who fell into the falls, might answer, were the life still in him,” said the provoked young man, using, in his anger, that boastful language which was most likely to excite the admiration of an Indian. “The white man thinks none but cowards desert their women.”

“That I’m not stone, your dead friend, who fell into the falls, might respond if he were still alive,” said the frustrated young man, using, in his anger, that boastful language likely to earn the admiration of an Indian. “The white man believes only cowards abandon their women.”

Magua muttered a few words, inaudibly, between his teeth, before he continued, aloud:

Magua whispered a few words quietly to himself before he continued, aloud:

“Can the Delawares swim, too, as well as crawl in the bushes? Where is ‘Le Gros Serpent’?”

“Can the Delawares swim, too, as well as move through the bushes? Where is ‘Le Gros Serpent’?”

Duncan, who perceived by the use of these Canadian appellations, that his late companions were much better known to his enemies than to himself, answered, reluctantly: “He also is gone down with the water.”

Duncan, who realized from these Canadian names that his late companions were much better known to his enemies than to him, responded, reluctantly: “He also has gone down with the water.”

“‘Le Cerf Agile’ is not here?”

“‘Le Cerf Agile’ isn’t around?”

“I know not whom you call ‘The Nimble Deer’,” said Duncan gladly profiting by any excuse to create delay.

“I don’t know who you’re referring to as ‘The Nimble Deer,’” said Duncan, happily taking any excuse to delay things.

“Uncas,” returned Magua, pronouncing the Delaware name with even greater difficulty than he spoke his English words. “‘Bounding Elk’ is what the white man says, when he calls to the young Mohican.”

“Uncas,” Magua replied, struggling even more with the Delaware name than with his English. “‘Bounding Elk’ is what the white man calls the young Mohican.”

“Here is some confusion in names between us, Le Renard,” said Duncan, hoping to provoke a discussion. “Daim is the French for deer, and cerf for stag; elan is the true term, when one would speak of an elk.”

“There's some confusion with names between us, Le Renard,” Duncan said, trying to spark a discussion. “Daim is French for deer, and cerf is for stag; elan is the correct term when referring to an elk.”

“Yes,” muttered the Indian, in his native tongue; “the pale faces are prattling women! they have two words for each thing, while a red-skin will make the sound of his voice speak for him.” Then, changing his language, he continued, adhering to the imperfect nomenclature of his provincial instructors. “The deer is swift, but weak; the elk is swift, but strong; and the son of ‘Le Serpent’ is ‘Le Cerf Agile.’ Has he leaped the river to the woods?”

“Yes,” muttered the Native American in his own language; “the white people are like chattering women! They have two words for everything, while a Native will let his voice do the talking.” Then, switching to English, he continued, sticking to the limited vocabulary of his local teachers. “The deer is fast, but fragile; the elk is fast, but powerful; and the son of ‘Le Serpent’ is ‘Le Cerf Agile.’ Has he jumped the river into the woods?”

“If you mean the younger Delaware, he, too, has gone down with the water.”

“If you’re talking about the younger Delaware, he’s also gone down with the water.”

As there was nothing improbable to an Indian in the manner of the escape, Magua admitted the truth of what he had heard, with a readiness that afforded additional evidence how little he would prize such worthless captives. With his companions, however, the feeling was manifestly different.

As there was nothing unlikely to an Indian about the escape, Magua accepted what he had heard without hesitation, showing how little he valued such insignificant captives. However, with his companions, the attitude was clearly different.

The Hurons had awaited the result of this short dialogue with characteristic patience, and with a silence that increased until there was a general stillness in the band. When Heyward ceased to speak, they turned their eyes, as one man, on Magua, demanding, in this expressive manner, an explanation of what had been said. Their interpreter pointed to the river, and made them acquainted with the result, as much by the action as by the few words he uttered. When the fact was generally understood, the savages raised a frightful yell, which declared the extent of their disappointment. Some ran furiously to the water’s edge, beating the air with frantic gestures, while others spat upon the element, to resent the supposed treason it had committed against their acknowledged rights as conquerors. A few, and they not the least powerful and terrific of the band, threw lowering looks, in which the fiercest passion was only tempered by habitual self-command, at those captives who still remained in their power, while one or two even gave vent to their malignant feelings by the most menacing gestures, against which neither the sex nor the beauty of the sisters was any protection. The young soldier made a desperate but fruitless effort to spring to the side of Alice, when he saw the dark hand of a savage twisted in the rich tresses which were flowing in volumes over her shoulders, while a knife was passed around the head from which they fell, as if to denote the horrid manner in which it was about to be robbed of its beautiful ornament. But his hands were bound; and at the first movement he made, he felt the grasp of the powerful Indian who directed the band, pressing his shoulder like a vise. Immediately conscious how unavailing any struggle against such an overwhelming force must prove, he submitted to his fate, encouraging his gentle companions by a few low and tender assurances, that the natives seldom failed to threaten more than they performed.

The Hurons had waited for the outcome of this brief conversation with their usual patience, and a silence grew until there was complete stillness among the group. When Heyward stopped speaking, they all turned their gaze toward Magua, silently asking for an explanation of what had been said. Their interpreter pointed to the river, conveying the outcome as much through his actions as through the few words he spoke. Once the news was understood, the natives erupted in a terrifying yell that showed how disappointed they were. Some ran angrily to the riverbank, gesturing wildly, while others spat on the water to express their anger over the supposed betrayal against their rights as conquerors. A few, particularly those who were the most powerful and fearsome, shot fierce looks at the captives still in their grasp, and one or two even expressed their hostile feelings with threatening gestures, ignoring the fact that the sisters were women and beautiful. The young soldier made a desperate but hopeless attempt to rush to Alice's side when he saw a savage's dark hand tangled in her flowing hair, and a knife was brought near her head as if to show how it would soon be stripped of its lovely adornment. But his hands were tied; at his first movement, he felt the strong grip of the Indian in charge, squeezing his shoulder tightly. Realizing that any struggle against such overwhelming strength would be useless, he resigned himself to his fate, trying to comfort his gentle companions with quiet reassurances, telling them that the natives often threatened more than they actually did.

But while Duncan resorted to these words of consolation to quiet the apprehensions of the sisters, he was not so weak as to deceive himself. He well knew that the authority of an Indian chief was so little conventional, that it was oftener maintained by physical superiority than by any moral supremacy he might possess. The danger was, therefore, magnified exactly in proportion to the number of the savage spirits by which they were surrounded. The most positive mandate from him who seemed the acknowledged leader, was liable to be violated at each moment by any rash hand that might choose to sacrifice a victim to the manes of some dead friend or relative. While, therefore, he sustained an outward appearance of calmness and fortitude, his heart leaped into his throat, whenever any of their fierce captors drew nearer than common to the helpless sisters, or fastened one of their sullen, wandering looks on those fragile forms which were so little able to resist the slightest assault.

But while Duncan used these words of comfort to ease the sisters’ worries, he wasn't naïve enough to fool himself. He knew that the authority of an Indian chief was so informal that it was often maintained more by physical strength than by any moral authority he might have. The danger, therefore, increased in direct proportion to the number of savage spirits surrounding them. The most definitive order from the one who seemed to be the recognized leader could be ignored at any moment by anyone reckless enough to sacrifice a victim to honor the memory of a deceased friend or relative. So, while he maintained a façade of calmness and courage, his heart raced whenever any of their fierce captors came too close to the helpless sisters or directed one of their gloomy, roaming stares at those delicate figures that were so vulnerable to the slightest attack.

His apprehensions were, however, greatly relieved, when he saw that the leader had summoned his warriors to himself in counsel. Their deliberations were short, and it would seem, by the silence of most of the party, the decision unanimous. By the frequency with which the few speakers pointed in the direction of the encampment of Webb, it was apparent they dreaded the approach of danger from that quarter. This consideration probably hastened their determination, and quickened the subsequent movements.

His worries were greatly eased when he saw that the leader had called his warriors for a meeting. Their discussions were brief, and judging by the silence of most of the group, it seemed the decision was unanimous. The few who spoke frequently pointed toward Webb's camp, indicating they feared danger from that direction. This concern likely sped up their decision and quickened their actions afterward.

During his short conference, Heyward, finding a respite from his gravest fears, had leisure to admire the cautious manner in which the Hurons had made their approaches, even after hostilities had ceased.

During his brief conference, Heyward, momentarily relieved from his deepest fears, had the chance to appreciate the careful way the Hurons had approached, even after the fighting had stopped.

It has already been stated that the upper half of the island was a naked rock, and destitute of any other defenses than a few scattered logs of driftwood. They had selected this point to make their descent, having borne the canoe through the wood around the cataract for that purpose. Placing their arms in the little vessel a dozen men clinging to its sides had trusted themselves to the direction of the canoe, which was controlled by two of the most skillful warriors, in attitudes that enabled them to command a view of the dangerous passage. Favored by this arrangement, they touched the head of the island at that point which had proved so fatal to their first adventurers, but with the advantages of superior numbers, and the possession of firearms. That such had been the manner of their descent was rendered quite apparent to Duncan; for they now bore the light bark from the upper end of the rock, and placed it in the water, near the mouth of the outer cavern. As soon as this change was made, the leader made signs to the prisoners to descend and enter.

It’s already been mentioned that the upper part of the island was just bare rock, having no defenses besides a few scattered pieces of driftwood. They chose this spot to come down, having carried the canoe through the woods around the waterfall for that reason. They placed their weapons in the small boat, and a dozen men clung to its sides, relying on the canoe's direction, which was steered by two of the most skilled warriors who could see the dangerous passage. Thanks to this setup, they reached the island at the spot that had been so deadly for their first explorers, but this time they had the advantage of greater numbers and firearms. This method of descent was clear to Duncan; they now carried the small canoe from the upper end of the rock and set it in the water near the entrance of the outer cave. As soon as this was done, the leader signaled for the prisoners to come down and get in.

As resistance was impossible, and remonstrance useless, Heyward set the example of submission, by leading the way into the canoe, where he was soon seated with the sisters and the still wondering David. Notwithstanding the Hurons were necessarily ignorant of the little channels among the eddies and rapids of the stream, they knew the common signs of such a navigation too well to commit any material blunder. When the pilot chosen for the task of guiding the canoe had taken his station, the whole band plunged again into the river, the vessel glided down the current, and in a few moments the captives found themselves on the south bank of the stream, nearly opposite to the point where they had struck it the preceding evening.

As resistance was pointless and complaining would accomplish nothing, Heyward set the example of acceptance by leading the way into the canoe, where he soon sat with the sisters and the still-confused David. Although the Hurons were unfamiliar with the small channels among the eddies and rapids of the river, they understood the general signs of navigating those waters well enough to avoid any serious mistakes. Once the chosen pilot took his place, the group plunged back into the river, the canoe glided down the current, and in just a few moments, the captives found themselves on the south bank, almost directly across from where they had entered the water the night before.

[Illustration]

Here was held another short but earnest consultation, during which the horses, to whose panic their owners ascribed their heaviest misfortune, were led from the cover of the woods, and brought to the sheltered spot. The band now divided. The great chief, so often mentioned, mounting the charger of Heyward, led the way directly across the river, followed by most of his people, and disappeared in the woods, leaving the prisoners in charge of six savages, at whose head was Le Renard Subtil. Duncan witnessed all their movements with renewed uneasiness.

Here was another brief but serious discussion, during which the horses, whose panic their owners blamed for their worst troubles, were brought out from the woods and taken to a safer spot. The group then split up. The great chief, frequently mentioned before, mounted Heyward's horse and led the way straight across the river, followed by most of his people, and vanished into the woods, leaving the prisoners in the care of six warriors, led by Le Renard Subtil. Duncan watched all their actions with increasing anxiety.

He had been fond of believing, from the uncommon forbearance of the savages, that he was reserved as a prisoner to be delivered to Montcalm. As the thoughts of those who are in misery seldom slumber, and the invention is never more lively than when it is stimulated by hope, however feeble and remote, he had even imagined that the parental feelings of Munro were to be made instrumental in seducing him from his duty to the king. For though the French commander bore a high character for courage and enterprise, he was also thought to be expert in those political practises which do not always respect the nicer obligations of morality, and which so generally disgraced the European diplomacy of that period.

He had started to believe, based on the unusual patience of the natives, that he was being kept as a prisoner to be handed over to Montcalm. Since those in distress rarely find rest, and imagination is most active when it’s fueled by hope, no matter how slight or distant, he had even come to think that Munro's parental instincts could be used to sway him away from his loyalty to the king. Although the French commander was known for his bravery and daring, he was also regarded as skilled in those political tactics that often overlooked the finer points of morality, which were a common disgrace in European diplomacy at that time.

All those busy and ingenious speculations were now annihilated by the conduct of his captors. That portion of the band who had followed the huge warrior took the route toward the foot of the Horican, and no other expectation was left for himself and companions, than that they were to be retained as hopeless captives by their savage conquerors. Anxious to know the worst, and willing, in such an emergency, to try the potency of gold he overcame his reluctance to speak to Magua. Addressing himself to his former guide, who had now assumed the authority and manner of one who was to direct the future movements of the party, he said, in tones as friendly and confiding as he could assume:

All those busy and clever plans were now destroyed by the actions of his captors. The part of the group that had followed the massive warrior took the path toward the base of the Horican, and there was no other expectation left for him and his companions than that they would be kept as hopeless prisoners by their savage conquerors. Eager to find out the worst, and willing to test the power of gold in such an emergency, he pushed aside his hesitation to speak to Magua. Addressing his former guide, who had now taken on the authority and demeanor of someone who would direct the future actions of the group, he said, in the friendliest and most trusting tone he could manage:

“I would speak to Magua, what is fit only for so great a chief to hear.”

“I want to talk to Magua about something that's only suitable for such a great chief to know.”

The Indian turned his eyes on the young soldier scornfully, as he answered:

The Indian looked at the young soldier with disdain as he replied:

“Speak; trees have no ears.”

"Speak; trees can’t hear."

“But the red Hurons are not deaf; and counsel that is fit for the great men of a nation would make the young warriors drunk. If Magua will not listen, the officer of the king knows how to be silent.”

“But the red Hurons can hear; and advice that’s suitable for the leaders of a nation would only intoxicate the young warriors. If Magua won’t listen, the king’s officer knows how to keep quiet.”

The savage spoke carelessly to his comrades, who were busied, after their awkward manner, in preparing the horses for the reception of the sisters, and moved a little to one side, whither by a cautious gesture he induced Heyward to follow.

The savage spoke thoughtlessly to his companions, who were clumsily getting the horses ready to welcome the sisters, and then he stepped aside a bit, signaling to Heyward to follow him carefully.

“Now, speak,” he said; “if the words are such as Magua should hear.”

“Now, go ahead,” he said; “if what you have to say is something Magua should hear.”

“Le Renard Subtil has proved himself worthy of the honorable name given to him by his Canada fathers,” commenced Heyward; “I see his wisdom, and all that he has done for us, and shall remember it when the hour to reward him arrives. Yes! Renard has proved that he is not only a great chief in council, but one who knows how to deceive his enemies!”

“Le Renard Subtil has shown that he deserves the honorable name given to him by his Canadian fathers,” Heyward began; “I see his wisdom and everything he has done for us, and I will remember it when the time comes to reward him. Yes! Renard has demonstrated that he is not just a great leader in council, but also someone who knows how to outsmart his enemies!”

“What has Renard done?” coldly demanded the Indian.

“What has Renard done?” the Indian demanded coldly.

“What! has he not seen that the woods were filled with outlying parties of the enemies, and that the serpent could not steal through them without being seen? Then, did he not lose his path to blind the eyes of the Hurons? Did he not pretend to go back to his tribe, who had treated him ill, and driven him from their wigwams like a dog? And, when we saw what he wished to do, did we not aid him, by making a false face, that the Hurons might think the white man believed that his friend was his enemy? Is not all this true? And when Le Subtil had shut the eyes and stopped the ears of his nation by his wisdom, did they not forget that they had once done him wrong, and forced him to flee to the Mohawks? And did they not leave him on the south side of the river, with their prisoners, while they have gone foolishly on the north? Does not Renard mean to turn like a fox on his footsteps, and to carry to the rich and gray-headed Scotchman his daughters? Yes, Magua, I see it all, and I have already been thinking how so much wisdom and honesty should be repaid. First, the chief of William Henry will give as a great chief should for such a service. The medal[1] of Magua will no longer be of tin, but of beaten gold; his horn will run over with powder; dollars will be as plenty in his pouch as pebbles on the shore of Horican; and the deer will lick his hand, for they will know it to be vain to fly from the rifle he will carry! As for myself, I know not how to exceed the gratitude of the Scotchman, but I—yes, I will—”

“What! Has he not noticed that the woods were filled with enemy scouts, and that the serpent couldn't slip through without being seen? Did he not lose his path to blind the eyes of the Hurons? Did he not pretend to return to his tribe, which had mistreated him and chased him from their homes like a dog? And when we saw what he intended to do, did we not help him by making a false face, so the Hurons would think the white man believed his friend was his enemy? Isn’t all of this true? And when Le Subtil had shut the eyes and ears of his people with his wisdom, did they not forget that they once wronged him and forced him to escape to the Mohawks? And did they not leave him on the south side of the river with their prisoners, while they foolishly headed north? Does Renard not plan to turn around like a fox and take his daughters to the wealthy, gray-haired Scotsman? Yes, Magua, I see it all, and I’ve already been thinking about how such wisdom and honesty should be rewarded. First, the chief of William Henry will compensate him as a great chief should for such a service. The medal[1] of Magua will no longer be made of tin, but of beaten gold; his powder horn will be overflowing; dollars will be as plentiful in his pouch as pebbles on the shore of Horican; and the deer will approach him, knowing it’s useless to flee from the rifle he will carry! As for myself, I don’t know how to match the Scotsman’s gratitude, but I—yes, I will—”

[1] It has long been a practice with the whites to conciliate the important men of the Indians by presenting medals, which are worn in the place of their own rude ornaments. Those given by the English generally bear the impression of the reigning king, and those given by the Americans that of the president.

[1] For a long time, white people have tried to win over important Native American leaders by giving them medals, which they wear instead of their traditional ornaments. The medals given by the British usually feature the image of the current king, while those given by Americans display the president's likeness.

“What will the young chief, who comes from toward the sun, give?” demanded the Huron, observing that Heyward hesitated in his desire to end the enumeration of benefits with that which might form the climax of an Indian’s wishes.

“What will the young chief, who comes from the direction of the sun, give?” demanded the Huron, noticing that Heyward paused, wanting to finish listing the benefits with what might be the ultimate fulfillment of an Indian’s desires.

“He will make the fire-water from the islands in the salt lake flow before the wigwam of Magua, until the heart of the Indian shall be lighter than the feathers of the humming-bird, and his breath sweeter than the wild honeysuckle.”

“He will make the fire-water from the islands in the salt lake flow before the wigwam of Magua, until the heart of the Indian is lighter than the feathers of a hummingbird, and his breath sweeter than wild honeysuckle.”

Le Renard had listened gravely as Heyward slowly proceeded in this subtle speech. When the young man mentioned the artifice he supposed the Indian to have practised on his own nation, the countenance of the listener was veiled in an expression of cautious gravity. At the allusion to the injury which Duncan affected to believe had driven the Huron from his native tribe, a gleam of such ungovernable ferocity flashed from the other’s eyes, as induced the adventurous speaker to believe he had struck the proper chord. And by the time he reached the part where he so artfully blended the thirst of vengeance with the desire of gain, he had, at least, obtained a command of the deepest attention of the savage. The question put by Le Renard had been calm, and with all the dignity of an Indian; but it was quite apparent, by the thoughtful expression of the listener’s countenance, that the answer was most cunningly devised. The Huron mused a few moments, and then laying his hand on the rude bandages of his wounded shoulder, he said, with some energy:

Le Renard listened seriously as Heyward slowly delivered his subtle speech. When the young man mentioned the trick he thought the Indian had used on his own people, the listener's face showed a cautious seriousness. At the reference to the injury that Duncan pretended to believe had driven the Huron away from his tribe, a flash of uncontrollable anger shone in the other’s eyes, making the daring speaker think he had struck the right note. By the time he got to the part where he skillfully mixed the desire for revenge with the pursuit of gain, he had, at least, captured the savage’s full attention. Le Renard’s question was calm and carried the dignity of an Indian; however, it was clear from the thoughtful look on the listener’s face that the answer was very clever. The Huron pondered for a few moments, and then placing his hand on the rough bandages of his wounded shoulder, he said with some intensity:

“Do friends make such marks?”

“Do friends leave such marks?”

“Would ‘La Longue Carbine’ cut one so slight on an enemy?”

“Would ‘La Longue Carbine’ really hurt someone so small on an enemy?”

“Do the Delawares crawl upon those they love like snakes, twisting themselves to strike?”

“Do the Delawares creep up on those they care about like snakes, coiling themselves to attack?”

“Would ‘Le Gros Serpent’ have been heard by the ears of one he wished to be deaf?”

“Would ‘Le Gros Serpent’ have been heard by someone he wanted to be deaf?”

“Does the white chief burn his powder in the faces of his brothers?”

“Does the white chief shoot his gun in the faces of his brothers?”

“Does he ever miss his aim, when seriously bent to kill?” returned Duncan, smiling with well acted sincerity.

“Does he ever miss his target when he’s really focused on killing?” Duncan replied, smiling with feigned sincerity.

Another long and deliberate pause succeeded these sententious questions and ready replies. Duncan saw that the Indian hesitated. In order to complete his victory, he was in the act of recommencing the enumeration of the rewards, when Magua made an expressive gesture and said:

Another long and intentional pause followed these serious questions and quick answers. Duncan noticed that the Indian was hesitating. To seal his victory, he was about to start listing the rewards again when Magua made a telling gesture and said:

“Enough; Le Renard is a wise chief, and what he does will be seen. Go, and keep the mouth shut. When Magua speaks, it will be the time to answer.”

“Enough; Le Renard is a smart leader, and his actions will show what he intends. Go, and keep quiet. When Magua speaks, then it will be time to respond.”

Heyward, perceiving that the eyes of his companion were warily fastened on the rest of the band, fell back immediately, in order to avoid the appearance of any suspicious confederacy with their leader. Magua approached the horses, and affected to be well pleased with the diligence and ingenuity of his comrades. He then signed to Heyward to assist the sisters into the saddles, for he seldom deigned to use the English tongue, unless urged by some motive of more than usual moment.

Heyward, noticing that his companion's eyes were cautiously fixed on the rest of the group, quickly stepped back to avoid appearing to conspire with their leader. Magua moved toward the horses and pretended to be impressed by the hard work and creativity of his teammates. He then signaled to Heyward to help the sisters onto their saddles, as he rarely bothered to speak English unless there was a compelling reason.

There was no longer any plausible pretext for delay; and Duncan was obliged, however reluctantly, to comply. As he performed this office, he whispered his reviving hopes in the ears of the trembling females, who, through dread of encountering the savage countenances of their captors, seldom raised their eyes from the ground. The mare of David had been taken with the followers of the large chief; in consequence, its owner, as well as Duncan, was compelled to journey on foot. The latter did not, however, so much regret this circumstance, as it might enable him to retard the speed of the party; for he still turned his longing looks in the direction of Fort Edward, in the vain expectation of catching some sound from that quarter of the forest, which might denote the approach of succor. When all were prepared, Magua made the signal to proceed, advancing in front to lead the party in person. Next followed David, who was gradually coming to a true sense of his condition, as the effects of the wound became less and less apparent. The sisters rode in his rear, with Heyward at their side, while the Indians flanked the party, and brought up the close of the march, with a caution that seemed never to tire.

There was no longer any reasonable excuse for delay, and Duncan was forced, although with great reluctance, to go along with it. As he did this task, he whispered hopeful reassurances to the trembling women, who, in their fear of facing the fierce expressions of their captors, rarely looked up from the ground. David’s horse had been taken along with the followers of the large chief; as a result, both he and Duncan had to continue on foot. However, Duncan didn’t mind this too much, as it might help him slow down the group; he still gazed longingly toward Fort Edward, hoping to catch some sound from that part of the forest that might signal help was coming. Once everyone was ready, Magua signaled to move out, leading the group himself. Following him was David, who was slowly coming to terms with his situation as the effects of his wound became less noticeable. The sisters rode behind him, with Heyward alongside them, while the Indians surrounded the group, maintaining a watchful pace that seemed never to tire.

In this manner they proceeded in uninterrupted silence, except when Heyward addressed some solitary word of comfort to the females, or David gave vent to the moanings of his spirit, in piteous exclamations, which he intended should express the humility of resignation. Their direction lay toward the south, and in a course nearly opposite to the road to William Henry. Notwithstanding this apparent adherence in Magua to the original determination of his conquerors, Heyward could not believe his tempting bait was so soon forgotten; and he knew the windings of an Indian’s path too well to suppose that its apparent course led directly to its object, when artifice was at all necessary. Mile after mile was, however, passed through the boundless woods, in this painful manner, without any prospect of a termination to their journey. Heyward watched the sun, as he darted his meridian rays through the branches of the trees, and pined for the moment when the policy of Magua should change their route to one more favorable to his hopes. Sometimes he fancied the wary savage, despairing of passing the army of Montcalm in safety, was holding his way toward a well-known border settlement, where a distinguished officer of the crown, and a favored friend of the Six Nations, held his large possessions, as well as his usual residence. To be delivered into the hands of Sir William Johnson was far preferable to being led into the wilds of Canada; but in order to effect even the former, it would be necessary to traverse the forest for many weary leagues, each step of which was carrying him further from the scene of the war, and, consequently, from the post, not only of honor, but of duty.

They continued on in silence, only breaking it when Heyward offered a few words of comfort to the women or when David expressed his pain with sad exclamations meant to show his submission. They were heading south, almost opposite to the road to William Henry. Despite Magua seemingly sticking to his conquerors' original plans, Heyward couldn’t believe that his tempting strategy was so quickly forgotten; he knew that the twists and turns of an Indian’s path often didn’t lead directly to its destination if deception was involved. They trudged through the endless woods in this painful way, with no sign of their journey coming to an end. Heyward watched the sun as it shone through the tree branches and longed for the moment when Magua would change their route to something more hopeful. Sometimes he thought the cautious savage, fearing he couldn’t safely pass Montcalm’s army, might be headed toward a well-known border settlement where a prominent crown officer, a friend of the Six Nations, held both his vast land and his usual home. Being handed over to Sir William Johnson would be much better than being taken into the wilderness of Canada; however, to achieve even that, they would still have to travel through the forest for many exhausting miles, each step moving him further away from the battlefield and, therefore, from his honorable duties.

Cora alone remembered the parting injunctions of the scout, and whenever an opportunity offered, she stretched forth her arm to bend aside the twigs that met her hands. But the vigilance of the Indians rendered this act of precaution both difficult and dangerous. She was often defeated in her purpose, by encountering their watchful eyes, when it became necessary to feign an alarm she did not feel, and occupy the limb by some gesture of feminine apprehension. Once, and once only, was she completely successful; when she broke down the bough of a large sumach, and by a sudden thought, let her glove fall at the same instant. This sign, intended for those that might follow, was observed by one of her conductors, who restored the glove, broke the remaining branches of the bush in such a manner that it appeared to proceed from the struggling of some beast in its branches, and then laid his hand on his tomahawk, with a look so significant, that it put an effectual end to these stolen memorials of their passage.

Cora was the only one who remembered the scout's parting instructions, and whenever she had the chance, she reached out to push aside the twigs that got in her way. But the Indians' watchfulness made this act of caution both tough and risky. She often failed in her efforts, running into their keen eyes, which forced her to fake an alarm she didn't genuinely feel, filling the space with some gesture of feminine fear. Once, and only once, she managed to be completely successful; she broke the branch of a large sumach and, with a sudden idea, let her glove drop at the same moment. This signal, meant for anyone who might follow, was noticed by one of her guides, who picked up the glove, broke the other branches of the bush in such a way that it looked like a struggling animal had gotten caught in it, and then placed his hand on his tomahawk with a look so meaningful that it effectively ended these secret signals of their journey.

As there were horses, to leave the prints of their footsteps, in both bands of the Indians, this interruption cut off any probable hopes of assistance being conveyed through the means of their trail.

As there were horses leaving hoof prints, this disruption dashed any hopes of help getting through using their trail.

Heyward would have ventured a remonstrance had there been anything encouraging in the gloomy reserve of Magua. But the savage, during all this time, seldom turned to look at his followers, and never spoke. With the sun for his only guide, or aided by such blind marks as are only known to the sagacity of a native, he held his way along the barrens of pine, through occasional little fertile vales, across brooks and rivulets, and over undulating hills, with the accuracy of instinct, and nearly with the directness of a bird. He never seemed to hesitate. Whether the path was hardly distinguishable, whether it disappeared, or whether it lay beaten and plain before him, made no sensible difference in his speed or certainty. It seemed as if fatigue could not affect him. Whenever the eyes of the wearied travelers rose from the decayed leaves over which they trod, his dark form was to be seen glancing among the stems of the trees in front, his head immovably fastened in a forward position, with the light plume on his crest fluttering in a current of air, made solely by the swiftness of his own motion.

Heyward would have protested if there had been anything reassuring in Magua's gloomy silence. But the savage rarely glanced back at his followers and never spoke. With the sun as his only guide, or relying on subtle signs known only to a native's keen sense, he navigated the barren pine area, through occasional small fertile valleys, across streams and rivulets, and over rolling hills, with instinctive accuracy, almost like a bird flying directly to its destination. He never seemed to waver. Whether the path was faint, disappeared entirely, or was clearly visible in front of him, it made no difference to his speed or confidence. It seemed that fatigue could not touch him. Whenever the tired travelers looked up from the decaying leaves beneath their feet, his dark figure was visible darting among the tree trunks ahead, his head held forward, with the light plume on his crest fluttering in the breeze created solely by his swift motion.

But all this diligence and speed were not without an object. After crossing a low vale, through which a gushing brook meandered, he suddenly ascended a hill, so steep and difficult of ascent, that the sisters were compelled to alight in order to follow. When the summit was gained, they found themselves on a level spot, but thinly covered with trees, under one of which Magua had thrown his dark form, as if willing and ready to seek that rest which was so much needed by the whole party.

But all this effort and speed weren't without purpose. After crossing a low valley, through which a rushing stream flowed, he suddenly climbed a hill so steep and tough to climb that the sisters had to get off to keep up. When they reached the top, they found themselves on a flat area, but sparsely covered with trees, under one of which Magua had resting his dark form, as if he was eager and ready to take the much-needed rest for the entire group.

CHAPTER XI.

“Cursed be my tribe If I forgive him.”
—Shylock

“Cursed be my group if I ever forgive him.”
—Shylock

The Indian had selected for this desirable purpose one of those steep, pyramidal hills, which bear a strong resemblance to artificial mounds, and which so frequently occur in the valleys of America. The one in question was high and precipitous; its top flattened, as usual; but with one of its sides more than ordinarily irregular. It possessed no other apparent advantage for a resting place, than in its elevation and form, which might render defense easy, and surprise nearly impossible. As Heyward, however, no longer expected that rescue which time and distance now rendered so improbable, he regarded these little peculiarities with an eye devoid of interest, devoting himself entirely to the comfort and condolence of his feebler companions. The Narragansetts were suffered to browse on the branches of the trees and shrubs that were thinly scattered over the summit of the hill, while the remains of their provisions were spread under the shade of a beech, that stretched its horizontal limbs like a canopy above them.

The Indian had chosen a steep, pyramidal hill for this favorable purpose, one that looked a lot like an artificial mound, which are commonly found in the valleys of America. This particular hill was tall and steep, with a flattened top, but one side was unusually jagged. The only clear advantage it had as a resting place was its height and shape, which made defense easier and surprise almost impossible. However, since Heyward no longer believed in rescue, which time and distance had made highly unlikely, he viewed these little details with indifference, focusing entirely on the comfort and support of his weaker companions. The Narragansetts were allowed to graze on the branches of the trees and shrubs that were sparsely scattered over the top of the hill, while the leftovers of their provisions were laid out under the shade of a beech tree that spread its horizontal branches like a canopy above them.

Notwithstanding the swiftness of their flight, one of the Indians had found an opportunity to strike a straggling fawn with an arrow, and had borne the more preferable fragments of the victim, patiently on his shoulders, to the stopping place. Without any aid from the science of cookery, he was immediately employed, in common with his fellows, in gorging himself with this digestible sustenance. Magua alone sat apart, without participating in the revolting meal, and apparently buried in the deepest thought.

Despite how quickly they were traveling, one of the Indians had managed to take down a wandering fawn with an arrow and was carrying the most desirable parts of the animal on his shoulders to the meeting point. Without any help from cooking skills, he, like the others, quickly started devouring this easy-to-eat food. Magua, however, sat alone, not taking part in the gruesome meal, and seemed lost in deep thought.

This abstinence, so remarkable in an Indian, when he possessed the means of satisfying hunger, at length attracted the notice of Heyward. The young man willingly believed that the Huron deliberated on the most eligible manner of eluding the vigilance of his associates. With a view to assist his plans by any suggestion of his own, and to strengthen the temptation, he left the beech, and straggled, as if without an object, to the spot where Le Renard was seated.

This self-control, so unusual for an Indian who had the means to satisfy his hunger, eventually caught Heyward's attention. The young man gladly thought that the Huron was contemplating the best way to avoid the watchfulness of his companions. Wanting to help with any ideas he might have and to amplify the temptation, he left the beech and wandered, as if without purpose, to where Le Renard was sitting.

“Has not Magua kept the sun in his face long enough to escape all danger from the Canadians?” he asked, as though no longer doubtful of the good intelligence established between them; “and will not the chief of William Henry be better pleased to see his daughters before another night may have hardened his heart to their loss, to make him less liberal in his reward?”

“Hasn’t Magua kept the sun in his face long enough to avoid all danger from the Canadians?” he asked, as if no longer unsure about the good understanding between them; “and won’t the chief of William Henry be happier to see his daughters before another night makes him more hardened to their loss, which might make him less generous in his reward?”

“Do the pale faces love their children less in the morning than at night?” asked the Indian, coldly.

“Do the pale faces love their children less in the morning than at night?” asked the Indian, coldly.

“By no means,” returned Heyward, anxious to recall his error, if he had made one; “the white man may, and does often, forget the burial place of his fathers; he sometimes ceases to remember those he should love, and has promised to cherish; but the affection of a parent for his child is never permitted to die.”

“Not at all,” Heyward replied, eager to correct his mistake, if he had made one; “the white man can, and often does, forget the resting place of his ancestors; he sometimes stops remembering those he should love and has promised to care for; but a parent's love for their child never fades.”

“And is the heart of the white-headed chief soft, and will he think of the babes that his squaws have given him? He is hard on his warriors and his eyes are made of stone!”

“And is the heart of the white-headed chief soft, and will he think of the babies that his women have given him? He is tough on his warriors and his eyes are made of stone!”

“He is severe to the idle and wicked, but to the sober and deserving he is a leader, both just and humane. I have known many fond and tender parents, but never have I seen a man whose heart was softer toward his child. You have seen the gray-head in front of his warriors, Magua; but I have seen his eyes swimming in water, when he spoke of those children who are now in your power!”

“He is tough on the lazy and evil, but to the disciplined and deserving, he is a leader who is both fair and compassionate. I’ve known many loving and caring parents, but I’ve never seen a man whose heart was softer toward his child. You’ve seen the old man leading his warriors, Magua; but I’ve seen his eyes filled with tears when he talked about those children who are now in your control!”

Heyward paused, for he knew not how to construe the remarkable expression that gleamed across the swarthy features of the attentive Indian. At first it seemed as if the remembrance of the promised reward grew vivid in his mind, while he listened to the sources of parental feeling which were to assure its possession; but, as Duncan proceeded, the expression of joy became so fiercely malignant that it was impossible not to apprehend it proceeded from some passion more sinister than avarice.

Heyward paused, unsure of how to interpret the striking look on the dark-skinned Indian's face. Initially, it seemed like the thought of the promised reward brought a bright glint to his eyes as he listened to the emotional appeal of parental love that would guarantee its attainment. But as Duncan continued speaking, the joyful expression twisted into something so intensely hostile that it became clear it stemmed from a deeper, more sinister emotion than just greed.

“Go,” said the Huron, suppressing the alarming exhibition in an instant, in a death-like calmness of countenance; “go to the dark-haired daughter, and say, ‘Magua waits to speak.’ The father will remember what the child promises.”

“Go,” said the Huron, instantly masking the alarming display with a death-like calmness; “go to the dark-haired daughter and tell her, ‘Magua is waiting to speak.’ The father will remember what the child promises.”

Duncan, who interpreted this speech to express a wish for some additional pledge that the promised gifts should not be withheld, slowly and reluctantly repaired to the place where the sisters were now resting from their fatigue, to communicate its purport to Cora.

Duncan, who understood this speech as a request for some extra assurance that the promised gifts wouldn’t be withheld, slowly and cautiously made his way to where the sisters were now taking a break from their exhaustion to share its meaning with Cora.

“You understand the nature of an Indian’s wishes,” he concluded, as he led her toward the place where she was expected, “and must be prodigal of your offers of powder and blankets. Ardent spirits are, however, the most prized by such as he; nor would it be amiss to add some boon from your own hand, with that grace you so well know how to practise. Remember, Cora, that on your presence of mind and ingenuity, even your life, as well as that of Alice, may in some measure depend.”

“You understand what an Indian wants,” he said as he guided her to where she was expected, “so you should be generous with your offers of gunpowder and blankets. However, liquor is the most valued by someone like him; it wouldn’t hurt to include a gift from you, with that charm you know how to show so well. Remember, Cora, that your quick thinking and creativity could depend on this, and even your life, along with Alice’s, might rest on it.”

“Heyward, and yours!”

"Heyward, and yours!"

“Mine is of little moment; it is already sold to my king, and is a prize to be seized by any enemy who may possess the power. I have no father to expect me, and but few friends to lament a fate which I have courted with the insatiable longings of youth after distinction. But hush! we approach the Indian. Magua, the lady with whom you wish to speak, is here.”

“Mine is of little importance; it’s already sold to my king, and is a prize to be taken by any enemy who has the power. I have no father waiting for me, and only a few friends to mourn a fate that I’ve sought out with the endless desires of youth for recognition. But quiet! We’re getting close to the Indian. Magua, the lady you want to speak to, is here.”

The Indian rose slowly from his seat, and stood for near a minute silent and motionless. He then signed with his hand for Heyward to retire, saying, coldly:

The Indian slowly got up from his seat and stood silently and motionless for almost a minute. He then gestured with his hand for Heyward to leave, saying coldly:

“When the Huron talks to the women, his tribe shut their ears.”

“When the Huron speaks to the women, his tribe blocks it out.”

Duncan, still lingering, as if refusing to comply, Cora said, with a calm smile:

Duncan, still hanging around, as if he didn't want to go along with it, Cora said, with a calm smile:

“You hear, Heyward, and delicacy at least should urge you to retire. Go to Alice, and comfort her with our reviving prospects.”

“You hear that, Heyward? You should at least have the decency to step away. Go to Alice and comfort her with our hopeful future.”

She waited until he had departed, and then turning to the native, with the dignity of her sex in her voice and manner, she added: “What would Le Renard say to the daughter of Munro?”

She waited until he left, and then turning to the native, with the dignity of her gender in her voice and demeanor, she added: “What would Le Renard say to the daughter of Munro?”

“Listen,” said the Indian, laying his hand firmly upon her arm, as if willing to draw her utmost attention to his words; a movement that Cora as firmly but quietly repulsed, by extricating the limb from his grasp: “Magua was born a chief and a warrior among the red Hurons of the lakes; he saw the suns of twenty summers make the snows of twenty winters run off in the streams before he saw a pale face; and he was happy! Then his Canada fathers came into the woods, and taught him to drink the fire-water, and he became a rascal. The Hurons drove him from the graves of his fathers, as they would chase the hunted buffalo. He ran down the shores of the lakes, and followed their outlet to the ‘city of cannon.’ There he hunted and fished, till the people chased him again through the woods into the arms of his enemies. The chief, who was born a Huron, was at last a warrior among the Mohawks!”

“Listen,” said the Indian, placing his hand firmly on her arm, trying to capture her full attention; a gesture that Cora firmly but quietly rejected by pulling her arm away from his grip. “Magua was born a chief and a warrior among the red Hurons of the lakes; he experienced twenty summers and watched the snows of twenty winters melt away in the streams before he ever saw a white person, and he was happy! Then his Canadian fathers came into the woods, taught him to drink the fire-water, and he turned into a scoundrel. The Hurons drove him away from the graves of his ancestors, just like they would drive away a hunted buffalo. He ran along the shores of the lakes and followed the outlet to the ‘city of cannons.’ There he hunted and fished until the people chased him again through the woods into the arms of his enemies. The chief, who was born a Huron, eventually became a warrior among the Mohawks!”

“Something like this I had heard before,” said Cora, observing that he paused to suppress those passions which began to burn with too bright a flame, as he recalled the recollection of his supposed injuries.

“Something like this I’ve heard before,” Cora said, noticing that he paused to hold back the intense feelings that were starting to flare up as he remembered his supposed wrongs.

“Was it the fault of Le Renard that his head was not made of rock? Who gave him the fire-water? who made him a villain? ’Twas the pale faces, the people of your own color.”

“Was it Le Renard's fault that his head wasn't made of stone? Who gave him the whiskey? Who turned him into a villain? It was the white people, your own kind.”

“And am I answerable that thoughtless and unprincipled men exist, whose shades of countenance may resemble mine?” Cora calmly demanded of the excited savage.

“And am I responsible for the existence of thoughtless and unprincipled men, whose facial expressions might look like mine?” Cora calmly asked the agitated savage.

“No; Magua is a man, and not a fool; such as you never open their lips to the burning stream: the Great Spirit has given you wisdom!”

“No; Magua is a man, not a fool; those like you never speak to the burning stream: the Great Spirit has given you wisdom!”

“What, then, have I do to, or say, in the matter of your misfortunes, not to say of your errors?”

“What, then, should I do or say about your misfortunes, not to mention your mistakes?”

“Listen,” repeated the Indian, resuming his earnest attitude; “when his English and French fathers dug up the hatchet, Le Renard struck the war-post of the Mohawks, and went out against his own nation. The pale faces have driven the red-skins from their hunting grounds, and now when they fight, a white man leads the way. The old chief at Horican, your father, was the great captain of our war-party. He said to the Mohawks do this, and do that, and he was minded. He made a law, that if an Indian swallowed the fire-water, and came into the cloth wigwams of his warriors, it should not be forgotten. Magua foolishly opened his mouth, and the hot liquor led him into the cabin of Munro. What did the gray-head? let his daughter say.”

“Listen,” the Indian repeated, getting serious again; “when his English and French fathers buried the hatchet, Le Renard struck the war-post of the Mohawks and turned against his own people. The white men have pushed the redskins from their hunting grounds, and now when they go into battle, a white man leads the way. The old chief at Horican, your father, was the great leader of our war party. He told the Mohawks to do this, and to do that, and they listened. He made a rule that if an Indian drank the fire-water and entered the cloth tents of his warriors, it would not be forgotten. Magua stupidly spoke up, and the strong drink led him into Munro’s cabin. What did the old man do? Let his daughter explain.”

“He forgot not his words, and did justice, by punishing the offender,” said the undaunted daughter.

“He didn’t forget his words and delivered justice by punishing the offender,” said the fearless daughter.

“Justice!” repeated the Indian, casting an oblique glance of the most ferocious expression at her unyielding countenance; “is it justice to make evil and then punish for it? Magua was not himself; it was the fire-water that spoke and acted for him! but Munro did believe it. The Huron chief was tied up before all the pale-faced warriors, and whipped like a dog.”

“Justice!” repeated the Indian, giving her a sidelong glance filled with intense anger; “is it really justice to commit wrongdoing and then punish for it? Magua wasn’t in control; it was the alcohol that made him act like that! But Munro actually believed it. The Huron chief was bound in front of all the white warriors and whipped like a dog.”

Cora remained silent, for she knew not how to palliate this imprudent severity on the part of her father in a manner to suit the comprehension of an Indian.

Cora stayed quiet because she didn’t know how to soften her father’s unreasonable harshness in a way that an Indian would understand.

“See!” continued Magua, tearing aside the slight calico that very imperfectly concealed his painted breast; “here are scars given by knives and bullets—of these a warrior may boast before his nation; but the gray-head has left marks on the back of the Huron chief that he must hide like a squaw, under this painted cloth of the whites.”

“Look!” Magua continued, pulling aside the thin fabric that only partly covered his painted chest. “Here are scars from knives and bullets—these are things a warrior can proudly show his people; but the gray-haired man has left marks on the back of the Huron chief that he has to hide like a woman, beneath this painted cloth of the whites.”

“I had thought,” resumed Cora, “that an Indian warrior was patient, and that his spirit felt not and knew not the pain his body suffered.”

“I had thought,” Cora continued, “that an Indian warrior was patient, and that his spirit didn’t feel or understand the pain his body experienced.”

“When the Chippewas tied Magua to the stake, and cut this gash,” said the other, laying his finger on a deep scar, “the Huron laughed in their faces, and told them, Women struck so light! His spirit was then in the clouds! But when he felt the blows of Munro, his spirit lay under the birch. The spirit of a Huron is never drunk; it remembers forever!”

“When the Chippewas tied Magua to the stake and made this deep cut,” said the other, pointing to a scar, “the Huron laughed at them and said, ‘Women strike so lightly!’ His spirit was then in the clouds! But when he felt Munro's blows, his spirit lay beneath the birch. A Huron's spirit is never drunk; it remembers forever!”

“But it may be appeased. If my father has done you this injustice, show him how an Indian can forgive an injury, and take back his daughters. You have heard from Major Heyward—”

“But it can be resolved. If my father has wronged you, show him how an Indian can forgive an offense, and take back his daughters. You have heard from Major Heyward—”

Magua shook his head, forbidding the repetition of offers he so much despised.

Magua shook his head, rejecting the offers he truly despised.

“What would you have?” continued Cora, after a most painful pause, while the conviction forced itself on her mind that the too sanguine and generous Duncan had been cruelly deceived by the cunning of the savage.

“What do you want?” Cora continued after a painful pause, as she realized that the overly optimistic and generous Duncan had been cruelly tricked by the savagery of the cunning.

“What a Huron loves—good for good; bad for bad!”

“What a Huron loves—good for good; bad for bad!”

“You would, then, revenge the injury inflicted by Munro on his helpless daughters. Would it not be more like a man to go before his face, and take the satisfaction of a warrior?”

“You would, then, get back at Munro for the harm done to his defenseless daughters. Wouldn’t it be more like a man to confront him directly and seek satisfaction like a warrior?”

“The arms of the pale faces are long, and their knives sharp!” returned the savage, with a malignant laugh: “why should Le Renard go among the muskets of his warriors, when he holds the spirit of the gray-head in his hand?”

“The arms of the pale faces are long, and their knives sharp!” returned the savage, with a wicked laugh: “Why should Le Renard go among the guns of his warriors when he holds the spirit of the gray-head in his hand?”

“Name your intention, Magua,” said Cora, struggling with herself to speak with steady calmness. “Is it to lead us prisoners to the woods, or do you contemplate even some greater evil? Is there no reward, no means of palliating the injury, and of softening your heart? At least, release my gentle sister, and pour out all your malice on me. Purchase wealth by her safety and satisfy your revenge with a single victim. The loss of both his daughters might bring the aged man to his grave, and where would then be the satisfaction of Le Renard?”

“Name your intention, Magua,” Cora said, fighting to keep her voice steady and calm. “Are you planning to take us prisoners to the woods, or do you have something even worse in mind? Is there no reward, no way to make up for the harm you’ve done, and to soften your heart? At the very least, let my gentle sister go and direct all your hatred towards me. Trade her safety for wealth and satisfy your revenge with just one victim. Losing both his daughters could send the old man to his grave, and where would that leave Le Renard’s satisfaction?”

“Listen,” said the Indian again. “The light eyes can go back to the Horican, and tell the old chief what has been done, if the dark-haired woman will swear by the Great Spirit of her fathers to tell no lie.”

“Listen,” said the Indian again. “The light-eyed ones can go back to the Horican and tell the old chief what happened, if the dark-haired woman will swear by the Great Spirit of her ancestors to tell the truth.”

“What must I promise?” demanded Cora, still maintaining a secret ascendancy over the fierce native by the collected and feminine dignity of her presence.

“What do I need to promise?” Cora asked, still keeping a quiet control over the intense native with her composed and feminine poise.

“When Magua left his people his wife was given to another chief; he has now made friends with the Hurons, and will go back to the graves of his tribe, on the shores of the great lake. Let the daughter of the English chief follow, and live in his wigwam forever.”

"When Magua left his people, his wife was given to another chief; he has now made friends with the Hurons and will return to the graves of his tribe on the shores of the great lake. Let the daughter of the English chief follow and live in his wigwam forever."

However revolting a proposal of such a character might prove to Cora, she retained, notwithstanding her powerful disgust, sufficient self-command to reply, without betraying the weakness.

However revolting a proposal like that might be to Cora, she managed, despite her strong disgust, to maintain enough self-control to respond without showing any vulnerability.

“And what pleasure would Magua find in sharing his cabin with a wife he did not love; one who would be of a nation and color different from his own? It would be better to take the gold of Munro, and buy the heart of some Huron maid with his gifts.”

“And what enjoyment would Magua get from sharing his cabin with a wife he didn’t love; someone from a different nation and background? It would be better to take Munro’s gold and buy the heart of some Huron girl with his gifts.”

The Indian made no reply for near a minute, but bent his fierce looks on the countenance of Cora, in such wavering glances, that her eyes sank with shame, under an impression that for the first time they had encountered an expression that no chaste female might endure. While she was shrinking within herself, in dread of having her ears wounded by some proposal still more shocking than the last, the voice of Magua answered, in its tones of deepest malignancy:

The Indian didn’t respond for almost a minute, but fixed his intense gaze on Cora’s face with such shifting looks that her eyes dropped in shame, feeling as if for the first time they had met a look that no decent woman could bear. While she pulled inward, fearing she would hear a proposal even more shocking than the last, Magua’s voice replied, dripping with malice:

“When the blows scorched the back of the Huron, he would know where to find a woman to feel the smart. The daughter of Munro would draw his water, hoe his corn, and cook his venison. The body of the gray-head would sleep among his cannon, but his heart would lie within reach of the knife of Le Subtil.”

“When the strikes burned the back of the Huron, he would know where to find a woman to feel the sting. Munro's daughter would fetch his water, tend to his corn, and cook his venison. The body of the old man would rest among his cannons, but his heart would be vulnerable to Le Subtil's knife.”

“Monster! well dost thou deserve thy treacherous name,” cried Cora, in an ungovernable burst of filial indignation. “None but a fiend could meditate such a vengeance. But thou overratest thy power! You shall find it is, in truth, the heart of Munro you hold, and that it will defy your utmost malice!”

“Monster! You truly deserve that treacherous name,” yelled Cora, in an uncontrollable outburst of daughterly anger. “Only a fiend could plan such revenge. But you overestimate your power! You’ll see that you actually hold Munro's heart, and it will resist your worst cruelty!”

The Indian answered this bold defiance by a ghastly smile, that showed an unaltered purpose, while he motioned her away, as if to close the conference forever. Cora, already regretting her precipitation, was obliged to comply, for Magua instantly left the spot, and approached his gluttonous comrades. Heyward flew to the side of the agitated female, and demanded the result of a dialogue that he had watched at a distance with so much interest. But, unwilling to alarm the fears of Alice, she evaded a direct reply, betraying only by her anxious looks fastened on the slightest movements of her captors. To the reiterated and earnest questions of her sister concerning their probable destination, she made no other answer than by pointing toward the dark group, with an agitation she could not control, and murmuring as she folded Alice to her bosom.

The Indian responded to this bold challenge with a chilling smile that revealed his unwavering intent, while he gestured for her to leave, as if to end the discussion for good. Cora, already regretting her hasty action, had no choice but to comply, as Magua quickly left the area and joined his greedy companions. Heyward rushed to the side of the distressed woman and asked about the outcome of a conversation he had watched from a distance with great interest. However, not wanting to frighten Alice, she avoided giving a direct answer, only showing her anxiety through worried glances at the slightest movements of their captors. To Alice's repeated and urgent questions about where they might be headed, Cora could only respond by pointing toward the dark group, her agitation impossible to hide, while murmuring as she held Alice close to her.

“There, there; read our fortunes in their faces; we shall see; we shall see!”

“There, there; read our fortunes in their faces; we’ll see; we’ll see!”

The action, and the choked utterance of Cora, spoke more impressively than any words, and quickly drew the attention of her companions on that spot where her own was riveted with an intenseness that nothing but the importance of the stake could create.

The action and Cora's muffled cry conveyed more meaning than any words could, quickly catching the attention of her companions in the spot where her gaze was fixed with a focus that only the significance of the situation could inspire.

When Magua reached the cluster of lolling savages, who, gorged with their disgusting meal, lay stretched on the earth in brutal indulgence, he commenced speaking with the dignity of an Indian chief. The first syllables he uttered had the effect to cause his listeners to raise themselves in attitudes of respectful attention. As the Huron used his native language, the prisoners, notwithstanding the caution of the natives had kept them within the swing of their tomahawks, could only conjecture the substance of his harangue from the nature of those significant gestures with which an Indian always illustrates his eloquence.

When Magua reached the group of slouching warriors, who, stuffed from their disgusting meal, lay sprawled on the ground in mindless indulgence, he began to speak with the authority of an Indian chief. The first words he spoke made his listeners sit up in respectful attention. As the Huron spoke his native language, the prisoners, despite the natives keeping them within reach of their tomahawks, could only guess the content of his speech from the meaningful gestures that an Indian always uses to enhance his eloquence.

At first, the language, as well as the action of Magua, appeared calm and deliberative. When he had succeeded in sufficiently awakening the attention of his comrades, Heyward fancied, by his pointing so frequently toward the direction of the great lakes, that he spoke of the land of their fathers, and of their distant tribe. Frequent indications of applause escaped the listeners, who, as they uttered the expressive “Hugh!” looked at each other in commendation of the speaker. Le Renard was too skillful to neglect his advantage. He now spoke of the long and painful route by which they had left those spacious grounds and happy villages, to come and battle against the enemies of their Canadian fathers. He enumerated the warriors of the party; their several merits; their frequent services to the nation; their wounds, and the number of the scalps they had taken. Whenever he alluded to any present (and the subtle Indian neglected none), the dark countenance of the flattered individual gleamed with exultation, nor did he even hesitate to assert the truth of the words, by gestures of applause and confirmation. Then the voice of the speaker fell, and lost the loud, animated tones of triumph with which he had enumerated their deeds of success and victory. He described the cataract of Glenn’s; the impregnable position of its rocky island, with its caverns and its numerous rapids and whirlpools; he named the name of “La Longue Carabine,” and paused until the forest beneath them had sent up the last echo of a loud and long yell, with which the hated appellation was received. He pointed toward the youthful military captive, and described the death of a favorite warrior, who had been precipitated into the deep ravine by his hand. He not only mentioned the fate of him who, hanging between heaven and earth, had presented such a spectacle of horror to the whole band, but he acted anew the terrors of his situation, his resolution and his death, on the branches of a sapling; and, finally, he rapidly recounted the manner in which each of their friends had fallen, never failing to touch upon their courage, and their most acknowledged virtues. When this recital of events was ended, his voice once more changed, and became plaintive and even musical, in its low guttural sounds. He now spoke of the wives and children of the slain; their destitution; their misery, both physical and moral; their distance; and, at last, of their unavenged wrongs. Then suddenly lifting his voice to a pitch of terrific energy, he concluded by demanding:

At first, both the language and actions of Magua seemed calm and thoughtful. Once he had successfully grabbed the attention of his comrades, Heyward assumed that his frequent gestures toward the great lakes were references to their ancestral homeland and distant tribe. The listeners frequently showed their approval, and as they exclaimed “Hugh!” they exchanged looks of appreciation for the speaker. Le Renard was too clever to miss this opportunity. He then talked about the long and difficult journey that had brought them away from their vast lands and happy villages to fight against the enemies of their Canadian forefathers. He listed the warriors in the group, highlighting their individual merits, their past services to the nation, their injuries, and the number of scalps they had claimed. Whenever he mentioned anyone present (and the cunning Indian did not overlook anyone), the flattered person’s dark face would shine with pride, and he'd eagerly confirm the speaker's words through gestures of approval. Then the speaker's tone shifted, losing the loud and passionate triumphant notes he had used when recounting their successes. He described the waterfall at Glenn’s, the stronghold of its rocky island with its caves, rapids, and whirlpools; he mentioned “La Longue Carabine” and paused until the forest below echoed back a long, loud shout in response to the hated name. He pointed to the young military captive and recounted the death of a favored warrior who had been thrown into the deep ravine by his hand. He not only described the fate of the one who, caught between heaven and earth, presented a terrifying sight to the entire group, but also acted out the horror of his situation, his determination, and his death on the branches of a young tree. Finally, he quickly detailed how each of their friends had fallen, always emphasizing their bravery and most recognized qualities. When he finished this account, his tone shifted once more, becoming mournful and almost melodic in its low, guttural sounds. He spoke of the wives and children of the fallen, their poverty, their suffering—both physical and emotional—their distance, and ultimately their unavenged grievances. Then, suddenly raising his voice to an intense pitch, he concluded by demanding:

“Are the Hurons dogs to bear this? Who shall say to the wife of Menowgua that the fishes have his scalp, and that his nation have not taken revenge! Who will dare meet the mother of Wassawattimie, that scornful woman, with his hands clean! What shall be said to the old men when they ask us for scalps, and we have not a hair from a white head to give them! The women will point their fingers at us. There is a dark spot on the names of the Hurons, and it must be hid in blood!” His voice was no longer audible in the burst of rage which now broke into the air, as if the wood, instead of containing so small a band, was filled with the nation. During the foregoing address the progress of the speaker was too plainly read by those most interested in his success through the medium of the countenances of the men he addressed. They had answered his melancholy and mourning by sympathy and sorrow; his assertions, by gestures of confirmation; and his boasting, with the exultation of savages. When he spoke of courage, their looks were firm and responsive; when he alluded to their injuries, their eyes kindled with fury; when he mentioned the taunts of the women, they dropped their heads in shame; but when he pointed out their means of vengeance, he struck a chord which never failed to thrill in the breast of an Indian. With the first intimation that it was within their reach, the whole band sprang upon their feet as one man; giving utterance to their rage in the most frantic cries, they rushed upon their prisoners in a body with drawn knives and uplifted tomahawks. Heyward threw himself between the sisters and the foremost, whom he grappled with a desperate strength that for a moment checked his violence. This unexpected resistance gave Magua time to interpose, and with rapid enunciation and animated gesture, he drew the attention of the band again to himself. In that language he knew so well how to assume, he diverted his comrades from their instant purpose, and invited them to prolong the misery of their victims. His proposal was received with acclamations, and executed with the swiftness of thought.

“Are the Hurons going to accept this? Who's going to tell Menowgua's wife that the fish have his scalp and that his people haven't gotten their revenge? Who will dare face the mother of Wassawattimie, that disdainful woman, with clean hands? What will we tell the elders when they ask us for scalps, and we don't have a single hair from a white man to give them? The women will point fingers at us. There’s a dark stain on the name of the Hurons, and it needs to be washed away in blood!” His voice was drowned out by the surge of anger that erupted in the air, as if the woods held more than just a small group, but the entire nation. During this speech, it was clear from the expressions of the men he addressed how much they cared about his success. They responded to his sadness with sympathy, confirmed his claims with gestures, and celebrated his bravado with savage joy. When he spoke about bravery, their expressions were resolute; when he talked about their wrongs, their eyes blazed with anger; when he referred to the women’s insults, they hung their heads in shame; but when he outlined their chance for revenge, he struck a chord that resonated deeply within them. With the first hint that retribution was possible, the entire group sprang to their feet as one; unleashing their fury in wild screams, they charged at their captives with drawn knives and raised tomahawks. Heyward threw himself between the sisters and the first attackers, grappling with one of them with a desperate strength that momentarily halted the assault. This unexpected resistance gave Magua a chance to step in, and with quick speech and animated gestures, he redirected the band’s attention back to himself. Mastering the language so well, he led his comrades away from their immediate goal and suggested that they prolong the suffering of their victims. His suggestion was met with cheers, and they acted with the speed of thought.

Two powerful warriors cast themselves on Heyward, while another was occupied in securing the less active singing-master. Neither of the captives, however, submitted without a desperate, though fruitless, struggle. Even David hurled his assailant to the earth; nor was Heyward secured until the victory over his companion enabled the Indians to direct their united force to that object. He was then bound and fastened to the body of the sapling, on whose branches Magua had acted the pantomime of the falling Huron. When the young soldier regained his recollection, he had the painful certainty before his eyes that a common fate was intended for the whole party. On his right was Cora in a durance similar to his own, pale and agitated, but with an eye whose steady look still read the proceedings of their enemies. On his left, the withes which bound her to a pine, performed that office for Alice which her trembling limbs refused, and alone kept her fragile form from sinking. Her hands were clasped before her in prayer, but instead of looking upward toward that power which alone could rescue them, her unconscious looks wandered to the countenance of Duncan with infantile dependency. David had contended, and the novelty of the circumstance held him silent, in deliberation on the propriety of the unusual occurrence.

Two strong warriors tackled Heyward, while another was busy securing the less active singing-master. However, neither of the captives gave in without a desperate, though unsuccessful, struggle. Even David managed to throw his attacker to the ground; Heyward wasn’t restrained until their victory over David allowed the Indians to focus all their strength on him. He was then tied up and fastened to the sapling that Magua had used for the pantomime of the falling Huron. When the young soldier regained his senses, he painfully realized that a shared fate awaited the whole group. To his right was Cora, in a similar situation to his own—pale and distressed, yet with a steady gaze that still assessed their enemies’ actions. To his left, the bindings that kept her tied to a pine also held Alice, who was trembling and on the verge of collapsing. Her hands were clasped in prayer, but rather than looking up at the power that could save them, her unconscious gaze turned to Duncan’s face, relying on him like a child. David had fought back, and the strangeness of the situation left him silent as he considered the unusual occurrences.

The vengeance of the Hurons had now taken a new direction, and they prepared to execute it with that barbarous ingenuity with which they were familiarized by the practise of centuries. Some sought knots, to raise the blazing pile; one was riving the splinters of pine, in order to pierce the flesh of their captives with the burning fragments; and others bent the tops of two saplings to the earth, in order to suspend Heyward by the arms between the recoiling branches. But the vengeance of Magua sought a deeper and more malignant enjoyment.

The Hurons' desire for revenge had now taken a different turn, and they got ready to carry it out with the brutal creativity they had honed over centuries. Some looked for ropes to build the fiery pyre; one was splitting pine into jagged pieces to stab at their captives with the burning shards; and others bent the tops of two young trees to the ground to hang Heyward by the arms between the snapping branches. But Magua's thirst for revenge aimed for a more profound and sinister satisfaction.

While the less refined monsters of the band prepared, before the eyes of those who were to suffer, these well-known and vulgar means of torture, he approached Cora, and pointed out, with the most malign expression of countenance, the speedy fate that awaited her:

While the more rough-and-tumble monsters of the group got ready, right in front of those who were about to endure these infamous and brutal methods of torture, he walked over to Cora and, with the most sinister expression, indicated the quick fate that was in store for her:

“Ha!” he added, “what says the daughter of Munro? Her head is too good to find a pillow in the wigwam of Le Renard; will she like it better when it rolls about this hill a plaything for the wolves? Her bosom cannot nurse the children of a Huron; she will see it spit upon by Indians!”

“Ha!” he added, “what does the daughter of Munro say? Her head is too precious to rest in the wigwam of Le Renard; will she prefer it when it rolls down this hill as a toy for the wolves? Her heart cannot nurture the children of a Huron; she will watch it getting spat on by Indians!”

“What means the monster!” demanded the astonished Heyward.

“What does the monster mean!” demanded the astonished Heyward.

“Nothing!” was the firm reply. “He is a savage, a barbarous and ignorant savage, and knows not what he does. Let us find leisure, with our dying breath, to ask for him penitence and pardon.”

“Nothing!” was the strong response. “He is a savage, a brutal and ignorant savage, and doesn’t know what he’s doing. Let us take the time, with our dying breath, to plead for his remorse and forgiveness.”

“Pardon!” echoed the fierce Huron, mistaking in his anger, the meaning of her words; “the memory of an Indian is no longer than the arm of the pale faces; his mercy shorter than their justice! Say; shall I send the yellow hair to her father, and will you follow Magua to the great lakes, to carry his water, and feed him with corn?”

“Excuse me!” shouted the fierce Huron, misinterpreting her words in his anger; “the memory of an Indian is no longer than the arm of the white men; his mercy is shorter than their justice! Tell me; should I send the blonde girl to her father, and will you follow Magua to the Great Lakes, to carry his water and feed him with corn?”

Cora beckoned him away, with an emotion of disgust she could not control.

Cora waved him away, feeling a strong sense of disgust she couldn't hold back.

“Leave me,” she said, with a solemnity that for a moment checked the barbarity of the Indian; “you mingle bitterness in my prayers; you stand between me and my God!”

“Leave me,” she said, with a seriousness that briefly restrained the savagery of the Indian; “you mix bitterness into my prayers; you block my connection with my God!”

The slight impression produced on the savage was, however, soon forgotten, and he continued pointing, with taunting irony, toward Alice.

The small impact it had on the savage was quickly overlooked, and he kept gesturing mockingly at Alice.

“Look! the child weeps! She is too young to die! Send her to Munro, to comb his gray hairs, and keep life in the heart of the old man.”

“Look! The child is crying! She’s too young to die! Send her to Munro, to brush his gray hair, and keep life in the old man's heart.”

Cora could not resist the desire to look upon her youthful sister, in whose eyes she met an imploring glance, that betrayed the longings of nature.

Cora couldn't help but look at her younger sister, whose eyes held a pleading look that revealed a deep yearning.

“What says he, dearest Cora?” asked the trembling voice of Alice. “Did he speak of sending me to our father?”

“What did he say, dear Cora?” asked Alice, her voice shaking. “Did he mention sending me to our father?”

For many moments the elder sister looked upon the younger, with a countenance that wavered with powerful and contending emotions. At length she spoke, though her tones had lost their rich and calm fullness, in an expression of tenderness that seemed maternal.

For a long time, the older sister stared at the younger one, her face filled with strong, conflicting emotions. Finally, she spoke, although her voice had lost its warm, steady quality, replaced by a softness that felt almost motherly.

“Alice,” she said, “the Huron offers us both life, nay, more than both; he offers to restore Duncan, our invaluable Duncan, as well as you, to our friends—to our father—to our heart-stricken, childless father, if I will bow down this rebellious, stubborn pride of mine, and consent—”

“Alice,” she said, “the Huron gives us both life, no, more than both; he offers to bring Duncan back, our precious Duncan, as well as you, to our friends—to our father—to our grieving, childless father, if I will set aside this rebellious, stubborn pride of mine, and agree—”

Her voice became choked, and clasping her hands, she looked upward, as if seeking, in her agony, intelligence from a wisdom that was infinite.

Her voice got caught in her throat, and with her hands clasped, she looked up, as if trying to find understanding in her suffering from a wisdom that was limitless.

“Say on,” cried Alice; “to what, dearest Cora? Oh! that the proffer were made to me! to save you, to cheer our aged father, to restore Duncan, how cheerfully could I die!”

“Go on,” exclaimed Alice; “to what, dear Cora? Oh! if only that offer were made to me! To save you, to lift our elderly father’s spirits, to bring Duncan back, I would gladly give my life!”

“Die!” repeated Cora, with a calmer and firmer voice, “that were easy! Perhaps the alternative may not be less so. He would have me,” she continued, her accents sinking under a deep consciousness of the degradation of the proposal, “follow him to the wilderness; go to the habitations of the Hurons; to remain there; in short, to become his wife! Speak, then, Alice; child of my affections! sister of my love! And you, too, Major Heyward, aid my weak reason with your counsel. Is life to be purchased by such a sacrifice? Will you, Alice, receive it at my hands at such a price? And you, Duncan, guide me; control me between you; for I am wholly yours!”

“Die!” Cora repeated, her voice steady and strong. “That would be easy! Maybe the alternative isn’t any better. He wants me,” she continued, her tone reflecting the deep shame of the proposal, “to follow him into the wilderness; to go to the homes of the Hurons; to stay there; basically, to become his wife! So speak up, Alice; my dear child! Sister of my heart! And you, too, Major Heyward, help me with your advice. Is life worth this kind of sacrifice? Will you, Alice, accept it from me at that cost? And you, Duncan, guide me; help me decide, because I am completely yours!”

“Would I!” echoed the indignant and astonished youth. “Cora! Cora! you jest with our misery! Name not the horrid alternative again; the thought itself is worse than a thousand deaths.”

“Of course I would!” shouted the shocked and angry young man. “Cora! Cora! You're joking about our suffering! Don’t bring up that terrible option again; just thinking about it is worse than a thousand deaths.”

“That such would be your answer, I well knew!” exclaimed Cora, her cheeks flushing, and her dark eyes once more sparkling with the lingering emotions of a woman. “What says my Alice? for her will I submit without another murmur.”

“Of course that would be your answer!” Cora exclaimed, her cheeks turning pink and her dark eyes shining again with the emotions of a woman. “What does my Alice say? I will agree to whatever she wants without another complaint.”

Although both Heyward and Cora listened with painful suspense and the deepest attention, no sounds were heard in reply. It appeared as if the delicate and sensitive form of Alice would shrink into itself, as she listened to this proposal. Her arms had fallen lengthwise before her, the fingers moving in slight convulsions; her head dropped upon her bosom, and her whole person seemed suspended against the tree, looking like some beautiful emblem of the wounded delicacy of her sex, devoid of animation and yet keenly conscious. In a few moments, however, her head began to move slowly, in a sign of deep, unconquerable disapprobation.

Although both Heyward and Cora listened with intense anxiety and full attention, no sounds were heard in response. It seemed as if Alice's fragile and sensitive form would collapse in on itself as she listened to this proposal. Her arms hung down at her sides, her fingers twitching slightly; her head dropped onto her chest, and her whole body appeared to be leaning against the tree, resembling a stunning symbol of the wounded delicacy of her gender, lacking in vitality yet acutely aware. After a few moments, though, her head began to move slowly, signaling her deep, unyielding disapproval.

“No, no, no; better that we die as we have lived, together!”

“No, no, no; it's better that we die the way we've lived, together!”

[Illustration]

“Then die!” shouted Magua, hurling his tomahawk with violence at the unresisting speaker

“Then die!” shouted Magua, throwing his tomahawk violently at the defenseless speaker.

“Then die!” shouted Magua, hurling his tomahawk with violence at the unresisting speaker, and gnashing his teeth with a rage that could no longer be bridled at this sudden exhibition of firmness in the one he believed the weakest of the party. The axe cleaved the air in front of Heyward, and cutting some of the flowing ringlets of Alice, quivered in the tree above her head. The sight maddened Duncan to desperation. Collecting all his energies in one effort he snapped the twigs which bound him and rushed upon another savage, who was preparing, with loud yells and a more deliberate aim, to repeat the blow. They encountered, grappled, and fell to the earth together. The naked body of his antagonist afforded Heyward no means of holding his adversary, who glided from his grasp, and rose again with one knee on his chest, pressing him down with the weight of a giant. Duncan already saw the knife gleaming in the air, when a whistling sound swept past him, and was rather accompanied than followed by the sharp crack of a rifle. He felt his breast relieved from the load it had endured; he saw the savage expression of his adversary’s countenance change to a look of vacant wildness, when the Indian fell dead on the faded leaves by his side.

“Then die!” shouted Magua, throwing his tomahawk violently at the defenseless speaker, his teeth gritted in rage that he could no longer contain at this sudden display of strength in someone he thought was the weakest in the group. The axe sliced through the air in front of Heyward, cutting some of Alice's flowing hair, and lodged in a tree above her head. The sight drove Duncan into a frenzy. Gathering all his strength, he snapped the twigs binding him and charged at another savage, who was preparing to strike again with loud yells and a more careful aim. They collided, grappled, and fell to the ground together. The bare body of his opponent left Heyward with no way to hold onto him, and the man slipped from his grasp, quickly getting back up with one knee on Duncan's chest, pressing him down with incredible weight. Duncan could see the knife glinting in the air when a whistling sound zipped past him, quickly followed by the sharp crack of a rifle. He felt the burden on his chest lift; he saw the savage look on his foe's face shift to vacant wildness as the Indian fell dead on the decaying leaves beside him.

CHAPTER XII.

“Clo.—I am gone, sire,
And anon, sire, I’ll be with you again.”
—Twelfth Night

“Clo.—I’m leaving now, sir,
And soon, sir, I’ll be back with you.”
—Twelfth Night

The Hurons stood aghast at this sudden visitation of death on one of their band. But as they regarded the fatal accuracy of an aim which had dared to immolate an enemy at so much hazard to a friend, the name of “La Longue Carabine” burst simultaneously from every lip, and was succeeded by a wild and a sort of plaintive howl. The cry was answered by a loud shout from a little thicket, where the incautious party had piled their arms; and at the next moment, Hawkeye, too eager to load the rifle he had regained, was seen advancing upon them, brandishing the clubbed weapon, and cutting the air with wide and powerful sweeps. Bold and rapid as was the progress of the scout, it was exceeded by that of a light and vigorous form which, bounding past him, leaped, with incredible activity and daring, into the very center of the Hurons, where it stood, whirling a tomahawk, and flourishing a glittering knife, with fearful menaces, in front of Cora. Quicker than the thoughts could follow those unexpected and audacious movements, an image, armed in the emblematic panoply of death, glided before their eyes, and assumed a threatening attitude at the other’s side. The savage tormentors recoiled before these warlike intruders, and uttered, as they appeared in such quick succession, the often repeated and peculiar exclamations of surprise, followed by the well-known and dreaded appellations of:

The Hurons were shocked by this sudden death striking one of their people. As they witnessed the deadly precision of a shot that had dared to take out an enemy while risking harm to a friend, the name “La Longue Carabine” erupted from every mouth, followed by a wild and mournful howl. This cry was met with a loud shout from a nearby thicket where the careless group had left their weapons; in the next moment, Hawkeye, too eager to reload the rifle he had reclaimed, was seen charging at them, swinging the weapon and making powerful, sweeping movements. As bold and fast as the scout was, he was outpaced by a light and agile figure that, bounding past him, leaped with astonishing energy and bravery right into the middle of the Hurons. There, it stood, spinning a tomahawk and brandishing a shining knife, threateningly poised in front of Cora. Before anyone could fully grasp those sudden and daring actions, a figure clad in the symbolic gear of death appeared before their eyes, taking a threatening stance beside the other. The savage tormentors recoiled from these fierce intruders and uttered, as they appeared so rapidly, the often-repeated and distinctive sounds of surprise, followed by the well-known and feared names of:

“Le Cerf Agile! Le Gros Serpent!”

“Quick! Deer! Big snake!”

But the wary and vigilant leader of the Hurons was not so easily disconcerted. Casting his keen eyes around the little plain, he comprehended the nature of the assault at a glance, and encouraging his followers by his voice as well as by his example, he unsheathed his long and dangerous knife, and rushed with a loud whoop upon the expected Chingachgook. It was the signal for a general combat. Neither party had firearms, and the contest was to be decided in the deadliest manner, hand to hand, with weapons of offense, and none of defense.

But the cautious and alert leader of the Hurons wasn’t easily rattled. Scanning the small clearing, he quickly understood the nature of the attack. Encouraging his followers with his voice and his actions, he pulled out his long, dangerous knife and charged with a loud shout at the anticipated Chingachgook. This was the signal for an all-out fight. Neither side had guns, and the battle would be settled in the deadliest way possible, hand to hand, armed with offensive weapons and no means of defense.

Uncas answered the whoop, and leaping on an enemy, with a single, well-directed blow of his tomahawk, cleft him to the brain. Heyward tore the weapon of Magua from the sapling, and rushed eagerly toward the fray. As the combatants were now equal in number, each singled an opponent from the adverse band. The rush and blows passed with the fury of a whirlwind, and the swiftness of lightning. Hawkeye soon got another enemy within reach of his arm, and with one sweep of his formidable weapon he beat down the slight and inartificial defenses of his antagonist, crushing him to the earth with the blow. Heyward ventured to hurl the tomahawk he had seized, too ardent to await the moment of closing. It struck the Indian he had selected on the forehead, and checked for an instant his onward rush. Encouraged by this slight advantage, the impetuous young man continued his onset, and sprang upon his enemy with naked hands. A single instant was enough to assure him of the rashness of the measure, for he immediately found himself fully engaged, with all his activity and courage, in endeavoring to ward the desperate thrusts made with the knife of the Huron. Unable longer to foil an enemy so alert and vigilant, he threw his arms about him, and succeeded in pinning the limbs of the other to his side, with an iron grasp, but one that was far too exhausting to himself to continue long. In this extremity he heard a voice near him, shouting:

Uncas responded to the cry and, leaping onto an enemy, delivered a precise blow with his tomahawk that struck him in the head. Heyward grabbed Magua's weapon from the tree and charged eagerly into the fight. Now that the numbers were even, each person targeted an opponent from the opposing group. The clash and strikes erupted with the force of a whirlwind and the speed of lightning. Hawkeye soon found another enemy within reach, and with one powerful swing of his formidable weapon, he shattered the weak defenses of his opponent, sending him crashing to the ground. Heyward, too eager to wait for the right moment, threw the tomahawk he had taken. It hit the Indian he had chosen on the forehead, briefly halting his advance. Boosted by this small victory, the reckless young man pressed on and lunged at his enemy with his bare hands. In an instant, he realized how foolish his actions were, as he found himself fully occupied, using all his agility and bravery to fend off the desperate knife attacks from the Huron. Unable to withstand an opponent so quick and alert any longer, he wrapped his arms around him and managed to pin the other’s limbs to his side with a tight grip, but it took too much energy for him to maintain. At this critical moment, he heard a voice nearby shouting:

“Extarminate the varlets! no quarter to an accursed Mingo!”

“Wipe out the thugs! No mercy for a cursed Mingo!”

At the next moment, the breech of Hawkeye’s rifle fell on the naked head of his adversary, whose muscles appeared to wither under the shock, as he sank from the arms of Duncan, flexible and motionless.

At that moment, the breach of Hawkeye’s rifle landed on the bare head of his opponent, whose muscles seemed to weaken from the impact as he collapsed from Duncan's arms, limp and lifeless.

When Uncas had brained his first antagonist, he turned, like a hungry lion, to seek another. The fifth and only Huron disengaged at the first onset had paused a moment, and then seeing that all around him were employed in the deadly strife, he had sought, with hellish vengeance, to complete the baffled work of revenge. Raising a shout of triumph, he sprang toward the defenseless Cora, sending his keen axe as the dreadful precursor of his approach. The tomahawk grazed her shoulder, and cutting the withes which bound her to the tree, left the maiden at liberty to fly. She eluded the grasp of the savage, and reckless of her own safety, threw herself on the bosom of Alice, striving with convulsed and ill-directed fingers, to tear asunder the twigs which confined the person of her sister. Any other than a monster would have relented at such an act of generous devotion to the best and purest affection; but the breast of the Huron was a stranger to sympathy. Seizing Cora by the rich tresses which fell in confusion about her form, he tore her from her frantic hold, and bowed her down with brutal violence to her knees. The savage drew the flowing curls through his hand, and raising them on high with an outstretched arm, he passed the knife around the exquisitely molded head of his victim, with a taunting and exulting laugh. But he purchased this moment of fierce gratification with the loss of the fatal opportunity. It was just then the sight caught the eye of Uncas. Bounding from his footsteps he appeared for an instant darting through the air and descending in a ball he fell on the chest of his enemy, driving him many yards from the spot, headlong and prostrate. The violence of the exertion cast the young Mohican at his side. They arose together, fought, and bled, each in his turn. But the conflict was soon decided; the tomahawk of Heyward and the rifle of Hawkeye descended on the skull of the Huron, at the same moment that the knife of Uncas reached his heart.

When Uncas had taken down his first opponent, he turned, like a hungry lion, to find another. The fifth and only Huron, who had gotten away at the first attack, paused for a moment. Seeing that everyone around him was engaged in the deadly struggle, he sought revenge with a vengeful fury to finish what he had started. Shouting in triumph, he lunged toward the defenseless Cora, throwing his sharp axe ahead of him as a deadly warning of his approach. The tomahawk grazed her shoulder, cutting the cords that bound her to the tree and freeing her to escape. She dodged the savage's grasp and, ignoring her own safety, threw herself into Alice's arms, desperately trying to pull apart the twigs that held her sister. Anyone but a monster would have shown compassion for such an act of selfless devotion to love. But the Huron had no sympathy in his heart. Grabbing Cora by her beautiful hair that was tangled around her, he yanked her away from her frantic hold and forced her down to her knees with brutal force. The savage ran his fingers through her flowing hair, then lifted it high with an outstretched arm, wrapping a knife around the perfectly shaped head of his victim while laughing mockingly and gleefully. But he traded this intense moment of satisfaction for the chance to escape. At that moment, Uncas spotted him. In a flash, he launched himself through the air and crashed onto his enemy, knocking him several yards away, flat on the ground. The force of the impact sent the young Mohican tumbling to the side. They both got up, fought, and bled in turn. But the battle was quickly decided; the tomahawk of Heyward and the rifle of Hawkeye came down on the Huron's skull just as Uncas's knife pierced his heart.

[Illustration]

The battle was now entirely terminated with the exception of the protracted struggle between “Le Renard Subtil” and “Le Gros Serpent.” Well did these barbarous warriors prove that they deserved those significant names which had been bestowed for deeds in former wars. When they engaged, some little time was lost in eluding the quick and vigorous thrusts which had been aimed at their lives. Suddenly darting on each other, they closed, and came to the earth, twisted together like twining serpents, in pliant and subtle folds. At the moment when the victors found themselves unoccupied, the spot where these experienced and desperate combatants lay could only be distinguished by a cloud of dust and leaves, which moved from the center of the little plain toward its boundary, as if raised by the passage of a whirlwind. Urged by the different motives of filial affection, friendship and gratitude, Heyward and his companions rushed with one accord to the place, encircling the little canopy of dust which hung above the warriors. In vain did Uncas dart around the cloud, with a wish to strike his knife into the heart of his father’s foe; the threatening rifle of Hawkeye was raised and suspended in vain, while Duncan endeavored to seize the limbs of the Huron with hands that appeared to have lost their power. Covered as they were with dust and blood, the swift evolutions of the combatants seemed to incorporate their bodies into one. The death-like looking figure of the Mohican, and the dark form of the Huron, gleamed before their eyes in such quick and confused succession, that the friends of the former knew not where to plant the succoring blow. It is true there were short and fleeting moments, when the fiery eyes of Magua were seen glittering, like the fabled organs of the basilisk through the dusty wreath by which he was enveloped, and he read by those short and deadly glances the fate of the combat in the presence of his enemies; ere, however, any hostile hand could descend on his devoted head, its place was filled by the scowling visage of Chingachgook. In this manner the scene of the combat was removed from the center of the little plain to its verge. The Mohican now found an opportunity to make a powerful thrust with his knife; Magua suddenly relinquished his grasp, and fell backward without motion, and seemingly without life. His adversary leaped on his feet, making the arches of the forest ring with the sounds of triumph.

The battle had now completely ended, except for the prolonged struggle between “Le Renard Subtil” and “Le Gros Serpent.” These fierce warriors clearly showed they deserved the names given to them for their actions in past wars. When they started fighting, they initially lost some time dodging the quick and powerful attacks aimed at their lives. Suddenly, they lunged at each other, grappling and crashing to the ground, tangled together like intertwined snakes, in flexible and intricate coils. In the moment the winners found themselves free, the place where these experienced and desperate fighters lay could only be seen by a cloud of dust and leaves moving from the center of the small clearing to its edge, as if blown by a whirlwind. Driven by reasons of family loyalty, friendship, and gratitude, Heyward and his companions rushed together to that spot, surrounding the small cloud of dust hovering above the warriors. Uncas darted around the cloud, wanting to plunge his knife into the heart of his father's enemy, but Hawkeye’s rifle was raised but didn’t fire while Duncan struggled to grab the Huron’s limbs with hands that seemed powerless. Covered in dust and blood, the quick movements of the fighters made them appear as one. The pale figure of the Mohican and the dark form of the Huron flashed before their eyes in such rapid and confusing succession that the Mohican's friends didn’t know where to strike to help. There were brief moments when Magua’s fierce eyes shone like the mythical eyes of a basilisk through the dust cloud surrounding him, and he sensed the fate of the battle, yet before any hostile hand could reach him, it was replaced by the scowling face of Chingachgook. In this way, the fight relocated from the center of the clearing to its edge. The Mohican found a chance to strike powerfully with his knife; Magua suddenly let go and fell back, motionless and seemingly lifeless. His opponent sprang to his feet, making the forest echo with cheers of victory.

“Well done for the Delawares! victory to the Mohicans!” cried Hawkeye, once more elevating the butt of the long and fatal rifle; “a finishing blow from a man without a cross will never tell against his honor, nor rob him of his right to the scalp.”

“Great job for the Delawares! Cheers to the Mohicans!” shouted Hawkeye, raising the butt of his long and deadly rifle once again; “a final hit from a guy without a cross won’t tarnish his honor, nor take away his right to the scalp.”

But at the very moment when the dangerous weapon was in the act of descending, the subtle Huron rolled swiftly from beneath the danger, over the edge of the precipice, and falling on his feet, was seen leaping, with a single bound, into the center of a thicket of low bushes, which clung along its sides. The Delawares, who had believed their enemy dead, uttered their exclamation of surprise, and were following with speed and clamor, like hounds in open view of the deer, when a shrill and peculiar cry from the scout instantly changed their purpose, and recalled them to the summit of the hill.

But at the exact moment when the dangerous weapon was about to come down, the quick-thinking Huron rolled out of harm's way, over the edge of the cliff, and landed on his feet. He was seen leaping, with a single jump, into the middle of a thicket of low bushes that clung to the sides. The Delawares, who thought their enemy was dead, let out a shout of surprise and began chasing after him with speed and noise, like hounds spotting deer. But then a sharp and unusual cry from the scout immediately changed their minds and brought them back to the top of the hill.

“’Twas like himself!” cried the inveterate forester, whose prejudices contributed so largely to veil his natural sense of justice in all matters which concerned the Mingoes; “a lying and deceitful varlet as he is. An honest Delaware now, being fairly vanquished, would have lain still, and been knocked on the head, but these knavish Maquas cling to life like so many cats-o’-the-mountain. Let him go—let him go; ’tis but one man, and he without rifle or bow, many a long mile from his French commerades; and like a rattler that lost his fangs, he can do no further mischief, until such time as he, and we too, may leave the prints of our moccasins over a long reach of sandy plain. See, Uncas,” he added, in Delaware, “your father is flaying the scalps already. It may be well to go round and feel the vagabonds that are left, or we may have another of them loping through the woods, and screeching like a jay that has been winged.”

“It’s just like him!” yelled the stubborn forester, whose biases really clouded his sense of fairness in anything related to the Mingoes; “he’s a lying and deceitful rogue. An honest Delaware, when genuinely defeated, would just lie there and get killed, but these tricky Maquas hold on to life like a bunch of mountain lions. Let him go—just let him go; it’s only one man, and he’s without a rifle or bow, far away from his French buddies; and like a rattlesnake that’s lost its fangs, he can’t do any more harm until he, and we too, can leave our tracks across a long stretch of sandy ground. Look, Uncas,” he added in Delaware, “your father is already skinning the scalps. It might be a good idea to check out the remaining stragglers, or we could end up with another one running through the woods, screeching like a wounded jay.”

So saying the honest but implacable scout made the circuit of the dead, into whose senseless bosoms he thrust his long knife, with as much coolness as though they had been so many brute carcasses. He had, however, been anticipated by the elder Mohican, who had already torn the emblems of victory from the unresisting heads of the slain.

So saying, the honest but relentless scout walked around the dead, stabbing into their lifeless bodies with as much calmness as if they were just animal carcasses. However, he had been outdone by the elder Mohican, who had already removed the symbols of victory from the motionless heads of the fallen.

But Uncas, denying his habits, we had almost said his nature, flew with instinctive delicacy, accompanied by Heyward, to the assistance of the females, and quickly releasing Alice, placed her in the arms of Cora. We shall not attempt to describe the gratitude to the Almighty Disposer of Events which glowed in the bosoms of the sisters, who were thus unexpectedly restored to life and to each other. Their thanksgivings were deep and silent; the offerings of their gentle spirits burning brightest and purest on the secret altars of their hearts; and their renovated and more earthly feelings exhibiting themselves in long and fervent though speechless caresses. As Alice rose from her knees, where she had sunk by the side of Cora, she threw herself on the bosom of the latter, and sobbed aloud the name of their aged father, while her soft, dove-like eyes, sparkled with the rays of hope.

But Uncas, denying his habits, we might have said his nature, instinctively and gracefully rushed with Heyward to help the women and quickly freed Alice, placing her in Cora's arms. We won’t try to describe the deep gratitude to the Almighty Disposer of Events that filled the sisters, who were unexpectedly brought back to life and to each other. Their thanks were sincere and silent; the expressions of their gentle souls shone brightest and purest on the hidden altars of their hearts; and their renewed, more earthly feelings showed themselves in long, passionate, yet wordless embraces. As Alice got up from her knees, where she had sunk next to Cora, she threw herself into Cora's arms, sobbing aloud the name of their elderly father, while her soft, dove-like eyes sparkled with hope.

“We are saved! we are saved!” she murmured; “to return to the arms of our dear, dear father, and his heart will not be broken with grief. And you, too, Cora, my sister, my more than sister, my mother; you, too, are spared. And Duncan,” she added, looking round upon the youth with a smile of ineffable innocence, “even our own brave and noble Duncan has escaped without a hurt.”

“We're saved! We're saved!” she whispered; “we can go back to our dear, dear father, and his heart won't be broken with sadness. And you, too, Cora, my sister, my more than sister, my mother; you, too, are safe. And Duncan,” she said, glancing at the young man with a smile of pure innocence, “even our own brave and noble Duncan has come through without a scratch.”

To these ardent and nearly innocent words Cora made no other answer than by straining the youthful speaker to her heart, as she bent over her in melting tenderness. The manhood of Heyward felt no shame in dropping tears over this spectacle of affectionate rapture; and Uncas stood, fresh and blood-stained from the combat, a calm, and, apparently, an unmoved looker-on, it is true, but with eyes that had already lost their fierceness, and were beaming with a sympathy that elevated him far above the intelligence, and advanced him probably centuries before, the practises of his nation.

To these passionate and almost innocent words, Cora replied by pulling the young speaker close to her heart, bending over her with warm tenderness. Heyward felt no shame in shedding tears at this moving display of affection, and Uncas stood there, fresh and bloodied from the fight, a calm and seemingly unaffected watcher. Yet, his eyes, which had already lost their fierceness, shone with a sympathy that lifted him far beyond his people's ways and advanced him probably centuries ahead of their practices.

During this display of emotions so natural in their situation, Hawkeye, whose vigilant distrust had satisfied itself that the Hurons, who disfigured the heavenly scene, no longer possessed the power to interrupt its harmony, approached David, and liberated him from the bonds he had, until that moment, endured with the most exemplary patience.

During this emotional moment that felt so real for them, Hawkeye, whose careful suspicion had confirmed that the Hurons, who marred the beautiful scene, could no longer disrupt its peace, walked over to David and freed him from the restraints he had been enduring with remarkable patience until that point.

“There,” exclaimed the scout, casting the last withe behind him, “you are once more master of your own limbs, though you seem not to use them with much greater judgment than that in which they were first fashioned. If advice from one who is not older than yourself, but who, having lived most of his time in the wilderness, may be said to have experience beyond his years, will give no offense, you are welcome to my thoughts; and these are, to part with the little tooting instrument in your jacket to the first fool you meet with, and buy some we’pon with the money, if it be only the barrel of a horseman’s pistol. By industry and care, you might thus come to some prefarment; for by this time, I should think, your eyes would plainly tell you that a carrion crow is a better bird than a mocking-thresher. The one will, at least, remove foul sights from before the face of man, while the other is only good to brew disturbances in the woods, by cheating the ears of all that hear them.”

“There,” the scout said, throwing the last withe behind him, “you’re once again in control of your own limbs, though it seems you’re not using them with much better judgment than when they were first made. If advice from someone who isn’t older than you but has spent most of his life in the wilderness and gained experience beyond his years doesn’t offend you, here are my thoughts: sell that little instrument in your jacket to the first fool you see and buy a weapon with the money, even if it’s just the barrel of a horseman’s pistol. With hard work and care, you could achieve some advancement; by now, I’d think your eyes would clearly show you that a carrion crow is a better bird than a mocking-thresher. At least the crow removes unpleasant sights from before people, while the other just creates chaos in the woods by tricking the ears of everyone who hears it.”

“Arms and the clarion for the battle, but the song of thanksgiving to the victory!” answered the liberated David. “Friend,” he added, thrusting forth his lean, delicate hand toward Hawkeye, in kindness, while his eyes twinkled and grew moist, “I thank thee that the hairs of my head still grow where they were first rooted by Providence; for, though those of other men may be more glossy and curling, I have ever found mine own well suited to the brain they shelter. That I did not join myself to the battle, was less owing to disinclination, than to the bonds of the heathen. Valiant and skillful hast thou proved thyself in the conflict, and I hereby thank thee, before proceeding to discharge other and more important duties, because thou hast proved thyself well worthy of a Christian’s praise.”

“Arms and the call to battle, but the song of thanks for victory!” replied the freed David. “Friend,” he added, reaching out his thin, delicate hand toward Hawkeye kindly, his eyes sparkling with moisture, “I thank you that the hair on my head still grows where it was first planted by Providence; for, while other men may have shinier and curlier hair, I’ve always found mine to be just right for the mind they protect. The reason I didn't join the fight wasn't because I didn't want to, but because of the ties of the heathen. You’ve proven yourself brave and skilled in the conflict, and I want to thank you before I move on to other, more important duties, because you’ve shown yourself truly deserving of a Christian’s praise.”

“The thing is but a trifle, and what you may often see if you tarry long among us,” returned the scout, a good deal softened toward the man of song, by this unequivocal expression of gratitude. “I have got back my old companion, ‘killdeer’,” he added, striking his hand on the breech of his rifle; “and that in itself is a victory. These Iroquois are cunning, but they outwitted themselves when they placed their firearms out of reach; and had Uncas or his father been gifted with only their common Indian patience, we should have come in upon the knaves with three bullets instead of one, and that would have made a finish of the whole pack; yon loping varlet, as well as his commerades. But ’twas all fore-ordered, and for the best.”

"The thing is just a small matter, and you'll often see it if you stick around us for a while," replied the scout, feeling a lot more appreciative of the man with the song, thanks to his clear expression of gratitude. "I've got back my old buddy, ‘killdeer’,” he added, slapping the breech of his rifle; “and that alone feels like a win. These Iroquois are clever, but they outsmarted themselves when they put their firearms out of reach; if Uncas or his father had just had their usual Indian patience, we could have hit those guys with three bullets instead of one, and that would have taken out the whole pack, that loping trickster and his buddies too. But it was all meant to be, and it turned out for the best."

“Thou sayest well,” returned David, “and hast caught the true spirit of Christianity. He that is to be saved will be saved, and he that is predestined to be damned will be damned. This is the doctrine of truth, and most consoling and refreshing it is to the true believer.”

“You're right,” David replied, “and you've grasped the true essence of Christianity. Those who are meant to be saved will be saved, and those who are destined to be damned will be damned. This is the doctrine of truth, and it is very comforting and uplifting to the true believer.”

The scout, who by this time was seated, examining into the state of his rifle with a species of parental assiduity, now looked up at the other in a displeasure that he did not affect to conceal, roughly interrupting further speech.

The scout, now seated and carefully checking his rifle like a concerned parent, looked up at the other with an annoyance he didn’t bother to hide, bluntly cutting off any further conversation.

“Doctrine or no doctrine,” said the sturdy woodsman, “’tis the belief of knaves, and the curse of an honest man. I can credit that yonder Huron was to fall by my hand, for with my own eyes I have seen it; but nothing short of being a witness will cause me to think he has met with any reward, or that Chingachgook there will be condemned at the final day.”

“Doctrine or no doctrine,” said the sturdy woodsman, “it’s the belief of deceivers and the curse of an honest man. I can believe that Huron over there fell by my hand, because I’ve seen it with my own eyes; but nothing less than being a witness will make me think he received any kind of reward, or that Chingachgook there will be judged on the final day.”

“You have no warranty for such an audacious doctrine, nor any covenant to support it,” cried David who was deeply tinctured with the subtle distinctions which, in his time, and more especially in his province, had been drawn around the beautiful simplicity of revelation, by endeavoring to penetrate the awful mystery of the divine nature, supplying faith by self-sufficiency, and by consequence, involving those who reasoned from such human dogmas in absurdities and doubt; “your temple is reared on the sands, and the first tempest will wash away its foundation. I demand your authorities for such an uncharitable assertion (like other advocates of a system, David was not always accurate in his use of terms). Name chapter and verse; in which of the holy books do you find language to support you?”

“You have no proof for such a bold idea, nor any agreement to back it up,” yelled David, who was heavily influenced by the subtle differences that, in his time, especially in his area, had been created around the beautiful simplicity of revelation, by trying to understand the terrifying mystery of the divine nature, replacing faith with self-reliance, and as a result, leading those who argued from such human beliefs into absurdities and doubt; “your temple is built on sand, and the first storm will wash away its foundation. I want your evidence for such an unkind claim (like other advocates of a system, David wasn't always precise in his use of words). Name the chapter and verse; in which of the holy books do you find words to support you?”

“Book!” repeated Hawkeye, with singular and ill-concealed disdain; “do you take me for a whimpering boy at the apronstring of one of your old gals; and this good rifle on my knee for the feather of a goose’s wing, my ox’s horn for a bottle of ink, and my leathern pouch for a cross-barred handkercher to carry my dinner? Book! what have such as I, who am a warrior of the wilderness, though a man without a cross, to do with books? I never read but in one, and the words that are written there are too simple and too plain to need much schooling; though I may boast that of forty long and hard-working years.”

“Book!” Hawkeye repeated, clearly showing his disdain. “Do you think I’m a whimpering boy tied to one of your old ladies? This trusty rifle resting on my knee isn’t just some feather from a goose; my ox’s horn isn’t a bottle of ink, and my leather pouch isn’t a fancy handkerchief for carrying my lunch. Book! What would someone like me, a warrior of the wilderness, though a man without a cross, want with books? I’ve only ever read one, and the words in it are so simple and straightforward that they don’t require much schooling, even if I can brag about my forty years of hard work.”

“What call you the volume?” said David, misconceiving the other’s meaning.

“What do you call the volume?” David asked, misunderstanding the other’s meaning.

“’Tis open before your eyes,” returned the scout; “and he who owns it is not a niggard of its use. I have heard it said that there are men who read in books to convince themselves there is a God. I know not but man may so deform his works in the settlement, as to leave that which is so clear in the wilderness a matter of doubt among traders and priests. If any such there be, and he will follow me from sun to sun, through the windings of the forest, he shall see enough to teach him that he is a fool, and that the greatest of his folly lies in striving to rise to the level of One he can never equal, be it in goodness, or be it in power.”

“It’s right in front of you,” the scout replied, “and the person who owns it isn’t stingy with its use. I've heard that some people read books to convince themselves that there is a God. I don’t know, but a person can twist their actions in society so much that what is clear in the wilderness becomes questionable among traders and priests. If there are any like that, and if they’ll follow me from sunrise to sunset through the twists and turns of the forest, they’ll see enough to realize that they’re a fool, and that the biggest part of their foolishness is trying to rise to the level of Someone they can never match, whether in goodness or in power.”

The instant David discovered that he battled with a disputant who imbibed his faith from the lights of nature, eschewing all subtleties of doctrine, he willingly abandoned a controversy from which he believed neither profit nor credit was to be derived. While the scout was speaking, he had also seated himself, and producing the ready little volume and the iron-rimmed spectacles, he prepared to discharge a duty, which nothing but the unexpected assault he had received in his orthodoxy could have so long suspended. He was, in truth, a minstrel of the western continent—of a much later day, certainly, than those gifted bards, who formerly sang the profane renown of baron and prince, but after the spirit of his own age and country; and he was now prepared to exercise the cunning of his craft, in celebration of, or rather in thanksgiving for, the recent victory. He waited patiently for Hawkeye to cease, then lifting his eyes, together with his voice, he said, aloud:

The moment David realized he was up against someone who drew his beliefs from nature itself and avoided complex doctrines, he gladly stepped back from a debate he felt would yield neither benefit nor honor. While the scout was talking, he took a seat and pulled out a handy little book along with his iron-rimmed glasses, getting ready to fulfill a duty that nothing but this surprising challenge to his beliefs could have delayed for so long. He was, in fact, a minstrel of the western continent—certainly from a much later time than those gifted poets who once sang the praises of barons and princes, but still in tune with the spirit of his own era and country; now he was ready to use his skills to celebrate, or rather to give thanks for, the recent victory. He waited patiently for Hawkeye to finish, then lifted his eyes and his voice, saying aloud:

“I invite you, friends, to join in praise for this signal deliverance from the hands of barbarians and infidels, to the comfortable and solemn tones of the tune called ‘Northampton’.”

“I invite you, friends, to join in praising this remarkable rescue from the hands of savages and non-believers, to the comforting and serious sounds of the tune called ‘Northampton’.”

He next named the page and verse where the rhymes selected were to be found, and applied the pitch-pipe to his lips, with the decent gravity that he had been wont to use in the temple. This time he was, however, without any accompaniment, for the sisters were just then pouring out those tender effusions of affection which have been already alluded to. Nothing deterred by the smallness of his audience, which, in truth, consisted only of the discontented scout, he raised his voice, commencing and ending the sacred song without accident or interruption of any kind.

He then mentioned the page and verse where the chosen rhymes could be found, and brought the pitch-pipe to his lips with the serious demeanor he usually displayed in the temple. This time, however, he had no accompaniment, as the sisters were currently expressing their heartfelt emotions that had been previously mentioned. Undeterred by the small size of his audience, which was really just the disgruntled scout, he raised his voice and started and finished the sacred song without any mistakes or interruptions.

[Illustration]

Hawkeye listened while he coolly adjusted his flint and reloaded his rifle; but the sounds, wanting the extraneous assistance of scene and sympathy, failed to awaken his slumbering emotions. Never minstrel, or by whatever more suitable name David should be known, drew upon his talents in the presence of more insensible auditors; though considering the singleness and sincerity of his motive, it is probable that no bard of profane song ever uttered notes that ascended so near to that throne where all homage and praise is due. The scout shook his head, and muttering some unintelligible words, among which “throat” and “Iroquois” were alone audible, he walked away, to collect and to examine into the state of the captured arsenal of the Hurons. In this office he was now joined by Chingachgook, who found his own, as well as the rifle of his son, among the arms. Even Heyward and David were furnished with weapons; nor was ammunition wanting to render them all effectual.

Hawkeye listened while he calmly adjusted his flint and reloaded his rifle, but the sounds, lacking the extra touch of imagery and empathy, failed to stir his dormant feelings. No performer, or whatever more fitting name David should have, ever showcased his talents in front of such indifferent listeners. Yet, given the purity and sincerity of his intent, it's likely that no singer of secular songs ever produced notes that came so close to that throne where all respect and praise are deserved. The scout shook his head, muttering some incoherent words, among which “throat” and “Iroquois” were the only ones clear. He walked away to gather and assess the condition of the captured arsenal of the Hurons. In this task, he was soon joined by Chingachgook, who found both his own rifle and that of his son among the weapons. Even Heyward and David were equipped with arms; there was no lack of ammunition to make all of them effective.

When the foresters had made their selection, and distributed their prizes, the scout announced that the hour had arrived when it was necessary to move. By this time the song of Gamut had ceased, and the sisters had learned to still the exhibition of their emotions. Aided by Duncan and the younger Mohican, the two latter descended the precipitous sides of that hill which they had so lately ascended under so very different auspices, and whose summit had so nearly proved the scene of their massacre. At the foot they found the Narragansetts browsing the herbage of the bushes, and having mounted, they followed the movements of a guide, who, in the most deadly straits, had so often proved himself their friend. The journey was, however, short. Hawkeye, leaving the blind path that the Hurons had followed, turned short to his right, and entering the thicket, he crossed a babbling brook, and halted in a narrow dell, under the shade of a few water elms. Their distance from the base of the fatal hill was but a few rods, and the steeds had been serviceable only in crossing the shallow stream.

When the foresters made their choices and handed out their prizes, the scout announced it was time to move. By that point, Gamut's song had stopped, and the sisters had learned to hide their emotions. With help from Duncan and the younger Mohican, the two of them went down the steep sides of the hill they had just climbed under very different circumstances, where they had almost been killed. At the bottom, they found the Narragansetts grazing on the bushes, and after mounting their horses, they followed a guide who had often been their friend in the toughest situations. The trip was brief, though. Hawkeye, leaving the hidden path the Hurons had taken, quickly turned right, entered the thicket, crossed a babbling brook, and stopped in a narrow dell under the shade of a few water elms. They were only a short distance from the base of the deadly hill, and the horses had only been useful for crossing the shallow stream.

The scout and the Indians appeared to be familiar with the sequestered place where they now were; for, leaning their rifle against the trees, they commenced throwing aside the dried leaves, and opening the blue clay, out of which a clear and sparkling spring of bright, glancing water, quickly bubbled. The white man then looked about him, as though seeking for some object, which was not to be found as readily as he expected.

The scout and the Indians seemed to know the hidden spot they were in. They leaned their rifles against the trees and started to clear away the dried leaves, digging into the blue clay until a clear, sparkling spring of bright water bubbled up. The white man then looked around as if searching for something that wasn't as easy to find as he thought.

“Them careless imps, the Mohawks, with their Tuscarora and Onondaga brethren, have been here slaking their thirst,” he muttered, “and the vagabonds have thrown away the gourd! This is the way with benefits, when they are bestowed on such disremembering hounds! Here has the Lord laid his hand, in the midst of the howling wilderness, for their good, and raised a fountain of water from the bowels of the ’arth, that might laugh at the richest shop of apothecary’s ware in all the colonies; and see! the knaves have trodden in the clay, and deformed the cleanliness of the place, as though they were brute beasts, instead of human men.”

"Those careless troublemakers, the Mohawks, along with their Tuscarora and Onondaga buddies, have been here quenching their thirst," he grumbled, "and the reckless ones have discarded the gourd! This is what happens with kindness when it's shown to such forgetful hounds! The Lord has provided for them in the middle of this howling wilderness, creating a spring of water from the earth’s depths that could rival the finest apothecary's goods in all the colonies; and look! The scoundrels have trampled the clay, ruining the cleanliness of the spot, as if they were mindless animals instead of human beings."

Uncas silently extended toward him the desired gourd, which the spleen of Hawkeye had hitherto prevented him from observing on a branch of an elm. Filling it with water, he retired a short distance, to a place where the ground was more firm and dry; here he coolly seated himself, and after taking a long, and, apparently, a grateful draught, he commenced a very strict examination of the fragments of food left by the Hurons, which had hung in a wallet on his arm.

Uncas quietly handed him the gourd he wanted, which Hawkeye's annoyance had kept him from noticing on an elm branch. He filled it with water and moved a little way off to a spot where the ground was more solid and dry; there, he calmly sat down and took a long, seemingly satisfying drink. After that, he began a careful inspection of the leftover food scraps that had been stored in a pouch on his arm.

“Thank you, lad!” he continued, returning the empty gourd to Uncas; “now we will see how these rampaging Hurons lived, when outlying in ambushments. Look at this! The varlets know the better pieces of the deer; and one would think they might carve and roast a saddle, equal to the best cook in the land! But everything is raw, for the Iroquois are thorough savages. Uncas, take my steel and kindle a fire; a mouthful of a tender broil will give natur’ a helping hand, after so long a trail.”

“Thanks, buddy!” he said, handing the empty gourd back to Uncas. “Now let’s see how these wild Hurons lived while lying in wait. Check this out! Those guys know the good cuts of the deer; you’d think they could roast a saddle just as well as the best chef around! But everything is raw because the Iroquois are complete savages. Uncas, take my knife and start a fire; a bite of some tender meat will help us feel better after such a long journey.”

Heyward, perceiving that their guides now set about their repast in sober earnest, assisted the ladies to alight, and placed himself at their side, not unwilling to enjoy a few moments of grateful rest, after the bloody scene he had just gone through. While the culinary process was in hand, curiosity induced him to inquire into the circumstances which had led to their timely and unexpected rescue:

Heyward, noticing that their guides were now seriously preparing their meal, helped the ladies down and sat beside them, eager to take a moment to relax after the brutal situation he had just faced. As the food was being prepared, his curiosity prompted him to ask about the events that had led to their timely and unexpected rescue:

“How is it that we see you so soon, my generous friend,” he asked, “and without aid from the garrison of Edward?”

“How come we’re seeing you so soon, my generous friend?” he asked, “and without any help from Edward's garrison?”

“Had we gone to the bend in the river, we might have been in time to rake the leaves over your bodies, but too late to have saved your scalps,” coolly answered the scout. “No, no; instead of throwing away strength and opportunity by crossing to the fort, we lay by, under the bank of the Hudson, waiting to watch the movements of the Hurons.”

“Had we gone to the bend in the river, we might have made it in time to cover your bodies with leaves, but it would have been too late to save your scalps,” the scout replied casually. “No, no; instead of wasting our strength and opportunity by crossing to the fort, we stayed put along the bank of the Hudson, waiting to observe the movements of the Hurons.”

“You were, then, witnesses of all that passed?”

"You all saw everything that happened?"

“Not of all; for Indian sight is too keen to be easily cheated, and we kept close. A difficult matter it was, too, to keep this Mohican boy snug in the ambushment. Ah! Uncas, Uncas, your behavior was more like that of a curious woman than of a warrior on his scent.”

“Not everyone; because Indian sight is too sharp to be easily fooled, and we stayed close. It was also quite challenging to keep this Mohican boy quiet in the ambush. Ah! Uncas, Uncas, you acted more like a curious woman than a warrior on the hunt.”

Uncas permitted his eyes to turn for an instant on the sturdy countenance of the speaker, but he neither spoke nor gave any indication of repentance. On the contrary, Heyward thought the manner of the young Mohican was disdainful, if not a little fierce, and that he suppressed passions that were ready to explode, as much in compliment to the listeners, as from the deference he usually paid to his white associate.

Uncas allowed his gaze to rest momentarily on the strong face of the speaker, but he didn't say anything or show any sign of regret. Instead, Heyward felt that the young Mohican's attitude was contemptuous, if not slightly aggressive, and that he was holding back emotions that were on the verge of bursting forth, both to respect the listeners and out of the usual respect he showed to his white companion.

“You saw our capture?” Heyward next demanded.

"You saw us get captured?" Heyward then asked.

“We heard it,” was the significant answer. “An Indian yell is plain language to men who have passed their days in the woods. But when you landed, we were driven to crawl like sarpents, beneath the leaves; and then we lost sight of you entirely, until we placed eyes on you again trussed to the trees, and ready bound for an Indian massacre.”

“We heard it,” was the important response. “An Indian yell is clear communication to guys who have spent their lives in the woods. But when you landed, we had to crawl like snakes beneath the leaves; and then we completely lost sight of you until we saw you again tied to the trees, all set for an Indian massacre.”

“Our rescue was the deed of Providence. It was nearly a miracle that you did not mistake the path, for the Hurons divided, and each band had its horses.”

“Our rescue was the work of Providence. It was almost a miracle that you didn’t take the wrong path, because the Hurons split up, and each group had its own horses.”

“Ay! there we were thrown off the scent, and might, indeed, have lost the trail, had it not been for Uncas; we took the path, however, that led into the wilderness; for we judged, and judged rightly, that the savages would hold that course with their prisoners. But when we had followed it for many miles, without finding a single twig broken, as I had advised, my mind misgave me; especially as all the footsteps had the prints of moccasins.”

“Ay! there we were thrown off the scent, and might, indeed, have lost the trail, had it not been for Uncas; we took the path, however, that led into the wilderness; for we judged, and judged rightly, that the savages would hold that course with their prisoners. But when we had followed it for many miles, without finding a single twig broken, as I had advised, my mind misgave me; especially as all the footsteps had the prints of moccasins.”

“Our captors had the precaution to see us shod like themselves,” said Duncan, raising a foot, and exhibiting the buckskin he wore.

“Our captors were careful to make sure we were dressed like them,” said Duncan, lifting his foot to show the buckskin he was wearing.

“Aye, ’twas judgmatical and like themselves; though we were too expart to be thrown from a trail by so common an invention.”

“Aye, it was judicious and typical of them; though we were too experienced to be thrown off course by such a common trick.”

“To what, then, are we indebted for our safety?”

“To what, then, do we owe our safety?”

“To what, as a white man who has no taint of Indian blood, I should be ashamed to own; to the judgment of the young Mohican, in matters which I should know better than he, but which I can now hardly believe to be true, though my own eyes tell me it is so.”

“To what, as a white man with no Indian ancestry, I should be ashamed to acknowledge; to the young Mohican's judgment on things I should understand better than he does, yet I can hardly believe it's true, even though my own eyes confirm it.”

“’Tis extraordinary! will you not name the reason?”

"It’s amazing! Won’t you tell me why?"

“Uncas was bold enough to say, that the beasts ridden by the gentle ones,” continued Hawkeye, glancing his eyes, not without curious interest, on the fillies of the ladies, “planted the legs of one side on the ground at the same time, which is contrary to the movements of all trotting four-footed animals of my knowledge, except the bear. And yet here are horses that always journey in this manner, as my own eyes have seen, and as their trail has shown for twenty long miles.”

“Uncas was brave enough to say that the animals ridden by the noble ones,” continued Hawkeye, looking with curious interest at the ladies' horses, “put both legs on one side on the ground at the same time, which is unusual for all four-legged animals I know of, except for bears. And yet here are horses that always travel like this, as I’ve seen with my own eyes, and as their tracks have shown for twenty long miles.”

“’Tis the merit of the animal! They come from the shores of Narrangansett Bay, in the small province of Providence Plantations, and are celebrated for their hardihood, and the ease of this peculiar movement; though other horses are not unfrequently trained to the same.”

"It's the animal's merit! They come from the shores of Narragansett Bay, in the small province of Providence Plantations, and are known for their toughness and the ease of this unique movement; although other horses are often trained for the same."

“It may be—it may be,” said Hawkeye, who had listened with singular attention to this explanation; “though I am a man who has the full blood of the whites, my judgment in deer and beaver is greater than in beasts of burden. Major Effingham has many noble chargers, but I have never seen one travel after such a sidling gait.”

“It could be—it could be,” said Hawkeye, who had listened intently to this explanation; “even though I’m a man with pure white blood, I know more about deer and beaver than I do about pack animals. Major Effingham has many fine horses, but I've never seen one move in such a weird sideways way.”

“True; for he would value the animals for very different properties. Still is this a breed highly esteemed and, as you witness, much honored with the burdens it is often destined to bear.”

"That's true; he would appreciate the animals for very different qualities. This breed is still highly valued and, as you can see, greatly respected for the responsibilities it often has to carry."

The Mohicans had suspended their operations about the glimmering fire to listen; and, when Duncan had done, they looked at each other significantly, the father uttering the never-failing exclamation of surprise. The scout ruminated, like a man digesting his newly-acquired knowledge, and once more stole a glance at the horses.

The Mohicans had paused their activities around the flickering fire to listen, and when Duncan finished speaking, they exchanged meaningful glances, with the father expressing his usual surprise. The scout thought it over, like someone processing new information, and once again cast a glance at the horses.

“I dare to say there are even stranger sights to be seen in the settlements!” he said, at length. “Natur’ is sadly abused by man, when he once gets the mastery. But, go sidling or go straight, Uncas had seen the movement, and their trail led us on to the broken bush. The outer branch, near the prints of one of the horses, was bent upward, as a lady breaks a flower from its stem, but all the rest were ragged and broken down, as if the strong hand of a man had been tearing them! So I concluded that the cunning varments had seen the twig bent, and had torn the rest, to make us believe a buck had been feeling the boughs with his antlers.”

“I can honestly say there are even stranger things to see in the settlements!” he said after a moment. “Nature is sadly mistreated by humans when they gain control. But whether we creep around or walk straight, Uncas noticed the movement, and their trail led us to the thicket. The outer branch, near the footprint of one of the horses, was bent upward, like a lady plucking a flower from its stem, but all the others were ragged and broken down, as if a strong hand had been tearing at them! So I figured that the sly creatures had seen the twig bent and had broken the others to make us think a buck had been brushing against the branches with his antlers.”

“I do believe your sagacity did not deceive you; for some such thing occurred!”

“I really think your wisdom was right; something like that did happen!”

“That was easy to see,” added the scout, in no degree conscious of having exhibited any extraordinary sagacity; “and a very different matter it was from a waddling horse! It then struck me the Mingoes would push for this spring, for the knaves well know the vartue of its waters!”

"That was easy to see," the scout added, completely unaware that he had shown any unusual insight; "and it was a very different situation from a waddling horse! It then hit me that the Mingoes would go for this spring, because those tricksters know the value of its waters!"

“Is it, then, so famous?” demanded Heyward, examining, with a more curious eye, the secluded dell, with its bubbling fountain, surrounded, as it was, by earth of a deep, dingy brown.

“Is it really that famous?” Heyward asked, looking more closely at the hidden glen with its bubbling fountain, which was surrounded by dark, dirty brown earth.

“Few red-skins, who travel south and east of the great lakes but have heard of its qualities. Will you taste for yourself?”

“Few Native Americans who travel south and east of the Great Lakes haven’t heard about its qualities. Will you try it for yourself?”

Heyward took the gourd, and after swallowing a little of the water, threw it aside with grimaces of discontent. The scout laughed in his silent but heartfelt manner, and shook his head with vast satisfaction.

Heyward took the gourd, and after taking a sip of the water, tossed it aside with a grimace of displeasure. The scout quietly laughed, genuinely enjoying the moment, and shook his head with great satisfaction.

“Ah! you want the flavor that one gets by habit; the time was when I liked it as little as yourself; but I have come to my taste, and I now crave it, as a deer does the licks[1]. Your high-spiced wines are not better liked than a red-skin relishes this water; especially when his natur’ is ailing. But Uncas has made his fire, and it is time we think of eating, for our journey is long, and all before us.”

“Ah! You want the taste that people get used to; there was a time when I liked it as little as you do; but I've developed a taste for it, and now I crave it, just like a deer craves salt. Your heavily spiced wines are no more appealing than a Native American enjoys this water, especially when he’s feeling unwell. But Uncas has made his fire, and it’s time we think about eating, because our journey is long, and there's a lot ahead of us.”

[1] Many of the animals of the American forests resort to those spots where salt springs are found. These are called “licks” or “salt licks,” in the language of the country, from the circumstance that the quadruped is often obliged to lick the earth, in order to obtain the saline particles. These licks are great places of resort with the hunters, who waylay their game near the paths that lead to them.

[1] Many animals in American forests go to places where salt springs are located. These spots are called "licks" or "salt licks," named for the fact that animals often have to lick the ground to get the salt particles. These licks are popular gathering spots for hunters, who set up near the paths that lead to them.

Interrupting the dialogue by this abrupt transition, the scout had instant recourse to the fragments of food which had escaped the voracity of the Hurons. A very summary process completed the simple cookery, when he and the Mohicans commenced their humble meal, with the silence and characteristic diligence of men who ate in order to enable themselves to endure great and unremitting toil.

Interrupting the conversation with this sudden shift, the scout quickly grabbed the leftover food that the Hurons hadn’t devoured. A quick cooking process wrapped up their simple meal, as he and the Mohicans started eating quietly, with the focused determination of men who ate to prepare themselves for enduring hard and relentless work.

When this necessary, and, happily, grateful duty had been performed, each of the foresters stooped and took a long and parting draught at that solitary and silent spring[2], around which and its sister fountains, within fifty years, the wealth, beauty and talents of a hemisphere were to assemble in throngs, in pursuit of health and pleasure. Then Hawkeye announced his determination to proceed. The sisters resumed their saddles; Duncan and David grapsed their rifles, and followed on footsteps; the scout leading the advance, and the Mohicans bringing up the rear. The whole party moved swiftly through the narrow path, toward the north, leaving the healing waters to mingle unheeded with the adjacent brooks and the bodies of the dead to fester on the neighboring mount, without the rites of sepulture; a fate but too common to the warriors of the woods to excite either commiseration or comment.

When this necessary and thankfully appreciated duty was done, each of the foresters bent down and took a long, final drink from that lonely and quiet spring[2], around which, in fifty years, the wealth, beauty, and talents of a whole hemisphere would gather in crowds, seeking health and enjoyment. Then Hawkeye declared his intention to move forward. The sisters got back on their horses; Duncan and David grabbed their rifles and followed on foot, with the scout leading the way and the Mohicans bringing up the rear. The whole group moved quickly along the narrow path to the north, leaving the healing waters to flow unnoticed into the nearby brooks and the bodies of the dead to rot on the nearby hill, without any funeral rites; a fate all too common for the warriors of the woods to evoke either sympathy or comment.

[2] The scene of the foregoing incidents is on the spot where the village of Ballston now stands; one of the two principal watering places of America.

[2] The events mentioned earlier took place at the location where the village of Ballston is now situated; it’s one of the two main spa towns in America.

CHAPTER XIII.

“I’ll seek a readier path.”
—Parnell

“I’ll find an easier way.”
—Parnell

The route taken by Hawkeye lay across those sandy plains, relived by occasional valleys and swells of land, which had been traversed by their party on the morning of the same day, with the baffled Magua for their guide. The sun had now fallen low toward the distant mountains; and as their journey lay through the interminable forest, the heat was no longer oppressive. Their progress, in consequence, was proportionate; and long before the twilight gathered about them, they had made good many toilsome miles on their return.

The path Hawkeye took stretched across sandy plains, occasionally interrupted by valleys and hills, which their group had crossed earlier that morning with the frustrated Magua as their guide. The sun was now setting behind the far-off mountains, and as they moved through the endless forest, the heat was no longer stifling. As a result, they made steady progress, and long before twilight surrounded them, they had covered a considerable distance on their way back.

The hunter, like the savage whose place he filled, seemed to select among the blind signs of their wild route, with a species of instinct, seldom abating his speed, and never pausing to deliberate. A rapid and oblique glance at the moss on the trees, with an occasional upward gaze toward the setting sun, or a steady but passing look at the direction of the numerous water courses, through which he waded, were sufficient to determine his path, and remove his greatest difficulties. In the meantime, the forest began to change its hues, losing that lively green which had embellished its arches, in the graver light which is the usual precursor of the close of day.

The hunter, like the wild man he replaced, seemed to instinctively choose among the unclear signs of their rough path, rarely slowing down and never stopping to think. A quick glance at the moss on the trees, an occasional look up at the setting sun, or a focused but fleeting look at the many waterways he crossed were enough to figure out his route and tackle his biggest challenges. Meanwhile, the forest started to change colors, losing the bright green that decorated its canopy in the more serious light that usually signals the end of the day.

While the eyes of the sisters were endeavoring to catch glimpses through the trees, of the flood of golden glory which formed a glittering halo around the sun, tinging here and there with ruby streaks, or bordering with narrow edgings of shining yellow, a mass of clouds that lay piled at no great distance above the western hills, Hawkeye turned suddenly and pointing upward toward the gorgeous heavens, he spoke:

While the sisters tried to catch glimpses through the trees of the radiant glory forming a glittering halo around the sun, tinged here and there with ruby streaks and edged with narrow lines of shining yellow, a mass of clouds piled up not far above the western hills, Hawkeye suddenly turned and pointed toward the beautiful sky, saying:

“Yonder is the signal given to man to seek his food and natural rest,” he said; “better and wiser would it be, if he could understand the signs of nature, and take a lesson from the fowls of the air and the beasts of the field! Our night, however, will soon be over, for with the moon we must be up and moving again. I remember to have fou’t the Maquas, hereaways, in the first war in which I ever drew blood from man; and we threw up a work of blocks, to keep the ravenous varmints from handling our scalps. If my marks do not fail me, we shall find the place a few rods further to our left.”

“Over there is the signal for people to look for food and rest,” he said; “it would be better and smarter if they could recognize nature's signs and learn from the birds in the sky and the animals in the fields! However, our night will soon end, because with the moon we need to get up and start moving again. I remember fighting the Maquas around here in the first war where I ever drew blood from a man; we built a barricade to keep the hungry creatures from taking our scalps. If my markers are right, we should find the spot a little to our left.”

Without waiting for an assent, or, indeed, for any reply, the sturdy hunter moved boldly into a dense thicket of young chestnuts, shoving aside the branches of the exuberant shoots which nearly covered the ground, like a man who expected, at each step, to discover some object he had formerly known. The recollection of the scout did not deceive him. After penetrating through the brush, matted as it was with briars, for a few hundred feet, he entered an open space, that surrounded a low, green hillock, which was crowned by the decayed blockhouse in question. This rude and neglected building was one of those deserted works, which, having been thrown up on an emergency, had been abandoned with the disappearance of danger, and was now quietly crumbling in the solitude of the forest, neglected and nearly forgotten, like the circumstances which had caused it to be reared. Such memorials of the passage and struggles of man are yet frequent throughout the broad barrier of wilderness which once separated the hostile provinces, and form a species of ruins that are intimately associated with the recollections of colonial history, and which are in appropriate keeping with the gloomy character of the surrounding scenery. The roof of bark had long since fallen, and mingled with the soil, but the huge logs of pine, which had been hastily thrown together, still preserved their relative positions, though one angle of the work had given way under the pressure, and threatened a speedy downfall to the remainder of the rustic edifice. While Heyward and his companions hesitated to approach a building so decayed, Hawkeye and the Indians entered within the low walls, not only without fear, but with obvious interest. While the former surveyed the ruins, both internally and externally, with the curiosity of one whose recollections were reviving at each moment, Chingachgook related to his son, in the language of the Delawares, and with the pride of a conqueror, the brief history of the skirmish which had been fought, in his youth, in that secluded spot. A strain of melancholy, however, blended with his triumph, rendering his voice, as usual, soft and musical.

Without waiting for an agreement or any response, the determined hunter stepped confidently into a thick patch of young chestnuts, pushing aside the branches of the vibrant shoots that almost covered the ground, like someone who expected to find something familiar with every step. The scout's memory was accurate. After pushing through the tangled brush and briars for a few hundred feet, he came into a clearing surrounding a low green hill topped by the dilapidated blockhouse. This rough and neglected building was one of those abandoned fortifications that had been hastily constructed in times of emergency and left to decay once the danger passed, now quietly crumbling in the solitude of the forest, forgotten like the events that had led to its creation. Such reminders of human history and struggle still dot the vast wilderness that once separated rival territories, forming a collection of ruins tied closely to colonial history and fittingly matched to the somber mood of the surrounding landscape. The bark roof had long since collapsed and mixed with the soil, but the large logs of pine, thrown together in haste, still held their positions, although one corner had started to give way, threatening to bring down the rest of the rustic structure. While Heyward and his companions hesitated to approach such a crumbling building, Hawkeye and the Indians ventured inside the low walls, not just without fear, but with clear interest. As the former examined the ruins, both inside and out, rekindling his memories with each moment, Chingachgook told his son, in the Delaware language and with the pride of a victor, the brief history of the skirmish that had taken place there in his youth. A touch of sadness mixed in with his triumph, making his voice, as always, soft and melodic.

In the meantime, the sisters gladly dismounted, and prepared to enjoy their halt in the coolness of the evening, and in a security which they believed nothing but the beasts of the forest could invade.

In the meantime, the sisters happily got off their horses and got ready to enjoy their break in the cool evening air, feeling safe in a way they thought only the forest animals could disrupt.

“Would not our resting-place have been more retired, my worthy friend,” demanded the more vigilant Duncan, perceiving that the scout had already finished his short survey, “had we chosen a spot less known, and one more rarely visited than this?”

“Wouldn't our resting place have been more secluded, my good friend,” asked the more observant Duncan, noticing that the scout had already completed his brief survey, “if we had picked a location that was less familiar and visited less often than this?”

“Few live who know the blockhouse was ever raised,” was the slow and musing answer; “’tis not often that books are made, and narratives written of such a scrimmage as was here fou’t atween the Mohicans and the Mohawks, in a war of their own waging. I was then a younker, and went out with the Delawares, because I know’d they were a scandalized and wronged race. Forty days and forty nights did the imps crave our blood around this pile of logs, which I designed and partly reared, being, as you’ll remember, no Indian myself, but a man without a cross. The Delawares lent themselves to the work, and we made it good, ten to twenty, until our numbers were nearly equal, and then we sallied out upon the hounds, and not a man of them ever got back to tell the fate of his party. Yes, yes; I was then young, and new to the sight of blood; and not relishing the thought that creatures who had spirits like myself should lay on the naked ground, to be torn asunder by beasts, or to bleach in the rains, I buried the dead with my own hands, under that very little hillock where you have placed yourselves; and no bad seat does it make neither, though it be raised by the bones of mortal men.”

"Few are left who know that the blockhouse was ever built," was the slow and thoughtful reply; "it’s not often that books are written and stories told about a fight like the one that took place here between the Mohicans and the Mohawks in their own war. I was just a kid back then and joined the Delawares because I knew they had been wronged. For forty days and forty nights, the enemies craved our blood around this pile of logs, which I designed and partly built, being, as you’ll remember, not an Indian myself, but a man without a background. The Delawares helped with the construction, and we made it solid, ten to twenty of us, until our numbers were almost equal, and then we charged at the dogs, and not a single one of them returned to share what happened to his group. Yes, yes; I was young then and not used to seeing blood; and not liking the idea that beings with spirits like mine should lie on the bare ground, torn apart by beasts or left to rot in the rain, I buried the dead with my own hands, under that very little hill you’ve set yourself on; and it doesn’t make a bad seat either, even if it’s raised by the bones of mortal men."

Heyward and the sisters arose, on the instant, from the grassy sepulcher; nor could the two latter, notwithstanding the terrific scenes they had so recently passed through, entirely suppress an emotion of natural horror, when they found themselves in such familiar contact with the grave of the dead Mohawks. The gray light, the gloomy little area of dark grass, surrounded by its border of brush, beyond which the pines rose, in breathing silence, apparently into the very clouds, and the deathlike stillness of the vast forest, were all in unison to deepen such a sensation. “They are gone, and they are harmless,” continued Hawkeye, waving his hand, with a melancholy smile at their manifest alarm; “they’ll never shout the war-whoop nor strike a blow with the tomahawk again! And of all those who aided in placing them where they lie, Chingachgook and I only are living! The brothers and family of the Mohican formed our war party; and you see before you all that are now left of his race.”

Heyward and the sisters immediately got up from the grassy grave; despite what they had just experienced, the two women couldn’t completely hide their natural horror at being so close to the grave of the dead Mohawks. The dim light, the gloomy patch of dark grass surrounded by brush, with the pines rising silently toward the clouds, and the deadly stillness of the vast forest all contributed to their unease. “They’re gone, and they can’t hurt us anymore,” Hawkeye said, waving his hand with a sad smile at their visible fear; “they’ll never shout the war cry or swing a tomahawk again! And of everyone who helped put them here, only Chingachgook and I are still alive! The brothers and family of the Mohican made up our war party; and you’re looking at all that’s left of his people.”

The eyes of the listeners involuntarily sought the forms of the Indians, with a compassionate interest in their desolate fortune. Their dark persons were still to be seen within the shadows of the blockhouse, the son listening to the relation of his father with that sort of intenseness which would be created by a narrative that redounded so much to the honor of those whose names he had long revered for their courage and savage virtues.

The listeners' eyes instinctively looked for the figures of the Indians, feeling a deep sympathy for their unfortunate situation. Their dark figures could still be seen in the shadows of the blockhouse, with the son attentively listening to his father's story, captivated by a tale that brought so much honor to those whose names he had long admired for their bravery and wild strengths.

“I had thought the Delawares a pacific people,” said Duncan, “and that they never waged war in person; trusting the defense of their hands to those very Mohawks that you slew!”

“I used to think the Delawares were a peaceful people,” said Duncan, “and that they never fought in person; relying on those very Mohawks that you killed for their protection!”

“’Tis true in part,” returned the scout, “and yet, at the bottom, ’tis a wicked lie. Such a treaty was made in ages gone by, through the deviltries of the Dutchers, who wished to disarm the natives that had the best right to the country, where they had settled themselves. The Mohicans, though a part of the same nation, having to deal with the English, never entered into the silly bargain, but kept to their manhood; as in truth did the Delawares, when their eyes were open to their folly. You see before you a chief of the great Mohican Sagamores! Once his family could chase their deer over tracts of country wider than that which belongs to the Albany Patteroon, without crossing brook or hill that was not their own; but what is left of their descendant? He may find his six feet of earth when God chooses, and keep it in peace, perhaps, if he has a friend who will take the pains to sink his head so low that the plowshares cannot reach it!”

"It’s partly true," the scout replied, "but at its core, it’s a wicked lie. That treaty was made long ago, through the schemes of the Dutch, who wanted to disarm the natives that rightfully belonged to the land where they had settled. The Mohicans, although part of the same tribe, never made that foolish deal while dealing with the English; they held onto their dignity, just like the Delawares did once they realized their mistake. Before you stands a chief of the great Mohican Sagamores! Once, his family could roam vast lands chasing deer without crossing any stream or hill that wasn’t theirs. But what’s left of his descendants? He may get his six feet of earth when God decides, and possibly keep it in peace, if he has a friend willing to dig so deep that the plowshares can’t reach him!"

“Enough!” said Heyward, apprehensive that the subject might lead to a discussion that would interrupt the harmony so necessary to the preservation of his fair companions; “we have journeyed far, and few among us are blessed with forms like that of yours, which seems to know neither fatigue nor weakness.”

“Enough!” Heyward said, worried that the topic might spark a conversation that would disrupt the harmony essential for keeping his lovely companions at ease; “we’ve come a long way, and few of us are lucky enough to have a figure like yours, which seems to feel neither tiredness nor weakness.”

“The sinews and bones of a man carry me through it all,” said the hunter, surveying his muscular limbs with a simplicity that betrayed the honest pleasure the compliment afforded him; “there are larger and heavier men to be found in the settlements, but you might travel many days in a city before you could meet one able to walk fifty miles without stopping to take breath, or who has kept the hounds within hearing during a chase of hours. However, as flesh and blood are not always the same, it is quite reasonable to suppose that the gentle ones are willing to rest, after all they have seen and done this day. Uncas, clear out the spring, while your father and I make a cover for their tender heads of these chestnut shoots, and a bed of grass and leaves.”

“The strength and bones of a man get me through everything,” said the hunter, looking at his muscular limbs with a straightforwardness that revealed the genuine happiness the compliment brought him; “there are bigger and heavier guys in the towns, but you could search for days in a city before you find someone who can walk fifty miles without stopping to catch their breath or who has kept the hounds in earshot during a chase for hours. Still, since flesh and blood aren’t always the same, it makes sense to think that the softer ones are ready to rest after all they’ve seen and done today. Uncas, clear out the spring while your dad and I make a shelter for their delicate heads with these chestnut shoots, and a bed of grass and leaves.”

The dialogue ceased, while the hunter and his companions busied themselves in preparations for the comfort and protection of those they guided. A spring, which many long years before had induced the natives to select the place for their temporary fortification, was soon cleared of leaves, and a fountain of crystal gushed from the bed, diffusing its waters over the verdant hillock. A corner of the building was then roofed in such a manner as to exclude the heavy dew of the climate, and piles of sweet shrubs and dried leaves were laid beneath it for the sisters to repose on.

The conversation stopped as the hunter and his friends focused on getting everything ready for the comfort and safety of those they were guiding. A spring that had convinced the natives to choose this spot for their temporary fort was soon cleared of leaves, and a clear stream of water flowed from the ground, spreading its waters over the green hill. A corner of the building was then covered in a way that kept out the heavy dew from the climate, and mounds of fragrant shrubs and dried leaves were placed underneath it for the sisters to rest on.

While the diligent woodsmen were employed in this manner, Cora and Alice partook of that refreshment which duty required much more than inclination prompted them to accept. They then retired within the walls, and first offering up their thanksgivings for past mercies, and petitioning for a continuance of the Divine favor throughout the coming night, they laid their tender forms on the fragrant couch, and in spite of recollections and forebodings, soon sank into those slumbers which nature so imperiously demanded, and which were sweetened by hopes for the morrow. Duncan had prepared himself to pass the night in watchfulness near them, just without the ruin, but the scout, perceiving his intention, pointed toward Chingachgook, as he coolly disposed his own person on the grass, and said:

While the hardworking woodsmen were busy with their tasks, Cora and Alice accepted the refreshments they needed much more out of obligation than desire. They then went inside the walls, first giving thanks for the blessings they had received and asking for continued divine support throughout the coming night. They lay down on the fragrant bed, and despite their worries and memories, they soon fell into the deep sleep that their bodies desperately needed, comforted by hopes for the next day. Duncan had planned to stay awake nearby to watch over them just outside the ruins, but the scout noticed his intention, pointed to Chingachgook, and casually settled down on the grass, saying:

“The eyes of a white man are too heavy and too blind for such a watch as this! The Mohican will be our sentinel, therefore let us sleep.”

“The eyes of a white man are too heavy and too blind for a watch like this! The Mohican will be our lookout, so let’s get some sleep.”

“I proved myself a sluggard on my post during the past night,” said Heyward, “and have less need of repose than you, who did more credit to the character of a soldier. Let all the party seek their rest, then, while I hold the guard.”

“I showed myself to be lazy at my post last night,” said Heyward, “and I need less rest than you, who represented the role of a soldier better. So, let everyone else get some sleep while I take the guard.”

“If we lay among the white tents of the Sixtieth, and in front of an enemy like the French, I could not ask for a better watchman,” returned the scout; “but in the darkness and among the signs of the wilderness your judgment would be like the folly of a child, and your vigilance thrown away. Do then, like Uncas and myself, sleep, and sleep in safety.”

“If we were lying among the white tents of the Sixtieth, facing an enemy like the French, I couldn’t ask for a better lookout,” replied the scout. “But in the dark and amid the signs of the wilderness, your judgment would be as foolish as a child's, and your watchfulness would be pointless. So, like Uncas and me, just sleep, and sleep safely.”

Heyward perceived, in truth, that the younger Indian had thrown his form on the side of the hillock while they were talking, like one who sought to make the most of the time allotted to rest, and that his example had been followed by David, whose voice literally “clove to his jaws,” with the fever of his wound, heightened, as it was, by their toilsome march. Unwilling to prolong a useless discussion, the young man affected to comply, by posting his back against the logs of the blockhouse, in a half recumbent posture, though resolutely determined, in his own mind, not to close an eye until he had delivered his precious charge into the arms of Munro himself. Hawkeye, believing he had prevailed, soon fell asleep, and a silence as deep as the solitude in which they had found it, pervaded the retired spot.

Heyward realized that the younger Indian had laid himself down on the hillside while they were talking, as if he wanted to make the most of the little time he had to rest. David had followed his example, his voice tight with pain from his wound, which was made worse by their exhausting march. Not wanting to drag out a pointless discussion, the young man pretended to go along with it by leaning his back against the logs of the blockhouse in a half-reclined position, even though he was firmly resolved not to close his eyes until he had safely entrusted his precious burden to Munro himself. Hawkeye, thinking he had won, quickly fell asleep, and a silence as profound as the solitude surrounding them enveloped the secluded spot.

For many minutes Duncan succeeded in keeping his senses on the alert, and alive to every moaning sound that arose from the forest. His vision became more acute as the shades of evening settled on the place; and even after the stars were glimmering above his head, he was able to distinguish the recumbent forms of his companions, as they lay stretched on the grass, and to note the person of Chingachgook, who sat upright and motionless as one of the trees which formed the dark barrier on every side. He still heard the gentle breathings of the sisters, who lay within a few feet of him, and not a leaf was ruffled by the passing air of which his ear did not detect the whispering sound. At length, however, the mournful notes of a whip-poor-will became blended with the moanings of an owl; his heavy eyes occasionally sought the bright rays of the stars, and he then fancied he saw them through the fallen lids. At instants of momentary wakefulness he mistook a bush for his associate sentinel; his head next sank upon his shoulder, which, in its turn, sought the support of the ground; and, finally, his whole person became relaxed and pliant, and the young man sank into a deep sleep, dreaming that he was a knight of ancient chivalry, holding his midnight vigils before the tent of a recaptured princess, whose favor he did not despair of gaining, by such a proof of devotion and watchfulness.

For many minutes, Duncan managed to stay alert, attuned to every moan that came from the forest. His vision sharpened as dusk settled in; even after the stars began to twinkle above, he could make out the forms of his companions stretched out on the grass, and he noted Chingachgook, who sat upright and still like one of the trees forming the dark barrier around them. He could still hear the soft breathing of the sisters just a few feet away, and he was aware of even the slightest rustle of leaves in the gentle breeze. Eventually, though, the sad call of a whip-poor-will blended with the hooting of an owl; his heavy eyelids occasionally fluttered open to catch glimpses of the bright stars above. In moments of brief wakefulness, he mistook a bush for his fellow sentinel; his head then drooped onto his shoulder, which leaned against the ground; and finally, he relaxed completely, sinking into a deep sleep, dreaming that he was a knight of old times, keeping his midnight watch before the tent of a captured princess, confident that this display of devotion and vigilance would win her favor.

How long the tired Duncan lay in this insensible state he never knew himself, but his slumbering visions had been long lost in total forgetfulness, when he was awakened by a light tap on the shoulder. Aroused by this signal, slight as it was, he sprang upon his feet with a confused recollection of the self-imposed duty he had assumed with the commencement of the night.

How long Duncan lay there in this dazed state, he had no idea, but he had been deeply asleep and completely unaware for a while when a light tap on his shoulder woke him up. Startled by this small gesture, he jumped to his feet with a vague memory of the responsibility he had taken on at the start of the night.

“Who comes?” he demanded, feeling for his sword, at the place where it was usually suspended. “Speak! friend or enemy?”

“Who’s there?” he asked, reaching for his sword where it was usually hung. “Speak! Are you a friend or an enemy?”

“Friend,” replied the low voice of Chingachgook; who, pointing upward at the luminary which was shedding its mild light through the opening in the trees, directly in their bivouac, immediately added, in his rude English: “Moon comes and white man’s fort far—far off; time to move, when sleep shuts both eyes of the Frenchman!”

"Friend," replied Chingachgook in a low voice, pointing up at the moonlight filtering through the trees right above their campsite. He then added in his broken English, "The moon is out and the white man's fort is far—far away; it's time to move when the Frenchman falls asleep!"

“You say true! Call up your friends, and bridle the horses while I prepare my own companions for the march!”

“You're right! Call your friends and get the horses ready while I get my team ready for the journey!”

“We are awake, Duncan,” said the soft, silvery tones of Alice within the building, “and ready to travel very fast after so refreshing a sleep; but you have watched through the tedious night in our behalf, after having endured so much fatigue the livelong day!”

“We're awake, Duncan,” said Alice's soft, silvery voice from inside the building, “and ready to travel really fast after such a refreshing sleep; but you’ve stayed up through the long night for us, after enduring so much fatigue all day!”

“Say, rather, I would have watched, but my treacherous eyes betrayed me; twice have I proved myself unfit for the trust I bear.”

“Honestly, I would have watched, but my deceitful eyes let me down; I’ve proved myself unworthy of the trust I hold twice.”

“Nay, Duncan, deny it not,” interrupted the smiling Alice, issuing from the shadows of the building into the light of the moon, in all the loveliness of her freshened beauty; “I know you to be a heedless one, when self is the object of your care, and but too vigilant in favor of others. Can we not tarry here a little longer while you find the rest you need? Cheerfully, most cheerfully, will Cora and I keep the vigils, while you and all these brave men endeavor to snatch a little sleep!”

“Nah, Duncan, don’t deny it,” interrupted the smiling Alice, stepping out from the shadows of the building into the moonlight, looking more beautiful than ever; “I know you can be careless when it comes to yourself, but you’re always on guard for others. Can’t we stay here a bit longer while you get the rest you need? Cora and I would be more than happy to keep watch while you and these brave men try to grab some sleep!”

“If shame could cure me of my drowsiness, I should never close an eye again,” said the uneasy youth, gazing at the ingenuous countenance of Alice, where, however, in its sweet solicitude, he read nothing to confirm his half-awakened suspicion. “It is but too true, that after leading you into danger by my heedlessness, I have not even the merit of guarding your pillows as should become a soldier.”

“If shame could wake me up, I’d never sleep again,” said the restless young man, looking at Alice's innocent face, where, despite her sweet concern, he found nothing to back up his nagging doubts. “It’s sadly true that after putting you in danger with my carelessness, I don’t even have the honor of watching over you like a soldier should.”

“No one but Duncan himself should accuse Duncan of such a weakness. Go, then, and sleep; believe me, neither of us, weak girls as we are, will betray our watch.”

“No one but Duncan himself should blame Duncan for such a weakness. Go ahead and sleep; trust me, neither of us, as fragile as we may be, will let our guard down.”

The young man was relieved from the awkwardness of making any further protestations of his own demerits, by an exclamation from Chingachgook, and the attitude of riveted attention assumed by his son.

The young man was spared the discomfort of making any more protests about his faults by an exclamation from Chingachgook and the focused attention of his son.

“The Mohicans hear an enemy!” whispered Hawkeye, who, by this time, in common with the whole party, was awake and stirring. “They scent danger in the wind!”

“The Mohicans hear an enemy!” whispered Hawkeye, who, by this point, was awake and moving around like the rest of the group. “They smell danger in the air!”

“God forbid!” exclaimed Heyward. “Surely we have had enough of bloodshed!”

“God forbid!” Heyward exclaimed. “Surely we’ve had enough of all this bloodshed!”

While he spoke, however, the young soldier seized his rifle, and advancing toward the front, prepared to atone for his venial remissness, by freely exposing his life in defense of those he attended.

While he was speaking, the young soldier grabbed his rifle and moved toward the front, ready to make up for his minor lapse by putting his life on the line to protect those he was with.

“’Tis some creature of the forest prowling around us in quest of food,” he said, in a whisper, as soon as the low, and apparently distant sounds, which had startled the Mohicans, reached his own ears.

“It’s some creature from the forest moving around us looking for food,” he said in a whisper, as soon as the low, seemingly distant sounds that had startled the Mohicans reached his ears.

“Hist!” returned the attentive scout; “’tis man; even I can now tell his tread, poor as my senses are when compared to an Indian’s! That Scampering Huron has fallen in with one of Montcalm’s outlying parties, and they have struck upon our trail. I shouldn’t like, myself, to spill more human blood in this spot,” he added, looking around with anxiety in his features, at the dim objects by which he was surrounded; “but what must be, must! Lead the horses into the blockhouse, Uncas; and, friends, do you follow to the same shelter. Poor and old as it is, it offers a cover, and has rung with the crack of a rifle afore to-night!”

“Shh!” replied the alert scout. “It’s a man; even I can recognize his footsteps, though my senses are weak compared to an Indian’s! That skittering Huron has run into one of Montcalm’s outlying groups, and they’ve picked up our trail. I wouldn’t want to spill more human blood in this place,” he said, glancing around anxiously at the faint shapes surrounding him. “But what has to be done, must be done! Take the horses into the blockhouse, Uncas; and you, friends, follow into the same shelter. As poor and old as it is, it provides cover, and it’s echoed with the sound of gunfire before tonight!”

He was instantly obeyed, the Mohicans leading the Narrangansetts within the ruin, whither the whole party repaired with the most guarded silence.

He was immediately followed, with the Mohicans guiding the Narrangansetts into the ruins, where the entire group moved with the utmost caution.

The sound of approaching footsteps were now too distinctly audible to leave any doubts as to the nature of the interruption. They were soon mingled with voices calling to each other in an Indian dialect, which the hunter, in a whisper, affirmed to Heyward was the language of the Hurons. When the party reached the point where the horses had entered the thicket which surrounded the blockhouse, they were evidently at fault, having lost those marks which, until that moment, had directed their pursuit.

The sound of approaching footsteps was now too clearly audible to leave any doubt about the nature of the interruption. They were soon mixed with voices calling to each other in an Indian dialect, which the hunter, in a whisper, confirmed to Heyward was the language of the Hurons. When the group reached the spot where the horses had entered the thicket surrounding the blockhouse, they seemed confused, having lost the signs that had guided their pursuit until that moment.

It would seem by the voices that twenty men were soon collected at that one spot, mingling their different opinions and advice in noisy clamor.

It seemed that twenty men quickly gathered at that one spot, shouting out their various opinions and advice in a loud uproar.

“The knaves know our weakness,” whispered Hawkeye, who stood by the side of Heyward, in deep shade, looking through an opening in the logs, “or they wouldn’t indulge their idleness in such a squaw’s march. Listen to the reptiles! each man among them seems to have two tongues, and but a single leg.”

“The scoundrels know our weakness,” whispered Hawkeye, who stood next to Heyward in deep shade, peering through an opening in the logs, “or they wouldn’t waste their time in such a slow march. Listen to the snakes! It’s like each one of them has two tongues and only one leg.”

Duncan, brave as he was in the combat, could not, in such a moment of painful suspense, make any reply to the cool and characteristic remark of the scout. He only grasped his rifle more firmly, and fastened his eyes upon the narrow opening, through which he gazed upon the moonlight view with increasing anxiety. The deeper tones of one who spoke as having authority were next heard, amid a silence that denoted the respect with which his orders, or rather advice, was received. After which, by the rustling of leaves, and crackling of dried twigs, it was apparent the savages were separating in pursuit of the lost trail. Fortunately for the pursued, the light of the moon, while it shed a flood of mild luster upon the little area around the ruin, was not sufficiently strong to penetrate the deep arches of the forest, where the objects still lay in deceptive shadow. The search proved fruitless; for so short and sudden had been the passage from the faint path the travelers had journeyed into the thicket, that every trace of their footsteps was lost in the obscurity of the woods.

Duncan, as brave as he was in battle, couldn’t respond to the scout's calm and typical comment during such a tense moment. He just tightened his grip on his rifle and focused his gaze on the narrow opening, watching the moonlit scene with growing anxiety. Then, a deeper voice, someone speaking with authority, broke the silence, showing the respect with which his orders—or rather, advice—were received. After that, the sound of rustling leaves and snapping twigs made it clear that the attackers were spreading out in search of the lost trail. Luckily for the ones being chased, the moonlight, while it cast a gentle glow over the small area near the ruins, wasn’t strong enough to penetrate the thick cover of the forest, where things remained hidden in shadow. The search turned up nothing; the travelers had veered so quickly and unexpectedly from the faint path into the thicket that every trace of their footsteps vanished in the darkness of the woods.

It was not long, however, before the restless savages were heard beating the brush, and gradually approaching the inner edge of that dense border of young chestnuts which encircled the little area.

It didn't take long, though, before the restless natives were heard pushing through the underbrush, slowly making their way to the inner edge of that thick line of young chestnut trees that surrounded the small clearing.

“They are coming,” muttered Heyward, endeavoring to thrust his rifle through the chink in the logs; “let us fire on their approach.”

“They're coming,” muttered Heyward, trying to push his rifle through the gap in the logs. “Let’s shoot as they get closer.”

“Keep everything in the shade,” returned the scout; “the snapping of a flint, or even the smell of a single karnel of the brimstone, would bring the hungry varlets upon us in a body. Should it please God that we must give battle for the scalps, trust to the experience of men who know the ways of the savages, and who are not often backward when the war-whoop is howled.”

“Keep everything out of sight,” the scout replied; “the sound of a flint snapping, or even the smell of a single kernel of brimstone, would draw the hungry guys to us in a group. If it is God’s will that we have to fight for the scalps, rely on the experience of men who understand the ways of the natives and who don’t hesitate when the war cry is sounded.”

Duncan cast his eyes behind him, and saw that the trembling sisters were cowering in the far corner of the building, while the Mohicans stood in the shadow, like two upright posts, ready, and apparently willing, to strike when the blow should be needed. Curbing his impatience, he again looked out upon the area, and awaited the result in silence. At that instant the thicket opened, and a tall and armed Huron advanced a few paces into the open space. As he gazed upon the silent blockhouse, the moon fell upon his swarthy countenance, and betrayed its surprise and curiosity. He made the exclamation which usually accompanies the former emotion in an Indian, and, calling in a low voice, soon drew a companion to his side.

Duncan glanced behind him and saw that the scared sisters were huddled in the far corner of the building, while the Mohicans stood in the shadows like two straight posts, ready and seemingly willing to strike when necessary. Holding back his impatience, he looked out at the area again and waited silently for what would happen. At that moment, the thicket parted, and a tall, armed Huron stepped a few paces into the open space. As he looked at the quiet blockhouse, the moonlight illuminated his dark face, revealing his surprise and curiosity. He made the typical sound that expresses surprise for an Indian and, speaking softly, soon attracted a companion to his side.

These children of the woods stood together for several moments pointing at the crumbling edifice, and conversing in the unintelligible language of their tribe. They then approached, though with slow and cautious steps, pausing every instant to look at the building, like startled deer whose curiosity struggled powerfully with their awakened apprehensions for the mastery. The foot of one of them suddenly rested on the mound, and he stopped to examine its nature. At this moment, Heyward observed that the scout loosened his knife in its sheath, and lowered the muzzle of his rifle. Imitating these movements, the young man prepared himself for the struggle which now seemed inevitable.

The children of the woods stood together for a few moments, pointing at the crumbling building and chatting in their tribe's unintelligible language. They then approached, but slowly and carefully, stopping every few seconds to gaze at the structure, like startled deer torn between curiosity and their instincts for danger. One of them placed his foot on the mound and paused to inspect it. At that moment, Heyward noticed that the scout was loosening his knife in its sheath and lowering the muzzle of his rifle. Copying these actions, the young man got ready for the conflict that now seemed unavoidable.

The savages were so near, that the least motion in one of the horses, or even a breath louder than common, would have betrayed the fugitives. But in discovering the character of the mound, the attention of the Hurons appeared directed to a different object. They spoke together, and the sounds of their voices were low and solemn, as if influenced by a reverence that was deeply blended with awe. Then they drew warily back, keeping their eyes riveted on the ruin, as if they expected to see the apparitions of the dead issue from its silent walls, until, having reached the boundary of the area, they moved slowly into the thicket and disappeared.

The savages were so close that even the slightest movement of one of the horses, or a breath louder than usual, would have given away the fugitives. However, as they noticed the characteristics of the mound, the Hurons seemed to shift their focus. They spoke quietly to each other, their voices low and solemn, as if filled with a reverence that mixed deeply with awe. Then they carefully backed away, keeping their eyes fixed on the ruin, as if they were expecting to see the spirits of the dead emerge from its silent walls. Once they reached the edge of the area, they slowly moved into the thicket and vanished.

Hawkeye dropped the breech of his rifle to the earth, and drawing a long, free breath, exclaimed, in an audible whisper:

Hawkeye let the breech of his rifle fall to the ground, and taking a deep breath, he said quietly:

“Ay! they respect the dead, and it has this time saved their own lives, and, it may be, the lives of better men too.”

“Wow! They respect the dead, and this has saved their own lives this time, and maybe the lives of better men too.”

Heyward lent his attention for a single moment to his companion, but without replying, he again turned toward those who just then interested him more. He heard the two Hurons leave the bushes, and it was soon plain that all the pursuers were gathered about them, in deep attention to their report. After a few minutes of earnest and solemn dialogue, altogether different from the noisy clamor with which they had first collected about the spot, the sounds grew fainter and more distant, and finally were lost in the depths of the forest.

Heyward briefly focused on his companion but didn’t respond and turned back to those who captured his interest more. He heard the two Hurons come out of the bushes, and it quickly became clear that all the pursuers were gathered around them, listening intently to their report. After a few minutes of serious and thoughtful conversation, which was a stark contrast to the noisy chatter they had made when they first arrived, the sounds grew quieter and more distant, eventually fading away into the depths of the forest.

Hawkeye waited until a signal from the listening Chingachgook assured him that every sound from the retiring party was completely swallowed by the distance, when he motioned to Heyward to lead forth the horses, and to assist the sisters into their saddles. The instant this was done they issued through the broken gateway, and stealing out by a direction opposite to the one by which they entered, they quitted the spot, the sisters casting furtive glances at the silent, grave and crumbling ruin, as they left the soft light of the moon, to bury themselves in the gloom of the woods.

Hawkeye waited for a signal from the listening Chingachgook to make sure that every sound from the retreating group was completely lost to the distance. Then he signaled to Heyward to bring out the horses and help the sisters into their saddles. Once that was done, they moved through the broken gateway, heading in the opposite direction from where they had come. As they left the soft moonlight, the sisters cast uneasy glances at the silent, serious, and crumbling ruins before disappearing into the dark woods.

CHAPTER XIV.

“Guard.—Qui est la?
Puc. —Paisans, pauvres gens de France.”
—King Henry VI

“Guard.—Who goes there?
Joan. —Peasants, poor people of France.”
—King Henry VI

[Illustration]

The scout resumed his post in the advance

The scout returned to his position at the front.

During the rapid movement from the blockhouse, and until the party was deeply buried in the forest, each individual was too much interested in the escape to hazard a word even in whispers. The scout resumed his post in advance, though his steps, after he had thrown a safe distance between himself and his enemies, were more deliberate than in their previous march, in consequence of his utter ignorance of the localities of the surrounding woods. More than once he halted to consult with his confederates, the Mohicans, pointing upward at the moon, and examining the barks of the trees with care. In these brief pauses, Heyward and the sisters listened, with senses rendered doubly acute by the danger, to detect any symptoms which might announce the proximity of their foes. At such moments, it seemed as if a vast range of country lay buried in eternal sleep; not the least sound arising from the forest, unless it was the distant and scarcely audible rippling of a water-course. Birds, beasts, and man, appeared to slumber alike, if, indeed, any of the latter were to be found in that wide tract of wilderness. But the sounds of the rivulet, feeble and murmuring as they were, relieved the guides at once from no trifling embarrassment, and toward it they immediately held their way.

During the quick move from the blockhouse, and until the group was fully hidden in the forest, everyone was too focused on escaping to say even a word, not even in whispers. The scout took his position up ahead, but after creating a safe distance between himself and the enemies, he moved more cautiously than before because he didn’t know the area well. More than once, he stopped to talk with his companions, the Mohicans, pointing up at the moon and closely examining the tree bark. In these brief pauses, Heyward and the sisters listened intently, their senses heightened by the danger, trying to catch any signs that might indicate the enemy was nearby. At those moments, it felt like a vast region was in eternal silence; there was not a sound coming from the forest, except for the distant, barely audible trickle of a stream. Birds, animals, and people all seemed to be asleep, if any people were even in that large wilderness. But the sound of the stream, weak and murmuring as it was, eased the guides' tension, and they immediately headed toward it.

When the banks of the little stream were gained, Hawkeye made another halt; and taking the moccasins from his feet, he invited Heyward and Gamut to follow his example. He then entered the water, and for near an hour they traveled in the bed of the brook, leaving no trail. The moon had already sunk into an immense pile of black clouds, which lay impending above the western horizon, when they issued from the low and devious water-course to rise again to the light and level of the sandy but wooded plain. Here the scout seemed to be once more at home, for he held on this way with the certainty and diligence of a man who moved in the security of his own knowledge. The path soon became more uneven, and the travelers could plainly perceive that the mountains drew nigher to them on each hand, and that they were, in truth, about entering one of their gorges. Suddenly, Hawkeye made a pause, and, waiting until he was joined by the whole party, he spoke, though in tones so low and cautious, that they added to the solemnity of his words, in the quiet and darkness of the place.

When they reached the banks of the small stream, Hawkeye stopped again. He took off his moccasins and encouraged Heyward and Gamut to do the same. Then he stepped into the water, and for nearly an hour they traveled along the riverbed, leaving no trace behind. The moon had already disappeared behind a massive pile of dark clouds hovering above the western horizon when they emerged from the winding waterway to rise again to the light and flat sandy plain covered in trees. Here, the scout seemed to be back in his element, moving confidently and diligently, like someone who knows exactly where they're going. The path quickly became rougher, and the travelers could clearly see that the mountains were closing in on them from both sides, indicating they were about to enter one of their gorges. Suddenly, Hawkeye paused, and once the whole group had gathered around him, he spoke in such low and careful tones that it added to the seriousness of his words in the stillness and darkness of the area.

“It is easy to know the pathways, and to find the licks and water-courses of the wilderness,” he said; “but who that saw this spot could venture to say, that a mighty army was at rest among yonder silent trees and barren mountains?”

“It’s easy to know the trails and to find the salt licks and streams in the wilderness,” he said; “but who, after seeing this place, could dare to suggest that a vast army is resting among those quiet trees and desolate mountains?”

“We are, then, at no great distance from William Henry?” said Heyward, advancing nigher to the scout.

“We're not far from William Henry, are we?” Heyward said, moving closer to the scout.

“It is yet a long and weary path, and when and where to strike it is now our greatest difficulty. See,” he said, pointing through the trees toward a spot where a little basin of water reflected the stars from its placid bosom, “here is the ‘bloody pond’; and I am on ground that I have not only often traveled, but over which I have fou’t the enemy, from the rising to the setting sun.”

“It’s still a long and tiring journey, and figuring out when and where to take action is our biggest challenge. Look,” he said, pointing through the trees to a spot where a small basin of water reflected the stars on its calm surface, “there is the ‘bloody pond’; and I’m on land that I have not only traveled many times but also fought the enemy on, from sunrise to sunset.”

“Ha! that sheet of dull and dreary water, then, is the sepulcher of the brave men who fell in the contest. I have heard it named, but never have I stood on its banks before.”

“Ha! that stretch of dull and dreary water is the grave of the brave men who lost their lives in the battle. I’ve heard it mentioned, but I’ve never stood on its shores before.”

“Three battles did we make with the Dutch-Frenchman[1] in a day,” continued Hawkeye, pursuing the train of his own thoughts, rather than replying to the remark of Duncan. “He met us hard by, in our outward march to ambush his advance, and scattered us, like driven deer, through the defile, to the shores of Horican. Then we rallied behind our fallen trees, and made head against him, under Sir William—who was made Sir William for that very deed; and well did we pay him for the disgrace of the morning! Hundreds of Frenchmen saw the sun that day for the last time; and even their leader, Dieskau himself, fell into our hands, so cut and torn with the lead, that he has gone back to his own country, unfit for further acts in war.”

“Three battles we fought with the Dutch-Frenchman[1] in one day,” continued Hawkeye, following his own thoughts instead of responding to Duncan's comment. “He confronted us nearby as we were heading out to ambush his advance and scattered us, like frightened deer, through the narrow pass to the shores of Horican. Then we regrouped behind our fallen trees and took a stand against him under Sir William—who earned the title of Sir William for that very action; and we made sure to compensate him for the humiliation of the morning! Hundreds of Frenchmen saw the sun rise that day for the last time; and even their leader, Dieskau himself, ended up in our hands, so battered and torn by gunfire that he returned to his own country, unfit for any further actions in war.”

[1] Baron Dieskau, a German, in the service of France. A few years previously to the period of the tale, this officer was defeated by Sir William Johnson, of Johnstown, New York, on the shores of Lake George.

[1] Baron Dieskau, a German, served France. A few years before the events of this story, he was defeated by Sir William Johnson from Johnstown, New York, on the shores of Lake George.

“’Twas a noble repulse!” exclaimed Heyward, in the heat of his youthful ardor; “the fame of it reached us early, in our southern army.”

“It was a heroic setback!” shouted Heyward, in the excitement of his youthful passion; “we heard about it quickly in our southern army.”

“Ay! but it did not end there. I was sent by Major Effingham, at Sir William’s own bidding, to outflank the French, and carry the tidings of their disaster across the portage, to the fort on the Hudson. Just hereaway, where you see the trees rise into a mountain swell, I met a party coming down to our aid, and I led them where the enemy were taking their meal, little dreaming that they had not finished the bloody work of the day.”

“Ay! but it didn’t end there. Major Effingham sent me, at Sir William’s request, to outmaneuver the French and deliver news of their defeat across the portage to the fort on the Hudson. Right over there, where you see the trees rise into a hill, I encountered a group coming down to help us, and I guided them to where the enemy were having their meal, unaware that they hadn’t completed their bloody work for the day.”

“And you surprised them?”

"And you shocked them?"

“If death can be a surprise to men who are thinking only of the cravings of their appetites. We gave them but little breathing time, for they had borne hard upon us in the fight of the morning, and there were few in our party who had not lost friend or relative by their hands.”

“If death can catch off guard those who focus solely on satisfying their desires. We gave them hardly any time to catch their breath, because they had pressed us hard in the morning battle, and there were few in our group who hadn’t lost a friend or family member to their hands.”

“When all was over, the dead, and some say the dying, were cast into that little pond. These eyes have seen its waters colored with blood, as natural water never yet flowed from the bowels of the ’arth.”

“When it was all over, the dead, and some say the dying, were thrown into that little pond. These eyes have seen its waters stained with blood, as no natural water has ever flowed from the earth.”

“It was a convenient, and, I trust, will prove a peaceful grave for a soldier. You have then seen much service on this frontier?”

“It’s a fitting, and I hope, will be a tranquil resting place for a soldier. So, you’ve seen a lot of action on this frontier?”

“Ay!” said the scout, erecting his tall person with an air of military pride; “there are not many echoes among these hills that haven’t rung with the crack of my rifle, nor is there the space of a square mile atwixt Horican and the river, that ‘killdeer’ hasn’t dropped a living body on, be it an enemy or be it a brute beast. As for the grave there being as quiet as you mention, it is another matter. There are them in the camp who say and think, man, to lie still, should not be buried while the breath is in the body; and certain it is that in the hurry of that evening, the doctors had but little time to say who was living and who was dead. Hist! see you nothing walking on the shore of the pond?”

“Hey!” said the scout, standing tall with a sense of military pride. “There aren’t many echoes in these hills that haven’t heard the crack of my rifle, and there’s not a square mile between Horican and the river where the ‘killdeer’ hasn’t taken down something alive, whether it’s an enemy or a wild animal. As for that grave being as quiet as you say, that’s a different story. Some people in the camp believe that a man shouldn’t be buried while he still has breath in his body; and it’s true that in the chaos of that evening, the doctors didn’t have much time to determine who was alive and who was dead. Wait! Do you see anything moving on the shore of the pond?”

“’Tis not probable that any are as houseless as ourselves in this dreary forest.”

"It’s unlikely that anyone is as homeless as we are in this bleak forest."

“Such as he may care but little for house or shelter, and night dew can never wet a body that passes its days in the water,” returned the scout, grasping the shoulder of Heyward with such convulsive strength as to make the young soldier painfully sensible how much superstitious terror had got the mastery of a man usually so dauntless.

“Even if he cares little for a house or shelter, night dew can never dampen a person who spends their days in the water,” replied the scout, gripping Heyward's shoulder with such intense force that the young soldier could clearly feel how much superstitious fear had taken hold of a man who was usually so fearless.

“By heaven, there is a human form, and it approaches! Stand to your arms, my friends; for we know not whom we encounter.”

“By heaven, there's a person coming our way! Get ready, my friends; we don’t know who we’re about to meet.”

“Qui vive?” demanded a stern, quick voice, which sounded like a challenge from another world, issuing out of that solitary and solemn place.

“Qui vive?” demanded a sharp, urgent voice, like a challenge from another realm, coming from that lonely and serious spot.

“What says it?” whispered the scout; “it speaks neither Indian nor English.”

“What does it say?” whispered the scout; “it doesn’t speak either Indian or English.”

“Qui vive?” repeated the same voice, which was quickly followed by the rattling of arms, and a menacing attitude.

“Who goes there?” repeated the same voice, quickly followed by the clinking of weapons and a threatening stance.

“France!” cried Heyward, advancing from the shadow of the trees to the shore of the pond, within a few yards of the sentinel.

“France!” shouted Heyward, stepping out from the shadows of the trees to the edge of the pond, just a few yards away from the guard.

“D’ou venez-vous—ou allez-vous, d’aussi bonne heure?” demanded the grenadier, in the language and with the accent of a man from old France.

“Where are you coming from—and where are you going, so early?” asked the grenadier, in the language and with the accent of a man from old France.

“Je viens de la découverte, et je vais me coucher.”

“I'm just back from the discovery, and I'm going to bed.”

“Etes-vous officier du roi?”

“Are you a royal officer?”

“Sans doute, mon camarade; me prends-tu pour un provincial! Je suis capitaine de chasseurs (Heyward well knew that the other was of a regiment in the line); j’ai ici, avec moi, les filles du commandant de la fortification. Aha! tu en as entendu parler! je les ai fait prisonnières près de l’autre fort, et je les conduis au général.”

“Of course, my friend; do you take me for a country bumpkin! I am the captain of the hunters (Heyward well knew that the other was from a regular army regiment); I have here with me the daughters of the commandant of the fortification. Aha! You’ve heard about them! I captured them near the other fort, and I’m taking them to the general.”

“Ma foi! mesdames; j’en suis faché pour vous,” exclaimed the young soldier, touching his cap with grace; “mais—fortune de guerre! vous trouverez notre général un brave homme, et bien poli avec les dames.”

“Honestly! Ladies, I’m sorry for you,” exclaimed the young soldier, touching his cap gracefully; “but—war’s fate! You’ll find our general to be a brave man and quite polite with the ladies.”

“C’est le caractere des gens de guerre,” said Cora, with admirable self-possession. “Adieu, mon ami; je vous souhaiterais un devoir plus agréable a remplir.”

“It's the nature of people in the military,” said Cora, with admirable composure. “Goodbye, my friend; I wish you a more pleasant duty to fulfill.”

The soldier made a low and humble acknowledgment for her civility; and Heyward adding a “Bonne nuit, mon camarade,” they moved deliberately forward, leaving the sentinel pacing the banks of the silent pond, little suspecting an enemy of so much effrontery, and humming to himself those words which were recalled to his mind by the sight of women, and, perhaps, by recollections of his own distant and beautiful France:

The soldier gave a slight and respectful nod for her politeness; and Heyward added a “Good night, my friend,” as they walked slowly ahead, leaving the guard walking along the banks of the quiet pond, unaware of an enemy so bold, and humming to himself the words that came to his mind at the sight of women, and maybe by memories of his own faraway and lovely France:

“Vive le vin, vive l’amour,” &c., &c.

“Cheers to wine, cheers to love,” etc., etc.

“’Tis well you understood the knave!” whispered the scout, when they had gained a little distance from the place, and letting his rifle fall into the hollow of his arm again; “I soon saw that he was one of them uneasy Frenchers; and well for him it was that his speech was friendly and his wishes kind, or a place might have been found for his bones among those of his countrymen.”

"It’s good you figured out that con artist!" whispered the scout, once they had moved away from the spot, letting his rifle rest in the crook of his arm again. "I quickly realized he was one of those restless French guys; and lucky for him, his words were friendly and his intentions nice, or he might have ended up buried alongside his fellow countrymen."

He was interrupted by a long and heavy groan which arose from the little basin, as though, in truth, the spirits of the departed lingered about their watery sepulcher.

He was interrupted by a long and heavy groan that came from the small basin, as if, in reality, the spirits of the dead were hanging around their watery grave.

“Surely it was of flesh,” continued the scout; “no spirit could handle its arms so steadily.”

“Surely it was flesh,” continued the scout; “no spirit could move its arms so steadily.”

“It was of flesh; but whether the poor fellow still belongs to this world may well be doubted,” said Heyward, glancing his eyes around him, and missing Chingachgook from their little band. Another groan more faint than the former was succeeded by a heavy and sullen plunge into the water, and all was still again as if the borders of the dreary pool had never been awakened from the silence of creation. While they yet hesitated in uncertainty, the form of the Indian was seen gliding out of the thicket. As the chief rejoined them, with one hand he attached the reeking scalp of the unfortunate young Frenchman to his girdle, and with the other he replaced the knife and tomahawk that had drunk his blood. He then took his wonted station, with the air of a man who believed he had done a deed of merit.

“It was flesh; but whether the poor guy still belongs to this world is debatable,” said Heyward, looking around and noticing that Chingachgook was missing from their group. Another groan, weaker than the last, was followed by a heavy, dull splash into the water, and everything went quiet again as if the edges of the gloomy pool had never stirred from the silence of creation. While they still hesitated in uncertainty, the form of the Indian appeared, gliding out of the underbrush. As the chief rejoined them, he tied the bloody scalp of the unfortunate young Frenchman to his belt with one hand and replaced the knife and tomahawk that had taken his blood with the other. He then took his usual position, looking like a man who believed he had accomplished something worthwhile.

The scout dropped one end of his rifle to the earth, and leaning his hands on the other, he stood musing in profound silence. Then, shaking his head in a mournful manner, he muttered:

The scout rested one end of his rifle on the ground and leaned on the other end, lost in deep thought. Then, shaking his head sadly, he muttered:

“’Twould have been a cruel and an unhuman act for a white-skin; but ’tis the gift and natur’ of an Indian, and I suppose it should not be denied. I could wish, though, it had befallen an accursed Mingo, rather than that gay young boy from the old countries.”

“It would have been a cruel and inhumane act for a white person; but it’s the nature and gift of an Indian, and I suppose that shouldn’t be denied. I do wish, though, that it had happened to a cursed Mingo instead of that lively young boy from the old countries.”

“Enough!” said Heyward, apprehensive the unconscious sisters might comprehend the nature of the detention, and conquering his disgust by a train of reflections very much like that of the hunter; “’tis done; and though better it were left undone, cannot be amended. You see, we are, too obviously within the sentinels of the enemy; what course do you propose to follow?”

“Enough!” said Heyward, worried that the unconscious sisters might understand the nature of their capture, and pushing aside his disgust with thoughts similar to those of a hunter; “it’s done; and even though it would be better if it hadn’t been done, it can’t be changed. You see, we are too clearly within the enemy’s lines; what do you suggest we do next?”

“Yes,” said Hawkeye, rousing himself again; “’tis as you say, too late to harbor further thoughts about it. Ay, the French have gathered around the fort in good earnest and we have a delicate needle to thread in passing them.”

“Yes,” said Hawkeye, waking up again; “it’s as you said, too late to think about it anymore. Yeah, the French have gathered around the fort for real, and we have a tricky situation to navigate in getting past them.”

“And but little time to do it in,” added Heyward, glancing his eyes upwards, toward the bank of vapor that concealed the setting moon.

“And there’s not much time left to do it,” Heyward said, looking up at the bank of clouds that hid the setting moon.

“And little time to do it in!” repeated the scout. “The thing may be done in two fashions, by the help of Providence, without which it may not be done at all.”

“And there's not much time to do it!” repeated the scout. “It can be done in two ways, with Providence's help, without which it might not be done at all.”

“Name them quickly for time presses.”

“Name them quickly, time is running out.”

“One would be to dismount the gentle ones, and let their beasts range the plain, by sending the Mohicans in front, we might then cut a lane through their sentries, and enter the fort over the dead bodies.”

“One option would be to get off the gentle ones and let their horses roam the plain. By sending the Mohicans in front, we could cut a path through their guards and enter the fort over the fallen bodies.”

“It will not do—it will not do!” interrupted the generous Heyward; “a soldier might force his way in this manner, but never with such a convoy.”

“It won't work—it just won’t work!” interrupted the generous Heyward; “a soldier might push through like this, but never with such a group.”

“’Twould be, indeed, a bloody path for such tender feet to wade in,” returned the equally reluctant scout; “but I thought it befitting my manhood to name it. We must, then, turn in our trail and get without the line of their lookouts, when we will bend short to the west, and enter the mountains; where I can hide you, so that all the devil’s hounds in Montcalm’s pay would be thrown off the scent for months to come.”

"It would definitely be a dangerous path for such delicate feet to walk in," replied the equally hesitant scout, "but I thought it was right to bring it up. So, we need to turn around and move out of sight of their lookouts, and then we'll head straight west and go into the mountains, where I can hide you, so that all the devil's hounds working for Montcalm would lose your trail for months to come."

“Let it be done, and that instantly.”

“Make it happen, and do it right away.”

Further words were unnecessary; for Hawkeye, merely uttering the mandate to “follow,” moved along the route by which they had just entered their present critical and even dangerous situation. Their progress, like their late dialogue, was guarded, and without noise; for none knew at what moment a passing patrol, or a crouching picket of the enemy, might rise upon their path. As they held their silent way along the margin of the pond, again Heyward and the scout stole furtive glances at its appalling dreariness. They looked in vain for the form they had so recently seen stalking along in silent shores, while a low and regular wash of the little waves, by announcing that the waters were not yet subsided, furnished a frightful memorial of the deed of blood they had just witnessed. Like all that passing and gloomy scene, the low basin, however, quickly melted in the darkness, and became blended with the mass of black objects in the rear of the travelers.

Further words weren't needed; for Hawkeye, simply saying “follow” guided them along the path that had brought them into this tense and dangerous situation. Their movement, like their recent conversation, was cautious and quiet; no one knew when a patrol or hidden enemy sentry might appear in their way. As they quietly moved along the edge of the pond, Heyward and the scout exchanged quick looks at its haunting emptiness. They searched in vain for the figure they had just seen walking along the silent shores, while the gentle, steady lapping of the small waves, which signified that the waters hadn't receded yet, served as a horrifying reminder of the bloodshed they had just witnessed. Like all that bleak and unsettling scene, the dark basin quickly faded into the darkness and merged with the dark shapes behind the travelers.

Hawkeye soon deviated from the line of their retreat, and striking off towards the mountains which form the western boundary of the narrow plain, he led his followers, with swift steps, deep within the shadows that were cast from their high and broken summits. The route was now painful; lying over ground ragged with rocks, and intersected with ravines, and their progress proportionately slow. Bleak and black hills lay on every side of them, compensating in some degree for the additional toil of the march by the sense of security they imparted. At length the party began slowly to rise a steep and rugged ascent, by a path that curiously wound among rocks and trees, avoiding the one and supported by the other, in a manner that showed it had been devised by men long practised in the arts of the wilderness. As they gradually rose from the level of the valleys, the thick darkness which usually precedes the approach of day began to disperse, and objects were seen in the plain and palpable colors with which they had been gifted by nature. When they issued from the stunted woods which clung to the barren sides of the mountain, upon a flat and mossy rock that formed its summit, they met the morning, as it came blushing above the green pines of a hill that lay on the opposite side of the valley of the Horican.

Hawkeye soon veered off the path of their retreat, heading towards the mountains that form the western edge of the narrow plain. He led his followers quickly into the shadows cast by the high, jagged peaks. The path became difficult, with rocky ground and deep ravines slowing their progress. Stark, dark hills surrounded them, providing some sense of security in exchange for the added effort of the hike. Eventually, the group began to climb a steep, rugged slope, following a winding path among the rocks and trees, cleverly avoiding obstacles, which indicated it was made by people experienced in the wilderness. As they ascended from the valley floor, the heavy darkness typical of dawn started to lift, revealing the landscape in the vivid colors given to it by nature. When they emerged from the sparse woods clinging to the barren mountainside onto a flat, moss-covered rock at the summit, they greeted the morning, which was rising in a rosy glow above the green pines on the opposite hillside overlooking the Horican Valley.

The scout now told the sisters to dismount; and taking the bridles from the mouths, and the saddles off the backs of the jaded beasts, he turned them loose, to glean a scanty subsistence among the shrubs and meager herbage of that elevated region.

The scout now told the sisters to get off their horses; and after removing the bridles from their mouths and the saddles from their tired backs, he let them loose to forage for whatever little food they could find among the shrubs and sparse grass of that high area.

“Go,” he said, “and seek your food where natur’ gives it to you; and beware that you become not food to ravenous wolves yourselves, among these hills.”

“Go,” he said, “and find your food where nature provides it; and be careful not to become food for hungry wolves yourselves, among these hills.”

“Have we no further need of them?” demanded Heyward.

“Don't we need them anymore?” asked Heyward.

“See, and judge with your own eyes,” said the scout, advancing toward the eastern brow of the mountain, whither he beckoned for the whole party to follow; “if it was as easy to look into the heart of man as it is to spy out the nakedness of Montcalm’s camp from this spot, hypocrites would grow scarce, and the cunning of a Mingo might prove a losing game, compared to the honesty of a Delaware.”

“Look and judge for yourselves,” said the scout, moving towards the eastern edge of the mountain, where he signaled for everyone to follow him. “If it were as easy to see into a person’s heart as it is to observe Montcalm’s camp laid bare from here, there wouldn’t be so many hypocrites, and the tricks of a Mingo would seem like a losing strategy next to the honesty of a Delaware.”

When the travelers reached the verge of the precipices they saw, at a glance, the truth of the scout’s declaration, and the admirable foresight with which he had led them to their commanding station.

When the travelers reached the edge of the cliffs, they immediately understood the truth of the scout’s statement and appreciated the great foresight with which he had guided them to their elevated position.

The mountain on which they stood, elevated perhaps a thousand feet in the air, was a high cone that rose a little in advance of that range which stretches for miles along the western shores of the lake, until meeting its sisters miles beyond the water, it ran off toward the Canadas, in confused and broken masses of rock, thinly sprinkled with evergreens. Immediately at the feet of the party, the southern shore of the Horican swept in a broad semicircle from mountain to mountain, marking a wide strand, that soon rose into an uneven and somewhat elevated plain. To the north stretched the limpid, and, as it appeared from that dizzy height, the narrow sheet of the “holy lake,” indented with numberless bays, embellished by fantastic headlands, and dotted with countless islands. At the distance of a few leagues, the bed of the water became lost among mountains, or was wrapped in the masses of vapor that came slowly rolling along their bosom, before a light morning air. But a narrow opening between the crests of the hills pointed out the passage by which they found their way still further north, to spread their pure and ample sheets again, before pouring out their tribute into the distant Champlain. To the south stretched the defile, or rather broken plain, so often mentioned. For several miles in this direction, the mountains appeared reluctant to yield their dominion, but within reach of the eye they diverged, and finally melted into the level and sandy lands, across which we have accompanied our adventurers in their double journey. Along both ranges of hills, which bounded the opposite sides of the lake and valley, clouds of light vapor were rising in spiral wreaths from the uninhabited woods, looking like the smoke of hidden cottages; or rolled lazily down the declivities, to mingle with the fogs of the lower land. A single, solitary, snow-white cloud floated above the valley, and marked the spot beneath which lay the silent pool of the “bloody pond.”

The mountain they stood on, maybe a thousand feet high, was a steep cone that rose slightly ahead of the range stretching for miles along the western shores of the lake. This range met its counterparts miles beyond the water, continuing north towards Canada in confused, broken masses of rock, lightly dotted with evergreens. Right at their feet, the southern shore of the Horican curved in a broad semicircle from mountain to mountain, creating a wide beach that quickly transitioned into an uneven, somewhat elevated plain. To the north stretched the clear, narrow expanse of the “holy lake,” from that dizzy height appearing to be filled with countless bays, beautiful headlands, and numerous islands. A few leagues away, the water’s bed became lost among mountains or was shrouded in swirling mists that slowly rolled along their slopes in the gentle morning breeze. But a narrow gap between the hilltops indicated the route they could take further north, allowing the water to spread wide again before it flowed into the distant Champlain. To the south lay the defile, or rather the broken plain, which had often been mentioned. For several miles in that direction, the mountains seemed reluctant to give up their territory, but within sight, they started to spread apart and eventually blended into the flat, sandy plains that our adventurers traveled across on their double journey. Along both ranges of hills on either side of the lake and valley, wispy clouds of light vapor rose in spirals from the uninhabited woods, resembling the smoke of unseen cottages, or lazily rolled down the slopes to mingle with the fogs of the lower lands. A single, fluffy, white cloud floated above the valley, marking the spot beneath which lay the quiet waters of the “bloody pond.”

Directly on the shore of the lake, and nearer to its western than to its eastern margin, lay the extensive earthen ramparts and low buildings of William Henry. Two of the sweeping bastions appeared to rest on the water which washed their bases, while a deep ditch and extensive morasses guarded its other sides and angles. The land had been cleared of wood for a reasonable distance around the work, but every other part of the scene lay in the green livery of nature, except where the limpid water mellowed the view, or the bold rocks thrust their black and naked heads above the undulating outline of the mountain ranges. In its front might be seen the scattered sentinels, who held a weary watch against their numerous foes; and within the walls themselves, the travelers looked down upon men still drowsy with a night of vigilance. Toward the southeast, but in immediate contact with the fort, was an entrenched camp, posted on a rocky eminence, that would have been far more eligible for the work itself, in which Hawkeye pointed out the presence of those auxiliary regiments that had so recently left the Hudson in their company. From the woods, a little further to the south, rose numerous dark and lurid smokes, that were easily to be distinguished from the purer exhalations of the springs, and which the scout also showed to Heyward, as evidences that the enemy lay in force in that direction.

Right by the lake and closer to its western edge than the eastern, were the large earthen walls and low buildings of William Henry. Two of the sweeping bastions seemed to sit right on the water that lapped at their bases, while a deep ditch and extensive marshes protected the other sides. The land was cleared of trees for a reasonable distance around the fort, but everywhere else was covered in lush greenery, except where the clear water softened the view or the bold rocks jutted their dark, bare tops above the rolling outline of the mountains. In front of the fort, scattered sentinels were on duty, keeping a tired watch against their many enemies; inside the walls, travelers looked down at men still sluggish from a night spent on alert. To the southeast, but right alongside the fort, was an entrenched camp on a rocky rise that would have been a better choice for the fort itself. Hawkeye pointed out the auxiliary regiments that had recently left the Hudson along with them. From the woods a bit further south, thick, dark smoke rose visibly, easily distinguishable from the cleaner vapors of the springs, and the scout pointed this out to Heyward as proof that the enemy was concentrated in that direction.

But the spectacle which most concerned the young soldier was on the western bank of the lake, though quite near to its southern termination. On a strip of land, which appeared from his stand too narrow to contain such an army, but which, in truth, extended many hundreds of yards from the shores of the Horican to the base of the mountain, were to be seen the white tents and military engines of an encampment of ten thousand men. Batteries were already thrown up in their front, and even while the spectators above them were looking down, with such different emotions, on a scene which lay like a map beneath their feet, the roar of artillery rose from the valley, and passed off in thundering echoes along the eastern hills.

But what really caught the young soldier's attention was on the western bank of the lake, close to its southern end. On a strip of land that looked too narrow from where he stood to hold such an army, but actually stretched for hundreds of yards from the shores of the Horican to the base of the mountain, there were white tents and military vehicles of a camp housing ten thousand men. Batteries had already been set up in front of them, and while the spectators above were looking down with various emotions at the scene spread out like a map below, the roar of artillery echoed from the valley, booming along the eastern hills.

“Morning is just touching them below,” said the deliberate and musing scout, “and the watchers have a mind to wake up the sleepers by the sound of cannon. We are a few hours too late! Montcalm has already filled the woods with his accursed Iroquois.”

“Morning is just starting to break,” said the thoughtful and reflective scout, “and the watchers plan to wake up the sleepers with the sound of cannon. We're a few hours too late! Montcalm has already filled the woods with his cursed Iroquois.”

“The place is, indeed, invested,” returned Duncan; “but is there no expedient by which we may enter? capture in the works would be far preferable to falling again into the hands of roving Indians.”

“The place is definitely secured,” Duncan replied; “but is there any way we can get in? Capturing it would be much better than falling into the hands of wandering Indians again.”

“See!” exclaimed the scout, unconsciously directing the attention of Cora to the quarters of her own father, “how that shot has made the stones fly from the side of the commandant’s house! Ay! these Frenchers will pull it to pieces faster than it was put together, solid and thick though it be!”

“Look!” the scout shouted, unintentionally drawing Cora’s attention to her father’s quarters, “check out how that shot made the stones fly off the side of the commandant’s house! Yep! These Frenchies will tear it apart faster than it took to build, no matter how solid and thick it is!”

“Heyward, I sicken at the sight of danger that I cannot share,” said the undaunted but anxious daughter. “Let us go to Montcalm, and demand admission: he dare not deny a child the boon.”

“Heyward, I feel sick at the sight of danger that I can’t face,” said the fearless but worried daughter. “Let’s go to Montcalm and ask for entry: he wouldn’t dare deny a child that favor.”

“You would scarce find the tent of the Frenchman with the hair on your head”; said the blunt scout. “If I had but one of the thousand boats which lie empty along that shore, it might be done! Ha! here will soon be an end of the firing, for yonder comes a fog that will turn day to night, and make an Indian arrow more dangerous than a molded cannon. Now, if you are equal to the work, and will follow, I will make a push; for I long to get down into that camp, if it be only to scatter some Mingo dogs that I see lurking in the skirts of yonder thicket of birch.”

“You could hardly find the Frenchman’s tent with a searchlight,” said the blunt scout. “If I had just one of the thousand boats that are sitting empty along that shore, it could be done! Ha! The shooting will soon stop because a fog is coming that will turn day into night and make an Indian arrow more dangerous than a cannonball. Now, if you’re up for the task and will follow me, I’m ready to make a move; I really want to get down into that camp, even if it’s just to chase off some Mingo dogs I see hiding in the edge of that birch thicket.”

“We are equal,” said Cora, firmly; “on such an errand we will follow to any danger.”

“We're equals,” Cora said firmly. “For this kind of mission, we're ready to face any danger.”

The scout turned to her with a smile of honest and cordial approbation, as he answered:

The scout turned to her with a genuine and friendly smile as he responded:

“I would I had a thousand men, of brawny limbs and quick eyes, that feared death as little as you! I’d send them jabbering Frenchers back into their den again, afore the week was ended, howling like so many fettered hounds or hungry wolves. But, stir,” he added, turning from her to the rest of the party, “the fog comes rolling down so fast, we shall have but just the time to meet it on the plain, and use it as a cover. Remember, if any accident should befall me, to keep the air blowing on your left cheeks—or, rather, follow the Mohicans; they’d scent their way, be it in day or be it at night.”

“I wish I had a thousand strong men with sharp eyes who were as fearless of death as you are! I’d send those jabbering Frenchmen back into their hiding places before the week is over, howling like a pack of chained dogs or hungry wolves. But, listen,” he said, turning from her to the rest of the group, “the fog is rolling in so quickly that we’ll just have time to meet it on the plain and use it as cover. Remember, if anything happens to me, keep the wind blowing on your left cheeks—or, better yet, follow the Mohicans; they’ll be able to sniff their way, whether it’s day or night.”

He then waved his hand for them to follow, and threw himself down the steep declivity, with free, but careful footsteps. Heyward assisted the sisters to descend, and in a few minutes they were all far down a mountain whose sides they had climbed with so much toil and pain.

He then gestured for them to follow and jumped down the steep slope, moving carefully but with ease. Heyward helped the sisters make their way down, and within a few minutes, they were all much lower on the mountain that they had climbed with so much effort and struggle.

The direction taken by Hawkeye soon brought the travelers to the level of the plain, nearly opposite to a sally-port in the western curtain of the fort, which lay itself at the distance of about half a mile from the point where he halted to allow Duncan to come up with his charge. In their eagerness, and favored by the nature of the ground, they had anticipated the fog, which was rolling heavily down the lake, and it became necessary to pause, until the mists had wrapped the camp of the enemy in their fleecy mantle. The Mohicans profited by the delay, to steal out of the woods, and to make a survey of surrounding objects. They were followed at a little distance by the scout, with a view to profit early by their report, and to obtain some faint knowledge for himself of the more immediate localities.

The path taken by Hawkeye soon led the travelers to the flat part of the plain, almost directly across from a sally-port in the western wall of the fort, which was about half a mile away from where he stopped to let Duncan catch up with his load. In their excitement, and taking advantage of the terrain, they had gotten ahead of the fog that was rolling heavily down the lake, and it became necessary to stop until the mists had covered the enemy's camp in their soft blanket. The Mohicans used the delay to sneak out of the woods and to survey the area around them. They were followed at a slight distance by the scout, looking to benefit from their report early on and to get some basic understanding of the nearby locations.

In a very few moments he returned, his face reddened with vexation, while he muttered his disappointment in words of no very gentle import.

In just a moment, he came back, his face flushed with annoyance, mumbling his disappointment in not-so-kind words.

“Here has the cunning Frenchman been posting a picket directly in our path,” he said; “red-skins and whites; and we shall be as likely to fall into their midst as to pass them in the fog!”

“Here’s the sneaky Frenchman putting up a barrier right in our way,” he said; “Native Americans and white people; and we’re just as likely to end up right in their midst as to get past them in the fog!”

“Cannot we make a circuit to avoid the danger,” asked Heyward, “and come into our path again when it is passed?”

“Can’t we take a detour to avoid the danger,” Heyward asked, “and rejoin our path once it’s behind us?”

“Who that once bends from the line of his march in a fog can tell when or how to find it again! The mists of Horican are not like the curls from a peace-pipe, or the smoke which settles above a mosquito fire.”

“Who that once strays from their path in the fog can know when or how to find it again! The mists of Horican aren’t like the wisps from a peace pipe, or the smoke that lingers over a mosquito fire.”

He was yet speaking, when a crashing sound was heard, and a cannon-ball entered the thicket, striking the body of a sapling, and rebounding to the earth, its force being much expended by previous resistance. The Indians followed instantly like busy attendants on the terrible messenger, and Uncas commenced speaking earnestly and with much action, in the Delaware tongue.

He was still talking when a loud crash was heard, and a cannonball flew into the brush, hitting a young tree and bouncing to the ground, its power significantly reduced by the impact. The Indians quickly followed, like eager assistants to the dreadful messenger, and Uncas began speaking passionately and animatedly in the Delaware language.

“It may be so, lad,” muttered the scout, when he had ended; “for desperate fevers are not to be treated like a toothache. Come, then, the fog is shutting in.”

“It might be true, kid,” the scout muttered when he was done; “because serious fevers can’t be handled like a toothache. Let’s go, the fog is rolling in.”

“Stop!” cried Heyward; “first explain your expectations.”

“Stop!” shouted Heyward; “first, explain what you expect.”

“’Tis soon done, and a small hope it is; but it is better than nothing. This shot that you see,” added the scout, kicking the harmless iron with his foot, “has plowed the ’arth in its road from the fort, and we shall hunt for the furrow it has made, when all other signs may fail. No more words, but follow, or the fog may leave us in the middle of our path, a mark for both armies to shoot at.”

“It’ll be done soon, and it’s a small hope; but it’s better than nothing. This shot you see,” the scout said, kicking the harmless iron with his foot, “has disturbed the earth on its way from the fort, and we’ll look for the furrow it’s made when all other signs fail. No more talking, just follow, or the fog might leave us stuck in the middle of our path, making us a target for both armies.”

Heyward perceiving that, in fact, a crisis had arrived, when acts were more required than words, placed himself between the sisters, and drew them swiftly forward, keeping the dim figure of their leader in his eye. It was soon apparent that Hawkeye had not magnified the power of the fog, for before they had proceeded twenty yards, it was difficult for the different individuals of the party to distinguish each other in the vapor.

Heyward realized that a crisis had come when actions were needed more than words. He positioned himself between the sisters and quickly pulled them forward, keeping an eye on their leader's faint silhouette. It soon became clear that Hawkeye hadn't exaggerated the fog's effects, as within just twenty yards, it was hard for the group to recognize one another in the mist.

They had made their little circuit to the left, and were already inclining again toward the right, having, as Heyward thought, got over nearly half the distance to the friendly works, when his ears were saluted with the fierce summons, apparently within twenty feet of them, of:

They had made their small loop to the left and were already turning back to the right, having, as Heyward thought, covered almost half the distance to the safe positions, when he heard a loud call, seemingly just twenty feet away from them, of:

“Qui va là?”

"Who goes there?"

“Push on!” whispered the scout, once more bending to the left.

“Keep going!” whispered the scout, once again leaning to the left.

“Push on!” repeated Heyward; when the summons was renewed by a dozen voices, each of which seemed charged with menace.

“Keep going!” Heyward shouted again; when the call was echoed by a dozen voices, each sounding threatening.

“C’est moi,” cried Duncan, dragging rather than leading those he supported swiftly onward.

“It's me,” shouted Duncan, pulling those he was helping along rather than guiding them smoothly.

“Bête!—qui?—moi!”

"Bête!—who?—me!"

“Ami de la France.”

"Friend of France."

“Tu m’as plus l’air d’un ennemi de la France; arrete ou pardieu je te ferai ami du diable. Non! feu, camarades, feu!”

“Tu as l'air plus d'un ennemi de la France; arrête ou je te ferai vraiment ami du diable. Non! feu, camarades, feu!”

The order was instantly obeyed, and the fog was stirred by the explosion of fifty muskets. Happily, the aim was bad, and the bullets cut the air in a direction a little different from that taken by the fugitives; though still so nigh them, that to the unpractised ears of David and the two females, it appeared as if they whistled within a few inches of the organs. The outcry was renewed, and the order, not only to fire again, but to pursue, was too plainly audible. When Heyward briefly explained the meaning of the words they heard, Hawkeye halted and spoke with quick decision and great firmness.

The command was quickly followed, and the fog was disturbed by the blast of fifty muskets. Fortunately, the aim was poor, and the bullets flew in a slightly different direction than the path taken by the escapees; still, they were close enough that to the untrained ears of David and the two women, it sounded like they whistled just inches away. The shouting picked up again, and the command to not only fire again but to chase them was loud and clear. When Heyward quickly explained what the words meant, Hawkeye stopped and spoke with swift determination and strong resolve.

“Let us deliver our fire,” he said; “they will believe it a sortie, and give way, or they will wait for reinforcements.”

“Let’s unleash our fire,” he said; “they will think it’s an attack and back off, or they will hold out for reinforcements.”

The scheme was well conceived, but failed in its effects. The instant the French heard the pieces, it seemed as if the plain was alive with men, muskets rattling along its whole extent, from the shores of the lake to the furthest boundary of the woods.

The plan was well thought out, but it didn't work as intended. The moment the French heard the sounds, it felt like the plain was filled with soldiers, muskets clattering all across it, from the lake's shore to the farthest edge of the woods.

“We shall draw their entire army upon us, and bring on a general assault,” said Duncan: “lead on, my friend, for your own life and ours.”

“We’ll draw their whole army in and start a full attack,” said Duncan. “Lead the way, my friend, for your life and ours.”

The scout seemed willing to comply; but, in the hurry of the moment, and in the change of position, he had lost the direction. In vain he turned either cheek toward the light air; they felt equally cool. In this dilemma, Uncas lighted on the furrow of the cannon ball, where it had cut the ground in three adjacent ant-hills.

The scout seemed ready to follow along, but in the rush of the moment and the shift in position, he had lost his way. He turned his head in both directions toward the gentle breeze, but both felt the same coolness. In this predicament, Uncas came across the trail of the cannonball, which had carved a path through three nearby ant hills.

“Give me the range!” said Hawkeye, bending to catch a glimpse of the direction, and then instantly moving onward.

“Give me the range!” said Hawkeye, bending down to see the direction, and then quickly moving forward.

Cries, oaths, voices calling to each other, and the reports of muskets, were now quick and incessant, and, apparently, on every side of them. Suddenly a strong glare of light flashed across the scene, the fog rolled upward in thick wreaths, and several cannons belched across the plain, and the roar was thrown heavily back from the bellowing echoes of the mountain.

Cries, curses, people shouting to each other, and the sounds of muskets were now rapid and nonstop, seemingly coming from every direction. Suddenly, a bright flash of light lit up the scene, the fog rose up in thick curls, and several cannons fired across the plain, their thunderous noise echoing off the mountains.

“’Tis from the fort!” exclaimed Hawkeye, turning short on his tracks; “and we, like stricken fools, were rushing to the woods, under the very knives of the Maquas.”

“It's from the fort!” exclaimed Hawkeye, turning quickly on his tracks; “and we, like foolish victims, were rushing to the woods, right under the blades of the Maquas.”

The instant their mistake was rectified, the whole party retraced the error with the utmost diligence. Duncan willingly relinquished the support of Cora to the arm of Uncas and Cora as readily accepted the welcome assistance. Men, hot and angry in pursuit, were evidently on their footsteps, and each instant threatened their capture, if not their destruction.

The moment their mistake was fixed, the entire group carefully went back over what went wrong. Duncan gladly gave up Cora's support to Uncas's arm, and Cora quickly accepted the helpful hand. The men, angry and determined in their chase, were clearly close behind them, and at any moment, they risked being caught, if not destroyed.

“Point de quartier aux coquins!” cried an eager pursuer, who seemed to direct the operations of the enemy.

“Not a chance for you, rascals!” shouted an eager pursuer, who seemed to be leading the enemy's actions.

“Stand firm, and be ready, my gallant Sixtieths!” suddenly exclaimed a voice above them; “wait to see the enemy, fire low and sweep the glacis.”

“Stand your ground and get ready, my brave Sixtieths!” suddenly shouted a voice above them; “wait to see the enemy, aim low and sweep the slope.”

“Father! father!” exclaimed a piercing cry from out the mist: “it is I! Alice! thy own Elsie! Spare, oh! save your daughters!”

“Dad! Dad!” a sharp voice shouted from the fog. “It’s me! Alice! Your own Elsie! Please, oh! Save your daughters!”

“Hold!” shouted the former speaker, in the awful tones of parental agony, the sound reaching even to the woods, and rolling back in solemn echo. “’Tis she! God has restored me to my children! Throw open the sally-port; to the field, Sixtieths, to the field; pull not a trigger, lest ye kill my lambs! Drive off these dogs of France with your steel.”

“Stop!” shouted the former speaker, in terrible tones of parental pain, the sound reaching even into the woods and bouncing back in a solemn echo. “It’s her! God has brought me back to my children! Open the gates; to the battlefield, Sixtieths, to the battlefield; don’t fire a shot, or you’ll kill my lambs! Drive off these French dogs with your swords.”

Duncan heard the grating of the rusty hinges, and darting to the spot, directed by the sound, he met a long line of dark red warriors, passing swiftly toward the glacis. He knew them for his own battalion of the Royal Americans, and flying to their head, soon swept every trace of his pursuers from before the works.

Duncan heard the creaking of the rusty hinges, and running to the sound, he found a long line of dark red soldiers moving quickly toward the slope. He recognized them as his own battalion of the Royal Americans, and rushing to the front, he quickly cleared away any sign of his pursuers from in front of the fortifications.

For an instant, Cora and Alice had stood trembling and bewildered by this unexpected desertion; but before either had leisure for speech, or even thought, an officer of gigantic frame, whose locks were bleached with years and service, but whose air of military grandeur had been rather softened than destroyed by time, rushed out of the body of mist, and folded them to his bosom, while large scalding tears rolled down his pale and wrinkled cheeks, and he exclaimed, in the peculiar accent of Scotland:

For a moment, Cora and Alice stood there, shocked and confused by the sudden abandonment; but before either could find the time to speak or even think, a tall officer with gray hair from age and service, though still exuding military majesty that time had softened rather than diminished, came rushing out of the mist and embraced them tightly, tears streaming down his pale, wrinkled face as he exclaimed in a distinct Scottish accent:

“For this I thank thee, Lord! Let danger come as it will, thy servant is now prepared!”

“For this, I thank you, Lord! Let danger come as it may, your servant is now ready!”

CHAPTER XV.

“Then go we in, to know his embassy;
Which I could, with ready guess, declare,
Before the Frenchmen speak a word of it.”
—King Henry V

“Then let's go in to find out what he's here for;
I could, with a quick guess, explain it,
Before the French say a word about it.”
—King Henry V

A few succeeding days were passed amid the privations, the uproar, and the dangers of the siege, which was vigorously pressed by a power, against whose approaches Munro possessed no competent means of resistance. It appeared as if Webb, with his army, which lay slumbering on the banks of the Hudson, had utterly forgotten the strait to which his countrymen were reduced. Montcalm had filled the woods of the portage with his savages, every yell and whoop from whom rang through the British encampment, chilling the hearts of men who were already but too much disposed to magnify the danger.

A few days went by amid the hardships, chaos, and dangers of the siege, which was being aggressively pursued by a power that Munro had no effective means to resist. It seemed as if Webb, with his army, which was resting on the banks of the Hudson, had completely forgotten the plight his fellow countrymen were in. Montcalm had filled the woods of the portage with his warriors, and every yell and whoop from them echoed through the British camp, frightening the men who were already too inclined to exaggerate the danger.

Not so, however, with the besieged. Animated by the words, and stimulated by the examples of their leaders, they had found their courage, and maintained their ancient reputation, with a zeal that did justice to the stern character of their commander. As if satisfied with the toil of marching through the wilderness to encounter his enemy, the French general, though of approved skill, had neglected to seize the adjacent mountains; whence the besieged might have been exterminated with impunity, and which, in the more modern warfare of the country, would not have been neglected for a single hour. This sort of contempt for eminences, or rather dread of the labor of ascending them, might have been termed the besetting weakness of the warfare of the period. It originated in the simplicity of the Indian contests, in which, from the nature of the combats, and the density of the forests, fortresses were rare, and artillery next to useless. The carelessness engendered by these usages descended even to the war of the Revolution and lost the States the important fortress of Ticonderoga opening a way for the army of Burgoyne into what was then the bosom of the country. We look back at this ignorance, or infatuation, whichever it may be called, with wonder, knowing that the neglect of an eminence, whose difficulties, like those of Mount Defiance, have been so greatly exaggerated, would, at the present time, prove fatal to the reputation of the engineer who had planned the works at their base, or to that of the general whose lot it was to defend them.

Not so for those under siege. Inspired by their leaders' words and examples, they found their courage and upheld their long-standing reputation with a determination that reflected the serious nature of their commander. As if satisfied with the effort of marching through the wilderness to confront his enemy, the French general, despite having proven skills, failed to take control of the nearby mountains; from there, the besieged could have been wiped out without risk, and in today’s warfare, that would not have been overlooked for even an hour. This kind of disregard for high ground, or rather fear of the effort to climb it, might be seen as the main weakness of warfare at that time. It stemmed from the straightforward nature of Indian battles, where, due to the type of fighting and the thick forests, fortresses were rare, and artillery was nearly useless. The carelessness born from these practices even carried into the Revolutionary War, leading to the loss of the key fortress at Ticonderoga, which opened a path for Burgoyne’s army deep into what was then the heart of the country. We look back at this ignorance, or obsession, whichever it may be called, in amazement, understanding that neglecting an elevated position, whose challenges, like those of Mount Defiance, have been so greatly exaggerated, would today severely damage the reputation of the engineer who designed the defenses at the base, or the general responsible for defending them.

The tourist, the valetudinarian, or the amateur of the beauties of nature, who, in the train of his four-in-hand, now rolls through the scenes we have attempted to describe, in quest of information, health, or pleasure, or floats steadily toward his object on those artificial waters which have sprung up under the administration of a statesman[1] who has dared to stake his political character on the hazardous issue, is not to suppose that his ancestors traversed those hills, or struggled with the same currents with equal facility. The transportation of a single heavy gun was often considered equal to a victory gained; if happily, the difficulties of the passage had not so far separated it from its necessary concomitant, the ammunition, as to render it no more than a useless tube of unwieldy iron.

The tourist, the person in poor health, or the fan of nature's beauty, who, in the carriage drawn by four horses, now travels through the landscapes we've tried to describe, in search of knowledge, health, or enjoyment, or glides steadily toward their destination on those man-made bodies of water that have emerged under a politician[1] who has risked his political reputation on this risky venture, should not assume that their ancestors easily navigated those hills or fought against the same currents. Transporting a single heavy cannon was often seen as significant as winning a battle; if by chance, the challenges of the journey hadn't so far distanced it from its crucial companion, the ammunition, that it became nothing more than a cumbersome and useless piece of iron.

[1] Evidently the late De Witt Clinton, who died governor of New York in 1828.

[1] Clearly, the late De Witt Clinton, who passed away while serving as the governor of New York in 1828.

The evils of this state of things pressed heavily on the fortunes of the resolute Scotsman who now defended William Henry. Though his adversary neglected the hills, he had planted his batteries with judgment on the plain, and caused them to be served with vigor and skill. Against this assault, the besieged could only oppose the imperfect and hasty preparations of a fortress in the wilderness.

The problems of this situation weighed heavily on the determined Scotsman defending William Henry. Even though his opponent ignored the hills, he had strategically set up his artillery on the plain and operated it with energy and expertise. In response to this attack, the defenders could only rely on the inadequate and rushed efforts of a fort in the middle of nowhere.

It was in the afternoon of the fifth day of the siege, and the fourth of his own service in it, that Major Heyward profited by a parley that had just been beaten, by repairing to the ramparts of one of the water bastions, to breathe the cool air from the lake, and to take a survey of the progress of the siege. He was alone, if the solitary sentinel who paced the mound be excepted; for the artillerists had hastened also to profit by the temporary suspension of their arduous duties. The evening was delightfully calm, and the light air from the limpid water fresh and soothing. It seemed as if, with the termination of the roar of artillery and the plunging of shot, nature had also seized the moment to assume her mildest and most captivating form. The sun poured down his parting glory on the scene, without the oppression of those fierce rays that belong to the climate and the season. The mountains looked green, and fresh, and lovely, tempered with the milder light, or softened in shadow, as thin vapors floated between them and the sun. The numerous islands rested on the bosom of the Horican, some low and sunken, as if embedded in the waters, and others appearing to hover about the element, in little hillocks of green velvet; among which the fishermen of the beleaguering army peacefully rowed their skiffs, or floated at rest on the glassy mirror in quiet pursuit of their employment.

It was the afternoon of the fifth day of the siege and the fourth day that Major Heyward had been part of it when he took advantage of a truce that had just been called. He went up to the ramparts of one of the water bastions to enjoy the cool air from the lake and to take a look at how the siege was progressing. He was alone, except for the lone sentinel who was patrolling the area; the gunners had also hurried to make the most of the brief break from their demanding duties. The evening was wonderfully calm, and the light breeze from the clear water felt fresh and soothing. It seemed like, with the end of the booming artillery and the impact of cannonballs, nature had also decided to showcase her gentlest and most charming side. The sun cast its final golden light on the scene, without the intense heat that usually comes with the climate and the season. The mountains appeared green, fresh, and beautiful, illuminated by the softer light or shaded as thin mist floated between them and the sun. The numerous islands rested on the surface of the Horican, some low and submerged as if they were part of the water, while others seemed to float in the air like little hills of green velvet. Among these islands, the fishermen of the besieging army peacefully rowed their boats or floated at rest on the glassy surface as they quietly pursued their work.

The scene was at once animated and still. All that pertained to nature was sweet, or simply grand; while those parts which depended on the temper and movements of man were lively and playful.

The scene was both lively and serene. Everything related to nature was beautiful or simply majestic, while the aspects influenced by human moods and actions were vibrant and playful.

Two little spotless flags were abroad, the one on a salient angle of the fort, and the other on the advanced battery of the besiegers; emblems of the truth which existed, not only to the acts, but it would seem, also, to the enmity of the combatants.

Two small, clean flags were out, one on a prominent corner of the fort and the other on the forward battery of the attackers; symbols of the reality that existed not only concerning the actions but also, it seemed, regarding the hostility between the fighters.

Behind these again swung, heavily opening and closing in silken folds, the rival standards of England and France.

Behind these, the rival flags of England and France swung heavily, opening and closing in silky folds.

A hundred gay and thoughtless young Frenchmen were drawing a net to the pebbly beach, within dangerous proximity to the sullen but silent cannon of the fort, while the eastern mountain was sending back the loud shouts and gay merriment that attended their sport. Some were rushing eagerly to enjoy the aquatic games of the lake, and others were already toiling their way up the neighboring hills, with the restless curiosity of their nation. To all these sports and pursuits, those of the enemy who watched the besieged, and the besieged themselves, were, however, merely the idle though sympathizing spectators. Here and there a picket had, indeed, raised a song, or mingled in a dance, which had drawn the dusky savages around them, from their lairs in the forest. In short, everything wore rather the appearance of a day of pleasure, than of an hour stolen from the dangers and toil of a bloody and vindictive warfare.

A hundred carefree and thoughtless young Frenchmen were pulling a net onto the pebbly beach, dangerously close to the silent but ominous cannons of the fort, while the eastern mountain echoed their loud shouts and cheerful laughter as they played. Some were eagerly rushing to enjoy the water games at the lake, while others were already making their way up the nearby hills, driven by the curious nature of their country. To all these activities, those from the enemy side watching the besieged, and the besieged themselves, were just idle yet sympathetic spectators. Here and there, a sentry had indeed started a song or joined in a dance, drawing the dark-skinned locals from their forest hideouts. In short, everything felt more like a day of fun than a moment taken from the dangers and struggles of brutal and vengeful warfare.

Duncan had stood in a musing attitude, contemplating this scene a few minutes, when his eyes were directed to the glacis in front of the sally-port already mentioned, by the sounds of approaching footsteps. He walked to an angle of the bastion, and beheld the scout advancing, under the custody of a French officer, to the body of the fort. The countenance of Hawkeye was haggard and careworn, and his air dejected, as though he felt the deepest degradation at having fallen into the power of his enemies. He was without his favorite weapon, and his arms were even bound behind him with thongs, made of the skin of a deer. The arrival of flags to cover the messengers of summons, had occurred so often of late, that when Heyward first threw his careless glance on this group, he expected to see another of the officers of the enemy, charged with a similar office but the instant he recognized the tall person and still sturdy though downcast features of his friend, the woodsman, he started with surprise, and turned to descend from the bastion into the bosom of the work.

Duncan had been standing in thought, taking in the scene for a few minutes, when he noticed the glacis in front of the previously mentioned sally-port due to the sound of approaching footsteps. He walked to the corner of the bastion and saw the scout being led by a French officer toward the fort. Hawkeye looked worn and troubled, with a downcast expression, as if he felt deeply ashamed for being taken captive by his enemies. He didn't have his favorite weapon, and his arms were tied behind him with deer skin thongs. Recently, there had been so many flag bearers arriving to deliver summons that when Heyward first glanced at the group carelessly, he expected to see another enemy officer on the same mission. But as soon as he recognized the tall figure and still strong but defeated features of his friend, the woodsman, he was taken aback and quickly headed down from the bastion into the heart of the fort.

The sounds of other voices, however, caught his attention, and for a moment caused him to forget his purpose. At the inner angle of the mound he met the sisters, walking along the parapet, in search, like himself, of air and relief from confinement. They had not met from that painful moment when he deserted them on the plain, only to assure their safety. He had parted from them worn with care, and jaded with fatigue; he now saw them refreshed and blooming, though timid and anxious. Under such an inducement it will cause no surprise that the young man lost sight for a time, of other objects in order to address them. He was, however, anticipated by the voice of the ingenuous and youthful Alice.

The sounds of other voices, however, caught his attention, and for a moment made him forget his purpose. At the inner angle of the mound, he encountered the sisters, walking along the parapet, looking for air and relief from their confinement, just like him. They hadn't seen each other since that painful moment when he left them on the plain to ensure their safety. He had parted from them feeling worn out and exhausted; now he saw them looking refreshed and vibrant, though still timid and anxious. Given that, it’s no surprise that the young man lost sight of everything else for a moment to talk to them. However, he was interrupted by the voice of the honest and youthful Alice.

“Ah! thou tyrant! thou recreant knight! he who abandons his damsels in the very lists,” she cried; “here have we been days, nay, ages, expecting you at our feet, imploring mercy and forgetfulness of your craven backsliding, or I should rather say, backrunning—for verily you fled in the manner that no stricken deer, as our worthy friend the scout would say, could equal!”

“Ah! you tyrant! you cowardly knight! the one who abandons his ladies right in the competition,” she shouted; “we’ve been here for days, even ages, waiting for you to come to us, begging for mercy and to forget about your cowardice, or I should say, your retreat—for truly you ran away in a way that no wounded deer, as our good friend the scout would say, could match!”

“You know that Alice means our thanks and our blessings,” added the graver and more thoughtful Cora. “In truth, we have a little wonder why you should so rigidly absent yourself from a place where the gratitude of the daughters might receive the support of a parent’s thanks.”

“You know that Alice represents our appreciation and our blessings,” added the more serious and thoughtful Cora. “Honestly, we can’t help but wonder why you choose to stay away from a place where the gratitude of the daughters could benefit from a parent’s thanks.”

“Your father himself could tell you, that, though absent from your presence, I have not been altogether forgetful of your safety,” returned the young man; “the mastery of yonder village of huts,” pointing to the neighboring entrenched camp, “has been keenly disputed; and he who holds it is sure to be possessed of this fort, and that which it contains. My days and nights have all been passed there since we separated, because I thought that duty called me thither. But,” he added, with an air of chagrin, which he endeavored, though unsuccessfully, to conceal, “had I been aware that what I then believed a soldier’s conduct could be so construed, shame would have been added to the list of reasons.”

“Your father could tell you that even though I'm not here with you, I haven't forgotten about your safety,” the young man replied. “The control of that village over there,” he said, pointing at the nearby fortified camp, “has been fiercely contested; whoever controls it is likely to also hold this fort and everything inside it. I've spent all my days and nights there since we parted because I thought my duty called me there. But,” he added, trying unsuccessfully to hide his disappointment, “if I had known that what I thought was the right behavior for a soldier could be interpreted this way, I would have felt even more ashamed.”

“Heyward! Duncan!” exclaimed Alice, bending forward to read his half-averted countenance, until a lock of her golden hair rested on her flushed cheek, and nearly concealed the tear that had started to her eye; “did I think this idle tongue of mine had pained you, I would silence it forever. Cora can say, if Cora would, how justly we have prized your services, and how deep—I had almost said, how fervent—is our gratitude.”

“Heyward! Duncan!” Alice exclaimed, leaning in to get a better look at his turned-away face, until a strand of her golden hair brushed against her flushed cheek, nearly hiding the tear that had welled up in her eye. “If I thought my careless words had hurt you, I would stop talking forever. Cora can tell you, if she wants to, just how much we value your help, and how deep—I almost said, how heartfelt—our gratitude is.”

“And will Cora attest the truth of this?” cried Duncan, suffering the cloud to be chased from his countenance by a smile of open pleasure. “What says our graver sister? Will she find an excuse for the neglect of the knight in the duty of a soldier?”

“And will Cora confirm this?” cried Duncan, allowing a smile of pure joy to chase away the seriousness from his face. “What does our more serious sister say? Will she come up with a reason for the knight's neglect of his duties as a soldier?”

Cora made no immediate answer, but turned her face toward the water, as if looking on the sheet of the Horican. When she did bend her dark eyes on the young man, they were yet filled with an expression of anguish that at once drove every thought but that of kind solicitude from his mind.

Cora didn’t respond right away, but turned her face toward the water, as if gazing at the surface of the Horican. When she finally looked at the young man, her dark eyes were filled with such anguish that it pushed aside every thought in his mind except for a deep concern for her.

“You are not well, dearest Miss Munro!” he exclaimed; “we have trifled while you are in suffering!”

“You're not feeling well, dear Miss Munro!” he exclaimed; “we've been goofing around while you're in pain!”

“’Tis nothing,” she answered, refusing his support with feminine reserve. “That I cannot see the sunny side of the picture of life, like this artless but ardent enthusiast,” she added, laying her hand lightly, but affectionately, on the arm of her sister, “is the penalty of experience, and, perhaps, the misfortune of my nature. See,” she continued, as if determined to shake off infirmity, in a sense of duty; “look around you, Major Heyward, and tell me what a prospect is this for the daughter of a soldier whose greatest happiness is his honor and his military renown.”

"It's nothing," she replied, gently rejecting his offer with a hint of feminine reserve. "The fact that I can't see the bright side of life, like this innocent but passionate enthusiast," she said, placing her hand lightly yet affectionately on her sister's arm, "is the price I've paid for experience, and maybe just the bad luck of my nature. Look around you, Major Heyward, and tell me what kind of future this is for the daughter of a soldier whose greatest happiness comes from his honor and military legacy."

“Neither ought nor shall be tarnished by circumstances over which he has had no control,” Duncan warmly replied. “But your words recall me to my own duty. I go now to your gallant father, to hear his determination in matters of the last moment to the defense. God bless you in every fortune, noble—Cora—I may and must call you.” She frankly gave him her hand, though her lip quivered, and her cheeks gradually became of ashly paleness. “In every fortune, I know you will be an ornament and honor to your sex. Alice, adieu”—his voice changed from admiration to tenderness—“adieu, Alice; we shall soon meet again; as conquerors, I trust, and amid rejoicings!”

“Neither should nor will be affected by circumstances he couldn’t control,” Duncan replied warmly. “But your words remind me of my own duty. I’m going now to your brave father to hear his decisions on matters crucial to our defense. May God bless you in every circumstance, noble—Cora—I can and must call you.” She willingly extended her hand to him, though her lips trembled, and her cheeks turned a pale ash. “In every situation, I know you will bring honor and grace to your gender. Alice, goodbye”—his tone shifted from admiration to tenderness—“goodbye, Alice; we will meet again soon; as victors, I hope, and in the midst of celebrations!”

Without waiting for an answer from either, the young man threw himself down the grassy steps of the bastion, and moving rapidly across the parade, he was quickly in the presence of their father. Munro was pacing his narrow apartment with a disturbed air and gigantic strides as Duncan entered.

Without waiting for a response from either of them, the young man jumped down the grassy steps of the bastion, and quickly made his way across the parade until he reached their father. Munro was pacing his small room with a troubled look and long strides as Duncan stepped in.

“You have anticipated my wishes, Major Heyward,” he said; “I was about to request this favor.”

“You’ve guessed what I wanted, Major Heyward,” he said; “I was just about to ask for this favor.”

“I am sorry to see, sir, that the messenger I so warmly recommended has returned in custody of the French! I hope there is no reason to distrust his fidelity?”

“I’m sorry to see, sir, that the messenger I recommended so highly has returned in the custody of the French! I hope there’s no reason to doubt his loyalty?”

“The fidelity of ‘The Long Rifle’ is well known to me,” returned Munro, “and is above suspicion; though his usual good fortune seems, at last, to have failed. Montcalm has got him, and with the accursed politeness of his nation, he has sent him in with a doleful tale, of ‘knowing how I valued the fellow, he could not think of retaining him.’ A Jesuitical way that, Major Duncan Heyward, of telling a man of his misfortunes!”

“The loyalty of ‘The Long Rifle’ is well known to me,” Munro replied, “and is beyond doubt; although it seems that his usual luck has finally run out. Montcalm has captured him, and with the damned politeness of his country, he sent him back with a sad story, saying that ‘knowing how much I valued the guy, he couldn’t think of keeping him.’ A sneaky way, that, Major Duncan Heyward, of letting someone know about their troubles!”

“But the general and his succor?”

“But what about the general and his support?”

“Did ye look to the south as ye entered, and could ye not see them?” said the old soldier, laughing bitterly. “Hoot! hoot! you’re an impatient boy, sir, and cannot give the gentlemen leisure for their march!”

“Did you look to the south as you entered, and couldn’t you see them?” said the old soldier, laughing bitterly. “Come on! You’re an impatient young man, sir, and you can’t give the gentlemen time to complete their march!”

“They are coming, then? The scout has said as much?”

“Are they coming then? The scout said that, right?”

“When? and by what path? for the dunce has omitted to tell me this. There is a letter, it would seem, too; and that is the only agreeable part of the matter. For the customary attentions of your Marquis of Montcalm—I warrant me, Duncan, that he of Lothian would buy a dozen such marquisates—but if the news of the letter were bad, the gentility of this French monsieur would certainly compel him to let us know it.”

“When? And by what means? The fool forgot to mention that. Apparently, there’s a letter as well, which is the only good part of this situation. As for the usual courtesies from your Marquis of Montcalm—I bet, Duncan, that the one from Lothian would pay a fortune for a dozen of those marquis titles—but if the letter brings bad news, the politeness of this French gentleman would definitely force him to inform us.”

“He keeps the letter, then, while he releases the messenger?”

“He keeps the letter, then, while he lets the messenger go?”

“Ay, that does he, and all for the sake of what you call your ‘bonhommie.’ I would venture, if the truth was known, the fellow’s grandfather taught the noble science of dancing.”

“Yeah, he really does, all for what you call your ‘good nature.’ I’d bet that if the truth came out, the guy’s grandfather taught the art of dancing.”

“But what says the scout? he has eyes and ears, and a tongue. What verbal report does he make?”

“But what does the scout say? He has eyes and ears, and he can speak. What does he report?”

“Oh! sir, he is not wanting in natural organs, and he is free to tell all that he has seen and heard. The whole amount is this; there is a fort of his majesty’s on the banks of the Hudson, called Edward, in honor of his gracious highness of York, you’ll know; and it is well filled with armed men, as such a work should be.”

“Oh! Sir, he has all his natural abilities, and he’s willing to share everything he has seen and heard. The main point is this: there’s a fort belonging to his majesty on the banks of the Hudson, called Edward, in honor of his gracious highness of York, as you know; and it is well-staffed with armed men, as a fort should be.”

“But was there no movement, no signs of any intention to advance to our relief?”

“But was there no movement, no signs that anyone planned to come to our aid?”

“There were the morning and evening parades; and when one of the provincial loons—you’ll know, Duncan, you’re half a Scotsman yourself—when one of them dropped his powder over his porretch, if it touched the coals, it just burned!” Then, suddenly changing his bitter, ironical manner, to one more grave and thoughtful, he continued: “and yet there might, and must be, something in that letter which it would be well to know!”

“There were the morning and evening parades; and when one of the provincial fools—you’ll know, Duncan, you’re half a Scotsman yourself—when one of them spilled his powder over his porch, if it touched the coals, it just burned!” Then, suddenly shifting from his bitter, ironic tone to a more serious and thoughtful one, he continued: “and yet there might, and must be, something in that letter which it would be good to know!”

“Our decision should be speedy,” said Duncan, gladly availing himself of this change of humor, to press the more important objects of their interview; “I cannot conceal from you, sir, that the camp will not be much longer tenable; and I am sorry to add, that things appear no better in the fort; more than half the guns are bursted.”

“Our decision should be quick,” said Duncan, happily taking advantage of this change in mood to discuss the more important topics of their meeting; “I can't hide from you, sir, that the camp won't hold out much longer; and I'm sorry to say, things don't look any better in the fort; more than half the cannons are destroyed.”

“And how should it be otherwise? Some were fished from the bottom of the lake; some have been rusting in woods since the discovery of the country; and some were never guns at all—mere privateersmen’s playthings! Do you think, sir, you can have Woolwich Warren in the midst of a wilderness, three thousand miles from Great Britain?”

“And how could it be any different? Some were pulled up from the bottom of the lake; some have been rusting in the woods since the country was discovered; and some were never guns at all—just toys for privateers! Do you really think, sir, that you can have Woolwich Warren in the middle of a wilderness, three thousand miles from Great Britain?”

“The walls are crumbling about our ears, and provisions begin to fail us,” continued Heyward, without regarding the new burst of indignation; “even the men show signs of discontent and alarm.”

“The walls are falling apart around us, and our supplies are running low,” Heyward continued, ignoring the new outbreak of anger; “even the men are starting to show signs of discontent and worry.”

“Major Heyward,” said Munro, turning to his youthful associate with the dignity of his years and superior rank; “I should have served his majesty for half a century, and earned these gray hairs in vain, were I ignorant of all you say, and of the pressing nature of our circumstances; still, there is everything due to the honor of the king’s arms, and something to ourselves. While there is hope of succor, this fortress will I defend, though it be to be done with pebbles gathered on the lake shore. It is a sight of the letter, therefore, that we want, that we may know the intentions of the man the earl of Loudon has left among us as his substitute.”

“Major Heyward,” Munro said, turning to his younger colleague with the authority that came from his experience and rank, “I could have served the king for fifty years and earned these gray hairs in vain if I didn’t understand everything you’ve said and the seriousness of our situation; still, we owe it to the honor of the king’s forces, and to ourselves. As long as there’s hope for help, I will defend this fortress, even if I have to do it with stones picked up from the shore of the lake. What we need now is to see that letter so we can understand the intentions of the man the Earl of Loudon has left here as his representative.”

“And can I be of service in the matter?”

“And can I help with this?”

“Sir, you can; the marquis of Montcalm has, in addition to his other civilities, invited me to a personal interview between the works and his own camp; in order, as he says, to impart some additional information. Now, I think it would not be wise to show any undue solicitude to meet him, and I would employ you, an officer of rank, as my substitute; for it would but ill comport with the honor of Scotland to let it be said one of her gentlemen was outdone in civility by a native of any other country on earth.”

“Sir, you can; the marquis of Montcalm has, besides his other kindnesses, invited me to a personal meeting between the fortifications and his camp; he claims it’s to share some additional information. Now, I don’t think it would be wise to show any eagerness to meet him, and I would like you, an officer of rank, to take my place; it wouldn’t reflect well on Scotland to let it be said that one of her gentlemen was outdone in politeness by someone from another country.”

Without assuming the supererogatory task of entering into a discussion of the comparative merits of national courtesy, Duncan cheerfully assented to supply the place of the veteran in the approaching interview. A long and confidential communication now succeeded, during which the young man received some additional insight into his duty, from the experience and native acuteness of his commander, and then the former took his leave.

Without taking on the extra task of discussing the relative merits of national politeness, Duncan happily agreed to take the place of the veteran in the upcoming meeting. A lengthy and confidential conversation followed, during which the young man gained further understanding of his responsibilities, thanks to the experience and natural sharpness of his commander, and then he took his leave.

As Duncan could only act as the representative of the commandant of the fort, the ceremonies which should have accompanied a meeting between the heads of the adverse forces were, of course, dispensed with. The truce still existed, and with a roll and beat of the drum, and covered by a little white flag, Duncan left the sally-port, within ten minutes after his instructions were ended. He was received by the French officer in advance with the usual formalities, and immediately accompanied to a distant marquee of the renowned soldier who led the forces of France.

As Duncan could only represent the commander of the fort, the formalities that should have come with a meeting between the leaders of the opposing forces were naturally skipped. The truce was still in place, and with a roll and beat of the drum, and waving a small white flag, Duncan left the sally-port just ten minutes after receiving his instructions. He was greeted by the French officer up front with the usual formalities and was promptly taken to a distant tent of the famous soldier who led the French forces.

The general of the enemy received the youthful messenger, surrounded by his principal officers, and by a swarthy band of the native chiefs, who had followed him to the field, with the warriors of their several tribes. Heyward paused short, when, in glancing his eyes rapidly over the dark group of the latter, he beheld the malignant countenance of Magua, regarding him with the calm but sullen attention which marked the expression of that subtle savage. A slight exclamation of surprise even burst from the lips of the young man, but instantly, recollecting his errand, and the presence in which he stood, he suppressed every appearance of emotion, and turned to the hostile leader, who had already advanced a step to receive him.

The enemy's general welcomed the young messenger, standing with his top officers and a dark group of local chiefs who had joined him on the battlefield, accompanied by warriors from their tribes. Heyward stopped short when he quickly scanned the dark group and spotted Magua, whose sinister expression watched him with a calm yet brooding intensity that characterized the cunning savage. A faint gasp of surprise escaped the young man's lips, but as soon as he remembered why he was there and the presence of others, he hid all signs of emotion and faced the enemy leader, who had already taken a step forward to greet him.

The marquis of Montcalm was, at the period of which we write, in the flower of his age, and, it may be added, in the zenith of his fortunes. But even in that enviable situation, he was affable, and distinguished as much for his attention to the forms of courtesy, as for that chivalrous courage which, only two short years afterward, induced him to throw away his life on the plains of Abraham. Duncan, in turning his eyes from the malign expression of Magua, suffered them to rest with pleasure on the smiling and polished features, and the noble military air, of the French general.

The Marquis of Montcalm was, at the time we’re discussing, at the peak of his life and, it’s worth noting, at the height of his success. Yet even in that enviable position, he was friendly and known as much for his polite manners as for the brave courage that, just two short years later, led him to sacrifice his life on the plains of Abraham. As Duncan shifted his gaze from Magua’s hostile expression, he found comfort in the smiling, refined features, and the dignified military presence of the French general.

“Monsieur,” said the latter, “j’ai beaucoup de plaisir à—bah!—où est cet interpréte?”

“Monsieur,” said the latter, “I’m very pleased to—well!—where is this interpreter?”

“Je crois, monsieur, qu’il ne sear pas nécessaire,” Heyward modestly replied; “je parle un peu Français.”

“1 believe, sir, that it won't be necessary,” Heyward modestly replied; “I speak a little French.”

“Ah! j’en suis bien aise,” said Montcalm, taking Duncan familiarly by the arm, and leading him deep into the marquee, a little out of earshot; “je déteste ces fripons-là; on ne sait jamais sur quel piè on est avec eux. Eh, bien! monsieur,” he continued still speaking in French; “though I should have been proud of receiving your commandant, I am very happy that he has seen proper to employ an officer so distinguished, and who, I am sure, is so amiable, as yourself.”

“Ah! I’m really glad to hear that,” said Montcalm, taking Duncan by the arm in a friendly way and leading him further into the marquee, a little out of earshot. “I can’t stand those sneaky guys; you never know what to expect from them. Well, sir,” he continued, still speaking in French, “although I would have been proud to host your commander, I’m very happy that he chose to use such a distinguished officer as you, who I’m sure is quite charming.”

Duncan bowed low, pleased with the compliment, in spite of a most heroic determination to suffer no artifice to allure him into forgetfulness of the interest of his prince; and Montcalm, after a pause of a moment, as if to collect his thoughts, proceeded:

Duncan bowed deeply, happy with the compliment, despite his strong resolve to not be swayed by any trickery that might make him forget his prince's interests; and Montcalm, after a brief pause to gather his thoughts, continued:

“Your commandant is a brave man, and well qualified to repel my assault. Mais, monsieur, is it not time to begin to take more counsel of humanity, and less of your courage? The one as strongly characterizes the hero as the other.”

“Your commander is a brave man, well-equipped to fend off my attack. But, sir, isn’t it time to start considering humanity more and relying less on your courage? Both qualities define a hero just as strongly as the other.”

“We consider the qualities as inseparable,” returned Duncan, smiling; “but while we find in the vigor of your excellency every motive to stimulate the one, we can, as yet, see no particular call for the exercise of the other.”

“We see the qualities as interconnected,” Duncan replied with a smile; “but while we recognize in your excellence every reason to encourage one, we currently see no specific need for the use of the other.”

Montcalm, in his turn, slightly bowed, but it was with the air of a man too practised to remember the language of flattery. After musing a moment, he added:

Montcalm, in response, gave a slight nod, but it was with the demeanor of someone too seasoned to recall the art of flattery. After thinking for a moment, he added:

“It is possible my glasses have deceived me, and that your works resist our cannon better than I had supposed. You know our force?”

“It’s possible my glasses have fooled me, and that your defenses hold up against our cannon better than I thought. Do you know our strength?”

“Our accounts vary,” said Duncan, carelessly; “the highest, however, has not exceeded twenty thousand men.”

“Our accounts are different,” Duncan said casually; “the highest, though, hasn’t gone over twenty thousand men.”

The Frenchman bit his lip, and fastened his eyes keenly on the other as if to read his thoughts; then, with a readiness peculiar to himself, he continued, as if assenting to the truth of an enumeration which quite doubled his army:

The Frenchman bit his lip and fixed his gaze intently on the other, as if trying to read his thoughts; then, with a quickness unique to him, he continued, as if agreeing with the idea that nearly doubled his army:

“It is a poor compliment to the vigilance of us soldiers, monsieur, that, do what we will, we never can conceal our numbers. If it were to be done at all, one would believe it might succeed in these woods. Though you think it too soon to listen to the calls of humanity,” he added, smiling archly, “I may be permitted to believe that gallantry is not forgotten by one so young as yourself. The daughters of the commandant, I learn, have passed into the fort since it was invested?”

“It’s not a great compliment to the watchfulness of us soldiers, sir, that no matter what we do, we can never hide our numbers. If it could be done at all, you would think it could work in these woods. Although you think it’s too early to heed the calls of humanity,” he said, smiling mischievously, “I’d like to believe that chivalry isn’t lost on someone as young as you. I hear that the commandant's daughters have entered the fort since it was surrounded?”

“It is true, monsieur; but, so far from weakening our efforts, they set us an example of courage in their own fortitude. Were nothing but resolution necessary to repel so accomplished a soldier as M. de Montcalm, I would gladly trust the defense of William Henry to the elder of those ladies.”

“It’s true, sir; but instead of weakening our efforts, they show us an example of bravery in their own strength. If all it took to fend off such a skilled soldier as M. de Montcalm was determination, I would happily rely on the elder of those ladies to defend William Henry.”

“We have a wise ordinance in our Salique laws, which says, ‘The crown of France shall never degrade the lance to the distaff’,” said Montcalm, dryly, and with a little hauteur; but instantly adding, with his former frank and easy air: “as all the nobler qualities are hereditary, I can easily credit you; though, as I said before, courage has its limits, and humanity must not be forgotten. I trust, monsieur, you come authorized to treat for the surrender of the place?”

“We have a wise rule in our Salique laws that says, ‘The crown of France shall never lower the lance to the distaff,’” Montcalm said dryly, with a bit of arrogance; but he quickly added, with his previous frank and relaxed demeanor: “since all the nobler qualities are inherited, I can easily believe you; however, as I mentioned before, courage has its limits, and we must not forget humanity. I trust, sir, that you are here with the authority to negotiate the surrender of the place?”

“Has your excellency found our defense so feeble as to believe the measure necessary?”

“Do you really think our defense is so weak that you believe this action is necessary?”

“I should be sorry to have the defense protracted in such a manner as to irritate my red friends there,” continued Montcalm, glancing his eyes at the group of grave and attentive Indians, without attending to the other’s questions; “I find it difficult, even now, to limit them to the usages of war.”

“I would hate to see the defense dragged on in a way that annoys my Native friends over there,” Montcalm continued, glancing at the serious and focused group of Indians, ignoring the other person's questions. “I find it hard, even now, to keep them to the rules of warfare.”

Heyward was silent; for a painful recollection of the dangers he had so recently escaped came over his mind, and recalled the images of those defenseless beings who had shared in all his sufferings.

Heyward was quiet; a painful memory of the dangers he had just escaped filled his mind, bringing back the images of those vulnerable people who had endured all his struggles with him.

“Ces messieurs-là,” said Montcalm, following up the advantage which he conceived he had gained, “are most formidable when baffled; and it is unnecessary to tell you with what difficulty they are restrained in their anger. Eh bien, monsieur! shall we speak of the terms?”

“Those gentlemen,” Montcalm said, exploiting the advantage he thought he had gained, “are most dangerous when frustrated; and I don’t need to explain how hard it is to keep them calm when they’re angry. Well then, sir! Shall we discuss the terms?”

“I fear your excellency has been deceived as to the strength of William Henry, and the resources of its garrison!”

“I’m afraid your excellency has been misled about the strength of William Henry and the resources of its garrison!”

“I have not sat down before Quebec, but an earthen work, that is defended by twenty-three hundred gallant men,” was the laconic reply.

“I haven’t taken a seat in front of Quebec, but there’s a solid fortification here, held by twenty-three hundred brave men,” was the brief response.

“Our mounds are earthen, certainly—nor are they seated on the rocks of Cape Diamond; but they stand on that shore which proved so destructive to Dieskau and his army. There is also a powerful force within a few hours’ march of us, which we account upon as a part of our means.”

“Our mounds are indeed made of earth—nor are they placed on the rocks of Cape Diamond; but they are located on that shore that was so devastating to Dieskau and his army. There is also a strong force just a few hours' march away from us, which we consider as a part of our resources.”

“Some six or eight thousand men,” returned Montcalm, with much apparent indifference, “whom their leader wisely judges to be safer in their works than in the field.”

“About six or eight thousand men,” Montcalm replied, sounding quite indifferent, “whom their leader wisely believes are safer in their defenses than out in the open.”

It was now Heyward’s turn to bite his lip with vexation as the other so coolly alluded to a force which the young man knew to be overrated. Both mused a little while in silence, when Montcalm renewed the conversation, in a way that showed he believed the visit of his guest was solely to propose terms of capitulation. On the other hand, Heyward began to throw sundry inducements in the way of the French general, to betray the discoveries he had made through the intercepted letter. The artifice of neither, however, succeeded; and after a protracted and fruitless interview, Duncan took his leave, favorably impressed with an opinion of the courtesy and talents of the enemy’s captain, but as ignorant of what he came to learn as when he arrived. Montcalm followed him as far as the entrance of the marquee, renewing his invitations to the commandant of the fort to give him an immediate meeting in the open ground between the two armies.

It was now Heyward’s turn to bite his lip in frustration as the other casually referenced a force that the young man knew was exaggerated. They both fell into a brief silence, then Montcalm resumed the conversation in a way that made it clear he thought the purpose of his guest’s visit was just to propose terms of surrender. Meanwhile, Heyward started to offer various incentives to the French general, hoping to get him to share the information he had gathered from the intercepted letter. However, neither of their strategies worked; after a long and unproductive meeting, Duncan left feeling positively impressed with the courtesy and skills of the enemy’s leader, but no more informed than when he arrived. Montcalm walked with him to the entrance of the tent, extending his invitation again for the fort's commander to meet with him immediately in the open area between the two armies.

There they separated, and Duncan returned to the advanced post of the French, accompanied as before; whence he instantly proceeded to the fort, and to the quarters of his own commander.

There they split up, and Duncan went back to the French's forward position, accompanied as before; from there, he quickly headed to the fort and to his own commander's quarters.

CHAPTER XVI.

“EDG.—Before you fight the battle ope this letter.”
—Lear

“EDG.—Before you go into battle, open this letter.”
—Lear

Major Heyward found Munro attended only by his daughters. Alice sat upon his knee, parting the gray hairs on the forehead of the old man with her delicate fingers; and whenever he affected to frown on her trifling, appeasing his assumed anger by pressing her ruby lips fondly on his wrinkled brow. Cora was seated nigh them, a calm and amused looker-on; regarding the wayward movements of her more youthful sister with that species of maternal fondness which characterized her love for Alice. Not only the dangers through which they had passed, but those which still impended above them, appeared to be momentarily forgotten, in the soothing indulgence of such a family meeting. It seemed as if they had profited by the short truce, to devote an instant to the purest and best affection; the daughters forgetting their fears, and the veteran his cares, in the security of the moment. Of this scene, Duncan, who, in his eagerness to report his arrival, had entered unannounced, stood many moments an unobserved and a delighted spectator. But the quick and dancing eyes of Alice soon caught a glimpse of his figure reflected from a glass, and she sprang blushing from her father’s knee, exclaiming aloud:

Major Heyward found Munro being attended only by his daughters. Alice sat on his knee, gently parting the gray hairs on the old man's forehead with her delicate fingers. Whenever he pretended to frown at her playful antics, she would soothe his feigned anger by pressing her ruby lips affectionately against his wrinkled brow. Cora was sitting nearby, watching with a calm and amused expression, observing the playful antics of her younger sister with a sort of maternal affection that characterized her love for Alice. Not only did they seem to forget the dangers they had faced, but also those that still loomed over them, in the comforting embrace of this family gathering. It felt as if they were taking advantage of the brief peace to indulge in pure and genuine affection; the daughters pushed aside their fears, and the veteran set aside his worries in the serenity of that moment. Duncan, who had entered without announcing himself in his eagerness to share his arrival, stood for several moments as a delighted but unnoticed observer of this scene. However, Alice's quick and sparkling eyes soon caught sight of his reflection in a mirror, and she sprang blushing from her father’s knee, exclaiming aloud:

“Major Heyward!”

“Major Heyward!”

“What of the lad?” demanded her father; “I have sent him to crack a little with the Frenchman. Ha, sir, you are young, and you’re nimble! Away with you, ye baggage; as if there were not troubles enough for a soldier, without having his camp filled with such prattling hussies as yourself!”

“What about the boy?” her father asked. “I’ve sent him to have a little chat with the Frenchman. Ha, kid, you’re young and quick! Get lost, you nuisance; as if there weren’t enough problems for a soldier without having his camp filled with chatty girls like you!”

Alice laughingly followed her sister, who instantly led the way from an apartment where she perceived their presence was no longer desirable. Munro, instead of demanding the result of the young man’s mission, paced the room for a few moments, with his hands behind his back, and his head inclined toward the floor, like a man lost in thought. At length he raised his eyes, glistening with a father’s fondness, and exclaimed:

Alice laughed as she followed her sister, who quickly led the way out of an apartment where it was clear their presence was no longer welcome. Munro, instead of asking about the young man’s mission, paced the room for a few moments with his hands behind his back and his head tilted down like someone deep in thought. Finally, he lifted his gaze, shining with a father’s affection, and exclaimed:

“They are a pair of excellent girls, Heyward, and such as any one may boast of.”

“They're a couple of amazing girls, Heyward, and anyone would be proud to have them.”

“You are not now to learn my opinion of your daughters, Colonel Munro.”

"You don't need to hear my thoughts on your daughters, Colonel Munro."

“True, lad, true,” interrupted the impatient old man; “you were about opening your mind more fully on that matter the day you got in, but I did not think it becoming in an old soldier to be talking of nuptial blessings and wedding jokes when the enemies of his king were likely to be unbidden guests at the feast. But I was wrong, Duncan, boy, I was wrong there; and I am now ready to hear what you have to say.”

“It's true, kid, it's true,” interrupted the impatient old man; “you were about to share more of your thoughts on that when you arrived, but I didn’t think it appropriate for an old soldier to be discussing wedding blessings and jokes when the enemies of his king might be uninvited guests at the celebration. But I was wrong, Duncan, I admit it; and I'm ready to hear what you have to say now.”

“Notwithstanding the pleasure your assurance gives me, dear sir, I have just now, a message from Montcalm—”

“Even though your reassurance brings me joy, dear sir, I just received a message from Montcalm—”

“Let the Frenchman and all his host go to the devil, sir!” exclaimed the hasty veteran. “He is not yet master of William Henry, nor shall he ever be, provided Webb proves himself the man he should. No, sir, thank Heaven we are not yet in such a strait that it can be said Munro is too much pressed to discharge the little domestic duties of his own family. Your mother was the only child of my bosom friend, Duncan; and I’ll just give you a hearing, though all the knights of St. Louis were in a body at the sally-port, with the French saint at their head, crying to speak a word under favor. A pretty degree of knighthood, sir, is that which can be bought with sugar hogsheads! and then your twopenny marquisates. The thistle is the order for dignity and antiquity; the veritable ‘nemo me impune lacessit’ of chivalry. Ye had ancestors in that degree, Duncan, and they were an ornament to the nobles of Scotland.”

“Let the Frenchman and his whole army go to hell, sir!” shouted the impatient veteran. “He doesn’t yet control William Henry, and he never will, as long as Webb proves to be the man he needs to be. No, sir, thank God we’re not in such a tight spot that we can say Munro is too overwhelmed to handle his own family’s little responsibilities. Your mother was the only child of my close friend, Duncan; and I’ll listen to you, even if all the knights of St. Louis were gathered at the sally-port, with the French saint leading them, asking to speak a word. What kind of knighthood, sir, can be bought with barrels of sugar? And then your cheap marquisates. The thistle represents dignity and tradition; it's the real ‘nemo me impune lacessit’ of chivalry. You had ancestors of that rank, Duncan, and they were a credit to the nobility of Scotland.”

Heyward, who perceived that his superior took a malicious pleasure in exhibiting his contempt for the message of the French general, was fain to humor a spleen that he knew would be short-lived; he therefore, replied with as much indifference as he could assume on such a subject:

Heyward, who noticed that his superior took a nasty joy in showing his disdain for the French general's message, felt compelled to tolerate a mood he knew would be temporary; he therefore responded with as much indifference as he could muster on such a topic:

“My request, as you know, sir, went so far as to presume to the honor of being your son.”

“My request, as you know, sir, went so far as to assume the honor of being your son.”

“Ay, boy, you found words to make yourself very plainly comprehended. But, let me ask ye, sir, have you been as intelligible to the girl?”

“Ay, boy, you found words to make yourself very clearly understood. But, let me ask you, sir, have you been as clear to the girl?”

“On my honor, no,” exclaimed Duncan, warmly; “there would have been an abuse of a confided trust, had I taken advantage of my situation for such a purpose.”

“Honestly, no,” Duncan said passionately; “it would have been a betrayal of trust if I had exploited my position for that purpose.”

“Your notions are those of a gentleman, Major Heyward, and well enough in their place. But Cora Munro is a maiden too discreet, and of a mind too elevated and improved, to need the guardianship even of a father.”

“Your ideas are those of a gentleman, Major Heyward, and they’re good in their own way. But Cora Munro is too thoughtful and too refined to need the protection of even her father.”

“Cora!”

“Cora!”

“Ay—Cora! we are talking of your pretensions to Miss Munro, are we not, sir?”

“Ay—Cora! we're discussing your claims to Miss Munro, right?”

“I—I—I was not conscious of having mentioned her name,” said Duncan, stammering.

“I—I—I didn't realize I had said her name,” said Duncan, stumbling over his words.

“And to marry whom, then, did you wish my consent, Major Heyward?” demanded the old soldier, erecting himself in the dignity of offended feeling.

“And who did you want me to approve of, Major Heyward?” asked the old soldier, standing tall in his wounded pride.

“You have another, and not less lovely child.”

“You have another child, and they’re just as lovely.”

“Alice!” exclaimed the father, in an astonishment equal to that with which Duncan had just repeated the name of her sister.

“Alice!” the father exclaimed, equally astonished as Duncan had been when he said her sister's name.

“Such was the direction of my wishes, sir.”

“That's what I was hoping for, sir.”

The young man awaited in silence the result of the extraordinary effect produced by a communication, which, as it now appeared, was so unexpected. For several minutes Munro paced the chamber with long and rapid strides, his rigid features working convulsively, and every faculty seemingly absorbed in the musings of his own mind. At length, he paused directly in front of Heyward, and riveting his eyes upon those of the other, he said, with a lip that quivered violently:

The young man waited in silence for the results of the astonishing communication, which now seemed completely unexpected. For several minutes, Munro paced the room with long, quick steps, his tense face showing signs of struggle, and every part of him seemingly lost in his own thoughts. Finally, he stopped right in front of Heyward, locking his gaze onto the other’s eyes, and said, his lips trembling violently:

“Duncan Heyward, I have loved you for the sake of him whose blood is in your veins; I have loved you for your own good qualities; and I have loved you, because I thought you would contribute to the happiness of my child. But all this love would turn to hatred, were I assured that what I so much apprehend is true.”

“Duncan Heyward, I have loved you because of the bloodline you come from; I have loved you for your good qualities; and I have loved you because I believed you would bring happiness to my child. But all this love would become hatred if I were certain that what I fear is true.”

“God forbid that any act or thought of mine should lead to such a change!” exclaimed the young man, whose eye never quailed under the penetrating look it encountered. Without adverting to the impossibility of the other’s comprehending those feelings which were hid in his own bosom, Munro suffered himself to be appeased by the unaltered countenance he met, and with a voice sensibly softened, he continued:

“God forbid that anything I do or think should cause such a change!” exclaimed the young man, whose gaze never faltered under the intense stare he faced. Without acknowledging the other’s inability to understand the feelings hidden deep within him, Munro allowed himself to be calmed by the unchanged expression he encountered, and with a noticeably gentler voice, he continued:

“You would be my son, Duncan, and you’re ignorant of the history of the man you wish to call your father. Sit ye down, young man, and I will open to you the wounds of a seared heart, in as few words as may be suitable.”

“You would be my son, Duncan, and you don’t know the history of the man you want to call your father. Sit down, young man, and I will share with you the pain of a wounded heart, in as few words as possible.”

By this time, the message of Montcalm was as much forgotten by him who bore it as by the man for whose ears it was intended. Each drew a chair, and while the veteran communed a few moments with his own thoughts, apparently in sadness, the youth suppressed his impatience in a look and attitude of respectful attention. At length, the former spoke:

By this time, the message from Montcalm was just as forgotten by the person delivering it as by the man it was meant for. They each took a seat, and while the veteran spent a few moments lost in his own thoughts, seemingly with a heavy heart, the young man held back his impatience, showing his respect through his expression and posture. Finally, the veteran spoke:

“You’ll know, already, Major Heyward, that my family was both ancient and honorable,” commenced the Scotsman; “though it might not altogether be endowed with that amount of wealth that should correspond with its degree. I was, maybe, such an one as yourself when I plighted my faith to Alice Graham, the only child of a neighboring laird of some estate. But the connection was disagreeable to her father, on more accounts than my poverty. I did, therefore, what an honest man should—restored the maiden her troth, and departed the country in the service of my king. I had seen many regions, and had shed much blood in different lands, before duty called me to the islands of the West Indies. There it was my lot to form a connection with one who in time became my wife, and the mother of Cora. She was the daughter of a gentleman of those isles, by a lady whose misfortune it was, if you will,” said the old man, proudly, “to be descended, remotely, from that unfortunate class who are so basely enslaved to administer to the wants of a luxurious people. Ay, sir, that is a curse, entailed on Scotland by her unnatural union with a foreign and trading people. But could I find a man among them who would dare to reflect on my child, he should feel the weight of a father’s anger! Ha! Major Heyward, you are yourself born at the south, where these unfortunate beings are considered of a race inferior to your own.”

“You already know, Major Heyward, that my family is both old and respected,” the Scotsman began. “Although it may not be as wealthy as one might expect given its status. I was perhaps like you when I pledged my loyalty to Alice Graham, the only daughter of a neighboring landowner with considerable property. However, her father disapproved of our connection for reasons beyond my financial situation. So, I did what any honorable man would do—I returned her promise and left the country to serve my king. I traveled to many places and shed a lot of blood in different lands before duty brought me to the West Indies. There, I formed a bond with someone who eventually became my wife and the mother of Cora. She was the daughter of a gentleman from those islands, born to a lady who, if I may say,” the old man said proudly, “was unfortunately descended, albeit distantly, from that wretched class enslaved to serve the needs of a wealthy society. Yes, sir, that is a curse that has been passed down to Scotland due to her unnatural union with a foreign trading people. But should I ever find a man among them who dares to speak ill of my child, he will face a father's wrath! Ha! Major Heyward, you yourself are from the south, where these unfortunate souls are regarded as an inferior race compared to your own.”

“’Tis most unfortunately true, sir,” said Duncan, unable any longer to prevent his eyes from sinking to the floor in embarrassment.

“It’s really unfortunate, sir,” said Duncan, unable to keep his eyes from dropping to the floor in embarrassment any longer.

“And you cast it on my child as a reproach! You scorn to mingle the blood of the Heywards with one so degraded—lovely and virtuous though she be?” fiercely demanded the jealous parent.

“And you threw it in my child’s face as a shame! You refuse to let the Heyward name be connected with someone so low—beautiful and good as she is?” the jealous parent demanded fiercely.

“Heaven protect me from a prejudice so unworthy of my reason!” returned Duncan, at the same time conscious of such a feeling, and that as deeply rooted as if it had been ingrafted in his nature. “The sweetness, the beauty, the witchery of your younger daughter, Colonel Munro, might explain my motives without imputing to me this injustice.”

“Heaven help me from a bias so unworthy of my reason!” Duncan replied, aware of that feeling, which was as deeply ingrained as if it had been part of his nature. “The charm, the beauty, the enchantment of your younger daughter, Colonel Munro, could justify my motives without accusing me of this unfairness.”

“Ye are right, sir,” returned the old man, again changing his tones to those of gentleness, or rather softness; “the girl is the image of what her mother was at her years, and before she had become acquainted with grief. When death deprived me of my wife I returned to Scotland, enriched by the marriage; and, would you think it, Duncan! the suffering angel had remained in the heartless state of celibacy twenty long years, and that for the sake of a man who could forget her! She did more, sir; she overlooked my want of faith, and, all difficulties being now removed, she took me for her husband.”

"You’re right, sir," replied the old man, once again softening his tone; "the girl is just like her mother was at her age, before she had to deal with sorrow. When death took my wife, I went back to Scotland, having gained so much from our marriage; and can you believe it, Duncan! That suffering angel spent twenty long years in that cold state of being single, all for a man who could forget her! She did even more, sir; she forgave my lack of faith, and with all obstacles now gone, she chose me to be her husband."

“And became the mother of Alice?” exclaimed Duncan, with an eagerness that might have proved dangerous at a moment when the thoughts of Munro were less occupied that at present.

“And became the mother of Alice?” Duncan exclaimed, his eagerness so intense it could have been risky if Munro's thoughts weren't as preoccupied as they were at that moment.

“She did, indeed,” said the old man, “and dearly did she pay for the blessing she bestowed. But she is a saint in heaven, sir; and it ill becomes one whose foot rests on the grave to mourn a lot so blessed. I had her but a single year, though; a short term of happiness for one who had seen her youth fade in hopeless pining.”

“She did, for sure,” said the old man, “and she paid dearly for the blessing she gave. But she’s a saint in heaven, sir; and it’s not right for someone whose foot is on the grave to mourn such a blessed fate. I only had her for a single year, though; a brief moment of happiness for someone who had watched her youth slip away in hopeless longing.”

There was something so commanding in the distress of the old man, that Heyward did not dare to venture a syllable of consolation. Munro sat utterly unconscious of the other’s presence, his features exposed and working with the anguish of his regrets, while heavy tears fell from his eyes, and rolled unheeded from his cheeks to the floor. At length he moved, and as if suddenly recovering his recollection; when he arose, and taking a single turn across the room, he approached his companion with an air of military grandeur, and demanded:

There was something so powerful about the old man’s distress that Heyward didn’t dare to say a word of comfort. Munro sat completely unaware of the other’s presence, his face showing the pain of his regrets, while heavy tears streamed down his cheeks, falling unnoticed to the floor. Finally, he moved as if suddenly remembering something; when he stood up and took a single turn across the room, he approached his companion with a sense of military authority and demanded:

“Have you not, Major Heyward, some communication that I should hear from the marquis de Montcalm?”

“Don’t you have any update for me, Major Heyward, about the marquis de Montcalm?”

Duncan started in his turn, and immediately commenced in an embarrassed voice, the half-forgotten message. It is unnecessary to dwell upon the evasive though polite manner with which the French general had eluded every attempt of Heyward to worm from him the purport of the communication he had proposed making, or on the decided, though still polished message, by which he now gave his enemy to understand, that, unless he chose to receive it in person, he should not receive it at all. As Munro listened to the detail of Duncan, the excited feelings of the father gradually gave way before the obligations of his station, and when the other was done, he saw before him nothing but the veteran, swelling with the wounded feelings of a soldier.

Duncan began his turn and awkwardly started to share the somewhat forgotten message. There's no need to focus on the polite yet evasive way the French general dodged every effort from Heyward to extract the meaning of the message he intended to deliver, or on the firm, although still courteous manner, in which he made it clear to his opponent that he would not receive it unless he came to take it personally. As Munro listened to Duncan's recounting, his initial excitement as a father slowly shifted to the responsibilities of his role, and when Duncan finished, he saw before him only the veteran, filled with the hurt feelings of a soldier.

“You have said enough, Major Heyward,” exclaimed the angry old man; “enough to make a volume of commentary on French civility. Here has this gentleman invited me to a conference, and when I send him a capable substitute, for ye’re all that, Duncan, though your years are but few, he answers me with a riddle.”

“You’ve said enough, Major Heyward,” the angry old man exclaimed. “Enough to fill a book about French manners. This gentleman invited me to a meeting, and when I send him a competent substitute—because you really are capable, Duncan, even if you are still young—he responds with a riddle.”

“He may have thought less favorably of the substitute, my dear sir; and you will remember that the invitation, which he now repeats, was to the commandant of the works, and not to his second.”

“He might not have thought too highly of the substitute, my dear sir; and you will recall that the invitation he is now repeating was directed to the commandant of the works, not to his second.”

“Well, sir, is not a substitute clothed with all the power and dignity of him who grants the commission? He wishes to confer with Munro! Faith, sir, I have much inclination to indulge the man, if it should only be to let him behold the firm countenance we maintain in spite of his numbers and his summons. There might be not bad policy in such a stroke, young man.”

"Well, sir, isn't a substitute given all the power and respect of the person who issues the order? He wants to talk to Munro! Honestly, sir, I'm quite inclined to give him what he wants, if only to show him the strong resolve we keep despite his numbers and his demands. There could be some smart strategy in that, young man."

Duncan, who believed it of the last importance that they should speedily come to the contents of the letter borne by the scout, gladly encouraged this idea.

Duncan, who thought it was extremely important that they quickly focus on the contents of the letter carried by the scout, was happy to support this idea.

“Without doubt, he could gather no confidence by witnessing our indifference,” he said.

“Without a doubt, he couldn’t gain any confidence by seeing our indifference,” he said.

“You never said truer word. I could wish, sir, that he would visit the works in open day, and in the form of a storming party; that is the least failing method of proving the countenance of an enemy, and would be far preferable to the battering system he has chosen. The beauty and manliness of warfare has been much deformed, Major Heyward, by the arts of your Monsieur Vauban. Our ancestors were far above such scientific cowardice!”

“You've never spoken a truer word. I wish, sir, that he would come to the site during the day and attack like a storming party; that's the least cowardly way to challenge an enemy, and it would be much better than the battering tactics he has chosen. The beauty and bravery of warfare have been greatly distorted, Major Heyward, by the methods of your Monsieur Vauban. Our ancestors were far too noble for such scientific cowardice!”

“It may be very true, sir; but we are now obliged to repel art by art. What is your pleasure in the matter of the interview?”

“It might be very true, sir; but now we have to counter art with art. What do you want to do about the interview?”

“I will meet the Frenchman, and that without fear or delay; promptly, sir, as becomes a servant of my royal master. Go, Major Heyward, and give them a flourish of the music; and send out a messenger to let them know who is coming. We will follow with a small guard, for such respect is due to one who holds the honor of his king in keeping; and hark’ee, Duncan,” he added, in a half whisper, though they were alone, “it may be prudent to have some aid at hand, in case there should be treachery at the bottom of it all.”

“I will meet the Frenchman, and I’ll do it without fear or delay; right away, sir, as befits a servant of my royal master. Go, Major Heyward, and play the music for them; and send out a messenger to let them know who’s coming. We’ll follow with a small guard, as such respect is owed to someone who keeps the honor of his king; and listen, Duncan,” he added, in a half whisper, even though they were alone, “it might be wise to have some backup ready, just in case there’s treachery involved.”

The young man availed himself of this order to quit the apartment; and, as the day was fast coming to a close, he hastened without delay, to make the necessary arrangements. A very few minutes only were necessary to parade a few files, and to dispatch an orderly with a flag to announce the approach of the commandant of the fort. When Duncan had done both these, he led the guard to the sally-port, near which he found his superior ready, waiting his appearance. As soon as the usual ceremonials of a military departure were observed, the veteran and his more youthful companion left the fortress, attended by the escort.

The young man took advantage of this order to leave the apartment; and, as the day was quickly coming to an end, he hurried without delay to make the necessary arrangements. It only took a few minutes to line up a few soldiers and send an orderly with a flag to announce the arrival of the fort's commandant. Once Duncan had done both, he led the guard to the sally-port, where he found his superior waiting for him. After the usual formalities of a military departure were completed, the veteran and his younger companion left the fortress, accompanied by the escort.

They had proceeded only a hundred yards from the works, when the little array which attended the French general to the conference was seen issuing from the hollow way which formed the bed of a brook that ran between the batteries of the besiegers and the fort. From the moment that Munro left his own works to appear in front of his enemy’s, his air had been grand, and his step and countenance highly military. The instant he caught a glimpse of the white plume that waved in the hat of Montcalm, his eye lighted, and age no longer appeared to possess any influence over his vast and still muscular person.

They had walked only a hundred yards from their position when the small group accompanying the French general to the meeting emerged from the narrow path that had formed the bed of a brook running between the besiegers' artillery and the fort. From the moment Munro left his own defenses to face his enemy, he carried himself with dignity, and his gait and expression were distinctly military. The moment he spotted the white feather in Montcalm's hat, his eyes lit up, and the effects of age seemed to vanish from his strong and still powerful frame.

“Speak to the boys to be watchful, sir,” he said, in an undertone, to Duncan; “and to look well to their flints and steel, for one is never safe with a servant of these Louis’s; at the same time, we shall show them the front of men in deep security. Ye’ll understand me, Major Heyward!”

“Talk to the guys and tell them to be on alert, sir,” he said quietly to Duncan; “and to keep an eye on their flints and steel, because you can never be too careful with a servant of these Louis's; but at the same time, we’ll present ourselves like men who are completely secure. You get what I mean, Major Heyward!”

[Illustration]

He was interrupted by the clamor of a drum from the approaching Frenchmen, which was immediately answered, when each party pushed an orderly in advance, bearing a white flag, and the wary Scotsman halted with his guard close at his back. As soon as this slight salutation had passed, Montcalm moved toward them with a quick but graceful step, baring his head to the veteran, and dropping his spotless plume nearly to the earth in courtesy. If the air of Munro was more commanding and manly, it wanted both the ease and insinuating polish of that of the Frenchman. Neither spoke for a few moments, each regarding the other with curious and interested eyes. Then, as became his superior rank and the nature of the interview, Montcalm broke the silence. After uttering the usual words of greeting, he turned to Duncan, and continued, with a smile of recognition, speaking always in French:

He was interrupted by the sound of a drum from the approaching Frenchmen, which was quickly met with a response as each side sent an orderly forward carrying a white flag. The cautious Scotsman stopped, keeping his guard close behind him. Once this brief greeting was exchanged, Montcalm approached them with a swift yet graceful stride, removing his hat to the veteran and lowering his immaculate feather almost to the ground in respect. While Munro had a more commanding and masculine presence, he lacked the ease and subtle charm that the Frenchman possessed. They both observed each other in silence for a few moments, their eyes curious and engaged. Then, as fitting for his higher rank and the nature of their meeting, Montcalm broke the silence. After exchanging the usual formalities, he turned to Duncan and continued, smiling in recognition, still speaking in French:

“I am rejoiced, monsieur, that you have given us the pleasure of your company on this occasion. There will be no necessity to employ an ordinary interpreter; for, in your hands, I feel the same security as if I spoke your language myself.”

“I’m really happy, sir, that you’ve chosen to be with us today. We won’t need a regular interpreter because with you, I feel just as comfortable as if I spoke your language myself.”

Duncan acknowledged the compliment, when Montcalm, turning to his guard, which in imitation of that of their enemies, pressed close upon him, continued:

Duncan accepted the compliment when Montcalm, turning to his guard, which closely surrounded him in imitation of their enemies, went on:

“En arriere, mes enfants—il fait chaud—-retirez-vous un peu.”

“Step back, my children—it's hot—move back a bit.”

Before Major Heyward would imitate this proof of confidence, he glanced his eyes around the plain, and beheld with uneasiness the numerous dusky groups of savages, who looked out from the margin of the surrounding woods, curious spectators of the interview.

Before Major Heyward would mimic this show of trust, he looked around the plain and felt uneasy seeing the many dark groups of savages peering out from the edge of the surrounding woods, curious spectators of the meeting.

“Monsieur de Montcalm will readily acknowledge the difference in our situation,” he said, with some embarrassment, pointing at the same time toward those dangerous foes, who were to be seen in almost every direction. “Were we to dismiss our guard, we should stand here at the mercy of our enemies.”

“Monsieur de Montcalm will easily recognize the difference in our situation,” he said, feeling a bit embarrassed, while pointing toward those dangerous foes who were visible in almost every direction. “If we were to let down our guard, we would be standing here at the mercy of our enemies.”

“Monsieur, you have the plighted faith of ‘un gentilhomme Français’, for your safety,” returned Montcalm, laying his hand impressively on his heart; “it should suffice.”

“Sir, you have the pledged word of a ‘French gentleman’ for your safety,” Montcalm replied, placing his hand dramatically on his heart; “that should be enough.”

“It shall. Fall back,” Duncan added to the officer who led the escort; “fall back, sir, beyond hearing, and wait for orders.”

“It will. Fall back,” Duncan said to the officer in charge of the escort; “fall back, sir, out of earshot, and wait for instructions.”

Munro witnessed this movement with manifest uneasiness; nor did he fail to demand an instant explanation.

Munro watched this movement with clear discomfort and didn’t hesitate to ask for an immediate explanation.

“Is it not our interest, sir, to betray no distrust?” retorted Duncan. “Monsieur de Montcalm pledges his word for our safety, and I have ordered the men to withdraw a little, in order to prove how much we depend on his assurance.”

“Isn’t it in our best interest, sir, to show no distrust?” Duncan replied. “Monsieur de Montcalm promises our safety, and I’ve told the men to step back a bit to show how much we rely on his word.”

“It may be all right, sir, but I have no overweening reliance on the faith of these marquesses, or marquis, as they call themselves. Their patents of nobility are too common to be certain that they bear the seal of true honor.”

“It might be fine, sir, but I’m not overly confident in the trustworthiness of these marquesses, or marquis, as they like to call themselves. Their noble titles are too common to guarantee that they represent true honor.”

“You forget, dear sir, that we confer with an officer, distinguished alike in Europe and America for his deeds. From a soldier of his reputation we can have nothing to apprehend.”

“You forget, dear sir, that we are speaking with an officer, known for his accomplishments in both Europe and America. From a soldier of his stature, we have nothing to fear.”

The old man made a gesture of resignation, though his rigid features still betrayed his obstinate adherence to a distrust, which he derived from a sort of hereditary contempt of his enemy, rather than from any present signs which might warrant so uncharitable a feeling. Montcalm waited patiently until this little dialogue in demi-voice was ended, when he drew nigher, and opened the subject of their conference.

The old man sighed in resignation, although his stiff features still showed his stubborn distrust, which seemed to come from a long-standing disdain for his enemy rather than any current reasons that could justify such unkind feelings. Montcalm waited patiently for this quiet exchange to finish, then moved closer and brought up the topic of their meeting.

“I have solicited this interview from your superior, monsieur,” he said, “because I believe he will allow himself to be persuaded that he has already done everything which is necessary for the honor of his prince, and will now listen to the admonitions of humanity. I will forever bear testimony that his resistance has been gallant, and was continued as long as there was hope.”

“I requested this meeting with your boss, sir,” he said, “because I think he will be convinced that he has already done everything required for the honor of his prince and will now be open to the advice of compassion. I will always testify that his resistance was brave and lasted as long as there was hope.”

When this opening was translated to Munro, he answered with dignity, but with sufficient courtesy:

When this opening was translated to Munro, he responded with dignity, but with enough courtesy:

“However I may prize such testimony from Monsieur Montcalm, it will be more valuable when it shall be better merited.”

“While I appreciate such praise from Monsieur Montcalm, it will mean more when it’s truly deserved.”

The French general smiled, as Duncan gave him the purport of this reply, and observed:

The French general smiled as Duncan shared the gist of this reply and remarked:

“What is now so freely accorded to approved courage, may be refused to useless obstinacy. Monsieur would wish to see my camp, and witness for himself our numbers, and the impossibility of his resisting them with success?”

“What people now generously grant to genuine bravery might be denied to pointless stubbornness. Monsieur wants to see my camp and see for himself our numbers, and how impossible it would be for him to resist them successfully?”

“I know that the king of France is well served,” returned the unmoved Scotsman, as soon as Duncan ended his translation; “but my own royal master has as many and as faithful troops.”

“I know that the king of France is well served,” replied the unmoved Scotsman, immediately after Duncan finished translating; “but my own royal master has just as many loyal troops.”

“Though not at hand, fortunately for us,” said Montcalm, without waiting, in his ardor, for the interpreter. “There is a destiny in war, to which a brave man knows how to submit with the same courage that he faces his foes.”

“Though it’s not here right now, thankfully for us,” Montcalm said, eagerly continuing without waiting for the interpreter. “There’s a fate in war that a brave person knows how to accept with the same courage that they confront their enemies.”

“Had I been conscious that Monsieur Montcalm was master of the English, I should have spared myself the trouble of so awkward a translation,” said the vexed Duncan, dryly; remembering instantly his recent by-play with Munro.

“Had I known that Monsieur Montcalm was in charge of the English, I would have saved myself the trouble of such an awkward translation,” said the annoyed Duncan, dryly, immediately recalling his recent interaction with Munro.

“Your pardon, monsieur,” rejoined the Frenchman, suffering a slight color to appear on his dark cheek. “There is a vast difference between understanding and speaking a foreign tongue; you will, therefore, please to assist me still.” Then, after a short pause, he added: “These hills afford us every opportunity of reconnoitering your works, messieurs, and I am possibly as well acquainted with their weak condition as you can be yourselves.”

“Excuse me, sir,” responded the Frenchman, a faint blush rising on his dark cheek. “There's a huge difference between understanding and speaking a foreign language; so, please, continue to assist me.” After a brief pause, he continued: “These hills give us plenty of chances to survey your operations, gentlemen, and I might know just as much about their vulnerabilities as you do.”

“Ask the French general if his glasses can reach to the Hudson,” said Munro, proudly; “and if he knows when and where to expect the army of Webb.”

“Ask the French general if his glasses can see all the way to the Hudson,” said Munro, proudly; “and if he knows when and where to expect Webb's army.”

“Let General Webb be his own interpreter,” returned the politic Montcalm, suddenly extending an open letter toward Munro as he spoke; “you will there learn, monsieur, that his movements are not likely to prove embarrassing to my army.”

“Let General Webb explain for himself,” replied the clever Montcalm, suddenly holding out an open letter toward Munro as he spoke; “you will see there, sir, that his actions probably won't cause any issues for my army.”

The veteran seized the offered paper, without waiting for Duncan to translate the speech, and with an eagerness that betrayed how important he deemed its contents. As his eye passed hastily over the words, his countenance changed from its look of military pride to one of deep chagrin; his lip began to quiver; and suffering the paper to fall from his hand, his head dropped upon his chest, like that of a man whose hopes were withered at a single blow. Duncan caught the letter from the ground, and without apology for the liberty he took, he read at a glance its cruel purport. Their common superior, so far from encouraging them to resist, advised a speedy surrender, urging in the plainest language, as a reason, the utter impossibility of his sending a single man to their rescue.

The veteran grabbed the paper without waiting for Duncan to explain the speech, and his eagerness showed just how important he thought it was. As he quickly scanned the words, his expression shifted from military pride to deep disappointment; his lip started to tremble, and letting the paper fall from his hand, his head drooped onto his chest, like a man whose hopes had been crushed in an instant. Duncan picked up the letter from the ground, and without apologizing for reading it, he quickly understood its harsh message. Their superior, instead of encouraging resistance, recommended a quick surrender, stating plainly that it was completely impossible for him to send anyone to help them.

“Here is no deception!” exclaimed Duncan, examining the billet both inside and out; “this is the signature of Webb, and must be the captured letter.”

“There's no trickery here!” Duncan shouted, looking at the document from every angle; “this is Webb's signature, and it has to be the letter we captured.”

“The man has betrayed me!” Munro at length bitterly exclaimed; “he has brought dishonor to the door of one where disgrace was never before known to dwell, and shame has he heaped heavily on my gray hairs.”

“The man has betrayed me!” Munro finally exclaimed bitterly; “he has brought dishonor to the door of someone where disgrace was never known to exist before, and he has heaped shame heavily on my gray hairs.”

“Say not so,” cried Duncan; “we are yet masters of the fort, and of our honor. Let us, then, sell our lives at such a rate as shall make our enemies believe the purchase too dear.”

“Don’t say that,” Duncan exclaimed; “we still control the fort and our honor. So, let’s sell our lives at a price that will make our enemies think it’s not worth it.”

“Boy, I thank thee,” exclaimed the old man, rousing himself from his stupor; “you have, for once, reminded Munro of his duty. We will go back, and dig our graves behind those ramparts.”

“Thanks, kid,” the old man said, snapping out of his daze. “You’ve finally reminded Munro of his responsibilities. Let’s head back and dig our graves behind those walls.”

“Messieurs,” said Montcalm, advancing toward them a step, in generous interest, “you little know Louis de St. Veran if you believe him capable of profiting by this letter to humble brave men, or to build up a dishonest reputation for himself. Listen to my terms before you leave me.”

“Gentlemen,” said Montcalm, stepping forward generously, “you don’t really know Louis de St. Veran if you think he’s the kind of person who would use this letter to belittle brave men or to create a dishonest reputation for himself. Hear me out before you go.”

“What says the Frenchman?” demanded the veteran, sternly; “does he make a merit of having captured a scout, with a note from headquarters? Sir, he had better raise this siege, to go and sit down before Edward if he wishes to frighten his enemy with words.”

“What does the Frenchman say?” the veteran asked sharply. “Does he take pride in capturing a scout with a note from headquarters? Sir, he might as well lift this siege and go sit in front of Edward if he wants to scare his enemy with words.”

Duncan explained the other’s meaning.

Duncan explained the other person's meaning.

“Monsieur de Montcalm, we will hear you,” the veteran added, more calmly, as Duncan ended.

“Mr. Montcalm, we’re ready to listen to you,” the veteran said more calmly as Duncan finished.

“To retain the fort is now impossible,” said his liberal enemy; “it is necessary to the interests of my master that it should be destroyed; but as for yourselves and your brave comrades, there is no privilege dear to a soldier that shall be denied.”

“To keep the fort is now impossible,” said his liberal opponent; “it’s essential for my master’s interests that it be destroyed; but as for you and your brave comrades, there’s no privilege that a soldier holds dear that will be denied.”

“Our colors?” demanded Heyward.

"What are our colors?" demanded Heyward.

“Carry them to England, and show them to your king.”

“Take them to England and show them to your king.”

“Our arms?”

"Our arms?"

“Keep them; none can use them better.”

“Hang onto them; no one can use them better.”

“Our march; the surrender of the place?”

“Our march; the surrender of the area?”

“Shall all be done in a way most honorable to yourselves.”

"Everything should be done in a way that honors you."

Duncan now turned to explain these proposals to his commander, who heard him with amazement, and a sensibility that was deeply touched by so unusual and unexpected generosity.

Duncan now turned to explain these proposals to his commander, who listened with amazement and was deeply moved by such unusual and unexpected generosity.

“Go you, Duncan,” he said; “go with this marquess, as, indeed, marquess he should be; go to his marquee and arrange it all. I have lived to see two things in my old age that never did I expect to behold. An Englishman afraid to support a friend, and a Frenchman too honest to profit by his advantage.”

“Go on, Duncan,” he said; “go with this marquess, as he should be called; go to his tent and sort everything out. I have lived to see two things in my old age that I never expected to see. An Englishman too afraid to stand by his friend, and a Frenchman too honest to take advantage of his situation.”

So saying, the veteran again dropped his head to his chest, and returned slowly toward the fort, exhibiting, by the dejection of his air, to the anxious garrison, a harbinger of evil tidings.

So saying, the veteran again lowered his head to his chest and slowly walked back to the fort, showing by his downcast expression to the worried garrison that bad news was on the way.

From the shock of this unexpected blow the haughty feelings of Munro never recovered; but from that moment there commenced a change in his determined character, which accompanied him to a speedy grave. Duncan remained to settle the terms of the capitulation. He was seen to re-enter the works during the first watches of the night, and immediately after a private conference with the commandant, to leave them again. It was then openly announced that hostilities must cease—Munro having signed a treaty by which the place was to be yielded to the enemy, with the morning; the garrison to retain their arms, the colors and their baggage, and, consequently, according to military opinion, their honor.

From the shock of this unexpected blow, Munro's arrogant demeanor never recovered; but from that moment, a transformation began in his resolute character, which would accompany him to an early grave. Duncan stayed behind to finalize the terms of the surrender. He was seen re-entering the fortifications during the early hours of the night and, immediately after a private meeting with the commandant, he left again. It was then publicly announced that hostilities must come to an end—Munro had signed an agreement to surrender the location to the enemy by morning; the garrison would retain their weapons, their colors, and their belongings, and therefore, as per military standards, their honor.

CHAPTER XVII.

“Weave we the woof.
The thread is spun.
The web is wove.
The work is done.”—Gray

“Weave the fabric.
The thread is spun.
The web is woven.
The work is complete.”—Gray

The hostile armies, which lay in the wilds of the Horican, passed the night of the ninth of August, 1757, much in the manner they would, had they encountered on the fairest field of Europe. While the conquered were still, sullen, and dejected, the victors triumphed. But there are limits alike to grief and joy; and long before the watches of the morning came the stillness of those boundless woods was only broken by a gay call from some exulting young Frenchman of the advanced pickets, or a menacing challenge from the fort, which sternly forbade the approach of any hostile footsteps before the stipulated moment. Even these occasional threatening sounds ceased to be heard in that dull hour which precedes the day, at which period a listener might have sought in vain any evidence of the presence of those armed powers that then slumbered on the shores of the “holy lake.”

The enemy armies, camped in the wilds of the Horican, spent the night of August 9, 1757, much like they would have on the best battlefield in Europe. While the defeated were quiet, gloomy, and downcast, the winners reveled in their success. But there are limits to both sorrow and celebration; and long before dawn broke, the silence of those vast woods was only disturbed by cheerful shouts from some happy young Frenchman on the front lines or a stern challenge from the fort, which firmly warned against any hostile movement before the agreed-upon time. Even these occasional threatening sounds faded away during that dull hour just before daybreak, a time when a listener might have searched in vain for signs of the armed forces that were then resting on the shores of the “holy lake.”

It was during these moments of deep silence that the canvas which concealed the entrance to a spacious marquee in the French encampment was shoved aside, and a man issued from beneath the drapery into the open air. He was enveloped in a cloak that might have been intended as a protection from the chilling damps of the woods, but which served equally well as a mantle to conceal his person. He was permitted to pass the grenadier, who watched over the slumbers of the French commander, without interruption, the man making the usual salute which betokens military deference, as the other passed swiftly through the little city of tents, in the direction of William Henry. Whenever this unknown individual encountered one of the numberless sentinels who crossed his path, his answer was prompt, and, as it appeared, satisfactory; for he was uniformly allowed to proceed without further interrogation.

It was during these moments of deep silence that the canvas covering the entrance to a large tent in the French camp was pushed aside, and a man stepped out into the open air. He was wrapped in a cloak that seemed designed to shield him from the chilly dampness of the woods, but it also did a good job of concealing his identity. He was allowed to pass the grenadier, who kept watch over the sleeping French commander, without any interruption. The man exchanged the usual salute that signals military respect as he moved quickly through the small city of tents, heading toward William Henry. Whenever this unknown individual came across one of the many sentinels on his way, he answered promptly, and it seemed satisfactory; he was consistently allowed to continue without any further questioning.

With the exception of such repeated but brief interruptions, he had moved silently from the center of the camp to its most advanced outposts, when he drew nigh the soldier who held his watch nearest to the works of the enemy. As he approached he was received with the usual challenge:

With the exception of a few brief interruptions, he had quietly moved from the center of the camp to its farthest outposts, when he got close to the soldier who was keeping watch closest to the enemy's positions. As he approached, he was met with the usual challenge:

“Qui vive?”

"Who's there?"

“France,” was the reply.

“France,” was the response.

“Le mot d’ordre?”

"What's the keyword?"

“La victorie,” said the other, drawing so nigh as to be heard in a loud whisper.

“Victory,” said the other, leaning in close enough to be heard in a loud whisper.

“C’est bien,” returned the sentinel, throwing his musket from the charge to his shoulder; “vous promenez bien matin, monsieur!”

“It's good,” replied the sentry, shifting his musket from a ready position to his shoulder; “you’re out for a walk early, sir!”

“Il est necessaire d’être vigilant, mon enfant,” the other observed, dropping a fold of his cloak, and looking the soldier close in the face as he passed him, still continuing his way toward the British fortification. The man started; his arms rattled heavily as he threw them forward in the lowest and most respectful salute; and when he had again recovered his piece, he turned to walk his post, muttering between his teeth:

“It's important to stay alert, my child,” the other said, letting a fold of his cloak fall and looking the soldier straight in the eye as he walked by, still heading towards the British fort. The man flinched; his arms clanked heavily as he raised them in the lowest and most respectful salute; and once he had regained his weapon, he turned to patrol his area, muttering under his breath:

“Il faut être vigilant, en vérité! je crois que nous avons là, un caporal qui ne dort jamais!”

“It's important to stay alert, really! I believe we have a corporal here who never sleeps!”

The officer proceeded, without affecting to hear the words which escaped the sentinel in his surprise; nor did he again pause until he had reached the low strand, and in a somewhat dangerous vicinity to the western water bastion of the fort. The light of an obscure moon was just sufficient to render objects, though dim, perceptible in their outlines. He, therefore, took the precaution to place himself against the trunk of a tree, where he leaned for many minutes, and seemed to contemplate the dark and silent mounds of the English works in profound attention. His gaze at the ramparts was not that of a curious or idle spectator; but his looks wandered from point to point, denoting his knowledge of military usages, and betraying that his search was not unaccompanied by distrust. At length he appeared satisfied; and having cast his eyes impatiently upward toward the summit of the eastern mountain, as if anticipating the approach of the morning, he was in the act of turning on his footsteps, when a light sound on the nearest angle of the bastion caught his ear, and induced him to remain.

The officer moved on, not bothering to hear what the sentinel said in surprise, and he didn’t stop again until he reached the low beach, fairly close to the western water bastion of the fort. The light from a dim moon was just enough to make out shapes, even if they were fuzzy. So, he took the precaution of positioning himself against a tree, where he leaned for several minutes, deep in thought as he observed the dark and silent mounds of the English defenses. His gaze at the ramparts wasn't that of a curious onlooker; instead, his eyes scanned from point to point, showing his understanding of military practices and hinting that his search was tinged with unease. Finally, he seemed satisfied, and after glancing impatiently upward toward the peak of the eastern mountain, as if expecting morning to arrive, he was about to turn away when a faint noise at the nearest corner of the bastion caught his attention, prompting him to stay.

Just then a figure was seen to approach the edge of the rampart, where it stood, apparently contemplating in its turn the distant tents of the French encampment. Its head was then turned toward the east, as though equally anxious for the appearance of light, when the form leaned against the mound, and seemed to gaze upon the glassy expanse of the waters, which, like a submarine firmament, glittered with its thousand mimic stars. The melancholy air, the hour, together with the vast frame of the man who thus leaned, musing, against the English ramparts, left no doubt as to his person in the mind of the observant spectator. Delicacy, no less than prudence, now urged him to retire; and he had moved cautiously round the body of the tree for that purpose, when another sound drew his attention, and once more arrested his footsteps. It was a low and almost inaudible movement of the water, and was succeeded by a grating of pebbles one against the other. In a moment he saw a dark form rise, as it were, out of the lake, and steal without further noise to the land, within a few feet of the place where he himself stood. A rifle next slowly rose between his eyes and the watery mirror; but before it could be discharged his own hand was on the lock.

Just then, a figure was seen approaching the edge of the rampart, where it stood, apparently looking out at the distant tents of the French camp. Its head turned toward the east, seeming just as eager for the first light, when the figure leaned against the mound and appeared to gaze at the smooth surface of the water, which sparkled like a starry sky below. The somber atmosphere, the time of day, and the tall frame of the man leaning, deep in thought, against the English ramparts made his identity clear to the observant onlooker. Delicacy, as much as caution, urged him to step back; he moved carefully around the base of a tree for that purpose when another sound caught his attention, freezing him in place again. It was a low, nearly inaudible movement of the water, followed by the soft sound of pebbles shifting against one another. In a moment, he saw a dark figure rise from the lake and quietly make its way to shore, just a few feet from where he was standing. A rifle slowly appeared between his eyes and the water's surface, but before it could be fired, his own hand was on the trigger.

“Hugh!” exclaimed the savage, whose treacherous aim was so singularly and so unexpectedly interrupted.

“Hugh!” shouted the savage, whose deceitful aim was so uniquely and unexpectedly disrupted.

Without making any reply, the French officer laid his hand on the shoulder of the Indian, and led him in profound silence to a distance from the spot, where their subsequent dialogue might have proved dangerous, and where it seemed that one of them, at least, sought a victim. Then throwing open his cloak, so as to expose his uniform and the cross of St. Louis which was suspended at his breast, Montcalm sternly demanded:

Without saying a word, the French officer put his hand on the Indian's shoulder and silently led him a safe distance away from the spot, where their conversation could have turned dangerous, and where it seemed that at least one of them was looking for a fight. Then, opening his cloak to reveal his uniform and the cross of St. Louis hanging from his neck, Montcalm firmly demanded:

“What means this? Does not my son know that the hatchet is buried between the English and his Canadian Father?”

“What does this mean? Doesn't my son realize that the conflict is over between the English and his Canadian father?”

“What can the Hurons do?” returned the savage, speaking also, though imperfectly, in the French language.

“What can the Hurons do?” replied the savage, also speaking, though imperfectly, in French.

“Not a warrior has a scalp, and the pale faces make friends!”

“Not a single warrior has a scalp, and the white people make friends!”

“Ha, Le Renard Subtil! Methinks this is an excess of zeal for a friend who was so late an enemy! How many suns have set since Le Renard struck the war-post of the English?”

“Ha, the Cunning Fox! I think this is a bit much for a friend who was just a late enemy! How many sunsets have there been since the Fox challenged the English?”

“Where is that sun?” demanded the sullen savage. “Behind the hill; and it is dark and cold. But when he comes again, it will be bright and warm. Le Subtil is the sun of his tribe. There have been clouds, and many mountains between him and his nation; but now he shines and it is a clear sky!”

“Where is that sun?” asked the moody savage. “Behind the hill; it’s dark and cold. But when it comes back, it will be bright and warm. Le Subtil is the sun of his tribe. There have been clouds and many mountains between him and his people; but now he shines and the sky is clear!”

“That Le Renard has power with his people, I well know,” said Montcalm; “for yesterday he hunted for their scalps, and to-day they hear him at the council-fire.”

“I'm well aware that Le Renard has influence over his people,” said Montcalm; “because yesterday he was out hunting for their scalps, and today they listen to him at the council-fire.”

“Magua is a great chief.”

"Magua is a great leader."

“Let him prove it, by teaching his nation how to conduct themselves toward our new friends.”

“Let him show it by teaching his country how to behave towards our new friends.”

“Why did the chief of the Canadas bring his young men into the woods, and fire his cannon at the earthen house?” demanded the subtle Indian.

“Why did the chief of the Canadas take his young men into the woods and shoot his cannon at the dirt house?” asked the clever Indian.

“To subdue it. My master owns the land, and your father was ordered to drive off these English squatters. They have consented to go, and now he calls them enemies no longer.”

“To control it. My master owns the land, and your father was ordered to remove these English squatters. They have agreed to leave, and now he no longer considers them enemies.”

“’Tis well. Magua took the hatchet to color it with blood. It is now bright; when it is red, it shall be buried.”

"That's good. Magua took the hatchet to stain it with blood. It's now bright; when it turns red, it will be buried."

“But Magua is pledged not to sully the lilies of France. The enemies of the great king across the salt lake are his enemies; his friends, the friends of the Hurons.”

“But Magua is committed to not tarnishing the lilies of France. The enemies of the great king across the ocean are his enemies; his friends are the friends of the Hurons.”

“Friends!” repeated the Indian in scorn. “Let his father give Magua a hand.”

“Friends!” the Indian said with contempt. “Let his father lend Magua a hand.”

Montcalm, who felt that his influence over the warlike tribes he had gathered was to be maintained by concession rather than by power, complied reluctantly with the other’s request. The savage placed the fingers of the French commander on a deep scar in his bosom, and then exultingly demanded:

Montcalm, who believed that he needed to maintain his influence over the warlike tribes he had gathered through concessions rather than force, reluctantly agreed to the other person's request. The savage placed the French commander's fingers on a deep scar on his chest and then triumphantly demanded:

“Does my father know that?”

"Does my dad know that?"

“What warrior does not? ’Tis where a leaden bullet has cut.”

“What warrior doesn’t? It’s where a lead bullet has struck.”

“And this?” continued the Indian, who had turned his naked back to the other, his body being without its usual calico mantle.

“And this?” continued the Indian, who had turned his bare back to the other, his body without its usual calico blanket.

“This!—my son has been sadly injured here; who has done this?”

“This!—my son has been seriously hurt here; who did this?”

“Magua slept hard in the English wigwams, and the sticks have left their mark,” returned the savage, with a hollow laugh, which did not conceal the fierce temper that nearly choked him. Then, recollecting himself, with sudden and native dignity, he added: “Go; teach your young men it is peace. Le Renard Subtil knows how to speak to a Huron warrior.”

“Magua slept deeply in the English wigwams, and the sticks have left their mark,” replied the savage with a hollow laugh that barely hid the fierce anger building up inside him. Then, regaining his composure with a sudden sense of dignity, he added, “Go; teach your young men that it is peace. Le Renard Subtil knows how to talk to a Huron warrior.”

Without deigning to bestow further words, or to wait for any answer, the savage cast his rifle into the hollow of his arm, and moved silently through the encampment toward the woods where his own tribe was known to lie. Every few yards as he proceeded he was challenged by the sentinels; but he stalked sullenly onward, utterly disregarding the summons of the soldiers, who only spared his life because they knew the air and tread no less than the obstinate daring of an Indian.

Without bothering to say anything more or wait for a response, the savage slung his rifle under his arm and moved quietly through the camp toward the woods where his tribe was known to be. Every few yards, he was challenged by the guards, but he walked on stubbornly, completely ignoring the soldiers' calls, who only spared his life because they recognized both the presence and stride of a determined Indian.

Montcalm lingered long and melancholy on the strand where he had been left by his companion, brooding deeply on the temper which his ungovernable ally had just discovered. Already had his fair fame been tarnished by one horrid scene, and in circumstances fearfully resembling those under which he now found himself. As he mused he became keenly sensible of the deep responsibility they assume who disregard the means to attain the end, and of all the danger of setting in motion an engine which it exceeds human power to control. Then shaking off a train of reflections that he accounted a weakness in such a moment of triumph, he retraced his steps toward his tent, giving the order as he passed to make the signal that should arouse the army from its slumbers.

Montcalm lingered sadly on the shore where his companion had left him, deeply reflecting on the temperament that his uncontrollable ally had just revealed. His good reputation had already been damaged by one horrific event, in circumstances strikingly similar to those he now faced. As he thought, he became acutely aware of the heavy responsibility taken on by those who ignore the means to achieve their goals, and of the dangers that arise when setting in motion forces beyond human control. Then, brushing aside a train of thought that he considered a weakness at such a moment of triumph, he turned back toward his tent, giving the order as he passed to sound the signal that would awaken the army from its slumber.

The first tap of the French drums was echoed from the bosom of the fort, and presently the valley was filled with the strains of martial music, rising long, thrilling and lively above the rattling accompaniment. The horns of the victors sounded merry and cheerful flourishes, until the last laggard of the camp was at his post; but the instant the British fifes had blown their shrill signal, they became mute. In the meantime the day had dawned, and when the line of the French army was ready to receive its general, the rays of a brilliant sun were glancing along the glittering array. Then that success, which was already so well known, was officially announced; the favored band who were selected to guard the gates of the fort were detailed, and defiled before their chief; the signal of their approach was given, and all the usual preparations for a change of masters were ordered and executed directly under the guns of the contested works.

The first beat of the French drums echoed from the heart of the fort, and soon the valley was filled with the sounds of military music, rising long, exciting, and lively above the rattling background noise. The horns of the victors played cheerful and lively flourishes until the last straggler from the camp was at his post; but the moment the British fifes played their sharp signal, they fell silent. In the meantime, dawn had broken, and as the line of the French army prepared to receive their general, the brilliant sun's rays glimmered off their shining formation. Then that success, which was already well known, was officially announced; the chosen group assigned to guard the fort's gates was formed up and marched before their leader; the signal of their arrival was given, and all the usual arrangements for a change of command were carried out right under the guns of the contested fortifications.

A very different scene presented itself within the lines of the Anglo-American army. As soon as the warning signal was given, it exhibited all the signs of a hurried and forced departure. The sullen soldiers shouldered their empty tubes and fell into their places, like men whose blood had been heated by the past contest, and who only desired the opportunity to revenge an indignity which was still wounding to their pride, concealed as it was under the observances of military etiquette.

A very different scene appeared among the Anglo-American army. As soon as the warning signal sounded, it showed all the signs of a rushed and forced exit. The gloomy soldiers picked up their empty rifles and took their positions, like men whose anger from the recent battle was still boiling, wanting only the chance to avenge an insult that still hurt their pride, even if it was hidden beneath the rules of military decorum.

Women and children ran from place to place, some bearing the scanty remnants of their baggage, and others searching in the ranks for those countenances they looked up to for protection.

Women and children hurried from one spot to another, some carrying the few belongings they had left, while others scanned the crowd for familiar faces they relied on for safety.

Munro appeared among his silent troops firm but dejected. It was evident that the unexpected blow had struck deep into his heart, though he struggled to sustain his misfortune with the port of a man.

Munro stood among his quiet soldiers, looking strong but downcast. It was clear that the sudden setback had hit him hard, even though he tried to handle his misfortune like a man.

Duncan was touched at the quiet and impressive exhibition of his grief. He had discharged his own duty, and he now pressed to the side of the old man, to know in what particular he might serve him.

Duncan was moved by the quiet and powerful display of his sorrow. He had fulfilled his own responsibilities, and now he leaned closer to the old man to find out how he could help him.

“My daughters,” was the brief but expressive reply.

“My daughters,” was the short but meaningful response.

“Good heavens! are not arrangements already made for their convenience?”

“Good heavens! Aren't plans already in place for their convenience?”

“To-day I am only a soldier, Major Heyward,” said the veteran. “All that you see here, claim alike to be my children.”

“Today I am just a soldier, Major Heyward,” said the veteran. “All that you see here, I consider to be my children.”

Duncan had heard enough. Without losing one of those moments which had now become so precious, he flew toward the quarters of Munro, in quest of the sisters. He found them on the threshold of the low edifice, already prepared to depart, and surrounded by a clamorous and weeping assemblage of their own sex, that had gathered about the place, with a sort of instinctive consciousness that it was the point most likely to be protected. Though the cheeks of Cora were pale and her countenance anxious, she had lost none of her firmness; but the eyes of Alice were inflamed, and betrayed how long and bitterly she had wept. They both, however, received the young man with undisguised pleasure; the former, for a novelty, being the first to speak.

Duncan had heard enough. Without wasting a moment of the precious time he had left, he hurried toward Munro's quarters to find the sisters. He found them at the entrance of the small building, already ready to leave and surrounded by a loud, crying crowd of women who had gathered instinctively, hoping for protection. Though Cora's cheeks were pale and her face showed worry, she still maintained her strength; Alice, on the other hand, had red, puffy eyes that revealed how long and hard she had cried. Still, they both welcomed the young man with open arms, with Cora breaking the silence first, eager to speak.

“The fort is lost,” she said, with a melancholy smile; “though our good name, I trust, remains.”

"The fort is gone," she said, with a sad smile; "but I hope our good name is still intact."

“’Tis brighter than ever. But, dearest Miss Munro, it is time to think less of others, and to make some provision for yourself. Military usage—pride—that pride on which you so much value yourself, demands that your father and I should for a little while continue with the troops. Then where to seek a proper protector for you against the confusion and chances of such a scene?”

“It’s brighter than ever. But, dear Miss Munro, it’s time to think less about others and start taking care of yourself. Military customs—pride—that pride that you value so much demands that your father and I stay with the troops for a little while longer. So, where can we find a suitable protector for you against the chaos and uncertainties of this situation?”

“None is necessary,” returned Cora; “who will dare to injure or insult the daughter of such a father, at a time like this?”

“None is necessary,” Cora replied; “who would dare to hurt or disrespect the daughter of such a father at a time like this?”

“I would not leave you alone,” continued the youth, looking about him in a hurried manner, “for the command of the best regiment in the pay of the king. Remember, our Alice is not gifted with all your firmness, and God only knows the terror she might endure.”

“I wouldn’t leave you alone,” the young man continued, glancing around nervously, “for the command of the best regiment in the king’s army. Remember, our Alice doesn’t have your strength, and only God knows what fear she might go through.”

“You may be right,” Cora replied, smiling again, but far more sadly than before. “Listen! chance has already sent us a friend when he is most needed.”

“You might be right,” Cora said, smiling again, but much more sadly than before. “Listen! Fate has already brought us a friend just when we need him the most.”

Duncan did listen, and on the instant comprehended her meaning. The low and serious sounds of the sacred music, so well known to the eastern provinces, caught his ear, and instantly drew him to an apartment in an adjacent building, which had already been deserted by its customary tenants. There he found David, pouring out his pious feelings through the only medium in which he ever indulged. Duncan waited, until, by the cessation of the movement of the hand, he believed the strain was ended, when, by touching his shoulder, he drew the attention of the other to himself, and in a few words explained his wishes.

Duncan listened and immediately understood her meaning. The deep and serious sounds of the sacred music, familiar to the eastern provinces, caught his attention and quickly led him to a room in a nearby building that had already been left by its usual occupants. There, he found David expressing his spiritual feelings through the only way he ever did. Duncan waited until David stopped playing, believing the music was over, then touched his shoulder to get his attention and briefly explained what he wanted.

“Even so,” replied the single-minded disciple of the King of Israel, when the young man had ended; “I have found much that is comely and melodious in the maidens, and it is fitting that we who have consorted in so much peril, should abide together in peace. I will attend them, when I have completed my morning praise, to which nothing is now wanting but the doxology. Wilt thou bear a part, friend? The meter is common, and the tune ‘Southwell’.”

“Even so,” replied the focused follower of the King of Israel, after the young man finished; “I have found much that is beautiful and harmonious in the maidens, and it’s right that we who have faced so much danger should live together in peace. I will join them after I finish my morning prayers, which only need the doxology now. Will you join in, my friend? The meter is typical, and the tune is ‘Southwell’.”

Then, extending the little volume, and giving the pitch of the air anew with considerate attention, David recommenced and finished his strains, with a fixedness of manner that it was not easy to interrupt. Heyward was fain to wait until the verse was ended; when, seeing David relieving himself from the spectacles, and replacing the book, he continued.

Then, opening the small book and adjusting the pitch of his voice with careful attention, David started and finished his song with such focus that it was hard to interrupt him. Heyward had no choice but to wait until the verse was done; when he saw David taking off his glasses and putting the book away, he carried on.

“It will be your duty to see that none dare to approach the ladies with any rude intention, or to offer insult or taunt at the misfortune of their brave father. In this task you will be seconded by the domestics of their household.”

“It will be your responsibility to ensure that no one dares to approach the ladies with any disrespectful intentions or to insult or mock the misfortunes of their courageous father. In this task, you will be supported by the household staff.”

“Even so.”

"Still."

“It is possible that the Indians and stragglers of the enemy may intrude, in which case you will remind them of the terms of the capitulation, and threaten to report their conduct to Montcalm. A word will suffice.”

“It’s possible that the Indians and any stragglers from the enemy might come by. If that happens, remind them of the terms of the surrender and warn them that you'll report their behavior to Montcalm. A single word will be enough.”

“If not, I have that here which shall,” returned David, exhibiting his book, with an air in which meekness and confidence were singularly blended. Here are words which, uttered, or rather thundered, with proper emphasis, and in measured time, shall quiet the most unruly temper:

“If not, I have that here which will,” David replied, showing his book with a mix of humility and assurance. Here are words that, when spoken—or rather shouted—with the right emphasis and at a steady pace, will calm even the most unruly temper:

“‘Why rage the heathen furiously’?”

“‘Why are the heathen raging furiously?’”

“Enough,” said Heyward, interrupting the burst of his musical invocation; “we understand each other; it is time that we should now assume our respective duties.”

“Enough,” said Heyward, cutting off the flow of his musical call; “we get it; it’s time for us to take on our respective responsibilities.”

Gamut cheerfully assented, and together they sought the females. Cora received her new and somewhat extraordinary protector courteously, at least; and even the pallid features of Alice lighted again with some of their native archness as she thanked Heyward for his care. Duncan took occasion to assure them he had done the best that circumstances permitted, and, as he believed, quite enough for the security of their feelings; of danger there was none. He then spoke gladly of his intention to rejoin them the moment he had led the advance a few miles toward the Hudson, and immediately took his leave.

Gamut happily agreed, and together they looked for the women. Cora welcomed her new and somewhat unusual protector politely, at least; and even Alice's pale features brightened with a hint of her usual playfulness as she thanked Heyward for his care. Duncan took the opportunity to assure them he had done everything he could given the circumstances, and, he felt, it was more than enough for their peace of mind; there was no danger. He then expressed his eagerness to rejoin them as soon as he had led the advance a few miles toward the Hudson, and then he took his leave.

By this time the signal for departure had been given, and the head of the English column was in motion. The sisters started at the sound, and glancing their eyes around, they saw the white uniforms of the French grenadiers, who had already taken possession of the gates of the fort. At that moment an enormous cloud seemed to pass suddenly above their heads, and, looking upward, they discovered that they stood beneath the wide folds of the standard of France.

By this point, the signal to leave had been given, and the front of the English column was on the move. The sisters jumped at the sound and glanced around, spotting the white uniforms of the French grenadiers, who had already claimed the fort's gates. At that moment, a huge cloud appeared to pass overhead, and looking up, they realized they were standing beneath the large folds of the French flag.

“Let us go,” said Cora; “this is no longer a fit place for the children of an English officer.”

“Let’s go,” said Cora; “this isn’t a suitable place for the children of an English officer.”

Alice clung to the arm of her sister, and together they left the parade, accompanied by the moving throng that surrounded them.

Alice held onto her sister's arm, and together they walked away from the parade, surrounded by the crowd that was flowing around them.

As they passed the gates, the French officers, who had learned their rank, bowed often and low, forbearing, however, to intrude those attentions which they saw, with peculiar tact, might not be agreeable. As every vehicle and each beast of burden was occupied by the sick and wounded, Cora had decided to endure the fatigues of a foot march, rather than interfere with their comforts. Indeed, many a maimed and feeble soldier was compelled to drag his exhausted limbs in the rear of the columns, for the want of the necessary means of conveyance in that wilderness. The whole, however, was in motion; the weak and wounded, groaning and in suffering; their comrades silent and sullen; and the women and children in terror, they knew not of what.

As they walked past the gates, the French officers, who recognized their rank, often bowed deeply, carefully holding back any gestures they sensed might not be well-received. Since every vehicle and pack animal was occupied by the sick and wounded, Cora decided to endure the strain of walking instead of disrupting their comfort. In fact, many injured and weak soldiers were forced to drag their tired bodies behind the columns due to the lack of any way to transport them in that desolate area. Everything was in motion; the weak and injured groaned in pain, their comrades were silent and grim, and the women and children were filled with fear, unsure of what was happening.

As the confused and timid throng left the protecting mounds of the fort, and issued on the open plain, the whole scene was at once presented to their eyes. At a little distance on the right, and somewhat in the rear, the French army stood to their arms, Montcalm having collected his parties, so soon as his guards had possession of the works. They were attentive but silent observers of the proceedings of the vanquished, failing in none of the stipulated military honors, and offering no taunt or insult, in their success, to their less fortunate foes. Living masses of the English, to the amount, in the whole, of near three thousand, were moving slowly across the plain, toward the common center, and gradually approached each other, as they converged to the point of their march, a vista cut through the lofty trees, where the road to the Hudson entered the forest. Along the sweeping borders of the woods hung a dark cloud of savages, eyeing the passage of their enemies, and hovering at a distance, like vultures who were only kept from swooping on their prey by the presence and restraint of a superior army. A few had straggled among the conquered columns, where they stalked in sullen discontent; attentive, though, as yet, passive observers of the moving multitude.

As the confused and hesitant crowd left the protective mounds of the fort and stepped onto the open plain, the entire scene unfolded before them. A short distance to the right and slightly behind, the French army was ready for action, with Montcalm having gathered his troops as soon as his guards took control of the works. They stood as quiet but watchful observers of the defeated, showing all the required military respect and refraining from any taunts or insults to their less fortunate enemies. A large group of English soldiers, totaling nearly three thousand, was moving slowly across the plain toward a common point, gradually getting closer as they converged on the spot where the road to the Hudson entered the forest, framed by tall trees. Along the edges of the woods, a dark cloud ofNative Americans hovered, watching their enemies pass and lingering at a distance like vultures held back from swooping in on their prey by the presence and authority of a stronger army. A few had strayed among the defeated ranks, moving with grim dissatisfaction, yet remaining alert, though still passive, observers of the crowd.

The advance, with Heyward at its head, had already reached the defile, and was slowly disappearing, when the attention of Cora was drawn to a collection of stragglers by the sounds of contention. A truant provincial was paying the forfeit of his disobedience, by being plundered of those very effects which had caused him to desert his place in the ranks. The man was of powerful frame, and too avaricious to part with his goods without a struggle. Individuals from either party interfered; the one side to prevent and the other to aid in the robbery. Voices grew loud and angry, and a hundred savages appeared, as it were, by magic, where a dozen only had been seen a minute before. It was then that Cora saw the form of Magua gliding among his countrymen, and speaking with his fatal and artful eloquence. The mass of women and children stopped, and hovered together like alarmed and fluttering birds. But the cupidity of the Indian was soon gratified, and the different bodies again moved slowly onward.

The group, with Heyward leading, had just reached the narrow pass and was slowly fading from view when Cora noticed a bunch of stragglers arguing. A rebellious local was paying the price for his disobedience, getting robbed of the very belongings that made him leave his spot in line. He was a muscular guy, too greedy to give up his stuff without a fight. Members from both sides stepped in; some trying to stop it, while others aimed to help with the theft. Voices became loud and heated, and suddenly, a hundred natives appeared out of nowhere when only a dozen had been seen a minute earlier. That’s when Cora spotted Magua moving among his people, speaking with his persuasive and dangerous charm. The crowd of women and children halted, gathering like scared and flapping birds. But soon, the Indian's greed was satisfied, and the groups started to move slowly onward again.

The savages now fell back, and seemed content to let their enemies advance without further molestation. But, as the female crowd approached them, the gaudy colors of a shawl attracted the eyes of a wild and untutored Huron. He advanced to seize it without the least hesitation. The woman, more in terror than through love of the ornament, wrapped her child in the coveted article, and folded both more closely to her bosom. Cora was in the act of speaking, with an intent to advise the woman to abandon the trifle, when the savage relinquished his hold of the shawl, and tore the screaming infant from her arms. Abandoning everything to the greedy grasp of those around her, the mother darted, with distraction in her mien, to reclaim her child. The Indian smiled grimly, and extended one hand, in sign of a willingness to exchange, while, with the other, he flourished the babe over his head, holding it by the feet as if to enhance the value of the ransom.

The savages stepped back, seeming okay with letting their enemies move forward without any more interference. However, as the group of women got closer, the bright colors of a shawl caught the eye of a wild Huron. He moved in to grab it without any hesitation. The woman, more scared than attached to the decoration, wrapped her child in the prized shawl and held them both tighter to her chest. Cora was about to speak up, intending to advise the woman to let go of the trinket, when the savage loosened his grip on the shawl and yanked the screaming baby from her arms. Forgetting everything else in the hands of those around her, the mother rushed forward, panic on her face, to get her child back. The Indian grinned grimly and raised one hand as if to signal he was willing to trade, while with the other, he held the baby above his head by the feet, as if to increase the value of the ransom.

“Here—here—there—all—any—everything!” exclaimed the breathless woman, tearing the lighter articles of dress from her person with ill-directed and trembling fingers; “take all, but give me my babe!”

“Here—here—there—all—any—everything!” exclaimed the breathless woman, pulling off her lighter clothing with shaky and unsteady fingers; “take it all, but give me my baby!”

The savage spurned the worthless rags, and perceiving that the shawl had already become a prize to another, his bantering but sullen smile changing to a gleam of ferocity, he dashed the head of the infant against a rock, and cast its quivering remains to her very feet. For an instant the mother stood, like a statue of despair, looking wildly down at the unseemly object, which had so lately nestled in her bosom and smiled in her face; and then she raised her eyes and countenance toward heaven, as if calling on God to curse the perpetrator of the foul deed. She was spared the sin of such a prayer for, maddened at his disappointment, and excited at the sight of blood, the Huron mercifully drove his tomahawk into her own brain. The mother sank under the blow, and fell, grasping at her child, in death, with the same engrossing love that had caused her to cherish it when living.

The savage rejected the worthless rags, and noticing that the shawl had already become someone else's prize, his teasing yet gloomy smile turned into a fierce glare. He smashed the baby's head against a rock and threw its trembling remains at her feet. For a moment, the mother stood there, like a statue of despair, staring in shock at the grotesque thing that had so recently nestled in her arms and smiled at her. Then she looked up to heaven, as if pleading with God to punish the one who committed this horrendous act. She was spared the burden of such a prayer because, enraged by his disappointment and driven by the sight of blood, the Huron mercifully drove his tomahawk into her own skull. The mother collapsed from the blow, reaching out for her child, even in death, with the same intense love that had made her cherish it while it was alive.

At that dangerous moment, Magua placed his hands to his mouth, and raised the fatal and appalling whoop. The scattered Indians started at the well-known cry, as coursers bound at the signal to quit the goal; and directly there arose such a yell along the plain, and through the arches of the wood, as seldom burst from human lips before. They who heard it listened with a curdling horror at the heart, little inferior to that dread which may be expected to attend the blasts of the final summons.

At that dangerous moment, Magua cupped his hands around his mouth and let out the deadly and terrifying shout. The scattered Indians jumped at the familiar sound, like racehorses eager to leave the starting line; and immediately, a scream erupted across the plain and through the trees, something rarely heard from human lips before. Those who heard it felt a chilling horror in their hearts, similar to the fear one might feel at the final call of fate.

More than two thousand raving savages broke from the forest at the signal, and threw themselves across the fatal plain with instinctive alacrity. We shall not dwell on the revolting horrors that succeeded. Death was everywhere, and in his most terrific and disgusting aspects. Resistance only served to inflame the murderers, who inflicted their furious blows long after their victims were beyond the power of their resentment. The flow of blood might be likened to the outbreaking of a torrent; and as the natives became heated and maddened by the sight, many among them even kneeled to the earth, and drank freely, exultingly, hellishly, of the crimson tide.

More than two thousand frenzied savages burst out of the forest at the signal and charged across the deadly plain with instinctive speed. We won’t dwell on the horrifying events that followed. Death was everywhere, in its most terrifying and grotesque forms. Trying to fight back only fueled the murderers, who continued to strike long after their victims were unable to feel pain. The flow of blood resembled a raging torrent; as the natives became excited and crazed by the sight, many of them even knelt to the ground and drank eagerly, joyfully, and savagely from the crimson tide.

The trained bodies of the troops threw themselves quickly into solid masses, endeavoring to awe their assailants by the imposing appearance of a military front. The experiment in some measure succeeded, though far too many suffered their unloaded muskets to be torn from their hands, in the vain hope of appeasing the savages.

The trained soldiers quickly formed into tight groups, trying to intimidate their attackers with a strong military presence. This effort worked to some extent, but far too many let their unloaded muskets be taken from them, hoping to placate the savages.

In such a scene none had leisure to note the fleeting moments. It might have been ten minutes (it seemed an age) that the sisters had stood riveted to one spot, horror-stricken and nearly helpless. When the first blow was struck, their screaming companions had pressed upon them in a body, rendering flight impossible; and now that fear or death had scattered most, if not all, from around them, they saw no avenue open, but such as conducted to the tomahawks of their foes. On every side arose shrieks, groans, exhortations and curses. At this moment, Alice caught a glimpse of the vast form of her father, moving rapidly across the plain, in the direction of the French army. He was, in truth, proceeding to Montcalm, fearless of every danger, to claim the tardy escort for which he had before conditioned. Fifty glittering axes and barbed spears were offered unheeded at his life, but the savages respected his rank and calmness, even in their fury. The dangerous weapons were brushed aside by the still nervous arm of the veteran, or fell of themselves, after menacing an act that it would seem no one had courage to perform. Fortunately, the vindictive Magua was searching for his victim in the very band the veteran had just quitted.

In such a scene, no one had the time to notice the passing moments. It might have been ten minutes (it felt like an eternity) that the sisters had stood frozen in one spot, horrified and almost powerless. When the first blow was struck, their screaming friends had surrounded them completely, making escape impossible; and now that fear or death had scattered most, if not all, from around them, they could see no escape route except those leading to the weapons of their enemies. From every direction came screams, groans, shouts, and curses. At that moment, Alice caught sight of her father’s tall figure moving quickly across the plain toward the French army. He was, in fact, heading to Montcalm, unafraid of any danger, to request the promised escort that he had previously arranged. Fifty shiny axes and barbed spears were aimed at him, but the natives respected his rank and composure, even in their rage. The dangerous weapons were either brushed aside by the still-shaky arm of the veteran or dropped on their own after threatening an action that no one seemed brave enough to carry out. Luckily, the vengeful Magua was looking for his target in the very group the veteran had just left.

“Father—father—we are here!” shrieked Alice, as he passed, at no great distance, without appearing to heed them. “Come to us, father, or we die!”

“Dad—Dad—we're here!” screamed Alice, as he walked by, not too far away, without seeming to notice them. “Come to us, Dad, or we’ll die!”

The cry was repeated, and in terms and tones that might have melted a heart of stone, but it was unanswered. Once, indeed, the old man appeared to catch the sound, for he paused and listened; but Alice had dropped senseless on the earth, and Cora had sunk at her side, hovering in untiring tenderness over her lifeless form. Munro shook his head in disappointment, and proceeded, bent on the high duty of his station.

The cry was repeated, with words and tones that could have melted a heart of stone, but it went unanswered. At one point, the old man seemed to hear it, as he paused and listened; but Alice had collapsed unconscious on the ground, and Cora had fallen beside her, staying close in unwavering tenderness over her lifeless body. Munro shook his head in disappointment and moved on, focused on the important responsibilities of his position.

“Lady,” said Gamut, who, helpless and useless as he was, had not yet dreamed of deserting his trust, “it is the jubilee of the devils, and this is not a meet place for Christians to tarry in. Let us up and fly.”

“Lady,” said Gamut, who, despite being helpless and useless, had not yet thought of abandoning his duty, “it’s the devil’s holiday, and this is not a suitable place for Christians to linger. Let’s get up and leave.”

“Go,” said Cora, still gazing at her unconscious sister; “save thyself. To me thou canst not be of further use.”

“Go,” said Cora, still looking at her unconscious sister; “save yourself. You can't be of any more help to me.”

David comprehended the unyielding character of her resolution, by the simple but expressive gesture that accompanied her words. He gazed for a moment at the dusky forms that were acting their hellish rites on every side of him, and his tall person grew more erect while his chest heaved, and every feature swelled, and seemed to speak with the power of the feelings by which he was governed.

David understood the firm nature of her determination through the simple yet meaningful gesture that came with her words. He looked for a moment at the dark figures performing their disturbing rituals all around him, and his tall frame straightened while his chest expanded, every feature tense, as if they were expressing the intensity of the emotions that controlled him.

“If the Jewish boy might tame the great spirit of Saul by the sound of his harp, and the words of sacred song, it may not be amiss,” he said, “to try the potency of music here.”

“If the Jewish boy could soothe the fierce spirit of Saul with his harp and the lyrics of holy songs, it wouldn’t hurt,” he said, “to see if music works its magic here.”

Then raising his voice to its highest tone, he poured out a strain so powerful as to be heard even amid the din of that bloody field. More than one savage rushed toward them, thinking to rifle the unprotected sisters of their attire, and bear away their scalps; but when they found this strange and unmoved figure riveted to his post, they paused to listen. Astonishment soon changed to admiration, and they passed on to other and less courageous victims, openly expressing their satisfaction at the firmness with which the white warrior sang his death song. Encouraged and deluded by his success, David exerted all his powers to extend what he believed so holy an influence. The unwonted sounds caught the ears of a distant savage, who flew raging from group to group, like one who, scorning to touch the vulgar herd, hunted for some victim more worthy of his renown. It was Magua, who uttered a yell of pleasure when he beheld his ancient prisoners again at his mercy.

Then, raising his voice to its highest pitch, he unleashed a sound so powerful that it could be heard even amid the chaos of that bloody battlefield. More than one savage rushed toward them, planning to strip the unprotected sisters of their clothing and take their scalps; but when they saw this strange, unmoving figure fixed in place, they hesitated to listen. Their astonishment quickly turned into admiration, and they moved on to other, less courageous victims, openly expressing their approval of the way the white warrior sang his death song with such determination. Encouraged and misled by his success, David put all his effort into spreading what he believed to be such a sacred influence. The unusual sounds caught the attention of a distant savage, who charged from group to group, like someone too proud to interact with the common crowd, searching for a victim more deserving of his fame. It was Magua, who let out a yell of delight when he saw his former captives once again within his grasp.

“Come,” he said, laying his soiled hands on the dress of Cora, “the wigwam of the Huron is still open. Is it not better than this place?”

“Come,” he said, putting his dirty hands on Cora's dress, “the Huron's lodge is still open. Isn't it better than this place?”

“Away!” cried Cora, veiling her eyes from his revolting aspect.

“Away!” Cora exclaimed, shielding her eyes from his disgusting appearance.

The Indian laughed tauntingly, as he held up his reeking hand, and answered: “It is red, but it comes from white veins!”

The Indian laughed mockingly, holding up his stinking hand, and replied: “It’s red, but it comes from white veins!”

“Monster! there is blood, oceans of blood, upon thy soul; thy spirit has moved this scene.”

“Monster! There is blood, oceans of blood, on your soul; your spirit has caused this scene.”

“Magua is a great chief!” returned the exulting savage, “will the dark-hair go to his tribe?”

“Magua is a great chief!” the excited warrior replied, “Will the dark-haired one come to his tribe?”

[Illustration]

“Never! strike if thou wilt, and complete thy revenge.” He hesitated a moment, and then catching the light and senseless form of Alice in his arms, the subtle Indian moved swiftly across the plain toward the woods.

“Never! Go ahead and hit me if you want, and finish your revenge.” He paused for a moment, and then, lifting the light and lifeless body of Alice into his arms, the cunning Indian quickly made his way across the plain toward the woods.

“Hold!” shrieked Cora, following wildly on his footsteps; “release the child! wretch! what is’t you do?”

“Stop!” Cora yelled, running after him; “let the child go! You monster! What are you doing?”

But Magua was deaf to her voice; or, rather, he knew his power, and was determined to maintain it.

But Magua ignored her voice; or, more accurately, he was aware of his power and was determined to keep it.

“Stay—lady—stay,” called Gamut, after the unconscious Cora. “The holy charm is beginning to be felt, and soon shalt thou see this horrid tumult stilled.”

“Wait—lady—wait,” called Gamut, after the unconscious Cora. “The holy charm is starting to take effect, and soon you’ll see this horrible chaos settle down.”

Perceiving that, in his turn, he was unheeded, the faithful David followed the distracted sister, raising his voice again in sacred song, and sweeping the air to the measure, with his long arm, in diligent accompaniment. In this manner they traversed the plain, through the flying, the wounded and the dead. The fierce Huron was, at any time, sufficient for himself and the victim that he bore; though Cora would have fallen more than once under the blows of her savage enemies, but for the extraordinary being who stalked in her rear, and who now appeared to the astonished natives gifted with the protecting spirit of madness.

Noticing that he wasn’t being acknowledged either, the loyal David followed the distracted sister, raising his voice again in a sacred song and using his long arm to sweep the air in rhythm, providing a steady accompaniment. They moved across the plain, navigating through the fleeing, the wounded, and the dead. The fierce Huron was, at any moment, capable of handling himself and the victim he carried; yet, Cora would have fallen multiple times under the attacks of her savage enemies if it weren’t for the extraordinary figure trailing behind her, who now seemed to the astonished natives to be protected by the wild spirit of madness.

Magua, who knew how to avoid the more pressing dangers, and also to elude pursuit, entered the woods through a low ravine, where he quickly found the Narragansetts, which the travelers had abandoned so shortly before, awaiting his appearance, in custody of a savage as fierce and malign in his expression as himself. Laying Alice on one of the horses, he made a sign to Cora to mount the other.

Magua, who was skilled at dodging immediate threats and escaping capture, slipped into the woods through a shallow ravine, where he quickly found the Narragansetts that the travelers had left behind just moments ago, waiting for him, under the watch of a savage whose look was as fierce and malicious as his own. After placing Alice on one of the horses, he signaled for Cora to get on the other.

Notwithstanding the horror excited by the presence of her captor, there was a present relief in escaping from the bloody scene enacting on the plain, to which Cora could not be altogether insensible. She took her seat, and held forth her arms for her sister, with an air of entreaty and love that even the Huron could not deny. Placing Alice, then, on the same animal with Cora, he seized the bridle, and commenced his route by plunging deeper into the forest. David, perceiving that he was left alone, utterly disregarded as a subject too worthless even to destroy, threw his long limb across the saddle of the beast they had deserted, and made such progress in the pursuit as the difficulties of the path permitted.

Despite the fear brought on by her captor's presence, Cora felt a sense of relief in escaping the bloody scene unfolding in the field, which she couldn’t fully ignore. She took her seat and reached out her arms for her sister, with an expression of pleading and love that even the Huron couldn't refuse. After placing Alice on the same horse as Cora, he took the reins and began his journey further into the forest. David, realizing he had been left behind and deemed too insignificant to even be killed, threw his long leg over the saddle of the abandoned horse and made as much progress in the chase as the rough terrain allowed.

They soon began to ascend; but as the motion had a tendency to revive the dormant faculties of her sister, the attention of Cora was too much divided between the tenderest solicitude in her behalf, and in listening to the cries which were still too audible on the plain, to note the direction in which they journeyed. When, however, they gained the flattened surface of the mountain-top, and approached the eastern precipice, she recognized the spot to which she had once before been led under the more friendly auspices of the scout. Here Magua suffered them to dismount; and notwithstanding their own captivity, the curiosity which seems inseparable from horror, induced them to gaze at the sickening sight below.

They soon started to climb, but since the movement was waking up her sister's dormant senses, Cora found her attention split between her deep concern for her sister and the cries that were still loud on the plain, making it hard for her to focus on the direction they were heading. However, once they reached the flat surface at the top of the mountain and got closer to the eastern cliff, she recognized the place where she had been taken before, thanks to the scout's more friendly guidance. Here, Magua allowed them to get off their horses, and despite their own captivity, the horrific curiosity that often comes with fear compelled them to look at the disturbing scene below.

The cruel work was still unchecked. On every side the captured were flying before their relentless persecutors, while the armed columns of the Christian king stood fast in an apathy which has never been explained, and which has left an immovable blot on the otherwise fair escutcheon of their leader. Nor was the sword of death stayed until cupidity got the mastery of revenge. Then, indeed, the shrieks of the wounded, and the yells of their murderers grew less frequent, until, finally, the cries of horror were lost to their ear, or were drowned in the loud, long and piercing whoops of the triumphant savages.

The brutal violence was still ongoing. All around, the captured were fleeing from their relentless attackers, while the armed forces of the Christian king stood frozen in a way that has never been explained, leaving a permanent stain on the otherwise honorable reputation of their leader. The killing didn’t stop until greed overtook the desire for revenge. Then, indeed, the screams of the wounded and the shouts of their killers became less frequent, until finally, the cries of horror faded from their hearing or were drowned out by the loud, long, and piercing howls of the victorious savages.

CHAPTER XVIII.

“Why, anything;
An honorable murderer, if you will;
For naught I did in hate, but all in honor.”
—Othello

“Why, anything;
A respected killer, if that’s what you think;
I acted out of honor, not out of hate.”
—Othello

The bloody and inhuman scene rather incidentally mentioned than described in the preceding chapter, is conspicuous in the pages of colonial history by the merited title of “The Massacre of William Henry.” It so far deepened the stain which a previous and very similar event had left upon the reputation of the French commander that it was not entirely erased by his early and glorious death. It is now becoming obscured by time; and thousands, who know that Montcalm died like a hero on the plains of Abraham, have yet to learn how much he was deficient in that moral courage without which no man can be truly great. Pages might yet be written to prove, from this illustrious example, the defects of human excellence; to show how easy it is for generous sentiments, high courtesy, and chivalrous courage to lose their influence beneath the chilling blight of selfishness, and to exhibit to the world a man who was great in all the minor attributes of character, but who was found wanting when it became necessary to prove how much principle is superior to policy. But the task would exceed our prerogatives; and, as history, like love, is so apt to surround her heroes with an atmosphere of imaginary brightness, it is probable that Louis de Saint Veran will be viewed by posterity only as the gallant defender of his country, while his cruel apathy on the shores of the Oswego and of the Horican will be forgotten. Deeply regretting this weakness on the part of a sister muse, we shall at once retire from her sacred precincts, within the proper limits of our own humble vocation.

The brutal and inhumane scene that was mentioned rather incidentally in the previous chapter stands out in colonial history under the well-deserved title of “The Massacre of William Henry.” It added further disgrace to the reputation of the French commander, a stain that wasn't completely removed by his early and glorious death. Now, as time passes, this event is fading from memory; thousands who know that Montcalm died heroically on the plains of Abraham are yet to learn how much he lacked the moral courage essential for true greatness. We could write pages proving, through this well-known example, the flaws within human excellence; illustrating how easy it is for noble sentiments, high courtesy, and chivalrous bravery to lose their impact under the harsh shadow of selfishness, showcasing a man who excelled in all the minor traits of character, yet fell short when it came time to show that principle is greater than policy. However, this task would go beyond our scope; and since history, like love, often cloaks its heroes in an aura of imagined brilliance, it's likely that Louis de Saint Veran will be remembered by future generations only as the brave defender of his country, while his cruel indifference on the shores of the Oswego and Horican will be forgotten. While lamenting this shortcoming from a sister muse, we shall now step away from her sacred realm, keeping within the appropriate boundaries of our own humble role.

The third day from the capture of the fort was drawing to a close, but the business of the narrative must still detain the reader on the shores of the “holy lake.” When last seen, the environs of the works were filled with violence and uproar. They were now possessed by stillness and death. The blood-stained conquerors had departed; and their camp, which had so lately rung with the merry rejoicings of a victorious army, lay a silent and deserted city of huts. The fortress was a smoldering ruin; charred rafters, fragments of exploded artillery, and rent mason-work covering its earthen mounds in confused disorder.

The third day since the fort was captured was ending, but the story still keeps the reader at the shores of the "holy lake." The last time we looked, the area around the fort was filled with chaos and noise. Now, it was quiet and lifeless. The blood-stained victors had left; their camp, which had recently echoed with the joyful celebrations of a victorious army, was now a silent and deserted collection of huts. The fortress was a smoldering wreck; charred beams, pieces of exploded cannons, and broken masonry were scattered across its earthen mounds in a jumbled mess.

A frightful change had also occurred in the season. The sun had hid its warmth behind an impenetrable mass of vapor, and hundreds of human forms, which had blackened beneath the fierce heats of August, were stiffening in their deformity before the blasts of a premature November. The curling and spotless mists, which had been seen sailing above the hills toward the north, were now returning in an interminable dusky sheet, that was urged along by the fury of a tempest. The crowded mirror of the Horican was gone; and, in its place, the green and angry waters lashed the shores, as if indignantly casting back its impurities to the polluted strand. Still the clear fountain retained a portion of its charmed influence, but it reflected only the somber gloom that fell from the impending heavens. That humid and congenial atmosphere which commonly adorned the view, veiling its harshness, and softening its asperities, had disappeared, the northern air poured across the waste of water so harsh and unmingled, that nothing was left to be conjectured by the eye, or fashioned by the fancy.

A terrible change had also happened in the season. The sun had hidden its warmth behind a solid mass of clouds, and hundreds of people, who had darkened under the intense heat of August, were now stiffening in their deformity before the harsh winds of an early November. The curling and pristine mists that had been seen drifting above the hills to the north were now returning in an endless dark sheet, driven by the fury of a storm. The once-crowded surface of the Horican was gone; in its place, the green and angry waters crashed against the shores, as if angrily pushing back its impurities to the polluted strand. Still, the clear spring retained some of its enchanting influence, but it only reflected the dark gloom that fell from the threatening skies. That humid and inviting atmosphere that usually decorated the view, softening its harshness and smoothing its rough edges, had vanished, and the northern air swept across the expanse of water so unyielding and pure that nothing could be guessed by the eye or imagined by the mind.

The fiercer element had cropped the verdure of the plain, which looked as though it were scathed by the consuming lightning. But, here and there, a dark green tuft rose in the midst of the desolation; the earliest fruits of a soil that had been fattened with human blood. The whole landscape, which, seen by a favoring light, and in a genial temperature, had been found so lovely, appeared now like some pictured allegory of life, in which objects were arrayed in their harshest but truest colors, and without the relief of any shadowing.

The harsher elements had stripped the greenery of the plain, making it look scorched by the destructive lightning. But here and there, a dark green clump emerged amidst the devastation; the first signs of life from a land that had been nourished by human blood. The entire landscape, which had previously seemed beautiful in a flattering light and mild weather, now resembled a stark representation of life, displaying everything in its most intense but honest colors, without the comfort of any shadow.

The solitary and arid blades of grass arose from the passing gusts fearfully perceptible; the bold and rocky mountains were too distinct in their barrenness, and the eye even sought relief, in vain, by attempting to pierce the illimitable void of heaven, which was shut to its gaze by the dusky sheet of ragged and driving vapor.

The lonely, dry blades of grass swayed in the noticeable gusts of wind; the stark, rugged mountains stood out in their emptiness, and the eye looked for relief, but failed, as it tried to break through the endless void of the sky, which was blocked from view by a dark, tattered curtain of swirling mist.

The wind blew unequally; sometimes sweeping heavily along the ground, seeming to whisper its moanings in the cold ears of the dead, then rising in a shrill and mournful whistling, it entered the forest with a rush that filled the air with the leaves and branches it scattered in its path. Amid the unnatural shower, a few hungry ravens struggled with the gale; but no sooner was the green ocean of woods which stretched beneath them, passed, than they gladly stopped, at random, to their hideous banquet.

The wind blew inconsistently; sometimes it swept heavily along the ground, as if whispering its moans in the cold ears of the dead, then rising in a sharp and sad whistle, it rushed into the forest, filling the air with the leaves and branches it scattered in its wake. Amid this unnatural shower, a few hungry ravens battled against the gale; but as soon as they passed the green ocean of woods stretching below them, they eagerly settled down for their gruesome feast.

In short, it was a scene of wildness and desolation; and it appeared as if all who had profanely entered it had been stricken, at a blow, by the relentless arm of death. But the prohibition had ceased; and for the first time since the perpetrators of those foul deeds which had assisted to disfigure the scene were gone, living human beings had now presumed to approach the place.

In short, it was a chaotic and deserted scene; it seemed like everyone who had carelessly entered had been hit, all at once, by the unyielding force of death. But the ban was over; and for the first time since the people responsible for those terrible acts that had scarred the area were gone, living humans had now dared to come near the place.

About an hour before the setting of the sun, on the day already mentioned, the forms of five men might have been seen issuing from the narrow vista of trees, where the path to the Hudson entered the forest, and advancing in the direction of the ruined works. At first their progress was slow and guarded, as though they entered with reluctance amid the horrors of the post, or dreaded the renewal of its frightful incidents. A light figure preceded the rest of the party, with the caution and activity of a native; ascending every hillock to reconnoiter, and indicating by gestures, to his companions, the route he deemed it most prudent to pursue. Nor were those in the rear wanting in every caution and foresight known to forest warfare. One among them, he also was an Indian, moved a little on one flank, and watched the margin of the woods, with eyes long accustomed to read the smallest sign of danger. The remaining three were white, though clad in vestments adapted, both in quality and color, to their present hazardous pursuit—that of hanging on the skirts of a retiring army in the wilderness.

About an hour before sunset on the day already mentioned, five men could be seen coming out from the narrow view of trees where the path to the Hudson entered the forest, heading towards the ruined buildings. At first, they moved slowly and cautiously, as if hesitant to enter the haunting ground of the post, fearing a repeat of its terrifying events. A light figure led the group, moving with the alertness and agility of a local, climbing every hill to scout ahead and signaling to his companions which route he thought would be safest. Those behind him were also careful and prepared, familiar with the strategies of forest warfare. One of them, also an Indian, positioned himself on one flank, keeping a close watch on the edges of the woods with eyes trained to spot even the slightest signs of danger. The other three were white men, dressed in clothing suitable both in quality and color for their risky mission of trailing a retreating army in the wilderness.

The effects produced by the appalling sights that constantly arose in their path to the lake shore, were as different as the characters of the respective individuals who composed the party. The youth in front threw serious but furtive glances at the mangled victims, as he stepped lightly across the plain, afraid to exhibit his feelings, and yet too inexperienced to quell entirely their sudden and powerful influence. His red associate, however, was superior to such a weakness. He passed the groups of dead with a steadiness of purpose, and an eye so calm, that nothing but long and inveterate practise could enable him to maintain. The sensations produced in the minds of even the white men were different, though uniformly sorrowful. One, whose gray locks and furrowed lineaments, blending with a martial air and tread, betrayed, in spite of the disguise of a woodsman’s dress, a man long experienced in scenes of war, was not ashamed to groan aloud, whenever a spectacle of more than usual horror came under his view. The young man at his elbow shuddered, but seemed to suppress his feelings in tenderness to his companion. Of them all, the straggler who brought up the rear appeared alone to betray his real thoughts, without fear of observation or dread of consequences. He gazed at the most appalling sight with eyes and muscles that knew not how to waver, but with execrations so bitter and deep as to denote how much he denounced the crime of his enemies.

The reactions to the horrific sights that constantly appeared on their way to the lake were as varied as the personalities of the people in the group. The young man in front cast serious but quick glances at the mangled victims as he carefully stepped across the plain, trying to hide his feelings, yet too inexperienced to completely suppress their sudden and strong impact. In contrast, his red-haired companion was above such weakness. He moved past the groups of dead with determination and a calm gaze that only long practice could allow him to maintain. The feelings experienced by even the white men were different, though they all shared a sense of sorrow. One man, with his gray hair and lined face, showing a mix of a soldier’s demeanor in a woodsman’s outfit, didn't hesitate to groan aloud whenever he encountered a particularly horrifying sight. The young man beside him shuddered but seemed to hold back his emotions out of concern for his companion. Among them, the straggler at the back was the only one to openly express his true feelings, unbothered by the risk of being noticed or any potential consequences. He stared at the most horrific scene with unwavering eyes and muscles, but with curses so intense and deep that they revealed how strongly he condemned the actions of his enemies.

The reader will perceive at once, in these respective characters, the Mohicans, and their white friend, the scout; together with Munro and Heyward. It was, in truth, the father in quest of his children, attended by the youth who felt so deep a stake in their happiness, and those brave and trusty foresters, who had already proved their skill and fidelity through the trying scenes related.

The reader will immediately recognize, in these characters, the Mohicans and their white friend, the scout, along with Munro and Heyward. It was, in fact, the father searching for his children, accompanied by the young man who cared so much about their well-being, and those brave and reliable woodsmen, who had already demonstrated their skill and loyalty through the challenging events described.

When Uncas, who moved in front, had reached the center of the plain, he raised a cry that drew his companions in a body to the spot. The young warrior had halted over a group of females who lay in a cluster, a confused mass of dead. Notwithstanding the revolting horror of the exhibition, Munro and Heyward flew toward the festering heap, endeavoring, with a love that no unseemliness could extinguish, to discover whether any vestiges of those they sought were to be seen among the tattered and many-colored garments. The father and the lover found instant relief in the search; though each was condemned again to experience the misery of an uncertainty that was hardly less insupportable than the most revolting truth. They were standing, silent and thoughtful, around the melancholy pile, when the scout approached. Eyeing the sad spectacle with an angry countenance, the sturdy woodsman, for the first time since his entering the plain, spoke intelligibly and aloud:

When Uncas, who was in front, reached the center of the plain, he let out a cry that brought his companions over to him. The young warrior had stopped over a group of women lying together, a distressing mass of the dead. Despite the terrible horror of the scene, Munro and Heyward rushed toward the grim heap, trying, with a love that nothing could dampen, to see if any signs of those they were looking for could be found among the torn and colorful clothes. The father and the lover quickly felt some relief in their search, even though each was forced to face the pain of an uncertainty that was almost as unbearable as the most horrifying truth. They stood there, silent and thoughtful, around the sorrowful pile when the scout came closer. With an angry look at the tragic scene, the tough woodsman finally spoke clearly and loudly for the first time since stepping onto the plain:

“I have been on many a shocking field, and have followed a trail of blood for weary miles,” he said, “but never have I found the hand of the devil so plain as it is here to be seen! Revenge is an Indian feeling, and all who know me know that there is no cross in my veins; but this much will I say—here, in the face of heaven, and with the power of the Lord so manifest in this howling wilderness—that should these Frenchers ever trust themselves again within the range of a ragged bullet, there is one rifle which shall play its part so long as flint will fire or powder burn! I leave the tomahawk and knife to such as have a natural gift to use them. What say you, Chingachgook,” he added, in Delaware; “shall the Hurons boast of this to their women when the deep snows come?”

“I’ve been on many shocking battlefields and have followed a trail of blood for exhausting miles,” he said, “but I’ve never seen the devil’s hand as clearly as I do here! Revenge is an Indian sentiment, and everyone who knows me knows that I have no bitterness in my blood; but I’ll say this—here, in the sight of heaven, and with the power of the Lord so evident in this wild wilderness—that if these French dare to set foot in this range of a bullet again, there’s one rifle that will do its duty as long as flint sparks or gunpowder ignites! I leave the tomahawk and knife to those who have a natural skill for them. What do you think, Chingachgook,” he added in Delaware; “will the Hurons boast of this to their women when the deep snows arrive?”

A gleam of resentment flashed across the dark lineaments of the Mohican chief; he loosened his knife in his sheath; and then turning calmly from the sight, his countenance settled into a repose as deep as if he knew the instigation of passion.

A flash of resentment crossed the dark features of the Mohican chief; he loosened his knife in its sheath; and then, turning away from the scene, his face fell into a calm expression as if he understood the cause of his anger.

“Montcalm! Montcalm!” continued the deeply resentful and less self-restrained scout; “they say a time must come when all the deeds done in the flesh will be seen at a single look; and that by eyes cleared from mortal infirmities. Woe betide the wretch who is born to behold this plain, with the judgment hanging about his soul! Ha—as I am a man of white blood, yonder lies a red-skin, without the hair of his head where nature rooted it! Look to him, Delaware; it may be one of your missing people; and he should have burial like a stout warrior. I see it in your eye, Sagamore; a Huron pays for this, afore the fall winds have blown away the scent of the blood!”

“Montcalm! Montcalm!” the resentful and less self-controlled scout shouted. “They say there will come a time when all the things we've done will be seen in an instant, through eyes freed from human weaknesses. Shame on the poor soul who has to witness this view, with judgment looming over him! Ha— as I stand here as a white man, there lies a Native American, scalped where nature had placed his hair! Look at him, Delaware; this could be one of your missing people, and he deserves a burial like a brave warrior. I can see it in your eyes, Sagamore; a Huron will pay for this before the autumn winds have washed away the scent of the blood!”

Chingachgook approached the mutilated form, and, turning it over, he found the distinguishing marks of one of those six allied tribes, or nations, as they were called, who, while they fought in the English ranks, were so deadly hostile to his own people. Spurning the loathsome object with his foot, he turned from it with the same indifference he would have quitted a brute carcass. The scout comprehended the action, and very deliberately pursued his own way, continuing, however, his denunciations against the French commander in the same resentful strain.

Chingachgook approached the mangled body, and, flipping it over, he saw the identifying marks of one of those six allied tribes, or nations, as they were known, who, while they fought alongside the English, were fiercely hostile to his own people. Kicking the disgusting object with his foot, he walked away from it with the same indifference he would have had toward a dead animal. The scout understood the gesture and calmly continued on his way, still directing his anger towards the French commander with the same bitter tone.

“Nothing but vast wisdom and unlimited power should dare to sweep off men in multitudes,” he added; “for it is only the one that can know the necessity of the judgment; and what is there, short of the other, that can replace the creatures of the Lord? I hold it a sin to kill the second buck afore the first is eaten, unless a march in front, or an ambushment, be contemplated. It is a different matter with a few warriors in open and rugged fight, for ’tis their gift to die with the rifle or the tomahawk in hand; according as their natures may happen to be, white or red. Uncas, come this way, lad, and let the ravens settle upon the Mingo. I know, from often seeing it, that they have a craving for the flesh of an Oneida; and it is as well to let the bird follow the gift of its natural appetite.”

“Only immense wisdom and unlimited power should have the right to take men in large numbers,” he added; “because only someone who understands the need for judgment can decide this. What else, besides that, can replace God’s creations? I think it’s wrong to kill the second deer before the first is eaten, unless you’re planning a march in front, or setting up an ambush. It’s different when a few warriors are fighting openly and harshly, as it’s their destiny to die with a rifle or a tomahawk in hand, depending on whether they’re white or red. Uncas, come here, boy, and let the ravens feast on the Mingo. I know from seeing it often that they crave Oneida flesh, so it’s best to let the bird follow its natural instincts.”

“Hugh!” exclaimed the young Mohican, rising on the extremities of his feet, and gazing intently in his front, frightening the ravens to some other prey by the sound and the action.

“Hugh!” exclaimed the young Mohican, standing on the tips of his toes and staring intently ahead, scaring the ravens away to find something else to hunt with his voice and movement.

“What is it, boy?” whispered the scout, lowering his tall form into a crouching attitude, like a panther about to take his leap; “God send it be a tardy Frencher, skulking for plunder. I do believe ‘killdeer’ would take an uncommon range today!”

“What is it, boy?” whispered the scout, lowering his tall frame into a crouch, like a panther ready to leap; “I hope it's just a late Frenchman sneaking around for loot. I really think ‘killdeer’ would cover quite a distance today!”

Uncas, without making any reply, bounded away from the spot, and in the next instant he was seen tearing from a bush, and waving in triumph, a fragment of the green riding-veil of Cora. The movement, the exhibition, and the cry which again burst from the lips of the young Mohican, instantly drew the whole party about him.

Uncas, without saying anything, jumped away from the spot, and in the next moment he was seen rushing out from a bush, triumphantly waving a piece of Cora's green riding veil. His movement, the display, and the shout that burst from the young Mohican’s lips immediately attracted the attention of the whole party around him.

“My child!” said Munro, speaking quickly and wildly; “give me my child!”

“My child!” Munro said, speaking quickly and frantically. “Give me my child!”

“Uncas will try,” was the short and touching answer.

“Uncas will try,” was the brief and heartfelt response.

The simple but meaning assurance was lost on the father, who seized the piece of gauze, and crushed it in his hand, while his eyes roamed fearfully among the bushes, as if he equally dreaded and hoped for the secrets they might reveal.

The straightforward yet meaningful assurance went over the father's head as he grabbed the piece of gauze and crushed it in his hand, while his eyes scanned the bushes nervously, as if he both feared and hoped for the secrets they could reveal.

“Here are no dead,” said Heyward; “the storm seems not to have passed this way.”

“Here are no bodies,” said Heyward; “the storm doesn’t seem to have come through here.”

“That’s manifest; and clearer than the heavens above our heads,” returned the undisturbed scout; “but either she, or they that have robbed her, have passed the bush; for I remember the rag she wore to hide a face that all did love to look upon. Uncas, you are right; the dark-hair has been here, and she has fled like a frightened fawn, to the wood; none who could fly would remain to be murdered. Let us search for the marks she left; for, to Indian eyes, I sometimes think a humming-bird leaves his trail in the air.”

"That's obvious; clearer than the sky above us," replied the calm scout. "But either she or the ones who took her have gone past the bush, because I remember the rag she wore to cover a face everyone loved to see. Uncas, you’re right; the dark-haired woman was here, and she ran off like a scared fawn into the woods; anyone who could escape wouldn’t stick around to get killed. Let’s look for the signs she left behind; to Indian eyes, I sometimes think a hummingbird leaves its mark in the air."

The young Mohican darted away at the suggestion, and the scout had hardly done speaking, before the former raised a cry of success from the margin of the forest. On reaching the spot, the anxious party perceived another portion of the veil fluttering on the lower branch of a beech.

The young Mohican took off at the suggestion, and barely had the scout finished speaking when the Mohican shouted in triumph from the edge of the forest. When the group arrived, they spotted another piece of the veil rustling on the lower branch of a beech tree.

“Softly, softly,” said the scout, extending his long rifle in front of the eager Heyward; “we now know our work, but the beauty of the trail must not be deformed. A step too soon may give us hours of trouble. We have them, though; that much is beyond denial.”

“Gently, gently,” said the scout, holding out his long rifle in front of the eager Heyward; “we know what we need to do, but we can’t mess up the beauty of the trail. One wrong step could lead to hours of trouble. But we’ve got them; that much is for sure.”

“Bless ye, bless ye, worthy man!” exclaimed Munro; “whither then, have they fled, and where are my babes?”

“Bless you, bless you, good man!” shouted Munro; “where have they gone, and where are my children?”

“The path they have taken depends on many chances. If they have gone alone, they are quite as likely to move in a circle as straight, and they may be within a dozen miles of us; but if the Hurons, or any of the French Indians, have laid hands on them, ’tis probably they are now near the borders of the Canadas. But what matters that?” continued the deliberate scout, observing the powerful anxiety and disappointment the listeners exhibited; “here are the Mohicans and I on one end of the trail, and, rely on it, we find the other, though they should be a hundred leagues asunder! Gently, gently, Uncas, you are as impatient as a man in the settlements; you forget that light feet leave but faint marks!”

“The path they’ve taken depends on a lot of luck. If they’re on their own, they could just as easily be going in circles as going straight, and they might be only a dozen miles away from us; but if the Hurons or any of the French Indians have captured them, then they’re probably close to the borders of Canada. But what does that matter?” continued the steady scout, noticing the intense anxiety and disappointment on the faces of the listeners; “here are the Mohicans and I at one end of the trail, and trust me, we’ll find the other end, even if they’re a hundred leagues apart! Easy now, Uncas, you’re as restless as someone in a town; you forget that light footsteps leave only faint traces!”

“Hugh!” exclaimed Chingachgook, who had been occupied in examining an opening that had been evidently made through the low underbrush which skirted the forest; and who now stood erect, as he pointed downward, in the attitude and with the air of a man who beheld a disgusting serpent.

“Hugh!” exclaimed Chingachgook, who had been busy looking at an opening that had clearly been made through the low bushes lining the forest; and who now stood up straight, pointing down, like a man who had just seen a repulsive snake.

“Here is the palpable impression of the footstep of a man,” cried Heyward, bending over the indicated spot; “he has trod in the margin of this pool, and the mark cannot be mistaken. They are captives.”

“Here is the obvious sign of a man's footsteps,” exclaimed Heyward, leaning over the indicated spot; “he has walked at the edge of this pool, and the mark is unmistakable. They are captives.”

“Better so than left to starve in the wilderness,” returned the scout; “and they will leave a wider trail. I would wager fifty beaver skins against as many flints, that the Mohicans and I enter their wigwams within the month! Stoop to it, Uncas, and try what you can make of the moccasin; for moccasin it plainly is, and no shoe.”

“Better this than being left to starve in the wilderness,” replied the scout; “and they’ll leave a clearer trail. I’d bet fifty beaver skins against just as many flints that the Mohicans and I will reach their homes within the month! Bend down, Uncas, and see what you can figure out from the moccasin; because it’s definitely a moccasin, not a shoe.”

The young Mohican bent over the track, and removing the scattered leaves from around the place, he examined it with much of that sort of scrutiny that a money dealer, in these days of pecuniary doubts, would bestow on a suspected due-bill. At length he arose from his knees, satisfied with the result of the examination.

The young Mohican crouched down by the trail, clearing away the scattered leaves in the area as he closely inspected it, similar to how a modern-day money dealer would scrutinize a suspicious promissory note during uncertain financial times. Finally, he stood up, feeling pleased with what he had found.

“Well, boy,” demanded the attentive scout; “what does it say? Can you make anything of the tell-tale?”

“Well, kid,” asked the attentive scout; “what does it say? Can you figure anything out from the tell-tale?”

[Illustration]

“Well, boy,” demanded the attentive scout; “what does it say? Can you make anything of the tell-tale?”

“Well, kid,” asked the focused scout; “what does it say? Can you figure out what the evidence means?”

“Le Renard Subtil!”

“Cunning Fox!”

“Ha! that rampaging devil again! there will never be an end of his loping till ‘killdeer’ has said a friendly word to him.”

“Ha! That rampaging devil again! There will never be an end to his loping until ‘killdeer’ has said a friendly word to him.”

Heyward reluctantly admitted the truth of this intelligence, and now expressed rather his hopes than his doubts by saying:

Heyward reluctantly acknowledged the truth of this information, and now expressed more of his hopes than his uncertainties by saying:

“One moccasin is so much like another, it is probable there is some mistake.”

“One moccasin is so much like another that it’s likely there’s some mistake.”

“One moccasin like another! you may as well say that one foot is like another; though we all know that some are long, and others short; some broad and others narrow; some with high, and some with low insteps; some intoed, and some out. One moccasin is no more like another than one book is like another: though they who can read in one are seldom able to tell the marks of the other. Which is all ordered for the best, giving to every man his natural advantages. Let me get down to it, Uncas; neither book nor moccasin is the worse for having two opinions, instead of one.” The scout stooped to the task, and instantly added:

“One moccasin is just like another! You might as well say that one foot is like another; though we all know some are long and others are short; some are wide and others are narrow; some have high insteps, and some have low; some point inward, and some point outward. One moccasin is no more like another than one book is like another: although those who can read one are often unable to recognize the signs of the other. Which is all arranged for the best, giving each person their natural advantages. Let me get to the point, Uncas; neither a book nor a moccasin is worse for having two opinions instead of one.” The scout bent down to the task, and immediately added:

“You are right, boy; here is the patch we saw so often in the other chase. And the fellow will drink when he can get an opportunity; your drinking Indian always learns to walk with a wider toe than the natural savage, it being the gift of a drunkard to straddle, whether of white or red skin. ’Tis just the length and breadth, too! look at it, Sagamore; you measured the prints more than once, when we hunted the varmints from Glenn’s to the health springs.”

“You're right, kid; here’s the spot we saw so many times during the other chase. And that guy will drink whenever he gets the chance; a drinking Indian always learns to walk with a wider stance than the average savage, it’s just what drunks do, whether they’re white or red. It's exactly the length and width, too! Look at it, Sagamore; you measured the tracks more than once when we hunted the critters from Glenn’s to the health springs.”

Chingachgook complied; and after finishing his short examination, he arose, and with a quiet demeanor, he merely pronounced the word:

Chingachgook agreed; and after completing his brief inspection, he stood up, and with a calm manner, he simply said the word:

“Magua!”

“Magua!”

“Ay, ’tis a settled thing; here, then, have passed the dark-hair and Magua.”

“Yeah, it’s settled; here, then, have passed the dark-haired man and Magua.”

“And not Alice?” demanded Heyward.

“And not Alice?” asked Heyward.

“Of her we have not yet seen the signs,” returned the scout, looking closely around at the trees, the bushes and the ground. “What have we there? Uncas, bring hither the thing you see dangling from yonder thorn-bush.”

“Of her we have not yet seen the signs,” replied the scout, scanning the trees, bushes, and ground. “What do we have there? Uncas, bring over what you see hanging from that thorn bush.”

When the Indian had complied, the scout received the prize, and holding it on high, he laughed in his silent but heartfelt manner.

When the Indian had finished, the scout accepted the prize and, lifting it high, laughed in his quiet but genuine way.

“’Tis the tooting we’pon of the singer! now we shall have a trail a priest might travel,” he said. “Uncas, look for the marks of a shoe that is long enough to uphold six feet two of tottering human flesh. I begin to have some hopes of the fellow, since he has given up squalling to follow some better trade.”

“It's the horn of the singer! Now we’re going to have a path a priest might take,” he said. “Uncas, look for the marks of a shoe that’s long enough to support six feet two of unsteady human flesh. I’m starting to have some hope for the guy since he’s stopped crying to pursue something better.”

“At least he has been faithful to his trust,” said Heyward. “And Cora and Alice are not without a friend.”

“At least he has been loyal to his duty,” said Heyward. “And Cora and Alice have a friend, too.”

“Yes,” said Hawkeye, dropping his rifle, and leaning on it with an air of visible contempt, “he will do their singing. Can he slay a buck for their dinner; journey by the moss on the beeches, or cut the throat of a Huron? If not, the first catbird[1] he meets is the cleverer of the two. Well, boy, any signs of such a foundation?”

“Yes,” said Hawkeye, dropping his rifle and leaning on it with clear disdain, “he will do their singing. Can he hunt a deer for their dinner, navigate by the moss on the beech trees, or take down a Huron? If not, the first catbird he comes across is smarter than he is. So, kid, any signs of such a basis?”

[1] The powers of the American mocking-bird are generally known. But the true mocking-bird is not found so far north as the state of New York, where it has, however, two substitutes of inferior excellence, the catbird, so often named by the scout, and the bird vulgarly called ground- thresher. Either of these last two birds is superior to the nightingale or the lark, though, in general, the American birds are less musical than those of Europe.

[1] The abilities of the American mockingbird are widely recognized. However, the true mockingbird doesn’t go as far north as New York, where it’s replaced by two lesser alternatives: the catbird, frequently mentioned by the scout, and the bird commonly known as the ground-thrasher. Both of these birds are superior to the nightingale or the lark, although overall, American birds tend to be less musical than their European counterparts.

“Here is something like the footstep of one who has worn a shoe; can it be that of our friend?”

“Here’s something that looks like the footprint of someone wearing a shoe; could it belong to our friend?”

“Touch the leaves lightly or you’ll disconsart the formation. That! that is the print of a foot, but ’tis the dark-hair’s; and small it is, too, for one of such a noble height and grand appearance. The singer would cover it with his heel.”

“Touch the leaves gently or you’ll disturb the formation. That! That is the footprint, but it belongs to the dark-haired one; and it’s small, too, for someone of such noble height and grand appearance. The singer would cover it with his heel.”

“Where! let me look on the footsteps of my child,” said Munro, shoving the bushes aside, and bending fondly over the nearly obliterated impression. Though the tread which had left the mark had been light and rapid, it was still plainly visible. The aged soldier examined it with eyes that grew dim as he gazed; nor did he rise from this stooping posture until Heyward saw that he had watered the trace of his daughter’s passage with a scalding tear. Willing to divert a distress which threatened each moment to break through the restraint of appearances, by giving the veteran something to do, the young man said to the scout:

“Where! Let me see the footprints of my child,” said Munro, pushing the bushes aside and leaning down fondly over the nearly faded imprint. Although the step that left the mark was light and quick, it was still clearly visible. The old soldier examined it with eyes that grew hazy as he looked; he didn’t straighten up from this bent position until Heyward noticed that he had dampened the trace of his daughter’s passage with a burning tear. Wanting to distract him from a sorrow that threatened to break through his composure at any moment, the young man said to the scout:

“As we now possess these infallible signs, let us commence our march. A moment, at such a time, will appear an age to the captives.”

“As we now have these undeniable signs, let’s begin our march. A moment like this will feel like an eternity to the captives.”

“It is not the swiftest leaping deer that gives the longest chase,” returned Hawkeye, without moving his eyes from the different marks that had come under his view; “we know that the rampaging Huron has passed, and the dark-hair, and the singer, but where is she of the yellow locks and blue eyes? Though little, and far from being as bold as her sister, she is fair to the view, and pleasant in discourse. Has she no friend, that none care for her?”

“It’s not the fastest deer that gets chased the longest,” Hawkeye said, keeping his eyes on the different tracks he was examining. “We know the wild Huron has gone by, along with the dark-haired one and the singer, but where is the girl with the yellow hair and blue eyes? Though she’s small and not as brave as her sister, she’s lovely to look at and nice to talk to. Does she have no friend, that no one cares for her?”

“God forbid she should ever want hundreds! Are we not now in her pursuit? For one, I will never cease the search till she be found.”

“God forbid she ever wants hundreds! Are we not already looking for her? For one, I will never stop the search until she is found.”

“In that case we may have to journey by different paths; for here she has not passed, light and little as her footsteps would be.”

“In that case, we might have to go our separate ways; because she hasn’t been this way, no matter how light and small her footsteps would be.”

Heyward drew back, all his ardor to proceed seeming to vanish on the instant. Without attending to this sudden change in the other’s humor, the scout after musing a moment continued:

Heyward stepped back, all his enthusiasm to move forward disappearing in an instant. Without acknowledging this sudden shift in the other’s mood, the scout paused for a moment before continuing:

“There is no woman in this wilderness could leave such a print as that, but the dark-hair or her sister. We know that the first has been here, but where are the signs of the other? Let us push deeper on the trail, and if nothing offers, we must go back to the plain and strike another scent. Move on, Uncas, and keep your eyes on the dried leaves. I will watch the bushes, while your father shall run with a low nose to the ground. Move on, friends; the sun is getting behind the hills.”

“There’s no woman in this wilderness who could leave a mark like that, except for the dark-haired one or her sister. We know the first one has been here, but where are the signs of the other? Let’s keep pushing deeper on the trail, and if we don’t find anything, we’ll have to go back to the plain and pick up another scent. Keep going, Uncas, and watch the dried leaves. I’ll keep an eye on the bushes while your father tracks low to the ground. Let’s move on, friends; the sun is setting behind the hills.”

“Is there nothing that I can do?” demanded the anxious Heyward.

“Is there nothing I can do?” asked the worried Heyward.

“You?” repeated the scout, who, with his red friends, was already advancing in the order he had prescribed; “yes, you can keep in our rear and be careful not to cross the trail.”

“You?” the scout repeated, as he and his red friends were already moving forward in the formation he had set; “yes, you can stay behind us and make sure not to cross the path.”

Before they had proceeded many rods, the Indians stopped, and appeared to gaze at some signs on the earth with more than their usual keenness. Both father and son spoke quick and loud, now looking at the object of their mutual admiration, and now regarding each other with the most unequivocal pleasure.

Before they had gone very far, the Indians stopped and seemed to closely examine some marks on the ground with more interest than usual. Both father and son spoke quickly and loudly, now looking at what they admired together and now looking at each other with obvious delight.

“They have found the little foot!” exclaimed the scout, moving forward, without attending further to his own portion of the duty. “What have we here? An ambushment has been planted in the spot! No, by the truest rifle on the frontiers, here have been them one-sided horses again! Now the whole secret is out, and all is plain as the north star at midnight. Yes, here they have mounted. There the beasts have been bound to a sapling, in waiting; and yonder runs the broad path away to the north, in full sweep for the Canadas.”

“They’ve found the little footprint!” the scout shouted, moving forward and ignoring his own task. “What do we have here? An ambush has been set up in this spot! No, by the best rifle on the frontier, those one-sided horses are back again! Now the whole secret is exposed, and everything is as clear as the north star at midnight. Yes, they’ve set up camp here. The animals have been tied to a sapling, waiting; and over there runs the wide path heading north, leading straight to Canada.”

“But still there are no signs of Alice, of the younger Miss Munro,” said Duncan.

“But there are still no signs of Alice, the younger Miss Munro,” said Duncan.

“Unless the shining bauble Uncas has just lifted from the ground should prove one. Pass it this way, lad, that we may look at it.”

“Unless the shiny trinket Uncas just picked up from the ground turns out to be one. Hand it over here, kid, so we can take a look at it.”

Heyward instantly knew it for a trinket that Alice was fond of wearing, and which he recollected, with the tenacious memory of a lover, to have seen, on the fatal morning of the massacre, dangling from the fair neck of his mistress. He seized the highly prized jewel; and as he proclaimed the fact, it vanished from the eyes of the wondering scout, who in vain looked for it on the ground, long after it was warmly pressed against the beating heart of Duncan.

Heyward immediately recognized it as a charm that Alice loved to wear, and he remembered, with the persistent memory of a lover, seeing it on that tragic morning of the massacre, hanging from the beautiful neck of his beloved. He grabbed the treasured jewel; and as he announced it, it disappeared from the sight of the astonished scout, who searched for it on the ground for a long time, long after it was safely held against Duncan's beating heart.

“Pshaw!” said the disappointed Hawkeye, ceasing to rake the leaves with the breech of his rifle; “’tis a certain sign of age, when the sight begins to weaken. Such a glittering gewgaw, and not to be seen! Well, well, I can squint along a clouded barrel yet, and that is enough to settle all disputes between me and the Mingoes. I should like to find the thing, too, if it were only to carry it to the right owner, and that would be bringing the two ends of what I call a long trail together, for by this time the broad St. Lawrence, or perhaps, the Great Lakes themselves, are between us.”

“Pshaw!” said the disappointed Hawkeye, stopping his leaf-raking with the butt of his rifle; “it’s a clear sign of getting older when your eyesight starts to fade. Such a shiny trinket, and it can't be found! Well, at least I can still line up a shot down a cloudy barrel, and that’s enough to settle any arguments with the Mingoes. I’d really like to find it, too, just to return it to its rightful owner, and that would mean bringing together the two ends of what I call a long journey, because by now the wide St. Lawrence, or maybe even the Great Lakes, are between us.”

“So much the more reason why we should not delay our march,” returned Heyward; “let us proceed.”

“So even more reason for us not to delay our march,” Heyward replied. “Let’s move on.”

“Young blood and hot blood, they say, are much the same thing. We are not about to start on a squirrel hunt, or to drive a deer into the Horican, but to outlie for days and nights, and to stretch across a wilderness where the feet of men seldom go, and where no bookish knowledge would carry you through harmless. An Indian never starts on such an expedition without smoking over his council-fire; and, though a man of white blood, I honor their customs in this particular, seeing that they are deliberate and wise. We will, therefore, go back, and light our fire to-night in the ruins of the old fort, and in the morning we shall be fresh, and ready to undertake our work like men, and not like babbling women or eager boys.”

“Young blood and hot blood are pretty much the same thing, they say. We're not about to go on a squirrel hunt or chase a deer into the Horican, but we plan to spend days and nights out in the wilderness where few people tread, and where no amount of book knowledge will keep you safe. An Indian never sets out on such a journey without smoking over his council fire, and even though I have white ancestry, I respect their customs because they are thoughtful and wise. So, let’s go back, light our fire tonight in the ruins of the old fort, and in the morning we’ll be refreshed and ready to tackle our work like men, not like gossiping women or overly eager boys.”

Heyward saw, by the manner of the scout, that altercation would be useless. Munro had again sunk into that sort of apathy which had beset him since his late overwhelming misfortunes, and from which he was apparently to be roused only by some new and powerful excitement. Making a merit of necessity, the young man took the veteran by the arm, and followed in the footsteps of the Indians and the scout, who had already begun to retrace the path which conducted them to the plain.

Heyward noticed from the scout's behavior that arguing would be pointless. Munro had once again fallen into that kind of numbness that had gripped him since his recent overwhelming troubles, and it seemed he could only be stirred from it by some new and strong excitement. Making the best of the situation, the young man took the veteran by the arm and followed in the footsteps of the Indians and the scout, who had already started to retrace their path back to the plain.

CHAPTER XIX.

“Salar.—Why, I am sure, if he forfeit, thou wilt not take his flesh; what’s that good for?
Shy.—To bait fish withal; if it will feed nothing else, it will feed my revenge.”
—Merchant of Venice

“Salar.—I’m sure if he loses, you won’t actually take his flesh; what good is that?
Shy.—Good for baiting fish; if it won’t feed anything else, it’ll feed my revenge.”
—Merchant of Venice

The shades of evening had come to increase the dreariness of the place, when the party entered the ruins of William Henry. The scout and his companions immediately made their preparations to pass the night there; but with an earnestness and sobriety of demeanor that betrayed how much the unusual horrors they had just witnessed worked on even their practised feelings. A few fragments of rafters were reared against a blackened wall; and when Uncas had covered them slightly with brush, the temporary accommodations were deemed sufficient. The young Indian pointed toward his rude hut when his labor was ended; and Heyward, who understood the meaning of the silent gestures, gently urged Munro to enter. Leaving the bereaved old man alone with his sorrows, Duncan immediately returned into the open air, too much excited himself to seek the repose he had recommended to his veteran friend.

The evening shadows had deepened the gloominess of the place when the group entered the ruins of William Henry. The scout and his companions quickly prepared to spend the night there, but their serious and somber expressions revealed how deeply the unusual horrors they had just witnessed affected even their experienced hearts. A few broken rafters were propped up against a charred wall, and when Uncas lightly covered them with some brush, they considered the makeshift shelter sufficient. The young Indian pointed to his simple hut when he was done, and Heyward, understanding the meaning of his silent gestures, gently encouraged Munro to go inside. After leaving the grieving old man alone with his sadness, Duncan quickly stepped back outside, too stirred up himself to seek the rest he had suggested to his veteran friend.

While Hawkeye and the Indians lighted their fire and took their evening’s repast, a frugal meal of dried bear’s meat, the young man paid a visit to that curtain of the dilapidated fort which looked out on the sheet of the Horican. The wind had fallen, and the waves were already rolling on the sandy beach beneath him, in a more regular and tempered succession. The clouds, as if tired of their furious chase, were breaking asunder; the heavier volumes, gathering in black masses about the horizon, while the lighter scud still hurried above the water, or eddied among the tops of the mountains, like broken flights of birds, hovering around their roosts. Here and there, a red and fiery star struggled through the drifting vapor, furnishing a lurid gleam of brightness to the dull aspect of the heavens. Within the bosom of the encircling hills, an impenetrable darkness had already settled; and the plain lay like a vast and deserted charnel-house, without omen or whisper to disturb the slumbers of its numerous and hapless tenants.

While Hawkeye and the Indians lit their fire and had their evening meal of dried bear meat, the young man visited the curtain of the rundown fort that overlooked the expanse of the Horican. The wind had died down, and the waves were rolling onto the sandy beach below him in a more steady rhythm. The clouds, seeming exhausted from their wild chase, were breaking apart; the heavier ones gathered in dark masses along the horizon, while the lighter ones rushed above the water or swirled among the mountain tops, like flocks of birds returning to their nests. Here and there, a bright red star fought its way through the drifting mist, casting an eerie glow onto the dull sky. In the embrace of the surrounding hills, an impenetrable darkness had already settled; the plain appeared like a vast, abandoned graveyard, silent and still, without a sign or sound to disturb the rest of its many unfortunate occupants.

Of this scene, so chillingly in accordance with the past, Duncan stood for many minutes a rapt observer. His eyes wandered from the bosom of the mound, where the foresters were seated around their glimmering fire, to the fainter light which still lingered in the skies, and then rested long and anxiously on the embodied gloom, which lay like a dreary void on that side of him where the dead reposed. He soon fancied that inexplicable sounds arose from the place, though so indistinct and stolen, as to render not only their nature but even their existence uncertain. Ashamed of his apprehensions, the young man turned toward the water, and strove to divert his attention to the mimic stars that dimly glimmered on its moving surface. Still, his too-conscious ears performed their ungrateful duty, as if to warn him of some lurking danger. At length, a swift trampling seemed, quite audibly, to rush athwart the darkness. Unable any longer to quiet his uneasiness, Duncan spoke in a low voice to the scout, requesting him to ascend the mound to the place where he stood. Hawkeye threw his rifle across an arm and complied, but with an air so unmoved and calm, as to prove how much he counted on the security of their position.

Duncan stood as a captivated observer of this scene, which felt eerily connected to the past, for many minutes. His gaze shifted from the group of foresters gathered around their flickering fire on the mound to the fading light still hanging in the sky, then lingered anxiously on the dark mass where the dead lay. He soon began to imagine inexplicable sounds coming from that place, though they were so faint and elusive that he couldn't determine their nature or even confirm their existence. Embarrassed by his fears, the young man looked toward the water, trying to focus on the twinkling reflections of stars on its surface. Still, his overly aware ears continued to betray him, as if warning him of some hidden threat. Finally, he heard a swift trampling sound cutting through the darkness. Unable to shake off his anxiety, Duncan quietly asked the scout to come up to the mound where he stood. Hawkeye slung his rifle over one arm and complied, maintaining a calm demeanor that suggested he felt secure in their position.

“Listen!” said Duncan, when the other placed himself deliberately at his elbow; “there are suppressed noises on the plain which may show Montcalm has not yet entirely deserted his conquest.”

“Listen!” said Duncan, when the other deliberately positioned himself at his side; “there are muffled sounds on the plain that might indicate Montcalm hasn’t completely abandoned his conquest.”

“Then ears are better than eyes,” said the undisturbed scout, who, having just deposited a portion of a bear between his grinders, spoke thick and slow, like one whose mouth was doubly occupied. “I myself saw him caged in Ty, with all his host; for your Frenchers, when they have done a clever thing, like to get back, and have a dance, or a merry-making, with the women over their success.”

“Then ears are better than eyes,” said the calm scout, who, having just chewed on a piece of bear meat, spoke slowly and thickly, like someone whose mouth was quite full. “I saw him locked up in Ty, with all his followers; because your French, when they’ve pulled off something clever, like to return and have a celebration or a good time with the women to celebrate their success.”

“I know not. An Indian seldom sleeps in war, and plunder may keep a Huron here after his tribe has departed. It would be well to extinguish the fire, and have a watch—listen! you hear the noise I mean!”

“I don’t know. An Indian hardly sleeps during a war, and looting might keep a Huron here even after his tribe has left. It would be a good idea to put out the fire and keep watch—listen! Do you hear the noise I’m talking about?”

“An Indian more rarely lurks about the graves. Though ready to slay, and not over regardful of the means, he is commonly content with the scalp, unless when blood is hot, and temper up; but after spirit is once fairly gone, he forgets his enmity, and is willing to let the dead find their natural rest. Speaking of spirits, major, are you of opinion that the heaven of a red-skin and of us whites will be of one and the same?”

“An Indian less frequently hangs around the graves. While he's ready to kill and isn’t too concerned about how it’s done, he usually settles for just the scalp, unless he’s caught up in the heat of the moment. But once the anger fades, he forgets his grudges and lets the dead rest in peace. Speaking of spirits, Major, do you think the heaven of a Native American and that of us whites will be the same?”

“No doubt—no doubt. I thought I heard it again! or was it the rustling of the leaves in the top of the beech?”

“No doubt—no doubt. I thought I heard it again! Or was it the rustling of the leaves in the top of the beech?”

“For my own part,” continued Hawkeye, turning his face for a moment in the direction indicated by Heyward, but with a vacant and careless manner, “I believe that paradise is ordained for happiness; and that men will be indulged in it according to their dispositions and gifts. I, therefore, judge that a red-skin is not far from the truth when he believes he is to find them glorious hunting grounds of which his traditions tell; nor, for that matter, do I think it would be any disparagement to a man without a cross to pass his time—”

“For my part,” Hawkeye said, briefly looking in the direction Heyward pointed, but with a disinterested attitude, “I believe that paradise is meant for happiness, and that people will enjoy it based on their personalities and talents. Therefore, I think a Native American is not far off when he believes he will find the glorious hunting grounds his traditions speak of; and, honestly, I don’t think it would be a disgrace for a man without a burden to spend his time—”

“You hear it again?” interrupted Duncan.

“You hear that again?” interrupted Duncan.

“Ay, ay; when food is scarce, and when food is plenty, a wolf grows bold,” said the unmoved scout. “There would be picking, too, among the skins of the devils, if there was light and time for the sport. But, concerning the life that is to come, major; I have heard preachers say, in the settlements, that heaven was a place of rest. Now, men’s minds differ as to their ideas of enjoyment. For myself, and I say it with reverence to the ordering of Providence, it would be no great indulgence to be kept shut up in those mansions of which they preach, having a natural longing for motion and the chase.”

“Yeah, when food is scarce and when there's plenty, a wolf gets bolder,” said the unphased scout. “There would be some spoils among the skins of the devils if there was light and time for that kind of fun. But, about the life to come, Major; I’ve heard preachers say in the settlements that heaven is a place of rest. Now, people have different views on what enjoyment means. For me, and I say this with respect to how things are arranged by Providence, it wouldn’t be much of a treat to be locked away in those mansions they talk about, since I naturally long for movement and the thrill of the hunt.”

Duncan, who was now made to understand the nature of the noise he had heard, answered, with more attention to the subject which the humor of the scout had chosen for discussion, by saying:

Duncan, now realizing the source of the noise he had heard, responded, paying more attention to the topic that the scout's humor had chosen for discussion, by saying:

“It is difficult to account for the feelings that may attend the last great change.”

“It’s hard to describe the feelings that come with the final big change.”

“It would be a change, indeed, for a man who has passed his days in the open air,” returned the single-minded scout; “and who has so often broken his fast on the head waters of the Hudson, to sleep within sound of the roaring Mohawk. But it is a comfort to know we serve a merciful Master, though we do it each after his fashion, and with great tracts of wilderness atween us—what goes there?”

“It would definitely be a change for a guy who has spent his days outdoors,” replied the focused scout, “and who has often had his meals by the headwaters of the Hudson, to sleep near the roaring Mohawk. But it’s reassuring to know we serve a compassionate Master, even if we do it in our own ways, with vast stretches of wilderness between us—what's going on there?”

“Is it not the rushing of the wolves you have mentioned?”

“Is it not the sound of the wolves you mentioned?”

Hawkeye slowly shook his head, and beckoned for Duncan to follow him to a spot to which the glare from the fire did not extend. When he had taken this precaution, the scout placed himself in an attitude of intense attention and listened long and keenly for a repetition of the low sound that had so unexpectedly startled him. His vigilance, however, seemed exercised in vain; for after a fruitless pause, he whispered to Duncan:

Hawkeye slowly shook his head and gestured for Duncan to follow him to a spot where the fire's glare didn't reach. After doing this, the scout took a position of focused attention and listened carefully for the low sound that had surprised him. However, his vigilance appeared to be for nothing; after a long wait without any sign, he whispered to Duncan:

“We must give a call to Uncas. The boy has Indian senses, and he may hear what is hid from us; for, being a white-skin, I will not deny my nature.”

“We need to call Uncas. The kid has Indian instincts, and he might hear what we can’t; since I’m white, I won’t deny my nature.”

The young Mohican, who was conversing in a low voice with his father, started as he heard the moaning of an owl, and, springing on his feet, he looked toward the black mounds, as if seeking the place whence the sounds proceeded. The scout repeated the call, and in a few moments, Duncan saw the figure of Uncas stealing cautiously along the rampart, to the spot where they stood.

The young Mohican, who was quietly talking with his father, jumped when he heard the moaning of an owl. He quickly stood up and looked toward the dark mounds, as if trying to find the source of the sounds. The scout called out again, and in a few moments, Duncan saw Uncas carefully making his way along the wall to where they were standing.

Hawkeye explained his wishes in a very few words, which were spoken in the Delaware tongue. So soon as Uncas was in possession of the reason why he was summoned, he threw himself flat on the turf; where, to the eyes of Duncan, he appeared to lie quiet and motionless. Surprised at the immovable attitude of the young warrior, and curious to observe the manner in which he employed his faculties to obtain the desired information, Heyward advanced a few steps, and bent over the dark object on which he had kept his eye riveted. Then it was he discovered that the form of Uncas vanished, and that he beheld only the dark outline of an inequality in the embankment.

Hawkeye expressed his wishes in just a few words, spoken in the Delaware language. Once Uncas understood why he was called, he laid flat on the ground; to Duncan’s eyes, he seemed completely still and motionless. Intrigued by the young warrior's unmoving position and curious about how he used his senses to gather the needed information, Heyward took a few steps closer and leaned over the dark shape he had been watching. That’s when he realized that Uncas had disappeared, and he was only looking at the dark outline of an uneven part of the embankment.

“What has become of the Mohican?” he demanded of the scout, stepping back in amazement; “it was here that I saw him fall, and could have sworn that here he yet remained.”

“What happened to the Mohican?” he asked the scout, stepping back in shock. “This is where I saw him fall, and I could have sworn he was still here.”

“Hist! speak lower; for we know not what ears are open, and the Mingoes are a quick-witted breed. As for Uncas, he is out on the plain, and the Maquas, if any such are about us, will find their equal.”

“Shh! Speak quietly; we don’t know whose ears are listening, and the Mingoes are very sharp. As for Uncas, he's out on the plain, and the Maquas, if there are any around us, will find someone just as strong.”

“You think that Montcalm has not called off all his Indians? Let us give the alarm to our companions, that we may stand to our arms. Here are five of us, who are not unused to meet an enemy.”

“You think Montcalm hasn’t called off all his Indians? Let’s alert our friends so we can prepare for battle. There are five of us here, and we’re no strangers to facing an enemy.”

“Not a word to either, as you value your life. Look at the Sagamore, how like a grand Indian chief he sits by the fire. If there are any skulkers out in the darkness, they will never discover, by his countenance, that we suspect danger at hand.”

“Don’t say a word to either of them, if you care about your life. Look at the Sagamore, how much like a great Indian chief he looks sitting by the fire. If there are any lurkers out in the dark, they’ll never know, just by looking at him, that we think trouble is coming.”

“But they may discover him, and it will prove his death. His person can be too plainly seen by the light of that fire, and he will become the first and most certain victim.”

“But they might find him, and that will lead to his death. He can be seen too clearly in the light of that fire, and he will become the first and most obvious victim.”

“It is undeniable that now you speak the truth,” returned the scout, betraying more anxiety than was usual; “yet what can be done? A single suspicious look might bring on an attack before we are ready to receive it. He knows, by the call I gave to Uncas, that we have struck a scent; I will tell him that we are on the trail of the Mingoes; his Indian nature will teach him how to act.”

“It’s clear that you’re telling the truth now,” the scout replied, showing more anxiety than usual. “But what can we do? One suspicious glance could trigger an attack before we’re prepared. He knows from the call I made to Uncas that we’ve picked up a scent; I’ll let him know we’re on the trail of the Mingoes; his instincts as an Indian will guide him on how to respond.”

The scout applied his fingers to his mouth, and raised a low hissing sound, that caused Duncan at first to start aside, believing that he heard a serpent. The head of Chingachgook was resting on a hand, as he sat musing by himself but the moment he had heard the warning of the animal whose name he bore, he arose to an upright position, and his dark eyes glanced swiftly and keenly on every side of him. With his sudden and, perhaps, involuntary movement, every appearance of surprise or alarm ended. His rifle lay untouched, and apparently unnoticed, within reach of his hand. The tomahawk that he had loosened in his belt for the sake of ease, was even suffered to fall from its usual situation to the ground, and his form seemed to sink, like that of a man whose nerves and sinews were suffered to relax for the purpose of rest. Cunningly resuming his former position, though with a change of hands, as if the movement had been made merely to relieve the limb, the native awaited the result with a calmness and fortitude that none but an Indian warrior would have known how to exercise.

The scout put his fingers to his mouth and made a low hissing sound, which made Duncan jump at first, thinking he heard a snake. Chingachgook had his head resting on one hand as he sat lost in thought, but as soon as he heard the warning of the creature he shared a name with, he stood up straight, his dark eyes scanning the area swiftly and intently. With his sudden and possibly instinctive movement, any signs of surprise or fear disappeared. His rifle was close by, untouched and seemingly ignored. The tomahawk he had loosened from his belt for comfort had even fallen to the ground, and he appeared to sink down like a man whose muscles and nerves had relaxed for a moment of rest. Skillfully taking on his previous stance but with a change of hands, as if the movement was just to relieve his arm, the Native waited for what would happen next with a calmness and determination that only an Indian warrior would know how to maintain.

But Heyward saw that while to a less instructed eye the Mohican chief appeared to slumber, his nostrils were expanded, his head was turned a little to one side, as if to assist the organs of hearing, and that his quick and rapid glances ran incessantly over every object within the power of his vision.

But Heyward noticed that although the Mohican chief seemed to be sleeping to someone less observant, his nostrils were flared, his head was tilted slightly to one side, as if to help him hear better, and his quick, darting glances constantly scanned everything in his line of sight.

“See the noble fellow!” whispered Hawkeye, pressing the arm of Heyward; “he knows that a look or a motion might disconsart our schemes, and put us at the mercy of them imps—”

“Check out that noble guy!” whispered Hawkeye, gripping Heyward’s arm; “he knows that just a glance or a gesture could mess up our plans and leave us at the mercy of those little tricksters—”

He was interrupted by the flash and report of a rifle. The air was filled with sparks of fire, around that spot where the eyes of Heyward were still fastened, with admiration and wonder. A second look told him that Chingachgook had disappeared in the confusion. In the meantime, the scout had thrown forward his rifle, like one prepared for service, and awaited impatiently the moment when an enemy might rise to view. But with the solitary and fruitless attempt made on the life of Chingachgook, the attack appeared to have terminated. Once or twice the listeners thought they could distinguish the distant rustling of bushes, as bodies of some unknown description rushed through them; nor was it long before Hawkeye pointed out the “scampering of the wolves,” as they fled precipitately before the passage of some intruder on their proper domains. After an impatient and breathless pause, a plunge was heard in the water, and it was immediately followed by the report of another rifle.

He was interrupted by the sound and flash of a rifle. The air was filled with sparks around the spot where Heyward was still staring in admiration and wonder. A second glance revealed that Chingachgook had vanished in the chaos. Meanwhile, the scout had raised his rifle, ready for action, and waited impatiently for the moment when an enemy might show themselves. But after the lone, unsuccessful attempt on Chingachgook's life, the attack seemed to have ended. A couple of times, the listeners thought they could make out the distant rustling of bushes, as some unknown figures rushed through them; it wasn't long before Hawkeye pointed out the “scampering of the wolves,” as they fled in a panic from the path of some intruder in their territory. After an anxious and breathless pause, there was a splash in the water, followed immediately by the sound of another rifle.

“There goes Uncas!” said the scout; “the boy bears a smart piece! I know its crack, as well as a father knows the language of his child, for I carried the gun myself until a better offered.”

"There goes Uncas!" said the scout. "The kid has a great gun! I recognize its sound just like a father knows his child's voice, because I carried that gun myself until I found a better one."

“What can this mean?” demanded Duncan, “we are watched, and, as it would seem, marked for destruction.”

“What does this mean?” Duncan asked. “We’re being watched and, it looks like, marked for destruction.”

“Yonder scattered brand can witness that no good was intended, and this Indian will testify that no harm has been done,” returned the scout, dropping his rifle across his arm again, and following Chingachgook, who just then reappeared within the circle of light, into the bosom of the work. “How is it, Sagamore? Are the Mingoes upon us in earnest, or is it only one of those reptiles who hang upon the skirts of a war-party, to scalp the dead, go in, and make their boast among the squaws of the valiant deeds done on the pale faces?”

“That scattered brand over there shows that no good was meant, and this Indian will confirm that no harm has been done,” the scout replied, resting his rifle on his arm again and following Chingachgook, who had just reappeared in the circle of light, into the heart of the work. “What’s going on, Sagamore? Are the Mingoes serious about attacking us, or is it just one of those guys who tag along with a war party to scalp the dead and brag to the women about the brave things they've done to the pale faces?”

Chingachgook very quietly resumed his seat; nor did he make any reply, until after he had examined the firebrand which had been struck by the bullet that had nearly proved fatal to himself. After which he was content to reply, holding a single finger up to view, with the English monosyllable:

Chingachgook quietly took his seat again and didn’t respond until he had looked at the firebrand that had been hit by the bullet that had almost been fatal to him. After that, he was satisfied to reply, holding up a single finger with the English word:

“One.”

"One."

“I thought as much,” returned Hawkeye, seating himself; “and as he had got the cover of the lake afore Uncas pulled upon him, it is more than probable the knave will sing his lies about some great ambushment, in which he was outlying on the trail of two Mohicans and a white hunter—for the officers can be considered as little better than idlers in such a scrimmage. Well, let him—let him. There are always some honest men in every nation, though heaven knows, too, that they are scarce among the Maquas, to look down an upstart when he brags ag’in the face of reason. The varlet sent his lead within whistle of your ears, Sagamore.”

“I thought so,” Hawkeye replied, taking a seat. “And since he managed to get the cover of the lake before Uncas confronted him, it’s likely the guy will brag about some big ambush where he was tracking two Mohicans and a white hunter—because the officers are really no better than bystanders in such a fight. Well, let him—let him. There are always some decent people in every nation, though God knows they’re few and far between among the Maquas, who can stand up to a blowhard when he boasts against common sense. That scoundrel shot close enough for you to hear it, Sagamore.”

Chingachgook turned a calm and incurious eye toward the place where the ball had struck, and then resumed his former attitude, with a composure that could not be disturbed by so trifling an incident. Just then Uncas glided into the circle, and seated himself at the fire, with the same appearance of indifference as was maintained by his father.

Chingachgook turned a calm and uninterested gaze toward the spot where the ball had hit, and then returned to his previous posture, showing a composure that couldn't be shaken by such a minor event. Just then, Uncas smoothly entered the circle and sat down by the fire, displaying the same indifference as his father.

Of these several moments Heyward was a deeply interested and wondering observer. It appeared to him as though the foresters had some secret means of intelligence, which had escaped the vigilance of his own faculties. In place of that eager and garrulous narration with which a white youth would have endeavored to communicate, and perhaps exaggerate, that which had passed out in the darkness of the plain, the young warrior was seemingly content to let his deeds speak for themselves. It was, in fact, neither the moment nor the occasion for an Indian to boast of his exploits; and it is probably that, had Heyward neglected to inquire, not another syllable would, just then, have been uttered on the subject.

Heyward was a curious and intrigued observer during those moments. It seemed to him that the foresters had a secret way of communicating that his own senses couldn’t detect. Instead of the eager and chatty storytelling a white youth would have used to share and maybe exaggerate what had happened in the dark of the plains, the young warrior seemed satisfied to let his actions speak for themselves. It truly wasn’t the right time or place for an Indian to brag about his achievements; and likely, if Heyward hadn’t asked, not a single word would have been said about it at that moment.

“What has become of our enemy, Uncas?” demanded Duncan; “we heard your rifle, and hoped you had not fired in vain.”

“What happened to our enemy, Uncas?” Duncan asked. “We heard your rifle and hoped you hadn’t shot for nothing.”

The young chief removed a fold of his hunting skirt, and quietly exposed the fatal tuft of hair, which he bore as the symbol of victory. Chingachgook laid his hand on the scalp, and considered it for a moment with deep attention. Then dropping it, with disgust depicted in his strong features, he ejaculated:

The young chief pulled aside a section of his hunting skirt and revealed the deadly tuft of hair he wore as a symbol of victory. Chingachgook placed his hand on the scalp and examined it closely for a moment. Then, dropping it with a look of disgust on his face, he exclaimed:

“Oneida!”

“Oneida!”

“Oneida!” repeated the scout, who was fast losing his interest in the scene, in an apathy nearly assimilated to that of his red associates, but who now advanced in uncommon earnestness to regard the bloody badge. “By the Lord, if the Oneidas are outlying upon the trail, we shall by flanked by devils on every side of us! Now, to white eyes there is no difference between this bit of skin and that of any other Indian, and yet the Sagamore declares it came from the poll of a Mingo; nay, he even names the tribe of the poor devil, with as much ease as if the scalp was the leaf of a book, and each hair a letter. What right have Christian whites to boast of their learning, when a savage can read a language that would prove too much for the wisest of them all! What say you, lad, of what people was the knave?”

“Oneida!” repeated the scout, who was quickly losing interest in the scene, almost matching the indifference of his Native American companions, but now stepped forward with unusual seriousness to examine the bloody badge. “By the Lord, if the Oneidas are lurking along the trail, we'll be surrounded by enemies on all sides! To white folks, there’s no difference between this piece of skin and that of any other Indian, yet the Sagamore insists it came from the head of a Mingo; in fact, he even names the tribe of the poor guy, as easily as if the scalp were a page in a book, and each hair a letter. What right do Christian white people have to brag about their knowledge when a savage can read a language that would be too much for the smartest of them all! What do you think, kid, of what tribe was the scoundrel?”

Uncas raised his eyes to the face of the scout, and answered, in his soft voice:

Uncas looked up at the scout's face and replied in his gentle voice:

“Oneida.”

“Oneida.”

“Oneida, again! when one Indian makes a declaration it is commonly true; but when he is supported by his people, set it down as gospel!”

“Oneida, again! When one Native American makes a statement, it's usually true; but when they have the backing of their community, consider it a fact!”

“The poor fellow has mistaken us for French,” said Heyward; “or he would not have attempted the life of a friend.”

“The poor guy has mistaken us for French,” said Heyward; “or he wouldn't have tried to take a friend’s life.”

“He mistake a Mohican in his paint for a Huron! You would be as likely to mistake the white-coated grenadiers of Montcalm for the scarlet jackets of the Royal Americans,” returned the scout. “No, no, the sarpent knew his errand; nor was there any great mistake in the matter, for there is but little love atween a Delaware and a Mingo, let their tribes go out to fight for whom they may, in a white quarrel. For that matter, though the Oneidas do serve his sacred majesty, who is my sovereign lord and master, I should not have deliberated long about letting off ‘killdeer’ at the imp myself, had luck thrown him in my way.”

"He confused a Mohican in his paint for a Huron! You’d be just as likely to confuse the white-coated grenadiers of Montcalm for the scarlet jackets of the Royal Americans,” the scout replied. “No, no, the serpent knew what he was doing; and there wasn’t really any big mistake here, because there’s hardly any love between a Delaware and a Mingo, no matter which side they fight for in a white man’s conflict. That said, even though the Oneidas serve his sacred majesty, who is my sovereign lord and master, I wouldn’t have thought twice about taking a shot at ‘killdeer’ myself, if luck had brought him my way.”

“That would have been an abuse of our treaties, and unworthy of your character.”

"That would have been a violation of our agreements and unworthy of your character."

“When a man consort much with a people,” continued Hawkeye, “if they were honest and he no knave, love will grow up atwixt them. It is true that white cunning has managed to throw the tribes into great confusion, as respects friends and enemies; so that the Hurons and the Oneidas, who speak the same tongue, or what may be called the same, take each other’s scalps, and the Delawares are divided among themselves; a few hanging about their great council-fire on their own river, and fighting on the same side with the Mingoes while the greater part are in the Canadas, out of natural enmity to the Maquas—thus throwing everything into disorder, and destroying all the harmony of warfare. Yet a red natur’ is not likely to alter with every shift of policy; so that the love atwixt a Mohican and a Mingo is much like the regard between a white man and a sarpent.”

“When a man spends a lot of time with a group of people,” continued Hawkeye, “if they’re honest and he’s not a crook, love will grow between them. It’s true that white people’s trickery has caused a lot of confusion among the tribes regarding who is a friend and who is an enemy; so the Hurons and the Oneidas, who speak the same language—or something close—end up taking each other’s scalps, and the Delawares are divided among themselves; some stick close to their main council fire on their own river and fight alongside the Mingoes, while most are in Canada, out of natural hatred for the Maquas—this causes total chaos and ruins the coordination in warfare. Yet a native is not likely to change with every shift in policy; so the love between a Mohican and a Mingo is much like the feelings between a white man and a snake.”

“I regret to hear it; for I had believed those natives who dwelt within our boundaries had found us too just and liberal, not to identify themselves fully with our quarrels.”

“I’m sorry to hear that; I thought the locals who lived within our borders saw us as fair and generous, and would want to fully align themselves with our conflicts.”

“Why, I believe it is natur’ to give a preference to one’s own quarrels before those of strangers. Now, for myself, I do love justice; and, therefore, I will not say I hate a Mingo, for that may be unsuitable to my color and my religion, though I will just repeat, it may have been owing to the night that ‘killdeer’ had no hand in the death of this skulking Oneida.”

“Why, I think it’s natural to care more about your own issues than those of strangers. As for me, I really value justice; so, I won’t claim to hate a Mingo, since that might not fit with my background and beliefs, but I will just mention that it could be because of the night that ‘killdeer’ wasn’t involved in the death of this sneaky Oneida.”

Then, as if satisfied with the force of his own reasons, whatever might be their effect on the opinions of the other disputant, the honest but implacable woodsman turned from the fire, content to let the controversy slumber. Heyward withdrew to the rampart, too uneasy and too little accustomed to the warfare of the woods to remain at ease under the possibility of such insidious attacks. Not so, however, with the scout and the Mohicans. Those acute and long-practised senses, whose powers so often exceed the limits of all ordinary credulity, after having detected the danger, had enabled them to ascertain its magnitude and duration. Not one of the three appeared in the least to doubt their perfect security, as was indicated by the preparations that were soon made to sit in council over their future proceedings.

Then, as if satisfied with the strength of his own arguments, regardless of their impact on the other person's views, the honest but unyielding woodsman turned away from the fire, happy to let the debate settle down. Heyward stepped back to the rampart, feeling too anxious and not used to the dangers of the woods to feel comfortable with the possibility of such stealthy attacks. However, that wasn't the case for the scout and the Mohicans. Their sharp and well-trained senses, which often exceed what most people would believe, had not only picked up on the danger but also allowed them to assess how serious and long-lasting it was. None of the three showed any doubt about their safety, as was clear from the preparations that were soon made to hold a meeting about their next steps.

The confusion of nations, and even of tribes, to which Hawkeye alluded, existed at that period in the fullest force. The great tie of language, and, of course, of a common origin, was severed in many places; and it was one of its consequences, that the Delaware and the Mingo (as the people of the Six Nations were called) were found fighting in the same ranks, while the latter sought the scalp of the Huron, though believed to be the root of his own stock. The Delawares were even divided among themselves. Though love for the soil which had belonged to his ancestors kept the Sagamore of the Mohicans with a small band of followers who were serving at Edward, under the banners of the English king, by far the largest portion of his nation were known to be in the field as allies of Montcalm. The reader probably knows, if enough has not already been gleaned form this narrative, that the Delaware, or Lenape, claimed to be the progenitors of that numerous people, who once were masters of most of the eastern and northern states of America, of whom the community of the Mohicans was an ancient and highly honored member.

The confusion among nations, and even tribes, that Hawkeye mentioned was at its peak during that time. The strong bond of language and the shared heritage had been broken in many areas; one of the results was that the Delaware and the Mingo (as the Six Nations people were called) fought alongside each other, while the Mingo sought the scalp of the Huron, even though they were believed to be from the same ancestral line. The Delawares were even split among themselves. Although the love for the land that belonged to his ancestors kept the Sagamore of the Mohicans with a small group of followers serving Edward, under the banners of the English king, the majority of his people were known to be fighting as allies of Montcalm. The reader probably knows, if they haven't already gathered enough from this narrative, that the Delaware, or Lenape, claimed to be the ancestors of the many people who once ruled most of the eastern and northern states of America, of whom the Mohicans were an ancient and highly respected member.

It was, of course, with a perfect understanding of the minute and intricate interests which had armed friend against friend, and brought natural enemies to combat by each other’s side, that the scout and his companions now disposed themselves to deliberate on the measures that were to govern their future movements, amid so many jarring and savage races of men. Duncan knew enough of Indian customs to understand the reason that the fire was replenished, and why the warriors, not excepting Hawkeye, took their seats within the curl of its smoke with so much gravity and decorum. Placing himself at an angle of the works, where he might be a spectator of the scene without, he awaited the result with as much patience as he could summon.

It was, of course, with a clear understanding of the complex and detailed interests that had turned friends against each other and forced natural enemies to fight side by side, that the scout and his companions now settled in to discuss the plans for their future actions, among so many conflicting and fierce groups of people. Duncan knew enough about Native American customs to understand why the fire was being fed and why the warriors, including Hawkeye, sat down within the curl of its smoke with such seriousness and formality. Positioning himself at an angle that allowed him to observe the scene outside, he waited for the outcome with as much patience as he could muster.

After a short and impressive pause, Chingachgook lighted a pipe whose bowl was curiously carved in one of the soft stones of the country, and whose stem was a tube of wood, and commenced smoking. When he had inhaled enough of the fragrance of the soothing weed, he passed the instrument into the hands of the scout. In this manner the pipe had made its rounds three several times, amid the most profound silence, before either of the party opened his lips. Then the Sagamore, as the oldest and highest in rank, in a few calm and dignified words, proposed the subject for deliberation. He was answered by the scout; and Chingachgook rejoined, when the other objected to his opinions. But the youthful Uncas continued a silent and respectful listener, until Hawkeye, in complaisance, demanded his opinion. Heyward gathered from the manners of the different speakers, that the father and son espoused one side of a disputed question, while the white man maintained the other. The contest gradually grew warmer, until it was quite evident the feelings of the speakers began to be somewhat enlisted in the debate.

After a brief and impressive pause, Chingachgook lit a pipe whose bowl was intricately carved from one of the soft stones in the area, and whose stem was made of wood, and started smoking. Once he had inhaled enough of the calming smoke, he handed the pipe to the scout. This way, the pipe went around three times in complete silence before anyone in the group spoke. Then the Sagamore, as the oldest and highest in rank, suggested the topic for discussion in a few calm and dignified words. The scout responded, and Chingachgook replied when the other disagreed with him. But the young Uncas remained a silent and respectful listener until Hawkeye, being courteous, asked for his opinion. Heyward gathered from the mannerisms of the speakers that the father and son were on one side of a disputed issue, while the white man held the opposing view. The debate gradually heated up, making it clear that the speakers were becoming emotionally invested in the discussion.

Notwithstanding the increasing warmth of the amicable contest, the most decorous Christian assembly, not even excepting those in which its reverend ministers are collected, might have learned a wholesome lesson of moderation from the forbearance and courtesy of the disputants. The words of Uncas were received with the same deep attention as those which fell from the maturer wisdom of his father; and so far from manifesting any impatience, neither spoke in reply, until a few moments of silent meditation were, seemingly, bestowed in deliberating on what had already been said.

Despite the growing intensity of the friendly debate, even the most respectful Christian gathering—excluding those where its esteemed ministers are present—could learn a valuable lesson in moderation from the patience and politeness of the debaters. Uncas's words were met with the same serious attention as those that came from his father's greater wisdom; and rather than showing any impatience, neither spoke in response until a few moments of quiet reflection were seemingly devoted to considering what had already been discussed.

The language of the Mohicans was accompanied by gestures so direct and natural that Heyward had but little difficulty in following the thread of their argument. On the other hand, the scout was obscure; because from the lingering pride of color, he rather affected the cold and artificial manner which characterizes all classes of Anglo-Americans when unexcited. By the frequency with which the Indians described the marks of a forest trial, it was evident they urged a pursuit by land, while the repeated sweep of Hawkeye’s arm toward the Horican denoted that he was for a passage across its waters.

The Mohicans' language was paired with gestures that were so straightforward and natural that Heyward had little trouble following their discussion. In contrast, the scout was unclear; due to his lingering pride in color, he adopted the cool and artificial demeanor typical of Anglo-Americans when not excited. The Indians frequently referenced signs of a forest trail, making it clear they were advocating for a land pursuit, while Hawkeye's repeated sweeping gesture toward the Horican indicated he preferred a crossing over its waters.

The latter was to every appearance fast losing ground, and the point was about to be decided against him, when he arose to his feet, and shaking off his apathy, he suddenly assumed the manner of an Indian, and adopted all the arts of native eloquence. Elevating an arm, he pointed out the track of the sun, repeating the gesture for every day that was necessary to accomplish their objects. Then he delineated a long and painful path, amid rocks and water-courses. The age and weakness of the slumbering and unconscious Munro were indicated by signs too palpable to be mistaken. Duncan perceived that even his own powers were spoken lightly of, as the scout extended his palm, and mentioned him by the appellation of the “Open Hand”—a name his liberality had purchased of all the friendly tribes. Then came a representation of the light and graceful movements of a canoe, set in forcible contrast to the tottering steps of one enfeebled and tired. He concluded by pointing to the scalp of the Oneida, and apparently urging the necessity of their departing speedily, and in a manner that should leave no trail.

The latter seemed to be losing ground fast, and it looked like the decision was going against him when he got to his feet, shook off his sluggishness, and suddenly took on the demeanor of an Indian, using all the skills of native eloquence. Raising an arm, he pointed out the path of the sun, repeating the gesture for each day needed to achieve their goals. Then he described a long, difficult journey through rocks and streams. The age and frailty of the sleeping and unaware Munro were indicated by signs that were too clear to ignore. Duncan noticed that even his own abilities were being downplayed, as the scout held out his hand and referred to him as the “Open Hand”—a title his generosity had earned him from all the friendly tribes. Then he depicted the light and graceful movements of a canoe, showing a stark contrast to the unsteady steps of someone exhausted and weakened. He finished by pointing to the scalp of the Oneida and seemingly stressing the need for them to leave quickly and in a way that wouldn’t leave any trace.

[Illustration]

The Mohicans listened gravely, and with countenances that reflected the sentiments of the speaker.

The Mohicans listened seriously, their faces showing the feelings of the speaker.

The Mohicans listened gravely, and with countenances that reflected the sentiments of the speaker. Conviction gradually wrought its influence, and toward the close of Hawkeye’s speech, his sentences were accompanied by the customary exclamation of commendation. In short, Uncas and his father became converts to his way of thinking, abandoning their own previously expressed opinions with a liberality and candor that, had they been the representatives of some great and civilized people, would have infallibly worked their political ruin, by destroying forever their reputation for consistency.

The Mohicans listened seriously, their expressions mirroring the thoughts of the speaker. Gradually, they were convinced, and by the end of Hawkeye’s speech, his words were met with the usual expressions of approval. In short, Uncas and his father embraced his perspective, leaving behind their earlier opinions with a generosity and openness that, if they had represented some large and civilized nation, would have inevitably led to their political downfall by permanently damaging their reputation for consistency.

The instant the matter in discussion was decided, the debate, and everything connected with it, except the result appeared to be forgotten. Hawkeye, without looking round to read his triumph in applauding eyes, very composedly stretched his tall frame before the dying embers, and closed his own organs in sleep.

The moment the matter at hand was settled, the debate and everything related to it, except the outcome, seemed to be forgotten. Hawkeye, without turning around to see his victory reflected in the approving faces, calmly stretched his tall body before the fading embers and fell asleep.

Left now in a measure to themselves, the Mohicans, whose time had been so much devoted to the interests of others, seized the moment to devote some attention to themselves. Casting off at once the grave and austere demeanor of an Indian chief, Chingachgook commenced speaking to his son in the soft and playful tones of affection. Uncas gladly met the familiar air of his father; and before the hard breathing of the scout announced that he slept, a complete change was effected in the manner of his two associates.

Left now to their own devices, the Mohicans, who had spent so much time focusing on others, took the opportunity to pay some attention to themselves. Dropping the serious and stern demeanor of an Indian chief, Chingachgook began to speak to his son in gentle, playful tones of affection. Uncas happily responded to his father's familiar air; and before the heavy breathing of the scout indicated that he was asleep, a complete change was noticeable in the behavior of his two companions.

It is impossible to describe the music of their language, while thus engaged in laughter and endearments, in such a way as to render it intelligible to those whose ears have never listened to its melody. The compass of their voices, particularly that of the youth, was wonderful—extending from the deepest bass to tones that were even feminine in softness. The eyes of the father followed the plastic and ingenious movements of the son with open delight, and he never failed to smile in reply to the other’s contagious but low laughter. While under the influence of these gentle and natural feelings, no trace of ferocity was to be seen in the softened features of the Sagamore. His figured panoply of death looked more like a disguise assumed in mockery than a fierce annunciation of a desire to carry destruction in his footsteps.

It’s impossible to explain the music of their language while they’re caught up in laughter and affection in a way that makes sense to those who have never heard its melody. The range of their voices, especially the youth’s, was amazing—covering everything from deep bass to tones that were almost feminine in their softness. The father watched his son’s graceful and creative movements with pure delight, and he couldn’t help but smile back at his son’s contagious, quiet laughter. In the midst of these gentle and natural feelings, there was no hint of aggression in the softened features of the Sagamore. His ornate battle gear looked more like a costume worn in jest than a fierce statement of intent to bring destruction in his wake.

After an hour had passed in the indulgence of their better feelings, Chingachgook abruptly announced his desire to sleep, by wrapping his head in his blanket and stretching his form on the naked earth. The merriment of Uncas instantly ceased; and carefully raking the coals in such a manner that they should impart their warmth to his father’s feet, the youth sought his own pillow among the ruins of the place.

After an hour of enjoying their good feelings, Chingachgook suddenly said he wanted to sleep, pulling his blanket over his head and lying down on the bare ground. Uncas's laughter stopped immediately; he carefully shifted the coals to warm his father’s feet and then looked for a spot to rest among the ruins.

Imbibing renewed confidence from the security of these experienced foresters, Heyward soon imitated their example; and long before the night had turned, they who lay in the bosom of the ruined work, seemed to slumber as heavily as the unconscious multitude whose bones were already beginning to bleach on the surrounding plain.

Drawing renewed confidence from the security of these experienced foresters, Heyward soon followed their example; and long before night fell, those who lay in the heart of the ruined work seemed to sleep as deeply as the unaware crowd whose bones were already starting to bleach on the surrounding plain.

CHAPTER XX.

“Land of Albania! let me bend mine eyes
On thee; thou rugged nurse of savage men!”
—Childe Harold

“Land of Albania! Let me gaze upon you;
You, the rough nurturer of fierce people!”
—Childe Harold

The heavens were still studded with stars, when Hawkeye came to arouse the sleepers. Casting aside their cloaks Munro and Heyward were on their feet while the woodsman was still making his low calls, at the entrance of the rude shelter where they had passed the night. When they issued from beneath its concealment, they found the scout awaiting their appearance nigh by, and the only salutation between them was the significant gesture for silence, made by their sagacious leader.

The sky was still full of stars when Hawkeye came to wake up the sleepers. Throwing aside their cloaks, Munro and Heyward got to their feet while the woodsman continued his quiet calls at the entrance of the rough shelter where they had spent the night. When they emerged from its cover, they found the scout nearby, waiting for them, and the only greeting between them was a meaningful gesture for silence from their wise leader.

“Think over your prayers,” he whispered, as they approached him; “for He to whom you make them, knows all tongues; that of the heart, as well as those of the mouth. But speak not a syllable; it is rare for a white voice to pitch itself properly in the woods, as we have seen by the example of that miserable devil, the singer. Come,” he continued, turning toward a curtain of the works; “let us get into the ditch on this side, and be regardful to step on the stones and fragments of wood as you go.”

“Think about your prayers,” he whispered as they got closer to him; “because the one you’re praying to knows all languages—the language of the heart as well as the words you speak. But don’t say a word; it’s unusual for a white voice to sound right in the woods, as we’ve seen with that unfortunate singer. Come,” he said, turning toward a curtain of the works; “let’s get into the ditch on this side, and be careful to step on the stones and pieces of wood as you go.”

His companions complied, though to two of them the reasons of this extraordinary precaution were yet a mystery. When they were in the low cavity that surrounded the earthen fort on three sides, they found that passage nearly choked by the ruins. With care and patience, however, they succeeded in clambering after the scout, until they reached the sandy shore of the Horican.

His companions agreed, although for two of them, the reasons for this unusual caution were still a mystery. When they got to the low area surrounding the earthen fort on three sides, they found that passage nearly blocked by debris. With care and patience, they managed to climb after the scout until they reached the sandy shore of the Horican.

“That’s a trail that nothing but a nose can follow,” said the satisfied scout, looking back along their difficult way; “grass is a treacherous carpet for a flying party to tread on, but wood and stone take no print from a moccasin. Had you worn your armed boots, there might, indeed, have been something to fear; but with the deer-skin suitably prepared, a man may trust himself, generally, on rocks with safety. Shove in the canoe nigher to the land, Uncas; this sand will take a stamp as easily as the butter of the Jarmans on the Mohawk. Softly, lad, softly; it must not touch the beach, or the knaves will know by what road we have left the place.”

"That's a trail that only a nose can follow," said the confident scout, looking back at their tough journey. "Grass is a tricky surface for a group on the move, but wood and stone won’t leave any marks from a moccasin. If you had worn your sturdy boots, there might have been something to worry about; but with the deer-skin well-prepared, a person can usually trust himself on the rocks safely. Bring the canoe closer to shore, Uncas; this sand will hold a print just like the butter from the Jarmans on the Mohawk. Easy does it, kid; it can't touch the beach, or those guys will know how we left the place."

The young man observed the precaution; and the scout, laying a board from the ruins to the canoe, made a sign for the two officers to enter. When this was done, everything was studiously restored to its former disorder; and then Hawkeye succeeded in reaching his little birchen vessel, without leaving behind him any of those marks which he appeared so much to dread. Heyward was silent until the Indians had cautiously paddled the canoe some distance from the fort, and within the broad and dark shadows that fell from the eastern mountain on the glassy surface of the lake; then he demanded:

The young man took the necessary precautions, and the scout, putting a board from the ruins to the canoe, motioned for the two officers to get in. Once they did, everything was carefully returned to its previous disarray; then Hawkeye managed to reach his small birch canoe without leaving any of the signs that he seemed to fear so much. Heyward stayed quiet until the Indians had carefully paddled the canoe a good distance from the fort, into the wide, dark shadows cast by the eastern mountain on the smooth surface of the lake; then he asked:

“What need have we for this stolen and hurried departure?”

“What do we need this rushed and stolen departure for?”

“If the blood of an Oneida could stain such a sheet of pure water as this we float on,” returned the scout, “your two eyes would answer your own question. Have you forgotten the skulking reptile Uncas slew?”

“If the blood of an Oneida could stain this pure water we're floating on,” the scout replied, “your two eyes would answer your own question. Have you forgotten the sneaky snake Uncas killed?”

“By no means. But he was said to be alone, and dead men give no cause for fear.”

“Not at all. But people said he was alone, and dead men don’t inspire fear.”

“Ay, he was alone in his deviltry! but an Indian whose tribe counts so many warriors, need seldom fear his blood will run without the death shriek coming speedily from some of his enemies.”

“Yeah, he was alone in his mischief! But an Indian from a tribe with so many warriors doesn't usually have to worry about his blood being spilled without hearing the death scream of some of his enemies soon after.”

“But our presence—the authority of Colonel Munro—would prove sufficient protection against the anger of our allies, especially in a case where the wretch so well merited his fate. I trust in Heaven you have not deviated a single foot from the direct line of our course with so slight a reason!”

“But our presence—the authority of Colonel Munro—would be enough to protect us from the anger of our allies, especially in a situation where the scoundrel truly deserved his fate. I hope to Heaven you haven’t strayed even a bit from the straight path of our course for such a trivial reason!”

“Do you think the bullet of that varlet’s rifle would have turned aside, though his sacred majesty the king had stood in its path?” returned the stubborn scout. “Why did not the grand Frencher, he who is captain-general of the Canadas, bury the tomahawks of the Hurons, if a word from a white can work so strongly on the natur’ of an Indian?”

“Do you really think that the bullet from that guy’s rifle would have missed its mark if the king himself had been in the way?” replied the stubborn scout. “Why didn’t the great Frenchman, the one who is in charge of Canada, put an end to the tomahawks of the Hurons if a word from a white man can have such a strong effect on an Indian?”

The reply of Heyward was interrupted by a groan from Munro; but after he had paused a moment, in deference to the sorrow of his aged friend he resumed the subject.

Heyward's response was interrupted by a groan from Munro; however, after pausing for a moment to acknowledge the grief of his older friend, he continued the conversation.

“The marquis of Montcalm can only settle that error with his God,” said the young man solemnly.

“The marquis of Montcalm can only resolve that mistake with his God,” said the young man seriously.

“Ay, ay, now there is reason in your words, for they are bottomed on religion and honesty. There is a vast difference between throwing a regiment of white coats atwixt the tribes and the prisoners, and coaxing an angry savage to forget he carries a knife and rifle, with words that must begin with calling him your son. No, no,” continued the scout, looking back at the dim shore of William Henry, which was now fast receding, and laughing in his own silent but heartfelt manner; “I have put a trail of water atween us; and unless the imps can make friends with the fishes, and hear who has paddled across their basin this fine morning, we shall throw the length of the Horican behind us before they have made up their minds which path to take.”

"Yes, now there’s some sense in what you’re saying because it’s based on faith and honesty. There’s a huge difference between just sending a bunch of soldiers in white uniforms between the tribes and the prisoners, and actually trying to calm down an angry warrior to forget he’s armed with a knife and rifle, using words that start by calling him ‘my son.’ No, no,” the scout said, glancing back at the distant shore of William Henry, which was quickly fading away, and laughing in his own quiet but sincere way; “I’ve created a barrier of water between us; and unless the creatures can befriend the fish and find out who has crossed their waters this morning, we’ll have left the length of the Horican behind us before they even decide which way to go."

“With foes in front, and foes in our rear, our journey is like to be one of danger.”

“With enemies in front and enemies behind, our journey is bound to be dangerous.”

“Danger!” repeated Hawkeye, calmly; “no, not absolutely of danger; for, with vigilant ears and quick eyes, we can manage to keep a few hours ahead of the knaves; or, if we must try the rifle, there are three of us who understand its gifts as well as any you can name on the borders. No, not of danger; but that we shall have what you may call a brisk push of it, is probable; and it may happen, a brush, a scrimmage, or some such divarsion, but always where covers are good, and ammunition abundant.”

“Danger!” repeated Hawkeye calmly. “No, not really danger; because with sharp ears and quick eyes, we can stay a few hours ahead of the crooks. Or, if we have to use our rifles, there are three of us who know how to use them as well as anyone you could mention around here. No, it’s not about danger; but it’s likely we’ll have what you might call a good bit of action. It could be a skirmish, a fight, or something like that, but always in a place with good cover and plenty of ammo.”

It is possible that Heyward’s estimate of danger differed in some degree from that of the scout, for, instead of replying, he now sat in silence, while the canoe glided over several miles of water. Just as the day dawned, they entered the narrows of the lake[1], and stole swiftly and cautiously among their numberless little islands. It was by this road that Montcalm had retired with his army, and the adventurers knew not but he had left some of his Indians in ambush, to protect the rear of his forces, and collect the stragglers. They, therefore, approached the passage with the customary silence of their guarded habits.

It’s possible that Heyward’s sense of danger was a bit different from the scout’s, because instead of responding, he just sat in silence while the canoe glided over several miles of water. Just as day broke, they entered the narrow part of the lake[1], and moved quickly and quietly among the countless small islands. It was through this route that Montcalm had retreated with his army, and the adventurers had no idea if he had left some of his Indians hidden to cover the rear of his troops and gather any stragglers. So, they approached the passage with the usual silence ingrained in them from their cautious habits.

[1] The beauties of Lake George are well known to every American tourist. In the height of the mountains which surround it, and in artificial accessories, it is inferior to the finest of the Swiss and Italian lakes, while in outline and purity of water it is fully their equal; and in the number and disposition of its isles and islets much superior to them all together. There are said to be some hundreds of islands in a sheet of water less than thirty miles long. The narrows, which connect what may be called, in truth, two lakes, are crowded with islands to such a degree as to leave passages between them frequently of only a few feet in width. The lake itself varies in breadth from one to three miles.

[1] The beauty of Lake George is well-known to every American tourist. Although the surrounding mountains and man-made features don’t compare to the best Swiss and Italian lakes, in terms of its shape and water clarity, it stands equally with them. Plus, it has a far greater number of islands and islets combined. They say there are hundreds of islands in a body of water that’s less than thirty miles long. The narrows, which connect what can truly be called two lakes, are packed with islands, leaving channels between them that are often just a few feet wide. The lake itself ranges in width from one to three miles.

Chingachgook laid aside his paddle; while Uncas and the scout urged the light vessel through crooked and intricate channels, where every foot that they advanced exposed them to the danger of some sudden rising on their progress. The eyes of the Sagamore moved warily from islet to islet, and copse to copse, as the canoe proceeded; and, when a clearer sheet of water permitted, his keen vision was bent along the bald rocks and impending forests that frowned upon the narrow strait.

Chingachgook set down his paddle while Uncas and the scout navigated the small boat through twisty and complicated channels, where every step they took put them at risk of a sudden ambush. The Sagamore's eyes carefully scanned from island to island and thicket to thicket as the canoe moved forward; and when the water opened up a bit, he focused his sharp gaze on the bare rocks and looming forests that overshadowed the narrow passage.

Heyward, who was a doubly interested spectator, as well from the beauties of the place as from the apprehension natural to his situation, was just believing that he had permitted the latter to be excited without sufficient reason, when the paddle ceased moving, in obedience to a signal from Chingachgook.

Heyward, who was genuinely interested in both the beauty of the place and the natural anxiety of his situation, was starting to think that he had allowed his worries to get the best of him when the paddle stopped moving in response to a signal from Chingachgook.

“Hugh!” exclaimed Uncas, nearly at the moment that the light tap his father had made on the side of the canoe notified them of the vicinity of danger.

“Hugh!” shouted Uncas, just as the light tap his father made on the side of the canoe signaled that danger was nearby.

“What now?” asked the scout; “the lake is as smooth as if the winds had never blown, and I can see along its sheet for miles; there is not so much as the black head of a loon dotting the water.”

“What now?” asked the scout. “The lake is as smooth as if the winds had never blown, and I can see along its surface for miles; there isn’t even a black-headed loon in sight on the water.”

The Indian gravely raised his paddle, and pointed in the direction in which his own steady look was riveted. Duncan’s eyes followed the motion. A few rods in their front lay another of the wooded islets, but it appeared as calm and peaceful as if its solitude had never been disturbed by the foot of man.

The Indian seriously raised his paddle and pointed in the direction where his steady gaze was focused. Duncan’s eyes followed the movement. Just a short distance ahead lay another wooded island, but it looked as calm and peaceful as if it had never been disturbed by human footsteps.

“I see nothing,” he said, “but land and water; and a lovely scene it is.”

“I see nothing,” he said, “but land and water; and it's a beautiful sight.”

“Hist!” interrupted the scout. “Ay, Sagamore, there is always a reason for what you do. ’Tis but a shade, and yet it is not natural. You see the mist, major, that is rising above the island; you can’t call it a fog, for it is more like a streak of thin cloud—”

“Wait!” interrupted the scout. “Yes, Sagamore, there’s always a reason for what you do. It’s just a shadow, yet it doesn’t feel natural. You see the mist, major, rising above the island; you can’t really call it a fog, because it’s more like a streak of thin cloud—”

“It is vapor from the water.”

“It's steam from the water.”

“That a child could tell. But what is the edging of blacker smoke that hangs along its lower side, and which you may trace down into the thicket of hazel? ’Tis from a fire; but one that, in my judgment, has been suffered to burn low.”

"Any child could recognize that. But what’s with the darker smoke hanging along the bottom edge

“Let us, then, push for the place, and relieve our doubts,” said the impatient Duncan; “the party must be small that can lie on such a bit of land.”

“Let’s go for the spot and put our doubts to rest,” said the eager Duncan; “the group must be small that can settle on such a small piece of land.”

“If you judge of Indian cunning by the rules you find in books, or by white sagacity, they will lead you astray, if not to your death,” returned Hawkeye, examining the signs of the place with that acuteness which distinguished him. “If I may be permitted to speak in this matter, it will be to say, that we have but two things to choose between: the one is, to return, and give up all thoughts of following the Hurons—”

“If you judge Indian cleverness by the standards you find in books or by white people's wisdom, you’ll be mistaken, possibly even to your detriment,” Hawkeye replied, closely observing the signs around him with the sharpness that set him apart. “If I may have a say in this matter, I'll just point out that we have two options: one is to turn back and abandon all thoughts of pursuing the Hurons—”

“Never!” exclaimed Heyward, in a voice far too loud for their circumstances.

“Never!” shouted Heyward, his voice much too loud for the situation.

“Well, well,” continued Hawkeye, making a hasty sign to repress his impatience; “I am much of your mind myself; though I thought it becoming my experience to tell the whole. We must, then, make a push, and if the Indians or Frenchers are in the narrows, run the gauntlet through these toppling mountains. Is there reason in my words, Sagamore?”

“Well, well,” Hawkeye said, quickly signaling to hide his impatience. “I mostly agree with you; although I felt it was right to share everything. So, we need to push forward, and if the Indians or the French are in the narrows, we'll have to make our way through these steep mountains. Do you understand what I’m saying, Sagamore?”

The Indian made no other answer than by dropping his paddle into the water, and urging forward the canoe. As he held the office of directing its course, his resolution was sufficiently indicated by the movement. The whole party now plied their paddles vigorously, and in a very few moments they had reached a point whence they might command an entire view of the northern shore of the island, the side that had hitherto been concealed.

The Indian didn’t respond other than dropping his paddle into the water and pushing the canoe forward. By steering its course, he clearly showed his determination with that action. The entire group now paddled hard, and in just a few moments, they reached a spot where they could see the entire northern shore of the island, the side that had been hidden until now.

“There they are, by all the truth of signs,” whispered the scout, “two canoes and a smoke. The knaves haven’t yet got their eyes out of the mist, or we should hear the accursed whoop. Together, friends! we are leaving them, and are already nearly out of whistle of a bullet.”

“There they are, judging by all the signs,” whispered the scout, “two canoes and smoke. The fools still haven’t cleared their heads from the mist, or we’d hear their damn whoop. Together, friends! We’re leaving them behind and are already almost out of range of a bullet.”

The well-known crack of a rifle, whose ball came skipping along the placid surface of the strait, and a shrill yell from the island, interrupted his speech, and announced that their passage was discovered. In another instant several savages were seen rushing into canoes, which were soon dancing over the water in pursuit. These fearful precursors of a coming struggle produced no change in the countenances and movements of his three guides, so far as Duncan could discover, except that the strokes of their paddles were longer and more in unison, and caused the little bark to spring forward like a creature possessing life and volition.

The loud crack of a rifle, with its bullet skipping across the calm surface of the strait, and a sharp yell from the island interrupted his speech, signaling that their passage had been discovered. In an instant, several natives were seen rushing into canoes, quickly gliding over the water in pursuit. These terrifying signs of an impending struggle didn’t change the expressions or actions of his three guides, as far as Duncan could tell, except that their paddle strokes became longer and more synchronized, making the small boat surge forward as if it had a life of its own.

“Hold them there, Sagamore,” said Hawkeye, looking coolly backward over this left shoulder, while he still plied his paddle; “keep them just there. Them Hurons have never a piece in their nation that will execute at this distance; but ‘killdeer’ has a barrel on which a man may calculate.”

“Hold them there, Sagamore,” said Hawkeye, glancing casually over his left shoulder while he continued paddling. “Keep them right there. Those Hurons don’t have a gun in their group that can do anything at this distance, but ‘killdeer’ has a barrel that’s pretty reliable.”

[Illustration]

The scout having ascertained that the Mohicans were sufficient of themselves to maintain the requisite distance, deliberately laid aside his paddle, and raised the fatal rifle. Three several times he brought the piece to his shoulder, and when his companions were expecting its report, he as often lowered it to request the Indians would permit their enemies to approach a little nigher. At length his accurate and fastidious eye seemed satisfied, and, throwing out his left arm on the barrel, he was slowly elevating the muzzle, when an exclamation from Uncas, who sat in the bow, once more caused him to suspend the shot.

The scout, having confirmed that the Mohicans could keep a safe distance, set down his paddle and raised his deadly rifle. He brought it to his shoulder three times, and each time his companions anticipated the shot, he lowered it to ask the Indians to let their enemies get a bit closer. Finally, his precise and discerning eye appeared satisfied, and as he extended his left arm along the barrel, he began to raise the muzzle when an exclamation from Uncas, who was sitting in the front, made him pause once again.

“What, now, lad?” demanded Hawkeye; “you save a Huron from the death-shriek by that word; have you reason for what you do?”

“What’s going on, kid?” Hawkeye asked. “You’re saving a Huron from the death cry with that word; do you have a reason for what you’re doing?”

Uncas pointed toward a rocky shore a little in their front, whence another war canoe was darting directly across their course. It was too obvious now that their situation was imminently perilous to need the aid of language to confirm it. The scout laid aside his rifle, and resumed the paddle, while Chingachgook inclined the bows of the canoe a little toward the western shore, in order to increase the distance between them and this new enemy. In the meantime they were reminded of the presence of those who pressed upon their rear, by wild and exulting shouts. The stirring scene awakened even Munro from his apathy.

Uncas pointed toward a rocky shore ahead of them, where another war canoe was speeding directly across their path. It was clear now that their situation was extremely dangerous, needing no words to confirm it. The scout set down his rifle and took up the paddle again, while Chingachgook angled the front of the canoe slightly toward the western shore to put more distance between them and this new threat. Meanwhile, loud, excited shouts reminded them of those who were closing in behind them. The intense scene even stirred Munro from his stupor.

“Let us make for the rocks on the main,” he said, with the mien of a tired soldier, “and give battle to the savages. God forbid that I, or those attached to me and mine, should ever trust again to the faith of any servant of the Louis’s!”

“Let’s head for the rocks out in the open,” he said, looking like a weary soldier, “and fight the savages. God forbid that I, or anyone connected to me, should ever trust the loyalty of any servant of the Louis’s again!”

“He who wishes to prosper in Indian warfare,” returned the scout, “must not be too proud to learn from the wit of a native. Lay her more along the land, Sagamore; we are doubling on the varlets, and perhaps they may try to strike our trail on the long calculation.”

“He who wants to succeed in Indian warfare,” replied the scout, “must not be too proud to learn from the intelligence of a native. Move her closer to the ground, Sagamore; we are circling around the scoundrels, and they might try to pick up our trail from the long distance.”

Hawkeye was not mistaken; for when the Hurons found their course was likely to throw them behind their chase they rendered it less direct, until, by gradually bearing more and more obliquely, the two canoes were, ere long, gliding on parallel lines, within two hundred yards of each other. It now became entirely a trial of speed. So rapid was the progress of the light vessels, that the lake curled in their front, in miniature waves, and their motion became undulating by its own velocity. It was, perhaps, owing to this circumstance, in addition to the necessity of keeping every hand employed at the paddles, that the Hurons had not immediate recourse to their firearms. The exertions of the fugitives were too severe to continue long, and the pursuers had the advantage of numbers. Duncan observed with uneasiness, that the scout began to look anxiously about him, as if searching for some further means of assisting their flight.

Hawkeye wasn't wrong; when the Hurons realized their path was likely to take them behind their target, they adjusted their course to make it less direct. Gradually veering more and more off to the side, the two canoes were soon gliding parallel to each other, just two hundred yards apart. It had become a contest of speed. The lightweight canoes moved so fast that the lake ahead of them generated little waves, and their motion became smooth due to their own quickness. Perhaps because of this, along with the need to keep everyone busy paddling, the Hurons didn't immediately resort to their firearms. The efforts of the fugitives were too intense to last long, and the pursuers had the advantage of numbers. Duncan noted with concern that the scout started looking around anxiously, as if searching for another way to help them escape.

“Edge her a little more from the sun, Sagamore,” said the stubborn woodsman; “I see the knaves are sparing a man to the rifle. A single broken bone might lose us our scalps. Edge more from the sun and we will put the island between us.”

“Move her a little further from the sun, Sagamore,” said the stubborn woodsman; “I see those scoundrels are holding back a guy with a rifle. Just one broken bone could cost us our scalps. Move her more from the sun and we'll put the island between us.”

The expedient was not without its use. A long, low island lay at a little distance before them, and, as they closed with it, the chasing canoe was compelled to take a side opposite to that on which the pursued passed. The scout and his companions did not neglect this advantage, but the instant they were hid from observation by the bushes, they redoubled efforts that before had seemed prodigious. The two canoes came round the last low point, like two coursers at the top of their speed, the fugitives taking the lead. This change had brought them nigher to each other, however, while it altered their relative positions.

The plan was not without its benefits. A long, low island lay a short distance ahead of them, and as they approached it, the pursuing canoe had to take a route opposite to the one the fleeing group used. The scout and his friends didn’t miss this opportunity; as soon as they were hidden from sight by the bushes, they put in even more effort than before. The two canoes rounded the final low point, racing like two horses at full speed, with the fugitives in the lead. However, this change had brought them closer together while shifting their relative positions.

“You showed knowledge in the shaping of a birchen bark, Uncas, when you chose this from among the Huron canoes,” said the scout, smiling, apparently more in satisfaction at their superiority in the race than from that prospect of final escape which now began to open a little upon them. “The imps have put all their strength again at the paddles, and we are to struggle for our scalps with bits of flattened wood, instead of clouded barrels and true eyes. A long stroke, and together, friends.”

“You really know how to handle birch bark, Uncas, when you picked this canoe from the Huron ones,” the scout said with a smile, clearly more pleased about their lead in the race than the chance of finally escaping that was beginning to unfold for them. “Those little guys are putting all their effort into the paddles, and we have to fight for our lives using simple pieces of wood instead of proper rifles and good aim. Let's take a long stroke and paddle together, friends.”

“They are preparing for a shot,” said Heyward; “and as we are in a line with them, it can scarcely fail.”

“They're getting ready to take a shot,” said Heyward; “and since we're in line with them, it should definitely hit.”

“Get you, then, into the bottom of the canoe,” returned the scout; “you and the colonel; it will be so much taken from the size of the mark.”

“Then get into the bottom of the canoe,” the scout replied; “you and the colonel; it will reduce the size of the mark.”

Heyward smiled, as he answered:

Heyward smiled as he replied:

“It would be but an ill example for the highest in rank to dodge, while the warriors were under fire.”

“It would be a bad example for those in high positions to avoid danger while the soldiers are in battle.”

“Lord! Lord! That is now a white man’s courage!” exclaimed the scout; “and like to many of his notions, not to be maintained by reason. Do you think the Sagamore, or Uncas, or even I, who am a man without a cross, would deliberate about finding a cover in the scrimmage, when an open body would do no good? For what have the Frenchers reared up their Quebec, if fighting is always to be done in the clearings?”

“Lord! Lord! That’s what you call a white man’s courage!” the scout exclaimed. “And like many of his ideas, it doesn’t stand up to reason. Do you really think the Sagamore, or Uncas, or even I, as a man without a cross, would hesitate to find cover in the chaos, when being out in the open would be pointless? What’s the point of the French building up Quebec if we’re always going to fight out in the open?”

“All that you say is very true, my friend,” replied Heyward; “still, our customs must prevent us from doing as you wish.”

“All that you’re saying is totally true, my friend,” replied Heyward; “but our customs keep us from doing what you want.”

A volley from the Hurons interrupted the discourse, and as the bullets whistled about them, Duncan saw the head of Uncas turned, looking back at himself and Munro. Notwithstanding the nearness of the enemy, and his own great personal danger, the countenance of the young warrior expressed no other emotion, as the former was compelled to think, than amazement at finding men willing to encounter so useless an exposure. Chingachgook was probably better acquainted with the notions of white men, for he did not even cast a glance aside from the riveted look his eye maintained on the object by which he governed their course. A ball soon struck the light and polished paddle from the hands of the chief, and drove it through the air, far in the advance. A shout arose from the Hurons, who seized the opportunity to fire another volley. Uncas described an arc in the water with his own blade, and as the canoe passed swiftly on, Chingachgook recovered his paddle, and flourishing it on high, he gave the war-whoop of the Mohicans, and then lent his strength and skill again to the important task.

A shot from the Hurons interrupted the conversation, and as the bullets whistled around them, Duncan saw Uncas turn his head, looking back at him and Munro. Despite the enemy being so close and his own serious danger, the young warrior’s expression showed nothing other than surprise at finding people willing to face such pointless risk. Chingachgook probably understood white people better, as he didn’t even glance aside from the intense focus his eyes had on the object guiding their path. A bullet soon hit the light, polished paddle from the chief's hands and sent it flying ahead. A cheer erupted from the Hurons, who seized the moment to fire another round. Uncas swept his own blade through the water, and as the canoe moved swiftly on, Chingachgook retrieved his paddle, raised it high, gave the Mohican war-whoop, and then applied his strength and skill once again to their crucial task.

The clamorous sounds of “Le Gros Serpent!” “La Longue Carabine!” “Le Cerf Agile!” burst at once from the canoes behind, and seemed to give new zeal to the pursuers. The scout seized “killdeer” in his left hand, and elevating it about his head, he shook it in triumph at his enemies. The savages answered the insult with a yell, and immediately another volley succeeded. The bullets pattered along the lake, and one even pierced the bark of their little vessel. No perceptible emotion could be discovered in the Mohicans during this critical moment, their rigid features expressing neither hope nor alarm; but the scout again turned his head, and, laughing in his own silent manner, he said to Heyward:

The loud shouts of “The Big Snake!” “The Long Rifle!” “The Agile Deer!” erupted from the canoes behind them and seemed to energize the pursuers. The scout grabbed a “killdeer” in his left hand and raised it above his head, shaking it in triumph at his enemies. The Native Americans responded to the provocation with a yell, and another volley of shots followed immediately. The bullets pinged off the lake, and one even punctured the bark of their small boat. There was no noticeable emotion on the faces of the Mohicans during this tense moment; their expressions showed neither hope nor fear. The scout turned his head again and, laughing silently to himself, said to Heyward:

“The knaves love to hear the sounds of their pieces; but the eye is not to be found among the Mingoes that can calculate a true range in a dancing canoe! You see the dumb devils have taken off a man to charge, and by the smallest measurement that can be allowed, we move three feet to their two!”

“The fools love to hear the sounds of their weapons; but there isn’t a single person among the Mingoes who can accurately judge the distance in a swaying canoe! You see, those clueless guys have taken a man to charge, and by the smallest margin possible, we move three feet for every two they move!”

Duncan, who was not altogether as easy under this nice estimate of distances as his companions, was glad to find, however, that owing to their superior dexterity, and the diversion among their enemies, they were very sensibly obtaining the advantage. The Hurons soon fired again, and a bullet struck the blade of Hawkeye’s paddle without injury.

Duncan, who wasn't quite as comfortable with this favorable view of the situation as his friends, was relieved to see that because of their greater skill and the distraction among their foes, they were clearly gaining the upper hand. The Hurons fired again soon after, and a bullet hit the blade of Hawkeye’s paddle but didn’t cause any damage.

“That will do,” said the scout, examining the slight indentation with a curious eye; “it would not have cut the skin of an infant, much less of men, who, like us, have been blown upon by the heavens in their anger. Now, major, if you will try to use this piece of flattened wood, I’ll let ‘killdeer’ take a part in the conversation.”

“That’s good enough,” said the scout, looking at the slight indentation with curiosity. “It wouldn’t even break the skin of a baby, let alone that of men like us who have faced the wrath of the heavens. Now, Major, if you could give this piece of flattened wood a try, I’ll let ‘killdeer’ join the conversation.”

Heyward seized the paddle, and applied himself to the work with an eagerness that supplied the place of skill, while Hawkeye was engaged in inspecting the priming of his rifle. The latter then took a swift aim and fired. The Huron in the bows of the leading canoe had risen with a similar object, and he now fell backward, suffering his gun to escape from his hands into the water. In an instant, however, he recovered his feet, though his gestures were wild and bewildered. At the same moment his companions suspended their efforts, and the chasing canoes clustered together, and became stationary. Chingachgook and Uncas profited by the interval to regain their wind, though Duncan continued to work with the most persevering industry. The father and son now cast calm but inquiring glances at each other, to learn if either had sustained any injury by the fire; for both well knew that no cry or exclamation would, in such a moment of necessity have been permitted to betray the accident. A few large drops of blood were trickling down the shoulder of the Sagamore, who, when he perceived that the eyes of Uncas dwelt too long on the sight, raised some water in the hollow of his hand, and washing off the stain, was content to manifest, in this simple manner, the slightness of the injury.

Heyward grabbed the paddle and put all his energy into the task, making up for his lack of skill, while Hawkeye checked the priming of his rifle. Then Hawkeye took quick aim and fired. The Huron at the front of the leading canoe had stood up with the same goal in mind, and he fell backward, letting his gun slip from his hands into the water. But he quickly got back on his feet, acting wild and disoriented. At the same time, his companions paused, and the canoes chasing them grouped together and stopped. Chingachgook and Uncas used the moment to catch their breath, while Duncan kept working with relentless determination. The father and son exchanged calm but questioning looks to check if either of them had been injured by the gunfire; they both knew that in such a critical moment, no shout or cry would have given away the incident. A few large drops of blood were running down the Sagamore's shoulder, and when he noticed Uncas staring too long at the wound, he cupped some water in his hand and washed away the blood, choosing to show the minor nature of his injury in this simple way.

“Softly, softly, major,” said the scout, who by this time had reloaded his rifle; “we are a little too far already for a rifle to put forth its beauties, and you see yonder imps are holding a council. Let them come up within striking distance—my eye may well be trusted in such a matter—and I will trail the varlets the length of the Horican, guaranteeing that not a shot of theirs shall, at the worst, more than break the skin, while ‘killdeer’ shall touch the life twice in three times.”

“Easy now, major,” said the scout, who had just reloaded his rifle. “We're already a bit too far for a rifle to show its strengths, and you see those little devils are holding a meeting. Let them get within range—my aim is reliable in situations like this—and I’ll follow those rascals all the way down the Horican, ensuring that not a single shot of theirs will, at worst, break the skin, while ‘killdeer’ will hit the mark two out of three times.”

“We forget our errand,” returned the diligent Duncan. “For God’s sake let us profit by this advantage, and increase our distance from the enemy.”

“We're forgetting what we came to do,” replied the hardworking Duncan. “For goodness' sake, let’s take advantage of this opportunity and put more distance between us and the enemy.”

“Give me my children,” said Munro, hoarsely; “trifle no longer with a father’s agony, but restore me my babes.”

“Give me my children,” Munro said hoarsely. “Stop toying with a father’s pain and bring me back my kids.”

Long and habitual deference to the mandates of his superiors had taught the scout the virtue of obedience. Throwing a last and lingering glance at the distant canoes, he laid aside his rifle, and, relieving the wearied Duncan, resumed the paddle, which he wielded with sinews that never tired. His efforts were seconded by those of the Mohicans and a very few minutes served to place such a sheet of water between them and their enemies, that Heyward once more breathed freely.

Long and regular respect for his superiors' commands had taught the scout the importance of obedience. Throwing one last, lingering look at the distant canoes, he set aside his rifle and, taking over from the exhausted Duncan, picked up the paddle, which he wielded with muscles that never got tired. His efforts were supported by those of the Mohicans, and in just a few minutes, they managed to put enough water between them and their enemies that Heyward could breathe easily again.

The lake now began to expand, and their route lay along a wide reach, that was lined, as before, by high and ragged mountains. But the islands were few, and easily avoided. The strokes of the paddles grew more measured and regular, while they who plied them continued their labor, after the close and deadly chase from which they had just relieved themselves, with as much coolness as though their speed had been tried in sport, rather than under such pressing, nay, almost desperate, circumstances.

The lake now started to widen, and their path stretched along a broad area, still flanked by tall and rugged mountains. However, there were few islands, and they were easy to navigate around. The strokes of the paddles became more steady and consistent, as those handling them continued their work, after the intense and dangerous pursuit they had just escaped, with as much calmness as if their speed had been tested for fun, rather than under such urgent, almost desperate, conditions.

Instead of following the western shore, whither their errand led them, the wary Mohican inclined his course more toward those hills behind which Montcalm was known to have led his army into the formidable fortress of Ticonderoga. As the Hurons, to every appearance, had abandoned the pursuit, there was no apparent reason for this excess of caution. It was, however, maintained for hours, until they had reached a bay, nigh the northern termination of the lake. Here the canoe was driven upon the beach, and the whole party landed. Hawkeye and Heyward ascended an adjacent bluff, where the former, after considering the expanse of water beneath him, pointed out to the latter a small black object, hovering under a headland, at the distance of several miles.

Instead of sticking to the western shore, where their mission was taking them, the cautious Mohican steered more toward the hills behind which Montcalm was known to have taken his army into the stronghold of Ticonderoga. Since the Hurons seemingly had given up the chase, there was no clear reason for this extra caution. However, it continued for hours until they reached a bay near the northern end of the lake. There, the canoe was pulled up onto the beach, and the whole group got out. Hawkeye and Heyward climbed up a nearby bluff, where Hawkeye, after looking over the expanse of water below, pointed out a small black object hovering under a headland several miles away.

“Do you see it?” demanded the scout. “Now, what would you account that spot, were you left alone to white experience to find your way through this wilderness?”

“Do you see it?” the scout asked. “Now, what would you make of that spot if you were left to your own experience to navigate this wilderness?”

“But for its distance and its magnitude, I should suppose it a bird. Can it be a living object?”

“But for how far away it is and how big it is, I would think it’s a bird. Could it be something alive?”

“’Tis a canoe of good birchen bark, and paddled by fierce and crafty Mingoes. Though Providence has lent to those who inhabit the woods eyes that would be needless to men in the settlements, where there are inventions to assist the sight, yet no human organs can see all the dangers which at this moment circumvent us. These varlets pretend to be bent chiefly on their sun-down meal, but the moment it is dark they will be on our trail, as true as hounds on the scent. We must throw them off, or our pursuit of Le Renard Subtil may be given up. These lakes are useful at times, especially when the game take the water,” continued the scout, gazing about him with a countenance of concern; “but they give no cover, except it be to the fishes. God knows what the country would be, if the settlements should ever spread far from the two rivers. Both hunting and war would lose their beauty.”

"It’s a canoe made of good birch bark, paddled by fierce and crafty Mingoes. Even though Providence has given those living in the woods eyes that are unnecessary for people in the settlements, where inventions help with sight, no human can see all the dangers surrounding us at this moment. These scoundrels act like they’re mainly focused on their evening meal, but the minute it gets dark, they’ll be on our trail, just like hounds on a scent. We have to throw them off, or we might have to give up our pursuit of Le Renard Subtil. These lakes can be helpful sometimes, especially when the game takes to the water,” the scout continued, looking around with a concerned expression; “but they provide no cover, except for the fish. God only knows what this land would be like if the settlements ever spread far from the two rivers. Both hunting and war would lose their charm."

“Let us not delay a moment, without some good and obvious cause.”

“Let’s not waste any time unless there’s a good reason to.”

“I little like that smoke, which you may see worming up along the rock above the canoe,” interrupted the abstracted scout. “My life on it, other eyes than ours see it, and know its meaning. Well, words will not mend the matter, and it is time that we were doing.”

“I don't like that smoke you can see curling up along the rock above the canoe,” interrupted the distracted scout. “I swear other eyes besides ours see it and understand what it means. Well, talking won't fix anything, and it's time we took action.”

Hawkeye moved away from the lookout, and descended, musing profoundly, to the shore. He communicated the result of his observations to his companions, in Delaware, and a short and earnest consultation succeeded. When it terminated, the three instantly set about executing their new resolutions.

Hawkeye stepped away from the lookout and made his way down to the shore, deep in thought. He shared what he had seen with his friends in Delaware, and they quickly had a serious discussion. Once that was over, the three of them immediately got to work on their new plans.

The canoe was lifted from the water, and borne on the shoulders of the party, they proceeded into the wood, making as broad and obvious a trail as possible. They soon reached the water-course, which they crossed, and, continuing onward, until they came to an extensive and naked rock. At this point, where their footsteps might be expected to be no longer visible, they retraced their route to the brook, walking backward, with the utmost care. They now followed the bed of the little stream to the lake, into which they immediately launched their canoe again. A low point concealed them from the headland, and the margin of the lake was fringed for some distance with dense and overhanging bushes. Under the cover of these natural advantages, they toiled their way, with patient industry, until the scout pronounced that he believed it would be safe once more to land.

The canoe was lifted out of the water and carried on the shoulders of the group as they moved into the woods, making a wide and obvious trail. They soon reached the waterway, crossed it, and continued until they arrived at a large, bare rock. At this point, where their footsteps might no longer be visible, they carefully retraced their route back to the stream, walking backward with extreme caution. They then followed the streambed to the lake, where they quickly launched their canoe again. A low point hid them from the headland, and the edge of the lake was lined with thick, overhanging bushes for quite a distance. Taking advantage of this natural cover, they worked their way through patiently until the scout said he believed it was safe to land once more.

The halt continued until evening rendered objects indistinct and uncertain to the eye. Then they resumed their route, and, favored by the darkness, pushed silently and vigorously toward the western shore. Although the rugged outline of mountain, to which they were steering, presented no distinctive marks to the eyes of Duncan, the Mohican entered the little haven he had selected with the confidence and accuracy of an experienced pilot.

The stop lasted until evening when everything became vague and unclear. Then they continued on their path, taking advantage of the darkness to move quietly but with determination toward the western shore. Even though the rough silhouette of the mountain they were heading for looked the same to Duncan, the Mohican navigated into the small cove he had chosen with the skill and precision of an experienced guide.

The boat was again lifted and borne into the woods, where it was carefully concealed under a pile of brush. The adventurers assumed their arms and packs, and the scout announced to Munro and Heyward that he and the Indians were at last in readiness to proceed.

The boat was once again lifted and taken into the woods, where it was carefully hidden under a pile of brush. The adventurers put on their gear and packs, and the scout informed Munro and Heyward that he and the Indians were finally ready to move out.

CHAPTER XXI.

“If you find a man there, he shall die a flea’s death.”
—Merry Wives of Windsor.

“If you find a guy there, he’s going to die a flea’s death.”
—Merry Wives of Windsor.

The party had landed on the border of a region that is, even to this day, less known to the inhabitants of the States than the deserts of Arabia, or the steppes of Tartary. It was the sterile and rugged district which separates the tributaries of Champlain from those of the Hudson, the Mohawk, and the St. Lawrence. Since the period of our tale the active spirit of the country has surrounded it with a belt of rich and thriving settlements, though none but the hunter or the savage is ever known even now to penetrate its wild recesses.

The group had arrived at the edge of an area that, even today, is less familiar to the people of the States than the deserts of Arabia or the steppes of Tartary. It was the barren and rough terrain that separates the tributaries of Champlain from those of the Hudson, the Mohawk, and the St. Lawrence. Since the time of our story, the energetic development of the country has enveloped it with a ring of prosperous and thriving communities, although only the hunter or the wild person is still known to venture into its untamed depths.

As Hawkeye and the Mohicans had, however, often traversed the mountains and valleys of this vast wilderness, they did not hesitate to plunge into its depth, with the freedom of men accustomed to its privations and difficulties. For many hours the travelers toiled on their laborious way, guided by a star, or following the direction of some water-course, until the scout called a halt, and holding a short consultation with the Indians, they lighted their fire, and made the usual preparations to pass the remainder of the night where they then were.

As Hawkeye and the Mohicans had often traveled through the mountains and valleys of this vast wilderness, they didn't hesitate to dive into its depths, with the confidence of people used to its hardships and challenges. For many hours, the travelers worked hard on their difficult journey, guided by a star or following the path of a stream, until the scout called for a break and, after a brief discussion with the Indians, they lit a fire and made the usual arrangements to spend the rest of the night where they were.

Imitating the example, and emulating the confidence of their more experienced associates, Munro and Duncan slept without fear, if not without uneasiness. The dews were suffered to exhale, and the sun had dispersed the mists, and was shedding a strong and clear light in the forest, when the travelers resumed their journey.

Imitating the example and copying the confidence of their more experienced companions, Munro and Duncan slept without fear, though not without some anxiety. The dew had evaporated, and the sun had cleared away the mist, shining a strong, bright light in the forest when the travelers continued their journey.

After proceeding a few miles, the progress of Hawkeye, who led the advance, became more deliberate and watchful. He often stopped to examine the trees; nor did he cross a rivulet without attentively considering the quantity, the velocity, and the color of its waters. Distrusting his own judgment, his appeals to the opinion of Chingachgook were frequent and earnest. During one of these conferences Heyward observed that Uncas stood a patient and silent, though, as he imagined, an interested listener. He was strongly tempted to address the young chief, and demand his opinion of their progress; but the calm and dignified demeanor of the native induced him to believe, that, like himself, the other was wholly dependent on the sagacity and intelligence of the seniors of the party. At last the scout spoke in English, and at once explained the embarrassment of their situation.

After traveling a few miles, Hawkeye, who was leading the way, moved more carefully and attentively. He frequently stopped to look at the trees and didn't cross a stream without carefully noting the amount, speed, and color of the water. Doubting his own judgment, he often turned to Chingachgook for advice. During one of these discussions, Heyward noticed that Uncas was patiently and silently listening, though he thought he seemed interested. He felt a strong urge to ask the young chief for his thoughts on their progress, but Uncas’s calm and dignified presence led him to believe that, like him, the young man relied entirely on the wisdom and knowledge of the seniors in the group. Eventually, the scout spoke in English and clearly explained the tension of their situation.

“When I found that the home path of the Hurons run north,” he said, “it did not need the judgment of many long years to tell that they would follow the valleys, and keep atween the waters of the Hudson and the Horican, until they might strike the springs of the Canada streams, which would lead them into the heart of the country of the Frenchers. Yet here are we, within a short range of the Scaroons, and not a sign of a trail have we crossed! Human natur’ is weak, and it is possible we may not have taken the proper scent.”

“When I discovered that the home path of the Hurons runs north,” he said, “it didn’t take many years of judgment to realize that they would follow the valleys and stay between the waters of the Hudson and the Horican, until they could find the sources of the Canadian streams, which would lead them into the heart of French territory. Yet here we are, within a short distance of the Scaroons, and we haven’t seen a single trace of a trail! Human nature is weak, and it’s possible we may not have followed the right scent.”

“Heaven protect us from such an error!” exclaimed Duncan. “Let us retrace our steps, and examine as we go, with keener eyes. Has Uncas no counsel to offer in such a strait?”

“Heaven protect us from such a mistake!” Duncan exclaimed. “Let’s go back and look closely as we go. Doesn’t Uncas have any advice to give in this situation?”

The young Mohican cast a glance at his father, but, maintaining his quiet and reserved mien, he continued silent. Chingachgook had caught the look, and motioning with his hand, he bade him speak. The moment this permission was accorded, the countenance of Uncas changed from its grave composure to a gleam of intelligence and joy. Bounding forward like a deer, he sprang up the side of a little acclivity, a few rods in advance, and stood, exultingly, over a spot of fresh earth, that looked as though it had been recently upturned by the passage of some heavy animal. The eyes of the whole party followed the unexpected movement, and read their success in the air of triumph that the youth assumed.

The young Mohican glanced at his father, but keeping his quiet and reserved demeanor, he stayed silent. Chingachgook noticed the look and gestured for him to speak. As soon as he got the go-ahead, Uncas's serious expression transformed into one of excitement and joy. He bounded forward like a deer, climbed up a small rise a short distance ahead, and stood triumphantly over a patch of fresh earth that looked like it had recently been disturbed by some large animal. The eyes of the whole group followed this unexpected move and could see their success in the triumphant look that the young man wore.

“’Tis the trail!” exclaimed the scout, advancing to the spot; “the lad is quick of sight and keen of wit for his years.”

“It’s the trail!” the scout shouted, moving to the spot; “the kid is sharp-eyed and clever for his age.”

“’Tis extraordinary that he should have withheld his knowledge so long,” muttered Duncan, at his elbow.

“It’s incredible that he kept his knowledge to himself for so long,” muttered Duncan, at his side.

“It would have been more wonderful had he spoken without a bidding. No, no; your young white, who gathers his learning from books and can measure what he knows by the page, may conceit that his knowledge, like his legs, outruns that of his fathers’, but, where experience is the master, the scholar is made to know the value of years, and respects them accordingly.”

“It would have been even better if he had spoken on his own. No, no; your young white person, who learns from books and measures what they know by the page, may believe that their knowledge, like their legs, surpasses that of their ancestors, but when experience is the teacher, the scholar learns to appreciate the value of years and respects them as a result.”

“See!” said Uncas, pointing north and south, at the evident marks of the broad trail on either side of him, “the dark-hair has gone toward the forest.”

“Look!” said Uncas, pointing north and south at the clear signs of the wide path on either side of him, “the dark-haired one has headed toward the forest.”

“Hound never ran on a more beautiful scent,” responded the scout, dashing forward, at once, on the indicated route; “we are favored, greatly favored, and can follow with high noses. Ay, here are both your waddling beasts: this Huron travels like a white general. The fellow is stricken with a judgment, and is mad! Look sharp for wheels, Sagamore,” he continued, looking back, and laughing in his newly awakened satisfaction; “we shall soon have the fool journeying in a coach, and that with three of the best pair of eyes on the borders in his rear.”

“Hound has never tracked a more amazing scent,” the scout replied, rushing ahead on the path he indicated. “We’re in luck, really lucky, and can follow this trail with confidence. Yep, here are both your lumbering animals: this Huron moves like a white general. The guy is clearly out of his mind! Keep an eye out for wheels, Sagamore,” he added, glancing back and chuckling in his newfound excitement. “We’ll have the idiot riding in a carriage soon, with three of the sharpest eyes around watching his back.”

The spirits of the scout, and the astonishing success of the chase, in which a circuitous distance of more than forty miles had been passed, did not fail to impart a portion of hope to the whole party. Their advance was rapid; and made with as much confidence as a traveler would proceed along a wide highway. If a rock, or a rivulet, or a bit of earth harder than common, severed the links of the clew they followed, the true eye of the scout recovered them at a distance, and seldom rendered the delay of a single moment necessary. Their progress was much facilitated by the certainty that Magua had found it necessary to journey through the valleys; a circumstance which rendered the general direction of the route sure. Nor had the Huron entirely neglected the arts uniformly practised by the natives when retiring in front of an enemy. False trails and sudden turnings were frequent, wherever a brook or the formation of the ground rendered them feasible; but his pursuers were rarely deceived, and never failed to detect their error, before they had lost either time or distance on the deceptive track.

The spirits of the scout and the incredible success of the chase, during which they had covered a winding distance of more than forty miles, filled the whole group with a sense of hope. Their progress was swift and carried out with as much confidence as a traveler would have on a wide highway. If a rock, stream, or patch of tougher ground broke the connection with the trail they were following, the keen eye of the scout picked it up from a distance, rarely causing any delays. Their journey was made easier by the certainty that Magua had to travel through the valleys, which made the general direction of their route clear. However, the Huron had not completely abandoned the tactics commonly used by natives when retreating from an enemy. False trails and sudden turns were common whenever a stream or the terrain allowed for them; but his pursuers were rarely fooled and always managed to recognize their mistake before losing time or distance on the misleading path.

By the middle of the afternoon they had passed the Scaroons, and were following the route of the declining sun. After descending an eminence to a low bottom, through which a swift stream glided, they suddenly came to a place where the party of Le Renard had made a halt. Extinguished brands were lying around a spring, the offals of a deer were scattered about the place, and the trees bore evident marks of having been browsed by the horses. At a little distance, Heyward discovered, and contemplated with tender emotion, the small bower under which he was fain to believe that Cora and Alice had reposed. But while the earth was trodden, and the footsteps of both men and beasts were so plainly visible around the place, the trail appeared to have suddenly ended.

By mid-afternoon, they had passed the Scaroons and were following the path of the setting sun. After going down a hill to a low area with a fast-flowing stream, they suddenly came upon a spot where Le Renard's group had stopped. Scorched firewood lay around a spring, deer remains were scattered nearby, and the trees showed clear signs of being nibbled by horses. Not far off, Heyward noticed a small shelter and felt a wave of emotion as he thought of Cora and Alice resting there. But even though the ground was trampled and the tracks of both people and animals were clearly visible around the area, the trail seemed to have come to an abrupt end.

It was easy to follow the tracks of the Narragansetts, but they seemed only to have wandered without guides, or any other object than the pursuit of food. At length Uncas, who, with his father, had endeavored to trace the route of the horses, came upon a sign of their presence that was quite recent. Before following the clew, he communicated his success to his companions; and while the latter were consulting on the circumstance, the youth reappeared, leading the two fillies, with their saddles broken, and the housings soiled, as though they had been permitted to run at will for several days.

It was easy to follow the Narragansett's tracks, but they seemed to have wandered aimlessly, without any guides or purpose other than searching for food. Eventually, Uncas, who had been trying to trace the path of the horses with his father, found a recent sign of their presence. Before he followed the lead, he shared his discovery with his companions; and while they were discussing the situation, he returned, leading the two fillies. Their saddles were damaged, and their gear was dirty, as if they had been allowed to roam freely for several days.

“What should this prove?” said Duncan, turning pale, and glancing his eyes around him, as if he feared the brush and leaves were about to give up some horrid secret.

“What is this supposed to prove?” Duncan said, going pale and looking around, as if he was afraid the brush and leaves were about to reveal some terrible secret.

“That our march is come to a quick end, and that we are in an enemy’s country,” returned the scout. “Had the knave been pressed, and the gentle ones wanted horses to keep up with the party, he might have taken their scalps; but without an enemy at his heels, and with such rugged beasts as these, he would not hurt a hair of their heads. I know your thoughts, and shame be it to our color that you have reason for them; but he who thinks that even a Mingo would ill-treat a woman, unless it be to tomahawk her, knows nothing of Indian natur’, or the laws of the woods. No, no; I have heard that the French Indians had come into these hills to hunt the moose, and we are getting within scent of their camp. Why should they not? The morning and evening guns of Ty may be heard any day among these mountains; for the Frenchers are running a new line atween the provinces of the king and the Canadas. It is true that the horses are here, but the Hurons are gone; let us, then, hunt for the path by which they parted.”

“That our march has come to a quick end, and that we’re in enemy territory,” replied the scout. “If the scoundrel had been pressured, and the gentler ones had needed horses to keep up with the group, he might have taken their scalps; but without an enemy chasing him, and with such rough beasts as these, he wouldn’t hurt a hair on their heads. I know what you’re thinking, and it’s shameful for our group that you have reason to think it; but anyone who believes that even a Mingo would mistreat a woman, except to tomahawk her, doesn’t understand Indian nature or the rules of the woods. No, no; I’ve heard that the French Indians have come into these hills to hunt moose, and we’re getting close to their camp. Why shouldn’t they? The morning and evening guns of Ty can be heard any day in these mountains; the French are creating a new line between the king’s provinces and the Canadas. It’s true that the horses are here, but the Hurons are gone; let’s look for the path they took to part ways.”

Hawkeye and the Mohicans now applied themselves to their task in good earnest. A circle of a few hundred feet in circumference was drawn, and each of the party took a segment for his portion. The examination, however, resulted in no discovery. The impressions of footsteps were numerous, but they all appeared like those of men who had wandered about the spot, without any design to quit it. Again the scout and his companions made the circuit of the halting place, each slowly following the other, until they assembled in the center once more, no wiser than when they started.

Hawkeye and the Mohicans now got seriously to work. They marked out a circle a few hundred feet around, and each person took a segment for themselves. However, the search didn't lead to any discoveries. The footprints were many, but they all looked like those of people who had just roamed around the area without any intention of leaving. Once again, the scout and his companions went around the stopping point, each one moving slowly behind the other, until they all met back in the center, no smarter than when they began.

“Such cunning is not without its deviltry,” exclaimed Hawkeye, when he met the disappointed looks of his assistants.

“Such cleverness isn't without its tricks,” Hawkeye exclaimed when he saw the disappointed expressions on his assistants' faces.

“We must get down to it, Sagamore, beginning at the spring, and going over the ground by inches. The Huron shall never brag in his tribe that he has a foot which leaves no print.”

“We need to get started, Sagamore, starting at the spring and going over the area inch by inch. The Huron will never boast in his tribe that he has a foot that leaves no trace.”

Setting the example himself, the scout engaged in the scrutiny with renewed zeal. Not a leaf was left unturned. The sticks were removed, and the stones lifted; for Indian cunning was known frequently to adopt these objects as covers, laboring with the utmost patience and industry, to conceal each footstep as they proceeded. Still no discovery was made. At length Uncas, whose activity had enabled him to achieve his portion of the task the soonest, raked the earth across the turbid little rill which ran from the spring, and diverted its course into another channel. So soon as its narrow bed below the dam was dry, he stooped over it with keen and curious eyes. A cry of exultation immediately announced the success of the young warrior. The whole party crowded to the spot where Uncas pointed out the impression of a moccasin in the moist alluvion.

Setting the example himself, the scout dove into the search with renewed energy. Not a single leaf was left unturned. The sticks were moved, and the stones were lifted; for Native American cunning often used these items as covers, carefully working to hide every trace of their passage. Still, nothing was found. Finally, Uncas, who had finished his part of the task first, raked through the dirt near the muddy little stream that flowed from the spring and shifted its course to another channel. As soon as the narrow bed below the dam was dry, he bent down with sharp, curious eyes. A shout of triumph quickly announced the success of the young warrior. The entire group gathered around to see where Uncas indicated the impression of a moccasin in the damp earth.

“This lad will be an honor to his people,” said Hawkeye, regarding the trail with as much admiration as a naturalist would expend on the tusk of a mammoth or the rib of a mastodon; “ay, and a thorn in the sides of the Hurons. Yet that is not the footstep of an Indian! the weight is too much on the heel, and the toes are squared, as though one of the French dancers had been in, pigeon-winging his tribe! Run back, Uncas, and bring me the size of the singer’s foot. You will find a beautiful print of it just opposite yon rock, agin the hillside.”

“This guy is going to be a source of pride for his people,” said Hawkeye, looking at the trail with as much admiration as a naturalist would show for the tusk of a mammoth or the rib of a mastodon; “yeah, and a pain in the neck for the Hurons. But that’s not the footprint of an Indian! The weight is too far back on the heel, and the toes are squared, like one of those French dancers has been here, showing off for his tribe! Go back, Uncas, and get me the size of the singer's foot. You’ll find a nice print of it right across from that rock, against the hillside.”

While the youth was engaged in this commission, the scout and Chingachgook were attentively considering the impressions. The measurements agreed, and the former unhesitatingly pronounced that the footstep was that of David, who had once more been made to exchange his shoes for moccasins.

While the young man was busy with this task, the scout and Chingachgook were carefully examining the details. The measurements matched, and the former confidently declared that the footprint belonged to David, who had once again traded his shoes for moccasins.

“I can now read the whole of it, as plainly as if I had seen the arts of Le Subtil,” he added; “the singer being a man whose gifts lay chiefly in his throat and feet, was made to go first, and the others have trod in his steps, imitating their formation.”

“I can now read all of it, as clearly as if I had witnessed the skills of Le Subtil,” he added; “the singer, who was a man whose talents were mainly in his voice and dancing, was chosen to go first, and the others followed his lead, mimicking his style.”

“But,” cried Duncan, “I see no signs of—”

“But,” cried Duncan, “I don’t see any signs of—”

“The gentle ones,” interrupted the scout; “the varlet has found a way to carry them, until he supposed he had thrown any followers off the scent. My life on it, we see their pretty little feet again, before many rods go by.”

“The gentle ones,” interrupted the scout; “the guy has found a way to carry them until he thought he’d lost any followers. I bet we see their pretty little feet again before long.”

The whole party now proceeded, following the course of the rill, keeping anxious eyes on the regular impressions. The water soon flowed into its bed again, but watching the ground on either side, the foresters pursued their way content with knowing that the trail lay beneath. More than half a mile was passed, before the rill rippled close around the base of an extensive and dry rock. Here they paused to make sure that the Hurons had not quitted the water.

The whole party continued on, following the path of the small stream, keeping a close watch on the regular signs. The water soon returned to its channel, but as they scanned the ground on either side, the foresters felt reassured that the trail lay below. They covered more than half a mile before the stream flowed closely around the base of a large, dry rock. Here, they stopped to ensure that the Hurons hadn't left the water.

It was fortunate they did so. For the quick and active Uncas soon found the impression of a foot on a bunch of moss, where it would seem an Indian had inadvertently trodden. Pursuing the direction given by this discovery, he entered the neighboring thicket, and struck the trail, as fresh and obvious as it had been before they reached the spring. Another shout announced the good fortune of the youth to his companions, and at once terminated the search.

It was lucky they did. The quick and agile Uncas soon spotted a footprint on some moss, indicating that an Indian had accidentally stepped there. Following the direction indicated by this find, he moved into the nearby thicket and picked up the trail, which was just as fresh and clear as it had been before they got to the spring. Another shout announced the good luck of the young man to his friends, and immediately ended the search.

“Ay, it has been planned with Indian judgment,” said the scout, when the party was assembled around the place, “and would have blinded white eyes.”

“Ay, it has been planned with Indian judgment,” said the scout, when the group was gathered around the place, “and would have blinded white eyes.”

“Shall we proceed?” demanded Heyward.

"Shall we move forward?" demanded Heyward.

“Softly, softly, we know our path; but it is good to examine the formation of things. This is my schooling, major; and if one neglects the book, there is little chance of learning from the open land of Providence. All is plain but one thing, which is the manner that the knave contrived to get the gentle ones along the blind trail. Even a Huron would be too proud to let their tender feet touch the water.”

"Slowly, slowly, we understand our way; but it's helpful to look closely at how things are made. This is my education, my major; and if someone ignores the lessons, they won't learn from the open land of Providence. Everything is clear except for one thing, which is how the dishonest person managed to lead the innocent ones along the hidden path. Even a Huron would be too proud to let their soft feet touch the water."

“Will this assist in explaining the difficulty?” said Heyward, pointing toward the fragments of a sort of handbarrow, that had been rudely constructed of boughs, and bound together with withes, and which now seemed carelessly cast aside as useless.

“Will this help explain the difficulty?” said Heyward, pointing toward the pieces of a makeshift handbarrow that had been roughly put together with branches and tied with flexible twigs, and which now seemed carelessly discarded as useless.

“’Tis explained!” cried the delighted Hawkeye. “If them varlets have passed a minute, they have spent hours in striving to fabricate a lying end to their trail! Well, I’ve known them to waste a day in the same manner to as little purpose. Here we have three pair of moccasins, and two of little feet. It is amazing that any mortal beings can journey on limbs so small! Pass me the thong of buckskin, Uncas, and let me take the length of this foot. By the Lord, it is no longer than a child’s and yet the maidens are tall and comely. That Providence is partial in its gifts, for its own wise reasons, the best and most contented of us must allow.”

“It’s explained!” cried the delighted Hawkeye. “If those guys have passed a minute, they’ve spent hours trying to come up with a fake story to cover their tracks! Well, I’ve known them to waste a whole day doing the same thing to no purpose. Here we have three pairs of moccasins and two pairs of little feet. It’s amazing that any human beings can travel on limbs so small! Hand me the buckskin thong, Uncas, and let me measure this foot. By God, it’s no longer than a child’s, and yet the girls are tall and beautiful. That fate is biased in its gifts, for its own wise reasons, the best and most content among us must admit.”

“The tender limbs of my daughters are unequal to these hardships,” said Munro, looking at the light footsteps of his children, with a parent’s love; “we shall find their fainting forms in this desert.”

“The delicate limbs of my daughters can’t handle these hardships,” said Munro, watching the light steps of his children with a parent’s love; “we’ll find their exhausted bodies in this wilderness.”

“Of that there is little cause of fear,” returned the scout, slowly shaking his head; “this is a firm and straight, though a light step, and not over long. See, the heel has hardly touched the ground; and there the dark-hair has made a little jump, from root to root. No, no; my knowledge for it, neither of them was nigh fainting, hereaway. Now, the singer was beginning to be footsore and leg-weary, as is plain by his trail. There, you see, he slipped; here he has traveled wide and tottered; and there again it looks as though he journeyed on snowshoes. Ay, ay, a man who uses his throat altogether, can hardly give his legs a proper training.”

“There's not much to worry about,” the scout replied, shaking his head slowly. “This step is steady and direct, even if it's light and not very long. Look, the heel barely touched the ground, and there the dark-haired one made a little jump from root to root. No, I’m sure neither of them was close to fainting around here. Now, the singer was starting to feel sore and tired, as you can tell from his trail. See, he slipped here; over there he walked wide and stumbled; and again it looks like he was moving on snowshoes. Yeah, a guy who relies entirely on his voice can't really train his legs properly.”

From such undeniable testimony did the practised woodsman arrive at the truth, with nearly as much certainty and precision as if he had been a witness of all those events which his ingenuity so easily elucidated. Cheered by these assurances, and satisfied by a reasoning that was so obvious, while it was so simple, the party resumed its course, after making a short halt, to take a hurried repast.

From such clear evidence, the experienced woodsman reached the truth with almost as much certainty and accuracy as if he had seen all the events he explained so easily. Encouraged by this confidence and satisfied by such straightforward reasoning, the group continued on their way after a brief stop to grab a quick meal.

When the meal was ended, the scout cast a glance upward at the setting sun, and pushed forward with a rapidity which compelled Heyward and the still vigorous Munro to exert all their muscles to equal. Their route now lay along the bottom which has already been mentioned. As the Hurons had made no further efforts to conceal their footsteps, the progress of the pursuers was no longer delayed by uncertainty. Before an hour had elapsed, however, the speed of Hawkeye sensibly abated, and his head, instead of maintaining its former direct and forward look, began to turn suspiciously from side to side, as if he were conscious of approaching danger. He soon stopped again, and waited for the whole party to come up.

When the meal was over, the scout looked up at the setting sun and moved ahead quickly, forcing Heyward and the still-energetic Munro to push themselves to keep up. Their path now followed the previously mentioned bottom. Since the Hurons had stopped trying to hide their tracks, the pursuers no longer faced any uncertainty that slowed their progress. However, within an hour, Hawkeye noticeably slowed down, and instead of looking straight ahead like before, he began to glance around suspiciously, as if sensing danger nearby. He soon came to a stop again and waited for the rest of the group to catch up.

“I scent the Hurons,” he said, speaking to the Mohicans; “yonder is open sky, through the treetops, and we are getting too nigh their encampment. Sagamore, you will take the hillside, to the right; Uncas will bend along the brook to the left, while I will try the trail. If anything should happen, the call will be three croaks of a crow. I saw one of the birds fanning himself in the air, just beyond the dead oak—another sign that we are approaching an encampment.”

“I can smell the Hurons,” he said, talking to the Mohicans; “there's open sky up ahead, through the treetops, and we’re getting too close to their camp. Sagamore, you take the hillside to the right; Uncas will move along the brook to the left, while I’ll follow the trail. If anything happens, the signal will be three caws of a crow. I saw one of the birds spreading its wings in the air, just past the dead oak—another sign that we’re nearing a camp.”

The Indians departed their several ways without reply, while Hawkeye cautiously proceeded with the two gentlemen. Heyward soon pressed to the side of their guide, eager to catch an early glimpse of those enemies he had pursued with so much toil and anxiety. His companion told him to steal to the edge of the wood, which, as usual, was fringed with a thicket, and wait his coming, for he wished to examine certain suspicious signs a little on one side. Duncan obeyed, and soon found himself in a situation to command a view which he found as extraordinary as it was novel.

The Indians left in different directions without saying a word, while Hawkeye carefully moved ahead with the two gentlemen. Heyward quickly went to their guide's side, eager to get an early look at the enemies he had chased with so much effort and worry. His companion told him to sneak to the edge of the woods, which was typically lined with thick brush, and wait for him because he wanted to check out some suspicious signs a bit off to the side. Duncan followed his advice and soon found himself in a position that offered a view as remarkable as it was new.

The trees of many acres had been felled, and the glow of a mild summer’s evening had fallen on the clearing, in beautiful contrast to the gray light of the forest. A short distance from the place where Duncan stood, the stream had seemingly expanded into a little lake, covering most of the low land, from mountain to mountain. The water fell out of this wide basin, in a cataract so regular and gentle, that it appeared rather to be the work of human hands than fashioned by nature. A hundred earthen dwellings stood on the margin of the lake, and even in its waters, as though the latter had overflowed its usual banks. Their rounded roofs, admirably molded for defense against the weather, denoted more of industry and foresight than the natives were wont to bestow on their regular habitations, much less on those they occupied for the temporary purposes of hunting and war. In short, the whole village or town, whichever it might be termed, possessed more of method and neatness of execution, than the white men had been accustomed to believe belonged, ordinarily, to the Indian habits. It appeared, however, to be deserted. At least, so thought Duncan for many minutes; but, at length, he fancied he discovered several human forms advancing toward him on all fours, and apparently dragging in the train some heavy, and as he was quick to apprehend, some formidable engine. Just then a few dark-looking heads gleamed out of the dwellings, and the place seemed suddenly alive with beings, which, however, glided from cover to cover so swiftly, as to allow no opportunity of examining their humors or pursuits. Alarmed at these suspicious and inexplicable movements, he was about to attempt the signal of the crows, when the rustling of leaves at hand drew his eyes in another direction.

The trees across many acres had been cut down, and the warm glow of a mild summer evening settled over the clearing, creating a beautiful contrast to the gray light of the forest. Not far from where Duncan stood, the stream had seemingly widened into a small lake, filling most of the low land between the mountains. The water flowed out of this large basin in a waterfall so smooth and gentle that it looked more like the work of human hands than something shaped by nature. A hundred earthen homes lined the edge of the lake, and some even sat in the water, as if the lake had overflowed its usual banks. Their rounded roofs, expertly designed to withstand the weather, showed more care and planning than the locals typically put into their regular homes, let alone those used temporarily for hunting and war. In short, the entire village—or town, as it could be called—displayed more organization and attention to detail than the white men usually believed was characteristic of Indian life. However, it seemed deserted. At least, that’s what Duncan thought for several minutes; eventually, he thought he spotted several human figures approaching him on all fours, seemingly dragging behind them some heavy, and as he quickly realized, some intimidating device. Just then, a few dark heads peeked out from the homes, and suddenly the area seemed filled with beings, who, though, moved from one hiding spot to another so quickly that there was no chance to observe their behavior or activities. Alarmed by these suspicious and puzzling movements, he was about to try signaling the crows when the rustling of leaves nearby caught his attention.

The young man started, and recoiled a few paces instinctively, when he found himself within a hundred yards of a stranger Indian. Recovering his recollection on the instant, instead of sounding an alarm, which might prove fatal to himself, he remained stationary, an attentive observer of the other’s motions.

The young man jumped back a few steps instinctively when he saw a strange Indian about a hundred yards away. Quickly getting his bearings, he decided not to raise an alarm, which could be dangerous for him, and instead stayed still, carefully watching the other person's movements.

An instant of calm observation served to assure Duncan that he was undiscovered. The native, like himself, seemed occupied in considering the low dwellings of the village, and the stolen movements of its inhabitants. It was impossible to discover the expression of his features through the grotesque mask of paint under which they were concealed, though Duncan fancied it was rather melancholy than savage. His head was shaved, as usual, with the exception of the crown, from whose tuft three or four faded feathers from a hawk’s wing were loosely dangling. A ragged calico mantle half encircled his body, while his nether garment was composed of an ordinary shirt, the sleeves of which were made to perform the office that is usually executed by a much more commodious arrangement. His legs were, however, covered with a pair of good deer-skin moccasins. Altogether, the appearance of the individual was forlorn and miserable.

A moment of calm observation reassured Duncan that he hadn’t been noticed. The native, like him, seemed focused on the low houses of the village and the quiet movements of its people. It was impossible to see his facial expression through the strange mask of paint that covered it, though Duncan thought it looked more sad than fierce. His head was shaved, as usual, except for the top, where three or four faded hawk feathers hung loosely. A worn calico cloak half-covered his body, while below he wore a regular shirt, with the sleeves doing the job usually handled by a more convenient outfit. His legs, however, were covered by a pair of decent deer-skin moccasins. Overall, the man's appearance was pitiful and wretched.

Duncan was still curiously observing the person of his neighbor when the scout stole silently and cautiously to his side.

Duncan was still watching his neighbor with curiosity when the scout quietly and carefully approached him.

“You see we have reached their settlement or encampment,” whispered the young man; “and here is one of the savages himself, in a very embarrassing position for our further movements.”

“You see we’ve arrived at their settlement or camp,” whispered the young man; “and here’s one of the natives himself, in a really awkward spot for what we want to do next.”

Hawkeye started, and dropped his rifle, when, directed by the finger of his companion, the stranger came under his view. Then lowering the dangerous muzzle he stretched forward his long neck, as if to assist a scrutiny that was already intensely keen.

Hawkeye jumped and dropped his rifle when, pointed out by his companion, the stranger came into view. Then, lowering the dangerous barrel, he leaned forward with his long neck, as if to help with a gaze that was already sharply focused.

“The imp is not a Huron,” he said, “nor of any of the Canada tribes; and yet you see, by his clothes, the knave has been plundering a white. Ay, Montcalm has raked the woods for his inroad, and a whooping, murdering set of varlets has he gathered together. Can you see where he has put his rifle or his bow?”

“The imp isn’t a Huron,” he said, “or from any of the tribes in Canada; and yet you can tell by his clothes that the scoundrel has been robbing a white person. Yeah, Montcalm has searched the woods for his invasion, and he’s gathered a loud, murderous bunch of troublemakers. Can you see where he’s put his rifle or his bow?”

“He appears to have no arms; nor does he seem to be viciously inclined. Unless he communicate the alarm to his fellows, who, as you see, are dodging about the water, we have but little to fear from him.”

“He seems to have no arms, and he doesn't seem to be aggressive. Unless he warns his friends, who are, as you can see, skirting around the water, we don't have much to worry about from him.”

The scout turned to Heyward, and regarded him a moment with unconcealed amazement. Then opening wide his mouth, he indulged in unrestrained and heartfelt laughter, though in that silent and peculiar manner which danger had so long taught him to practise.

The scout turned to Heyward and looked at him for a moment with obvious amazement. Then, he opened his mouth wide and burst into loud, genuine laughter, although it was in that quiet and unusual way that danger had taught him to use for a long time.

Repeating the words, “Fellows who are dodging about the water!” he added, “so much for schooling and passing a boyhood in the settlements! The knave has long legs, though, and shall not be trusted. Do you keep him under your rifle while I creep in behind, through the bush, and take him alive. Fire on no account.”

Repeating the words, “Guys who are messing around in the water!” he added, “so much for education and growing up in the towns! The guy has long legs, though, and we can’t trust him. Keep your rifle on him while I sneak in behind, through the bushes, and take him alive. Don’t fire under any circumstances.”

Heyward had already permitted his companion to bury part of his person in the thicket, when, stretching forth his arm, he arrested him, in order to ask:

Heyward had already allowed his companion to hide part of himself in the thicket when, reaching out his arm, he stopped him to ask:

“If I see you in danger, may I not risk a shot?”

“If I see you in danger, can I take a shot?”

Hawkeye regarded him a moment, like one who knew not how to take the question; then, nodding his head, he answered, still laughing, though inaudibly:

Hawkeye looked at him for a moment, like someone unsure how to respond to the question; then, nodding his head, he replied, still laughing, though silently:

“Fire a whole platoon, major.”

“Fire an entire platoon, major.”

In the next moment he was concealed by the leaves. Duncan waited several minutes in feverish impatience, before he caught another glimpse of the scout. Then he reappeared, creeping along the earth, from which his dress was hardly distinguishable, directly in the rear of his intended captive. Having reached within a few yards of the latter, he arose to his feet, silently and slowly. At that instant, several loud blows were struck on the water, and Duncan turned his eyes just in time to perceive that a hundred dark forms were plunging, in a body, into the troubled little sheet. Grasping his rifle his looks were again bent on the Indian near him. Instead of taking the alarm, the unconscious savage stretched forward his neck, as if he also watched the movements about the gloomy lake, with a sort of silly curiosity. In the meantime, the uplifted hand of Hawkeye was above him. But, without any apparent reason, it was withdrawn, and its owner indulged in another long, though still silent, fit of merriment. When the peculiar and hearty laughter of Hawkeye was ended, instead of grasping his victim by the throat, he tapped him lightly on the shoulder, and exclaimed aloud:

In the next moment, he was hidden by the leaves. Duncan waited several minutes, feeling feverishly impatient, before he caught another glimpse of the scout. Then he reappeared, creeping along the ground, barely distinguishable from his surroundings, right behind his intended target. After getting within a few yards of him, he stood up slowly and silently. At that moment, several loud splashes echoed on the water, and Duncan turned his gaze just in time to see a hundred dark figures diving into the disturbed little lake all at once. Gripping his rifle, he focused his attention back on the Indian near him. Instead of becoming alert, the unaware savage stretched his neck forward, as if he was also watching the activity around the murky lake with a strange, silly curiosity. Meanwhile, Hawkeye's raised hand was above him. But for no apparent reason, it was pulled back, and its owner indulged in another long, though still silent, fit of laughter. When Hawkeye's unique and hearty laughter finally stopped, instead of grabbing his victim by the throat, he gave him a light tap on the shoulder and exclaimed aloud:

“How now, friend! have you a mind to teach the beavers to sing?”

“How’s it going, friend! Are you planning to teach the beavers how to sing?”

“Even so,” was the ready answer. “It would seem that the Being that gave them power to improve His gifts so well, would not deny them voices to proclaim His praise.”

“Even so,” was the quick reply. “It seems that the Being who gave them the ability to enhance His gifts so well would not deny them voices to share His praise.”

CHAPTER XXII.

“Bot.—Abibl we all met?
Qui.—Pat—pat; and here’s a marvelous convenient place for our rehearsal.”
—Midsummer Night’s Dream

“Bot.—Did we all meet?
Qui.—Yes, yes; and this is a perfect spot for our rehearsal.”
—Midsummer Night’s Dream

The reader may better imagine, than we describe the surprise of Heyward. His lurking Indians were suddenly converted into four-footed beasts; his lake into a beaver pond; his cataract into a dam, constructed by those industrious and ingenious quadrupeds; and a suspected enemy into his tried friend, David Gamut, the master of psalmody. The presence of the latter created so many unexpected hopes relative to the sisters that, without a moment’s hesitation, the young man broke out of his ambush, and sprang forward to join the two principal actors in the scene.

The reader can probably imagine better than we can describe Heyward's surprise. His hidden Indians suddenly turned into four-legged animals; his lake became a beaver pond; his waterfall transformed into a dam built by those hardworking and clever creatures; and a supposed enemy turned into his trusted friend, David Gamut, the master of singing psalms. The presence of the latter sparked so many unexpected hopes regarding the sisters that, without a moment's hesitation, the young man broke free from his hiding spot and rushed forward to join the two main participants in the scene.

The merriment of Hawkeye was not easily appeased. Without ceremony, and with a rough hand, he twirled the supple Gamut around on his heel, and more than once affirmed that the Hurons had done themselves great credit in the fashion of his costume. Then, seizing the hand of the other, he squeezed it with a grip that brought tears into the eyes of the placid David, and wished him joy of his new condition.

The joy of Hawkeye was not easily calmed. Without any formality and with a firm grip, he spun the flexible Gamut around on his heel, and more than once remarked that the Hurons had really outdone themselves with the way he'd been dressed. Then, grabbing the other man's hand, he squeezed it hard enough to bring tears to the eyes of the calm David and congratulated him on his new situation.

“You were about opening your throat-practisings among the beavers, were ye?” he said. “The cunning devils know half the trade already, for they beat the time with their tails, as you heard just now; and in good time it was, too, or ‘killdeer’ might have sounded the first note among them. I have known greater fools, who could read and write, than an experienced old beaver; but as for squalling, the animals are born dumb! What think you of such a song as this?”

“You were about to practice your singing among the beavers, weren’t you?” he said. “Those clever little devils already know part of the routine, since they keep the beat with their tails, as you just heard; and it was right on time, too, or the ‘killdeer’ might have been the first to make a sound among them. I've known bigger fools, who could read and write, than a wise old beaver; but when it comes to screeching, those animals are born silent! What do you think of a song like this?”

David shut his sensitive ears, and even Heyward apprised as he was of the nature of the cry, looked upward in quest of the bird, as the cawing of a crow rang in the air about them.

David covered his sensitive ears, and even Heyward, aware of what the cry meant, looked up to find the bird, as the sound of a crow echoed around them.

“See!” continued the laughing scout, as he pointed toward the remainder of the party, who, in obedience to the signal, were already approaching; “this is music which has its natural virtues; it brings two good rifles to my elbow, to say nothing of the knives and tomahawks. But we see that you are safe; now tell us what has become of the maidens.”

“Look!” continued the laughing scout, pointing toward the rest of the group, who, responding to the signal, were already coming closer; “this is music with its natural benefits; it brings two good rifles to my side, not to mention the knives and tomahawks. But we can see you’re safe; now tell us what happened to the maidens.”

“They are captives to the heathen,” said David; “and, though greatly troubled in spirit, enjoying comfort and safety in the body.”

“They are prisoners of the outsiders,” said David; “and, even though they are deeply troubled in spirit, they find comfort and safety in their bodies.”

“Both!” demanded the breathless Heyward.

“Both!” demanded the panting Heyward.

“Even so. Though our wayfaring has been sore and our sustenance scanty, we have had little other cause for complaint, except the violence done our feelings, by being thus led in captivity into a far land.”

“Even so. Although our journey has been tough and our food limited, we haven't had much else to complain about, except the hurt to our emotions from being taken captive and brought to a distant land.”

“Bless ye for these very words!” exclaimed the trembling Munro; “I shall then receive my babes, spotless and angel-like, as I lost them!”

“Thank you for these words!” said the trembling Munro; “I will then get my children back, pure and angelic, just like I lost them!”

“I know not that their delivery is at hand,” returned the doubting David; “the leader of these savages is possessed of an evil spirit that no power short of Omnipotence can tame. I have tried him sleeping and waking, but neither sounds nor language seem to touch his soul.”

“I don’t know if their rescue is close,” replied the doubtful David; “the leader of these savages has an evil spirit that no power, except for the divine, can control. I’ve tried approaching him when he’s asleep and awake, but neither sounds nor words seem to reach him.”

“Where is the knave?” bluntly interrupted the scout.

“Where is the scoundrel?” the scout interjected bluntly.

“He hunts the moose to-day, with his young men; and tomorrow, as I hear, they pass further into the forests, and nigher to the borders of Canada. The elder maiden is conveyed to a neighboring people, whose lodges are situate beyond yonder black pinnacle of rock; while the younger is detained among the women of the Hurons, whose dwellings are but two short miles hence, on a table-land, where the fire had done the office of the axe, and prepared the place for their reception.”

“He's hunting moose today with his young men, and tomorrow, I hear, they’ll head further into the woods, closer to the Canadian border. The older girl is taken to a nearby group whose lodges are located beyond that black peak of rock; meanwhile, the younger one is kept among the women of the Hurons, whose homes are just two short miles away on a plateau where the fire has cleared the land for their use.”

“Alice, my gentle Alice!” murmured Heyward; “she has lost the consolation of her sister’s presence!”

“Alice, my sweet Alice!” murmured Heyward; “she has lost the comfort of her sister’s presence!”

“Even so. But so far as praise and thanksgiving in psalmody can temper the spirit in affliction, she has not suffered.”

“Even so. But as far as praise and gratitude in singing can soothe the soul in hardship, she has not endured.”

“Has she then a heart for music?”

“Does she have a heart for music?”

“Of the graver and more solemn character; though it must be acknowledged that, in spite of all my endeavors, the maiden weeps oftener than she smiles. At such moments I forbear to press the holy songs; but there are many sweet and comfortable periods of satisfactory communication, when the ears of the savages are astounded with the upliftings of our voices.”

“Of a more serious and solemn nature; although I must admit that, despite all my efforts, the young woman cries more often than she smiles. During those times, I hold back from singing the sacred songs; but there are plenty of sweet and comforting moments of meaningful conversation, when the ears of the natives are amazed by the sound of our voices.”

“And why are you permitted to go at large, unwatched?”

“And why are you allowed to roam free without anyone watching you?”

David composed his features into what he intended should express an air of modest humility, before he meekly replied:

David shaped his face to show what he hoped would convey a sense of modest humility before he quietly responded:

“Little be the praise to such a worm as I. But, though the power of psalmody was suspended in the terrible business of that field of blood through which we have passed, it has recovered its influence even over the souls of the heathen, and I am suffered to go and come at will.”

“Little be the praise to someone like me. But, even though the power of song was put on hold during the terrible events of that bloody battlefield we've gone through, it has regained its influence even over the souls of the non-believers, and I am allowed to come and go as I please.”

The scout laughed, and, tapping his own forehead significantly, he perhaps explained the singular indulgence more satisfactorily when he said:

The scout laughed, and, tapping his own forehead meaningfully, he might have explained the unusual tolerance better when he said:

“The Indians never harm a non-composser. But why, when the path lay open before your eyes, did you not strike back on your own trail (it is not so blind as that which a squirrel would make), and bring in the tidings to Edward?”

“The Native Americans never hurt someone who isn’t a threat. But why, when the way was clear right in front of you, didn’t you go back on your own path (it’s not as confusing as the one a squirrel would make), and bring the news to Edward?”

The scout, remembering only his own sturdy and iron nature, had probably exacted a task that David, under no circumstances, could have performed. But, without entirely losing the meekness of his air, the latter was content to answer:

The scout, only thinking about his own strong and tough character, probably assigned a task that David, under any circumstances, could not have completed. However, without completely losing his humble demeanor, David was okay with replying:

“Though my soul would rejoice to visit the habitations of Christendom once more, my feet would rather follow the tender spirits intrusted to my keeping, even into the idolatrous province of the Jesuits, than take one step backward, while they pined in captivity and sorrow.”

“Although I would love to visit the places of Christianity once again, I would rather go with the gentle souls entrusted to my care, even into the idolatrous region of the Jesuits, than take a single step back while they suffer in captivity and sadness.”

Though the figurative language of David was not very intelligible, the sincere and steady expression of his eye, and the glow of his honest countenance, were not easily mistaken. Uncas pressed closer to his side, and regarded the speaker with a look of commendation, while his father expressed his satisfaction by the ordinary pithy exclamation of approbation. The scout shook his head as he rejoined:

Though David's figurative language was hard to understand, the sincere and steady look in his eyes, along with the warmth of his honest face, were clear indicators of his intentions. Uncas moved closer to him and looked at the speaker with appreciation, while his father showed his approval with a typical expression of praise. The scout shook his head as he responded:

“The Lord never intended that the man should place all his endeavors in his throat, to the neglect of other and better gifts! But he has fallen into the hands of some silly woman, when he should have been gathering his education under a blue sky, among the beauties of the forest. Here, friend; I did intend to kindle a fire with this tooting-whistle of thine; but, as you value the thing, take it, and blow your best on it.”

"The Lord never meant for a man to put all his efforts into his mouth, ignoring other, better gifts! But he has gotten caught up with some foolish woman when he should have been getting his education outside, surrounded by the beauty of nature. Here, my friend; I did plan to start a fire with this whistle of yours; but since you care about it so much, take it and blow your best into it."

Gamut received his pitch-pipe with as strong an expression of pleasure as he believed compatible with the grave functions he exercised. After essaying its virtues repeatedly, in contrast with his own voice, and, satisfying himself that none of its melody was lost, he made a very serious demonstration toward achieving a few stanzas of one of the longest effusions in the little volume so often mentioned.

Gamut took his pitch-pipe with a serious yet pleased expression, balancing his role with the need for dignity. After trying it out several times against his own voice and confirming that it hadn’t lost any of its sound, he made a determined effort to perform a few stanzas from one of the longest pieces in the frequently referenced little book.

Heyward, however, hastily interrupted his pious purpose by continuing questions concerning the past and present condition of his fellow captives, and in a manner more methodical than had been permitted by his feelings in the opening of their interview. David, though he regarded his treasure with longing eyes, was constrained to answer, especially as the venerable father took a part in the interrogatories, with an interest too imposing to be denied. Nor did the scout fail to throw in a pertinent inquiry, whenever a fitting occasion presented. In this manner, though with frequent interruptions which were filled with certain threatening sounds from the recovered instrument, the pursuers were put in possession of such leading circumstances as were likely to prove useful in accomplishing their great and engrossing object—the recovery of the sisters. The narrative of David was simple, and the facts but few.

Heyward, however, quickly interrupted his serious intent by asking more questions about the past and present situation of his fellow captives, doing so in a way that was more organized than he could manage at the beginning of their conversation. David, even though he looked at his treasure with eager eyes, felt obliged to respond, especially since the respected elder was also asking questions with an authority that couldn't be ignored. The scout also made sure to add a relevant question whenever the opportunity arose. In this way, despite frequent interruptions filled with certain ominous sounds from the recovered instrument, the pursuers learned key details that were likely to help them achieve their main goal—the rescue of the sisters. David’s story was straightforward, and the facts were few.

Magua had waited on the mountain until a safe moment to retire presented itself, when he had descended, and taken the route along the western side of the Horican in direction of the Canadas. As the subtle Huron was familiar with the paths, and well knew there was no immediate danger of pursuit, their progress had been moderate, and far from fatiguing. It appeared from the unembellished statement of David, that his own presence had been rather endured than desired; though even Magua had not been entirely exempt from that veneration with which the Indians regard those whom the Great Spirit had visited in their intellects. At night, the utmost care had been taken of the captives, both to prevent injury from the damps of the woods and to guard against an escape. At the spring, the horses were turned loose, as has been seen; and, notwithstanding the remoteness and length of their trail, the artifices already named were resorted to, in order to cut off every clue to their place of retreat. On their arrival at the encampment of his people, Magua, in obedience to a policy seldom departed from, separated his prisoners. Cora had been sent to a tribe that temporarily occupied an adjacent valley, though David was far too ignorant of the customs and history of the natives, to be able to declare anything satisfactory concerning their name or character. He only knew that they had not engaged in the late expedition against William Henry; that, like the Hurons themselves they were allies of Montcalm; and that they maintained an amicable, though a watchful intercourse with the warlike and savage people whom chance had, for a time, brought in such close and disagreeable contact with themselves.

Magua had waited on the mountain until it was safe to leave. He then went down and took the path along the west side of the Horican toward the Canadas. Since the clever Huron knew the paths well and there was no immediate threat of pursuit, their pace was moderate and not exhausting. According to David, his presence was more tolerated than wanted; still, even Magua wasn’t entirely free from the respect that Indians have for those whom the Great Spirit has touched with intelligence. At night, great care was taken of the captives to protect them from the dampness of the woods and to prevent any escape. At the spring, the horses were released, as mentioned; and despite the remoteness and length of their journey, they used the tricks previously described to eliminate any clues to their hiding place. When they reached his people's camp, Magua, following a policy he rarely strayed from, separated his prisoners. Cora was sent to a tribe that was temporarily in an adjacent valley, but David didn’t know enough about the customs and history of the natives to provide any meaningful details about their name or character. All he knew was that they hadn’t participated in the recent attack on William Henry and that, like the Hurons, they were allies of Montcalm; they also maintained a friendly but cautious relationship with the fierce and savage people who had, by chance, come into such close and unpleasant contact with them.

The Mohicans and the scout listened to his interrupted and imperfect narrative, with an interest that obviously increased as he proceeded; and it was while attempting to explain the pursuits of the community in which Cora was detained, that the latter abruptly demanded:

The Mohicans and the scout listened to his broken and incomplete story, with a growing interest as he went on; and it was while he was trying to explain the activities of the group where Cora was being held that she suddenly interrupted and asked:

“Did you see the fashion of their knives? were they of English or French formation?”

“Did you notice their knife designs? Were they made in England or France?”

“My thoughts were bent on no such vanities, but rather mingled in consolation with those of the maidens.”

"My thoughts were not focused on such trivial things; instead, they were mixed with comfort alongside those of the young women."

“The time may come when you will not consider the knife of a savage such a despicable vanity,” returned the scout, with a strong expression of contempt for the other’s dullness. “Had they held their corn feast—or can you say anything of the totems of the tribe?”

“The time may come when you won’t think of a savage's knife as such a pointless thing,” replied the scout, clearly showing his disdain for the other person’s lack of insight. “Have they had their corn feast—or can you tell me anything about the tribe’s totems?”

“Of corn, we had many and plentiful feasts; for the grain, being in the milk is both sweet to the mouth and comfortable to the stomach. Of totem, I know not the meaning; but if it appertaineth in any wise to the art of Indian music, it need not be inquired after at their hands. They never join their voices in praise, and it would seem that they are among the profanest of the idolatrous.”

“Of corn, we had many and abundant feasts; the grain, being in the milk, is both sweet to the taste and easy on the stomach. I don’t know the meaning of totem, but if it’s related in any way to the art of Indian music, it doesn’t need to be asked of them. They never sing in praise, and it seems that they are among the most irreverent of the idolatrous.”

“Therein you belie the natur’ of an Indian. Even the Mingo adores but the true and loving God. ’Tis wicked fabrication of the whites, and I say it to the shame of my color that would make the warrior bow down before images of his own creation. It is true, they endeavor to make truces to the wicked one—as who would not with an enemy he cannot conquer! but they look up for favor and assistance to the Great and Good Spirit only.”

“You're completely wrong about the nature of an Indian. Even the Mingo worships only the true and loving God. It’s a shameful lie from the whites, and I say this to the disgrace of my race, that would make a warrior bow down to images he made himself. It’s true they try to make deals with the wicked one—as anyone would with an enemy they can’t defeat! But they look up for favor and help to the Great and Good Spirit only.”

“It may be so,” said David; “but I have seen strange and fantastic images drawn in their paint, of which their admiration and care savored of spiritual pride; especially one, and that, too, a foul and loathsome object.”

“It might be true,” said David; “but I’ve seen bizarre and fantastic images painted by them, which their admiration and attention reflected a sense of spiritual pride; especially one, and that was a disgusting and repulsive object.”

“Was it a sarpent?” quickly demanded the scout.

“Was it a snake?” the scout asked eagerly.

“Much the same. It was in the likeness of an abject and creeping tortoise.”

“Pretty much the same. It looked like a miserable and slow-moving tortoise.”

“Hugh!” exclaimed both the attentive Mohicans in a breath; while the scout shook his head with the air of one who had made an important but by no means a pleasing discovery. Then the father spoke, in the language of the Delawares, and with a calmness and dignity that instantly arrested the attention even of those to whom his words were unintelligible. His gestures were impressive, and at times energetic. Once he lifted his arm on high; and, as it descended, the action threw aside the folds of his light mantle, a finger resting on his breast, as if he would enforce his meaning by the attitude. Duncan’s eyes followed the movement, and he perceived that the animal just mentioned was beautifully, though faintly, worked in blue tint, on the swarthy breast of the chief. All that he had ever heard of the violent separation of the vast tribes of the Delawares rushed across his mind, and he awaited the proper moment to speak, with a suspense that was rendered nearly intolerable by his interest in the stake. His wish, however, was anticipated by the scout who turned from his red friend, saying:

“Hugh!” both attentive Mohicans exclaimed in unison, while the scout shook his head, showing that he had made an important but certainly not a pleasant discovery. Then the father spoke in the language of the Delawares, with a calmness and dignity that immediately captured the attention of even those who couldn't understand him. His gestures were striking and at times vigorous. Once, he raised his arm high, and as it came down, it revealed the folds of his light mantle, a finger resting on his chest as if to emphasize his point. Duncan’s eyes followed the movement and he noticed that the animal he had mentioned was beautifully but faintly depicted in blue on the chief's dark chest. All he had heard about the violent separation of the large Delaware tribes rushed through his mind, and he waited for the right moment to speak, enduring a suspense that was nearly unbearable due to his intense interest in the outcome. However, the scout anticipated his wish and turned away from his red friend, saying:

“We have found that which may be good or evil to us, as heaven disposes. The Sagamore is of the high blood of the Delawares, and is the great chief of their Tortoises! That some of this stock are among the people of whom the singer tells us, is plain by his words; and, had he but spent half the breath in prudent questions that he has blown away in making a trumpet of his throat, we might have known how many warriors they numbered. It is, altogether, a dangerous path we move in; for a friend whose face is turned from you often bears a bloodier mind than the enemy who seeks your scalp.”

“We have discovered what might be good or bad for us, as fate decides. The Sagamore comes from the noble lineage of the Delawares and is the great chief of their Tortoises! It’s clear from the singer's words that some of this lineage are among the people he speaks of; and if he had spent even half the time asking smart questions instead of boasting, we might have known how many warriors there are. We are definitely walking a dangerous path; for a friend who turns their back on you often harbors a darker intention than the enemy who wants your scalp.”

“Explain,” said Duncan.

"Explain," Duncan said.

“’Tis a long and melancholy tradition, and one I little like to think of; for it is not to be denied that the evil has been mainly done by men with white skins. But it has ended in turning the tomahawk of brother against brother, and brought the Mingo and the Delaware to travel in the same path.”

“It’s a long and sorrowful tradition, and one I don’t like to think about much; because it’s undeniable that the harm has mostly been caused by men with white skin. But it has resulted in brothers turning their weapons against each other and led the Mingo and the Delaware to walk the same path.”

“You, then, suspect it is a portion of that people among whom Cora resides?”

"You think it might be part of the group that Cora is living with?"

The scout nodded his head in assent, though he seemed anxious to waive the further discussion of a subject that appeared painful. The impatient Duncan now made several hasty and desperate propositions to attempt the release of the sisters. Munro seemed to shake off his apathy, and listened to the wild schemes of the young man with a deference that his gray hairs and reverend years should have denied. But the scout, after suffering the ardor of the lover to expend itself a little, found means to convince him of the folly of precipitation, in a manner that would require their coolest judgment and utmost fortitude.

The scout nodded in agreement, although he seemed eager to avoid discussing a topic that felt uncomfortable. The impatient Duncan quickly made several urgent and desperate suggestions to try to free the sisters. Munro appeared to shake off his indifference, listening to the young man’s wild ideas with a respect that should have been reserved for someone of his age and experience. But after letting the lover's excitement die down a bit, the scout found a way to show him the foolishness of acting too hastily, emphasizing that they would need their best judgment and greatest courage.

“It would be well,” he added, “to let this man go in again, as usual, and for him to tarry in the lodges, giving notice to the gentle ones of our approach, until we call him out, by signal, to consult. You know the cry of a crow, friend, from the whistle of the whip-poor-will?”

“It would be a good idea,” he added, “to let this guy go in again, like usual, and for him to hang out in the lodges, letting the kind folks know we're coming, until we signal for him to come out and talk. You know how a crow sounds, my friend, compared to the whistle of the whip-poor-will?”

“’Tis a pleasing bird,” returned David, “and has a soft and melancholy note! though the time is rather quick and ill-measured.”

“It’s a lovely bird,” David replied, “and has a soft and sad sound! Although the tempo is a bit fast and uneven.”

“He speaks of the wish-ton-wish,” said the scout; “well, since you like his whistle, it shall be your signal. Remember, then, when you hear the whip-poor-will’s call three times repeated, you are to come into the bushes where the bird might be supposed—”

“He talks about the wish-ton-wish,” said the scout; “well, since you like his whistle, it will be your signal. Remember, when you hear the whip-poor-will’s call repeated three times, you need to come into the bushes where the bird might be expected—”

“Stop,” interrupted Heyward; “I will accompany him.”

“Stop,” Heyward interrupted; “I’ll go with him.”

“You!” exclaimed the astonished Hawkeye; “are you tired of seeing the sun rise and set?”

“You!” shouted the amazed Hawkeye. “Are you tired of watching the sun rise and set?”

“David is a living proof that the Hurons can be merciful.”

“David is living proof that the Hurons can be merciful.”

“Ay, but David can use his throat, as no man in his senses would pervart the gift.”

“Ay, but David can use his voice, as no sane person would waste that gift.”

“I too can play the madman, the fool, the hero; in short, any or everything to rescue her I love. Name your objections no longer: I am resolved.”

"I can also be the madman, the fool, the hero; basically, I’ll do anything to save the one I love. Stop bringing up your objections: I’m determined."

Hawkeye regarded the young man a moment in speechless amazement. But Duncan, who, in deference to the other’s skill and services, had hitherto submitted somewhat implicitly to his dictation, now assumed the superior, with a manner that was not easily resisted. He waved his hand, in sign of his dislike to all remonstrance, and then, in more tempered language, he continued:

Hawkeye stared at the young man for a moment in speechless amazement. But Duncan, who had previously gone along with the other’s direction out of respect for his skills and contributions, now took a more dominant position, with a demeanor that was hard to oppose. He waved his hand, signaling his dislike for any objections, and then, speaking more calmly, he continued:

“You have the means of disguise; change me; paint me, too, if you will; in short, alter me to anything—a fool.”

"You have the ability to disguise; change me; paint me, too, if you want; in short, turn me into anything—a fool."

“It is not for one like me to say that he who is already formed by so powerful a hand as Providence, stands in need of a change,” muttered the discontented scout. “When you send your parties abroad in war, you find it prudent, at least, to arrange the marks and places of encampment, in order that they who fight on your side may know when and where to expect a friend.”

“It’s not my place to say that someone shaped by such a strong force as Providence needs to change,” muttered the unhappy scout. “When you send your groups out to war, it makes sense to set up the signs and locations for camping, so that those fighting on your side know when and where to expect a friend.”

“Listen,” interrupted Duncan; “you have heard from this faithful follower of the captives, that the Indians are of two tribes, if not of different nations. With one, whom you think to be a branch of the Delawares, is she you call the ‘dark-hair’; the other, and younger, of the ladies, is undeniably with our declared enemies, the Hurons. It becomes my youth and rank to attempt the latter adventure. While you, therefore, are negotiating with your friends for the release of one of the sisters, I will effect that of the other, or die.”

“Listen,” Duncan interrupted. “You’ve heard from this loyal follower of the captives that the Indians are from two tribes, if not different nations. One of them, whom you think is a branch of the Delawares, has the ‘dark-hair’ you mentioned; the other, the younger lady, is undeniably with our declared enemies, the Hurons. It’s my duty, given my age and rank, to attempt the latter mission. So while you work with your friends to secure the release of one of the sisters, I will go after the other, or I’ll die trying.”

The awakened spirit of the young soldier gleamed in his eyes, and his form became imposing under its influence. Hawkeye, though too much accustomed to Indian artifices not to foresee the danger of the experiment, knew not well how to combat this sudden resolution.

The awakened spirit of the young soldier shone in his eyes, and he appeared imposing under its influence. Hawkeye, though too familiar with Indian tricks to not see the danger of the experiment, wasn’t quite sure how to deal with this sudden determination.

Perhaps there was something in the proposal that suited his own hardy nature, and that secret love of desperate adventure, which had increased with his experience, until hazard and danger had become, in some measure, necessary to the enjoyment of his existence. Instead of continuing to oppose the scheme of Duncan, his humor suddenly altered, and he lent himself to its execution.

Perhaps there was something in the proposal that matched his tough nature and that hidden desire for risky adventure, which had grown with his experience, until danger and uncertainty had become, in some way, essential to enjoying his life. Rather than continuing to resist Duncan's plan, his mood suddenly changed, and he agreed to help make it happen.

“Come,” he said, with a good-humored smile; “the buck that will take to the water must be headed, and not followed. Chingachgook has as many different paints as the engineer officer’s wife, who takes down natur’ on scraps of paper, making the mountains look like cocks of rusty hay, and placing the blue sky in reach of your hand. The Sagamore can use them, too. Seat yourself on the log; and my life on it, he can soon make a natural fool of you, and that well to your liking.”

“Come on,” he said with a friendly smile. “The deer that’s going to the water needs to be led, not chased. Chingachgook has as many different colors as the engineer officer's wife, who sketches nature on bits of paper, making the mountains look like piles of old hay and putting the blue sky within your reach. The Sagamore can use them, too. Sit on the log; I bet he can quickly make a natural fool out of you, and you’ll like it.”

Duncan complied; and the Mohican, who had been an attentive listener to the discourse, readily undertook the office. Long practised in all the subtle arts of his race, he drew, with great dexterity and quickness, the fantastic shadow that the natives were accustomed to consider as the evidence of a friendly and jocular disposition. Every line that could possibly be interpreted into a secret inclination for war, was carefully avoided; while, on the other hand, he studied those conceits that might be construed into amity.

Duncan agreed, and the Mohican, who had been listening closely to the conversation, quickly took on the task. Skilled in the clever ways of his people, he swiftly created the playful shadow that the natives often saw as a sign of a friendly and humorous attitude. He avoided any lines that could be interpreted as a hint of hostility, while actively incorporating elements that could be seen as expressions of friendship.

In short, he entirely sacrificed every appearance of the warrior to the masquerade of a buffoon. Such exhibitions were not uncommon among the Indians, and as Duncan was already sufficiently disguised in his dress, there certainly did exist some reason for believing that, with his knowledge of French, he might pass for a juggler from Ticonderoga, straggling among the allied and friendly tribes.

In short, he completely gave up any look of a warrior to play the role of a fool. Such performances weren’t unusual among the Indians, and since Duncan was already well-disguised in his outfit, there was definitely some reason to think that, with his knowledge of French, he could be mistaken for a juggler from Ticonderoga, wandering among the allied and friendly tribes.

When he was thought to be sufficiently painted, the scout gave him much friendly advice; concerted signals, and appointed the place where they should meet, in the event of mutual success. The parting between Munro and his young friend was more melancholy; still, the former submitted to the separation with an indifference that his warm and honest nature would never have permitted in a more healthful state of mind. The scout led Heyward aside, and acquainted him with his intention to leave the veteran in some safe encampment, in charge of Chingachgook, while he and Uncas pursued their inquires among the people they had reason to believe were Delawares. Then, renewing his cautions and advice, he concluded by saying, with a solemnity and warmth of feeling, with which Duncan was deeply touched:

When he was deemed adequately painted, the scout offered him a lot of friendly advice; they established signals and decided on a location to meet if they both succeeded. The farewell between Munro and his young friend was more sorrowful; nonetheless, the former accepted the separation with a calmness that his warm and honest nature wouldn’t have allowed in a healthier mindset. The scout pulled Heyward aside and informed him of his plan to leave the veteran in a secure camp with Chingachgook, while he and Uncas searched for the people they believed were Delawares. Then, after repeating his warnings and advice, he ended with a seriousness and heartfelt emotion that deeply affected Duncan:

“And, now, God bless you! You have shown a spirit that I like; for it is the gift of youth, more especially one of warm blood and a stout heart. But believe the warning of a man who has reason to know all he says to be true. You will have occasion for your best manhood, and for a sharper wit than what is to be gathered in books, afore you outdo the cunning or get the better of the courage of a Mingo. God bless you! if the Hurons master your scalp, rely on the promise of one who has two stout warriors to back him. They shall pay for their victory, with a life for every hair it holds. I say, young gentleman, may Providence bless your undertaking, which is altogether for good; and, remember, that to outwit the knaves it is lawful to practise things that may not be naturally the gift of a white-skin.”

“And now, God bless you! You’ve shown a spirit that I admire; it’s the gift of youth, especially one with warm blood and a strong heart. But listen to the warning of someone who knows what he’s talking about. You’ll need your best manhood and sharper wits than what you can find in books before you can outsmart the cunning or match the courage of a Mingo. God bless you! If the Hurons take your scalp, trust the promise of someone backed by two strong warriors. They will pay for their victory, with a life for every hair they take. I say, young man, may Providence bless your efforts, which are entirely for good; and remember, to outsmart the tricksters, it is acceptable to use skills that may not come naturally to a white man.”

Duncan shook his worthy and reluctant associate warmly by the hand, once more recommended his aged friend to his care, and returning his good wishes, he motioned to David to proceed. Hawkeye gazed after the high-spirited and adventurous young man for several moments, in open admiration; then, shaking his head doubtingly, he turned, and led his own division of the party into the concealment of the forest.

Duncan warmly shook hands with his esteemed but hesitant companion, once again asked him to look after his elderly friend, and after exchanging good wishes, he signaled to David to move forward. Hawkeye watched the spirited and adventurous young man for a few moments in admiration; then, shaking his head in doubt, he turned and led his own group into the cover of the forest.

The route taken by Duncan and David lay directly across the clearing of the beavers, and along the margin of their pond.

The path Duncan and David took went straight through the beaver clearing and along the edge of their pond.

When the former found himself alone with one so simple, and so little qualified to render any assistance in desperate emergencies, he first began to be sensible of the difficulties of the task he had undertaken. The fading light increased the gloominess of the bleak and savage wilderness that stretched so far on every side of him, and there was even a fearful character in the stillness of those little huts, that he knew were so abundantly peopled. It struck him, as he gazed at the admirable structures and the wonderful precautions of their sagacious inmates, that even the brutes of these vast wilds were possessed of an instinct nearly commensurate with his own reason; and he could not reflect, without anxiety, on the unequal contest that he had so rashly courted. Then came the glowing image of Alice; her distress; her actual danger; and all the peril of his situation was forgotten. Cheering David, he moved on with the light and vigorous step of youth and enterprise.

When he found himself alone with someone so naïve and unprepared to help in critical situations, he started to realize the challenges of the task he had taken on. The dimming light added to the bleakness of the harsh wilderness that stretched endlessly around him, and there was something frightening about the silence of those small huts, which he knew were full of people. As he looked at the impressive structures and the clever precautions of their wise inhabitants, it struck him that even the animals in this vast wilderness had instincts almost on par with his own reasoning; he couldn't help but feel anxious about the uneven challenge he had so recklessly embraced. Then, the vivid image of Alice came to mind; her distress, her real danger; and all the risks of his situation faded away. Encouraging David, he moved forward with the energetic and optimistic stride of youth and determination.

After making nearly a semicircle around the pond, they diverged from the water-course, and began to ascend to the level of a slight elevation in that bottom land, over which they journeyed. Within half an hour they gained the margin of another opening that bore all the signs of having been also made by the beavers, and which those sagacious animals had probably been induced, by some accident, to abandon, for the more eligible position they now occupied. A very natural sensation caused Duncan to hesitate a moment, unwilling to leave the cover of their bushy path, as a man pauses to collect his energies before he essays any hazardous experiment, in which he is secretly conscious they will all be needed. He profited by the halt, to gather such information as might be obtained from his short and hasty glances.

After making almost a semicircle around the pond, they veered away from the water and started to climb toward a slight rise in the flat land they were traveling through. Within half an hour, they reached the edge of another area that showed all the signs of having been created by the beavers. It seemed that these clever animals had probably abandoned it due to some accident, in favor of the better spot they now occupied. A very natural feeling made Duncan hesitate for a moment, reluctant to leave the cover of their bushy path, much like someone pauses to gather their strength before attempting a risky endeavor, fully aware that they would need every bit of it. He took advantage of the stop to gather whatever information he could from his quick and hurried glances.

On the opposite side of the clearing, and near the point where the brook tumbled over some rocks, from a still higher level, some fifty or sixty lodges, rudely fabricated of logs brush, and earth intermingled, were to be discovered. They were arranged without any order, and seemed to be constructed with very little attention to neatness or beauty. Indeed, so very inferior were they in the two latter particulars to the village Duncan had just seen, that he began to expect a second surprise, no less astonishing that the former. This expectation was in no degree diminished, when, by the doubtful twilight, he beheld twenty or thirty forms rising alternately from the cover of the tall, coarse grass, in front of the lodges, and then sinking again from the sight, as it were to burrow in the earth. By the sudden and hasty glimpses that he caught of these figures, they seemed more like dark, glancing specters, or some other unearthly beings, than creatures fashioned with the ordinary and vulgar materials of flesh and blood. A gaunt, naked form was seen, for a single instant, tossing its arms wildly in the air, and then the spot it had filled was vacant; the figure appearing suddenly in some other and distant place, or being succeeded by another, possessing the same mysterious character. David, observing that his companion lingered, pursued the direction of his gaze, and in some measure recalled the recollection of Heyward, by speaking.

On the other side of the clearing, near where the brook flowed over some rocks from a higher level, about fifty or sixty lodges made from logs, brush, and earth could be seen. They were arranged haphazardly and seemed to be built with little care for tidiness or beauty. In fact, they were so much inferior in those aspects compared to the village Duncan had just seen that he began to anticipate another surprise, just as astonishing as the first. This expectation only grew stronger when, in the fading twilight, he noticed twenty or thirty figures rising and falling among the tall, coarse grass in front of the lodges, as if they were burrowing into the ground. From the quick, fleeting glimpses he caught of these figures, they appeared more like dark, shimmering specters or some otherworldly beings than creatures made of ordinary flesh and blood. He saw a thin, naked form for just a moment, waving its arms wildly in the air, then it vanished from its spot and reappeared somewhere else, or was replaced by another figure with the same mysterious quality. David, noticing his companion was lingering, followed his gaze and partially brought Heyward back to reality by speaking.

“There is much fruitful soil uncultivated here,” he said; “and, I may add, without the sinful leaven of self-commendation, that, since my short sojourn in these heathenish abodes, much good seed has been scattered by the wayside.”

“There is a lot of fertile land here that hasn't been used,” he said; “and, I can mention this without bragging, that since I've been here in these uncivilized places, a lot of good seeds have been scattered along the way.”

“The tribes are fonder of the chase than of the arts of men of labor,” returned the unconscious Duncan, still gazing at the objects of his wonder.

“The tribes prefer hunting to the skills of hardworking people,” replied the unaware Duncan, still staring at the things that amazed him.

“It is rather joy than labor to the spirit, to lift up the voice in praise; but sadly do these boys abuse their gifts. Rarely have I found any of their age, on whom nature has so freely bestowed the elements of psalmody; and surely, surely, there are none who neglect them more. Three nights have I now tarried here, and three several times have I assembled the urchins to join in sacred song; and as often have they responded to my efforts with whoopings and howlings that have chilled my soul!”

“It’s more joyful than burdensome for the spirit to raise the voice in praise; but sadly, these boys misuse their talents. I have rarely encountered any of their age on whom nature has so generously given the elements of singing; and surely, there are none who disregard them more. I have now stayed here for three nights, and three times I have gathered the kids to join in sacred song; and just as often, they have responded to my attempts with loud shouting and cries that have frozen my soul!”

“Of whom speak you?”

“Who are you talking about?”

“Of those children of the devil, who waste the precious moments in yonder idle antics. Ah! the wholesome restraint of discipline is but little known among this self-abandoned people. In a country of birches, a rod is never seen, and it ought not to appear a marvel in my eyes, that the choicest blessings of Providence are wasted in such cries as these.”

“Of those children of the devil, who waste precious time in foolish antics. Ah! the healthy control of discipline is hardly recognized among these reckless people. In a land full of birches, a rod is never seen, and I shouldn’t be surprised that the greatest blessings from Providence are squandered in such cries as these.”

David closed his ears against the juvenile pack, whose yell just then rang shrilly through the forest; and Duncan, suffering his lip to curl, as in mockery of his own superstition, said firmly:

David blocked out the noisy kids, whose shouts echoed loudly through the forest; and Duncan, letting his lip curl in a mockery of his own superstitions, said firmly:

“We will proceed.”

"We'll continue."

Without removing the safeguards form his ears, the master of song complied, and together they pursued their way toward what David was sometimes wont to call the “tents of the Philistines.”

Without taking the safeguards off his ears, the master of song agreed, and together they continued on their way to what David sometimes referred to as the “tents of the Philistines.”

CHAPTER XXIII.

“But though the beast of game
The privilege of chase may claim;
Though space and law the stag we lend
Ere hound we slip, or bow we bend;
Whoever recked, where, how, or when
The prowling fox was trapped or slain?”
—Lady of the Lake.

“But even though the wild game
May have the right to be hunted;
Even if space and law give the stag a chance
Before we let the hound loose or pull back the bow;
Who really cares, where, how, or when
The lurking fox was caught or killed?”
—Lady of the Lake.

It is unusual to find an encampment of the natives, like those of the more instructed whites, guarded by the presence of armed men. Well informed of the approach of every danger, while it is yet at a distance, the Indian generally rests secure under his knowledge of the signs of the forest, and the long and difficult paths that separate him from those he has most reason to dread. But the enemy who, by any lucky concurrence of accidents, has found means to elude the vigilance of the scouts, will seldom meet with sentinels nearer home to sound the alarm. In addition to this general usage, the tribes friendly to the French knew too well the weight of the blow that had just been struck, to apprehend any immediate danger from the hostile nations that were tributary to the crown of Britain.

It's uncommon to come across a Native encampment, like those of the more educated white settlers, protected by armed guards. Generally aware of approaching dangers even from a distance, Indigenous people feel secure knowing the signs of the forest and the long, challenging trails that keep them apart from those they most fear. However, an enemy who, by some chance, manages to avoid the watchfulness of the scouts will rarely encounter sentries nearby to raise the alarm. Besides this common practice, the tribes allied with the French understood too well the impact of the recent attack to fear any immediate threat from the hostile nations under British rule.

When Duncan and David, therefore, found themselves in the center of the children, who played the antics already mentioned, it was without the least previous intimation of their approach. But so soon as they were observed the whole of the juvenile pack raised, by common consent, a shrill and warning whoop; and then sank, as it were, by magic, from before the sight of their visitors. The naked, tawny bodies of the crouching urchins blended so nicely at that hour, with the withered herbage, that at first it seemed as if the earth had, in truth, swallowed up their forms; though when surprise permitted Duncan to bend his look more curiously about the spot, he found it everywhere met by dark, quick, and rolling eyeballs.

When Duncan and David unexpectedly found themselves in the middle of the children, who were playing the previously mentioned games, they had no idea they were about to arrive. But as soon as the kids noticed them, they all collectively let out a loud, warning shout and then, almost magically, disappeared from sight. The bare, tan bodies of the crouching kids blended perfectly with the dried-up grass, making it seem like the ground had truly swallowed them up; but when Duncan, now a bit less surprised, took a closer look around, he found himself surrounded by dark, quick, and darting eyes.

Gathering no encouragement from this startling presage of the nature of the scrutiny he was likely to undergo from the more mature judgments of the men, there was an instant when the young soldier would have retreated. It was, however, too late to appear to hesitate. The cry of the children had drawn a dozen warriors to the door of the nearest lodge, where they stood clustered in a dark and savage group, gravely awaiting the nearer approach of those who had unexpectedly come among them.

Gathering no support from this shocking hint about the kind of judgment he would face from the more experienced men, there was a moment when the young soldier considered backing away. However, it was too late to seem unsure. The children's cries had brought a dozen warriors to the door of the nearest lodge, where they stood grouped together in a dark and fierce cluster, solemnly waiting for the closer arrival of those who had unexpectedly joined them.

David, in some measure familiarized to the scene, led the way with a steadiness that no slight obstacle was likely to disconcert, into this very building. It was the principal edifice of the village, though roughly constructed of the bark and branches of trees; being the lodge in which the tribe held its councils and public meetings during their temporary residence on the borders of the English province. Duncan found it difficult to assume the necessary appearance of unconcern, as he brushed the dark and powerful frames of the savages who thronged its threshold; but, conscious that his existence depended on his presence of mind, he trusted to the discretion of his companion, whose footsteps he closely followed, endeavoring, as he proceeded, to rally his thoughts for the occasion. His blood curdled when he found himself in absolute contact with such fierce and implacable enemies; but he so far mastered his feelings as to pursue his way into the center of the lodge, with an exterior that did not betray the weakness. Imitating the example of the deliberate Gamut, he drew a bundle of fragrant brush from beneath a pile that filled the corner of the hut, and seated himself in silence.

David, somewhat familiar with the scene, led the way with a confidence that no minor obstacle was likely to shake, into this very building. It was the main structure of the village, though crudely built from tree bark and branches; it served as the lodge where the tribe held their councils and public meetings during their temporary stay on the edges of the English province. Duncan struggled to maintain an air of indifference as he brushed past the dark and powerful figures of the natives crowding the entrance; but knowing that his survival depended on his composure, he relied on the judgment of his companion, whose footsteps he followed closely, trying to gather his thoughts for the moment. His blood ran cold when he found himself in close proximity to such fierce and relentless foes; however, he managed to control his feelings enough to make his way into the center of the lodge with a demeanor that didn’t reveal his weakness. Imitating the calm of Gamut, he pulled out a bundle of fragrant brush from beneath a pile in the corner of the hut and sat down in silence.

So soon as their visitor had passed, the observant warriors fell back from the entrance, and arranging themselves about him, they seemed patiently to await the moment when it might comport with the dignity of the stranger to speak. By far the greater number stood leaning, in lazy, lounging attitudes, against the upright posts that supported the crazy building, while three or four of the oldest and most distinguished of the chiefs placed themselves on the earth a little more in advance.

As soon as their guest left, the attentive warriors moved away from the entrance and gathered around him, seemingly waiting for the moment when the stranger would choose to speak. Most of them leaned casually against the upright posts supporting the rickety building, while three or four of the oldest and most respected chiefs sat on the ground a bit closer.

[Illustration]

A flaring torch was burning in the place, and set its red glare from face to face and figure to figure, as it waved in the currents of air. Duncan profited by its light to read the probable character of his reception, in the countenances of his hosts. But his ingenuity availed him little, against the cold artifices of the people he had encountered. The chiefs in front scarce cast a glance at his person, keeping their eyes on the ground, with an air that might have been intended for respect, but which it was quite easy to construe into distrust. The men in the shadow were less reserved. Duncan soon detected their searching, but stolen, looks which, in truth, scanned his person and attire inch by inch; leaving no emotion of the countenance, no gesture, no line of the paint, nor even the fashion of a garment, unheeded, and without comment.

A flickering torch was burning in the space, casting a red light from face to face and figure to figure as it swayed in the drafts of air. Duncan took advantage of its light to gauge how he might be received by the expressions of his hosts. But his cleverness did little against the cold tactics of the people he faced. The chiefs in front barely glanced at him, keeping their eyes on the ground with an air that might have been meant to show respect, but which was easy to interpret as distrust. The men in the shadows were less reserved. Duncan quickly noticed their discreet but searching looks that thoroughly examined his appearance and clothing; leaving no emotion on his face, no gesture, no line of paint, nor even the style of his garment unnoticed or without comment.

At length one whose hair was beginning to be sprinkled with gray, but whose sinewy limbs and firm tread announced that he was still equal to the duties of manhood, advanced out of the gloom of a corner, whither he had probably posted himself to make his observations unseen, and spoke. He used the language of the Wyandots, or Hurons; his words were, consequently, unintelligible to Heyward, though they seemed, by the gestures that accompanied them, to be uttered more in courtesy than anger. The latter shook his head, and made a gesture indicative of his inability to reply.

At last, a man whose hair was starting to turn gray, but whose strong limbs and steady stride showed he was still up for the challenges of adulthood, stepped out of the shadows of a corner, where he had likely positioned himself to observe unnoticed, and began to speak. He spoke in the language of the Wyandots or Hurons; his words were, therefore, unclear to Heyward, though the gestures accompanying them seemed to express more courtesy than anger. Heyward shook his head and gestured to show he couldn't respond.

“Do none of my brothers speak the French or the English?” he said, in the former language, looking about him from countenance to countenance, in hopes of finding a nod of assent.

“Do none of my brothers speak French or English?” he asked in French, scanning the faces around him, hoping to find a nod of agreement.

Though more than one had turned, as if to catch the meaning of his words, they remained unanswered.

Though more than one person turned, as if trying to understand what he meant, they still didn’t get a response.

“I should be grieved to think,” continued Duncan, speaking slowly, and using the simplest French of which he was the master, “to believe that none of this wise and brave nation understand the language that the ‘Grand Monarque’ uses when he talks to his children. His heart would be heavy did he believe his red warriors paid him so little respect!”

“I would be upset to think,” Duncan continued, speaking slowly and using the simplest French he knew, “that none of this wise and brave nation understands the language the ‘Grand Monarque’ uses when he talks to his children. His heart would be heavy if he believed his red warriors had so little respect for him!”

A long and grave pause succeeded, during which no movement of a limb, nor any expression of an eye, betrayed the expression produced by his remark. Duncan, who knew that silence was a virtue among his hosts, gladly had recourse to the custom, in order to arrange his ideas. At length the same warrior who had before addressed him replied, by dryly demanding, in the language of the Canadas:

A long and serious pause followed, during which no one moved a muscle, and no eye gave away the reaction to his comment. Duncan, aware that silence was valued by his hosts, happily embraced the quiet to organize his thoughts. Finally, the same warrior who had spoken to him before responded, bluntly asking in the language of the Canadas:

“When our Great Father speaks to his people, is it with the tongue of a Huron?”

“When our Great Father talks to his people, is it with the words of a Huron?”

“He knows no difference in his children, whether the color of the skin be red, or black, or white,” returned Duncan, evasively; “though chiefly is he satisfied with the brave Hurons.”

“He sees no difference in his children, whether their skin is red, black, or white,” Duncan replied, sidestepping the question; “but he is especially pleased with the brave Hurons.”

“In what manner will he speak,” demanded the wary chief, “when the runners count to him the scalps which five nights ago grew on the heads of the Yengeese?”

“In what way will he speak,” asked the cautious chief, “when the messengers tell him about the scalps that were on the heads of the Yengeese five nights ago?”

“They were his enemies,” said Duncan, shuddering involuntarily; “and doubtless, he will say, it is good; my Hurons are very gallant.”

“They were his enemies,” said Duncan, shuddering involuntarily; “and I'm sure he’ll say it’s a good thing; my Hurons are very brave.”

“Our Canada father does not think it. Instead of looking forward to reward his Indians, his eyes are turned backward. He sees the dead Yengeese, but no Huron. What can this mean?”

“Our Canadian leader doesn’t see it that way. Instead of looking ahead to reward his Indigenous people, he focuses on the past. He sees the fallen Yengeese, but no Huron. What could this mean?”

“A great chief, like him, has more thoughts than tongues. He looks to see that no enemies are on his trail.”

“A great leader, like him, has more thoughts than words. He makes sure there are no enemies following him.”

“The canoe of a dead warrior will not float on the Horican,” returned the savage, gloomily. “His ears are open to the Delawares, who are not our friends, and they fill them with lies.”

“The canoe of a dead warrior won’t float on the Horican,” replied the savage, darkly. “His ears are open to the Delawares, who aren’t our friends, and they fill them with lies.”

“It cannot be. See; he has bid me, who am a man that knows the art of healing, to go to his children, the red Hurons of the great lakes, and ask if any are sick!”

“It can't be. Look; he has asked me, a man who knows the art of healing, to go to his children, the red Hurons of the great lakes, and find out if any are sick!”

Another silence succeeded this annunciation of the character Duncan had assumed. Every eye was simultaneously bent on his person, as if to inquire into the truth or falsehood of the declaration, with an intelligence and keenness that caused the subject of their scrutiny to tremble for the result. He was, however, relieved again by the former speaker.

Another silence followed this announcement of the character Duncan had taken on. Every eye was fixed on him, almost as if they were trying to determine the truth or falsehood of the statement, with an intensity and sharpness that made Duncan anxious about the outcome. He was, however, reassured again by the previous speaker.

“Do the cunning men of the Canadas paint their skins?” the Huron coldly continued; “we have heard them boast that their faces were pale.”

“Do the crafty men of Canada paint their skin?” the Huron continued coolly; “we’ve heard them brag that their faces are pale.”

“When an Indian chief comes among his white fathers,” returned Duncan, with great steadiness, “he lays aside his buffalo robe, to carry the shirt that is offered him. My brothers have given me paint and I wear it.”

“When an Indian chief comes to his white fathers,” Duncan replied steadily, “he puts aside his buffalo robe to wear the offered shirt. My brothers have given me paint, and I wear it.”

A low murmur of applause announced that the compliment of the tribe was favorably received. The elderly chief made a gesture of commendation, which was answered by most of his companions, who each threw forth a hand and uttered a brief exclamation of pleasure. Duncan began to breathe more freely, believing that the weight of his examination was past; and, as he had already prepared a simple and probable tale to support his pretended occupation, his hopes of ultimate success grew brighter.

A quiet wave of applause signaled that the tribe accepted the compliment favorably. The old chief made a gesture of approval, which was echoed by many of his companions, who each raised a hand and expressed a brief shout of joy. Duncan started to relax, thinking the hardest part of his assessment was over; and since he had already come up with a straightforward and believable story to back up his supposed job, his hopes for a successful outcome grew stronger.

After a silence of a few moments, as if adjusting his thoughts, in order to make a suitable answer to the declaration their guests had just given, another warrior arose, and placed himself in an attitude to speak. While his lips were yet in the act of parting, a low but fearful sound arose from the forest, and was immediately succeeded by a high, shrill yell, that was drawn out, until it equaled the longest and most plaintive howl of the wolf. The sudden and terrible interruption caused Duncan to start from his seat, unconscious of everything but the effect produced by so frightful a cry. At the same moment, the warriors glided in a body from the lodge, and the outer air was filled with loud shouts, that nearly drowned those awful sounds, which were still ringing beneath the arches of the woods. Unable to command himself any longer, the youth broke from the place, and presently stood in the center of a disorderly throng, that included nearly everything having life, within the limits of the encampment. Men, women, and children; the aged, the inform, the active, and the strong, were alike abroad, some exclaiming aloud, others clapping their hands with a joy that seemed frantic, and all expressing their savage pleasure in some unexpected event. Though astounded, at first, by the uproar, Heyward was soon enabled to find its solution by the scene that followed.

After a brief silence, as if gathering his thoughts to respond appropriately to their guests' declaration, another warrior stood up and got ready to speak. Just as his lips began to part, a low but chilling sound came from the forest, followed by a high, piercing yell that stretched out until it matched the longest, saddest howl of a wolf. The sudden and terrifying interruption made Duncan jump from his seat, focused only on the horrifying cry. At that moment, the warriors swiftly exited the lodge, and the outside air filled with loud shouts that nearly drowned out the dreadful sounds echoing in the woods. Unable to keep still any longer, the young man broke free from his spot and soon found himself in the midst of a chaotic crowd that included almost everyone alive in the encampment. Men, women, and children; the elderly, the disabled, the active, and the strong were all out, some shouting loudly, others clapping their hands in a joy that seemed wild, and all showing their fierce delight in some unexpected event. Although initially shocked by the noise, Heyward quickly realized what was happening by observing the scene that unfolded.

There yet lingered sufficient light in the heavens to exhibit those bright openings among the tree-tops, where different paths left the clearing to enter the depths of the wilderness. Beneath one of them, a line of warriors issued from the woods, and advanced slowly toward the dwellings. One in front bore a short pole, on which, as it afterwards appeared, were suspended several human scalps. The startling sounds that Duncan had heard were what the whites have not inappropriately called the “death-hallo”; and each repetition of the cry was intended to announce to the tribe the fate of an enemy. Thus far the knowledge of Heyward assisted him in the explanation; and as he now knew that the interruption was caused by the unlooked-for return of a successful war-party, every disagreeable sensation was quieted in inward congratulation, for the opportune relief and insignificance it conferred on himself.

There was still enough light in the sky to show the bright openings between the treetops, where different paths led away from the clearing into the wilderness. Under one of those openings, a line of warriors emerged from the woods and slowly made their way towards the dwellings. One of them carried a short pole, which, as it later became clear, had several human scalps hanging from it. The jarring sounds that Duncan had heard were what the white people have fittingly called the "death-hallo"; and each time the cry was repeated, it was meant to inform the tribe about the fate of an enemy. So far, Heyward’s knowledge helped him understand the situation; and now that he realized the interruption was due to the unexpected return of a successful war party, all his unpleasant feelings were replaced with internal satisfaction, grateful for the timely relief and the minor importance it gave him.

When at the distance of a few hundred feet from the lodges the newly arrived warriors halted. Their plaintive and terrific cry, which was intended to represent equally the wailings of the dead and the triumph to the victors, had entirely ceased. One of their number now called aloud, in words that were far from appalling, though not more intelligible to those for whose ears they were intended, than their expressive yells. It would be difficult to convey a suitable idea of the savage ecstasy with which the news thus imparted was received. The whole encampment, in a moment, became a scene of the most violent bustle and commotion. The warriors drew their knives, and flourishing them, they arranged themselves in two lines, forming a lane that extended from the war-party to the lodges. The squaws seized clubs, axes, or whatever weapon of offense first offered itself to their hands, and rushed eagerly to act their part in the cruel game that was at hand. Even the children would not be excluded; but boys, little able to wield the instruments, tore the tomahawks from the belts of their fathers, and stole into the ranks, apt imitators of the savage traits exhibited by their parents.

When the newly arrived warriors were a few hundred feet away from the lodges, they stopped. Their haunting and fierce cries, meant to express both the sorrow for the dead and the joy of the victors, had completely faded. One of them shouted out loud, in words that weren’t frightening but also not much clearer to the people they were meant for than their expressive yells. It would be hard to capture the wild excitement with which the news was received. In an instant, the entire camp erupted in intense activity and chaos. The warriors pulled out their knives, brandishing them as they formed two lines, creating a pathway from the war party to the lodges. The women grabbed clubs, axes, or any weapon they could get their hands on and eagerly rushed to take part in the brutal game that was about to unfold. Even the children weren’t left out; boys, barely able to handle the weapons, snatched tomahawks from their fathers' belts and jumped into the ranks, closely mimicking the fierce behaviors displayed by their parents.

Large piles of brush lay scattered about the clearing, and a wary and aged squaw was occupied in firing as many as might serve to light the coming exhibition. As the flame arose, its power exceeded that of the parting day, and assisted to render objects at the same time more distinct and more hideous. The whole scene formed a striking picture, whose frame was composed of the dark and tall border of pines. The warriors just arrived were the most distant figures. A little in advance stood two men, who were apparently selected from the rest, as the principal actors in what was to follow. The light was not strong enough to render their features distinct, though it was quite evident that they were governed by very different emotions. While one stood erect and firm, prepared to meet his fate like a hero, the other bowed his head, as if palsied by terror or stricken with shame. The high-spirited Duncan felt a powerful impulse of admiration and pity toward the former, though no opportunity could offer to exhibit his generous emotions. He watched his slightest movement, however, with eager eyes; and, as he traced the fine outline of his admirably proportioned and active frame, he endeavored to persuade himself, that, if the powers of man, seconded by such noble resolution, could bear one harmless through so severe a trial, the youthful captive before him might hope for success in the hazardous race he was about to run. Insensibly the young man drew nigher to the swarthy lines of the Hurons, and scarcely breathed, so intense became his interest in the spectacle. Just then the signal yell was given, and the momentary quiet which had preceded it was broken by a burst of cries, that far exceeded any before heard. The more abject of the two victims continued motionless; but the other bounded from the place at the cry, with the activity and swiftness of a deer. Instead of rushing through the hostile lines, as had been expected, he just entered the dangerous defile, and before time was given for a single blow, turned short, and leaping the heads of a row of children, he gained at once the exterior and safer side of the formidable array. The artifice was answered by a hundred voices raised in imprecations; and the whole of the excited multitude broke from their order, and spread themselves about the place in wild confusion.

Large piles of brush were scattered around the clearing, and a cautious, older woman was busy lighting as many as she could for the upcoming event. As the flames rose, they outshone the fading daylight, making the surroundings appear both clearer and more terrifying. The entire scene created a striking image, framed by the dark, tall pines. The newly arrived warriors were the furthest away. A little ahead stood two men, seemingly chosen from the others as the central figures in what was about to happen. The light wasn't bright enough to clearly see their faces, but it was obvious they were feeling very different emotions. One stood tall and steady, ready to face his fate like a hero, while the other hung his head as if paralyzed by fear or overwhelmed by shame. The spirited Duncan felt a strong mix of admiration and pity for the former, even though he had no chance to show his feelings. He watched every little move the man made with keen interest, and as he traced the fine outline of his well-proportioned, active body, he tried to convince himself that if human strength, boosted by such noble determination, could carry someone through such a harsh test, then the young captive in front of him might have a chance at succeeding in the dangerous challenge ahead. Gradually, the young man stepped closer to the dark figures of the Hurons, barely breathing, so gripping was his interest in the scene. Just then, the signal yell was given, and the brief silence that had come before was shattered by a loud burst of cries that far surpassed any heard before. The more cowardly of the two victims remained still; however, the other sprang into action with the speed and agility of a deer at the sound. Instead of charging through the hostile ranks as expected, he dashed into the perilous path, and before a single blow could be struck, he suddenly turned, leaping over the heads of a row of children, and quickly made it to the outside, safer side of the menacing crowd. This clever move was met with a chorus of angry shouts, and the entire frenzied crowd broke from their formation, spreading out wildly around the area.

A dozen blazing piles now shed their lurid brightness on the place, which resembled some unhallowed and supernatural arena, in which malicious demons had assembled to act their bloody and lawless rites. The forms in the background looked like unearthly beings, gliding before the eye, and cleaving the air with frantic and unmeaning gestures; while the savage passions of such as passed the flames were rendered fearfully distinct by the gleams that shot athwart their inflamed visages.

A dozen blazing piles now cast their bright, harsh light on the area, making it look like a cursed and otherworldly arena, where evil demons had gathered to perform their bloody and chaotic rituals. The figures in the background appeared to be otherworldly, gliding into view and slicing through the air with wild and senseless movements; meanwhile, the savage emotions of those who passed by the flames were vividly highlighted by the flashes that cut across their heated faces.

It will easily be understood that, amid such a concourse of vindictive enemies, no breathing time was allowed the fugitive. There was a single moment when it seemed as if he would have reached the forest, but the whole body of his captors threw themselves before him, and drove him back into the center of his relentless persecutors. Turning like a headed deer, he shot, with the swiftness of an arrow, through a pillar of forked flame, and passing the whole multitude harmless, he appeared on the opposite side of the clearing. Here, too, he was met and turned by a few of the older and more subtle of the Hurons. Once more he tried the throng, as if seeking safety in its blindness, and then several moments succeeded, during which Duncan believed the active and courageous young stranger was lost.

It’s easy to see that, with so many vengeful enemies around, the fugitive had no chance to catch his breath. For a brief moment, it looked like he might make it to the forest, but his captors quickly blocked his path and pushed him back into the crowd of relentless pursuers. Like a startled deer, he darted through a wall of flames and managed to slip past the entire mob unscathed, emerging on the other side of the clearing. However, he was quickly intercepted and turned back by some of the older, more cunning Hurons. He tried to blend into the crowd again, hoping that their chaos would offer him a way out, and for several moments, Duncan feared that the brave and agile young man was done for.

Nothing could be distinguished but a dark mass of human forms tossed and involved in inexplicable confusion. Arms, gleaming knives, and formidable clubs, appeared above them, but the blows were evidently given at random. The awful effect was heightened by the piercing shrieks of the women and the fierce yells of the warriors. Now and then Duncan caught a glimpse of a light form cleaving the air in some desperate bound, and he rather hoped than believed that the captive yet retained the command of his astonishing powers of activity. Suddenly the multitude rolled backward, and approached the spot where he himself stood. The heavy body in the rear pressed upon the women and children in front, and bore them to the earth. The stranger reappeared in the confusion. Human power could not, however, much longer endure so severe a trial. Of this the captive seemed conscious. Profiting by the momentary opening, he darted from among the warriors, and made a desperate, and what seemed to Duncan a final effort to gain the wood. As if aware that no danger was to be apprehended from the young soldier, the fugitive nearly brushed his person in his flight. A tall and powerful Huron, who had husbanded his forces, pressed close upon his heels, and with an uplifted arm menaced a fatal blow. Duncan thrust forth a foot, and the shock precipitated the eager savage headlong, many feet in advance of his intended victim. Thought itself is not quicker than was the motion with which the latter profited by the advantage; he turned, gleamed like a meteor again before the eyes of Duncan, and, at the next moment, when the latter recovered his recollection, and gazed around in quest of the captive, he saw him quietly leaning against a small painted post, which stood before the door of the principal lodge.

Nothing could be made out except a dark mass of human shapes tangled in a confusing chaos. Arms, shiny knives, and heavy clubs appeared above them, but the strikes were clearly random. The horrible scene was amplified by the piercing screams of the women and the fierce shouts of the warriors. Every now and then, Duncan caught a glimpse of a light figure making a desperate leap through the air, and he hoped, rather than truly believed, that the captive still had control of his incredible agility. Suddenly, the crowd pushed back, moving closer to where he stood. The heavy bodies at the back pressed down on the women and children in front, knocking them to the ground. The stranger reappeared in the turmoil. Human strength, however, couldn't withstand such an intense trial for much longer. The captive appeared to be aware of this. Seizing the momentary opening, he burst out from among the warriors and made a desperate effort, which seemed to Duncan to be a final attempt to reach the woods. As if realizing there was no threat from the young soldier, the fugitive nearly brushed past him in his dash. A tall and powerful Huron, who had been saving his strength, chased closely behind, threatening a fatal blow with an uplifted arm. Duncan kicked out his foot, and the impact sent the eager savage tumbling many feet ahead of his intended target. The captive acted faster than thought itself, turning and flashing like a meteor in front of Duncan's eyes. The next moment, when Duncan regained his senses and looked around for the captive, he saw him calmly leaning against a small painted post that stood before the main lodge's door.

Apprehensive that the part he had taken in the escape might prove fatal to himself, Duncan left the place without delay. He followed the crowd, which drew nigh the lodges, gloomy and sullen, like any other multitude that had been disappointed in an execution. Curiosity, or perhaps a better feeling, induced him to approach the stranger. He found him, standing with one arm cast about the protecting post, and breathing thick and hard, after his exertions, but disdaining to permit a single sign of suffering to escape. His person was now protected by immemorial and sacred usage, until the tribe in council had deliberated and determined on his fate. It was not difficult, however, to foretell the result, if any presage could be drawn from the feelings of those who crowded the place.

Worried that his involvement in the escape might end badly for him, Duncan left quickly. He followed the crowd, which moved towards the lodges, dark and sullen, like any group that had been let down by a failed execution. Curiosity, or maybe even some better instinct, urged him to approach the stranger. He found him standing with one arm resting against the protective post, breathing heavily after his efforts, but refusing to show any sign of pain. His person was now secure by ancient and sacred tradition, until the tribe in council had discussed and decided his fate. However, it wasn’t hard to guess the outcome, especially if any insight could be drawn from the feelings of those who gathered there.

There was no term of abuse known to the Huron vocabulary that the disappointed women did not lavishly expend on the successful stranger. They flouted at his efforts, and told him, with bitter scoffs, that his feet were better than his hands; and that he merited wings, while he knew not the use of an arrow or a knife. To all this the captive made no reply; but was content to preserve an attitude in which dignity was singularly blended with disdain. Exasperated as much by his composure as by his good-fortune, their words became unintelligible, and were succeeded by shrill, piercing yells. Just then the crafty squaw, who had taken the necessary precaution to fire the piles, made her way through the throng, and cleared a place for herself in front of the captive. The squalid and withered person of this hag might well have obtained for her the character of possessing more than human cunning. Throwing back her light vestment, she stretched forth her long, skinny arm, in derision, and using the language of the Lenape, as more intelligible to the subject of her gibes, she commenced aloud:

There was no insult the Huron language had that the frustrated women didn't hurl at the successful stranger. They mocked his efforts, bitterly telling him that his feet were better than his hands and that he deserved wings even though he didn’t know how to use an arrow or a knife. The captive didn’t respond to any of this; instead, he maintained a demeanor that combined dignity with disdain. Their irritation grew not just from his composure but also from his good fortune, causing their words to turn into a jumble and transform into shrill, piercing screams. At that moment, the sly woman, who had taken the necessary steps to set the piles on fire, made her way through the crowd and found a place in front of the captive. The dirty and shrunken figure of this old hag could easily have earned her a reputation for extraordinary cunning. Throwing back her light garment, she extended her long, skinny arm in mockery and, speaking in Lenape—a language more understandable to her target—she began loudly:

[Illustration]

“Look you, Delaware,” she said, snapping her fingers in his face; “your nation is a race of women, and the hoe is better fitted to your hands than the gun. Your squaws are the mothers of deer; but if a bear, or a wildcat, or a serpent were born among you, ye would flee. The Huron girls shall make you petticoats, and we will find you a husband.”

“Listen up, Delaware,” she said, snapping her fingers in front of him; “your people are like a bunch of women, and a hoe suits your hands better than a gun. Your women are the mothers of deer; but if a bear, or a wildcat, or a snake were born among you, you’d run away. The Huron girls will make you skirts, and we’ll find you a husband.”

A burst of savage laughter succeeded this attack, during which the soft and musical merriment of the younger females strangely chimed with the cracked voice of their older and more malignant companion. But the stranger was superior to all their efforts. His head was immovable; nor did he betray the slightest consciousness that any were present, except when his haughty eye rolled toward the dusky forms of the warriors, who stalked in the background silent and sullen observers of the scene.

A burst of harsh laughter followed this attack, during which the soft and cheerful giggles of the younger women strangely matched the raspy voice of their older and more spiteful companion. But the stranger was above all their attempts. His head remained steady; he showed no sign that he noticed anyone else was there, except when his proud gaze turned toward the shadowy figures of the warriors, who stood silently and gloomily in the background, watching the scene unfold.

Infuriated at the self-command of the captive, the woman placed her arms akimbo; and, throwing herself into a posture of defiance, she broke out anew, in a torrent of words that no art of ours could commit successfully to paper. Her breath was, however, expended in vain; for, although distinguished in her nation as a proficient in the art of abuse, she was permitted to work herself into such a fury as actually to foam at the mouth, without causing a muscle to vibrate in the motionless figure of the stranger. The effect of his indifference began to extend itself to the other spectators; and a youngster, who was just quitting the condition of a boy to enter the state of manhood, attempted to assist the termagant, by flourishing his tomahawk before their victim, and adding his empty boasts to the taunts of the women. Then, indeed, the captive turned his face toward the light, and looked down on the stripling with an expression that was superior to contempt. At the next moment he resumed his quiet and reclining attitude against the post. But the change of posture had permitted Duncan to exchange glances with the firm and piercing eyes of Uncas.

Furious at the self-control of the captive, the woman put her hands on her hips and, adopting a defiant stance, unleashed a torrent of words that no skill of ours could accurately capture on paper. However, her efforts were in vain; despite being known in her community for her talent in insults, she worked herself into such a rage that she actually foamed at the mouth, without causing so much as a twitch in the still figure of the stranger. The impact of his indifference began to spread to the other onlookers, and a young man, who was just transitioning from boyhood to manhood, tried to help the angry woman by brandishing his tomahawk at their victim and adding his empty boasts to her jeers. At that moment, the captive turned his face to the light and looked down at the young man with an expression that conveyed more than just contempt. In the next instant, he returned to his quiet, relaxed position against the post. But the shift in posture allowed Duncan to catch a glance with Uncas's firm and piercing eyes.

Breathless with amazement, and heavily oppressed with the critical situation of his friend, Heyward recoiled before the look, trembling lest its meaning might, in some unknown manner, hasten the prisoner’s fate. There was not, however, any instant cause for such an apprehension. Just then a warrior forced his way into the exasperated crowd. Motioning the women and children aside with a stern gesture, he took Uncas by the arm, and led him toward the door of the council-lodge. Thither all the chiefs, and most of the distinguished warriors, followed; among whom the anxious Heyward found means to enter without attracting any dangerous attention to himself.

Breathless with amazement and weighed down by the dire situation of his friend, Heyward flinched at the look, afraid that its meaning might somehow speed up the prisoner’s fate. However, there was no immediate reason for such fear. Just then, a warrior made his way through the agitated crowd. With a firm gesture, he signaled the women and children to move aside, then took Uncas by the arm and led him toward the door of the council lodge. There, all the chiefs and most of the prominent warriors followed; among them, the worried Heyward managed to slip in without drawing any dangerous attention to himself.

A few minutes were consumed in disposing of those present in a manner suitable to their rank and influence in the tribe. An order very similar to that adopted in the preceding interview was observed; the aged and superior chiefs occupying the area of the spacious apartment, within the powerful light of a glaring torch, while their juniors and inferiors were arranged in the background, presenting a dark outline of swarthy and marked visages. In the very center of the lodge, immediately under an opening that admitted the twinkling light of one or two stars, stood Uncas, calm, elevated, and collected. His high and haughty carriage was not lost on his captors, who often bent their looks on his person, with eyes which, while they lost none of their inflexibility of purpose, plainly betrayed their admiration of the stranger’s daring.

A few minutes were spent arranging those present according to their rank and influence in the tribe. An order similar to that used in the previous meeting was followed; the elder and higher-ranking chiefs occupied the main area of the spacious room, illuminated by the harsh light of a bright torch, while their juniors and subordinates were arranged in the background, creating a dark outline of tanned and distinguished faces. In the very center of the lodge, right under an opening that let in the twinkling light of one or two stars, stood Uncas, calm, poised, and composed. His proud and haughty demeanor did not go unnoticed by his captors, who frequently looked at him with eyes that, while maintaining their determination, clearly revealed their admiration for the stranger’s bravery.

The case was different with the individual whom Duncan had observed to stand forth with his friend, previously to the desperate trial of speed; and who, instead of joining in the chase, had remained, throughout its turbulent uproar, like a cringing statue, expressive of shame and disgrace. Though not a hand had been extended to greet him, nor yet an eye had condescended to watch his movements, he had also entered the lodge, as though impelled by a fate to whose decrees he submitted, seemingly, without a struggle. Heyward profited by the first opportunity to gaze in his face, secretly apprehensive he might find the features of another acquaintance; but they proved to be those of a stranger, and, what was still more inexplicable, of one who bore all the distinctive marks of a Huron warrior. Instead of mingling with his tribe, however, he sat apart, a solitary being in a multitude, his form shrinking into a crouching and abject attitude, as if anxious to fill as little space as possible. When each individual had taken his proper station, and silence reigned in the place, the gray-haired chief already introduced to the reader, spoke aloud, in the language of the Lenni Lenape.

The situation was different for the individual Duncan had seen standing with his friend before the intense race began; instead of joining in the chase, he had stayed there throughout the chaotic scene, appearing like a cowering statue, full of shame and disgrace. Even though no one reached out to greet him or even glanced his way, he entered the lodge as if driven by a fate he accepted without resistance. Heyward took the first chance he got to look at his face, worried he might recognize someone he knew; but the features turned out to belong to a stranger, and what was even more puzzling was that he had all the clear signs of a Huron warrior. However, instead of mixing with his tribe, he kept to himself, a solitary figure in the crowd, his body hunched over in a submissive posture, as if trying to take up as little space as possible. Once everyone had taken their place and silence filled the room, the gray-haired chief, already introduced to the reader, spoke out loud in the language of the Lenni Lenape.

“Delaware,” he said, “though one of a nation of women, you have proved yourself a man. I would give you food; but he who eats with a Huron should become his friend. Rest in peace till the morning sun, when our last words shall be spoken.”

“Delaware,” he said, “even though you’re part of a nation of women, you’ve shown you’re a man. I would offer you food; but anyone who eats with a Huron should become his friend. Rest easy until the morning sun, when we’ll share our final words.”

“Seven nights, and as many summer days, have I fasted on the trail of the Hurons,” Uncas coldly replied; “the children of the Lenape know how to travel the path of the just without lingering to eat.”

“Seven nights and as many summer days have I gone without food while tracking the Hurons,” Uncas replied coldly. “The children of the Lenape know how to walk the path of righteousness without stopping to eat.”

“Two of my young men are in pursuit of your companion,” resumed the other, without appearing to regard the boast of his captive; “when they get back, then will our wise man say to you ‘live’ or ‘die’.”

“Two of my guys are out looking for your friend,” the other continued, not seeming to care about his captive's bragging; “when they return, then our wise man will tell you to ‘live’ or ‘die.’”

“Has a Huron no ears?” scornfully exclaimed Uncas; “twice, since he has been your prisoner, has the Delaware heard a gun that he knows. Your young men will never come back!”

“Does a Huron not have ears?” Uncas exclaimed scornfully. “Twice, since he’s been your prisoner, the Delaware has heard a gun he recognizes. Your young men will never return!”

A short and sullen pause succeeded this bold assertion. Duncan, who understood the Mohican to allude to the fatal rifle of the scout, bent forward in earnest observation of the effect it might produce on the conquerors; but the chief was content with simply retorting:

A brief and gloomy silence followed this bold statement. Duncan, who realized the Mohican was referring to the deadly rifle of the scout, leaned forward, intently watching the impact it might have on the conquerors; but the chief was satisfied with just responding:

“If the Lenape are so skillful, why is one of their bravest warriors here?”

“If the Lenape are so skilled, why is one of their bravest warriors here?”

“He followed in the steps of a flying coward, and fell into a snare. The cunning beaver may be caught.”

“He followed the path of a scared coward and fell into a trap. The clever beaver can still be caught.”

As Uncas thus replied, he pointed with his finger toward the solitary Huron, but without deigning to bestow any other notice on so unworthy an object. The words of the answer and the air of the speaker produced a strong sensation among his auditors. Every eye rolled sullenly toward the individual indicated by the simple gesture, and a low, threatening murmur passed through the crowd. The ominous sounds reached the outer door, and the women and children pressing into the throng, no gap had been left, between shoulder and shoulder, that was not now filled with the dark lineaments of some eager and curious human countenance.

As Uncas replied, he pointed at the lone Huron, not bothering to give any further attention to such an unworthy subject. His words and the way he said them created a strong reaction among those listening. Every eye turned angrily toward the person he was indicating with his gesture, and a low, threatening murmur rippled through the crowd. The ominous sounds reached the outer door, and with women and children pushing into the crowd, there was no space left between shoulders that wasn’t filled with the eager and curious faces of the people.

In the meantime, the more aged chiefs, in the center, communed with each other in short and broken sentences. Not a word was uttered that did not convey the meaning of the speaker, in the simplest and most energetic form. Again, a long and deeply solemn pause took place. It was known, by all present, to be the brave precursor of a weighty and important judgment. They who composed the outer circle of faces were on tiptoe to gaze; and even the culprit for an instant forgot his shame in a deeper emotion, and exposed his abject features, in order to cast an anxious and troubled glance at the dark assemblage of chiefs. The silence was finally broken by the aged warrior so often named. He arose from the earth, and moving past the immovable form of Uncas, placed himself in a dignified attitude before the offender. At that moment, the withered squaw already mentioned moved into the circle, in a slow, sidling sort of a dance, holding the torch, and muttering the indistinct words of what might have been a species of incantation. Though her presence was altogether an intrusion, it was unheeded.

In the meantime, the older chiefs in the center spoke to each other in short, fragmented sentences. Every word expressed the speaker's meaning in the simplest and most powerful way. Again, there was a long, serious pause. Everyone present knew it signaled an important decision ahead. The people making up the outer circle were eager to look on; even the accused briefly forgot his shame, revealing his distressed features as he anxiously glanced at the dark group of chiefs. The silence was finally broken by the elderly warrior who had been mentioned several times. He stood up from the ground and, moving past Uncas's still form, took a dignified position in front of the accused. At that moment, the aged woman already mentioned edged into the circle, gliding slowly as if dancing while holding the torch and muttering indistinct words that might have been some sort of chant. Although her presence was clearly an intrusion, nobody paid attention to it.

Approaching Uncas, she held the blazing brand in such a manner as to cast its red glare on his person, and to expose the slightest emotion of his countenance. The Mohican maintained his firm and haughty attitude; and his eyes, so far from deigning to meet her inquisitive look, dwelt steadily on the distance, as though it penetrated the obstacles which impeded the view and looked into futurity. Satisfied with her examination, she left him, with a slight expression of pleasure, and proceeded to practise the same trying experiment on her delinquent countryman.

Approaching Uncas, she held the blazing torch in a way that cast its red light on him, revealing any flicker of emotion on his face. The Mohican kept his proud and defiant stance; his eyes, instead of meeting her curious gaze, focused intently on the distance, as if he could see past the obstacles blocking his view and into the future. Pleased with her assessment, she left him with a slight smile and moved on to conduct the same challenging test on her wayward fellow countryman.

The young Huron was in his war paint, and very little of a finely molded form was concealed by his attire. The light rendered every limb and joint discernible, and Duncan turned away in horror when he saw they were writhing in irrepressible agony. The woman was commencing a low and plaintive howl at the sad and shameful spectacle, when the chief put forth his hand and gently pushed her aside.

The young Huron was wearing his war paint, and his outfit revealed most of his well-defined physique. The light made every limb and joint visible, and Duncan turned away in horror when he saw they were twisting in unbearable pain. The woman began to let out a soft and sorrowful wail at the sad and disgraceful scene, when the chief reached out and gently pushed her aside.

“Reed-that-bends,” he said, addressing the young culprit by name, and in his proper language, “though the Great Spirit has made you pleasant to the eyes, it would have been better that you had not been born. Your tongue is loud in the village, but in battle it is still. None of my young men strike the tomahawk deeper into the war-post—none of them so lightly on the Yengeese. The enemy know the shape of your back, but they have never seen the color of your eyes. Three times have they called on you to come, and as often did you forget to answer. Your name will never be mentioned again in your tribe—it is already forgotten.”

“Reed-that-bends,” he said, directly addressing the young offender, “even though the Great Spirit has made you pleasant to look at, it would have been better if you had never been born. Your voice is loud in the village, but it goes silent in battle. None of my young men hit the tomahawk harder into the war-post—none of them do so lightly against the Yengeese. The enemy knows what your back looks like, but they have never seen the color of your eyes. Three times they have called on you to join them, and each time you forgot to respond. Your name will never be mentioned in your tribe again—it is already forgotten.”

As the chief slowly uttered these words, pausing impressively between each sentence, the culprit raised his face, in deference to the other’s rank and years. Shame, horror, and pride struggled in its lineaments. His eye, which was contracted with inward anguish, gleamed on the persons of those whose breath was his fame; and the latter emotion for an instant predominated. He arose to his feet, and baring his bosom, looked steadily on the keen, glittering knife, that was already upheld by his inexorable judge. As the weapon passed slowly into his heart he even smiled, as if in joy at having found death less dreadful than he had anticipated, and fell heavily on his face, at the feet of the rigid and unyielding form of Uncas.

As the chief slowly spoke these words, making a strong pause between each sentence, the culprit lifted his face, respecting the other’s rank and age. Shame, horror, and pride contended with each other on his features. His eye, tight with inner pain, locked onto the people whose recognition was his glory; and for a moment, pride won out. He stood up, bared his chest, and stared steadily at the sharp, shining knife held by his unforgiving judge. As the blade plunged slowly into his heart, he even smiled, as if relieved to find that death was less terrifying than he had expected, and then he collapsed heavily onto his face, at the feet of the cold and unyielding form of Uncas.

The squaw gave a loud and plaintive yell, dashed the torch to the earth, and buried everything in darkness. The whole shuddering group of spectators glided from the lodge like troubled sprites; and Duncan thought that he and the yet throbbing body of the victim of an Indian judgment had now become its only tenants.

The woman let out a loud, mournful scream, threw the torch to the ground, and plunged everything into darkness. The entire trembling crowd drifted away from the lodge like disturbed spirits, and Duncan realized that he and the still-pulsing body of the victim of an Indian judgment were now its only occupants.

CHAPTER XXIV.

“Thus spoke the sage: the kings without delay
Dissolve the council, and their chief obey.”
—Pope’s Iliad

“Thus the wise man said: the kings immediately
Dismiss the council, and their leader follows.”
—Pope’s Iliad

A single moment served to convince the youth that he was mistaken. A hand was laid, with a powerful pressure, on his arm, and the low voice of Uncas muttered in his ear:

A single moment made the young man realize he was wrong. A strong hand was placed on his arm, and Uncas whispered in his ear:

“The Hurons are dogs. The sight of a coward’s blood can never make a warrior tremble. The ‘Gray Head’ and the Sagamore are safe, and the rifle of Hawkeye is not asleep. Go—Uncas and the ‘Open Hand’ are now strangers. It is enough.”

“The Hurons are nothing but cowards. The sight of a weakling’s blood will never make a warrior flinch. The ‘Gray Head’ and the Sagamore are safe, and Hawkeye’s rifle is at the ready. Go—Uncas and the ‘Open Hand’ are now outsiders. That’s all there is to it.”

Heyward would gladly have heard more, but a gentle push from his friend urged him toward the door, and admonished him of the danger that might attend the discovery of their intercourse. Slowly and reluctantly yielding to the necessity, he quitted the place, and mingled with the throng that hovered nigh. The dying fires in the clearing cast a dim and uncertain light on the dusky figures that were silently stalking to and fro; and occasionally a brighter gleam than common glanced into the lodge, and exhibited the figure of Uncas still maintaining its upright attitude near the dead body of the Huron.

Heyward would have loved to hear more, but a gentle push from his friend nudged him toward the door and reminded him of the danger that could come from being discovered. Slowly and reluctantly giving in to the necessity, he left the place and blended into the crowd nearby. The dying fires in the clearing cast a faint and uncertain light on the shadowy figures that were silently moving back and forth; occasionally, a brighter light flickered into the lodge, revealing Uncas still standing near the dead body of the Huron.

A knot of warriors soon entered the place again, and reissuing, they bore the senseless remains into the adjacent woods. After this termination of the scene, Duncan wandered among the lodges, unquestioned and unnoticed, endeavoring to find some trace of her in whose behalf he incurred the risk he ran. In the present temper of the tribe it would have been easy to have fled and rejoined his companions, had such a wish crossed his mind. But, in addition to the never-ceasing anxiety on account of Alice, a fresher though feebler interest in the fate of Uncas assisted to chain him to the spot. He continued, therefore, to stray from hut to hut, looking into each only to encounter additional disappointment, until he had made the entire circuit of the village. Abandoning a species of inquiry that proved so fruitless, he retraced his steps to the council-lodge, resolved to seek and question David, in order to put an end to his doubts.

A group of warriors soon entered the place again and, after some time, carried away the lifeless remains into the nearby woods. Once this scene wrapped up, Duncan wandered among the lodges, going unnoticed as he tried to find any trace of the woman for whom he had taken such risks. Given the current mood of the tribe, it would have been easy for him to flee and reunite with his companions if that thought had crossed his mind. But alongside his constant worry about Alice, a newer but weaker concern for Uncas kept him rooted in place. So, he continued to move from one hut to another, peering inside only to face more disappointment, until he had made his way around the entire village. After abandoning this unproductive quest, he retraced his steps to the council lodge, determined to find and question David to finally resolve his uncertainties.

On reaching the building, which had proved alike the seat of judgment and the place of execution, the young man found that the excitement had already subsided. The warriors had reassembled, and were now calmly smoking, while they conversed gravely on the chief incidents of their recent expedition to the head of the Horican. Though the return of Duncan was likely to remind them of his character, and the suspicious circumstances of his visit, it produced no visible sensation. So far, the terrible scene that had just occurred proved favorable to his views, and he required no other prompter than his own feelings to convince him of the expediency of profiting by so unexpected an advantage.

Upon reaching the building, which had served as both a courtroom and a place of execution, the young man noticed that the excitement had already died down. The warriors had gathered again, calmly smoking while discussing the key events of their recent trip to the head of the Horican. Although Duncan's return was likely to remind them of his past and the suspicious circumstances of his visit, it didn’t seem to affect them visibly. So far, the horrific scene that had just unfolded actually worked in his favor, and he didn't need any further urging beyond his own feelings to realize the importance of taking advantage of this unexpected opportunity.

Without seeming to hesitate, he walked into the lodge, and took his seat with a gravity that accorded admirably with the deportment of his hosts. A hasty but searching glance sufficed to tell him that, though Uncas still remained where he had left him, David had not reappeared. No other restraint was imposed on the former than the watchful looks of a young Huron, who had placed himself at hand; though an armed warrior leaned against the post that formed one side of the narrow doorway. In every other respect, the captive seemed at liberty; still he was excluded from all participation in the discourse, and possessed much more of the air of some finely molded statue than a man having life and volition.

Without seeming to hesitate, he walked into the lodge and took his seat with a seriousness that matched his hosts' demeanor. A quick but thoughtful glance told him that, while Uncas was still where he had left him, David had not returned. The only restraint on Uncas was the watchful gaze of a young Huron who had positioned himself nearby, even though an armed warrior leaned against the post forming one side of the narrow doorway. In every other way, the captive appeared to be free; however, he was excluded from all conversation and had more of the presence of a finely crafted statue than a living, conscious man.

Heyward had too recently witnessed a frightful instance of the prompt punishments of the people into whose hands he had fallen to hazard an exposure by any officious boldness. He would greatly have preferred silence and meditation to speech, when a discovery of his real condition might prove so instantly fatal. Unfortunately for this prudent resolution, his entertainers appeared otherwise disposed. He had not long occupied the seat wisely taken a little in the shade, when another of the elder warriors, who spoke the French language, addressed him:

Heyward had recently seen a terrifying example of the swift punishments dealt out by the people he had fallen in with, so he wasn’t about to risk exposure through any rash actions. He would have much rather remained silent and reflective than speak, especially since revealing his true situation could be deadly in an instant. Unfortunately for this cautious choice, his hosts seemed to have different intentions. He had barely settled into the wise choice of a spot slightly in the shade when another older warrior, who spoke French, turned to him and spoke:

“My Canada father does not forget his children,” said the chief; “I thank him. An evil spirit lives in the wife of one of my young men. Can the cunning stranger frighten him away?”

“My Canadian father doesn’t forget his children,” said the chief; “I thank him. An evil spirit lives in the wife of one of my young men. Can the clever stranger scare it away?”

Heyward possessed some knowledge of the mummery practised among the Indians, in the cases of such supposed visitations. He saw, at a glance, that the circumstance might possibly be improved to further his own ends. It would, therefore, have been difficult, just then to have uttered a proposal that would have given him more satisfaction. Aware of the necessity of preserving the dignity of his imaginary character, however, he repressed his feelings, and answered with suitable mystery:

Heyward knew a bit about the rituals practiced by the Indians during such supposed visitations. He quickly realized that the situation could be used to benefit him. At that moment, it would have been hard to suggest anything that would have made him happier. However, understanding the need to maintain the dignity of his made-up persona, he held back his emotions and responded with appropriate mystery:

“Spirits differ; some yield to the power of wisdom, while others are too strong.”

“People are different; some are open to the influence of wisdom, while others are too resistant.”

“My brother is a great medicine,” said the cunning savage; “he will try?”

“My brother is a great healer,” said the clever savage; “will he try?”

A gesture of assent was the answer. The Huron was content with the assurance, and, resuming his pipe, he awaited the proper moment to move. The impatient Heyward, inwardly execrating the cold customs of the savages, which required such sacrifices to appearance, was fain to assume an air of indifference, equal to that maintained by the chief, who was, in truth, a near relative of the afflicted woman. The minutes lingered, and the delay had seemed an hour to the adventurer in empiricism, when the Huron laid aside his pipe and drew his robe across his breast, as if about to lead the way to the lodge of the invalid. Just then, a warrior of powerful frame, darkened the door, and stalking silently among the attentive group, he seated himself on one end of the low pile of brush which sustained Duncan. The latter cast an impatient look at his neighbor, and felt his flesh creep with uncontrollable horror when he found himself in actual contact with Magua.

A nod was the response. The Huron was satisfied with the reassurance and, picking up his pipe again, he waited for the right moment to act. The impatient Heyward, silently cursing the rigid customs of the natives that demanded such sacrifices for appearance's sake, felt compelled to adopt a facade of indifference, matching that of the chief, who was, in fact, a close relative of the sick woman. Time dragged on, and the wait felt like an hour to the practical adventurer when the Huron put down his pipe and pulled his robe over his chest as if preparing to lead the way to the sick woman's lodge. Just then, a strong warrior darkened the doorway and, moving quietly among the attentive group, sat on one end of the low stack of brush that supported Duncan. Duncan threw an impatient glance at his neighbor and felt a wave of horror when he found himself face to face with Magua.

The sudden return of this artful and dreaded chief caused a delay in the departure of the Huron. Several pipes, that had been extinguished, were lighted again; while the newcomer, without speaking a word, drew his tomahawk from his girdle, and filling the bowl on its head began to inhale the vapors of the weed through the hollow handle, with as much indifference as if he had not been absent two weary days on a long and toilsome hunt. Ten minutes, which appeared so many ages to Duncan, might have passed in this manner; and the warriors were fairly enveloped in a cloud of white smoke before any of them spoke.

The sudden return of this skilled and feared chief delayed the Huron's departure. Several pipes that had been put out were lit again, while the newcomer, without saying a word, pulled his tomahawk from his belt and began to smoke from it, inhaling the smoke through the hollow handle as if he hadn’t just spent two exhausting days on a long hunt. Ten minutes, which felt like an eternity to Duncan, went by this way, and the warriors were completely surrounded by a cloud of white smoke before any of them spoke.

“Welcome!” one at length uttered; “has my friend found the moose?”

“Welcome!” one finally said; “has my friend found the moose?”

“The young men stagger under their burdens,” returned Magua. “Let ‘Reed-that-bends’ go on the hunting path; he will meet them.”

“The young men are struggling under their loads,” Magua replied. “Let ‘Reed-that-bends’ take the hunting trail; he will come across them.”

A deep and awful silence succeeded the utterance of the forbidden name. Each pipe dropped from the lips of its owner as though all had inhaled an impurity at the same instant. The smoke wreathed above their heads in little eddies, and curling in a spiral form it ascended swiftly through the opening in the roof of the lodge, leaving the place beneath clear of its fumes, and each dark visage distinctly visible. The looks of most of the warriors were riveted on the earth; though a few of the younger and less gifted of the party suffered their wild and glaring eyeballs to roll in the direction of a white-headed savage, who sat between two of the most venerated chiefs of the tribe. There was nothing in the air or attire of this Indian that would seem to entitle him to such a distinction. The former was rather depressed, than remarkable for the bearing of the natives; and the latter was such as was commonly worn by the ordinary men of the nation. Like most around him for more than a minute his look, too, was on the ground; but, trusting his eyes at length to steal a glance aside, he perceived that he was becoming an object of general attention. Then he arose and lifted his voice in the general silence.

A deep and eerie silence followed the mention of the forbidden name. Each pipe fell from its owner's lips, as if everyone had inhaled something toxic at the same moment. The smoke twisted above their heads in little swirls, rising quickly through the opening in the roof of the lodge, leaving the space below clear of its fumes, making each dark face clearly visible. Most of the warriors were staring at the ground, though a few of the younger, less experienced members of the group let their wild, wide-open eyes dart toward a white-haired Native man who sat between two of the tribe's most respected chiefs. There was nothing in this man's appearance or clothing that seemed to justify such a distinction. His demeanor was rather subdued, not impressive compared to the other natives, and his clothing was similar to what ordinary men in the tribe wore. Like many around him, he kept his gaze on the ground for over a minute, but when he finally stole a glance to the side, he realized he was becoming the focus of everyone's attention. Then he stood up and raised his voice in the heavy silence.

“It was a lie,” he said; “I had no son. He who was called by that name is forgotten; his blood was pale, and it came not from the veins of a Huron; the wicked Chippewas cheated my squaw. The Great Spirit has said, that the family of Wiss-entush should end; he is happy who knows that the evil of his race dies with himself. I have done.”

“It was a lie,” he said; “I had no son. The one who went by that name is forgotten; his blood was weak, and it didn’t come from Huron veins; the wicked Chippewas deceived my wife. The Great Spirit has declared that the family of Wiss-entush should end; he is fortunate who knows that the wrongs of his people die with him. I have said all I needed to.”

The speaker, who was the father of the recreant young Indian, looked round and about him, as if seeking commendation of his stoicism in the eyes of the auditors. But the stern customs of his people had made too severe an exaction of the feeble old man. The expression of his eye contradicted his figurative and boastful language, while every muscle in his wrinkled visage was working with anguish. Standing a single minute to enjoy his bitter triumph, he turned away, as if sickening at the gaze of men, and, veiling his face in his blanket, he walked from the lodge with the noiseless step of an Indian seeking, in the privacy of his own abode, the sympathy of one like himself, aged, forlorn and childless.

The speaker, who was the father of the cowardly young Indian, looked around as if searching for approval of his stoicism from the audience. But the harsh traditions of his people had taken a heavy toll on the frail old man. The expression in his eyes contradicted his flowery and boastful words, while every muscle in his wrinkled face was tense with pain. After standing for a minute to savor his bitter victory, he turned away, seemingly sickened by the gaze of others, and, covering his face with his blanket, he left the lodge with the silent step of an Indian seeking, in the solitude of his own home, the understanding of someone like himself—aged, lonely, and without children.

The Indians, who believe in the hereditary transmission of virtues and defects in character, suffered him to depart in silence. Then, with an elevation of breeding that many in a more cultivated state of society might profitably emulate, one of the chiefs drew the attention of the young men from the weakness they had just witnessed, by saying, in a cheerful voice, addressing himself in courtesy to Magua, as the newest comer:

The Native Americans, who believe that virtues and flaws in character are passed down through generations, let him leave quietly. Then, with a level of politeness that many in a more advanced society could learn from, one of the chiefs brought the young men’s focus away from the weakness they had just seen by cheerfully addressing Magua, the newest arrival.

“The Delawares have been like bears after the honey pots, prowling around my village. But who has ever found a Huron asleep?”

“The Delawares have been like bears after honey, roaming around my village. But who has ever seen a Huron sleeping?”

The darkness of the impending cloud which precedes a burst of thunder was not blacker than the brow of Magua as he exclaimed:

The darkness of the approaching storm cloud that comes before a clap of thunder was not darker than Magua's brow as he shouted:

“The Delawares of the Lakes!”

"The Delawares by the Lakes!"

“Not so. They who wear the petticoats of squaws, on their own river. One of them has been passing the tribe.”

“Not at all. Those who wear the skirts of the women, on their own river. One of them has been mingling with the tribe.”

“Did my young men take his scalp?”

“Did my guys take his scalp?”

“His legs were good, though his arm is better for the hoe than the tomahawk,” returned the other, pointing to the immovable form of Uncas.

“His legs are strong, but his arm is more suited for the hoe than the tomahawk,” replied the other, pointing to the motionless figure of Uncas.

Instead of manifesting any womanish curiosity to feast his eyes with the sight of a captive from a people he was known to have so much reason to hate, Magua continued to smoke, with the meditative air that he usually maintained, when there was no immediate call on his cunning or his eloquence. Although secretly amazed at the facts communicated by the speech of the aged father, he permitted himself to ask no questions, reserving his inquiries for a more suitable moment. It was only after a sufficient interval that he shook the ashes from his pipe, replaced the tomahawk, tightened his girdle, and arose, casting for the first time a glance in the direction of the prisoner, who stood a little behind him. The wary, though seemingly abstracted Uncas, caught a glimpse of the movement, and turning suddenly to the light, their looks met. Near a minute these two bold and untamed spirits stood regarding one another steadily in the eye, neither quailing in the least before the fierce gaze he encountered. The form of Uncas dilated, and his nostrils opened like those of a tiger at bay; but so rigid and unyielding was his posture, that he might easily have been converted by the imagination into an exquisite and faultless representation of the warlike deity of his tribe. The lineaments of the quivering features of Magua proved more ductile; his countenance gradually lost its character of defiance in an expression of ferocious joy, and heaving a breath from the very bottom of his chest, he pronounced aloud the formidable name of:

Instead of showing any feminine curiosity to enjoy the sight of a captive from a people he had plenty of reason to hate, Magua kept smoking, wearing the thoughtful expression he usually had when he wasn't immediately called upon to use his cleverness or rhetoric. Although he was secretly shocked by what the old man had said, he held back his questions for a better time. It was only after a while that he shook the ashes from his pipe, put away his tomahawk, tightened his belt, and stood up, finally glancing at the prisoner who was standing a little behind him. The cautious, yet seemingly distracted, Uncas caught sight of this movement and turned to the light, their eyes meeting. For nearly a minute, these two bold and untamed spirits stared at each other intensely, neither flinching at the fierce gaze they faced. Uncas's form expanded, and his nostrils flared like those of a tiger ready to fight; but his posture was so rigid and unyielding that he could easily have been imagined as a perfect representation of the warlike deity of his tribe. Magua's features, however, showed more flexibility; his face slowly shifted from a defiant look to one of fierce joy, and drawing a deep breath, he loudly pronounced the formidable name of:

“Le Cerf Agile!”

“Agile Deer!”

Each warrior sprang upon his feet at the utterance of the well-known appellation, and there was a short period during which the stoical constancy of the natives was completely conquered by surprise. The hated and yet respected name was repeated as by one voice, carrying the sound even beyond the limits of the lodge. The women and children, who lingered around the entrance, took up the words in an echo, which was succeeded by another shrill and plaintive howl. The latter was not yet ended, when the sensation among the men had entirely abated. Each one in presence seated himself, as though ashamed of his precipitation; but it was many minutes before their meaning eyes ceased to roll toward their captive, in curious examination of a warrior who had so often proved his prowess on the best and proudest of their nation. Uncas enjoyed his victory, but was content with merely exhibiting his triumph by a quiet smile—an emblem of scorn which belongs to all time and every nation.

Each warrior jumped to his feet at the mention of the well-known name, and for a brief moment, the natives' usual stoicism was completely overtaken by surprise. The hated yet respected name was echoed by everyone, the sound reaching even beyond the lodge. The women and children, who lingered at the entrance, joined in, creating an echo followed by another sharp and mournful howl. The latter had not yet finished when the excitement among the men had completely faded. Each man present sat down, as if embarrassed by his earlier reaction; but it took many minutes before their curious eyes stopped glancing toward their captive, examining a warrior who had repeatedly proven his strength against the best and proudest of their nation. Uncas reveled in his victory but was satisfied to simply show his triumph with a quiet smile—an expression of scorn that transcends time and culture.

Magua caught the expression, and raising his arm, he shook it at the captive, the light silver ornaments attached to his bracelet rattling with the trembling agitation of the limb, as, in a tone of vengeance, he exclaimed, in English:

Magua saw the expression and lifted his arm, shaking it at the captive. The silver ornaments on his bracelet jingled with the movement of his arm as he exclaimed in a vengeful tone in English:

“Mohican, you die!”

"Mohican, you're dead!"

“The healing waters will never bring the dead Hurons to life,” returned Uncas, in the music of the Delawares; “the tumbling river washes their bones; their men are squaws: their women owls. Go! call together the Huron dogs, that they may look upon a warrior, My nostrils are offended; they scent the blood of a coward.”

“The healing waters won’t bring the dead Hurons back to life,” Uncas replied in the melodious tone of the Delawares. “The rushing river washes their bones; their men are like women; their women are like owls. Go! Gather the Huron dogs so they can see a warrior. My nose is offended; it smells the blood of a coward.”

The latter allusion struck deep, and the injury rankled. Many of the Hurons understood the strange tongue in which the captive spoke, among which number was Magua. This cunning savage beheld, and instantly profited by his advantage. Dropping the light robe of skin from his shoulder, he stretched forth his arm, and commenced a burst of his dangerous and artful eloquence. However much his influence among his people had been impaired by his occasional and besetting weakness, as well as by his desertion of the tribe, his courage and his fame as an orator were undeniable. He never spoke without auditors, and rarely without making converts to his opinions. On the present occasion, his native powers were stimulated by the thirst of revenge.

The latter reference hit hard, and the hurt lingered. Many of the Hurons understood the strange language the captive spoke, including Magua. This cunning warrior noticed and quickly took advantage of the situation. Dropping the light skin robe from his shoulder, he extended his arm and began to unleash a stream of his dangerous and skillful speech. Even though his influence among his people had declined due to his occasional weaknesses and his abandonment of the tribe, his bravery and reputation as a speaker were undeniable. He never spoke without an audience and rarely without winning over some to his views. In this instance, his natural abilities were fueled by a desire for revenge.

He again recounted the events of the attack on the island at Glenn’s, the death of his associates and the escape of their most formidable enemies. Then he described the nature and position of the mount whither he had led such captives as had fallen into their hands. Of his own bloody intentions toward the maidens, and of his baffled malice he made no mention, but passed rapidly on to the surprise of the party by “La Longue Carabine,” and its fatal termination. Here he paused, and looked about him, in affected veneration for the departed, but, in truth, to note the effect of his opening narrative. As usual, every eye was riveted on his face. Each dusky figure seemed a breathing statue, so motionless was the posture, so intense the attention of the individual.

He once again recounted the events of the attack on the island at Glenn’s, the death of his companions, and the escape of their most dangerous enemies. Then he described the nature and position of the mountain where he had taken the captives they had captured. He said nothing about his own violent intentions towards the maidens or his frustrated malice, but quickly moved on to the surprise of the group by “La Longue Carabine” and its deadly outcome. Here he paused and looked around, pretending to show respect for the deceased, but in reality, he was observing the impact of his opening story. As usual, every eye was locked on his face. Each dark figure seemed like a statue, so still was their posture, so intense the focus of each individual.

Then Magua dropped his voice which had hitherto been clear, strong and elevated, and touched upon the merits of the dead. No quality that was likely to command the sympathy of an Indian escaped his notice. One had never been known to follow the chase in vain; another had been indefatigable on the trail of their enemies. This was brave, that generous. In short, he so managed his allusions, that in a nation which was composed of so few families, he contrived to strike every chord that might find, in its turn, some breast in which to vibrate.

Then Magua lowered his voice, which had previously been clear, strong, and elevated, and spoke about the merits of the deceased. He didn't miss a single quality that might resonate with the sympathy of the Indians. One had never failed in the hunt; another had tirelessly tracked their enemies. This one was brave, that one generous. In short, he skillfully made his references so that in a nation made up of so few families, he managed to hit every note that could resonate with someone.

“Are the bones of my young men,” he concluded, “in the burial-place of the Hurons? You know they are not. Their spirits are gone toward the setting sun, and are already crossing the great waters, to the happy hunting-grounds. But they departed without food, without guns or knives, without moccasins, naked and poor as they were born. Shall this be? Are their souls to enter the land of the just like hungry Iroquois or unmanly Delawares, or shall they meet their friends with arms in their hands and robes on their backs? What will our fathers think the tribes of the Wyandots have become? They will look on their children with a dark eye, and say, ‘Go! a Chippewa has come hither with the name of a Huron.’ Brothers, we must not forget the dead; a red-skin never ceases to remember. We will load the back of this Mohican until he staggers under our bounty, and dispatch him after my young men. They call to us for aid, though our ears are not open; they say, ‘Forget us not.’ When they see the spirit of this Mohican toiling after them with his burden, they will know we are of that mind. Then will they go on happy; and our children will say, ‘So did our fathers to their friends, so must we do to them.’ What is a Yengee? we have slain many, but the earth is still pale. A stain on the name of Huron can only be hid by blood that comes from the veins of an Indian. Let this Delaware die.”

“Are the bones of my young men,” he concluded, “in the burial place of the Hurons? You know they aren’t. Their spirits have gone toward the setting sun, and are already crossing the great waters to the happy hunting grounds. But they left without food, without guns or knives, without moccasins, naked and poor like they were born. Is this how it should be? Are their souls to enter the land of the just like starving Iroquois or cowardly Delawares, or will they reunite with their friends armed and dressed? What will our ancestors think the tribes of the Wyandots have become? They will look at their children with disapproval and say, ‘Go! A Chippewa has come here with the name of a Huron.’ Brothers, we must not forget the dead; a Native American never forgets. We will load this Mohican down until he nearly collapses from our generosity and send him after my young men. They’re calling for our help, though we can’t hear them; they say, ‘Don’t forget us.’ When they see the spirit of this Mohican struggling after them with his load, they will know we are thinking of them. Then they will move on happily; and our children will say, ‘So did our fathers for their friends, so must we do for them.’ What is a Yengee? We have killed many, but the land is still empty. A stain on the name of Huron can only be washed away with the blood from an Indian's veins. Let this Delaware die.”

The effect of such an harangue, delivered in the nervous language and with the emphatic manner of a Huron orator, could scarcely be mistaken. Magua had so artfully blended the natural sympathies with the religious superstition of his auditors, that their minds, already prepared by custom to sacrifice a victim to the manes of their countrymen, lost every vestige of humanity in a wish for revenge. One warrior in particular, a man of wild and ferocious mien, had been conspicuous for the attention he had given to the words of the speaker. His countenance had changed with each passing emotion, until it settled into a look of deadly malice. As Magua ended he arose and, uttering the yell of a demon, his polished little axe was seen glancing in the torchlight as he whirled it above his head. The motion and the cry were too sudden for words to interrupt his bloody intention. It appeared as if a bright gleam shot from his hand, which was crossed at the same moment by a dark and powerful line. The former was the tomahawk in its passage; the latter the arm that Magua darted forward to divert its aim. The quick and ready motion of the chief was not entirely too late. The keen weapon cut the war plume from the scalping tuft of Uncas, and passed through the frail wall of the lodge as though it were hurled from some formidable engine.

The impact of such a speech, delivered in the intense style of a Huron speaker, was hard to miss. Magua skillfully mixed the natural feelings of his audience with their religious superstitions, making them lose all sense of humanity in their desire for revenge. One warrior in particular, a man with a wild and fierce appearance, stood out for how closely he listened to the speaker. His expression shifted with each emotion until it settled into a look of deadly hatred. As Magua finished, he stood up and, letting out a scream like a demon, brandished his shiny little axe in the torchlight, swirling it above his head. The motion and the shout were too sudden for anyone to stop his violent intent. It seemed like a bright flash shot from his hand, crossing paths with a dark and strong arm. The flash was the tomahawk in flight; the arm was Magua's as he lunged forward to redirect it. The chief's swift response was just in time. The sharp weapon sliced the war plume from Uncas's scalping tuft and flew through the fragile wall of the lodge as if it had been launched from a powerful catapult.

Duncan had seen the threatening action, and sprang upon his feet, with a heart which, while it leaped into his throat, swelled with the most generous resolution in behalf of his friend. A glance told him that the blow had failed, and terror changed to admiration. Uncas stood still, looking his enemy in the eye with features that seemed superior to emotion. Marble could not be colder, calmer, or steadier than the countenance he put upon this sudden and vindictive attack. Then, as if pitying a want of skill which had proved so fortunate to himself, he smiled, and muttered a few words of contempt in his own tongue.

Duncan had seen the threatening move and jumped to his feet, his heart racing as it surged with a strong desire to defend his friend. A quick look confirmed that the strike had missed, and his fear turned to admiration. Uncas stood firm, meeting his enemy’s gaze with a face that seemed above all emotion. He was as cold, calm, and steady as marble in the face of this sudden and vengeful attack. Then, as if feeling sorry for the lack of skill that had worked so well for him, he smiled and muttered a few words of disdain in his own language.

“No!” said Magua, after satisfying himself of the safety of the captive; “the sun must shine on his shame; the squaws must see his flesh tremble, or our revenge will be like the play of boys. Go! take him where there is silence; let us see if a Delaware can sleep at night, and in the morning die.”

“No!” said Magua, after making sure the captive was safe; “the sun has to shine on his shame; the women must see him quiver, or our revenge won't be worth anything. Go! Take him somewhere quiet; let's see if a Delaware can sleep at night and then die in the morning.”

The young men whose duty it was to guard the prisoner instantly passed their ligaments of bark across his arms, and led him from the lodge, amid a profound and ominous silence. It was only as the figure of Uncas stood in the opening of the door that his firm step hesitated. There he turned, and, in the sweeping and haughty glance that he threw around the circle of his enemies, Duncan caught a look which he was glad to construe into an expression that he was not entirely deserted by hope.

The young men assigned to guard the prisoner quickly bound his arms with strips of bark and led him out of the lodge in deep, heavy silence. It was only when Uncas stood in the doorway that his confident stride faltered. He turned there, and in the sweeping, proud look he cast around at his enemies, Duncan saw a glimmer that he was relieved to interpret as a sign that he wasn't completely without hope.

Magua was content with his success, or too much occupied with his secret purposes to push his inquiries any further. Shaking his mantle, and folding it on his bosom, he also quitted the place, without pursuing a subject which might have proved so fatal to the individual at his elbow. Notwithstanding his rising resentment, his natural firmness, and his anxiety on behalf of Uncas, Heyward felt sensibly relieved by the absence of so dangerous and so subtle a foe. The excitement produced by the speech gradually subsided. The warriors resumed their seats and clouds of smoke once more filled the lodge. For near half an hour, not a syllable was uttered, or scarcely a look cast aside; a grave and meditative silence being the ordinary succession to every scene of violence and commotion among these beings, who were alike so impetuous and yet so self-restrained.

Magua was satisfied with his success or too caught up in his secret plans to ask more questions. Shaking his cloak and folding it over his chest, he left the place without discussing a topic that could have been lethal for the person next to him. Despite his growing anger, his natural composure, and his concern for Uncas, Heyward felt noticeably relieved by the absence of such a dangerous and cunning enemy. The excitement from the speech slowly faded. The warriors went back to their seats, and clouds of smoke filled the lodge again. For almost half an hour, no one said a word or barely even glanced around; a serious and contemplative silence typically followed every act of violence and chaos among these people, who were both impulsive and yet self-disciplined.

When the chief, who had solicited the aid of Duncan, finished his pipe, he made a final and successful movement toward departing. A motion of a finger was the intimation he gave the supposed physician to follow; and passing through the clouds of smoke, Duncad was glad, on more accounts than one, to be able at last to breathe the pure air of a cool and refreshing summer evening.

When the chief, who had asked for Duncan's help, finished his pipe, he made one last successful attempt to leave. A simple gesture of his finger signaled the supposed doctor to follow him; and as they moved through the clouds of smoke, Duncan was relieved, for several reasons, to finally be able to breathe the fresh air of a cool and refreshing summer evening.

Instead of pursuing his way among those lodges where Heyward had already made his unsuccessful search, his companion turned aside, and proceeded directly toward the base of an adjacent mountain, which overhung the temporary village. A thicket of brush skirted its foot, and it became necessary to proceed through a crooked and narrow path. The boys had resumed their sports in the clearing, and were enacting a mimic chase to the post among themselves. In order to render their games as like the reality as possible, one of the boldest of their number had conveyed a few brands into some piles of tree-tops that had hitherto escaped the burning. The blaze of one of these fires lighted the way of the chief and Duncan, and gave a character of additional wildness to the rude scenery. At a little distance from a bald rock, and directly in its front, they entered a grassy opening, which they prepared to cross. Just then fresh fuel was added to the fire, and a powerful light penetrated even to that distant spot. It fell upon the white surface of the mountain, and was reflected downward upon a dark and mysterious-looking being that arose, unexpectedly, in their path. The Indian paused, as if doubtful whether to proceed, and permitted his companion to approach his side. A large black ball, which at first seemed stationary, now began to move in a manner that to the latter was inexplicable. Again the fire brightened and its glare fell more distinctly on the object. Then even Duncan knew it, by its restless and sidling attitudes, which kept the upper part of its form in constant motion, while the animal itself appeared seated, to be a bear. Though it growled loudly and fiercely, and there were instants when its glistening eyeballs might be seen, it gave no other indications of hostility. The Huron, at least, seemed assured that the intentions of this singular intruder were peaceable, for after giving it an attentive examination, he quietly pursued his course.

Instead of following the same path as Heyward, who had already searched unsuccessfully among the lodges, his companion veered off and headed straight toward the base of a nearby mountain that loomed over the temporary village. A thicket of brush hugged the foot of the mountain, so they had to make their way through a winding, narrow path. The boys had returned to their games in the clearing, pretending to chase each other as if they were getting ready for a race. To make their play more realistic, one of the bravest among them had brought some sticks to pile on top of a few tree-tops that hadn’t yet caught fire. The glow of one of these fires lit the path for the chief and Duncan, adding a sense of wildness to the rough landscape. Not far from a bare rock and right in front of it, they stepped into a grassy area they were preparing to cross. Just then, more fuel was added to the fire, creating a strong light that even reached that far-off spot. The light illuminated the white surface of the mountain and reflected down onto a dark, mysterious figure that suddenly appeared in their way. The Indian paused, unsure whether to continue, and allowed his companion to come closer to him. A large black shape, which at first looked stationary, began to move in a way that Duncan found puzzling. As the fire brightened again, its glow shone more clearly on the object. Then, even Duncan recognized it by its restless and shifty movements, revealing that it was a bear, sitting but constantly shifting its upper body. Although it growled loudly and fiercely, and at times its shiny eyes were visible, it showed no signs of aggression. The Huron seemed convinced that this unusual intruder meant no harm, because after carefully observing it, he calmly continued on his way.

Duncan, who knew that the animal was often domesticated among the Indians, followed the example of his companion, believing that some favorite of the tribe had found its way into the thicket, in search of food. They passed it unmolested. Though obliged to come nearly in contact with the monster, the Huron, who had at first so warily determined the character of his strange visitor, was now content with proceeding without wasting a moment in further examination; but Heyward was unable to prevent his eyes from looking backward, in salutary watchfulness against attacks in the rear. His uneasiness was in no degree diminished when he perceived the beast rolling along their path, and following their footsteps. He would have spoken, but the Indian at that moment shoved aside a door of bark, and entered a cavern in the bosom of the mountain.

Duncan, who knew that the animal was often domesticated among the Native Americans, followed his companion's lead, thinking that a tribe member's pet had wandered into the thicket looking for food. They passed by it without any trouble. Although they had to get pretty close to the creature, the Huron, who had been so cautious in figuring out who his unusual visitor was, was now fine with moving on without taking any more time to investigate; but Heyward couldn’t help glancing back, staying alert for any attacks from behind. His anxiety only grew when he saw the beast rolling along their path and following them. He wanted to say something, but at that moment, the Indian pushed aside a door made of bark and entered a cave in the mountain.

Profiting by so easy a method of retreat, Duncan stepped after him, and was gladly closing the slight cover to the opening, when he felt it drawn from his hand by the beast, whose shaggy form immediately darkened the passage. They were now in a straight and long gallery, in a chasm of the rocks, where retreat without encountering the animal was impossible. Making the best of the circumstances, the young man pressed forward, keeping as close as possible to his conductor. The bear growled frequently at his heels, and once or twice its enormous paws were laid on his person, as if disposed to prevent his further passage into the den.

Taking advantage of such an easy way to retreat, Duncan followed after him and was happily closing the small cover to the opening when he felt it pulled from his hand by the beast, whose shaggy figure immediately filled the passage. They were now in a long, straight corridor carved in the rocks, where escaping without running into the animal was impossible. Making the best of the situation, the young man moved forward, staying as close as possible to his guide. The bear growled often at his heels, and once or twice its huge paws touched him, as if trying to block his way further into the den.

How long the nerves of Heyward would have sustained him in this extraordinary situation, it might be difficult to decide, for, happily, he soon found relief. A glimmer of light had constantly been in their front, and they now arrived at the place whence it proceeded.

How long Heyward's nerves would have held up in this unusual situation is hard to say, but fortunately, he soon found relief. A glimmer of light had always been ahead of them, and they finally reached the source of it.

A large cavity in the rock had been rudely fitted to answer the purposes of many apartments. The subdivisions were simple but ingenious, being composed of stone, sticks, and bark, intermingled. Openings above admitted the light by day, and at night fires and torches supplied the place of the sun. Hither the Hurons had brought most of their valuables, especially those which more particularly pertained to the nation; and hither, as it now appeared, the sick woman, who was believed to be the victim of supernatural power, had been transported also, under an impression that her tormentor would find more difficulty in making his assaults through walls of stone than through the leafy coverings of the lodges. The apartment into which Duncan and his guide first entered, had been exclusively devoted to her accommodation. The latter approached her bedside, which was surrounded by females, in the center of whom Heyward was surprised to find his missing friend David.

A large cavity in the rock had been roughly adapted to serve as various rooms. The divisions were simple yet clever, made from stone, sticks, and bark, all mixed together. Openings above let in light during the day, and at night, fires and torches took the place of the sun. The Hurons had brought most of their valuable items here, especially those that were particularly important to their nation; and it now seemed that the sick woman, who was thought to be the victim of supernatural forces, had also been brought here, under the belief that her tormentor would have a harder time attacking through stone walls than through the leafy coverings of the lodges. The room that Duncan and his guide first entered had been solely designated for her care. The guide approached her bedside, which was surrounded by women, and in the middle of them, Heyward was surprised to see his missing friend David.

A single look was sufficient to apprise the pretended leech that the invalid was far beyond his powers of healing. She lay in a sort of paralysis, indifferent to the objects which crowded before her sight, and happily unconscious of suffering. Heyward was far from regretting that his mummeries were to be performed on one who was much too ill to take an interest in their failure or success. The slight qualm of conscience which had been excited by the intended deception was instantly appeased, and he began to collect his thoughts, in order to enact his part with suitable spirit, when he found he was about to be anticipated in his skill by an attempt to prove the power of music.

A single glance was enough for the fake doctor to realize that the patient was well beyond his ability to heal. She lay there in a sort of paralysis, indifferent to the things around her, blissfully unaware of any pain. Heyward felt no regret that his antics were to be displayed for someone far too ill to care about their failure or success. The slight pang of guilt he felt over the planned deception quickly faded, and he began to gather his thoughts in order to play his part with the right energy when he noticed that someone was about to beat him to it by trying to showcase the power of music.

Gamut, who had stood prepared to pour forth his spirit in song when the visitors entered, after delaying a moment, drew a strain from his pipe, and commenced a hymn that might have worked a miracle, had faith in its efficacy been of much avail. He was allowed to proceed to the close, the Indians respecting his imaginary infirmity, and Duncan too glad of the delay to hazard the slightest interruption. As the dying cadence of his strains was falling on the ears of the latter, he started aside at hearing them repeated behind him, in a voice half human and half sepulchral. Looking around, he beheld the shaggy monster seated on end in a shadow of the cavern, where, while his restless body swung in the uneasy manner of the animal, it repeated, in a sort of low growl, sounds, if not words, which bore some slight resemblance to the melody of the singer.

Gamut, who was ready to share his spirit in song when the visitors arrived, took a moment before playing a tune on his pipe and began a hymn that could have worked wonders if there had been enough belief in its power. He was allowed to finish, as the Indians respected his pretend weakness, and Duncan was too pleased with the delay to risk interrupting him. Just as the fading notes were reaching Duncan's ears, he jumped when he heard them echoed behind him in a voice that was part human and part ghostly. Turning around, he saw the shaggy creature sitting up in a shadow of the cave, its restless body moving in the uneasy manner of an animal, as it let out a low growl that sounded somewhat like the melody of the singer.

The effect of so strange an echo on David may better be imagined than described. His eyes opened as if he doubted their truth; and his voice became instantly mute in excess of wonder. A deep-laid scheme, of communicating some important intelligence to Heyward, was driven from his recollection by an emotion which very nearly resembled fear, but which he was fain to believe was admiration. Under its influence, he exclaimed aloud: “She expects you, and is at hand”; and precipitately left the cavern.

The impact of such a strange echo on David is easier to imagine than to explain. His eyes widened as if he questioned their reality, and he became speechless from sheer astonishment. A carefully planned scheme to share important information with Heyward was pushed out of his mind by an emotion that closely resembled fear, though he wanted to think it was admiration. Under its influence, he shouted: “She expects you, and is nearby”; and he hurried out of the cave.

CHAPTER XXV.

“Snug.—Have you the lion’s part written? Pray you, if it be, give it to me, for I am slow of study.

Quince.—You may do it extempore, for it is nothing but roaring.”
—Midsummer Night’s Dream.

“Snug.—Do you have the lion’s part written? Please, if you do, give it to me, because I’m not the fastest learner.

Quince.—You can do it on the spot, because all it is, is roaring.”
—Midsummer Night’s Dream.

There was a strange blending of the ridiculous with that which was solemn in this scene. The beast still continued its rolling, and apparently untiring movements, though its ludicrous attempt to imitate the melody of David ceased the instant the latter abandoned the field. The words of Gamut were, as has been seen, in his native tongue; and to Duncan they seem pregnant with some hidden meaning, though nothing present assisted him in discovering the object of their allusion. A speedy end was, however, put to every conjecture on the subject, by the manner of the chief, who advanced to the bedside of the invalid, and beckoned away the whole group of female attendants that had clustered there to witness the skill of the stranger. He was implicitly, though reluctantly, obeyed; and when the low echo which rang along the hollow, natural gallery, from the distant closing door, had ceased, pointing toward his insensible daughter, he said:

There was a bizarre mix of the ridiculous and the serious in this scene. The creature kept rolling around with what seemed like endless energy, but its funny attempt to mimic David's melody stopped as soon as David left the area. Gamut’s words, as mentioned, were in his native language, and to Duncan, they seemed full of hidden meaning, even though nothing around him helped him figure out what they referred to. However, every speculation about it quickly ended when the chief approached the bedside of the patient and signaled for the group of female attendants clustered there to witness the stranger's skills to leave. They reluctantly complied, and once the quiet echo faded along the hollow, natural gallery from the distant closing door, he pointed to his unconscious daughter and said:

“Now let my brother show his power.”

“Now let my brother demonstrate his strength.”

Thus unequivocally called on to exercise the functions of his assumed character, Heyward was apprehensive that the smallest delay might prove dangerous. Endeavoring, then, to collect his ideas, he prepared to perform that species of incantation, and those uncouth rites, under which the Indian conjurers are accustomed to conceal their ignorance and impotency. It is more than probable that, in the disordered state of his thoughts, he would soon have fallen into some suspicious, if not fatal, error had not his incipient attempts been interrupted by a fierce growl from the quadruped. Three several times did he renew his efforts to proceed, and as often was he met by the same unaccountable opposition, each interruption seeming more savage and threatening than the preceding.

Thus, clearly called upon to fulfill the duties of his assumed role, Heyward was worried that even the slightest delay could be dangerous. Trying to gather his thoughts, he got ready to perform a type of ritual and those strange practices that Indian conjurers typically use to hide their lack of knowledge and power. It's highly likely that in the chaotic state of his mind, he would have soon made some questionable, if not deadly, mistake if his initial attempts hadn't been interrupted by a fierce growl from the animal. He tried to move forward three times, and each time he was met with the same mysterious resistance, each interruption sounding even more savage and threatening than the last.

“The cunning ones are jealous,” said the Huron; “I go. Brother, the woman is the wife of one of my bravest young men; deal justly by her. Peace!” he added, beckoning to the discontented beast to be quiet; “I go.”

“The sneaky ones are jealous,” said the Huron; “I’m leaving. Brother, the woman is the wife of one of my bravest young men; treat her well. Peace!” he added, motioning for the unhappy creature to settle down; “I’m leaving.”

The chief was as good as his word, and Duncan now found himself alone in that wild and desolate abode with the helpless invalid and the fierce and dangerous brute. The latter listened to the movements of the Indian with that air of sagacity that a bear is known to possess, until another echo announced that he had also left the cavern, when it turned and came waddling up to Duncan before whom it seated itself in its natural attitude, erect like a man. The youth looked anxiously about him for some weapon, with which he might make a resistance against the attack he now seriously expected.

The chief kept his promise, and Duncan now found himself alone in that wild and empty place with the helpless invalid and the fierce, dangerous beast. The bear listened to the Indian's movements with the wise air that bears are known to have, until another sound indicated that the Indian had also left the cave. Then the bear turned and waddled up to Duncan, sitting down in front of him in a natural position, upright like a man. The young man looked around anxiously for a weapon to defend himself against the attack he seriously expected.

It seemed, however, as if the humor of the animal had suddenly changed. Instead of continuing its discontented growls, or manifesting any further signs of anger, the whole of its shaggy body shook violently, as if agitated by some strange internal convulsion. The huge and unwieldy talons pawed stupidly about the grinning muzzle, and while Heyward kept his eyes riveted on its movements with jealous watchfulness, the grim head fell on one side and in its place appeared the honest sturdy countenance of the scout, who was indulging from the bottom of his soul in his own peculiar expression of merriment.

It seemed, though, that the animal's mood had suddenly shifted. Instead of its usual discontented growls or showing any more signs of anger, its entire shaggy body shook violently, as if it were experiencing some strange internal disturbance. Its huge, clumsy claws pawed mindlessly around its grinning face, and while Heyward watched its movements closely with a protective gaze, the grim head tilted to one side, revealing the honest, sturdy face of the scout, who was wholeheartedly enjoying his own unique form of laughter.

[Illustration]

“Hist!” said the wary woodsman, interrupting Heyward’s exclamation of surprise; “the varlets are about the place, and any sounds that are not natural to witchcraft would bring them back upon us in a body.”

“Shh!” said the cautious woodsman, cutting off Heyward’s gasp of surprise; “the troublemakers are around here, and any sounds that are out of the ordinary would draw them back to us all at once.”

“Tell me the meaning of this masquerade; and why you have attempted so desperate an adventure?”

“Tell me what this masquerade is about and why you decided to take on such a risky adventure?”

“Ah, reason and calculation are often outdone by accident,” returned the scout. “But, as a story should always commence at the beginning, I will tell you the whole in order. After we parted I placed the commandant and the Sagamore in an old beaver lodge, where they are safer from the Hurons than they would be in the garrison of Edward; for your high north-west Indians, not having as yet got the traders among them, continued to venerate the beaver. After which Uncas and I pushed for the other encampment as was agreed. Have you seen the lad?”

“Ah, reason and planning are often surpassed by chance,” the scout replied. “But, since a story should always start from the beginning, I’ll tell you everything in order. After we separated, I put the commandant and the Sagamore in an old beaver lodge, where they are safer from the Hurons than they would be in Edward's garrison; because your high north-west Indians, not having traders among them yet, still respected the beaver. After that, Uncas and I headed to the other camp as planned. Have you seen the kid?”

“To my great grief! He is captive, and condemned to die at the rising of the sun.”

"To my great sorrow! He is captured and sentenced to die at sunrise."

“I had misgivings that such would be his fate,” resumed the scout, in a less confident and joyous tone. But soon regaining his naturally firm voice, he continued: “His bad fortune is the true reason of my being here, for it would never do to abandon such a boy to the Hurons. A rare time the knaves would have of it, could they tie ‘The Bounding Elk’ and ‘The Long Carabine’, as they call me, to the same stake! Though why they have given me such a name I never knew, there being as little likeness between the gifts of ‘killdeer’ and the performance of one of your real Canada carabynes, as there is between the natur’ of a pipe-stone and a flint.”

“I had a bad feeling that this would be his fate,” the scout said, his tone less confident and cheerful. But soon finding his usual strong voice again, he continued: “His bad luck is the real reason I’m here, because it would be unacceptable to leave such a boy to the Hurons. They would have a rare time if they managed to tie ‘The Bounding Elk’ and ‘The Long Carabine,’ as they call me, to the same stake! Though I have no idea why they gave me such a name, there’s as little resemblance between the abilities of a ‘killdeer’ and the performance of your real Canada carbines, as there is between the nature of a pipe-stone and a flint.”

“Keep to your tale,” said the impatient Heyward; “we know not at what moment the Hurons may return.”

“Stick to your story,” said the impatient Heyward; “we don’t know when the Hurons might come back.”

“No fear of them. A conjurer must have his time, like a straggling priest in the settlements. We are as safe from interruption as a missionary would be at the beginning of a two hours’ discourse. Well, Uncas and I fell in with a return party of the varlets; the lad was much too forward for a scout; nay, for that matter, being of hot blood, he was not so much to blame; and, after all, one of the Hurons proved a coward, and in fleeing led him into an ambushment.”

“No need to worry about them. A magician needs his moments, just like a wandering priest in the towns. We’re as safe from interruptions as a missionary would be at the start of a two-hour speech. Anyway, Uncas and I ran into a return group of the troublemakers; the kid was way too eager for a scout; and to be fair, being hot-headed, he wasn’t entirely at fault; after all, one of the Hurons turned out to be a coward, and while trying to escape, he led him right into an ambush.”

“And dearly has he paid for the weakness.”

“And he has paid dearly for the weakness.”

The scout significantly passed his hand across his own throat, and nodded, as if he said, “I comprehend your meaning.” After which he continued, in a more audible though scarcely more intelligible language:

The scout noticeably ran his hand across his throat and nodded, as if to say, “I get what you mean.” Then he went on, speaking in a louder, though still hard-to-understand, manner:

“After the loss of the boy I turned upon the Hurons, as you may judge. There have been scrimmages atween one or two of their outlyers and myself; but that is neither here nor there. So, after I had shot the imps, I got in pretty nigh to the lodges without further commotion. Then what should luck do in my favor but lead me to the very spot where one of the most famous conjurers of the tribe was dressing himself, as I well knew, for some great battle with Satan—though why should I call that luck, which it now seems was an especial ordering of Providence. So a judgmatical rap over the head stiffened the lying impostor for a time, and leaving him a bit of walnut for his supper, to prevent an uproar, and stringing him up atween two saplings, I made free with his finery, and took the part of the bear on myself, in order that the operations might proceed.”

“After I lost the boy, I turned against the Hurons, as you can imagine. There had been some skirmishes between a few of their scouts and me, but that’s not important. After I shot those troublemakers, I managed to get pretty close to the lodges without causing much fuss. Then, what do you know, luck led me right to the spot where one of the most infamous shamans of the tribe was preparing for some huge battle with Satan—though calling it luck now feels more like it was a special plan from Providence. So I gave that lying fraud a serious knock on the head to stun him for a while. I left him a piece of walnut for dinner to avoid making noise, then strung him up between two saplings, took his fancy clothes, and dressed like a bear so the whole plan could continue.”

“And admirably did you enact the character; the animal itself might have been shamed by the representation.”

"And you did an amazing job portraying the character; even the animal itself might have felt embarrassed by how well you represented it."

“Lord, major,” returned the flattered woodsman, “I should be but a poor scholar for one who has studied so long in the wilderness, did I not know how to set forth the movements or natur’ of such a beast. Had it been now a catamount, or even a full-size panther, I would have embellished a performance for you worth regarding. But it is no such marvelous feat to exhibit the feats of so dull a beast; though, for that matter, too, a bear may be overacted. Yes, yes; it is not every imitator that knows natur’ may be outdone easier than she is equaled. But all our work is yet before us. Where is the gentle one?”

“Sure thing, sir,” replied the flattered woodsman. “I’d be a pretty poor scholar for someone who’s spent so much time in the wilderness if I didn’t know how to describe the movements or nature of such a creature. If it had been a mountain lion, or even a full-sized panther, I would have put on a performance for you worth watching. But it’s not really impressive to showcase the skills of such a dull beast; still, I suppose you can overdo a bear too. Yes, yes; not every imitator understands that nature can be surpassed more easily than matched. But we still have a lot of work ahead of us. Where’s the gentle one?”

“Heaven knows. I have examined every lodge in the village, without discovering the slightest trace of her presence in the tribe.”

“Heaven knows. I’ve checked every lodge in the village, and I haven't found the slightest trace of her in the tribe.”

“You heard what the singer said, as he left us: ‘She is at hand, and expects you’?”

“You heard what the singer said as he was leaving us: ‘She’s here and waiting for you’?”

“I have been compelled to believe he alluded to this unhappy woman.”

“I've come to believe he was referring to this unfortunate woman.”

“The simpleton was frightened, and blundered through his message; but he had a deeper meaning. Here are walls enough to separate the whole settlement. A bear ought to climb; therefore will I take a look above them. There may be honey-pots hid in these rocks, and I am a beast, you know, that has a hankering for the sweets.”

“The fool was scared and fumbled through his message; but he had a deeper meaning. These walls are more than enough to keep the whole settlement apart. A bear should be able to climb; so I’ll take a look over them. There might be honey pots hidden in these rocks, and you know I’m a creature that craves sweets.”

The scout looked behind him, laughing at his own conceit, while he clambered up the partition, imitating, as he went, the clumsy motions of the beast he represented; but the instant the summit was gained he made a gesture for silence, and slid down with the utmost precipitation.

The scout looked back, chuckling at his own arrogance as he climbed up the divider, awkwardly mimicking the heavy movements of the animal he was portraying; but as soon as he reached the top, he signaled for silence and quickly slid down.

“She is here,” he whispered, “and by that door you will find her. I would have spoken a word of comfort to the afflicted soul; but the sight of such a monster might upset her reason. Though for that matter, major, you are none of the most inviting yourself in your paint.”

“She’s here,” he whispered, “and you’ll find her by that door. I would have said something comforting to the troubled soul; but seeing such a monster might disturb her mind. But, to be fair, major, you’re not exactly the most welcoming yourself with your makeup.”

Duncan, who had already swung eagerly forward, drew instantly back on hearing these discouraging words.

Duncan, who had already leaned in excitedly, pulled back immediately upon hearing these discouraging words.

“Am I, then, so very revolting?” he demanded, with an air of chagrin.

“Am I really that disgusting?” he asked, looking irritated.

“You might not startle a wolf, or turn the Royal Americans from a discharge; but I have seen the time when you had a better favored look; your streaked countenances are not ill-judged of by the squaws, but young women of white blood give the preference to their own color. See,” he added, pointing to a place where the water trickled from a rock, forming a little crystal spring, before it found an issue through the adjacent crevices; “you may easily get rid of the Sagamore’s daub, and when you come back I will try my hand at a new embellishment. It’s as common for a conjurer to alter his paint as for a buck in the settlements to change his finery.”

“You might not scare a wolf or make the Royal Americans back off, but I remember a time when you looked better. The squaws don't mind your painted faces, but young white women prefer their own kind. Look,” he said, pointing to a spot where water flowed from a rock, creating a little crystal spring before it trickled through nearby crevices; “you can easily wash off the Sagamore’s paint, and when you return, I’ll try something new. It’s as routine for a conjurer to change his paint as it is for a guy in the settlements to switch up his style.”

The deliberate woodsman had little occasion to hunt for arguments to enforce his advice. He was yet speaking when Duncan availed himself of the water. In a moment every frightful or offensive mark was obliterated, and the youth appeared again in the lineaments with which he had been gifted by nature. Thus prepared for an interview with his mistress, he took a hasty leave of his companion, and disappeared through the indicated passage. The scout witnessed his departure with complacency, nodding his head after him, and muttering his good wishes; after which he very coolly set about an examination of the state of the larder, among the Hurons, the cavern, among other purposes, being used as a receptacle for the fruits of their hunts.

The thoughtful woodsman didn’t have to look hard for reasons to back up his advice. Just then, while he was still talking, Duncan took a moment to wash himself. In an instant, all the frightening or unappealing marks were gone, and the young man looked just as nature intended. Ready to meet his lady, he quickly said goodbye to his friend and slipped through the indicated passage. The scout watched him leave with satisfaction, nodding his head in approval and mumbling his best wishes. After that, he calmly started checking the larder, since the cave was also used by the Hurons to store the bounty from their hunts.

Duncan had no other guide than a distant glimmering light, which served, however, the office of a polar star to the lover. By its aid he was enabled to enter the haven of his hopes, which was merely another apartment of the cavern, that had been solely appropriated to the safekeeping of so important a prisoner as a daughter of the commandant of William Henry. It was profusely strewed with the plunder of that unlucky fortress. In the midst of this confusion he found her he sought, pale, anxious and terrified, but lovely. David had prepared her for such a visit.

Duncan had no other guide than a distant glimmering light, which served, however, as a guiding star for the lover. With its help, he was able to reach the haven of his hopes, which was simply another room in the cave that had been set aside for the safekeeping of such an important prisoner as the commandant of William Henry's daughter. It was cluttered with the spoils of that unfortunate fortress. In the midst of this chaos, he found her, the one he sought, pale, anxious, and terrified, but still beautiful. David had prepared her for such a visit.

“Duncan!” she exclaimed, in a voice that seemed to tremble at the sounds created by itself.

“Duncan!” she exclaimed, her voice shaking at the sounds it made.

“Alice!” he answered, leaping carelessly among trunks, boxes, arms, and furniture, until he stood at her side.

“Alice!” he replied, jumping clumsily over trunks, boxes, arms, and furniture until he was right next to her.

“I knew that you would never desert me,” she said, looking up with a momentary glow on her otherwise dejected countenance. “But you are alone! Grateful as it is to be thus remembered, I could wish to think you are not entirely alone.”

“I knew you would never leave me,” she said, looking up with a brief spark of brightness in her otherwise gloomy face. “But you’re alone! While I appreciate being remembered like this, I wish I could believe you’re not completely alone.”

Duncan, observing that she trembled in a manner which betrayed her inability to stand, gently induced her to be seated, while he recounted those leading incidents which it has been our task to accord. Alice listened with breathless interest; and though the young man touched lightly on the sorrows of the stricken father; taking care, however, not to wound the self-love of his auditor, the tears ran as freely down the cheeks of the daughter as though she had never wept before. The soothing tenderness of Duncan, however, soon quieted the first burst of her emotions, and she then heard him to the close with undivided attention, if not with composure.

Duncan noticed she was shaking, showing she couldn't stand, so he gently encouraged her to sit down while he shared the main events we've talked about. Alice listened intently, and even though Duncan briefly mentioned the father's pain, he was careful not to hurt her feelings. Tears poured down her face as if she had never cried before. However, Duncan's calming kindness soon helped settle her initial wave of emotions, and she listened to him until the end with full focus, if not calmness.

“And now, Alice,” he added, “you will see how much is still expected of you. By the assistance of our experienced and invaluable friend, the scout, we may find our way from this savage people, but you will have to exert your utmost fortitude. Remember that you fly to the arms of your venerable parent, and how much his happiness, as well as your own, depends on those exertions.”

“And now, Alice,” he added, “you’ll see how much is still expected of you. With the help of our experienced and invaluable friend, the scout, we might find our way out of this wild territory, but you’ll need to summon all your strength. Remember you’re heading to your beloved parent, and how much his happiness, as well as yours, relies on those efforts.”

“Can I do otherwise for a father who has done so much for me?”

“Can I do anything different for a dad who has done so much for me?”

“And for me, too,” continued the youth, gently pressing the hand he held in both his own.

“And for me, too,” the young man said, softly squeezing the hand he held in both of his.

The look of innocence and surprise which he received in return convinced Duncan of the necessity of being more explicit.

The look of innocence and surprise he got back made Duncan realize he needed to be clearer.

“This is neither the place nor the occasion to detain you with selfish wishes,” he added; “but what heart loaded like mine would not wish to cast its burden? They say misery is the closest of all ties; our common suffering in your behalf left but little to be explained between your father and myself.”

“This isn't the right time or place to keep you with my selfish wishes,” he added; “but what heart weighed down like mine wouldn’t want to share its burden? They say misery brings people closest together; our shared suffering for your sake doesn’t leave much to explain between your father and me.”

“And, dearest Cora, Duncan; surely Cora was not forgotten?”

“And, dear Cora, Duncan; surely Cora wasn’t forgotten?”

“Not forgotten! no; regretted, as woman was seldom mourned before. Your venerable father knew no difference between his children; but I—Alice, you will not be offended when I say, that to me her worth was in a degree obscured—”

“Not forgotten! No; regretted, as women were rarely mourned before. Your respected father didn’t see a difference between his children; but I—Alice, you won’t be upset when I say that to me her value was somewhat diminished—”

“Then you knew not the merit of my sister,” said Alice, withdrawing her hand; “of you she ever speaks as of one who is her dearest friend.”

“Then you don’t know how special my sister is,” Alice said, pulling her hand back. “She always talks about you as if you're her closest friend.”

“I would gladly believe her such,” returned Duncan, hastily; “I could wish her to be even more; but with you, Alice, I have the permission of your father to aspire to a still nearer and dearer tie.”

“I would gladly believe her that way,” Duncan replied quickly; “I could wish for her to be even more so; but with you, Alice, I have your father's permission to aim for a closer and more cherished connection.”

Alice trembled violently, and there was an instant during which she bent her face aside, yielding to the emotions common to her sex; but they quickly passed away, leaving her mistress of her deportment, if not of her affections.

Alice shook with fear, and for a moment, she turned her face away, giving in to the feelings typical for women; but those emotions quickly faded, allowing her to regain control over her behavior, if not her feelings.

“Heyward,” she said, looking him full in the face with a touching expression of innocence and dependency, “give me the sacred presence and the holy sanction of that parent before you urge me further.”

“Heyward,” she said, looking him straight in the eye with a heartfelt expression of innocence and reliance, “give me the sacred presence and the holy approval of that parent before you push me any further.”

“Though more I should not, less I could not say,” the youth was about to answer, when he was interrupted by a light tap on his shoulder. Starting to his feet, he turned, and, confronting the intruder, his looks fell on the dark form and malignant visage of Magua. The deep guttural laugh of the savage sounded, at such a moment, to Duncan, like the hellish taunt of a demon. Had he pursued the sudden and fierce impulse of the instant, he would have cast himself on the Huron, and committed their fortunes to the issue of a deadly struggle. But, without arms of any description, ignorant of what succor his subtle enemy could command, and charged with the safety of one who was just then dearer than ever to his heart, he no sooner entertained than he abandoned the desperate intention.

“Although I shouldn’t say more, I couldn’t say less,” the young man was about to respond when he was interrupted by a light tap on his shoulder. Jumping to his feet, he turned and, facing the intruder, his gaze fell on the dark figure and sinister face of Magua. The deep, guttural laugh from the savage, at that moment, sounded to Duncan like the hellish taunt of a demon. If he had followed the sudden and fierce impulse, he would have thrown himself at the Huron and left their fate to a deadly struggle. But without any weapons, unsure of what support his cunning enemy might have, and responsible for the safety of someone who was more precious to him than ever, he quickly dismissed the desperate idea.

“What is your purpose?” said Alice, meekly folding her arms on her bosom, and struggling to conceal an agony of apprehension in behalf of Heyward, in the usual cold and distant manner with which she received the visits of her captor.

“What is your purpose?” Alice asked, gently folding her arms over her chest and trying to hide her deep worry for Heyward, in the usual cold and distant way she greeted her captor’s visits.

The exulting Indian had resumed his austere countenance, though he drew warily back before the menacing glance of the young man’s fiery eye. He regarded both his captives for a moment with a steady look, and then, stepping aside, he dropped a log of wood across a door different from that by which Duncan had entered. The latter now comprehended the manner of his surprise, and, believing himself irretrievably lost, he drew Alice to his bosom, and stood prepared to meet a fate which he hardly regretted, since it was to be suffered in such company. But Magua meditated no immediate violence. His first measures were very evidently taken to secure his new captive; nor did he even bestow a second glance at the motionless forms in the center of the cavern, until he had completely cut off every hope of retreat through the private outlet he had himself used. He was watched in all his movements by Heyward, who, however, remained firm, still folding the fragile form of Alice to his heart, at once too proud and too hopeless to ask favor of an enemy so often foiled. When Magua had effected his object he approached his prisoners, and said in English:

The triumphant Indian had put on his serious face again, but he stepped back cautiously from the threatening gaze of the young man's intense eyes. He looked at both his captives for a moment with a steady stare, and then, moving aside, he laid a log of wood across a door different from the one Duncan had entered. Duncan then understood how he had been caught off guard and, believing he was completely lost, he pulled Alice close to him, prepared to face a fate he hardly regretted, since it was to be shared in such company. However, Magua had no intention of using violence right away. His first actions clearly aimed at securing his new captive; he didn’t even glance again at the still forms in the center of the cave until he had fully blocked any chance of escape through the private exit he had used. Heyward watched Magua's every move, yet he remained resolute, holding Alice's delicate form tightly to his chest, too proud and too hopeless to seek mercy from an enemy who had repeatedly defeated him. Once Magua had achieved his goal, he approached his prisoners and spoke in English:

“The pale faces trap the cunning beavers; but the red-skins know how to take the Yengeese.”

“The pale faces catch the clever beavers, but the Native Americans know how to deal with the Yankees.”

“Huron, do your worst!” exclaimed the excited Heyward, forgetful that a double stake was involved in his life; “you and your vengeance are alike despised.”

“Huron, do your worst!” shouted the excited Heyward, forgetting that his life was at stake; “you and your revenge are both despised.”

“Will the white man speak these words at the stake?” asked Magua; manifesting, at the same time, how little faith he had in the other’s resolution by the sneer that accompanied his words.

“Will the white man say these words at the stake?” asked Magua, showing, at the same time, how little faith he had in the other’s resolve with the sneer that went along with his words.

“Here; singly to your face, or in the presence of your nation.”

“Here; either directly to you or in front of your country.”

“Le Renard Subtil is a great chief!” returned the Indian; “he will go and bring his young men, to see how bravely a pale face can laugh at tortures.”

“Le Renard Subtil is a great chief!” the Indian replied; “he will go and get his young men to see how boldly a white man can laugh in the face of suffering.”

He turned away while speaking, and was about to leave the place through the avenue by which Duncan had approached, when a growl caught his ear, and caused him to hesitate. The figure of the bear appeared in the door, where it sat, rolling from side to side in its customary restlessness. Magua, like the father of the sick woman, eyed it keenly for a moment, as if to ascertain its character. He was far above the more vulgar superstitions of his tribe, and so soon as he recognized the well-known attire of the conjurer, he prepared to pass it in cool contempt. But a louder and more threatening growl caused him again to pause. Then he seemed as if suddenly resolved to trifle no longer, and moved resolutely forward.

He turned away while talking and was about to leave through the path Duncan had taken when a growl caught his attention and made him hesitate. The bear's figure appeared in the doorway, where it sat, shifting from side to side in its usual restlessness. Magua, like the father of the sick woman, observed it closely for a moment, as if trying to determine its nature. He was well above the more common superstitions of his tribe, and as soon as he recognized the familiar attire of the conjurer, he prepared to walk past it with casual disregard. But a louder, more menacing growl made him stop again. Then he seemed to suddenly decide not to waste any more time and moved forward with determination.

The mimic animal, which had advanced a little, retired slowly in his front, until it arrived again at the pass, when, rearing on his hinder legs, it beat the air with its paws, in the manner practised by its brutal prototype.

The mimic animal, which had moved forward a bit, slowly backed away in front of him until it reached the clearing again, where it stood on its hind legs and swatted the air with its paws, just like its fierce original.

“Fool!” exclaimed the chief, in Huron, “go play with the children and squaws; leave men to their wisdom.”

“Fool!” exclaimed the chief in Huron. “Go play with the kids and the women; leave the men to their wisdom.”

He once more endeavored to pass the supposed empiric, scorning even the parade of threatening to use the knife, or tomahawk, that was pendent from his belt. Suddenly the beast extended its arms, or rather legs, and inclosed him in a grasp that might have vied with the far-famed power of the “bear’s hug” itself. Heyward had watched the whole procedure, on the part of Hawkeye, with breathless interest. At first he relinquished his hold of Alice; then he caught up a thong of buckskin, which had been used around some bundle, and when he beheld his enemy with his two arms pinned to his side by the iron muscles of the scout, he rushed upon him, and effectually secured them there. Arms, legs, and feet were encircled in twenty folds of the thong, in less time than we have taken to record the circumstance. When the formidable Huron was completely pinioned, the scout released his hold, and Duncan laid his enemy on his back, utterly helpless.

He once again tried to get past the supposed charlatan, sneering at the show of threatening with the knife or tomahawk hanging from his belt. Suddenly, the creature wrapped its arms, or rather legs, around him in a grip that could rival the legendary "bear hug." Heyward watched the whole scene unfold with intense interest. At first, he let go of Alice; then he grabbed a strip of buckskin that had been used to tie up some bundles. When he saw his enemy with both arms pinned to his side by the scout's strong muscles, he rushed in and effectively secured them. Arms, legs, and feet were wrapped in twenty loops of the strap in less time than it takes to tell. Once the powerful Huron was completely restrained, the scout released his grip, and Duncan laid his enemy on his back, utterly helpless.

Throughout the whole of this sudden and extraordinary operation, Magua, though he had struggled violently, until assured he was in the hands of one whose nerves were far better strung than his own, had not uttered the slightest exclamation. But when Hawkeye, by way of making a summary explanation of his conduct, removed the shaggy jaws of the beast, and exposed his own rugged and earnest countenance to the gaze of the Huron, the philosophy of the latter was so far mastered as to permit him to utter the never failing:

Throughout this sudden and extraordinary operation, Magua, although he had fought fiercely until he realized he was in the hands of someone whose nerves were much steadier than his own, didn’t make a sound. But when Hawkeye, wanting to briefly explain his actions, pulled the shaggy jaws of the beast away and revealed his own rugged and serious face to the Huron's view, Magua's composure was momentarily shaken, allowing him to say the ever-present:

“Hugh!”

“Hugh!”

“Ay, you’ve found your tongue,” said his undisturbed conqueror; “now, in order that you shall not use it to our ruin, I must make free to stop your mouth.”

“Aha, you've found your voice,” said his calm conqueror; “now, to ensure you don’t use it against us, I have to feel free to silence you.”

As there was no time to be lost, the scout immediately set about effecting so necessary a precaution; and when he had gagged the Indian, his enemy might safely have been considered as “hors de combat.”

As there was no time to waste, the scout quickly took the necessary precaution; and once he had gagged the Indian, his enemy could safely be regarded as "out of the fight."

“By what place did the imp enter?” asked the industrious scout, when his work was ended. “Not a soul has passed my way since you left me.”

“Through what entrance did the imp come in?” asked the hardworking scout when he finished his task. “Not a single person has passed by me since you left.”

Duncan pointed out the door by which Magua had come, and which now presented too many obstacles to a quick retreat.

Duncan pointed to the door that Magua had entered, which now had too many barriers for a quick escape.

“Bring on the gentle one, then,” continued his friend; “we must make a push for the woods by the other outlet.”

“Let's get the gentle one in here,” his friend continued; “we need to head for the woods by the other exit.”

“’Tis impossible!” said Duncan; “fear has overcome her, and she is helpless. Alice! my sweet, my own Alice, arouse yourself; now is the moment to fly. ’Tis in vain! she hears, but is unable to follow. Go, noble and worthy friend; save yourself, and leave me to my fate.”

“It's impossible!” said Duncan; “fear has taken over her, and she can't do anything. Alice! my sweet, my own Alice, wake up; now is the time to escape. It’s no use! She hears me, but can't follow. Go, noble and worthy friend; save yourself, and leave me to my fate.”

“Every trail has its end, and every calamity brings its lesson!” returned the scout. “There, wrap her in them Indian cloths. Conceal all of her little form. Nay, that foot has no fellow in the wilderness; it will betray her. All, every part. Now take her in your arms, and follow. Leave the rest to me.”

“Every trail comes to an end, and every disaster teaches us something!” the scout replied. “Now, wrap her in those Indian blankets. Hide her completely. No, that foot is too unique for the wilderness; it will give her away. Every part of her. Now take her in your arms and follow me. Leave the rest to me.”

Duncan, as may be gathered from the words of his companion, was eagerly obeying; and, as the other finished speaking, he took the light person of Alice in his arms, and followed in the footsteps of the scout. They found the sick woman as they had left her, still alone, and passed swiftly on, by the natural gallery, to the place of entrance. As they approached the little door of bark, a murmur of voices without announced that the friends and relatives of the invalid were gathered about the place, patiently awaiting a summons to re-enter.

Duncan, as his companion suggested, was eagerly complying; and as the other finished speaking, he lifted the lightweight Alice into his arms and followed the scout. They found the sick woman just as they had left her, still alone, and quickly made their way through the natural gallery to the entrance. As they got closer to the small bark door, they heard a murmur of voices outside, signaling that friends and family of the sick woman were gathered nearby, patiently waiting for a call to come back inside.

“If I open my lips to speak,” Hawkeye whispered, “my English, which is the genuine tongue of a white-skin, will tell the varlets that an enemy is among them. You must give ’em your jargon, major; and say that we have shut the evil spirit in the cave, and are taking the woman to the woods in order to find strengthening roots. Practise all your cunning, for it is a lawful undertaking.”

“If I speak,” Hawkeye whispered, “my English, which is the true language of a white man, will reveal to the villains that an enemy is in their midst. You must use your words, Major, and tell them that we have trapped the evil spirit in the cave and are taking the woman to the woods to find healing herbs. Use all your cleverness, as it is a just cause.”

The door opened a little, as if one without was listening to the proceedings within, and compelled the scout to cease his directions. A fierce growl repelled the eavesdropper, and then the scout boldly threw open the covering of bark, and left the place, enacting the character of a bear as he proceeded. Duncan kept close at his heels, and soon found himself in the center of a cluster of twenty anxious relatives and friends.

The door opened slightly, as if someone outside was eavesdropping, forcing the scout to stop giving instructions. A fierce growl startled the eavesdropper, and then the scout confidently pushed aside the bark covering and left, acting like a bear as he went. Duncan followed closely behind and soon found himself in the middle of a group of twenty worried family members and friends.

The crowd fell back a little, and permitted the father, and one who appeared to be the husband of the woman, to approach.

The crowd stepped back a bit and allowed the father and a man who seemed to be the woman's husband to come closer.

“Has my brother driven away the evil spirit?” demanded the former. “What has he in his arms?”

“Has my brother sent the evil spirit away?” the former asked. “What’s he holding in his arms?”

“Thy child,” returned Duncan, gravely; “the disease has gone out of her; it is shut up in the rocks. I take the woman to a distance, where I will strengthen her against any further attacks. She will be in the wigwam of the young man when the sun comes again.”

“Your child,” Duncan replied seriously; “the illness has left her; it’s trapped in the rocks. I will take the woman away, where I can help her resist any more attacks. She’ll be in the young man's hut when the sun rises again.”

When the father had translated the meaning of the stranger’s words into the Huron language, a suppressed murmur announced the satisfaction with which this intelligence was received. The chief himself waved his hand for Duncan to proceed, saying aloud, in a firm voice, and with a lofty manner:

When the father translated the stranger's words into the Huron language, a quiet murmur showed how pleased everyone was with this news. The chief himself gestured for Duncan to continue, stating loudly, in a confident tone and with an elevated demeanor:

“Go; I am a man, and I will enter the rock and fight the wicked one.”

“Go; I’m a man, and I will go into the cave and confront the evil one.”

Heyward had gladly obeyed, and was already past the little group, when these startling words arrested him.

Heyward had happily complied and was already past the small group when these surprising words caught his attention.

“Is my brother mad?” he exclaimed; “is he cruel? He will meet the disease, and it will enter him; or he will drive out the disease, and it will chase his daughter into the woods. No; let my children wait without, and if the spirit appears beat him down with clubs. He is cunning, and will bury himself in the mountain, when he sees how many are ready to fight him.”

“Is my brother crazy?” he shouted; “is he brutal? He’ll face the disease, and it will get into him; or he’ll push the disease away, and it will send his daughter running into the woods. No; let my kids wait outside, and if the spirit shows up, we’ll take him down with clubs. He’s sly and will hide in the mountain when he sees how many are ready to take him on.”

This singular warning had the desired effect. Instead of entering the cavern, the father and husband drew their tomahawks, and posted themselves in readiness to deal their vengeance on the imaginary tormentor of their sick relative, while the women and children broke branches from the bushes, or seized fragments of the rock, with a similar intention. At this favorable moment the counterfeit conjurers disappeared.

This unique warning had the intended impact. Rather than going into the cave, the father and husband drew their tomahawks and positioned themselves to exact their revenge on the imagined tormentor of their ailing family member, while the women and children broke branches from the bushes or picked up bits of rock with the same purpose. At this opportune moment, the fake conjurers vanished.

Hawkeye, at the same time that he had presumed so far on the nature of the Indian superstitions, was not ignorant that they were rather tolerated than relied on by the wisest of the chiefs. He well knew the value of time in the present emergency. Whatever might be the extent of the self-delusion of his enemies, and however it had tended to assist his schemes, the slightest cause of suspicion, acting on the subtle nature of an Indian, would be likely to prove fatal. Taking the path, therefore, that was most likely to avoid observation, he rather skirted than entered the village. The warriors were still to be seen in the distance, by the fading light of the fires, stalking from lodge to lodge. But the children had abandoned their sports for their beds of skins, and the quiet of night was already beginning to prevail over the turbulence and excitement of so busy and important an evening.

Hawkeye, while he had made some assumptions about the nature of Indian superstitions, knew that the wisest chiefs mostly tolerated them rather than truly believed in them. He understood the importance of time in the current situation. No matter how much his enemies might be fooling themselves, and even if it helped his plans, any hint of suspicion could be dangerous given the sensitive nature of the Indians. So, to stay low-key, he chose to go around the village rather than through it. In the distance, by the dimming firelight, he could still see the warriors moving from lodge to lodge. However, the children had left their games for their beds made of skins, and the calm of night was starting to take over the chaos and excitement of such a significant evening.

Alice revived under the renovating influence of the open air, and, as her physical rather than her mental powers had been the subject of weakness, she stood in no need of any explanation of that which had occurred.

Alice felt rejuvenated by the fresh air, and since it was her physical strength rather than her mental clarity that had been lacking, she didn't require any explanation for what had happened.

“Now let me make an effort to walk,” she said, when they had entered the forest, blushing, though unseen, that she had not been sooner able to quit the arms of Duncan; “I am indeed restored.”

“Now let me try to walk,” she said, once they had entered the forest, blushing, even though no one could see her, for not being able to leave Duncan's arms sooner; “I really feel better now.”

“Nay, Alice, you are yet too weak.”

“Nah, Alice, you're still too weak.”

The maiden struggled gently to release herself, and Heyward was compelled to part with his precious burden. The representative of the bear had certainly been an entire stranger to the delicious emotions of the lover while his arms encircled his mistress; and he was, perhaps, a stranger also to the nature of that feeling of ingenuous shame that oppressed the trembling Alice. But when he found himself at a suitable distance from the lodges he made a halt, and spoke on a subject of which he was thoroughly the master.

The young woman struggled softly to free herself, and Heyward had to let go of his precious burden. The man representing the bear was clearly a stranger to the sweet emotions of love while holding his beloved; he was also perhaps unaware of the genuine feeling of vulnerable shame that overwhelmed the trembling Alice. But when he reached a comfortable distance from the lodges, he stopped and spoke about a topic he knew well.

“This path will lead you to the brook,” he said; “follow its northern bank until you come to a fall; mount the hill on your right, and you will see the fires of the other people. There you must go and demand protection; if they are true Delawares you will be safe. A distant flight with that gentle one, just now, is impossible. The Hurons would follow up our trail, and master our scalps before we had got a dozen miles. Go, and Providence be with you.”

“This path will take you to the stream,” he said. “Follow its northern bank until you reach a waterfall; climb the hill on your right, and you’ll see the campfires of the others. You need to go there and ask for protection; if they are genuine Delawares, you’ll be safe. It’s impossible to escape far with that gentle one right now. The Hurons would track us and take our scalps before we had traveled even a dozen miles. Go, and may Providence be with you.”

“And you!” demanded Heyward, in surprise; “surely we part not here?”

“And you!” Heyward asked, surprised. “We’re not parting ways here, right?”

“The Hurons hold the pride of the Delawares; the last of the high blood of the Mohicans is in their power,” returned the scout; “I go to see what can be done in his favor. Had they mastered your scalp, major, a knave should have fallen for every hair it held, as I promised; but if the young Sagamore is to be led to the stake, the Indians shall see also how a man without a cross can die.”

“The Hurons have captured the pride of the Delawares; the last descendants of the Mohicans are in their control,” replied the scout. “I’m going to see what can be done to help him. If they had taken your scalp, Major, I would have made sure that a scoundrel would pay for every hair it held, just like I said. But if the young Sagamore is going to be led to the stake, the Indians will also see how a man can die without a cross.”

Not in the least offended with the decided preference that the sturdy woodsman gave to one who might, in some degree, be called the child of his adoption, Duncan still continued to urge such reasons against so desperate an effort as presented themselves. He was aided by Alice, who mingled her entreaties with those of Heyward that he would abandon a resolution that promised so much danger, with so little hope of success. Their eloquence and ingenuity were expended in vain. The scout heard them attentively, but impatiently, and finally closed the discussion, by answering, in a tone that instantly silenced Alice, while it told Heyward how fruitless any further remonstrances would be.

Not at all offended by the clear preference that the strong woodsman showed for someone who might be considered the child of his adoption, Duncan kept trying to present reasons against such a desperate effort. He was supported by Alice, who mixed her pleas with Heyward’s, asking him to give up a plan that promised much danger with very little hope of success. Their persuasive arguments and creativity were wasted. The scout listened to them patiently, but with frustration, and eventually ended the conversation by responding in a way that immediately silenced Alice, while making it clear to Heyward that any further objections would be useless.

“I have heard,” he said, “that there is a feeling in youth which binds man to woman closer than the father is tied to the son. It may be so. I have seldom been where women of my color dwell; but such may be the gifts of nature in the settlements. You have risked life, and all that is dear to you, to bring off this gentle one, and I suppose that some such disposition is at the bottom of it all. As for me, I taught the lad the real character of a rifle; and well has he paid me for it. I have fou’t at his side in many a bloody scrimmage; and so long as I could hear the crack of his piece in one ear, and that of the Sagamore in the other, I knew no enemy was on my back. Winters and summer, nights and days, have we roved the wilderness in company, eating of the same dish, one sleeping while the other watched; and afore it shall be said that Uncas was taken to the torment, and I at hand—There is but a single Ruler of us all, whatever may the color of the skin; and Him I call to witness, that before the Mohican boy shall perish for the want of a friend, good faith shall depart the ’arth, and ‘killdeer’ become as harmless as the tooting we’pon of the singer!”

“I’ve heard,” he said, “that there’s a connection in youth that ties a man to a woman even closer than a father is tied to his son. That might be true. I haven’t spent much time with women of my race, but maybe that’s how things are in the settlements. You’ve risked your life and everything you hold dear to bring this gentle one to safety, and I assume that kind of bond is what drives you. As for me, I taught the boy the true nature of a rifle; and he has repaid me well for it. I’ve fought alongside him in many bloody battles; as long as I could hear the crack of his gun in one ear and the Sagamore’s in the other, I knew no enemy was behind me. For winters and summers, days and nights, we’ve roamed the wilderness together, sharing meals, one of us sleeping while the other kept watch; and before it can be said that Uncas was taken to suffering while I stood by—There is only one Ruler over us all, no matter the color of our skin; and I call upon Him as a witness that before the Mohican boy suffers alone without a friend, genuine goodwill will leave this earth, and ‘killdeer’ will become as harmless as the songs of the singer!”

Duncan released his hold on the arm of the scout, who turned, and steadily retraced his steps toward the lodges. After pausing a moment to gaze at his retiring form, the successful and yet sorrowful Heyward and Alice took their way together toward the distant village of the Delawares.

Duncan let go of the scout's arm, who then turned and slowly walked back toward the lodges. After stopping for a moment to look at him as he left, the accomplished yet melancholic Heyward and Alice walked together toward the faraway village of the Delawares.

[Illustration]

CHAPTER XXVI.

“Bot.—Let me play the lion too.”
—Midsummer Night’s Dream

“Bot.—Let me play the lion too.”
—Midsummer Night’s Dream

Notwithstanding the high resolution of Hawkeye he fully comprehended all the difficulties and danger he was about to incur. In his return to the camp, his acute and practised intellects were intently engaged in devising means to counteract a watchfulness and suspicion on the part of his enemies, that he knew were, in no degree, inferior to his own. Nothing but the color of his skin had saved the lives of Magua and the conjurer, who would have been the first victims sacrificed to his own security, had not the scout believed such an act, however congenial it might be to the nature of an Indian, utterly unworthy of one who boasted a descent from men that knew no cross of blood. Accordingly, he trusted to the withes and ligaments with which he had bound his captives, and pursued his way directly toward the center of the lodges. As he approached the buildings, his steps become more deliberate, and his vigilant eye suffered no sign, whether friendly or hostile, to escape him. A neglected hut was a little in advance of the others, and appeared as if it had been deserted when half completed—most probably on account of failing in some of the more important requisites; such as wood or water. A faint light glimmered through its cracks, however, and announced that, notwithstanding its imperfect structure, it was not without a tenant. Thither, then, the scout proceeded, like a prudent general, who was about to feel the advanced positions of his enemy, before he hazarded the main attack.

Despite Hawkeye's keen perception, he understood all the challenges and risks he was about to face. On his way back to camp, his sharp mind was focused on finding ways to counter the vigilance and suspicion of his enemies, which he knew were just as sharp as his own. The only thing that had spared the lives of Magua and the conjurer was the color of their skin; they would have been the first victims sacrificed for his own safety if the scout hadn't thought that such an act, however fitting it might be for an Indian, was totally unworthy of someone who claimed descent from men who knew no bloodshed. So, he relied on the cords and ties with which he had bound his captives, and made his way straight toward the center of the lodges. As he got closer to the buildings, his steps became more measured, and his watchful eye missed no signs, whether friendly or hostile. A neglected hut was slightly ahead of the others, looking as if it had been abandoned when half-finished—most likely due to a lack of essential resources like wood or water. A faint light flickered through its cracks, indicating that, despite its incomplete structure, it was not without an occupant. So, the scout moved toward it like a cautious general who is about to probe the forward positions of his enemy before launching the main assault.

Throwing himself into a suitable posture for the beast he represented, Hawkeye crawled to a little opening, where he might command a view of the interior. It proved to be the abiding place of David Gamut. Hither the faithful singing-master had now brought himself, together with all his sorrows, his apprehensions, and his meek dependence on the protection of Providence. At the precise moment when his ungainly person came under the observation of the scout, in the manner just mentioned, the woodsman himself, though in his assumed character, was the subject of the solitary being’s profounded reflections.

Positioning himself like the beast he was imitating, Hawkeye crawled to a small gap where he could see inside. This turned out to be the home of David Gamut. Here, the devoted singing teacher had brought himself, along with all his troubles, worries, and his humble reliance on the protection of God. Just as Hawkeye’s awkward figure caught the scout’s eye in the way described, the woodsman, despite his disguise, became the focus of the lonely man’s deep thoughts.

However implicit the faith of David was in the performance of ancient miracles, he eschewed the belief of any direct supernatural agency in the management of modern morality. In other words, while he had implicit faith in the ability of Balaam’s ass to speak, he was somewhat skeptical on the subject of a bear’s singing; and yet he had been assured of the latter, on the testimony of his own exquisite organs. There was something in his air and manner that betrayed to the scout the utter confusion of the state of his mind. He was seated on a pile of brush, a few twigs from which occasionally fed his low fire, with his head leaning on his arm, in a posture of melancholy musing. The costume of the votary of music had undergone no other alteration from that so lately described, except that he had covered his bald head with the triangular beaver, which had not proved sufficiently alluring to excite the cupidity of any of his captors.

However much David believed in the ancient miracles, he shied away from the idea of direct supernatural involvement in modern morality. In other words, while he fully believed in the ability of Balaam’s donkey to talk, he was a bit skeptical about a bear being able to sing; yet he had been assured of the latter, based on his own refined senses. There was something in his demeanor that revealed to the scout the total confusion in his mind. He was sitting on a pile of brush, a few twigs from which occasionally fed his small fire, with his head resting on his arm in a posture of sad contemplation. The outfit of the music devotee hadn’t changed much from the previous description, except that he had covered his bald head with a triangular hat, which hadn’t been enticing enough to spark the greed of any of his captors.

The ingenious Hawkeye, who recalled the hasty manner in which the other had abandoned his post at the bedside of the sick woman, was not without his suspicions concerning the subject of so much solemn deliberation. First making the circuit of the hut, and ascertaining that it stood quite alone, and that the character of its inmate was likely to protect it from visitors, he ventured through its low door, into the very presence of Gamut. The position of the latter brought the fire between them; and when Hawkeye had seated himself on end, near a minute elapsed, during which the two remained regarding each other without speaking. The suddenness and the nature of the surprise had nearly proved too much for—we will not say the philosophy—but for the pitch and resolution of David. He fumbled for his pitch-pipe, and arose with a confused intention of attempting a musical exorcism.

The clever Hawkeye, who remembered how quickly the other had left his post by the sick woman's side, had his doubts about the topic of such serious discussion. After circling the hut and confirming that it was completely isolated and that the nature of its occupant would likely keep visitors away, he stepped through the low door and found himself right in front of Gamut. The layout meant the fire was between them, and as Hawkeye settled down nearby, a full minute passed with both of them just staring at each other in silence. The shock and nature of the surprise almost overwhelmed—let's not say his philosophy—but rather the composure and determination of David. He fumbled for his pitch pipe and stood up with a muddled intention of trying some sort of musical exorcism.

“Dark and mysterious monster!” he exclaimed, while with trembling hands he disposed of his auxiliary eyes, and sought his never-failing resource in trouble, the gifted version of the psalms; “I know not your nature nor intents; but if aught you meditate against the person and rights of one of the humblest servants of the temple, listen to the inspired language of the youth of Israel, and repent.”

“Dark and mysterious monster!” he exclaimed, as he nervously put away his extra eyes and looked for his go-to source in times of trouble, the special version of the psalms; “I don’t know what you are or what you want; but if you’re planning anything against one of the humblest servants of the temple, heed the inspired words of the youth of Israel, and reconsider.”

The bear shook his shaggy sides, and then a well-known voice replied:

The bear shook his furry sides, and then a familiar voice responded:

“Put up the tooting we’pon, and teach your throat modesty. Five words of plain and comprehendible English are worth just now an hour of squalling.”

“Put away the loud weapon, and teach yourself some restraint. Five words of simple and clear English are worth more right now than an hour of yelling.”

“What art thou?” demanded David, utterly disqualified to pursue his original intention, and nearly gasping for breath.

“What are you?” demanded David, completely unable to follow through on his original intention, and nearly out of breath.

“A man like yourself; and one whose blood is as little tainted by the cross of a bear, or an Indian, as your own. Have you so soon forgotten from whom you received the foolish instrument you hold in your hand?”

“A man like you; and one whose blood is as pure as your own, with no taint from a bear or Indian. Have you already forgotten who gave you that silly tool you’re holding?”

“Can these things be?” returned David, breathing more freely, as the truth began to dawn upon him. “I have found many marvels during my sojourn with the heathen, but surely nothing to excel this.”

“Can these things be?” David replied, taking a deep breath as the truth started to sink in. “I’ve encountered many wonders during my time with the locals, but surely nothing compares to this.”

“Come, come,” returned Hawkeye, uncasing his honest countenance, the better to assure the wavering confidence of his companion; “you may see a skin, which, if it be not as white as one of the gentle ones, has no tinge of red to it that the winds of the heaven and the sun have not bestowed. Now let us to business.”

“Come on,” Hawkeye said, revealing his genuine face to boost his companion's shaky confidence. “You can see a skin that, while it may not be as white as one of the gentle ones, doesn’t have any red in it that wasn’t given by the winds and the sun. Now, let’s get to work.”

“First tell me of the maiden, and of the youth who so bravely sought her,” interrupted David.

“First, tell me about the young woman and the young man who bravely went after her,” David interrupted.

“Ay, they are happily freed from the tomahawks of these varlets. But can you put me on the scent of Uncas?”

“Yeah, they’re happily free from the attacks of these guys. But can you help me track down Uncas?”

“The young man is in bondage, and much I fear his death is decreed. I greatly mourn that one so well disposed should die in his ignorance, and I have sought a goodly hymn—”

“The young man is trapped, and I worry that his death is destined. I deeply regret that someone so kind should die without knowing the truth, and I have searched for a beautiful song—”

“Can you lead me to him?”

“Can you take me to him?”

“The task will not be difficult,” returned David, hesitating; “though I greatly fear your presence would rather increase than mitigate his unhappy fortunes.”

“The task won't be hard,” David replied, pausing; “but I really worry that having you around would make his unfortunate situation worse instead of better.”

“No more words, but lead on,” returned Hawkeye, concealing his face again, and setting the example in his own person, by instantly quitting the lodge.

“No more words, just lead on,” replied Hawkeye, hiding his face again and setting an example by immediately leaving the lodge.

As they proceeded, the scout ascertained that his companion found access to Uncas, under privilege of his imaginary infirmity, aided by the favor he had acquired with one of the guards, who, in consequence of speaking a little English, had been selected by David as the subject of a religious conversion. How far the Huron comprehended the intentions of his new friend may well be doubted; but as exclusive attention is as flattering to a savage as to a more civilized individual, it had produced the effect we have mentioned. It is unnecessary to repeat the shrewd manner with which the scout extracted these particulars from the simple David; neither shall we dwell in this place on the nature of the instruction he delivered, when completely master of all the necessary facts; as the whole will be sufficiently explained to the reader in the course of the narrative.

As they moved forward, the scout realized that his companion had found a way to connect with Uncas, using his supposed disability and the favor he gained from one of the guards. This guard, who spoke a bit of English, had been chosen by David as a candidate for religious conversion. It's uncertain how much the Huron understood the intentions of his new friend, but the attention he received was flattering, similar to how it would be for a more civilized person, and it had the effect we've mentioned. There's no need to repeat how cleverly the scout got this information from the simple David, nor will we go into detail about the instruction he provided once he had all the necessary facts; the entire situation will become clear to the reader as the story unfolds.

The lodge in which Uncas was confined was in the very center of the village, and in a situation, perhaps, more difficult than any other to approach, or leave, without observation. But it was not the policy of Hawkeye to affect the least concealment. Presuming on his disguise, and his ability to sustain the character he had assumed, he took the most plain and direct route to the place. The hour, however, afforded him some little of that protection which he appeared so much to despise. The boys were already buried in sleep, and all the women, and most of the warriors, had retired to their lodges for the night. Four or five of the latter only lingered about the door of the prison of Uncas, wary but close observers of the manner of their captive.

The lodge where Uncas was held was right in the center of the village, in a spot that was probably harder to get to or leave without being noticed than any other. However, Hawkeye didn't intend to hide at all. Confident in his disguise and his ability to play the role he had taken on, he chose the most straightforward route to the lodge. The time of night offered him a bit of the cover he pretended not to care about. The boys were already deep asleep, and all the women, along with most of the warriors, had gone to their lodges for the night. Only four or five warriors remained by the door of Uncas's prison, cautious but still closely watching their captive's behavior.

At the sight of Gamut, accompanied by one in the well-known masquerade of their most distinguished conjurer, they readily made way for them both. Still they betrayed no intention to depart. On the other hand, they were evidently disposed to remain bound to the place by an additional interest in the mysterious mummeries that they of course expected from such a visit.

At the sight of Gamut, along with someone dressed as their famous magician, they quickly cleared a path for both of them. However, they showed no signs of wanting to leave. Instead, it was clear they were eager to stay because they were intrigued by the mysterious performances they expected from such a visit.

From the total inability of the scout to address the Hurons in their own language, he was compelled to trust the conversation entirely to David. Notwithstanding the simplicity of the latter, he did ample justice to the instructions he had received, more than fulfilling the strongest hopes of his teacher.

From the scout's complete inability to speak to the Hurons in their own language, he had no choice but to rely on David to handle the conversation. Despite David's straightforwardness, he did a great job with the instructions he received, exceeding his teacher's highest expectations.

“The Delawares are women!” he exclaimed, addressing himself to the savage who had a slight understanding of the language in which he spoke; “the Yengeese, my foolish countrymen, have told them to take up the tomahawk, and strike their fathers in the Canadas, and they have forgotten their sex. Does my brother wish to hear ‘Le Cerf Agile’ ask for his petticoats, and see him weep before the Hurons, at the stake?”

“The Delawares are women!” he shouted, looking at the savage who had a bit of understanding of his language; “the Yengeese, my foolish countrymen, have encouraged them to take up the tomahawk and attack their fathers in Canada, and they’ve forgotten they’re women. Does my brother want to hear ‘Le Cerf Agile’ ask for his skirts and see him cry before the Hurons at the stake?”

The exclamation “Hugh!” delivered in a strong tone of assent, announced the gratification the savage would receive in witnessing such an exhibition of weakness in an enemy so long hated and so much feared.

The shout "Hugh!" said with a strong tone of agreement, showed the pleasure the savage would feel in seeing such a display of weakness in an enemy who had been hated and feared for so long.

“Then let him step aside, and the cunning man will blow upon the dog. Tell it to my brothers.”

“Then let him step aside, and the clever guy will blow on the dog. Tell it to my brothers.”

The Huron explained the meaning of David to his fellows, who, in their turn, listened to the project with that sort of satisfaction that their untamed spirits might be expected to find in such a refinement in cruelty. They drew back a little from the entrance and motioned to the supposed conjurer to enter. But the bear, instead of obeying, maintained the seat it had taken, and growled:

The Huron explained to his friends what David meant, and they listened to the plan with a sense of satisfaction that their wild spirits would likely find in such a cruel twist. They stepped back a bit from the entrance and signaled for the supposed conjurer to come in. But instead of complying, the bear stayed where it was and growled:

“The cunning man is afraid that his breath will blow upon his brothers, and take away their courage too,” continued David, improving the hint he received; “they must stand further off.”

“The sly man worries that his breath will spread to his brothers and take away their courage too,” continued David, expanding on the hint he received; “they need to stay back.”

The Hurons, who would have deemed such a misfortune the heaviest calamity that could befall them, fell back in a body, taking a position where they were out of earshot, though at the same time they could command a view of the entrance to the lodge. Then, as if satisfied of their safety, the scout left his position, and slowly entered the place. It was silent and gloomy, being tenanted solely by the captive, and lighted by the dying embers of a fire, which had been used for the purposed of cookery.

The Hurons, who would have considered such a disaster the worst fate that could happen to them, moved back together to a spot where they couldn't hear anything, but still had a view of the entrance to the lodge. Then, feeling secure, the scout stepped away from his spot and entered slowly. It was quiet and dark inside, occupied only by the captive, and dimly lit by the fading embers of a fire that had been used for cooking.

Uncas occupied a distant corner, in a reclining attitude, being rigidly bound, both hands and feet, by strong and painful withes. When the frightful object first presented itself to the young Mohican, he did not deign to bestow a single glance on the animal. The scout, who had left David at the door, to ascertain they were not observed, thought it prudent to preserve his disguise until assured of their privacy. Instead of speaking, therefore, he exerted himself to enact one of the antics of the animal he represented. The young Mohican, who at first believed his enemies had sent in a real beast to torment him, and try his nerves, detected in those performances that to Heyward had appeared so accurate, certain blemishes, that at once betrayed the counterfeit. Had Hawkeye been aware of the low estimation in which the skillful Uncas held his representations, he would probably have prolonged the entertainment a little in pique. But the scornful expression of the young man’s eye admitted of so many constructions, that the worthy scout was spared the mortification of such a discovery. As soon, therefore, as David gave the preconcerted signal, a low hissing sound was heard in the lodge in place of the fierce growlings of the bear.

Uncas was slumped in a corner, tightly bound by strong and painful ropes around both his hands and feet. When the terrifying creature first showed up to the young Mohican, he didn't even bother to look at it. The scout, who had left David at the door to make sure they weren't being watched, thought it was wise to keep his disguise until he was sure they had privacy. So instead of talking, he started imitating the animal he pretended to be. The young Mohican, who initially thought his enemies had sent in a real beast to scare him and test his nerves, noticed that the imitator's actions contained some flaws that immediately revealed the trick. If Hawkeye had known how little respect Uncas had for his imitation skills, he probably would have extended the act out of spite. But the disdainful look in the young man’s eyes could be interpreted in many ways, which spared the scout the embarrassment of making that realization. So as soon as David gave the planned signal, a low hissing sound replaced the bear's fierce growls in the lodge.

[Illustration]

His keen eye rested on the shaggy monster.

His sharp eye fell on the hairy beast.

Uncas had cast his body back against the wall of the hut and closed his eyes, as if willing to exclude so contemptible and disagreeable an object from his sight. But the moment the noise of the serpent was heard, he arose, and cast his looks on each side of him, bending his head low, and turning it inquiringly in every direction, until his keen eye rested on the shaggy monster, where it remained riveted, as though fixed by the power of a charm. Again the same sounds were repeated, evidently proceeding from the mouth of the beast. Once more the eyes of the youth roamed over the interior of the lodge, and returning to the former resting place, he uttered, in a deep, suppressed voice:

Uncas had leaned back against the wall of the hut and shut his eyes, as if trying to block out such a contemptible and unpleasant sight. But the moment he heard the noise of the serpent, he stood up and looked around him, lowering his head and turning it curiously in every direction until his sharp eye locked onto the shaggy monster, as if captivated by some spell. The same sounds were repeated, clearly coming from the beast's mouth. Once again, the young man's gaze swept over the interior of the lodge, and when it returned to the same spot, he spoke in a low, controlled voice:

“Hawkeye!”

"Hawkeye!"

“Cut his bands,” said Hawkeye to David, who just then approached them.

“Cut his bonds,” said Hawkeye to David, who had just come up to them.

The singer did as he was ordered, and Uncas found his limbs released. At the same moment the dried skin of the animal rattled, and presently the scout arose to his feet, in proper person. The Mohican appeared to comprehend the nature of the attempt his friend had made, intuitively, neither tongue nor feature betraying another symptom of surprise. When Hawkeye had cast his shaggy vestment, which was done by simply loosing certain thongs of skin, he drew a long, glittering knife, and put it in the hands of Uncas.

The singer followed the orders given, and Uncas found his arms free. At the same time, the dry skin of the animal rustled, and soon the scout stood up, fully himself. The Mohican seemed to understand the nature of his friend's attempt without needing words or expressions to show any sign of surprise. When Hawkeye removed his shaggy cloak by loosening a few leather thongs, he pulled out a long, shining knife and handed it to Uncas.

“The red Hurons are without,” he said; “let us be ready.” At the same time he laid his finger significantly on another similar weapon, both being the fruits of his prowess among their enemies during the evening.

“The red Hurons are out there,” he said; “let’s be prepared.” At the same time, he pointed meaningfully to another similar weapon, both being trophies of his skill against their enemies that evening.

“We will go,” said Uncas.

"We're going," said Uncas.

“Whither?”

"Where to?"

“To the Tortoises; they are the children of my grandfathers.”

“To the Tortoises; they are the kids of my grandfathers.”

“Ay, lad,” said the scout in English—a language he was apt to use when a little abstracted in mind; “the same blood runs in your veins, I believe; but time and distance has a little changed its color. What shall we do with the Mingoes at the door? They count six, and this singer is as good as nothing.”

“Aye, kid,” said the scout in English—a language he tended to use when he was a bit lost in thought; “the same blood runs in your veins, I believe; but time and distance have changed its color a bit. What should we do about the Mingoes at the door? There are six of them, and this singer is pretty much useless.”

“The Hurons are boasters,” said Uncas, scornfully; “their ‘totem’ is a moose, and they run like snails. The Delawares are children of the tortoise, and they outstrip the deer.”

“The Hurons are full of themselves,” said Uncas, disdainfully; “their ‘totem’ is a moose, and they move as slowly as snails. The Delawares are children of the tortoise, and they outrun the deer.”

“Ay, lad, there is truth in what you say; and I doubt not, on a rush, you would pass the whole nation; and, in a straight race of two miles, would be in, and get your breath again, afore a knave of them all was within hearing of the other village. But the gift of a white man lies more in his arms than in his legs. As for myself, I can brain a Huron as well as a better man; but when it comes to a race the knaves would prove too much for me.”

"Yeah, kid, you’re right about that; I have no doubt that if you pushed yourself, you could outrun the whole country. In a straight race of two miles, you'd finish and catch your breath before any of those guys from the other village even heard you. But a white man’s strength is more in his arms than in his legs. As for me, I can take down a Huron just as easily as anyone else; but when it comes to racing, those guys would definitely beat me."

Uncas, who had already approached the door, in readiness to lead the way, now recoiled, and placed himself, once more, in the bottom of the lodge. But Hawkeye, who was too much occupied with his own thoughts to note the movement, continued speaking more to himself than to his companion.

Uncas, who had already moved toward the door, ready to lead the way, now stepped back and returned to the bottom of the lodge. But Hawkeye, too lost in his own thoughts to notice the shift, kept talking more to himself than to his companion.

“After all,” he said, “it is unreasonable to keep one man in bondage to the gifts of another. So, Uncas, you had better take the lead, while I will put on the skin again, and trust to cunning for want of speed.”

“After all,” he said, “it doesn’t make sense to keep one man tied to the abilities of another. So, Uncas, you should take the lead, while I’ll put the skin back on and rely on cleverness instead of speed.”

The young Mohican made no reply, but quietly folded his arms, and leaned his body against one of the upright posts that supported the wall of the hut.

The young Mohican didn’t say anything, but calmly crossed his arms and leaned his body against one of the posts that held up the wall of the hut.

“Well,” said the scout looking up at him, “why do you tarry? There will be time enough for me, as the knaves will give chase to you at first.”

“Well,” said the scout, looking up at him, “why are you waiting? There'll be plenty of time for me since the scoundrels will chase you first.”

“Uncas will stay,” was the calm reply.

“Uncas will stay,” was the composed response.

“For what?”

"Why?"

“To fight with his father’s brother, and die with the friend of the Delawares.”

“To battle his uncle and to die alongside the friend of the Delawares.”

“Ay, lad,” returned Hawkeye, squeezing the hand of Uncas between his own iron fingers; “’twould have been more like a Mingo than a Mohican had you left me. But I thought I would make the offer, seeing that youth commonly loves life. Well, what can’t be done by main courage, in war, must be done by circumvention. Put on the skin; I doubt not you can play the bear nearly as well as myself.”

“Aye, kid,” Hawkeye said, squeezing Uncas's hand with his strong grip, “it would have been more like a Mingo than a Mohican if you had left me. But I thought I’d make the offer since young people usually love life. Well, what can’t be achieved by sheer bravery in battle must be accomplished by cunning. Put on the skin; I’m sure you can play the bear almost as well as I can.”

Whatever might have been the private opinion of Uncas of their respective abilities in this particular, his grave countenance manifested no opinion of his superiority. He silently and expeditiously encased himself in the covering of the beast, and then awaited such other movements as his more aged companion saw fit to dictate.

Whatever Uncas might have thought privately about their individual skills in this matter, his serious expression showed no sign of feeling superior. He quietly and quickly covered himself in the animal's skin, then waited for his older companion to decide what to do next.

“Now, friend,” said Hawkeye, addressing David, “an exchange of garments will be a great convenience to you, inasmuch as you are but little accustomed to the make-shifts of the wilderness. Here, take my hunting shirt and cap, and give me your blanket and hat. You must trust me with the book and spectacles, as well as the tooter, too; if we ever meet again, in better times, you shall have all back again, with many thanks into the bargain.”

“Now, my friend,” said Hawkeye, looking at David, “swapping clothes will be really helpful for you since you’re not used to the make-do lifestyle of the wilderness. Here, take my hunting shirt and cap, and give me your blanket and hat. You have to trust me with the book and glasses, as well as the flute; if we ever meet again in better times, you’ll get everything back, along with many thanks.”

David parted with the several articles named with a readiness that would have done great credit to his liberality, had he not certainly profited, in many particulars, by the exchange. Hawkeye was not long in assuming his borrowed garments; and when his restless eyes were hid behind the glasses, and his head was surmounted by the triangular beaver, as their statures were not dissimilar, he might readily have passed for the singer, by starlight. As soon as these dispositions were made, the scout turned to David, and gave him his parting instructions.

David willingly let go of the various items, showing a generosity that would have been impressive if he hadn't clearly gained in several ways from the trade. Hawkeye quickly put on the borrowed clothes, and with his lively eyes obscured by the glasses and his head topped with the triangular hat, he could easily have been mistaken for the singer beneath the starlight, given their similar builds. Once everything was arranged, the scout turned to David and gave him his final instructions.

“Are you much given to cowardice?” he bluntly asked, by way of obtaining a suitable understanding of the whole case before he ventured a prescription.

"Are you very cowardly?" he asked directly, in order to get a clear understanding of the whole situation before he suggested a solution.

“My pursuits are peaceful, and my temper, I humbly trust, is greatly given to mercy and love,” returned David, a little nettled at so direct an attack on his manhood; “but there are none who can say that I have ever forgotten my faith in the Lord, even in the greatest straits.”

“My efforts are peaceful, and I sincerely believe I have a strong disposition for mercy and love,” David replied, a bit annoyed by such a blunt challenge to his character; “but no one can claim that I’ve ever wavered in my faith in the Lord, even in the toughest times.”

“Your chiefest danger will be at the moment when the savages find out that they have been deceived. If you are not then knocked on the head, your being a non-composser will protect you; and you’ll then have a good reason to expect to die in your bed. If you stay, it must be to sit down here in the shadow, and take the part of Uncas, until such times as the cunning of the Indians discover the cheat, when, as I have already said, your times of trial will come. So choose for yourself—to make a rush or tarry here.”

“Your biggest danger will come when the natives realize they’ve been tricked. If you’re not knocked out then, your confusion will keep you safe; you might have a decent chance of dying in your own bed. If you choose to stay, it will be to sit here in the shadows and act like Uncas, until the Indians figure out the deception. As I’ve said before, that’s when your challenges will begin. So, decide for yourself—make a run for it or stay here.”

“Even so,” said David, firmly; “I will abide in the place of the Delaware. Bravely and generously has he battled in my behalf, and this, and more, will I dare in his service.”

“Even so,” David said firmly, “I will stay with the Delaware. He has fought bravely and generously for me, and I will do the same and even more in his service.”

“You have spoken as a man, and like one who, under wiser schooling, would have been brought to better things. Hold your head down, and draw in your legs; their formation might tell the truth too early. Keep silent as long as may be; and it would be wise, when you do speak, to break out suddenly in one of your shoutings, which will serve to remind the Indians that you are not altogether as responsible as men should be. If however, they take your scalp, as I trust and believe they will not, depend on it, Uncas and I will not forget the deed, but revenge it as becomes true warriors and trusty friends.”

“You’ve talked like a man, and like someone who, if taught better, could have turned out differently. Keep your head down and tuck your legs in; their shape might give away too much too soon. Stay quiet for as long as you can; and when you do talk, it would be smart to suddenly shout, which will remind the Indians that you’re not entirely as accountable as a man should be. However, if they do take your scalp, which I hope and believe they won’t, rest assured, Uncas and I won't forget it, but we’ll get our revenge like true warriors and loyal friends.”

“Hold!” said David, perceiving that with this assurance they were about to leave him; “I am an unworthy and humble follower of one who taught not the damnable principle of revenge. Should I fall, therefore, seek no victims to my manes, but rather forgive my destroyers; and if you remember them at all, let it be in prayers for the enlightening of their minds, and for their eternal welfare.”

“Wait!” David said, realizing that with this assurance they were about to leave him; “I am an unworthy and humble follower of someone who taught not the terrible principle of revenge. If I fall, then don’t seek any victims in my name, but rather forgive those who harmed me; and if you think of them at all, let it be in prayers for the enlightenment of their minds and for their eternal well-being.”

The scout hesitated, and appeared to muse.

The scout paused and seemed to think.

“There is a principle in that,” he said, “different from the law of the woods; and yet it is fair and noble to reflect upon.” Then heaving a heavy sigh, probably among the last he ever drew in pining for a condition he had so long abandoned, he added: “it is what I would wish to practise myself, as one without a cross of blood, though it is not always easy to deal with an Indian as you would with a fellow Christian. God bless you, friend; I do believe your scent is not greatly wrong, when the matter is duly considered, and keeping eternity before the eyes, though much depends on the natural gifts, and the force of temptation.”

“There’s a principle in that,” he said, “different from the rules of the wild; and yet it’s fair and worthwhile to think about.” Then, with a heavy sigh—probably one of the last he ever drew, longing for a state he had long left behind—he added, “It’s what I would want to practice myself, as someone without a burden of blood, though it’s not always easy to treat an Indian like you would a fellow Christian. God bless you, my friend; I really believe your assessment isn’t too far off, when you consider everything, and keep eternity in mind, even though a lot depends on natural gifts and the power of temptation.”

So saying, the scout returned and shook David cordially by the hand; after which act of friendship he immediately left the lodge, attended by the new representative of the beast.

So saying, the scout came back and shook David's hand warmly; after this gesture of friendship, he immediately left the lodge, accompanied by the new representative of the beast.

The instant Hawkeye found himself under the observation of the Hurons, he drew up his tall form in the rigid manner of David, threw out his arm in the act of keeping time, and commenced what he intended for an imitation of his psalmody. Happily for the success of this delicate adventure, he had to deal with ears but little practised in the concord of sweet sounds, or the miserable effort would infallibly have been detected. It was necessary to pass within a dangerous proximity of the dark group of the savages, and the voice of the scout grew louder as they drew nigher. When at the nearest point the Huron who spoke the English thrust out an arm, and stopped the supposed singing-master.

The moment Hawkeye noticed the Hurons watching him, he straightened up like David, raised his arm like he was keeping time, and started what he hoped would sound like singing. Luckily for his delicate plan, he was dealing with people who were not very accustomed to hearing beautiful music, or his awkward attempt would definitely have been noticed. He had to get uncomfortably close to the dark group of savages, and as he approached, the scout's voice got louder. Just as he got nearest, the Huron who spoke English reached out his arm and stopped the supposed singing instructor.

“The Delaware dog!” he said, leaning forward, and peering through the dim light to catch the expression of the other’s features; “is he afraid? Will the Hurons hear his groans?”

“The Delaware dog!” he said, leaning forward and squinting through the dim light to see the other’s expression. “Is he scared? Will the Hurons hear him groaning?”

A growl, so exceedingly fierce and natural, proceeded from the beast, that the young Indian released his hold and started aside, as if to assure himself that it was not a veritable bear, and no counterfeit, that was rolling before him. Hawkeye, who feared his voice would betray him to his subtle enemies, gladly profited by the interruption, to break out anew in such a burst of musical expression as would, probably, in a more refined state of society have been termed “a grand crash.” Among his actual auditors, however, it merely gave him an additional claim to that respect which they never withhold from such as are believed to be the subjects of mental alienation. The little knot of Indians drew back in a body, and suffered, as they thought, the conjurer and his inspired assistant to proceed.

A growl, so incredibly fierce and authentic, came from the beast that the young Indian let go and stepped aside, as if to reassure himself that it wasn’t a real bear, but just a fake one, rolling before him. Hawkeye, worried that his voice might give him away to his crafty enemies, happily took advantage of the interruption to launch into a new burst of musical expression that would probably be called “a grand crash” in a more refined society. Among his actual listeners, though, it merely earned him even more respect, which they never deny to those believed to be mentally unstable. The small group of Indians stepped back as a whole, allowing what they thought was the conjurer and his inspired assistant to continue.

It required no common exercise of fortitude in Uncas and the scout to continue the dignified and deliberate pace they had assumed in passing the lodge; especially as they immediately perceived that curiosity had so far mastered fear, as to induce the watchers to approach the hut, in order to witness the effect of the incantations. The least injudicious or impatient movement on the part of David might betray them, and time was absolutely necessary to insure the safety of the scout. The loud noise the latter conceived it politic to continue, drew many curious gazers to the doors of the different huts as thy passed; and once or twice a dark-looking warrior stepped across their path, led to the act by superstition and watchfulness. They were not, however, interrupted, the darkness of the hour, and the boldness of the attempt, proving their principal friends.

It took a lot of courage for Uncas and the scout to keep up the steady and calm pace they had chosen while passing the lodge, especially since they quickly noticed that curiosity had gotten the better of fear, making the onlookers approach the hut to see the effects of the rituals. Any careless or restless move from David could give them away, and they needed time to ensure the scout’s safety. The loud noise that the scout decided to maintain attracted many curious onlookers to the doors of the various huts as they walked by; and once or twice, a grim-looking warrior stepped into their path, driven by superstition and vigilance. However, they were not stopped, as the darkness of the night and the daring nature of their plan worked in their favor.

The adventurers had got clear of the village, and were now swiftly approaching the shelter of the woods, when a loud and long cry arose from the lodge where Uncas had been confined. The Mohican started on his feet, and shook his shaggy covering, as though the animal he counterfeited was about to make some desperate effort.

The adventurers had left the village and were quickly nearing the safety of the woods when a loud, prolonged cry came from the lodge where Uncas had been held. The Mohican jumped to his feet and shook his thick hair, as if the animal he pretended to be was about to make a desperate move.

“Hold!” said the scout, grasping his friend by the shoulder, “let them yell again! ’Twas nothing but wonderment.”

“Wait!” the scout said, grabbing his friend's shoulder. “Let them shout again! It was just pure amazement.”

He had no occasion to delay, for at the next instant a burst of cries filled the outer air, and ran along the whole extent of the village. Uncas cast his skin, and stepped forth in his own beautiful proportions. Hawkeye tapped him lightly on the shoulder, and glided ahead.

He didn’t have a reason to hesitate, because in the next moment, a loud shout echoed through the air, spreading across the entire village. Uncas shed his skin and stepped out, revealing his striking figure. Hawkeye gave him a light tap on the shoulder and moved ahead.

“Now let the devils strike our scent!” said the scout, tearing two rifles, with all their attendant accouterments, from beneath a bush, and flourishing “killdeer” as he handed Uncas his weapon; “two, at least, will find it to their deaths.”

“Now let the devils smell us out!” said the scout, pulling out two rifles and all their gear from beneath a bush, and waving “killdeer” as he handed Uncas his weapon; “at least two will meet their end today.”

Then, throwing their pieces to a low trail, like sportsmen in readiness for their game, they dashed forward, and were soon buried in the somber darkness of the forest.

Then, tossing their pieces to a low spot, like athletes preparing for their game, they rushed ahead and quickly disappeared into the gloomy darkness of the forest.

CHAPTER XXVII.

“Ant. I shall remember: When C’sar says
Do this, it is performed.”
—Julius Caesar

“Ant. I’ll remember: When Caesar says
Do this, it gets done.”
—Julius Caesar

The impatience of the savages who lingered about the prison of Uncas, as has been seen, had overcome their dread of the conjurer’s breath. They stole cautiously, and with beating hearts, to a crevice, through which the faint light of the fire was glimmering. For several minutes they mistook the form of David for that of the prisoner; but the very accident which Hawkeye had foreseen occurred. Tired of keeping the extremities of his long person so near together, the singer gradually suffered the lower limbs to extend themselves, until one of his misshapen feet actually came in contact with and shoved aside the embers of the fire. At first the Hurons believed the Delaware had been thus deformed by witchcraft. But when David, unconscious of being observed, turned his head, and exposed his simple, mild countenance, in place of the haughty lineaments of their prisoner, it would have exceeded the credulity of even a native to have doubted any longer. They rushed together into the lodge, and, laying their hands, with but little ceremony, on their captive, immediately detected the imposition. Then arose the cry first heard by the fugitives. It was succeeded by the most frantic and angry demonstrations of vengeance. David, however, firm in his determination to cover the retreat of his friends, was compelled to believe that his own final hour had come. Deprived of his book and his pipe, he was fain to trust to a memory that rarely failed him on such subjects; and breaking forth in a loud and impassioned strain, he endeavored to smooth his passage into the other world by singing the opening verse of a funeral anthem. The Indians were seasonably reminded of his infirmity, and, rushing into the open air, they aroused the village in the manner described.

The impatience of the savages hanging around Uncas's prison, as seen before, had overcome their fear of the conjurer's breath. They crept cautiously, hearts racing, toward a crevice where the faint light of the fire flickered. For several minutes, they mistook David's form for that of the prisoner. But as Hawkeye had predicted, the very situation he anticipated happened. Tired of keeping his long limbs so close together, the singer gradually allowed his lower limbs to stretch until one of his awkward feet touched and nudged the embers of the fire. At first, the Hurons thought the Delaware had been deformed by witchcraft. But when David, unaware he was being watched, turned his head and revealed his simple, gentle face instead of the proud features of their prisoner, even a native would have found it hard to doubt any longer. They rushed into the lodge and, without much formality, laid hands on their captive, quickly realizing the deception. Then the cry first heard by the fugitives arose, followed by frantic and angry shouts for revenge. David, however, determined to cover his friends' escape, had to accept that his final hour had come. Stripped of his book and pipe, he had to rely on a memory that rarely failed him on such matters; and breaking into a loud, passionate song, he tried to ease his passage into the afterlife by singing the opening verse of a funeral anthem. The Indians were quickly reminded of his vulnerability, and rushing into the open air, they stirred the village as described.

A native warrior fights as he sleeps, without the protection of anything defensive. The sounds of the alarm were, therefore, hardly uttered before two hundred men were afoot, and ready for the battle or the chase, as either might be required. The escape was soon known; and the whole tribe crowded, in a body, around the council-lodge, impatiently awaiting the instruction of their chiefs. In such a sudden demand on their wisdom, the presence of the cunning Magua could scarcely fail of being needed. His name was mentioned, and all looked round in wonder that he did not appear. Messengers were then despatched to his lodge requiring his presence.

A native warrior fights even in his sleep, without any kind of protection. The alarm barely sounded before two hundred men were on their feet, ready for battle or the chase, depending on what was needed. News of the escape spread quickly, and the entire tribe gathered around the council lodge, eagerly waiting for their chiefs' instructions. In such an urgent situation, the sly Magua was sure to be needed. His name was brought up, and everyone looked around in surprise that he wasn't there. Messengers were then sent to his lodge asking for him to come.

In the meantime, some of the swiftest and most discreet of the young men were ordered to make the circuit of the clearing, under cover of the woods, in order to ascertain that their suspected neighbors, the Delawares, designed no mischief. Women and children ran to and fro; and, in short, the whole encampment exhibited another scene of wild and savage confusion. Gradually, however, these symptoms of disorder diminished; and in a few minutes the oldest and most distinguished chiefs were assembled in the lodge, in grave consultation.

In the meantime, some of the fastest and quietest young men were sent to circle the clearing, using the woods for cover, to find out if their suspected neighbors, the Delawares, were up to no good. Women and children were running around everywhere, and the whole camp was in a chaotic state. Slowly, though, the signs of confusion decreased; and in a few minutes, the oldest and most respected chiefs gathered in the lodge for a serious discussion.

The clamor of many voices soon announced that a party approached, who might be expected to communicate some intelligence that would explain the mystery of the novel surprise. The crowd without gave way, and several warriors entered the place, bringing with them the hapless conjurer, who had been left so long by the scout in duress.

The loud chatter of many voices soon indicated that a group was approaching, likely bringing news that would shed light on the unexpected situation. The crowd outside parted, and several warriors entered the area, bringing with them the unfortunate conjurer, who had been kept in distress by the scout for so long.

Notwithstanding this man was held in very unequal estimation among the Hurons, some believing implicitly in his power, and others deeming him an impostor, he was now listened to by all with the deepest attention. When his brief story was ended, the father of the sick woman stepped forth, and, in a few pithy expression, related, in his turn, what he knew. These two narratives gave a proper direction to the subsequent inquiries, which were now made with the characteristic cunning of savages.

Even though this man was regarded very differently among the Hurons—some completely believing in his abilities while others thought he was a fraud—everyone was now paying close attention to him. When he finished his short story, the father of the sick woman stepped forward and, in a few concise words, shared what he knew. These two accounts guided the following questions, which were asked with the typical cleverness of the natives.

Instead of rushing in a confused and disorderly throng to the cavern, ten of the wisest and firmest among the chiefs were selected to prosecute the investigation. As no time was to be lost, the instant the choice was made the individuals appointed rose in a body and left the place without speaking. On reaching the entrance, the younger men in advance made way for their seniors; and the whole proceeded along the low, dark gallery, with the firmness of warriors ready to devote themselves to the public good, though, at the same time, secretly doubting the nature of the power with which they were about to contend.

Instead of rushing into the cave in a confused and chaotic crowd, ten of the wisest and most resolute chiefs were chosen to lead the investigation. With no time to waste, as soon as the selection was made, the appointed individuals stood up together and silently left the area. Upon arriving at the entrance, the younger men moved aside for their elders, and they all advanced through the dim, low passage with the determination of warriors prepared to sacrifice for the greater good, while secretly questioning the nature of the force they were about to face.

The outer apartment of the cavern was silent and gloomy. The woman lay in her usual place and posture, though there were those present who affirmed they had seen her borne to the woods by the supposed “medicine of the white men.” Such a direct and palpable contradiction of the tale related by the father caused all eyes to be turned on him. Chafed by the silent imputation, and inwardly troubled by so unaccountable a circumstance, the chief advanced to the side of the bed, and, stooping, cast an incredulous look at the features, as if distrusting their reality. His daughter was dead.

The outer room of the cave was quiet and dark. The woman lay in her usual spot and position, although there were some who claimed they had seen her taken to the woods by the so-called “medicine of the white men.” This clear and direct contradiction of the story told by the father made everyone look at him. Frustrated by the silent accusation and troubled by such an unexplainable situation, the chief moved to the side of the bed and, leaning down, gave an incredulous look at her face, as if doubting its reality. His daughter was dead.

The unerring feeling of nature for a moment prevailed and the old warrior hid his eyes in sorrow. Then, recovering his self-possession, he faced his companions, and, pointing toward the corpse, he said, in the language of his people:

The unmistakable pull of nature took over for a moment, and the old warrior dropped his gaze in grief. Then, regaining his composure, he turned to his companions and, pointing at the body, he said, in the language of his people:

“The wife of my young man has left us! The Great Spirit is angry with his children.”

“The wife of my boyfriend has left us! The Great Spirit is upset with his children.”

The mournful intelligence was received in solemn silence. After a short pause, one of the elder Indians was about to speak, when a dark-looking object was seen rolling out of an adjoining apartment, into the very center of the room where they stood. Ignorant of the nature of the beings they had to deal with, the whole party drew back a little, and, rising on end, exhibited the distorted but still fierce and sullen features of Magua. The discovery was succeeded by a general exclamation of amazement.

The sad news was received in quiet silence. After a brief pause, one of the older Indians was about to speak when a dark object rolled out from a nearby room and into the center of the space where they were standing. Unsure of what they were dealing with, everyone stepped back a bit, and they saw the twisted but still fierce and gloomy face of Magua. This discovery was followed by a collective gasp of astonishment.

As soon, however, as the true situation of the chief was understood, several knives appeared, and his limbs and tongue were quickly released. The Huron arose, and shook himself like a lion quitting his lair. Not a word escaped him, though his hand played convulsively with the handle of his knife, while his lowering eyes scanned the whole party, as if they sought an object suited to the first burst of his vengeance.

As soon as the true situation of the chief was understood, several knives appeared, and his limbs and tongue were quickly set free. The Huron got up and shook himself like a lion leaving its den. He didn't say a word, but his hand twitched with the handle of his knife, while his intense gaze scanned the entire group, as if searching for something to unleash his first wave of revenge on.

It was happy for Uncas and the scout, and even David, that they were all beyond the reach of his arm at such a moment; for, assuredly, no refinement in cruelty would then have deferred their deaths, in opposition to the promptings of the fierce temper that nearly choked him. Meeting everywhere faces that he knew as friends, the savage grated his teeth together like rasps of iron, and swallowed his passion for want of a victim on whom to vent it. This exhibition of anger was noted by all present; and from an apprehension of exasperating a temper that was already chafed nearly to madness, several minutes were suffered to pass before another word was uttered. When, however, suitable time had elapsed, the oldest of the party spoke.

It was fortunate for Uncas, the scout, and even David that they were all out of his reach at that moment; because, without a doubt, no cruel tactic would have delayed their deaths, given the intense anger that nearly consumed him. Surrounded by familiar faces he recognized as friends, the savage ground his teeth together like iron rasping and suppressed his rage due to the lack of a target to unleash it on. Everyone present noticed this display of anger, and out of concern for provoking a temper that was already on the brink of madness, several minutes passed before anyone spoke again. When the time felt right, the oldest member of the group finally broke the silence.

“My friend has found an enemy,” he said. “Is he nigh that the Hurons might take revenge?”

“My friend has found an enemy,” he said. “Is he nearby so the Hurons can take revenge?”

“Let the Delaware die!” exclaimed Magua, in a voice of thunder.

“Let the Delaware die!” shouted Magua, in a booming voice.

Another longer and expressive silence was observed, and was broken, as before, with due precaution, by the same individual.

Another longer and more expressive silence followed, and was broken, as before, with careful consideration, by the same person.

“The Mohican is swift of foot, and leaps far,” he said; “but my young men are on his trail.”

“The Mohican is fast and jumps far,” he said; “but my young men are on his trail.”

“Is he gone?” demanded Magua, in tones so deep and guttural, that they seemed to proceed from his inmost chest.

“Is he gone?” Magua demanded, his voice so deep and guttural that it sounded like it was coming from his very core.

“An evil spirit has been among us, and the Delaware has blinded our eyes.”

“An evil spirit has been with us, and the Delaware have clouded our vision.”

“An evil spirit!” repeated the other, mockingly; “’tis the spirit that has taken the lives of so many Hurons; the spirit that slew my young men at ‘the tumbling river’; that took their scalps at the ‘healing spring’; and who has, now, bound the arms of Le Renard Subtil!”

“An evil spirit!” the other echoed, mocking. “It’s the spirit that has claimed the lives of so many Hurons; the spirit that killed my young men at ‘the tumbling river’; that took their scalps at the ‘healing spring’; and now has restrained the arms of Le Renard Subtil!”

“Of whom does my friend speak?”

“Who is my friend talking about?”

“Of the dog who carries the heart and cunning of a Huron under a pale skin—La Longue Carabine.”

“Of the dog who has the heart and cleverness of a Huron beneath a light-colored coat—La Longue Carabine.”

The pronunciation of so terrible a name produced the usual effect among his auditors. But when time was given for reflection, and the warriors remembered that their formidable and daring enemy had even been in the bosom of their encampment, working injury, fearful rage took the place of wonder, and all those fierce passions with which the bosom of Magua had just been struggling were suddenly transferred to his companions. Some among them gnashed their teeth in anger, others vented their feelings in yells, and some, again, beat the air as frantically as if the object of their resentment were suffering under their blows. But this sudden outbreaking of temper as quickly subsided in the still and sullen restraint they most affected in their moments of inaction.

The pronunciation of such a terrible name had the usual effect on his listeners. However, once they had time to think and remembered that their strong and brave enemy had actually been in their camp, causing damage, fear and rage replaced their wonder. All the intense emotions that Magua had just been struggling with were suddenly passed on to his companions. Some of them gnashed their teeth in anger; others expressed their feelings with howls, and some even flailed their arms as if the person they were angry at was right in front of them. But this sudden outburst of anger quickly faded into the still and sullen restraint they usually showed during quiet moments.

Magua, who had in his turn found leisure for reflection, now changed his manner, and assumed the air of one who knew how to think and act with a dignity worthy of so grave a subject.

Magua, having taken some time to think, changed his demeanor and took on the attitude of someone who knew how to think and act with the dignity that such a serious matter deserved.

“Let us go to my people,” he said; “they wait for us.”

“Let’s go to my people,” he said. “They’re waiting for us.”

His companions consented in silence, and the whole of the savage party left the cavern and returned to the council-lodge. When they were seated, all eyes turned on Magua, who understood, from such an indication, that, by common consent, they had devolved the duty of relating what had passed on him. He arose, and told his tale without duplicity or reservation. The whole deception practised by both Duncan and Hawkeye was, of course, laid naked, and no room was found, even for the most superstitious of the tribe, any longer to affix a doubt on the character of the occurrences. It was but too apparent that they had been insultingly, shamefully, disgracefully deceived. When he had ended, and resumed his seat, the collected tribe—for his auditors, in substance, included all the fighting men of the party—sat regarding each other like men astonished equally at the audacity and the success of their enemies. The next consideration, however, was the means and opportunities for revenge.

His companions agreed in silence, and the entire savage group left the cave and went back to the council lodge. Once seated, all eyes turned to Magua, who realized that, with this signal, they had collectively decided he should explain what had happened. He stood up and shared his story honestly and openly. The whole deception carried out by both Duncan and Hawkeye was fully exposed, leaving no space for even the most superstitious members of the tribe to doubt the events that had taken place. It was painfully clear that they had been insultingly, shamefully, and disgracefully misled. When he finished and took his seat again, the gathered tribe—who, essentially, included all the warriors of the group—looked at each other like people shocked by both the boldness and success of their enemies. The next thought, however, was about how to seek revenge.

Additional pursuers were sent on the trail of the fugitives; and then the chiefs applied themselves, in earnest, to the business of consultation. Many different expedients were proposed by the elder warriors, in succession, to all of which Magua was a silent and respectful listener. That subtle savage had recovered his artifice and self-command, and now proceeded toward his object with his customary caution and skill. It was only when each one disposed to speak had uttered his sentiments, that he prepared to advance his own opinions. They were given with additional weight from the circumstance that some of the runners had already returned, and reported that their enemies had been traced so far as to leave no doubt of their having sought safety in the neighboring camp of their suspected allies, the Delawares. With the advantage of possessing this important intelligence, the chief warily laid his plans before his fellows, and, as might have been anticipated from his eloquence and cunning, they were adopted without a dissenting voice. They were, briefly, as follows, both in opinions and in motives.

Additional pursuers were sent after the fugitives, and then the chiefs got serious about discussing their options. The older warriors suggested various strategies in turn, while Magua listened quietly and respectfully. That cunning savage had regained his composure and was now moving toward his goal with his usual caution and skill. It was only after everyone who wanted to speak had shared their thoughts that he prepared to present his own ideas. His points were made even more compelling by the fact that some of the runners had already returned and reported that they had tracked their enemies as far as to confirm that they had sought refuge in the nearby camp of their suspected allies, the Delawares. With the advantage of this crucial information, the chief carefully laid out his plans before his peers, and, as might be expected from his eloquence and cleverness, they were accepted without any objections. In summary, they were as follows, both in terms of opinions and motives.

It has been already stated that, in obedience to a policy rarely departed from, the sisters were separated so soon as they reached the Huron village. Magua had early discovered that in retaining the person of Alice, he possessed the most effectual check on Cora. When they parted, therefore, he kept the former within reach of his hand, consigning the one he most valued to the keeping of their allies. The arrangement was understood to be merely temporary, and was made as much with a view to flatter his neighbors as in obedience to the invariable rule of Indian policy.

It has already been mentioned that, following a policy that is rarely changed, the sisters were separated as soon as they arrived at the Huron village. Magua quickly realized that by keeping Alice with him, he had the best way to control Cora. So when they were separated, he kept Alice close by, handing over Cora, the one he valued more, to their allies. This arrangement was seen as temporary and was done as much to please his neighbors as it was to follow the standard rules of Indian policy.

While goaded incessantly by these revengeful impulses that in a savage seldom slumber, the chief was still attentive to his more permanent personal interests. The follies and disloyalty committed in his youth were to be expiated by a long and painful penance, ere he could be restored to the full enjoyment of the confidence of his ancient people; and without confidence there could be no authority in an Indian tribe. In this delicate and arduous situation, the crafty native had neglected no means of increasing his influence; and one of the happiest of his expedients had been the success with which he had cultivated the favor of their powerful and dangerous neighbors. The result of his experiment had answered all the expectations of his policy; for the Hurons were in no degree exempt from that governing principle of nature, which induces man to value his gifts precisely in the degree that they are appreciated by others.

While constantly pushed by these vengeful feelings that rarely rest in a savage, the chief remained focused on his more enduring personal interests. The mistakes and betrayals of his youth had to be atoned for through a long and painful penance before he could regain the full trust of his former people; without trust, he would have no authority in an Indian tribe. In this delicate and challenging situation, the cunning native left no stone unturned to boost his influence; one of his most successful strategies had been winning the favor of their powerful and dangerous neighbors. The outcome of his efforts exceeded all his expectations; the Hurons were not immune to the fundamental principle of nature that leads people to value their gifts based on how much they are appreciated by others.

But, while he was making this ostensible sacrifice to general considerations, Magua never lost sight of his individual motives. The latter had been frustrated by the unlooked-for events which had placed all his prisoners beyond his control; and he now found himself reduced to the necessity of suing for favors to those whom it had so lately been his policy to oblige.

But, while he was making this apparent sacrifice for the greater good, Magua never lost sight of his personal motives. His plans had been disrupted by the unexpected events that had put all his prisoners out of his reach; now, he found himself in a position where he had to seek favors from those he had recently aimed to assist.

Several of the chiefs had proposed deep and treacherous schemes to surprise the Delawares and, by gaining possession of their camp, to recover their prisoners by the same blow; for all agreed that their honor, their interests, and the peace and happiness of their dead countrymen, imperiously required them speedily to immolate some victims to their revenge. But plans so dangerous to attempt, and of such doubtful issue, Magua found little difficulty in defeating. He exposed their risk and fallacy with his usual skill; and it was only after he had removed every impediment, in the shape of opposing advice, that he ventured to propose his own projects.

Several of the chiefs had suggested risky and deceptive strategies to catch the Delawares off guard and reclaim their prisoners in one move. They all agreed that their honor, interests, and the peace and happiness of their deceased countrymen required them to quickly sacrifice some victims to their revenge. However, Magua found it easy to undermine such dangerous plans with uncertain outcomes. He skillfully pointed out their risks and flaws, and it was only after he had dismissed all opposing advice that he dared to present his own ideas.

He commenced by flattering the self-love of his auditors; a never-failing method of commanding attention. When he had enumerated the many different occasions on which the Hurons had exhibited their courage and prowess, in the punishment of insults, he digressed in a high encomium on the virtue of wisdom. He painted the quality as forming the great point of difference between the beaver and other brutes; between the brutes and men; and, finally, between the Hurons, in particular, and the rest of the human race. After he had sufficiently extolled the property of discretion, he undertook to exhibit in what manner its use was applicable to the present situation of their tribe. On the one hand, he said, was their great pale father, the governor of the Canadas, who had looked upon his children with a hard eye since their tomahawks had been so red; on the other, a people as numerous as themselves, who spoke a different language, possessed different interests, and loved them not, and who would be glad of any pretense to bring them in disgrace with the great white chief. Then he spoke of their necessities; of the gifts they had a right to expect for their past services; of their distance from their proper hunting-grounds and native villages; and of the necessity of consulting prudence more, and inclination less, in so critical circumstances. When he perceived that, while the old men applauded his moderation, many of the fiercest and most distinguished of the warriors listened to these politic plans with lowering looks, he cunningly led them back to the subject which they most loved. He spoke openly of the fruits of their wisdom, which he boldly pronounced would be a complete and final triumph over their enemies. He even darkly hinted that their success might be extended, with proper caution, in such a manner as to include the destruction of all whom they had reason to hate. In short, he so blended the warlike with the artful, the obvious with the obscure, as to flatter the propensities of both parties, and to leave to each subject of hope, while neither could say it clearly comprehended his intentions.

He started by flattering the ego of his audience; a surefire way to get their attention. After he listed the many occasions when the Hurons showed their bravery and skill in dealing with insults, he shifted to a high praise of the virtue of wisdom. He described wisdom as the key difference between beavers and other animals; between animals and humans; and, ultimately, between the Hurons specifically and the rest of humanity. Once he had sufficiently praised the quality of discretion, he aimed to show how it applied to their tribe's current situation. On one side, he pointed out, was their great white father, the governor of the Canadas, who had regarded his children with suspicion since their tomahawks had become so bloody; on the other side was a group as numerous as they were, speaking a different language, with different interests, who did not care for them and would be eager to find any excuse to bring them into trouble with the great white chief. He then spoke of their needs; of the rewards they were entitled to for their past services; of their distance from their rightful hunting grounds and home villages; and of the importance of favoring caution over desire in such critical times. When he noticed that while the elders approved of his cautiousness, many of the fiercest and most distinguished warriors were listening to his political plans with frowns, he cleverly steered the conversation back to the subject they loved most. He openly discussed the rewards of their wisdom, which he confidently stated would lead to a complete and final victory over their enemies. He even hinted that their success could be expanded, with the right caution, to include the destruction of all those they had reason to despise. In summary, he skillfully mixed the themes of war with cunning, the obvious with the vague, to appeal to both sides, offering each something to hope for, while neither could clearly grasp his true intentions.

The orator, or the politician, who can produce such a state of things, is commonly popular with his contemporaries, however he may be treated by posterity. All perceived that more was meant than was uttered, and each one believed that the hidden meaning was precisely such as his own faculties enabled him to understand, or his own wishes led him to anticipate.

The speaker, or the politician, who can create such a situation is usually well-liked by his peers, regardless of how he is viewed by future generations. Everyone sensed that there was more to what was said than met the eye, and each person thought that the unspoken meaning was exactly what their own capabilities allowed them to grasp, or what their own desires led them to expect.

In this happy state of things, it is not surprising that the management of Magua prevailed. The tribe consented to act with deliberation, and with one voice they committed the direction of the whole affair to the government of the chief who had suggested such wise and intelligible expedients.

In this positive situation, it’s no wonder that Magua’s leadership won out. The tribe agreed to proceed carefully, and unanimously, they entrusted the entire matter to the chief who had proposed such smart and clear solutions.

Magua had now attained one great object of all his cunning and enterprise. The ground he had lost in the favor of his people was completely regained, and he found himself even placed at the head of affairs. He was, in truth, their ruler; and, so long as he could maintain his popularity, no monarch could be more despotic, especially while the tribe continued in a hostile country. Throwing off, therefore, the appearance of consultation, he assumed the grave air of authority necessary to support the dignity of his office.

Magua had now achieved a major goal of all his scheming and effort. He had completely regained the support he had lost among his people and found himself in charge of everything. He was, in fact, their leader; and as long as he could keep his popularity, no monarch could be more autocratic, especially while the tribe remained in enemy territory. Therefore, casting aside any pretense of consultation, he took on the serious demeanor of authority required to uphold the dignity of his position.

Runners were despatched for intelligence in different directions; spies were ordered to approach and feel the encampment of the Delawares; the warriors were dismissed to their lodges, with an intimation that their services would soon be needed; and the women and children were ordered to retire, with a warning that it was their province to be silent. When these several arrangements were made, Magua passed through the village, stopping here and there to pay a visit where he thought his presence might be flattering to the individual. He confirmed his friends in their confidence, fixed the wavering, and gratified all. Then he sought his own lodge. The wife the Huron chief had abandoned, when he was chased from among his people, was dead. Children he had none; and he now occupied a hut, without companion of any sort. It was, in fact, the dilapidated and solitary structure in which David had been discovered, and whom he had tolerated in his presence, on those few occasions when they met, with the contemptuous indifference of a haughty superiority.

Runners were sent out for information in different directions; spies were instructed to approach and scout the Delawares' camp; the warriors were dismissed to their homes, with a hint that their skills would soon be needed; and the women and children were told to step back, with a reminder that they should remain quiet. Once these plans were set, Magua moved through the village, stopping here and there to visit those he thought would appreciate his presence. He reassured his friends, steadied those who were uncertain, and pleased everyone. After that, he went to his own hut. The wife of the Huron chief, whom he had left when he was forced to flee from his people, was dead. He had no children and now lived in a hut all alone. It was actually the run-down and lonely structure where David had been found, and he had tolerated David’s presence during the few times they met with the dismissive indifference of someone who felt superior.

Hither, then, Magua retired, when his labors of policy were ended. While others slept, however, he neither knew or sought repose. Had there been one sufficiently curious to have watched the movements of the newly elected chief, he would have seen him seated in a corner of his lodge, musing on the subject of his future plans, from the hour of his retirement to the time he had appointed for the warriors to assemble again. Occasionally the air breathed through the crevices of the hut, and the low flame that fluttered about the embers of the fire threw their wavering light on the person of the sullen recluse. At such moments it would not have been difficult to have fancied the dusky savage the Prince of Darkness brooding on his own fancied wrongs, and plotting evil.

Magua then withdrew after finishing his political maneuvers. While others slept, he neither knew nor sought rest. If someone had been curious enough to observe the movements of the newly elected chief, they would have seen him sitting in a corner of his lodge, contemplating his future plans from the moment he retired until the time he scheduled for the warriors to gather again. Occasionally, the wind would blow through the cracks of the hut, and the dim flame flickering around the embers of the fire cast unsteady light on the figure of the brooding recluse. At such moments, it wouldn’t have been hard to imagine the dark-skinned warrior as the Prince of Darkness, dwelling on his imagined grievances and scheming malevolently.

Long before the day dawned, however, warrior after warrior entered the solitary hut of Magua, until they had collected to the number of twenty. Each bore his rifle, and all the other accouterments of war, though the paint was uniformly peaceful. The entrance of these fierce-looking beings was unnoticed: some seating themselves in the shadows of the place, and others standing like motionless statues, until the whole of the designated band was collected.

Long before dawn, however, warrior after warrior entered Magua's solitary hut until there were twenty of them. Each carried his rifle and all the other gear of war, though their paint was generally peaceful. The entrance of these intimidating figures went unnoticed: some sat in the shadows, while others stood like statues, until the entire designated group had gathered.

Then Magua arose and gave the signal to proceed, marching himself in advance. They followed their leader singly, and in that well-known order which has obtained the distinguishing appellation of “Indian file.” Unlike other men engaged in the spirit-stirring business of war, they stole from their camp unostentatiously and unobserved resembling a band of gliding specters, more than warriors seeking the bubble reputation by deeds of desperate daring.

Then Magua stood up and signaled to move forward, leading the way himself. They followed their leader one by one, in that familiar formation known as “Indian file.” Unlike other soldiers caught up in the thrilling chaos of war, they slipped away from their camp quietly and unnoticed, resembling a group of gliding ghosts rather than warriors chasing glory through acts of reckless bravery.

Instead of taking the path which led directly toward the camp of the Delawares, Magua led his party for some distance down the windings of the stream, and along the little artificial lake of the beavers. The day began to dawn as they entered the clearing which had been formed by those sagacious and industrious animals. Though Magua, who had resumed his ancient garb, bore the outline of a fox on the dressed skin which formed his robe, there was one chief of his party who carried the beaver as his peculiar symbol, or “totem.” There would have been a species of profanity in the omission, had this man passed so powerful a community of his fancied kindred, without bestowing some evidence of his regard. Accordingly, he paused, and spoke in words as kind and friendly as if he were addressing more intelligent beings. He called the animals his cousins, and reminded them that his protecting influence was the reason they remained unharmed, while many avaricious traders were prompting the Indians to take their lives. He promised a continuance of his favors, and admonished them to be grateful. After which, he spoke of the expedition in which he was himself engaged, and intimated, though with sufficient delicacy and circumlocution, the expediency of bestowing on their relative a portion of that wisdom for which they were so renowned.[1]

Instead of heading straight to the Delaware camp, Magua led his group down the winding stream and along the small man-made pond created by the beavers. The day began to break as they entered the clearing made by those clever and hardworking animals. Although Magua had put on his old outfit, which featured a fox design on the dressed skin that made up his robe, one member of his party carried a beaver as his personal symbol, or “totem.” It would have been disrespectful to pass by such a powerful community of his imagined relatives without showing some sign of his respect. So, he stopped and spoke in warm and friendly terms as if he were addressing more intelligent beings. He referred to the animals as his cousins and reminded them that his protection was why they remained safe while many greedy traders were encouraging the Indians to harm them. He promised to continue his support and urged them to show gratitude. After that, he discussed the mission he was on and gently suggested, with enough tact and roundabout language, that they share some of the wisdom for which they were famous.[1]

[1] These harangues of the beasts were frequent among the Indians. They often address their victims in this way, reproaching them for cowardice or commending their resolution, as they may happen to exhibit fortitude or the reverse, in suffering.

[1] These rants from the animals were common among the Native Americans. They often spoke to their victims like this, criticizing them for being cowardly or praising their courage, depending on whether they showed bravery or the opposite while enduring hardship.

During the utterance of this extraordinary address, the companions of the speaker were as grave and as attentive to his language as though they were all equally impressed with its propriety. Once or twice black objects were seen rising to the surface of the water, and the Huron expressed pleasure, conceiving that his words were not bestowed in vain. Just as he ended his address, the head of a large beaver was thrust from the door of a lodge, whose earthen walls had been much injured, and which the party had believed, from its situation, to be uninhabited. Such an extraordinary sign of confidence was received by the orator as a highly favorable omen; and though the animal retreated a little precipitately, he was lavish of his thanks and commendations.

During this remarkable speech, the speaker's friends were just as serious and focused on his words as if they were all genuinely moved by their importance. A couple of times, dark shapes were spotted rising from the water, and the Huron expressed satisfaction, believing that his words were not wasted. Just as he finished speaking, the head of a large beaver appeared at the entrance of a lodge, which had suffered significant damage, and which the group had thought was unoccupied. The speaker took this unusual display of trust as a very promising sign; and even though the animal quickly backed away, he was generous with his thanks and praise.

When Magua thought sufficient time had been lost in gratifying the family affection of the warrior, he again made the signal to proceed. As the Indians moved away in a body, and with a step that would have been inaudible to the ears of any common man, the same venerable-looking beaver once more ventured his head from its cover. Had any of the Hurons turned to look behind them, they would have seen the animal watching their movements with an interest and sagacity that might easily have been mistaken for reason. Indeed, so very distinct and intelligible were the devices of the quadruped, that even the most experienced observer would have been at a loss to account for its actions, until the moment when the party entered the forest, when the whole would have been explained, by seeing the entire animal issue from the lodge, uncasing, by the act, the grave features of Chingachgook from his mask of fur.

When Magua felt that enough time had passed for the warrior's family feelings to be acknowledged, he signaled to move on again. As the Indians left together, moving silently like shadows, the same old-looking beaver poked its head out from its hiding spot once more. If any of the Hurons had turned to look back, they would have seen the animal observing them with a keen awareness that might easily be mistaken for intelligence. In fact, the beaver's actions were so clear and deliberate that even the most seasoned observer would have struggled to explain what it was doing, until the moment the group entered the forest, when everything would have become clear as the whole animal emerged from the lodge, revealing the serious face of Chingachgook beneath its fur disguise.

CHAPTER XXVIII.

“Brief, I pray for you; for you see, ’tis a busy time with me.”
—Much Ado About Nothing.

"Quickly, I'm asking for you; because, you see, it's a hectic time for me."
—Much Ado About Nothing.

The tribe, or rather half tribe, of Delawares, which has been so often mentioned, and whose present place of encampment was so nigh the temporary village of the Hurons, could assemble about an equal number of warriors with the latter people. Like their neighbors, they had followed Montcalm into the territories of the English crown, and were making heavy and serious inroads on the hunting-grounds of the Mohawks; though they had seen fit, with the mysterious reserve so common among the natives, to withhold their assistance at the moment when it was most required. The French had accounted for this unexpected defection on the part of their ally in various ways. It was the prevalent opinion, however, that they had been influenced by veneration for the ancient treaty, that had once made them dependent on the Six Nations for military protection, and now rendered them reluctant to encounter their former masters. As for the tribe itself, it had been content to announce to Montcalm, through his emissaries, with Indian brevity, that their hatchets were dull, and time was necessary to sharpen them. The politic captain of the Canadas had deemed it wiser to submit to entertain a passive friend, than by any acts of ill-judged severity to convert him into an open enemy.

The tribe, or rather half tribe, of Delawares, which has been mentioned so often, and whose current campsite was close to the temporary village of the Hurons, could gather about the same number of warriors as the latter group. Like their neighbors, they had followed Montcalm into the territories of the English crown and were making significant and serious inroads into the hunting grounds of the Mohawks; although, with the mysterious reserve typical of the natives, they had chosen to hold back their help at the moment it was most needed. The French had explained this unexpected defection from their ally in various ways. However, the general belief was that they had been influenced by their respect for the old treaty that had once made them dependent on the Six Nations for military protection, which now made them hesitant to confront their former masters. As for the tribe itself, it had simply informed Montcalm, through his messengers, with typical Indian brevity, that their hatchets were dull and they needed time to sharpen them. The wise captain of the Canadas thought it better to keep a passive ally than risk turning him into an open enemy through any poorly considered actions.

On that morning when Magua led his silent party from the settlement of the beavers into the forests, in the manner described, the sun rose upon the Delaware encampment as if it had suddenly burst upon a busy people, actively employed in all the customary avocations of high noon. The women ran from lodge to lodge, some engaged in preparing their morning’s meal, a few earnestly bent on seeking the comforts necessary to their habits, but more pausing to exchange hasty and whispered sentences with their friends. The warriors were lounging in groups, musing more than they conversed and when a few words were uttered, speaking like men who deeply weighed their opinions. The instruments of the chase were to be seen in abundance among the lodges; but none departed. Here and there a warrior was examining his arms, with an attention that is rarely bestowed on the implements, when no other enemy than the beasts of the forest is expected to be encountered. And occasionally, the eyes of a whole group were turned simultaneously toward a large and silent lodge in the center of the village, as if it contained the subject of their common thoughts.

On that morning when Magua led his quiet group from the beaver settlement into the woods, the sun rose over the Delaware camp as if it had suddenly appeared in front of a busy community, fully engaged in all their usual afternoon activities. The women hurried from lodge to lodge, some preparing breakfast, a few searching for comforts they needed, but most stopping to exchange quick, low conversations with their friends. The warriors lounged in groups, thinking more than talking, and when a few words were spoken, it was like men who carefully considered their thoughts. The tools for hunting were plentiful among the lodges, but no one was leaving. Here and there, a warrior was inspecting his weapons with a level of focus that is rarely given when the only enemies expected are the animals of the woods. Occasionally, the eyes of an entire group would turn at once toward a large, quiet lodge in the center of the village, as if it held the shared concern of their thoughts.

During the existence of this scene, a man suddenly appeared at the furthest extremity of a platform of rock which formed the level of the village. He was without arms, and his paint tended rather to soften than increase the natural sternness of his austere countenance. When in full view of the Delawares he stopped, and made a gesture of amity, by throwing his arm upward toward heaven, and then letting it fall impressively on his breast. The inhabitants of the village answered his salute by a low murmur of welcome, and encouraged him to advance by similar indications of friendship. Fortified by these assurances, the dark figure left the brow of the natural rocky terrace, where it had stood a moment, drawn in a strong outline against the blushing morning sky, and moved with dignity into the very center of the huts. As he approached, nothing was audible but the rattling of the light silver ornaments that loaded his arms and neck, and the tinkling of the little bells that fringed his deerskin moccasins. He made, as he advanced, many courteous signs of greeting to the men he passed, neglecting to notice the women, however, like one who deemed their favor, in the present enterprise, of no importance. When he had reached the group in which it was evident, by the haughtiness of their common mien, that the principal chiefs were collected, the stranger paused, and then the Delawares saw that the active and erect form that stood before them was that of the well-known Huron chief, Le Renard Subtil.

During this scene, a man suddenly appeared at the far end of a rocky platform that overlooked the village. He had no arms, and the paint on his face seemed to soften rather than enhance the natural severity of his serious expression. When he was fully visible to the Delawares, he stopped and made a friendly gesture by raising his arm toward the sky and then letting it fall dramatically on his chest. The villagers responded to his greeting with a soft murmur of welcome and encouraged him to come closer with similar signs of friendship. Bolstered by their assurances, the dark figure stepped down from the edge of the natural rock terrace, where he had stood for a moment, sharply silhouetted against the glowing morning sky, and moved with dignity to the center of the huts. As he approached, the only sounds were the clinking of the light silver ornaments on his arms and neck and the tinkling of small bells that lined his deerskin moccasins. He graciously acknowledged the men he passed with courteous gestures, ignoring the women, as if he thought their approval was unimportant for his current mission. When he reached a gathering where it was clear from their proud demeanor that the main chiefs were assembled, the stranger paused, and the Delawares realized that the tall, upright figure standing before them was the well-known Huron chief, Le Renard Subtil.

His reception was grave, silent, and wary. The warriors in front stepped aside, opening the way to their most approved orator by the action; one who spoke all those languages that were cultivated among the northern aborigines.

His welcome was serious, quiet, and cautious. The warriors in front moved aside, clearing the path for their favored speaker by their gesture; someone who was fluent in all the languages spoken by the northern natives.

“The wise Huron is welcome,” said the Delaware, in the language of the Maquas; “he is come to eat his ‘succotash’,[1] with his brothers of the lakes.”

“The wise Huron is welcome,” said the Delaware, in the language of the Maquas; “he has come to eat his 'succotash',[1] with his brothers of the lakes.”

[1] A dish composed of cracked corn and beans. It is much used also by the whites. By corn is meant maise.

[1] A dish made of cracked corn and beans. It's also commonly used by white people. By corn, we mean maize.

“He is come,” repeated Magua, bending his head with the dignity of an eastern prince.

“He has arrived,” repeated Magua, bowing his head with the dignity of an eastern prince.

The chief extended his arm and taking the other by the wrist, they once more exchanged friendly salutations. Then the Delaware invited his guest to enter his own lodge, and share his morning meal. The invitation was accepted; and the two warriors, attended by three or four of the old men, walked calmly away, leaving the rest of the tribe devoured by a desire to understand the reasons of so unusual a visit, and yet not betraying the least impatience by sign or word.

The chief reached out and took the other by the wrist, and they once again exchanged friendly greetings. Then the Delaware invited his guest to come into his lodge and join him for breakfast. The invitation was accepted, and the two warriors, accompanied by three or four of the elders, walked away calmly, leaving the rest of the tribe eager to understand the reasons for such an unusual visit, yet not showing the slightest impatience by any sign or word.

During the short and frugal repast that followed, the conversation was extremely circumspect, and related entirely to the events of the hunt, in which Magua had so lately been engaged. It would have been impossible for the most finished breeding to wear more of the appearance of considering the visit as a thing of course, than did his hosts, notwithstanding every individual present was perfectly aware that it must be connected with some secret object and that probably of importance to themselves. When the appetites of the whole were appeased, the squaws removed the trenchers and gourds, and the two parties began to prepare themselves for a subtle trial of their wits.

During the brief and simple meal that followed, the conversation was very careful and focused entirely on the events of the hunt, which Magua had recently participated in. It would have been impossible for anyone with good manners to appear more casual about the visit than his hosts did, even though everyone present was fully aware that it must be linked to some secret purpose that was probably important to them. Once everyone’s appetites were satisfied, the women cleared away the dishes and the two groups started getting ready for a clever test of their wits.

“Is the face of my great Canada father turned again toward his Huron children?” demanded the orator of the Delawares.

“Is my great Canadian father's face turned once more towards his Huron children?” asked the speaker of the Delawares.

“When was it ever otherwise?” returned Magua. “He calls my people ‘most beloved’.”

“When has it ever been different?” Magua replied. “He refers to my people as ‘most beloved.’”

The Delaware gravely bowed his acquiescence to what he knew to be false, and continued:

The Delaware seriously acknowledged what he knew was untrue and continued:

“The tomahawks of your young men have been very red.”

“The tomahawks of your young men have been very red.”

“It is so; but they are now bright and dull; for the Yengeese are dead, and the Delawares are our neighbors.”

“It is true; but they are now bright and dull; because the Yengeese are gone, and the Delawares are our neighbors.”

The other acknowledged the pacific compliment by a gesture of the hand, and remained silent. Then Magua, as if recalled to such a recollection, by the allusion to the massacre, demanded:

The other acknowledged the calm compliment with a hand gesture and stayed quiet. Then Magua, as if brought back to that memory by the mention of the massacre, asked:

“Does my prisoner give trouble to my brothers?”

“Is my prisoner causing trouble for my brothers?”

“She is welcome.”

"She's welcome."

“The path between the Hurons and the Delawares is short and it is open; let her be sent to my squaws, if she gives trouble to my brother.”

“The route between the Hurons and the Delawares is quick and clear; send her to my women if she causes issues for my brother.”

“She is welcome,” returned the chief of the latter nation, still more emphatically.

“She is welcome,” replied the chief of the latter nation, even more emphatically.

The baffled Magua continued silent several minutes, apparently indifferent, however, to the repulse he had received in this his opening effort to regain possession of Cora.

The confused Magua stayed silent for several minutes, seeming indifferent to the rejection he faced in this first attempt to get Cora back.

“Do my young men leave the Delawares room on the mountains for their hunts?” he at length continued.

“Do my young men leave the Delawares space on the mountains for their hunts?” he finally continued.

“The Lenape are rulers of their own hills,” returned the other a little haughtily.

“The Lenape are in charge of their own hills,” the other replied somewhat arrogantly.

“It is well. Justice is the master of a red-skin. Why should they brighten their tomahawks and sharpen their knives against each other? Are not the pale faces thicker than the swallows in the season of flowers?”

“It’s all good. Justice rules over a Native American. Why should they sharpen their tomahawks and knives against one another? Aren’t the white people more numerous than swallows in the flower season?”

“Good!” exclaimed two or three of his auditors at the same time.

“Good!” exclaimed two or three of his listeners at the same time.

Magua waited a little, to permit his words to soften the feelings of the Delawares, before he added:

Magua waited a bit to allow his words to ease the emotions of the Delawares before he continued:

“Have there not been strange moccasins in the woods? Have not my brothers scented the feet of white men?”

“Have there not been strange moccasins in the woods? Have my brothers not caught the scent of white men?”

“Let my Canada father come,” returned the other, evasively; “his children are ready to see him.”

"Let my Canadian father come," the other responded, avoiding the point; "his kids are eager to see him."

“When the great chief comes, it is to smoke with the Indians in their wigwams. The Hurons say, too, he is welcome. But the Yengeese have long arms, and legs that never tire! My young men dreamed they had seen the trail of the Yengeese nigh the village of the Delawares!”

“When the great chief arrives, it’s to smoke with the Indians in their huts. The Hurons say he is welcome too. But the Yengeese have long arms and legs that never get tired! My young men dreamed they spotted the Yengeese's trail near the village of the Delawares!”

“They will not find the Lenape asleep.”

“They won't find the Lenape asleep.”

“It is well. The warrior whose eye is open can see his enemy,” said Magua, once more shifting his ground, when he found himself unable to penetrate the caution of his companion. “I have brought gifts to my brother. His nation would not go on the warpath, because they did not think it well, but their friends have remembered where they lived.”

“It’s fine. The warrior who is alert can see his enemy,” said Magua, shifting his position again when he realized he couldn’t get past his companion’s caution. “I’ve brought gifts for my brother. His nation didn’t want to go to war because they didn’t think it was a good idea, but their friends have remembered where they lived.”

When he had thus announced his liberal intention, the crafty chief arose, and gravely spread his presents before the dazzled eyes of his hosts. They consisted principally of trinkets of little value, plundered from the slaughtered females of William Henry. In the division of the baubles the cunning Huron discovered no less art than in their selection. While he bestowed those of greater value on the two most distinguished warriors, one of whom was his host, he seasoned his offerings to their inferiors with such well-timed and apposite compliments, as left them no ground of complaint. In short, the whole ceremony contained such a happy blending of the profitable with the flattering, that it was not difficult for the donor immediately to read the effect of a generosity so aptly mingled with praise, in the eyes of those he addressed.

When he announced his generous intention, the sly chief stood up and seriously displayed his gifts before the amazed eyes of his hosts. They mainly consisted of trinkets of little value, taken from the slaughtered women of William Henry. In distributing the baubles, the clever Huron showed just as much skill as in their selection. While he gave the more valuable items to the two most distinguished warriors, one of whom was his host, he paired his lesser gifts to the others with such well-timed and fitting compliments that they had no reason to complain. In short, the whole ceremony featured such a perfect mix of the beneficial with the flattering that it was easy for the giver to see the impact of his generosity, so skillfully combined with praise, in the eyes of those he addressed.

This well-judged and politic stroke on the part of Magua was not without instantaneous results. The Delawares lost their gravity in a much more cordial expression; and the host, in particular, after contemplating his own liberal share of the spoil for some moments with peculiar gratification, repeated with strong emphasis, the words:

This carefully considered and strategic move by Magua had immediate effects. The Delawares lost their serious demeanor and showed a much friendlier attitude; and the host, in particular, after looking at his generous portion of the loot for a while with specific pleasure, repeated with strong emphasis, the words:

“My brother is a wise chief. He is welcome.”

"My brother is a wise leader. He is appreciated."

“The Hurons love their friends the Delawares,” returned Magua. “Why should they not? they are colored by the same sun, and their just men will hunt in the same grounds after death. The red-skins should be friends, and look with open eyes on the white men. Has not my brother scented spies in the woods?”

“The Hurons care about their friends the Delawares,” Magua replied. “Why wouldn’t they? They’re warmed by the same sun, and their honorable people will hunt in the same places after they die. The Native Americans should be allies and see the white men for who they really are. Didn’t my brother spot spies in the woods?”

The Delaware, whose name in English signified “Hard Heart,” an appellation that the French had translated into “le Coeur-dur,” forgot that obduracy of purpose, which had probably obtained him so significant a title. His countenance grew very sensibly less stern and he now deigned to answer more directly.

The Delaware, whose name in English meant "Hard Heart," a title that the French translated as "le Coeur-dur," forgot that stubbornness of purpose that likely earned him such a significant name. His face noticeably softened, and he now chose to respond more directly.

“There have been strange moccasins about my camp. They have been tracked into my lodges.”

“There have been unusual moccasins around my camp. They've been found tracked into my lodges.”

“Did my brother beat out the dogs?” asked Magua, without adverting in any manner to the former equivocation of the chief.

"Did my brother outsmart the dogs?" asked Magua, without acknowledging the chief's earlier ambiguity.

“It would not do. The stranger is always welcome to the children of the Lenape.”

“It wouldn’t be right. The stranger is always welcome among the children of the Lenape.”

“The stranger, but not the spy.”

“The stranger, but not the spy.”

“Would the Yengeese send their women as spies? Did not the Huron chief say he took women in the battle?”

“Would the Yankees send their women as spies? Didn’t the Huron chief say he captured women in the battle?”

“He told no lie. The Yengeese have sent out their scouts. They have been in my wigwams, but they found there no one to say welcome. Then they fled to the Delawares—for, say they, the Delawares are our friends; their minds are turned from their Canada father!”

“He told no lie. The English have sent out their scouts. They have been in my camps, but they found no one to say welcome. Then they ran to the Delawares—claiming that the Delawares are our friends; their loyalty has shifted from their Canadian leader!”

This insinuation was a home thrust, and one that in a more advanced state of society would have entitled Magua to the reputation of a skillful diplomatist. The recent defection of the tribe had, as they well knew themselves, subjected the Delawares to much reproach among their French allies; and they were now made to feel that their future actions were to be regarded with jealousy and distrust. There was no deep insight into causes and effects necessary to foresee that such a situation of things was likely to prove highly prejudicial to their future movements. Their distant villages, their hunting-grounds and hundreds of their women and children, together with a material part of their physical force, were actually within the limits of the French territory. Accordingly, this alarming annunciation was received, as Magua intended, with manifest disapprobation, if not with alarm.

This suggestion was a direct hit, and in a more advanced society, it would have earned Magua the reputation of a skilled diplomat. The recent defection of the tribe had, as they knew, brought the Delawares a lot of shame among their French allies; and now they realized that their future actions would be viewed with jealousy and distrust. It didn't take deep insight to see that this situation was likely to have a negative impact on their future movements. Their distant villages, hunting grounds, and hundreds of their women and children, along with a significant part of their fighting force, were actually within French territory. Therefore, this alarming announcement was received, just as Magua intended, with clear disapproval, if not outright fear.

“Let my father look in my face,” said Le Coeur-dur; “he will see no change. It is true, my young men did not go out on the war-path; they had dreams for not doing so. But they love and venerate the great white chief.”

“Let my father look at my face,” said Le Coeur-dur; “he will see no change. It's true, my young men didn’t go out to fight; they had their reasons for staying back. But they love and respect the great white chief.”

“Will he think so when he hears that his greatest enemy is fed in the camp of his children? When he is told a bloody Yengee smokes at your fire? That the pale face who has slain so many of his friends goes in and out among the Delawares? Go! my great Canada father is not a fool!”

“Will he still think that way when he finds out his biggest enemy is being fed in the camp of his children? When he hears that a bloody Yengee is smoking at your fire? That the pale man who has killed so many of his friends is moving freely among the Delawares? Go! My great Canada father is not an idiot!”

“Where is the Yengee that the Delawares fear?” returned the other; “who has slain my young men? Who is the mortal enemy of my Great Father?”

“Where is the Yengee that the Delawares fear?” replied the other; “who has killed my young men? Who is the mortal enemy of my Great Father?”

“La Longue Carabine!”

"Long Rifle!"

The Delaware warriors started at the well-known name, betraying by their amazement, that they now learned, for the first time, one so famous among the Indian allies of France was within their power.

The Delaware warriors began at the well-known name, showing their surprise that they were now learning, for the first time, that someone so famous among the French Indian allies was within their reach.

“What does my brother mean?” demanded Le Coeur-dur, in a tone that, by its wonder, far exceeded the usual apathy of his race.

“What does my brother mean?” asked Le Coeur-dur, in a tone that, filled with curiosity, far surpassed the usual indifference of his people.

“A Huron never lies!” returned Magua, coldly, leaning his head against the side of the lodge, and drawing his slight robe across his tawny breast. “Let the Delawares count their prisoners; they will find one whose skin is neither red nor pale.”

“A Huron never lies!” Magua replied coldly, leaning his head against the side of the lodge and pulling his thin robe across his tan chest. “Let the Delawares count their prisoners; they will find one whose skin is neither red nor white.”

A long and musing pause succeeded. The chief consulted apart with his companions, and messengers despatched to collect certain others of the most distinguished men of the tribe.

A long and thoughtful pause followed. The chief spoke privately with his companions, and messengers were sent to gather some of the most prominent members of the tribe.

As warrior after warrior dropped in, they were each made acquainted, in turn, with the important intelligence that Magua had just communicated. The air of surprise, and the usual low, deep, guttural exclamation, were common to them all. The news spread from mouth to mouth, until the whole encampment became powerfully agitated. The women suspended their labors, to catch such syllables as unguardedly fell from the lips of the consulting warriors. The boys deserted their sports, and walking fearlessly among their fathers, looked up in curious admiration, as they heard the brief exclamations of wonder they so freely expressed the temerity of their hated foe. In short, every occupation was abandoned for the time, and all other pursuits seemed discarded in order that the tribe might freely indulge, after their own peculiar manner, in an open expression of feeling.

As one warrior after another arrived, each was informed, in turn, about the critical news that Magua had just shared. A shared look of shock and the usual low, deep, guttural sounds marked their reactions. The news spread quickly from person to person until the whole camp became highly agitated. The women paused their work to catch any snippets that accidentally slipped from the warriors’ discussions. The boys left their games and, walking confidently among their fathers, looked up in curious admiration as they heard the brief exclamations of surprise regarding the boldness of their despised enemy. In short, all activities were put on hold, and other pursuits were set aside so the tribe could fully engage, in their own unique way, in an open display of emotion.

When the excitement had a little abated, the old men disposed themselves seriously to consider that which it became the honor and safety of their tribe to perform, under circumstances of so much delicacy and embarrassment. During all these movements, and in the midst of the general commotion, Magua had not only maintained his seat, but the very attitude he had originally taken, against the side of the lodge, where he continued as immovable, and, apparently, as unconcerned, as if he had no interest in the result. Not a single indication of the future intentions of his hosts, however, escaped his vigilant eyes. With his consummate knowledge of the nature of the people with whom he had to deal, he anticipated every measure on which they decided; and it might almost be said, that, in many instances, he knew their intentions, even before they became known to themselves.

When the excitement had calmed down a bit, the older men took a moment to seriously consider what would honor and protect their tribe in such delicate and challenging circumstances. Throughout all the commotion, Magua not only kept his seat but also the same position he initially had against the side of the lodge, where he remained as still and seemingly uninterested as if he had no stake in the outcome. However, not a single hint of his hosts' future plans escaped his watchful gaze. With his deep understanding of the people he was dealing with, he anticipated every decision they made; it could almost be said that, in many cases, he knew their intentions even before they realized them themselves.

The council of the Delawares was short. When it was ended, a general bustle announced that it was to be immediately succeeded by a solemn and formal assemblage of the nation. As such meetings were rare, and only called on occasions of the last importance, the subtle Huron, who still sat apart, a wily and dark observer of the proceedings, now knew that all his projects must be brought to their final issue. He, therefore, left the lodge and walked silently forth to the place, in front of the encampment, whither the warriors were already beginning to collect.

The council of the Delawares was brief. When it concluded, a general flurry signaled that it would be immediately followed by a serious and formal gathering of the nation. Since these meetings were rare and only called for significant occasions, the clever Huron, who remained on the sidelines as a keen and watchful observer of what was happening, now realized that all his plans had to come to a conclusion. He then left the lodge and quietly walked to the area in front of the encampment, where the warriors were already starting to gather.

It might have been half an hour before each individual, including even the women and children, was in his place. The delay had been created by the grave preparations that were deemed necessary to so solemn and unusual a conference. But when the sun was seen climbing above the tops of that mountain, against whose bosom the Delawares had constructed their encampment, most were seated; and as his bright rays darted from behind the outline of trees that fringed the eminence, they fell upon as grave, as attentive, and as deeply interested a multitude, as was probably ever before lighted by his morning beams. Its number somewhat exceeded a thousand souls.

It may have taken about half an hour for everyone, including the women and children, to take their places. The delay was due to the serious preparations that were considered necessary for such a solemn and unusual meeting. But when the sun started rising above the peaks of the mountain where the Delawares had set up their camp, most people were seated. As its bright rays broke through the trees lining the hilltop, they illuminated a crowd that was as serious, attentive, and deeply interested as any that had ever been warmed by the morning light. The group numbered just over a thousand people.

In a collection of so serious savages, there is never to be found any impatient aspirant after premature distinction, standing ready to move his auditors to some hasty, and, perhaps, injudicious discussion, in order that his own reputation may be the gainer. An act of so much precipitancy and presumption would seal the downfall of precocious intellect forever. It rested solely with the oldest and most experienced of the men to lay the subject of the conference before the people. Until such a one chose to make some movement, no deeds in arms, no natural gifts, nor any renown as an orator, would have justified the slightest interruption. On the present occasion, the aged warrior whose privilege it was to speak, was silent, seemingly oppressed with the magnitude of his subject. The delay had already continued long beyond the usual deliberative pause that always preceded a conference; but no sign of impatience or surprise escaped even the youngest boy. Occasionally an eye was raised from the earth, where the looks of most were riveted, and strayed toward a particular lodge, that was, however, in no manner distinguished from those around it, except in the peculiar care that had been taken to protect it against the assaults of the weather.

In a group of such serious people, there's never someone eager for instant fame, ready to rush his audience into a hasty and possibly unwise discussion just to boost his own reputation. An act of such rashness and arrogance would ruin the future of any young intellect forever. It was entirely up to the oldest and most experienced man to present the topic of the meeting to the crowd. Until he decided to make a move, no feats in battle, natural talents, or fame as a speaker would justify even the slightest interruption. On this occasion, the elderly warrior who had the right to speak was quiet, seemingly weighed down by the importance of the topic. The wait had already stretched far beyond the usual pause that always came before a meeting; yet, there was no sign of impatience or surprise even from the youngest boy. Occasionally, someone would glance away from the ground, where most were focused, and look toward a specific lodge, which wasn’t distinguishable from the others except for the special care taken to shield it from the elements.

At length one of those low murmurs, that are so apt to disturb a multitude, was heard, and the whole nation arose to their feet by a common impulse. At that instant the door of the lodge in question opened, and three men, issuing from it, slowly approached the place of consultation. They were all aged, even beyond that period to which the oldest present had reached; but one in the center, who leaned on his companions for support, had numbered an amount of years to which the human race is seldom permitted to attain. His frame, which had once been tall and erect, like the cedar, was now bending under the pressure of more than a century. The elastic, light step of an Indian was gone, and in its place he was compelled to toil his tardy way over the ground, inch by inch. His dark, wrinkled countenance was in singular and wild contrast with the long white locks which floated on his shoulders, in such thickness, as to announce that generations had probably passed away since they had last been shorn.

Eventually, one of those low murmurs, which often disrupt a crowd, was heard, and the entire nation stood up together. At that moment, the door of the lodge opened, and three men slowly made their way to the consultation area. They were all aged, even beyond the years of the oldest person present; but the one in the center, who leaned on his companions for support, had lived a lifespan that humans rarely attain. His once tall and straight frame, reminiscent of a cedar tree, was now stooped under the weight of more than a century. The light, agile step of a Native American was gone, replaced by a painstakingly slow progress, moving inch by inch. His dark, wrinkled face contrasted sharply with the long white hair that cascaded over his shoulders, thick enough to suggest that generations had likely passed since it was last cut.

The dress of this patriarch—for such, considering his vast age, in conjunction with his affinity and influence with his people, he might very properly be termed—was rich and imposing, though strictly after the simple fashions of the tribe. His robe was of the finest skins, which had been deprived of their fur, in order to admit of a hieroglyphical representation of various deeds in arms, done in former ages. His bosom was loaded with medals, some in massive silver, and one or two even in gold, the gifts of various Christian potentates during the long period of his life. He also wore armlets, and cinctures above the ankles, of the latter precious metal. His head, on the whole of which the hair had been permitted to grow, the pursuits of war having so long been abandoned, was encircled by a sort of plated diadem, which, in its turn, bore lesser and more glittering ornaments, that sparkled amid the glossy hues of three drooping ostrich feathers, dyed a deep black, in touching contrast to the color of his snow-white locks. His tomahawk was nearly hid in silver, and the handle of his knife shone like a horn of solid gold.

The attire of this elder—he could definitely be called that given his great age and his bond and influence with his people—was luxurious and striking, though it followed the simple styles of the tribe. His robe was made from the finest skins, which had been stripped of their fur to showcase a symbolic depiction of various warrior accomplishments from the past. His chest was adorned with medals, some made of heavy silver, and a few even in gold, gifts from various Christian rulers throughout his long life. He also wore armlets and bands above his ankles made of gold. His head, where his hair was allowed to grow naturally since he had long since put aside the ways of war, was wrapped with a kind of plated crown that held smaller, shinier decorations, sparkling among the glossy tones of three drooping ostrich feathers dyed a deep black, providing a striking contrast to his snow-white hair. His tomahawk was mostly covered in silver, and the handle of his knife gleamed like a solid gold horn.

So soon as the first hum of emotion and pleasure, which the sudden appearance of this venerated individual created, had a little subsided, the name of “Tamenund” was whispered from mouth to mouth. Magua had often heard the fame of this wise and just Delaware; a reputation that even proceeded so far as to bestow on him the rare gift of holding secret communion with the Great Spirit, and which has since transmitted his name, with some slight alteration, to the white usurpers of his ancient territory, as the imaginary tutelar saint[2] of a vast empire. The Huron chief, therefore, stepped eagerly out a little from the throng, to a spot whence he might catch a nearer glimpse of the features of the man, whose decision was likely to produce so deep an influence on his own fortunes.

As the initial buzz of excitement and joy from the sudden arrival of this respected figure began to fade, the name “Tamenund” was quietly passed from person to person. Magua had often heard about the renown of this wise and fair Delaware; a reputation that even suggested he had the rare ability to communicate quietly with the Great Spirit. This has since altered his name slightly, which the white settlers now use to reference the fictional protector saint of their vast empire. The Huron chief, therefore, stepped forward eagerly from the crowd to a spot where he could get a better look at the face of the man whose decisions would likely have a significant impact on his own future.

[2] The Americans sometimes called their tutelar saint Tamenay, a corruption of the name of the renowned chief here introduced. There are many traditions which speak of the character and power of Tamenund.

[2] The Americans sometimes referred to their guardian saint as Tamenay, a variation of the name of the famous chief introduced here. There are numerous stories that describe the character and power of Tamenund.

The eyes of the old man were closed, as though the organs were wearied with having so long witnessed the selfish workings of the human passions. The color of his skin differed from that of most around him, being richer and darker, the latter having been produced by certain delicate and mazy lines of complicated and yet beautiful figures, which had been traced over most of his person by the operation of tattooing. Notwithstanding the position of the Huron, he passed the observant and silent Magua without notice, and leaning on his two venerable supporters proceeded to the high place of the multitude, where he seated himself in the center of his nation, with the dignity of a monarch and the air of a father.

The old man had his eyes closed, as if they were tired from witnessing the selfish behaviors of human emotions for so long. His skin tone was different from most around him, richer and darker, marked by intricate and beautiful tattoo patterns that decorated much of his body. Despite being a Huron, he ignored the watchful Magua and, leaning on his two elderly companions, made his way to the center of the crowd, where he sat among his people with the dignity of a king and the presence of a father.

Nothing could surpass the reverence and affection with which this unexpected visit from one who belongs rather to another world than to this, was received by his people. After a suitable and decent pause, the principal chiefs arose, and, approaching the patriarch, they placed his hands reverently on their heads, seeming to entreat a blessing. The younger men were content with touching his robe, or even drawing nigh his person, in order to breathe in the atmosphere of one so aged, so just, and so valiant. None but the most distinguished among the youthful warriors even presumed so far as to perform the latter ceremony, the great mass of the multitude deeming it a sufficient happiness to look upon a form so deeply venerated, and so well beloved. When these acts of affection and respect were performed, the chiefs drew back again to their several places, and silence reigned in the whole encampment.

Nothing could match the respect and warmth with which the unexpected visit from someone who feels more from another world than this was received by his people. After an appropriate pause, the main chiefs stood up and, approaching the elder, placed his hands gently on their heads, seemingly asking for a blessing. The younger men were satisfied with touching his robe or even getting close to his person, wanting to soak in the presence of someone so old, so righteous, and so brave. Only the most distinguished young warriors dared to go so far as to perform the latter act, while the majority of the crowd felt it was enough just to gaze upon the form of someone so deeply revered and well-loved. Once these gestures of affection and respect were completed, the chiefs returned to their places, and silence fell over the entire camp.

After a short delay, a few of the young men, to whom instructions had been whispered by one of the aged attendants of Tamenund, arose, left the crowd, and entered the lodge which has already been noted as the object of so much attention throughout that morning. In a few minutes they reappeared, escorting the individuals who had caused all these solemn preparations toward the seat of judgment. The crowd opened in a lane; and when the party had re-entered, it closed in again, forming a large and dense belt of human bodies, arranged in an open circle.

After a brief wait, a few young men, who had received whispered instructions from one of Tamenund's older attendants, stood up, left the crowd, and entered the lodge that had drawn so much attention that morning. A few minutes later, they came back out, escorting the individuals who had sparked all these serious preparations to the judgment seat. The crowd parted to create a path, and once the group had re-entered, it closed in again, forming a large, tight circle of people.

CHAPTER XXIX.

“The assembly seated, rising o’er the rest,
Achilles thus the king of men addressed.”
—Pope’s Illiad

“The assembly settled down, standing out from the crowd,
Achilles spoke to the king of men.”
—Pope’s Iliad

Cora stood foremost among the prisoners, entwining her arms in those of Alice, in the tenderness of sisterly love. Notwithstanding the fearful and menacing array of savages on every side of her, no apprehension on her own account could prevent the nobler-minded maiden from keeping her eyes fastened on the pale and anxious features of the trembling Alice. Close at their side stood Heyward, with an interest in both, that, at such a moment of intense uncertainty, scarcely knew a preponderance in favor of her whom he most loved. Hawkeye had placed himself a little in the rear, with a deference to the superior rank of his companions, that no similarity in the state of their present fortunes could induce him to forget. Uncas was not there.

Cora stood at the front of the group of prisoners, wrapping her arms around Alice in a show of sisterly love. Despite the terrifying and threatening presence of hostile warriors surrounding her, the brave young woman didn’t let her own fear stop her from focusing on Alice's pale, worried face. Right beside them was Heyward, equally concerned for both women, unsure whom to care for more in such a moment of great uncertainty. Hawkeye had positioned himself a bit further back, showing respect for the higher status of his companions, which he refused to overlook even in their shared predicament. Uncas wasn’t there.

When perfect silence was again restored, and after the usual long, impressive pause, one of the two aged chiefs who sat at the side of the patriarch arose, and demanded aloud, in very intelligible English:

When perfect silence was restored, and after the usual long, dramatic pause, one of the two elderly chiefs sitting next to the patriarch stood up and asked loudly, in clear English:

“Which of my prisoners is La Longue Carabine?”

“Which one of my prisoners is La Longue Carabine?”

Neither Duncan nor the scout answered. The former, however, glanced his eyes around the dark and silent assembly, and recoiled a pace, when they fell on the malignant visage of Magua. He saw, at once, that this wily savage had some secret agency in their present arraignment before the nation, and determined to throw every possible impediment in the way of the execution of his sinister plans. He had witnessed one instance of the summary punishments of the Indians, and now dreaded that his companion was to be selected for a second. In this dilemma, with little or no time for reflection, he suddenly determined to cloak his invaluable friend, at any or every hazard to himself. Before he had time, however, to speak, the question was repeated in a louder voice, and with a clearer utterance.

Neither Duncan nor the scout replied. However, Duncan glanced around the dark and silent crowd and took a step back when his gaze landed on the malicious face of Magua. He immediately realized that this cunning savage was somehow involved in their current situation before the nation and resolved to put every possible obstacle in the way of his evil plans. He had seen one example of the swift punishments handed out by the Indians and now feared that his companion was about to be chosen for another. In this crisis, with little time to think, he suddenly decided to protect his invaluable friend, no matter the risk to himself. Before he could speak, though, the question was asked again, louder and clearer.

“Give us arms,” the young man haughtily replied, “and place us in yonder woods. Our deeds shall speak for us!”

“Give us weapons,” the young man confidently replied, “and put us in those woods over there. Our actions will speak for us!”

“This is the warrior whose name has filled our ears!” returned the chief, regarding Heyward with that sort of curious interest which seems inseparable from man, when first beholding one of his fellows to whom merit or accident, virtue or crime, has given notoriety. “What has brought the white man into the camp of the Delawares?”

“This is the warrior whose name we’ve heard so much about!” replied the chief, looking at Heyward with that kind of curious interest that comes naturally to a person when first seeing someone who's gained attention for their achievements or misdeeds. “What’s brought the white man into the camp of the Delawares?”

“My necessities. I come for food, shelter, and friends.”

"My needs. I’m here for food, a place to stay, and companionship."

“It cannot be. The woods are full of game. The head of a warrior needs no other shelter than a sky without clouds; and the Delawares are the enemies, and not the friends of the Yengeese. Go, the mouth has spoken, while the heart said nothing.”

“It can’t be. The woods are full of game. A warrior doesn’t need anything more than a clear sky for shelter; the Delawares are the enemies, not the friends, of the Yengeese. Go, the mouth has spoken, while the heart said nothing.”

Duncan, a little at a loss in what manner to proceed, remained silent; but the scout, who had listened attentively to all that passed, now advanced steadily to the front.

Duncan, unsure of how to proceed, stayed quiet; but the scout, who had been paying close attention to everything that happened, stepped forward confidently.

“That I did not answer to the call for La Longue Carabine, was not owing either to shame or fear,” he said, “for neither one nor the other is the gift of an honest man. But I do not admit the right of the Mingoes to bestow a name on one whose friends have been mindful of his gifts, in this particular; especially as their title is a lie, ‘killdeer’ being a grooved barrel and no carabyne. I am the man, however, that got the name of Nathaniel from my kin; the compliment of Hawkeye from the Delawares, who live on their own river; and whom the Iroquois have presumed to style the ‘Long Rifle’, without any warranty from him who is most concerned in the matter.”

“That I didn’t respond to the call for La Longue Carabine wasn’t due to shame or fear,” he said, “because neither of those feelings belong to an honest man. But I don’t accept the Mingoes' right to give a name to someone whose friends appreciate his talents in this way; especially since their title is a lie, as ‘killdeer’ refers to a grooved barrel, not a carabine. I’m the one who received the name Nathaniel from my family; the compliment of Hawkeye from the Delawares, who inhabit their own river; and who have wrongly referred to me as the ‘Long Rifle’ without any approval from the person most involved in this matter.”

The eyes of all present, which had hitherto been gravely scanning the person of Duncan, were now turned, on the instant, toward the upright iron frame of this new pretender to the distinguished appellation. It was in no degree remarkable that there should be found two who were willing to claim so great an honor, for impostors, though rare, were not unknown among the natives; but it was altogether material to the just and severe intentions of the Delawares, that there should be no mistake in the matter. Some of their old men consulted together in private, and then, as it would seem, they determined to interrogate their visitor on the subject.

The eyes of everyone there, who had been seriously examining Duncan, quickly shifted to the tall iron figure of this new claimant to the esteemed title. It wasn’t surprising that two people would want to claim such an honor, as impostors, though uncommon, were not unheard of among the natives; but it was crucial for the serious intentions of the Delawares that there was no confusion in this situation. Some of the elders gathered to discuss privately, and then it seemed they decided to question their visitor about this matter.

“My brother has said that a snake crept into my camp,” said the chief to Magua; “which is he?”

“My brother said that a snake got into my camp,” the chief said to Magua; “which one is it?”

The Huron pointed to the scout.

The Huron pointed at the scout.

“Will a wise Delaware believe the barking of a wolf?” exclaimed Duncan, still more confirmed in the evil intentions of his ancient enemy: “a dog never lies, but when was a wolf known to speak the truth?”

“Will a wise Delaware believe the barking of a wolf?” shouted Duncan, even more convinced of his old enemy's bad intentions. “A dog never lies, but when has a wolf ever told the truth?”

The eyes of Magua flashed fire; but suddenly recollecting the necessity of maintaining his presence of mind, he turned away in silent disdain, well assured that the sagacity of the Indians would not fail to extract the real merits of the point in controversy. He was not deceived; for, after another short consultation, the wary Delaware turned to him again, and expressed the determination of the chiefs, though in the most considerate language.

The eyes of Magua burned with intensity; but suddenly remembering the need to stay calm, he looked away in silent contempt, confident that the wisdom of the Indians would reveal the true merits of the issue at hand. He was not mistaken; after another brief discussion, the cautious Delaware turned back to him and conveyed the chiefs' decision, though in the most respectful terms.

“My brother has been called a liar,” he said, “and his friends are angry. They will show that he has spoken the truth. Give my prisoners guns, and let them prove which is the man.”

“My brother has been called a liar,” he said, “and his friends are upset. They will demonstrate that he has told the truth. Give my prisoners guns, and let them prove who the real man is.”

Magua affected to consider the expedient, which he well knew proceeded from distrust of himself, as a compliment, and made a gesture of acquiescence, well content that his veracity should be supported by so skillful a marksman as the scout. The weapons were instantly placed in the hands of the friendly opponents, and they were bid to fire, over the heads of the seated multitude, at an earthen vessel, which lay, by accident, on a stump, some fifty yards from the place where they stood.

Magua pretended to view the suggestion, which he knew was rooted in the distrust of him, as a compliment, and he nodded in agreement, pleased that his honesty would be backed by such a skilled shooter as the scout. The weapons were quickly handed to the friendly opponents, and they were instructed to fire over the heads of the seated crowd at an earthen vessel that just happened to be sitting on a stump about fifty yards away from where they stood.

Heyward smiled to himself at the idea of a competition with the scout, though he determined to persevere in the deception, until apprised of the real designs of Magua.

Heyward smiled to himself at the thought of competing with the scout, though he decided to keep up the deception until he understood Magua's true intentions.

Raising his rifle with the utmost care, and renewing his aim three several times, he fired. The bullet cut the wood within a few inches of the vessel; and a general exclamation of satisfaction announced that the shot was considered a proof of great skill in the use of a weapon. Even Hawkeye nodded his head, as if he would say, it was better than he expected. But, instead of manifesting an intention to contend with the successful marksman, he stood leaning on his rifle for more than a minute, like a man who was completely buried in thought. From this reverie, he was, however, awakened by one of the young Indians who had furnished the arms, and who now touched his shoulder, saying in exceedingly broken English:

Raising his rifle with great care and adjusting his aim three times, he fired. The bullet struck the wood just a few inches from the vessel, and a collective cheer of approval indicated that the shot was seen as a display of impressive marksmanship. Even Hawkeye nodded, as if to say it was better than he anticipated. Instead of showing any desire to challenge the successful shooter, he leaned on his rifle for over a minute, lost in thought. He was pulled from this trance by one of the young Indians who had supplied the weapons, who now tapped his shoulder and spoke in heavily accented English:

“Can the pale face beat it?”

“Can the pale face handle it?”

“Yes, Huron!” exclaimed the scout, raising the short rifle in his right hand, and shaking it at Magua, with as much apparent ease as if it were a reed; “yes, Huron, I could strike you now, and no power on earth could prevent the deed! The soaring hawk is not more certain of the dove than I am this moment of you, did I choose to send a bullet to your heart! Why should I not? Why!—because the gifts of my color forbid it, and I might draw down evil on tender and innocent heads. If you know such a being as God, thank Him, therefore, in your inward soul; for you have reason!”

“Yeah, Huron!” the scout shouted, raising the short rifle in his right hand and shaking it at Magua as easily as if it were a twig. “Yeah, Huron, I could take you out right now, and no one on earth could stop me! The soaring hawk is no more certain of the dove than I am sure of you at this moment, if I decided to send a bullet to your heart! Why shouldn’t I? Why!—because my people’s values stop me, and I could bring harm to innocent and vulnerable lives. If you know a being like God, thank Him in your heart; you have every reason to!”

The flushed countenance, angry eye and swelling figure of the scout, produced a sensation of secret awe in all that heard him. The Delawares held their breath in expectation; but Magua himself, even while he distrusted the forbearance of his enemy, remained immovable and calm, where he stood wedged in by the crowd, as one who grew to the spot.

The flushed face, angry eyes, and towering figure of the scout created a feeling of quiet fear in everyone who heard him. The Delawares were on edge, waiting for what would happen next; however, Magua, even though he doubted his enemy's patience, stayed completely still and unbothered, trapped in the crowd as if he were rooted to the ground.

“Beat it,” repeated the young Delaware at the elbow of the scout.

“Get lost,” repeated the young Delaware at the scout's side.

“Beat what, fool!—what?” exclaimed Hawkeye, still flourishing the weapon angrily above his head, though his eye no longer sought the person of Magua.

“Beat what, fool!—what?” shouted Hawkeye, still waving the weapon angrily above his head, even though his gaze no longer searched for Magua.

“If the white man is the warrior he pretends,” said the aged chief, “let him strike nigher to the mark.”

“If the white man is the warrior he claims to be,” said the old chief, “then let him aim closer to the target.”

The scout laughed aloud—a noise that produced the startling effect of an unnatural sound on Heyward; then dropping the piece, heavily, into his extended left hand, it was discharged, apparently by the shock, driving the fragments of the vessel into the air, and scattering them on every side. Almost at the same instant, the rattling sound of the rifle was heard, as he suffered it to fall, contemptuously, to the earth.

The scout laughed out loud—his laugh startling Heyward like an unnatural sound; then he dropped the gun heavily into his outstretched left hand, causing it to go off, apparently from the impact, blasting pieces of the weapon into the air and scattering them everywhere. Almost at the same moment, the sharp sound of the rifle was heard as he let it fall, showing his disdain, to the ground.

The first impression of so strange a scene was engrossing admiration. Then a low, but increasing murmur, ran through the multitude, and finally swelled into sounds that denoted a lively opposition in the sentiments of the spectators. While some openly testified their satisfaction at so unexampled dexterity, by far the larger portion of the tribe were inclined to believe the success of the shot was the result of accident. Heyward was not slow to confirm an opinion that was so favorable to his own pretensions.

The first impression of such a strange scene was captivating admiration. Then a low, but growing murmur, spread through the crowd, eventually rising into sounds that showed a strong divide in the feelings of the spectators. While some openly expressed their satisfaction at such unmatched skill, the majority of the group leaned toward believing that the success of the shot was just a fluke. Heyward quickly endorsed an opinion that was so favorable to his own claims.

“It was chance!” he exclaimed; “none can shoot without an aim!”

“It was luck!” he shouted; “you can’t hit a target without aiming!”

“Chance!” echoed the excited woodsman, who was now stubbornly bent on maintaining his identity at every hazard, and on whom the secret hints of Heyward to acquiesce in the deception were entirely lost. “Does yonder lying Huron, too, think it chance? Give him another gun, and place us face to face, without cover or dodge, and let Providence, and our own eyes, decide the matter atween us! I do not make the offer, to you, major; for our blood is of a color, and we serve the same master.”

“Chance!” echoed the excited woodsman, who was now determined to defend his identity no matter what and didn't catch Heyward's subtle hints to go along with the deception. “Does that lying Huron think it's chance too? Give him another gun, and let us face each other, without any cover or tricks, and let fate, along with our own eyes, settle the matter between us! I'm not making this offer to you, Major; because our blood is the same color, and we serve the same master.”

“That the Huron is a liar, is very evident,” returned Heyward, coolly; “you have yourself heard him assert you to be La Longue Carabine.”

“That the Huron is a liar is very clear,” Heyward replied calmly; “you heard him claim that you are La Longue Carabine.”

It were impossible to say what violent assertion the stubborn Hawkeye would have next made, in his headlong wish to vindicate his identity, had not the aged Delaware once more interposed.

It would have been impossible to say what bold statement the stubborn Hawkeye would have made next in his reckless desire to prove his identity if the elderly Delaware hadn't stepped in once more.

“The hawk which comes from the clouds can return when he will,” he said; “give them the guns.”

“The hawk that comes from the clouds can return whenever he wants,” he said; “give them the guns.”

This time the scout seized the rifle with avidity; nor had Magua, though he watched the movements of the marksman with jealous eyes, any further cause for apprehension.

This time the scout grabbed the rifle eagerly; nor did Magua, even though he watched the marksman's actions with jealousy, have any more reason to worry.

“Now let it be proved, in the face of this tribe of Delawares, which is the better man,” cried the scout, tapping the butt of his piece with that finger which had pulled so many fatal triggers.

“Now let’s prove, in front of this group of Delawares, who the better man is,” shouted the scout, tapping the end of his weapon with the finger that had pulled so many deadly triggers.

“You see that gourd hanging against yonder tree, major; if you are a marksman fit for the borders, let me see you break its shell!”

“You see that gourd hanging on that tree, Major; if you’re a marksman worthy of the borders, show me you can break its shell!”

Duncan noted the object, and prepared himself to renew the trial. The gourd was one of the usual little vessels used by the Indians, and it was suspended from a dead branch of a small pine, by a thong of deerskin, at the full distance of a hundred yards. So strangely compounded is the feeling of self-love, that the young soldier, while he knew the utter worthlessness of the suffrages of his savage umpires, forgot the sudden motives of the contest in a wish to excel. It had been seen, already, that his skill was far from being contemptible, and he now resolved to put forth its nicest qualities. Had his life depended on the issue, the aim of Duncan could not have been more deliberate or guarded. He fired; and three or four young Indians, who sprang forward at the report, announced with a shout, that the ball was in the tree, a very little on one side of the proper object. The warriors uttered a common ejaculation of pleasure, and then turned their eyes, inquiringly, on the movements of his rival.

Duncan noticed the object and got ready to try again. The gourd was one of the typical little containers used by the Indians, hanging from a dead branch of a small pine by a strip of deerskin, at a full distance of a hundred yards. So oddly mixed is the feeling of self-love that the young soldier, while recognizing the complete uselessness of the opinions of his savage judges, forgot the sudden reasons for the contest in a desire to show off. It was already clear that his skill was far from insignificant, and he now decided to showcase its finest qualities. If his life had depended on the outcome, Duncan's aim couldn't have been more careful or precise. He fired, and three or four young Indians rushed forward at the sound, shouting that the ball had hit the tree, just a little off from the target. The warriors let out a collective shout of approval and then turned their eyes, curiously, towards the actions of his opponent.

“It may do for the Royal Americans!” said Hawkeye, laughing once more in his own silent, heartfelt manner; “but had my gun often turned so much from the true line, many a marten, whose skin is now in a lady’s muff, would still be in the woods; ay, and many a bloody Mingo, who has departed to his final account, would be acting his deviltries at this very day, atween the provinces. I hope the squaw who owns the gourd has more of them in her wigwam, for this will never hold water again!”

“It might work for the Royal Americans!” Hawkeye said, laughing again in his own quiet, genuine way. “But if my gun had strayed from the true line that often, a lot of martens, whose skins are now in a lady’s muff, would still be roaming the woods; and many a bloody Mingo, who has gone to his final resting place, would still be causing trouble today between the provinces. I hope the woman who owns the gourd has more of them in her home, because this one will never hold water again!”

The scout had shook his priming, and cocked his piece, while speaking; and, as he ended, he threw back a foot, and slowly raised the muzzle from the earth: the motion was steady, uniform, and in one direction. When on a perfect level, it remained for a single moment, without tremor or variation, as though both man and rifle were carved in stone. During that stationary instant, it poured forth its contents, in a bright, glancing sheet of flame. Again the young Indians bounded forward; but their hurried search and disappointed looks announced that no traces of the bullet were to be seen.

The scout had shaken his gunpowder and cocked his rifle while he was talking; and as he finished, he stepped back and slowly lifted the muzzle off the ground. The movement was steady, smooth, and in a single direction. When it reached a perfect level, it held still for a moment, without shaking or changing, as if both the man and the rifle were made of stone. In that still moment, it released a burst of bright, flickering flames. Once again, the young Indians rushed forward; but their frantic search and disappointed expressions showed that no sign of the bullet was visible.

“Go!” said the old chief to the scout, in a tone of strong disgust; “thou art a wolf in the skin of a dog. I will talk to the ‘Long Rifle’ of the Yengeese.”

“Go!” said the old chief to the scout, with a tone full of disdain; “you’re a wolf in a dog’s skin. I will speak to the ‘Long Rifle’ of the Yankees.”

“Ah! had I that piece which furnished the name you use, I would obligate myself to cut the thong, and drop the gourd without breaking it!” returned Hawkeye, perfectly undisturbed by the other’s manner. “Fools, if you would find the bullet of a sharpshooter in these woods, you must look in the object, and not around it!”

“Ah! If I had that thing that gave you your name, I’d promise to cut the strap and drop the gourd without breaking it!” replied Hawkeye, completely unfazed by the other’s attitude. “Fools, if you want to find a sharpshooter’s bullet in these woods, you need to look at the object, not around it!”

The Indian youths instantly comprehended his meaning—for this time he spoke in the Delaware tongue—and tearing the gourd from the tree, they held it on high with an exulting shout, displaying a hole in its bottom, which had been cut by the bullet, after passing through the usual orifice in the center of its upper side. At this unexpected exhibition, a loud and vehement expression of pleasure burst from the mouth of every warrior present. It decided the question, and effectually established Hawkeye in the possession of his dangerous reputation. Those curious and admiring eyes which had been turned again on Heyward, were finally directed to the weather-beaten form of the scout, who immediately became the principal object of attention to the simple and unsophisticated beings by whom he was surrounded. When the sudden and noisy commotion had a little subsided, the aged chief resumed his examination.

The Indian youths immediately understood what he meant—for this time he spoke in the Delaware language—and yanking the gourd from the tree, they held it up high with a triumphant shout, showing a hole in its bottom that had been made by the bullet after passing through the usual opening in the center of its top. At this unexpected display, loud and enthusiastic cheers erupted from every warrior present. This settled the matter and firmly established Hawkeye's dangerous reputation. The curious and admiring looks that had been focused on Heyward now shifted to the weathered figure of the scout, who quickly became the center of attention for the simple and genuine people around him. Once the sudden and loud commotion calmed down a bit, the elderly chief continued his inspection.

“Why did you wish to stop my ears?” he said, addressing Duncan; “are the Delawares fools that they could not know the young panther from the cat?”

“Why did you want to stop my ears?” he said to Duncan; “are the Delawares so foolish that they can’t tell the young panther from a cat?”

“They will yet find the Huron a singing-bird,” said Duncan, endeavoring to adopt the figurative language of the natives.

“They will still find the Huron a singing bird,” said Duncan, trying to use the figurative language of the natives.

“It is good. We will know who can shut the ears of men. Brother,” added the chief turning his eyes on Magua, “the Delawares listen.”

“It’s good. We’ll know who can make people stop listening. Brother,” the chief said, shifting his gaze to Magua, “the Delawares are listening.”

Thus singled, and directly called on to declare his object, the Huron arose; and advancing with great deliberation and dignity into the very center of the circle, where he stood confronted by the prisoners, he placed himself in an attitude to speak. Before opening his mouth, however, he bent his eyes slowly along the whole living boundary of earnest faces, as if to temper his expressions to the capacities of his audience. On Hawkeye he cast a glance of respectful enmity; on Duncan, a look of inextinguishable hatred; the shrinking figure of Alice he scarcely deigned to notice; but when his glance met the firm, commanding, and yet lovely form of Cora, his eye lingered a moment, with an expression that it might have been difficult to define. Then, filled with his own dark intentions, he spoke in the language of the Canadas, a tongue that he well knew was comprehended by most of his auditors.

Thus singled out and called upon to declare his purpose, the Huron stood up; and stepping forward with great deliberation and dignity into the center of the circle, where he faced the prisoners, he positioned himself to speak. Before he opened his mouth, however, he slowly scanned the entire living boundary of attentive faces, as if to adjust his words to suit his audience's understanding. He cast a glance of respectful hostility at Hawkeye; on Duncan, he directed a look of deep-seated hatred; the shrinking figure of Alice he barely acknowledged; but when his gaze fell on the strong, commanding, yet beautiful form of Cora, his eyes lingered for a moment, with an expression that was hard to define. Then, filled with his own dark intentions, he spoke in the language of the Canadas, a tongue he knew most of his listeners would understand.

“The Spirit that made men colored them differently,” commenced the subtle Huron. “Some are blacker than the sluggish bear. These He said should be slaves; and He ordered them to work forever, like the beaver. You may hear them groan, when the south wind blows, louder than the lowing buffaloes, along the shores of the great salt lake, where the big canoes come and go with them in droves. Some He made with faces paler than the ermine of the forests; and these He ordered to be traders; dogs to their women, and wolves to their slaves. He gave this people the nature of the pigeon; wings that never tire; young, more plentiful than the leaves on the trees, and appetites to devour the earth. He gave them tongues like the false call of the wildcat; hearts like rabbits; the cunning of the hog (but none of the fox), and arms longer than the legs of the moose. With his tongue he stops the ears of the Indians; his heart teaches him to pay warriors to fight his battles; his cunning tells him how to get together the goods of the earth; and his arms inclose the land from the shores of the salt-water to the islands of the great lake. His gluttony makes him sick. God gave him enough, and yet he wants all. Such are the pale faces.

“The Spirit that created people gave them different colors,” began the clever Huron. “Some are darker than the sluggish bear. These, He said, should be slaves; and He commanded them to work forever, like the beaver. You can hear their moans, when the south wind blows, louder than the lowing buffaloes, along the shores of the great salt lake, where the big canoes come and go with them in groups. Some He made with faces lighter than the ermine in the forests; and these He commanded to be traders; subservient to their women, and predatory towards their slaves. He gave this group the nature of the pigeon; wings that never tire; young ones, more numerous than the leaves on the trees, and an insatiable appetite for resources. He gave them tongues like the deceptive call of the wildcat; hearts like rabbits; the shrewdness of the hog (but none of the cleverness of the fox), and arms longer than the legs of the moose. With his voice, he silences the ears of the Indians; his heart drives him to pay warriors to fight his battles; his cunning shows him how to gather the earth’s riches; and his arms enclose the land from the shores of the saltwater to the islands of the great lake. His gluttony makes him ill. God provided enough, yet he craves everything. Such are the pale faces.

“Some the Great Spirit made with skins brighter and redder than yonder sun,” continued Magua, pointing impressively upward to the lurid luminary, which was struggling through the misty atmosphere of the horizon; “and these did He fashion to His own mind. He gave them this island as He had made it, covered with trees, and filled with game. The wind made their clearings; the sun and rain ripened their fruits; and the snows came to tell them to be thankful. What need had they of roads to journey by! They saw through the hills! When the beavers worked, they lay in the shade, and looked on. The winds cooled them in summer; in winter, skins kept them warm. If they fought among themselves, it was to prove that they were men. They were brave; they were just; they were happy.”

“Some of the Great Spirit were made with skins that were brighter and redder than that sun up there,” continued Magua, pointing dramatically at the bright sun struggling through the misty air on the horizon; “and these He created to His liking. He gave them this island just as He made it, filled with trees and abundant game. The wind cleared their fields; the sun and rain ripened their fruits; and the snow came to remind them to be thankful. What need did they have for roads to travel! They could see through the hills! While the beavers were working, they would lounge in the shade and watch. The winds kept them cool in summer; in winter, the skins kept them warm. If they fought among themselves, it was to show that they were men. They were brave; they were just; they were happy.”

Here the speaker paused, and again looked around him to discover if his legend had touched the sympathies of his listeners. He met everywhere, with eyes riveted on his own, heads erect and nostrils expanded, as if each individual present felt himself able and willing, singly, to redress the wrongs of his race.

Here the speaker paused and looked around to see if his story had resonated with his audience. He found everyone with their eyes focused on him, heads held high and nostrils flared, as if each person felt capable and ready to individually address the injustices faced by their people.

“If the Great Spirit gave different tongues to his red children,” he continued, in a low, still melancholy voice, “it was that all animals might understand them. Some He placed among the snows, with their cousin, the bear. Some he placed near the setting sun, on the road to the happy hunting grounds. Some on the lands around the great fresh waters; but to His greatest, and most beloved, He gave the sands of the salt lake. Do my brothers know the name of this favored people?”

“If the Great Spirit gave different languages to his red children,” he continued in a soft, still sorrowful voice, “it was so all animals could understand them. Some were placed among the snow with their cousin, the bear. Some were located near the setting sun, on the path to the happy hunting grounds. Some settled on the lands around the great fresh waters; but to His greatest and most beloved, He gave the sands of the salt lake. Do my brothers know the name of this favored people?”

“It was the Lenape!” exclaimed twenty eager voices in a breath.

“It was the Lenape!” shouted twenty excited voices all at once.

“It was the Lenni Lenape,” returned Magua, affecting to bend his head in reverence to their former greatness. “It was the tribes of the Lenape! The sun rose from water that was salt, and set in water that was sweet, and never hid himself from their eyes. But why should I, a Huron of the woods, tell a wise people their own traditions? Why remind them of their injuries; their ancient greatness; their deeds; their glory; their happiness; their losses; their defeats; their misery? Is there not one among them who has seen it all, and who knows it to be true? I have done. My tongue is still for my heart is of lead. I listen.”

“It was the Lenni Lenape,” Magua said, nodding his head as if to honor their past greatness. “It was the tribes of the Lenape! The sun rose from salty water and set in sweet water, and it never hid from their sight. But why should I, a Huron from the woods, remind a wise people of their own stories? Why bring up their injuries; their ancient greatness; their achievements; their glory; their joy; their losses; their defeats; their suffering? Is there not one among them who has seen it all and knows it’s true? I am finished. My tongue is quiet because my heart is heavy. I listen.”

As the voice of the speaker suddenly ceased, every face and all eyes turned, by a common movement, toward the venerable Tamenund. From the moment that he took his seat, until the present instant, the lips of the patriarch had not severed, and scarcely a sign of life had escaped him. He sat bent in feebleness, and apparently unconscious of the presence he was in, during the whole of that opening scene, in which the skill of the scout had been so clearly established. At the nicely graduated sound of Magua’s voice, however, he betrayed some evidence of consciousness, and once or twice he even raised his head, as if to listen. But when the crafty Huron spoke of his nation by name, the eyelids of the old man raised themselves, and he looked out upon the multitude with that sort of dull, unmeaning expression which might be supposed to belong to the countenance of a specter. Then he made an effort to rise, and being upheld by his supporters, he gained his feet, in a posture commanding by its dignity, while he tottered with weakness.

As the speaker's voice suddenly stopped, everyone turned their faces and eyes toward the respected Tamenund. From the moment he sat down until now, the patriarch hadn’t spoken, and not a single sign of life had come from him. He sat there, frail and seemingly unaware of his surroundings, throughout the entire beginning scene, where the scout's skills had been clearly shown. However, at the carefully modulated sound of Magua’s voice, he showed some signs of awareness, raising his head a couple of times as if to listen. But when the cunning Huron mentioned his nation by name, the old man opened his eyes and looked out at the crowd with a dull, vacant expression that could be thought to belong to a ghost. Then he made an effort to stand, and with the help of those supporting him, he got to his feet, presenting a dignified pose despite his weakness.

“Who calls upon the children of the Lenape?” he said, in a deep, guttural voice, that was rendered awfully audible by the breathless silence of the multitude; “who speaks of things gone? Does not the egg become a worm—the worm a fly, and perish? Why tell the Delawares of good that is past? Better thank the Manitou for that which remains.”

“Who is calling the children of the Lenape?” he said in a deep, raspy voice that echoed unnervingly in the breathless silence of the crowd; “who talks about things that are gone? Doesn’t the egg turn into a worm—the worm into a fly, and then die? Why tell the Delawares about the good that’s already gone? It’s better to thank the Manitou for what we still have.”

“It is a Wyandot,” said Magua, stepping nigher to the rude platform on which the other stood; “a friend of Tamenund.”

“It’s a Wyandot,” said Magua, stepping closer to the rough platform where the other stood; “a friend of Tamenund.”

“A friend!” repeated the sage, on whose brow a dark frown settled, imparting a portion of that severity which had rendered his eye so terrible in middle age. “Are the Mingoes rulers of the earth? What brings a Huron in here?”

“A friend!” repeated the wise man, a dark frown forming on his brow, adding some of the sternness that had made his gaze so intimidating in middle age. “Are the Mingoes in charge of the world? What brings a Huron in here?”

“Justice. His prisoners are with his brothers, and he comes for his own.”

“Justice. His prisoners are with his brothers, and he comes for what is his.”

Tamenund turned his head toward one of his supporters, and listened to the short explanation the man gave.

Tamenund turned his head toward one of his supporters and listened to the brief explanation the man provided.

Then, facing the applicant, he regarded him a moment with deep attention; after which he said, in a low and reluctant voice:

Then, looking at the applicant, he studied him for a moment with intense focus; after which he said, in a quiet and hesitant voice:

“Justice is the law of the great Manitou. My children, give the stranger food. Then, Huron, take thine own and depart.”

“Justice is the law of the great Manitou. My children, offer food to the stranger. Then, Huron, take your own and leave.”

On the delivery of this solemn judgment, the patriarch seated himself, and closed his eyes again, as if better pleased with the images of his own ripened experience than with the visible objects of the world. Against such a decree there was no Delaware sufficiently hardy to murmur, much less oppose himself. The words were barely uttered when four or five of the younger warriors, stepping behind Heyward and the scout, passed thongs so dexterously and rapidly around their arms, as to hold them both in instant bondage. The former was too much engrossed with his precious and nearly insensible burden, to be aware of their intentions before they were executed; and the latter, who considered even the hostile tribes of the Delawares a superior race of beings, submitted without resistance. Perhaps, however, the manner of the scout would not have been so passive, had he fully comprehended the language in which the preceding dialogue had been conducted.

Upon delivering this serious judgment, the patriarch sat down and closed his eyes again, as if he preferred the thoughts from his own extensive experience to the things in the world around him. No Delaware was brave enough to complain about such a decree, let alone stand against it. As soon as the words were spoken, four or five younger warriors, moving quickly behind Heyward and the scout, deftly tied their arms with thongs, capturing them instantly. Heyward was too focused on his precious and nearly unconscious burden to notice their intentions before it happened, and the scout, who viewed even the hostile tribes of the Delawares as a superior race, offered no resistance. However, perhaps the scout wouldn't have been so accepting if he had fully understood the language in which the previous conversation had taken place.

Magua cast a look of triumph around the whole assembly before he proceeded to the execution of his purpose. Perceiving that the men were unable to offer any resistance, he turned his looks on her he valued most. Cora met his gaze with an eye so calm and firm, that his resolution wavered. Then, recollecting his former artifice, he raised Alice from the arms of the warrior against whom she leaned, and beckoning Heyward to follow, he motioned for the encircling crowd to open. But Cora, instead of obeying the impulse he had expected, rushed to the feet of the patriarch, and, raising her voice, exclaimed aloud:

Magua looked around the entire crowd with a sense of victory before he moved ahead with his plan. Seeing that the men couldn’t put up any resistance, he focused on the one he valued most. Cora met his gaze with such calm and determination that it made him hesitate. Then, remembering his earlier trick, he lifted Alice from the arms of the warrior she was resting against and signaled for Heyward to follow. He waved for the surrounding crowd to part. But instead of doing what he expected, Cora rushed to the feet of the patriarch and raised her voice, exclaiming loudly:

“Just and venerable Delaware, on thy wisdom and power we lean for mercy! Be deaf to yonder artful and remorseless monster, who poisons thy ears with falsehoods to feed his thirst for blood. Thou that hast lived long, and that hast seen the evil of the world, should know how to temper its calamities to the miserable.”

“Just and respected Delaware, we rely on your wisdom and strength for mercy! Turn a blind eye to that cunning and relentless monster over there, who fills your ears with lies to satisfy his thirst for blood. You who have lived for so long and witnessed the world’s evils should know how to soften its misfortunes for the suffering.”

[Illustration]

The eyes of the old man opened heavily, and he once more looked upward at the multitude. As the piercing tones of the suppliant swelled on his ears, they moved slowly in the direction of her person, and finally settled there in a steady gaze. Cora had cast herself to her knees; and, with hands clenched in each other and pressed upon her bosom, she remained like a beauteous and breathing model of her sex, looking up in his faded but majestic countenance, with a species of holy reverence. Gradually the expression of Tamenund’s features changed, and losing their vacancy in admiration, they lighted with a portion of that intelligence which a century before had been wont to communicate his youthful fire to the extensive bands of the Delawares. Rising without assistance, and seemingly without an effort, he demanded, in a voice that startled its auditors by its firmness:

The old man's eyes opened slowly, and he looked up again at the crowd. As the desperate tones of the woman filled his ears, his gaze drifted toward her, finally resting on her with steady intensity. Cora had dropped to her knees, her hands clasped over her heart, appearing like a beautiful and living representation of her gender, looking up at his worn but noble face with a sense of holy respect. Gradually, Tamenund's expression shifted, and as the admiration faded, his features lit up with a hint of the wisdom that had once fueled his youthful passion among the large groups of the Delawares. Rising without any help and seemingly effortlessly, he spoke in a voice that surprised everyone with its strength:

“What art thou?”

"What are you?"

“A woman. One of a hated race, if thou wilt—a Yengee. But one who has never harmed thee, and who cannot harm thy people, if she would; who asks for succor.”

“A woman. One from a despised race, if you must—a Yengee. But one who has never done you any wrong, and who cannot hurt your people, even if she wanted to; who asks for help.”

“Tell me, my children,” continued the patriarch, hoarsely, motioning to those around him, though his eyes still dwelt upon the kneeling form of Cora, “where have the Delawares camped?”

“Tell me, my children,” the patriarch continued hoarsely, gesturing to those around him, though his eyes remained fixed on the kneeling figure of Cora, “where have the Delawares set up camp?”

“In the mountains of the Iroquois, beyond the clear springs of the Horican.”

“In the Iroquois mountains, beyond the clear springs of the Horican.”

“Many parching summers are come and gone,” continued the sage, “since I drank of the water of my own rivers. The children of Minquon[1] are the justest white men, but they were thirsty and they took it to themselves. Do they follow us so far?”

“Many hot summers have come and gone,” continued the wise man, “since I drank from the waters of my own rivers. The children of Minquon[1] are the fairest white men, but they were thirsty and they took it for themselves. Are they still following us?”

[1] William Penn was termed Minquon by the Delawares, and, as he never used violence or injustice in his dealings with them, his reputation for probity passed into a proverb. The American is justly proud of the origin of his nation, which is perhaps unequaled in the history of the world; but the Pennsylvanian and Jerseyman have more reason to value themselves in their ancestors than the natives of any other state, since no wrong was done the original owners of the soil.

[1] William Penn was called Minquon by the Delawares, and because he never resorted to violence or injustice in his interactions with them, he became known for his integrity to the point that it turned into a saying. Americans are justly proud of the founding of their nation, which is perhaps unmatched in the history of the world; however, people from Pennsylvania and New Jersey have even more reason to take pride in their ancestors than residents of other states, as no harm was done to the original owners of the land.

“We follow none, we covet nothing,” answered Cora. “Captives against our wills, have we been brought amongst you; and we ask but permission to depart to our own in peace. Art thou not Tamenund—the father, the judge, I had almost said, the prophet—of this people?”

“We follow no one, we crave nothing,” Cora replied. “We have been forced into your midst against our will; all we ask is for permission to leave in peace to return to our own. Are you not Tamenund—the father, the judge, I would almost say, the prophet—of this people?”

“I am Tamenund of many days.”

“I am Tamenund of many years.”

“’Tis now some seven years that one of thy people was at the mercy of a white chief on the borders of this province. He claimed to be of the blood of the good and just Tamenund. ‘Go’, said the white man, ‘for thy parent’s sake thou art free.’ Dost thou remember the name of that English warrior?”

“It's now been about seven years since one of your people was at the mercy of a white chief on the borders of this province. He claimed to be descended from the good and just Tamenund. ‘Go,’ the white man said, ‘for your parent's sake, you are free.’ Do you remember the name of that English warrior?”

“I remember, that when a laughing boy,” returned the patriarch, with the peculiar recollection of vast age, “I stood upon the sands of the sea shore, and saw a big canoe, with wings whiter than the swan’s, and wider than many eagles, come from the rising sun.”

“I remember, when I was a laughing boy,” the patriarch said, with a strange clarity that comes with old age, “I stood on the sandy beach and saw a large canoe, with wings whiter than a swan’s and wider than many eagles, coming from the rising sun.”

“Nay, nay; I speak not of a time so very distant, but of favor shown to thy kindred by one of mine, within the memory of thy youngest warrior.”

“No, no; I’m not talking about a time that’s very far back, but about a favor shown to your family by one of mine, within the memory of your youngest warrior.”

“Was it when the Yengeese and the Dutchmanne fought for the hunting-grounds of the Delawares? Then Tamenund was a chief, and first laid aside the bow for the lightning of the pale faces—”

“Was it when the English and the Dutch fought for the hunting grounds of the Delawares? Then Tamenund was a chief and first put down the bow for the guns of the white men—”

“Not yet then,” interrupted Cora, “by many ages; I speak of a thing of yesterday. Surely, surely, you forget it not.”

“Not yet,” Cora interrupted, “not for a long time; I’m talking about something that happened just yesterday. Surely, you remember it.”

“It was but yesterday,” rejoined the aged man, with touching pathos, “that the children of the Lenape were masters of the world. The fishes of the salt lake, the birds, the beasts, and the Mengee of the woods, owned them for Sagamores.”

“It was just yesterday,” replied the old man, with heartfelt emotion, “that the children of the Lenape were the rulers of the world. The fish of the salt lake, the birds, the animals, and the spirits of the woods recognized them as their leaders.”

Cora bowed her head in disappointment, and, for a bitter moment struggled with her chagrin. Then, elevating her rich features and beaming eyes, she continued, in tones scarcely less penetrating than the unearthly voice of the patriarch himself:

Cora lowered her head in disappointment and, for a painful moment, wrestled with her frustration. Then, lifting her striking features and shining eyes, she continued, in a voice almost as powerful as the otherworldly voice of the patriarch himself:

“Tell me, is Tamenund a father?”

“Tell me, is Tamenund a dad?”

The old man looked down upon her from his elevated stand, with a benignant smile on his wasted countenance, and then casting his eyes slowly over the whole assemblage, he answered:

The old man looked down at her from his raised position, with a kind smile on his thin face, and then slowly scanning the entire crowd, he replied:

“Of a nation.”

"About a country."

“For myself I ask nothing. Like thee and thine, venerable chief,” she continued, pressing her hands convulsively on her heart, and suffering her head to droop until her burning cheeks were nearly concealed in the maze of dark, glossy tresses that fell in disorder upon her shoulders, “the curse of my ancestors has fallen heavily on their child. But yonder is one who has never known the weight of Heaven’s displeasure until now. She is the daughter of an old and failing man, whose days are near their close. She has many, very many, to love her, and delight in her; and she is too good, much too precious, to become the victim of that villain.”

“For myself, I ask for nothing. Like you and yours, respected leader,” she continued, pressing her hands tightly against her heart and letting her head droop until her flushed cheeks were almost hidden in the mass of dark, shiny hair that fell messily over her shoulders, “the curse of my ancestors has weighed heavily on me. But over there is someone who has never felt the burden of Heaven’s anger until now. She is the daughter of an old and ailing man, whose days are numbered. She has many, so many, who love her and cherish her; and she is too good, far too precious, to fall victim to that villain.”

“I know that the pale faces are a proud and hungry race. I know that they claim not only to have the earth, but that the meanest of their color is better than the Sachems of the red man. The dogs and crows of their tribes,” continued the earnest old chieftain, without heeding the wounded spirit of his listener, whose head was nearly crushed to the earth in shame, as he proceeded, “would bark and caw before they would take a woman to their wigwams whose blood was not of the color of snow. But let them not boast before the face of the Manitou too loud. They entered the land at the rising, and may yet go off at the setting sun. I have often seen the locusts strip the leaves from the trees, but the season of blossoms has always come again.”

“I know that the pale faces are a proud and hungry people. I know they claim not just the land, but that even the least among them is better than the leaders of the Native people. The dogs and crows of their tribes,” continued the earnest old chief, not noticing the wounded spirit of his listener, whose head was almost pressed to the ground in shame, as he continued, “would bark and caw before they would take a woman into their homes whose blood was not as white as snow. But let them not brag too loudly in front of the Manitou. They came to this land at dawn, and they may yet leave at sunset. I have often seen locusts strip the leaves from the trees, but the season of blossoms has always returned.”

“It is so,” said Cora, drawing a long breath, as if reviving from a trance, raising her face, and shaking back her shining veil, with a kindling eye, that contradicted the death-like paleness of her countenance; “but why—it is not permitted us to inquire. There is yet one of thine own people who has not been brought before thee; before thou lettest the Huron depart in triumph, hear him speak.”

“It is true,” Cora said, taking a deep breath as if coming out of a trance, lifting her face and tossing back her shining veil, her eyes lighting up in a way that contradicted the deathly pale look of her face. “But why—it’s not something we’re allowed to question. There is still one of your own people who hasn’t been brought before you; before you let the Huron leave in triumph, let him speak.”

Observing Tamenund to look about him doubtingly, one of his companions said:

Observing Tamenund looking around uncertainly, one of his friends said:

“It is a snake—a red-skin in the pay of the Yengeese. We keep him for the torture.”

“It’s a snake—a Native American working for the Americans. We keep him for the suffering.”

“Let him come,” returned the sage.

"Let him come," replied the wise man.

Then Tamenund once more sank into his seat, and a silence so deep prevailed while the young man prepared to obey his simple mandate, that the leaves, which fluttered in the draught of the light morning air, were distinctly heard rustling in the surrounding forest.

Then Tamenund sank back into his seat again, and a deep silence fell as the young man got ready to follow his straightforward instructions, so much so that the leaves, rustling in the gentle morning breeze, could be clearly heard in the nearby forest.

CHAPTER XXX.

“If you deny me, fie upon your law!
There is no force in the decrees of Venice:
I stand for judgment: answer, shall I have it?”
—Merchant of Venice

“If you deny me, shame on your law!
The decrees of Venice have no power:
I stand for judgment: answer, will I get it?”
—Merchant of Venice

The silence continued unbroken by human sounds for many anxious minutes. Then the waving multitude opened and shut again, and Uncas stood in the living circle. All those eyes, which had been curiously studying the lineaments of the sage, as the source of their own intelligence, turned on the instant, and were now bent in secret admiration on the erect, agile, and faultless person of the captive. But neither the presence in which he found himself, nor the exclusive attention that he attracted, in any manner disturbed the self-possession of the young Mohican. He cast a deliberate and observing look on every side of him, meeting the settled expression of hostility that lowered in the visages of the chiefs with the same calmness as the curious gaze of the attentive children. But when, last in this haughty scrutiny, the person of Tamenund came under his glance, his eye became fixed, as though all other objects were already forgotten. Then, advancing with a slow and noiseless step up the area, he placed himself immediately before the footstool of the sage. Here he stood unnoted, though keenly observant himself, until one of the chiefs apprised the latter of his presence.

The silence stretched on, unbroken by any human sounds for many tense minutes. Then the crowd parted and came back together, and Uncas stood in the living circle. All those eyes, which had been curiously studying the features of the sage, as the source of their own wisdom, turned instantly and were now secretly admiring the tall, agile, and flawless figure of the captive. But neither the setting he found himself in, nor the intense attention he garnered, disturbed the composure of the young Mohican. He took a careful look around, meeting the cold hostility etched on the faces of the chiefs with the same calmness as the curious glances of the attentive children. However, when his gaze finally landed on Tamenund, the wise man, his focus sharpened as if everything else faded away. Then, moving slowly and silently up the path, he positioned himself directly before the sage’s footstool. Here he stood unnoticed, though sharply observant, until one of the chiefs alerted Tamenund to his presence.

“With what tongue does the prisoner speak to the Manitou?” demanded the patriarch, without unclosing his eyes.

“With what tongue does the prisoner speak to the Manitou?” asked the patriarch, keeping his eyes closed.

[Illustration]

“With what tongue does the prisoner speak to the Manitou?”

“With what language does the prisoner speak to the Manitou?”

“Like his fathers,” Uncas replied; “with the tongue of a Delaware.”

“Just like his fathers,” Uncas replied; “with the language of a Delaware.”

At this sudden and unexpected annunciation, a low, fierce yell ran through the multitude, that might not inaptly be compared to the growl of the lion, as his choler is first awakened—a fearful omen of the weight of his future anger. The effect was equally strong on the sage, though differently exhibited. He passed a hand before his eyes, as if to exclude the least evidence of so shameful a spectacle, while he repeated, in his low, guttural tones, the words he had just heard.

At this sudden and unexpected announcement, a low, fierce shout ran through the crowd, reminiscent of a lion's growl when it first feels provoked—a chilling sign of the intensity of its future rage. The effect was just as strong on the wise man, though shown in a different way. He waved a hand in front of his eyes, as if trying to block out any sign of such a disgraceful scene, while he quietly repeated the words he had just heard.

“A Delaware! I have lived to see the tribes of the Lenape driven from their council-fires, and scattered, like broken herds of deer, among the hills of the Iroquois! I have seen the hatchets of a strong people sweep woods from the valleys, that the winds of heaven have spared! The beasts that run on the mountains, and the birds that fly above the trees, have I seen living in the wigwams of men; but never before have I found a Delaware so base as to creep, like a poisonous serpent, into the camps of his nation.”

“A Delaware! I've lived to see the Lenape tribes pushed from their meeting places and scattered, like broken herds of deer, among the Iroquois hills! I've watched as the axes of a powerful people cleared forests from the valleys that the winds of heaven had spared! I've seen the creatures that roam the mountains and the birds that fly above the trees living in the homes of men; but never before have I come across a Delaware so low as to sneak, like a venomous snake, into the camps of his own people.”

“The singing-birds have opened their bills,” returned Uncas, in the softest notes of his own musical voice; “and Tamenund has heard their song.”

“The singing birds are chirping,” Uncas replied, in the softest tones of his melodic voice; “and Tamenund has heard their song.”

The sage started, and bent his head aside, as if to catch the fleeting sounds of some passing melody.

The wise man began and tilted his head to the side, as if trying to catch the brief notes of a passing tune.

“Does Tamenund dream!” he exclaimed. “What voice is at his ear! Have the winters gone backward! Will summer come again to the children of the Lenape!”

“Does Tamenund dream!” he shouted. “What voice is in his ear! Have the winters reversed! Will summer return for the children of the Lenape!”

A solemn and respectful silence succeeded this incoherent burst from the lips of the Delaware prophet. His people readily constructed his unintelligible language into one of those mysterious conferences he was believed to hold so frequently with a superior intelligence and they awaited the issue of the revelation in awe. After a patient pause, however, one of the aged men, perceiving that the sage had lost the recollection of the subject before them, ventured to remind him again of the presence of the prisoner.

A serious and respectful silence followed this confusing outburst from the Delaware prophet. His people quickly interpreted his unclear words as part of the mysterious conversations he was thought to have so often with a higher intelligence, and they waited for the outcome of his revelation in awe. After a thoughtful pause, though, one of the older men, noticing that the wise man had forgotten what they were discussing, took a chance and reminded him again about the presence of the prisoner.

“The false Delaware trembles lest he should hear the words of Tamenund,” he said. “’Tis a hound that howls, when the Yengeese show him a trail.”

“The false Delaware trembles at the thought of hearing Tamenund’s words,” he said. “It’s a dog that howls when the Yankees show him a trail.”

“And ye,” returned Uncas, looking sternly around him, “are dogs that whine, when the Frenchman casts ye the offals of his deer!”

“And you,” Uncas replied, looking seriously around him, “are dogs that whine when the Frenchman throws you the scraps of his deer!”

Twenty knives gleamed in the air, and as many warriors sprang to their feet, at this biting, and perhaps merited retort; but a motion from one of the chiefs suppressed the outbreaking of their tempers, and restored the appearance of quiet. The task might probably have been more difficult, had not a movement made by Tamenund indicated that he was again about to speak.

Twenty knives sparkled in the air, and just as many warriors jumped to their feet at this sharp, and perhaps deserved, comeback; but a gesture from one of the chiefs calmed their rising tempers and brought back a sense of peace. The situation might have been tougher if Tamenund hadn't moved, signaling that he was ready to speak again.

“Delaware!” resumed the sage, “little art thou worthy of thy name. My people have not seen a bright sun in many winters; and the warrior who deserts his tribe when hid in clouds is doubly a traitor. The law of the Manitou is just. It is so; while the rivers run and the mountains stand, while the blossoms come and go on the trees, it must be so. He is thine, my children; deal justly by him.”

“Delaware!” the wise man continued, “you are not living up to your name. My people haven't seen a bright sun in many winters; and the warrior who abandons his tribe when it’s hidden in clouds is a double traitor. The law of the Manitou is fair. It is so; as long as the rivers flow and the mountains stand, and as long as the flowers bloom and fade on the trees, it must be so. He belongs to you, my children; treat him justly.”

Not a limb was moved, nor was a breath drawn louder and longer than common, until the closing syllable of this final decree had passed the lips of Tamenund. Then a cry of vengeance burst at once, as it might be, from the united lips of the nation; a frightful augury of their ruthless intentions. In the midst of these prolonged and savage yells, a chief proclaimed, in a high voice, that the captive was condemned to endure the dreadful trial of torture by fire. The circle broke its order, and screams of delight mingled with the bustle and tumult of preparation. Heyward struggled madly with his captors; the anxious eye of Hawkeye began to look around him, with an expression of peculiar earnestness; and Cora again threw herself at the feet of the patriarch, once more a suppliant for mercy.

Not a limb moved, and not a breath was drawn louder or longer than usual until Tamenund finished speaking the final decree. Then, a cry for revenge erupted from the united voices of the nation, a terrifying sign of their brutal intentions. Amid these prolonged and fierce yells, a chief shouted in a loud voice that the captive was sentenced to endure the horrific trial of torture by fire. The circle broke apart, and screams of joy mixed with the noise and chaos of preparation. Heyward struggled wildly against his captors; Hawkeye's worried gaze began searching around him with a look of intense seriousness; and Cora once again fell at the feet of the elder, pleading for mercy.

Throughout the whole of these trying moments, Uncas had alone preserved his serenity. He looked on the preparations with a steady eye, and when the tormentors came to seize him, he met them with a firm and upright attitude. One among them, if possible more fierce and savage than his fellows, seized the hunting-shirt of the young warrior, and at a single effort tore it from his body. Then, with a yell of frantic pleasure, he leaped toward his unresisting victim and prepared to lead him to the stake. But, at that moment, when he appeared most a stranger to the feelings of humanity, the purpose of the savage was arrested as suddenly as if a supernatural agency had interposed in the behalf of Uncas. The eyeballs of the Delaware seemed to start from their sockets; his mouth opened and his whole form became frozen in an attitude of amazement. Raising his hand with a slow and regulated motion, he pointed with a finger to the bosom of the captive. His companions crowded about him in wonder and every eye was like his own, fastened intently on the figure of a small tortoise, beautifully tattooed on the breast of the prisoner, in a bright blue tint.

Throughout all these difficult moments, Uncas alone maintained his calm. He watched the preparations with a steady gaze, and when the captors came to grab him, he faced them with confidence and bravery. One of them, even more ferocious and brutal than the others, grabbed the young warrior’s hunting shirt and tore it off his body in one swift motion. Then, with a scream of wild excitement, he lunged toward his defenseless victim, ready to take him to the stake. But at that moment, when he seemed most detached from human feelings, the savage’s intention was suddenly halted as if some supernatural force had intervened on behalf of Uncas. The Delaware's eyes seemed to bulge from their sockets; his mouth dropped open, and his entire body froze in shock. Raising his hand slowly and deliberately, he pointed a finger at the chest of the captive. His companions gathered around him in astonishment, and every eye, like his own, was glued to the image of a small tortoise, beautifully tattooed in bright blue ink on the prisoner's chest.

For a single instant Uncas enjoyed his triumph, smiling calmly on the scene. Then motioning the crowd away with a high and haughty sweep of his arm, he advanced in front of the nation with the air of a king, and spoke in a voice louder than the murmur of admiration that ran through the multitude.

For a brief moment, Uncas savored his victory, smiling serenely at the scene. Then, waving his arm to dismiss the crowd in a proud manner, he stepped in front of the nation with a regal presence and spoke in a voice that was louder than the whispers of admiration that spread among the crowd.

“Men of the Lenni Lenape!” he said, “my race upholds the earth! Your feeble tribe stands on my shell! What fire that a Delaware can light would burn the child of my fathers,” he added, pointing proudly to the simple blazonry on his skin; “the blood that came from such a stock would smother your flames! My race is the grandfather of nations!”

“Men of the Lenni Lenape!” he said, “my people uphold the earth! Your weak tribe stands on my back! What fire can a Delaware ignite that would harm the child of my ancestors,” he added, proudly pointing to the simple symbols on his skin; “the blood that comes from such a lineage would extinguish your flames! My people are the ancestors of nations!”

“Who art thou?” demanded Tamenund, rising at the startling tones he heard, more than at any meaning conveyed by the language of the prisoner.

“Who are you?” asked Tamenund, standing up at the surprising sounds he heard, more due to the tone than the actual words spoken by the prisoner.

“Uncas, the son of Chingachgook,” answered the captive modestly, turning from the nation, and bending his head in reverence to the other’s character and years; “a son of the great Unamis.”[1]

“Uncas, the son of Chingachgook,” the captive replied quietly, turning away from the crowd and nodding his head respectfully to the other’s character and age; “a son of the great Unamis.”[1]

[1] Turtle.

Turtle.

“The hour of Tamenund is nigh!” exclaimed the sage; “the day is come, at last, to the night! I thank the Manitou, that one is here to fill my place at the council-fire. Uncas, the child of Uncas, is found! Let the eyes of a dying eagle gaze on the rising sun.”

“The time of Tamenund is near!” exclaimed the wise man; “the day has finally come to the night! I thank the Manitou that someone is here to take my place at the council fire. Uncas, the child of Uncas, is here! Let the eyes of a dying eagle look upon the rising sun.”

The youth stepped lightly, but proudly on the platform, where he became visible to the whole agitated and wondering multitude. Tamenund held him long at the length of his arm and read every turn in the fine lineaments of his countenance, with the untiring gaze of one who recalled days of happiness.

The young man walked confidently but lightly onto the platform, where he became visible to the entire anxious and curious crowd. Tamenund held him at arm's length for a long time, observing every detail in the fine features of his face with the unyielding gaze of someone remembering happier days.

“Is Tamenund a boy?” at length the bewildered prophet exclaimed. “Have I dreamed of so many snows—that my people were scattered like floating sands—of Yengeese, more plenty than the leaves on the trees! The arrow of Tamenund would not frighten the fawn; his arm is withered like the branch of a dead oak; the snail would be swifter in the race; yet is Uncas before him as they went to battle against the pale faces! Uncas, the panther of his tribe, the eldest son of the Lenape, the wisest Sagamore of the Mohicans! Tell me, ye Delawares, has Tamenund been a sleeper for a hundred winters?”

“Is Tamenund a boy?” the confused prophet finally exclaimed. “Have I dreamed through so many winters—that my people were scattered like drifting sand—of Yengeese, more numerous than the leaves on the trees! Tamenund’s arrow wouldn’t even scare a fawn; his arm is as frail as the branch of a dead oak; the snail would win a race against him; yet Uncas stands ahead of him as they go into battle against the pale faces! Uncas, the panther of his tribe, the eldest son of the Lenape, the wisest Sagamore of the Mohicans! Tell me, you Delawares, has Tamenund been sleeping for a hundred winters?”

The calm and deep silence which succeeded these words sufficiently announced the awful reverence with which his people received the communication of the patriarch. None dared to answer, though all listened in breathless expectation of what might follow. Uncas, however, looking in his face with the fondness and veneration of a favored child, presumed on his own high and acknowledged rank, to reply.

The calm and deep silence that followed these words clearly showed the deep respect with which his people received the patriarch's message. No one dared to speak, even though everyone listened with held breath, waiting for what would come next. However, Uncas, gazing at him with the affection and respect of a favored child, felt confident in his own recognized status and decided to respond.

“Four warriors of his race have lived and died,” he said, “since the friend of Tamenund led his people in battle. The blood of the turtle has been in many chiefs, but all have gone back into the earth from whence they came, except Chingachgook and his son.”

“Four warriors from his tribe have lived and died,” he said, “since Tamenund's friend led his people into battle. Many chiefs have carried the blood of the turtle, but all have returned to the earth from which they came, except Chingachgook and his son.”

“It is true—it is true,” returned the sage, a flash of recollection destroying all his pleasing fancies, and restoring him at once to a consciousness of the true history of his nation. “Our wise men have often said that two warriors of the unchanged race were in the hills of the Yengeese; why have their seats at the council-fires of the Delawares been so long empty?”

“It’s true—it’s true,” the wise man replied, a sudden memory shattering all his comforting thoughts and bringing him back to the harsh reality of his nation’s history. “Our wise men have often claimed that two warriors from the unchanging tribe were in the hills of the Yengeese; why have their seats at the council fires of the Delawares been empty for so long?”

At these words the young man raised his head, which he had still kept bowed a little, in reverence; and lifting his voice so as to be heard by the multitude, as if to explain at once and forever the policy of his family, he said aloud:

At these words, the young man lifted his head, which he had been keeping slightly bowed in respect, and raised his voice to be heard by the crowd, as if to clarify once and for all the stance of his family, he said loudly:

“Once we slept where we could hear the salt lake speak in its anger. Then we were rulers and Sagamores over the land. But when a pale face was seen on every brook, we followed the deer back to the river of our nation. The Delawares were gone. Few warriors of them all stayed to drink of the stream they loved. Then said my fathers, ‘Here will we hunt. The waters of the river go into the salt lake. If we go toward the setting sun, we shall find streams that run into the great lakes of sweet water; there would a Mohican die, like fishes of the sea, in the clear springs. When the Manitou is ready and shall say “Come,” we will follow the river to the sea, and take our own again.’ Such, Delawares, is the belief of the children of the Turtle. Our eyes are on the rising and not toward the setting sun. We know whence he comes, but we know not whither he goes. It is enough.”

“Once we slept where we could hear the salt lake express its anger. At that time, we were rulers and Sagamores over the land. But when pale faces appeared by every stream, we followed the deer back to the river of our nation. The Delawares were gone. Only a few of them stayed to drink from the stream they loved. Then my fathers said, ‘Here we will hunt. The waters of the river flow into the salt lake. If we head toward the setting sun, we will find streams that flow into the great lakes of fresh water; there a Mohican would die, like fish in the sea, in the clear springs. When the Manitou is ready and says “Come,” we will follow the river to the sea and reclaim what is ours.’ Such, Delawares, is the belief of the children of the Turtle. Our eyes are on the rising sun, not on the setting sun. We know where he comes from, but we do not know where he goes. That is enough.”

The men of the Lenape listened to his words with all the respect that superstition could lend, finding a secret charm even in the figurative language with which the young Sagamore imparted his ideas. Uncas himself watched the effect of his brief explanation with intelligent eyes, and gradually dropped the air of authority he had assumed, as he perceived that his auditors were content. Then, permitting his looks to wander over the silent throng that crowded around the elevated seat of Tamenund, he first perceived Hawkeye in his bonds. Stepping eagerly from his stand, he made way for himself to the side of his friend; and cutting his thongs with a quick and angry stroke of his own knife, he motioned to the crowd to divide. The Indians silently obeyed, and once more they stood ranged in their circle, as before his appearance among them. Uncas took the scout by the hand, and led him to the feet of the patriarch.

The men of the Lenape listened to his words with all the respect that superstition could provide, finding a hidden charm even in the figurative language the young Sagamore used to express his ideas. Uncas himself observed the impact of his brief explanation with attentive eyes and gradually let go of the authoritative demeanor he had adopted as he saw that his listeners were satisfied. Then, allowing his gaze to wander over the silent crowd gathered around Tamenund's elevated seat, he first noticed Hawkeye bound by ropes. Eagerly stepping away from his position, he made his way to his friend's side, and, with a quick and angry slice of his knife, cut through Hawkeye's bindings, signaling to the crowd to part. The Indians silently complied, and once more they formed their circle as they had before he joined them. Uncas took the scout by the hand and led him to the feet of the elder.

“Father,” he said, “look at this pale face; a just man, and the friend of the Delawares.”

“Dad,” he said, “look at this pale face; a good man, and the friend of the Delawares.”

“Is he a son of Minquon?”

“Is he a son of Minquon?”

“Not so; a warrior known to the Yengeese, and feared by the Maquas.”

“Not at all; a warrior recognized by the Yengeese, and dreaded by the Maquas.”

“What name has he gained by his deeds?”

“What name has he earned through his actions?”

“We call him Hawkeye,” Uncas replied, using the Delaware phrase; “for his sight never fails. The Mingoes know him better by the death he gives their warriors; with them he is ‘The Long Rifle’.”

“We call him Hawkeye,” Uncas replied, using the Delaware phrase; “because his vision is always spot on. The Mingoes know him better by the death he brings to their warriors; to them, he is ‘The Long Rifle.’”

“La Longue Carabine!” exclaimed Tamenund, opening his eyes, and regarding the scout sternly. “My son has not done well to call him friend.”

“La Longue Carabine!” exclaimed Tamenund, opening his eyes and looking at the scout sternly. “My son shouldn’t have called him a friend.”

“I call him so who proves himself such,” returned the young chief, with great calmness, but with a steady mien. “If Uncas is welcome among the Delawares, then is Hawkeye with his friends.”

“I call him what he shows himself to be,” replied the young chief, remaining very calm but with a firm expression. “If Uncas is accepted among the Delawares, then Hawkeye is welcome with his friends.”

“The pale face has slain my young men; his name is great for the blows he has struck the Lenape.”

“The pale-faced man has killed my young men; his name is known for the strikes he has dealt to the Lenape.”

“If a Mingo has whispered that much in the ear of the Delaware, he has only shown that he is a singing-bird,” said the scout, who now believed that it was time to vindicate himself from such offensive charges, and who spoke as the man he addressed, modifying his Indian figures, however, with his own peculiar notions. “That I have slain the Maquas I am not the man to deny, even at their own council-fires; but that, knowingly, my hand has never harmed a Delaware, is opposed to the reason of my gifts, which is friendly to them, and all that belongs to their nation.”

“If a Mingo has shared that much with the Delaware, he has only shown that he is a gossip,” said the scout, who now thought it was time to defend himself from such offensive accusations, and who spoke to the man he was addressing, adjusting his Indian references with his own unique ideas. “I won’t deny that I have killed the Maquas, even at their own council meetings; but the fact that I have ever intentionally harmed a Delaware goes against the nature of my gifts, which are meant to be friendly to them and everything that belongs to their nation.”

A low exclamation of applause passed among the warriors who exchanged looks with each other like men that first began to perceive their error.

A quiet murmur of applause went through the warriors, who exchanged glances as if they were just starting to realize their mistake.

“Where is the Huron?” demanded Tamenund. “Has he stopped my ears?”

“Where is the Huron?” Tamenund asked. “Has he blocked my ears?”

Magua, whose feelings during that scene in which Uncas had triumphed may be much better imagined than described, answered to the call by stepping boldly in front of the patriarch.

Magua, whose emotions during that moment when Uncas had won could be better imagined than described, responded to the call by stepping confidently in front of the elder.

“The just Tamenund,” he said, “will not keep what a Huron has lent.”

“The fair Tamenund,” he said, “will not hold onto what a Huron has lent.”

“Tell me, son of my brother,” returned the sage, avoiding the dark countenance of Le Subtil, and turning gladly to the more ingenuous features of Uncas, “has the stranger a conqueror’s right over you?”

“Tell me, son of my brother,” replied the wise man, steering clear of Le Subtil’s dark expression and turning happily to the more candid face of Uncas, “does the stranger have a conqueror’s claim over you?”

“He has none. The panther may get into snares set by the women; but he is strong, and knows how to leap through them.”

“He doesn’t have any. The panther might get caught in traps set by the women, but he is strong and knows how to jump through them.”

“La Longue Carabine?”

“The Long Rifle?”

“Laughs at the Mingoes. Go, Huron, ask your squaws the color of a bear.”

“Laughs at the Mingoes. Go ahead, Huron, ask your wives what color a bear is.”

“The stranger and white maiden that come into my camp together?”

"The stranger and the white woman who came into my camp together?"

“Should journey on an open path.”

“Should travel on an open path.”

“And the woman that Huron left with my warriors?”

“And the woman that Huron left with my fighters?”

Uncas made no reply.

Uncas didn't respond.

“And the woman that the Mingo has brought into my camp?” repeated Tamenund, gravely.

“And the woman that the Mingo brought into my camp?” Tamenund repeated, seriously.

“She is mine,” cried Magua, shaking his hand in triumph at Uncas. “Mohican, you know that she is mine.”

“She’s mine,” shouted Magua, shaking his hand in victory at Uncas. “Mohican, you know that she’s mine.”

“My son is silent,” said Tamenund, endeavoring to read the expression of the face that the youth turned from him in sorrow.

“My son is quiet,” said Tamenund, trying to understand the look on the face that the young man turned away from him in sadness.

“It is so,” was the low answer.

“It is,” was the quiet reply.

A short and impressive pause succeeded, during which it was very apparent with what reluctance the multitude admitted the justice of the Mingo’s claim. At length the sage, on whom alone the decision depended, said, in a firm voice:

A brief and impactful pause followed, during which it was clear how unwilling the crowd was to accept the Mingo’s claim. Finally, the wise man, the one whose decision mattered most, said in a steady voice:

“Huron, depart.”

"Huron, leave."

“As he came, just Tamenund,” demanded the wily Magua, “or with hands filled with the faith of the Delawares? The wigwam of Le Renard Subtil is empty. Make him strong with his own.”

“As he arrives, just Tamenund,” asked the cunning Magua, “or with hands full of the Delawares' faith? The wigwam of Le Renard Subtil is empty. Make him strong with his own.”

The aged man mused with himself for a time; and then, bending his head toward one of his venerable companions, he asked:

The old man thought for a bit; then, leaning his head toward one of his elderly companions, he asked:

“Are my ears open?”

“Are my ears listening?”

“It is true.”

"That's true."

“Is this Mingo a chief?”

"Is this Mingo a leader?"

“The first in his nation.”

"The first in his country."

“Girl, what wouldst thou? A great warrior takes thee to wife. Go! thy race will not end.”

“Girl, what do you want? A great warrior takes you as his wife. Go! Your lineage will continue.”

“Better, a thousand times, it should,” exclaimed the horror-struck Cora, “than meet with such a degradation!”

“Better a thousand times it should,” exclaimed the horrified Cora, “than face such a disgrace!”

“Huron, her mind is in the tents of her fathers. An unwilling maiden makes an unhappy wigwam.”

“Huron, her thoughts are with her family in the tents. An unwilling maiden creates an unhappy home.”

“She speaks with the tongue of her people,” returned Magua, regarding his victim with a look of bitter irony.

“She speaks with the language of her people,” replied Magua, looking at his victim with a bitterly ironic expression.

“She is of a race of traders, and will bargain for a bright look. Let Tamenund speak the words.”

“She comes from a line of traders and will negotiate for a good appearance. Let Tamenund say the words.”

“Take you the wampum, and our love.”

“Take the wampum and our love.”

“Nothing hence but what Magua brought hither.”

“Nothing here except what Magua brought.”

“Then depart with thine own. The Great Manitou forbids that a Delaware should be unjust.”

“Then leave with your own. The Great Manitou forbids any Delaware from being unjust.”

Magua advanced, and seized his captive strongly by the arm; the Delawares fell back, in silence; and Cora, as if conscious that remonstrance would be useless, prepared to submit to her fate without resistance.

Magua moved forward and grabbed his captive firmly by the arm; the Delawares stepped back, quietly, and Cora, sensing that protesting would be pointless, got ready to accept her fate without a fight.

“Hold, hold!” cried Duncan, springing forward; “Huron, have mercy! her ransom shall make thee richer than any of thy people were ever yet known to be.”

“Wait, wait!” shouted Duncan, rushing forward; “Huron, please have mercy! Her ransom will make you richer than anyone in your tribe has ever been.”

“Magua is a red-skin; he wants not the beads of the pale faces.”

“Magua is a Native American; he doesn’t want the beads of the white people.”

“Gold, silver, powder, lead—all that a warrior needs shall be in thy wigwam; all that becomes the greatest chief.”

“Gold, silver, powder, lead—all that a warrior needs will be in your lodge; everything that makes the greatest chief.”

“Le Subtil is very strong,” cried Magua, violently shaking the hand which grasped the unresisting arm of Cora; “he has his revenge!”

“Le Subtil is really strong,” shouted Magua, violently shaking the hand that held the limp arm of Cora; “he's got his revenge!”

“Mighty ruler of Providence!” exclaimed Heyward, clasping his hands together in agony, “can this be suffered! To you, just Tamenund, I appeal for mercy.”

“Great leader of Providence!” cried Heyward, bringing his hands together in distress, “can this be allowed! To you, just Tamenund, I ask for mercy.”

“The words of the Delaware are said,” returned the sage, closing his eyes, and dropping back into his seat, alike wearied with his mental and his bodily exertion. “Men speak not twice.”

“The words of the Delaware are said,” the sage responded, closing his eyes and sinking back into his seat, exhausted from both mental and physical effort. “Men don’t repeat themselves.”

“That a chief should not misspend his time in unsaying what has once been spoken is wise and reasonable,” said Hawkeye, motioning to Duncan to be silent; “but it is also prudent in every warrior to consider well before he strikes his tomahawk into the head of his prisoner. Huron, I love you not; nor can I say that any Mingo has ever received much favor at my hands. It is fair to conclude that, if this war does not soon end, many more of your warriors will meet me in the woods. Put it to your judgment, then, whether you would prefer taking such a prisoner as that into your encampment, or one like myself, who am a man that it would greatly rejoice your nation to see with naked hands.”

“It's wise and reasonable for a leader not to waste time taking back what’s already been said,” said Hawkeye, gesturing for Duncan to be quiet; “but every warrior should also think carefully before striking his tomahawk into the head of his prisoner. Huron, I don’t like you; and I can’t say that any Mingo has ever received much kindness from me. It’s fair to assume that if this war doesn’t end soon, many more of your warriors will encounter me in the woods. So, consider this: would you rather take a prisoner like that into your camp, or someone like me, who would bring your nation a lot of joy to see unarmed?”

“Will ‘The Long Rifle’ give his life for the woman?” demanded Magua, hesitatingly; for he had already made a motion toward quitting the place with his victim.

“Will ‘The Long Rifle’ give his life for the woman?” Magua asked, hesitantly, as he had already started to leave the place with his captive.

“No, no; I have not said so much as that,” returned Hawkeye, drawing back with suitable discretion, when he noted the eagerness with which Magua listened to his proposal. “It would be an unequal exchange, to give a warrior, in the prime of his age and usefulness, for the best woman on the frontiers. I might consent to go into winter quarters, now —at least six weeks afore the leaves will turn—on condition you will release the maiden.”

“No, no; I didn’t say that,” replied Hawkeye, pulling back thoughtfully when he saw how eagerly Magua was listening to his proposal. “It wouldn’t be a fair trade to give up a warrior in the prime of his life for the best woman on the frontiers. I might agree to go into winter quarters now—at least six weeks before the leaves change—if you let the girl go.”

Magua shook his head, and made an impatient sign for the crowd to open.

Magua shook his head and gestured impatiently for the crowd to clear a path.

“Well, then,” added the scout, with the musing air of a man who had not half made up his mind; “I will throw ‘killdeer’ into the bargain. Take the word of an experienced hunter, the piece has not its equal atween the provinces.”

“Well, then,” added the scout, with the thoughtful expression of someone who hadn’t fully decided yet; “I’ll include ‘killdeer’ in the deal. Take it from an experienced hunter, this gun has no equal between the provinces.”

Magua still disdained to reply, continuing his efforts to disperse the crowd.

Magua still refused to respond, focusing on his attempts to scatter the crowd.

“Perhaps,” added the scout, losing his dissembled coolness exactly in proportion as the other manifested an indifference to the exchange, “if I should condition to teach your young men the real virtue of the we’pon, it would smoothe the little differences in our judgments.”

“Maybe,” the scout said, losing his fake calmness the more the other showed he didn’t care about the conversation, “if I were to agree to teach your young men the true value of the weapon, it might clear up the small differences in our opinions.”

Le Renard fiercely ordered the Delawares, who still lingered in an impenetrable belt around him, in hopes he would listen to the amicable proposal, to open his path, threatening, by the glance of his eye, another appeal to the infallible justice of their “prophet.”

Le Renard firmly commanded the Delawares, who remained in an impenetrable circle around him, hoping he would consider the friendly suggestion to clear his way, threatening with a look that he would make yet another appeal to the unquestionable justice of their “prophet.”

“What is ordered must sooner or later arrive,” continued Hawkeye, turning with a sad and humbled look to Uncas. “The varlet knows his advantage and will keep it! God bless you, boy; you have found friends among your natural kin, and I hope they will prove as true as some you have met who had no Indian cross. As for me, sooner or later, I must die; it is, therefore, fortunate there are but few to make my death-howl. After all, it is likely the imps would have managed to master my scalp, so a day or two will make no great difference in the everlasting reckoning of time. God bless you,” added the rugged woodsman, bending his head aside, and then instantly changing its direction again, with a wistful look toward the youth; “I loved both you and your father, Uncas, though our skins are not altogether of a color, and our gifts are somewhat different. Tell the Sagamore I never lost sight of him in my greatest trouble; and, as for you, think of me sometimes when on a lucky trail, and depend on it, boy, whether there be one heaven or two, there is a path in the other world by which honest men may come together again. You’ll find the rifle in the place we hid it; take it, and keep it for my sake; and, harkee, lad, as your natural gifts don’t deny you the use of vengeance, use it a little freely on the Mingoes; it may unburden griefs at my loss, and ease your mind. Huron, I accept your offer; release the woman. I am your prisoner!”

“What is meant to happen will eventually happen,” continued Hawkeye, turning with a sad and humble look at Uncas. “The guy knows his advantage and will hold onto it! God bless you, boy; you’ve found friends among your blood relatives, and I hope they will be as loyal as some you’ve met who aren’t of Indian descent. As for me, sooner or later, I have to die; so, it’s fortunate that there are only a few who will mourn my death. In the end, it’s likely the demons would have managed to get my scalp, so a day or two won’t make much difference in the grand scheme of things. God bless you,” added the rugged woodsman, leaning his head aside and then quickly turning it back with a nostalgic look toward the young man; “I loved both you and your father, Uncas, even though our skins aren’t exactly the same color and our abilities differ a bit. Tell the Sagamore I never lost sight of him during my toughest times; and for you, think of me sometimes when you’re on a good trail, and trust me, boy, whether there’s one heaven or two, there’s a way in the afterlife for good people to meet again. You’ll find the rifle where we hid it; take it and keep it for my sake; and listen, lad, since your natural gifts don’t hold you back from seeking revenge, use it a bit liberally on the Mingoes; it may help ease your pain over my loss and lighten your heart. Huron, I accept your offer; let the woman go. I am your prisoner!”

A suppressed, but still distinct murmur of approbation ran through the crowd at this generous proposition; even the fiercest among the Delaware warriors manifesting pleasure at the manliness of the intended sacrifice. Magua paused, and for an anxious moment, it might be said, he doubted; then, casting his eyes on Cora, with an expression in which ferocity and admiration were strangely mingled, his purpose became fixed forever.

A quiet, but still clear murmur of approval went through the crowd at this generous offer; even the toughest of the Delaware warriors showed their pleasure at the bravery of the planned sacrifice. Magua paused, and for a tense moment, it could be said that he hesitated; then, looking at Cora, with a strange mix of anger and admiration in his eyes, he made up his mind for good.

He intimated his contempt of the offer with a backward motion of his head, and said, in a steady and settled voice:

He showed his disdain for the offer with a quick shake of his head and said calmly and firmly:

“Le Renard Subtil is a great chief; he has but one mind. Come,” he added, laying his hand too familiarly on the shoulder of his captive to urge her onward; “a Huron is no tattler; we will go.”

“Le Renard Subtil is a great leader; he has a single focused mind. Come,” he said, placing his hand a bit too casually on the shoulder of his captive to encourage her to move forward; “a Huron doesn’t gossip; let’s go.”

The maiden drew back in lofty womanly reserve, and her dark eye kindled, while the rich blood shot, like the passing brightness of the sun, into her very temples, at the indignity.

The young woman pulled back with a proud sense of reserve, and her dark eye lit up, while the deep color rushed, like a flash of sunlight, into her temples at the insult.

“I am your prisoner, and, at a fitting time shall be ready to follow, even to my death. But violence is unnecessary,” she coldly said; and immediately turning to Hawkeye, added: “Generous hunter! from my soul I thank you. Your offer is vain, neither could it be accepted; but still you may serve me, even more than in your own noble intention. Look at that drooping humbled child! Abandon her not until you leave her in the habitations of civilized men. I will not say,” wringing the hard hand of the scout, “that her father will reward you—for such as you are above the rewards of men—but he will thank you and bless you. And, believe me, the blessing of a just and aged man has virtue in the sight of Heaven. Would to God I could hear one word from his lips at this awful moment!” Her voice became choked, and, for an instant, she was silent; then, advancing a step nigher to Duncan, who was supporting her unconscious sister, she continued, in more subdued tones, but in which feeling and the habits of her sex maintained a fearful struggle: “I need not tell you to cherish the treasure you will possess. You love her, Heyward; that would conceal a thousand faults, though she had them. She is kind, gentle, sweet, good, as mortal may be. There is not a blemish in mind or person at which the proudest of you all would sicken. She is fair—oh! how surpassingly fair!” laying her own beautiful, but less brilliant, hand in melancholy affection on the alabaster forehead of Alice, and parting the golden hair which clustered about her brows; “and yet her soul is pure and spotless as her skin! I could say much—more, perhaps, than cooler reason would approve; but I will spare you and myself—” Her voice became inaudible, and her face was bent over the form of her sister. After a long and burning kiss, she arose, and with features of the hue of death, but without even a tear in her feverish eye, she turned away, and added, to the savage, with all her former elevation of manner: “Now, sir, if it be your pleasure, I will follow.”

“I am your prisoner, and when the time is right, I’ll be ready to go with you, even to my death. But there’s no need for violence,” she said coldly; then turning to Hawkeye, she added, “Generous hunter! I truly thank you from the bottom of my heart. Your offer is pointless, and I can’t accept it; but you can still help me even more than you intended. Look at that sad, humbled child! Don’t abandon her until you’ve left her in the care of civilized people. I won’t say,” she said, gripping the scout’s hard hand, “that her father will reward you—for someone like you is above such rewards—but he will thank you and bless you. And believe me, the blessing of a just and elderly man holds worth in the eyes of Heaven. I wish I could hear a single word from him at this terrible moment!” Her voice choked, and she fell silent for a moment; then, stepping a little closer to Duncan, who was holding her unconscious sister, she continued in a subdued tone, where emotion and her instincts were in a painful struggle: “I don’t need to tell you to cherish the treasure you’ll have. You love her, Heyward; that can cover a thousand flaws, even if she had them. She is kind, gentle, sweet, and good, as any person can be. There isn’t a single flaw in her mind or appearance that the proudest of you would be put off by. She is beautiful—oh! how incredibly beautiful!” laying her own lovely, though less radiant, hand in sorrowful affection on Alice’s pale forehead, parting the golden hair around her brow; “and yet her soul is pure and spotless just like her skin! I could say a lot—maybe even more than rational thought would allow; but I will spare you both—” Her voice faded, and she bent over her sister’s form. After a long, passionate kiss, she stood and, with a face as pale as death but without a single tear in her feverish eyes, turned away and said to the savage, with all her previous poise: “Now, sir, if it pleases you, I will follow.”

“Ay, go,” cried Duncan, placing Alice in the arms of an Indian girl; “go, Magua, go. These Delawares have their laws, which forbid them to detain you; but I—I have no such obligation. Go, malignant monster—why do you delay?”

“Go ahead,” shouted Duncan, putting Alice in the arms of an Indian girl. “Go, Magua, go. These Delawares have their laws that prevent them from holding you back; but I—I have no such obligation. Go, you wicked monster—why are you hesitating?”

It would be difficult to describe the expression with which Magua listened to this threat to follow. There was at first a fierce and manifest display of joy, and then it was instantly subdued in a look of cunning coldness.

It would be difficult to describe the expression Magua had as he listened to this threat to follow. At first, there was a fierce and obvious display of joy, but then it quickly turned into a look of cold cunning.

“The words are open,” he was content with answering, “‘The Open Hand’ can come.”

“The words are open,” he replied contentedly, “‘The Open Hand’ can come.”

“Hold,” cried Hawkeye, seizing Duncan by the arm, and detaining him by violence; “you know not the craft of the imp. He would lead you to an ambushment, and your death—”

“Stop,” shouted Hawkeye, grabbing Duncan by the arm and holding him back forcefully; “you don't understand the trickery of the evil one. He would lead you into a trap, and to your death—”

“Huron,” interrupted Uncas, who submissive to the stern customs of his people, had been an attentive and grave listener to all that passed; “Huron, the justice of the Delawares comes from the Manitou. Look at the sun. He is now in the upper branches of the hemlock. Your path is short and open. When he is seen above the trees, there will be men on your trail.”

“Huron,” interrupted Uncas, who, following the strict traditions of his people, had been a focused and serious listener to everything that was happening; “Huron, the justice of the Delawares comes from the Manitou. Look at the sun. It’s now in the upper branches of the hemlock. Your path is short and clear. When it’s seen above the trees, there will be men on your trail.”

“I hear a crow!” exclaimed Magua, with a taunting laugh. “Go!” he added, shaking his hand at the crowd, which had slowly opened to admit his passage. “Where are the petticoats of the Delawares! Let them send their arrows and their guns to the Wyandots; they shall have venison to eat, and corn to hoe. Dogs, rabbits, thieves—I spit on you!”

“I hear a crow!” Magua shouted, letting out a mocking laugh. “Go!” he continued, waving his hand at the crowd, which had gradually parted to let him through. “Where are the women of the Delawares! Let them send their arrows and guns to the Wyandots; they’ll have venison to eat and corn to tend. Dogs, rabbits, thieves—I spit on you!”

His parting gibes were listened to in a dead, boding silence, and, with these biting words in his mouth, the triumphant Magua passed unmolested into the forest, followed by his passive captive, and protected by the inviolable laws of Indian hospitality.

His parting taunts were heard in a heavy, ominous silence, and, with those cutting words on his lips, the victorious Magua walked into the forest unbothered, followed by his helpless captive, and safeguarded by the sacred rules of Indian hospitality.

CHAPTER XXXI.

“Flue.—Kill the poys and the luggage! ’Tis expressly against the law of arms; ’tis as arrant a piece of knavery, mark you now, as can be offered in the ’orld.”
—King Henry V.

“Flue.—Kill the boys and the luggage! It’s clearly against the law of war; it’s as blatant a piece of dishonesty, you see, as can be found in the world.”
—King Henry V.

So long as their enemy and his victim continued in sight, the multitude remained motionless as beings charmed to the place by some power that was friendly to the Huron; but, the instant he disappeared, it became tossed and agitated by fierce and powerful passion. Uncas maintained his elevated stand, keeping his eyes on the form of Cora, until the colors of her dress were blended with the foliage of the forest; when he descended, and, moving silently through the throng, he disappeared in that lodge from which he had so recently issued. A few of the graver and more attentive warriors, who caught the gleams of anger that shot from the eyes of the young chief in passing, followed him to the place he had selected for his meditations. After which, Tamenund and Alice were removed, and the women and children were ordered to disperse. During the momentous hour that succeeded, the encampment resembled a hive of troubled bees, who only awaited the appearance and example of their leader to take some distant and momentous flight.

As long as their enemy and his victim were in view, the crowd stayed still, as if captivated by some force that favored the Huron. But the moment he vanished, they became restless and agitated with intense emotions. Uncas kept his elevated position, watching Cora until the colors of her dress blended with the forest foliage; then he descended and moved quietly through the crowd, disappearing into the lodge he had just come from. A few of the more serious and observant warriors, who noticed the flashes of anger in the young chief's eyes as he passed, followed him to the place he chose for his thoughts. After that, Tamenund and Alice were taken away, and the women and children were told to disperse. During the significant hour that followed, the camp resembled a hive of disturbed bees, waiting for their leader to show up and lead them on some important mission.

A young warrior at length issued from the lodge of Uncas; and, moving deliberately, with a sort of grave march, toward a dwarf pine that grew in the crevices of the rocky terrace, he tore the bark from its body, and then turned whence he came without speaking. He was soon followed by another, who stripped the sapling of its branches, leaving it a naked and blazed[1] trunk. A third colored the post with stripes of a dark red paint; all which indications of a hostile design in the leaders of the nation were received by the men without in a gloomy and ominous silence. Finally, the Mohican himself reappeared, divested of all his attire, except his girdle and leggings, and with one-half of his fine features hid under a cloud of threatening black.

A young warrior finally stepped out of Uncas' lodge and, moving slowly with a serious demeanor, walked toward a dwarf pine growing among the rocks. He stripped the bark from the tree and then turned back without saying a word. Soon after, another warrior came up and removed the sapling's branches, leaving it a bare and scorched trunk. A third warrior painted the post with dark red stripes. These signs of a hostile intention from the leaders of the group were met with a somber and foreboding silence by the men outside. Finally, the Mohican returned, wearing only his girdle and leggings, with half of his handsome face covered by a menacing black cloud.

[1] A tree which has been partially or entirely stripped of its bark is said, in the language of the country, to be “blazed.” The term is strictly English, for a horse is said to be blazed when it has a white mark.

[1] A tree that has had some or all of its bark removed is referred to, in local terms, as being “blazed.” This term is distinctly English, as a horse is described as blazed when it has a white mark.

Uncas moved with a slow and dignified tread toward the post, which he immediately commenced encircling with a measured step, not unlike an ancient dance, raising his voice, at the same time, in the wild and irregular chant of his war song. The notes were in the extremes of human sounds; being sometimes melancholy and exquisitely plaintive, even rivaling the melody of birds—and then, by sudden and startling transitions, causing the auditors to tremble by their depth and energy. The words were few and often repeated, proceeding gradually from a sort of invocation, or hymn, to the Deity, to an intimation of the warrior’s object, and terminating as they commenced with an acknowledgment of his own dependence on the Great Spirit. If it were possible to translate the comprehensive and melodious language in which he spoke, the ode might read something like the following: “Manitou! Manitou! Manitou! Thou art great, thou art good, thou art wise: Manitou! Manitou! Thou art just. In the heavens, in the clouds, oh, I see many spots—many dark, many red: In the heavens, oh, I see many clouds.”

Uncas walked slowly and with dignity toward the post, immediately starting to circle it with a measured step, similar to an ancient dance, raising his voice at the same time in the wild and irregular chant of his war song. The notes ranged from melancholic and incredibly plaintive, almost rivaling the melodies of birds, to sudden and intense changes that made the listeners tremble with their depth and power. The words were few and often repeated, gradually moving from a sort of invocation or hymn to the Deity to a hint of the warrior’s purpose, ending as they began with an acknowledgment of his own reliance on the Great Spirit. If it were possible to translate the rich and melodic language he used, the ode might read something like this: “Manitou! Manitou! Manitou! You are great, you are good, you are wise: Manitou! Manitou! You are just. In the heavens, in the clouds, oh, I see many spots—many dark, many red: In the heavens, oh, I see many clouds.”

“In the woods, in the air, oh, I hear the whoop, the long yell, and the cry: In the woods, oh, I hear the loud whoop!”

“In the woods, in the air, oh, I hear the shout, the long yell, and the cry: In the woods, oh, I hear the loud shout!”

“Manitou! Manitou! Manitou! I am weak—thou art strong; I am slow; Manitou! Manitou! Give me aid.”

“Manitou! Manitou! Manitou! I am weak—you are strong; I am slow; Manitou! Manitou! Please help me.”

At the end of what might be called each verse he made a pause, by raising a note louder and longer than common, that was peculiarly suited to the sentiment just expressed. The first close was solemn, and intended to convey the idea of veneration; the second descriptive, bordering on the alarming; and the third was the well-known and terrific war-whoop, which burst from the lips of the young warrior, like a combination of all the frightful sounds of battle. The last was like the first, humble and imploring. Three times did he repeat this song, and as often did he encircle the post in his dance.

At the end of what could be called each verse, he paused, raising a note that was louder and longer than usual, perfectly matching the feeling just expressed. The first ending was serious, meant to convey respect; the second was descriptive, almost alarming; and the third was the famous and terrifying war cry that erupted from the young warrior's lips, like a mix of all the scary sounds of battle. The last one was like the first, humble and begging. He repeated this song three times, circling the post with his dance each time.

At the close of the first turn, a grave and highly esteemed chief of the Lenape followed his example, singing words of his own, however, to music of a similar character. Warrior after warrior enlisted in the dance, until all of any renown and authority were numbered in its mazes. The spectacle now became wildly terrific; the fierce-looking and menacing visages of the chiefs receiving additional power from the appalling strains in which they mingled their guttural tones. Just then Uncas struck his tomahawk deep into the post, and raised his voice in a shout, which might be termed his own battle cry. The act announced that he had assumed the chief authority in the intended expedition.

At the end of the first turn, a serious and respected Lenape chief followed his lead, singing his own words to a similar tune. One warrior after another joined in the dance until all those of note and authority were caught up in its movements. The scene became intensely thrilling; the fierce and intimidating faces of the chiefs gained even more intensity from the terrifying sounds that mixed with their guttural voices. Just then, Uncas plunged his tomahawk deep into the post and raised his voice in a shout that could be called his battle cry. This action signaled that he had taken on the chief role in the planned expedition.

It was a signal that awakened all the slumbering passions of the nation. A hundred youths, who had hitherto been restrained by the diffidence of their years, rushed in a frantic body on the fancied emblem of their enemy, and severed it asunder, splinter by splinter, until nothing remained of the trunk but its roots in the earth. During this moment of tumult, the most ruthless deeds of war were performed on the fragments of the tree, with as much apparent ferocity as if they were the living victims of their cruelty. Some were scalped; some received the keen and trembling axe; and others suffered by thrusts from the fatal knife. In short, the manifestations of zeal and fierce delight were so great and unequivocal, that the expedition was declared to be a war of the nation.

It was a signal that stirred all the hidden passions of the nation. A hundred young people, who had previously held back because of their inexperience, rushed forward in a wild mob toward the imagined symbol of their enemy, tearing it apart piece by piece until nothing but the roots remained in the ground. During this chaotic moment, the most brutal acts of violence were carried out on the remnants of the tree, with as much apparent savagery as if they were actually harming living beings. Some were scalped; some met the sharp and shaking axe; and others were attacked with deadly knives. In short, the displays of fervor and intense excitement were so obvious and overwhelming that the mission was declared a war of the nation.

The instant Uncas had struck the blow, he moved out of the circle, and cast his eyes up to the sun, which was just gaining the point, when the truce with Magua was to end. The fact was soon announced by a significant gesture, accompanied by a corresponding cry; and the whole of the excited multitude abandoned their mimic warfare, with shrill yells of pleasure, to prepare for the more hazardous experiment of the reality.

The moment Uncas delivered the blow, he stepped out of the circle and looked up at the sun, which was just reaching the point where the truce with Magua was set to end. This fact was quickly shown by a meaningful gesture, along with a matching shout; and the entire enthusiastic crowd stopped their mock battle, letting out loud cheers of excitement, to get ready for the much riskier challenge of the real thing.

The whole face of the encampment was instantly changed. The warriors, who were already armed and painted, became as still as if they were incapable of any uncommon burst of emotion. On the other hand, the women broke out of the lodges, with the songs of joy and those of lamentation so strangely mixed that it might have been difficult to have said which passion preponderated. None, however, was idle. Some bore their choicest articles, others their young, and some their aged and infirm, into the forest, which spread itself like a verdant carpet of bright green against the side of the mountain. Thither Tamenund also retired, with calm composure, after a short and touching interview with Uncas; from whom the sage separated with the reluctance that a parent would quit a long lost and just recovered child. In the meantime, Duncan saw Alice to a place of safety, and then sought the scout, with a countenance that denoted how eagerly he also panted for the approaching contest.

The entire camp changed instantly. The warriors, already armed and painted, stood as still as if they couldn’t express any strong emotions. Meanwhile, the women poured out of the lodges, with songs of joy and sorrow so mixed together that it was hard to tell which feeling was stronger. However, no one was idle. Some carried their most precious belongings, others brought their children, and some looked after the elderly and sick, all moving toward the forest, which looked like a lush green carpet against the mountainside. Tamenund also left calmly after an emotional moment with Uncas; he parted with the same reluctance a parent feels when leaving a long-lost child. Meanwhile, Duncan got Alice to a safe spot and then went to find the scout, with a look that showed how eagerly he was waiting for the coming battle.

But Hawkeye was too much accustomed to the war song and the enlistments of the natives, to betray any interest in the passing scene. He merely cast an occasional look at the number and quality of the warriors, who, from time to time, signified their readiness to accompany Uncas to the field. In this particular he was soon satisfied; for, as has been already seen, the power of the young chief quickly embraced every fighting man in the nation. After this material point was so satisfactorily decided, he despatched an Indian boy in quest of “killdeer” and the rifle of Uncas, to the place where they had deposited their weapons on approaching the camp of the Delawares; a measure of double policy, inasmuch as it protected the arms from their own fate, if detained as prisoners, and gave them the advantage of appearing among the strangers rather as sufferers than as men provided with means of defense and subsistence. In selecting another to perform the office of reclaiming his highly prized rifle, the scout had lost sight of none of his habitual caution. He knew that Magua had not come unattended, and he also knew that Huron spies watched the movements of their new enemies, along the whole boundary of the woods. It would, therefore, have been fatal to himself to have attempted the experiment; a warrior would have fared no better; but the danger of a boy would not be likely to commence until after his object was discovered. When Heyward joined him, the scout was coolly awaiting the result of this experiment.

But Hawkeye was too used to the war songs and the enlistments of the locals to show any interest in what was happening around him. He just occasionally glanced at the number and quality of the warriors who expressed their willingness to join Uncas in battle. He was soon satisfied on this front; as had been noted earlier, the young chief quickly gained the support of every warrior in the nation. Once this important detail was settled, he sent an Indian boy to retrieve the “killdeer” and Uncas’s rifle from where they had left their weapons when approaching the Delaware camp; this decision served a dual purpose: it kept their arms safe from being captured and allowed them to approach the strangers as victims rather than as men equipped for defense and survival. In choosing someone else to fetch his prized rifle, the scout remained aware of his usual caution. He knew that Magua had not come alone, and he was aware that Huron spies were observing their new enemies throughout the entire forest perimeter. Therefore, it would have been dangerous for him to attempt it; a warrior would have had no better luck, but the risk for a boy wouldn’t arise until after his mission was discovered. When Heyward joined him, the scout was casually waiting to see the outcome of this plan.

The boy, who had been well instructed, and was sufficiently crafty, proceeded, with a bosom that was swelling with the pride of such a confidence, and all the hopes of young ambition, carelessly across the clearing to the wood, which he entered at a point at some little distance from the place where the guns were secreted. The instant, however, he was concealed by the foliage of the bushes, his dusky form was to be seen gliding, like that of a serpent, toward the desired treasure. He was successful; and in another moment he appeared flying across the narrow opening that skirted the base of the terrace on which the village stood, with the velocity of an arrow, and bearing a prize in each hand. He had actually gained the crags, and was leaping up their sides with incredible activity, when a shot from the woods showed how accurate had been the judgment of the scout. The boy answered it with a feeble but contemptuous shout; and immediately a second bullet was sent after him from another part of the cover. At the next instant he appeared on the level above, elevating his guns in triumph, while he moved with the air of a conqueror toward the renowned hunter who had honored him by so glorious a commission.

The boy, who had been well taught and was clever enough, confidently made his way across the clearing to the woods, filled with pride and the aspirations of youth, moving carelessly to a spot a little ways from where the guns were hidden. As soon as he was hidden by the leaves of the bushes, his dark figure could be seen sneaking like a snake toward the coveted treasure. He succeeded, and moments later, he shot out across the narrow space at the base of the terrace where the village stood, as fast as an arrow, with a prize in each hand. He had actually reached the cliffs and was climbing them with amazing agility when a shot rang out from the woods, proving the scout's judgment was spot on. The boy responded with a weak but scornful shout, and almost immediately, a second bullet was fired at him from a different part of the cover. In the next instant, he appeared on the level above, raising his guns in triumph as he strode toward the renowned hunter who had entrusted him with such an impressive task.

Notwithstanding the lively interest Hawkeye had taken in the fate of his messenger, he received “killdeer” with a satisfaction that, momentarily, drove all other recollections from his mind. After examining the piece with an intelligent eye, and opening and shutting the pan some ten or fifteen times, and trying sundry other equally important experiments on the lock, he turned to the boy and demanded with great manifestations of kindness, if he was hurt. The urchin looked proudly up in his face, but made no reply.

Despite the keen interest Hawkeye had in the fate of his messenger, he received “killdeer” with a satisfaction that briefly pushed all other thoughts out of his mind. After inspecting the weapon with a knowledgeable eye, opening and closing the pan ten or fifteen times, and trying various other equally important tests on the lock, he turned to the boy and asked with a lot of kindness if he was hurt. The kid looked up at him proudly but didn’t respond.

“Ah! I see, lad, the knaves have barked your arm!” added the scout, taking up the limb of the patient sufferer, across which a deep flesh wound had been made by one of the bullets; “but a little bruised alder will act like a charm. In the meantime I will wrap it in a badge of wampum! You have commenced the business of a warrior early, my brave boy, and are likely to bear a plenty of honorable scars to your grave. I know many young men that have taken scalps who cannot show such a mark as this. Go!” having bound up the arm; “you will be a chief!”

“Ah! I see, kid, those guys have shot your arm!” the scout said, picking up the injured limb, which had a deep flesh wound from one of the bullets. “But a little crushed alder will work like a charm. In the meantime, I’ll wrap it up with a piece of wampum! You’ve started your warrior journey early, my brave boy, and you’re bound to get plenty of honorable scars before you’re done. I know a lot of young men who’ve taken scalps who can’t show a mark like this. Go!” After binding up the arm, he added, “You’re going to be a chief!”

The lad departed, prouder of his flowing blood than the vainest courtier could be of his blushing ribbon; and stalked among the fellows of his age, an object of general admiration and envy.

The boy left, more proud of his noble lineage than the most vain courtier could be of his decorated ribbon; and he walked among his peers, a source of admiration and envy.

But, in a moment of so many serious and important duties, this single act of juvenile fortitude did not attract the general notice and commendation it would have received under milder auspices. It had, however, served to apprise the Delawares of the position and the intentions of their enemies. Accordingly a party of adventurers, better suited to the task than the weak though spirited boy, was ordered to dislodge the skulkers. The duty was soon performed; for most of the Hurons retired of themselves when they found they had been discovered. The Delawares followed to a sufficient distance from their own encampment, and then halted for orders, apprehensive of being led into an ambush. As both parties secreted themselves, the woods were again as still and quiet as a mild summer morning and deep solitude could render them.

But at a time filled with so many serious and important responsibilities, this one act of youthful bravery didn't get the attention and praise it would have had under better circumstances. However, it did inform the Delawares about the position and intentions of their enemies. As a result, a group of adventurers, more suited to the task than the weak but spirited boy, was sent to drive out the hiding enemies. The job was completed quickly; most of the Hurons retreated on their own when they realized they had been spotted. The Delawares followed them at a safe distance from their own camp and then stopped to wait for orders, worried about being led into a trap. As both groups hid, the woods became as calm and quiet as a gentle summer morning and deep solitude could make them.

The calm but still impatient Uncas now collected his chiefs, and divided his power. He presented Hawkeye as a warrior, often tried, and always found deserving of confidence. When he found his friend met with a favorable reception, he bestowed on him the command of twenty men, like himself, active, skillful and resolute. He gave the Delawares to understand the rank of Heyward among the troops of the Yengeese, and then tendered to him a trust of equal authority. But Duncan declined the charge, professing his readiness to serve as a volunteer by the side of the scout. After this disposition, the young Mohican appointed various native chiefs to fill the different situations of responsibility, and, the time pressing, he gave forth the word to march. He was cheerfully, but silently obeyed by more than two hundred men.

The calm yet still eager Uncas gathered his chiefs and shared his authority. He introduced Hawkeye as a warrior who had been tested multiple times and always earned trust. When he noticed his friend received a warm welcome, he appointed him to lead twenty men, who were just like him—active, skilled, and determined. He made sure the Delawares understood Heyward's rank among the Yengeese troops and then offered him a position of equal authority. But Duncan turned down the role, saying he was ready to serve as a volunteer alongside the scout. After organizing this, the young Mohican assigned various native chiefs to handle different responsibilities, and with time pressing, he ordered the march. More than two hundred men cheerfully but silently followed his command.

Their entrance into the forest was perfectly unmolested; nor did they encounter any living objects that could either give the alarm, or furnish the intelligence they needed, until they came upon the lairs of their own scouts. Here a halt was ordered, and the chiefs were assembled to hold a “whispering council.”

Their entrance into the forest was completely undisturbed; they didn't come across any living creatures that could alert others or provide the information they needed, until they found the hiding spots of their own scouts. Here, they stopped, and the leaders gathered to hold a “whispering council.”

At this meeting divers plans of operation were suggested, though none of a character to meet the wishes of their ardent leader. Had Uncas followed the promptings of his own inclinations, he would have led his followers to the charge without a moment’s delay, and put the conflict to the hazard of an instant issue; but such a course would have been in opposition to all the received practises and opinions of his countrymen. He was, therefore, fain to adopt a caution that in the present temper of his mind he execrated, and to listen to advice at which his fiery spirit chafed, under the vivid recollection of Cora’s danger and Magua’s insolence.

At this meeting, various plans of action were proposed, but none seemed to satisfy their passionate leader. If Uncas had followed his own desires, he would have charged ahead with his followers without hesitation and resolved the conflict immediately. However, such a move would have contradicted everything his people believed in. As a result, he felt forced to take a cautious approach that he resented in his current state of mind and to heed advice that frustrated him, especially given his vivid memories of Cora’s peril and Magua’s arrogance.

After an unsatisfactory conference of many minutes, a solitary individual was seen advancing from the side of the enemy, with such apparent haste, as to induce the belief he might be a messenger charged with pacific overtures. When within a hundred yards, however, of the cover behind which the Delaware council had assembled, the stranger hesitated, appeared uncertain what course to take, and finally halted. All eyes were turned now on Uncas, as if seeking directions how to proceed.

After a lengthy and unsatisfying meeting, a lone person was spotted coming from the enemy's side, seeming to hurry as if he might be a messenger with peace offerings. However, when he got within a hundred yards of the cover where the Delaware council had gathered, the stranger paused, looked uncertain about what to do next, and ultimately stopped. Everyone looked to Uncas, as if looking for guidance on what to do next.

“Hawkeye,” said the young chief, in a low voice, “he must never speak to the Hurons again.”

“Hawkeye,” said the young chief in a low voice, “he must never talk to the Hurons again.”

“His time has come,” said the laconic scout, thrusting the long barrel of his rifle through the leaves, and taking his deliberate and fatal aim. But, instead of pulling the trigger, he lowered the muzzle again, and indulged himself in a fit of his peculiar mirth. “I took the imp for a Mingo, as I’m a miserable sinner!” he said; “but when my eye ranged along his ribs for a place to get the bullet in—would you think it, Uncas—I saw the musicianer’s blower; and so, after all, it is the man they call Gamut, whose death can profit no one, and whose life, if this tongue can do anything but sing, may be made serviceable to our own ends. If sounds have not lost their virtue, I’ll soon have a discourse with the honest fellow, and that in a voice he’ll find more agreeable than the speech of ‘killdeer’.”

“His time has come,” said the quiet scout, pushing the long barrel of his rifle through the leaves and taking his careful and deadly aim. But instead of pulling the trigger, he lowered the muzzle again and indulged in a fit of his strange laughter. “I mistook the guy for a Mingo, as I’m a miserable sinner!” he said; “but when my eye looked along his ribs for a spot to get the bullet in—can you believe it, Uncas—I saw the musician’s mouthpiece; and so, it turns out, it’s the guy they call Gamut, whose death benefits no one, and whose life, if this tongue can do anything but sing, might be useful to us. If sounds haven’t lost their power, I’ll soon have a chat with the honest fellow, and he’ll find my voice more pleasant than the chatter of ‘killdeer’.”

So saying, Hawkeye laid aside his rifle; and, crawling through the bushes until within hearing of David, he attempted to repeat the musical effort, which had conducted himself, with so much safety and eclat, through the Huron encampment. The exquisite organs of Gamut could not readily be deceived (and, to say the truth, it would have been difficult for any other than Hawkeye to produce a similar noise), and, consequently, having once before heard the sounds, he now knew whence they proceeded. The poor fellow appeared relieved from a state of great embarrassment; for, pursuing the direction of the voice—a task that to him was not much less arduous that it would have been to have gone up in the face of a battery—he soon discovered the hidden songster.

Hawkeye set down his rifle and crawled through the bushes until he could hear David. He tried to recreate the musical sound that had helped him navigate the Huron encampment so safely and impressively. Gamut's finely tuned ears weren't easily fooled (and honestly, it would have been hard for anyone other than Hawkeye to make a similar noise), so having heard the sounds before, he quickly recognized their source. The poor guy seemed relieved from a lot of embarrassment; as he followed the direction of the voice—a task that was nearly as challenging as facing a cannon—he soon found the hidden singer.

“I wonder what the Hurons will think of that!” said the scout, laughing, as he took his companion by the arm, and urged him toward the rear. “If the knaves lie within earshot, they will say there are two non-compossers instead of one! But here we are safe,” he added, pointing to Uncas and his associates. “Now give us the history of the Mingo inventions in natural English, and without any ups and downs of voice.”

“I wonder what the Hurons will think of that!” said the scout, laughing as he took his companion by the arm and nudged him toward the back. “If the fools are within earshot, they'll say there are two crazy people instead of one! But we’re safe here,” he added, pointing to Uncas and his friends. “Now, give us the story of the Mingo’s inventions in plain English, and without any ups and downs in your voice.”

David gazed about him, at the fierce and wild-looking chiefs, in mute wonder; but assured by the presence of faces that he knew, he soon rallied his faculties so far as to make an intelligent reply.

David looked around at the fierce and wild-looking chiefs in silent amazement; however, comforted by the presence of familiar faces, he quickly gathered his thoughts enough to give an intelligent response.

“The heathen are abroad in goodly numbers,” said David; “and, I fear, with evil intent. There has been much howling and ungodly revelry, together with such sounds as it is profanity to utter, in their habitations within the past hour, so much so, in truth, that I have fled to the Delawares in search of peace.”

“The non-believers are out in large numbers,” said David; “and, I worry, with bad intentions. There has been a lot of screaming and immoral partying, along with sounds that are too profane to speak of, coming from their homes in the last hour. It’s been so overwhelming that I’ve run to the Delawares looking for some peace.”

“Your ears might not have profited much by the exchange, had you been quicker of foot,” returned the scout a little dryly. “But let that be as it may; where are the Hurons?”

“Your ears might not have gained much from the conversation, if you had been faster,” the scout replied somewhat dryly. “But that’s beside the point; where are the Hurons?”

“They lie hid in the forest, between this spot and their village in such force, that prudence would teach you instantly to return.”

“They're hiding in the forest, between here and their village, in such numbers that common sense would tell you to turn back immediately.”

Uncas cast a glance along the range of trees which concealed his own band and mentioned the name of:

Uncas looked along the line of trees that hid his group and said the name of:

“Magua?”

“Magua?”

“Is among them. He brought in the maiden that had sojourned with the Delawares; and, leaving her in the cave, has put himself, like a raging wolf, at the head of his savages. I know not what has troubled his spirit so greatly!”

“Is among them. He brought in the young woman who had stayed with the Delawares; and, leaving her in the cave, he’s positioned himself, like a raging wolf, at the front of his group. I don’t know what has troubled him so much!”

“He has left her, you say, in the cave!” interrupted Heyward; “’tis well that we know its situation! May not something be done for her instant relief?”

“He's left her, you say, in the cave!” interrupted Heyward; “It’s good that we know where it is! Can we do something to help her right away?”

Uncas looked earnestly at the scout, before he asked:

Uncas looked intently at the scout before he asked:

“What says Hawkeye?”

"What does Hawkeye say?"

“Give me twenty rifles, and I will turn to the right, along the stream; and, passing by the huts of the beaver, will join the Sagamore and the colonel. You shall then hear the whoop from that quarter; with this wind one may easily send it a mile. Then, Uncas, do you drive in the front; when they come within range of our pieces, we will give them a blow that, I pledge the good name of an old frontiersman, shall make their line bend like an ashen bow. After which, we will carry the village, and take the woman from the cave; when the affair may be finished with the tribe, according to a white man’s battle, by a blow and a victory; or, in the Indian fashion, with dodge and cover. There may be no great learning, major, in this plan, but with courage and patience it can all be done.”

“Give me twenty rifles, and I’ll head to the right along the stream; passing by the beaver huts, I’ll join the Sagamore and the colonel. You’ll then hear the signal from that direction; with this wind, it can travel a mile easily. Then, Uncas, you take the lead; when they’re within range of our guns, we’ll hit them hard, and I promise you as an old frontiersman, it will make their line bend like a flexible bow. After that, we’ll take the village and rescue the woman from the cave; then we can finish the matter with the tribe, either like a white man with a decisive blow and a victory, or in the Indian way, with dodging and cover. There may not be much sophistication in this plan, major, but with courage and patience, we can make it happen.”

“I like it very much,” cried Duncan, who saw that the release of Cora was the primary object in the mind of the scout; “I like it much. Let it be instantly attempted.”

“I really like it,” shouted Duncan, realizing that freeing Cora was the scout's main goal; “I like it a lot. Let's make it happen right away.”

After a short conference, the plan was matured, and rendered more intelligible to the several parties; the different signals were appointed, and the chiefs separated, each to his allotted station.

After a brief meeting, the plan was developed and explained more clearly to everyone involved; the various signals were decided upon, and the leaders dispersed, each to their designated position.

CHAPTER XXXII.

“But plagues shall spread, and funeral fires increase,
Till the great king, without a ransom paid,
To her own Chrysa send the black-eyed maid.”
—Pope.

“But plagues will spread, and funeral fires will grow,
Until the great king, without a ransom paid,
Sends the black-eyed girl back to her own Chrysa.”
—Pope.

During the time Uncas was making this disposition of his forces, the woods were as still, and, with the exception of those who had met in council, apparently as much untenanted as when they came fresh from the hands of their Almighty Creator. The eye could range, in every direction, through the long and shadowed vistas of the trees; but nowhere was any object to be seen that did not properly belong to the peaceful and slumbering scenery.

During the time Uncas was organizing his forces, the woods were completely still, and aside from those who had gathered in council, they seemed as empty as when they had just been created by their Almighty Creator. The eye could roam in every direction through the long, shadowy paths of the trees; but there was nothing to be seen that didn’t belong to the calm and sleeping landscape.

Here and there a bird was heard fluttering among the branches of the beeches, and occasionally a squirrel dropped a nut, drawing the startled looks of the party for a moment to the place; but the instant the casual interruption ceased, the passing air was heard murmuring above their heads, along that verdant and undulating surface of forest, which spread itself unbroken, unless by stream or lake, over such a vast region of country. Across the tract of wilderness which lay between the Delawares and the village of their enemies, it seemed as if the foot of man had never trodden, so breathing and deep was the silence in which it lay. But Hawkeye, whose duty led him foremost in the adventure, knew the character of those with whom he was about to contend too well to trust the treacherous quiet.

Here and there, a bird could be heard flapping its wings among the branches of the beech trees, and occasionally a squirrel dropped a nut, causing the group to turn their heads in surprise for a moment. But as soon as the brief distraction ended, they could hear the soft rustling of the wind above them, moving along the lush and rolling expanse of the forest, which stretched unbroken, except for rivers and lakes, across such a vast area. The wild land between the Delawares and the village of their enemies felt untouched, so profound and deep was the silence that surrounded it. However, Hawkeye, who was leading the way in their mission, understood the nature of those he was about to face well enough not to be fooled by the deceptive calm.

When he saw his little band collected, the scout threw “killdeer” into the hollow of his arm, and making a silent signal that he would be followed, he led them many rods toward the rear, into the bed of a little brook which they had crossed in advancing. Here he halted, and after waiting for the whole of his grave and attentive warriors to close about him, he spoke in Delaware, demanding:

When he saw his small group gathered, the scout cradled the "killdeer" in the crook of his arm and silently signaled for them to follow. He led them several yards back into the shallow bed of a small creek they had crossed earlier. Here, he stopped and waited for all his serious and attentive warriors to gather around him before he spoke in Delaware, asking:

“Do any of my young men know whither this run will lead us?”

“Do any of my young men know where this run will take us?”

A Delaware stretched forth a hand, with the two fingers separated, and indicating the manner in which they were joined at the root, he answered:

A Delaware extended a hand, with two fingers apart, and showing how they were connected at the base, he replied:

“Before the sun could go his own length, the little water will be in the big.” Then he added, pointing in the direction of the place he mentioned, “the two make enough for the beavers.”

“Before the sun can go its own length, the little water will be in the big.” Then he added, pointing in the direction he mentioned, “together they make enough for the beavers.”

“I thought as much,” returned the scout, glancing his eye upward at the opening in the tree-tops, “from the course it takes, and the bearings of the mountains. Men, we will keep within the cover of its banks till we scent the Hurons.”

“I figured as much,” replied the scout, looking up at the gap in the treetops, “based on its direction and the layout of the mountains. Guys, let's stay off the banks until we catch the scent of the Hurons.”

His companions gave the usual brief exclamation of assent, but, perceiving that their leader was about to lead the way in person, one or two made signs that all was not as it should be. Hawkeye, who comprehended their meaning glances, turned and perceived that his party had been followed thus far by the singing-master.

His friends gave the typical short response of agreement, but noticing that their leader was about to take the lead himself, one or two signaled that something wasn't quite right. Hawkeye, understanding their concerned looks, turned and realized that the singing-master had been trailing his group up to that point.

“Do you know, friend,” asked the scout, gravely, and perhaps with a little of the pride of conscious deserving in his manner, “that this is a band of rangers chosen for the most desperate service, and put under the command of one who, though another might say it with a better face, will not be apt to leave them idle. It may not be five, it cannot be thirty minutes, before we tread on the body of a Huron, living or dead.”

“Do you know, buddy,” the scout asked seriously, maybe with a hint of pride in his tone, “that this is a group of rangers selected for the toughest assignments, led by someone who, even if another person could say it better, isn’t likely to let them sit around doing nothing. It might not be five minutes, and it can’t be thirty, before we come across a Huron, alive or dead.”

“Though not admonished of your intentions in words,” returned David, whose face was a little flushed, and whose ordinarily quiet and unmeaning eyes glimmered with an expression of unusual fire, “your men have reminded me of the children of Jacob going out to battle against the Shechemites, for wickedly aspiring to wedlock with a woman of a race that was favored of the Lord. Now, I have journeyed far, and sojourned much in good and evil with the maiden ye seek; and, though not a man of war, with my loins girded and my sword sharpened, yet would I gladly strike a blow in her behalf.”

"Even though you haven't directly warned me about your intentions," David replied, his face slightly flushed and his usually calm and blank eyes shining with an unusual intensity, "your men remind me of Jacob's children going into battle against the Shechemites, driven by their desire to marry a woman from a race that was favored by the Lord. I've traveled far and experienced both good and bad times with the woman you seek; and although I'm not a warrior, with my belt tightened and my sword ready, I would willingly fight for her."

The scout hesitated, as if weighing the chances of such a strange enlistment in his mind before he answered:

The scout paused, as if thinking about the odds of agreeing to such an odd enlistment before he responded:

“You know not the use of any we’pon. You carry no rifle; and believe me, what the Mingoes take they will freely give again.”

“You don’t know how to use any weapon. You’re not carrying a rifle; and trust me, what the Mingoes take, they will easily give back.”

“Though not a vaunting and bloodily disposed Goliath,” returned David, drawing a sling from beneath his parti-colored and uncouth attire, “I have not forgotten the example of the Jewish boy. With this ancient instrument of war have I practised much in my youth, and peradventure the skill has not entirely departed from me.”

“Even though I’m not a boastful and aggressive giant,” David replied, pulling a sling from under his mismatched and strange clothes, “I haven’t forgotten the example of the Jewish boy. I practiced with this old weapon a lot when I was young, and maybe I still have some of that skill left in me.”

“Ay!” said Hawkeye, considering the deer-skin thong and apron, with a cold and discouraging eye; “the thing might do its work among arrows, or even knives; but these Mengwe have been furnished by the Frenchers with a good grooved barrel a man. However, it seems to be your gift to go unharmed amid fire; and as you have hitherto been favored—major, you have left your rifle at a cock; a single shot before the time would be just twenty scalps lost to no purpose—singer, you can follow; we may find use for you in the shoutings.”

“Ay!” said Hawkeye, looking at the deer-skin thong and apron with a cold and discouraging gaze. “That might work against arrows, or even knives, but those Mengwe have been supplied with good rifled guns by the French. Still, it seems you have a talent for staying safe in the midst of danger. And since you've been lucky so far—Major, you’ve left your rifle uncocked; one shot too early could cost us twenty scalps for no good reason—Singer, you can come along; we might need you for the calls.”

“I thank you, friend,” returned David, supplying himself, like his royal namesake, from among the pebbles of the brook; “though not given to the desire to kill, had you sent me away my spirit would have been troubled.”

“I thank you, my friend,” David replied, gathering stones from the brook like his royal counterpart; “even though I’m not one to desire violence, if you had sent me away, it would have weighed heavily on my spirit.”

“Remember,” added the scout, tapping his own head significantly on that spot where Gamut was yet sore, “we come to fight, and not to musickate. Until the general whoop is given, nothing speaks but the rifle.”

“Remember,” the scout said, tapping his own head meaningfully on the spot that Gamut was still sore, “we're here to fight, not to play music. Until the general call is given, the only thing that matters is the rifle.”

David nodded, as much to signify his acquiescence with the terms; and then Hawkeye, casting another observant glance over his followers made the signal to proceed.

David nodded, indicating that he agreed to the terms; then Hawkeye, taking another careful look at his companions, signaled to move forward.

Their route lay, for the distance of a mile, along the bed of the water-course. Though protected from any great danger of observation by the precipitous banks, and the thick shrubbery which skirted the stream, no precaution known to an Indian attack was neglected. A warrior rather crawled than walked on each flank so as to catch occasional glimpses into the forest; and every few minutes the band came to a halt, and listened for hostile sounds, with an acuteness of organs that would be scarcely conceivable to a man in a less natural state. Their march was, however, unmolested, and they reached the point where the lesser stream was lost in the greater, without the smallest evidence that their progress had been noted. Here the scout again halted, to consult the signs of the forest.

Their path followed the riverbed for about a mile. Although they were shielded from being easily seen by the steep banks and dense bushes lining the stream, they didn’t take any chances against an Indian attack. A warrior crawled rather than walked on either side to catch occasional glimpses into the woods, and every few minutes, the group would pause and listen for any hostile noises, with a level of awareness that would be hard to imagine for someone less in tune with nature. Their journey, however, went undisturbed, and they arrived at the junction where the smaller stream merged with the larger one, without any signs that they had been noticed. Here, the scout stopped again to examine the signs in the forest.

“We are likely to have a good day for a fight,” he said, in English, addressing Heyward, and glancing his eyes upward at the clouds, which began to move in broad sheets across the firmament; “a bright sun and a glittering barrel are no friends to true sight. Everything is favorable; they have the wind, which will bring down their noises and their smoke, too, no little matter in itself; whereas, with us it will be first a shot, and then a clear view. But here is an end to our cover; the beavers have had the range of this stream for hundreds of years, and what atween their food and their dams, there is, as you see, many a girdled stub, but few living trees.”

“We're likely to have a good day for a fight,” he said in English, looking at Heyward and glancing up at the clouds that were starting to move in thick sheets across the sky. “A bright sun and a shiny barrel are not helpful for clear sight. Everything is in our favor; they have the wind, which will carry their sounds and their smoke, and that’s significant. For us, it will be first a shot, and then a clear view. But this is the end of our cover; the beavers have had this stream to themselves for hundreds of years, and with their eating and their dams, as you can see, there are many girdled stubs but few living trees.”

Hawkeye had, in truth, in these few words, given no bad description of the prospect that now lay in their front. The brook was irregular in its width, sometimes shooting through narrow fissures in the rocks, and at others spreading over acres of bottom land, forming little areas that might be termed ponds. Everywhere along its bands were the moldering relics of dead trees, in all the stages of decay, from those that groaned on their tottering trunks to such as had recently been robbed of those rugged coats that so mysteriously contain their principle of life. A few long, low, and moss-covered piles were scattered among them, like the memorials of a former and long-departed generation.

Hawkeye had, in truth, given a pretty accurate description of the view that now lay before them. The brook varied in width, sometimes squeezing through narrow gaps in the rocks and at other times spreading out over large areas of flat land, creating small sections that could be called ponds. All along its banks were the decaying remains of dead trees, in various stages of deterioration, from those that creaked on their shaky trunks to ones that had recently lost the rough bark that mysteriously contained their life force. A few long, low, moss-covered mounds were scattered among them, like memorials to a long-gone generation.

All these minute particulars were noted by the scout, with a gravity and interest that they probably had never before attracted. He knew that the Huron encampment lay a short half mile up the brook; and, with the characteristic anxiety of one who dreaded a hidden danger, he was greatly troubled at not finding the smallest trace of the presence of his enemy. Once or twice he felt induced to give the order for a rush, and to attempt the village by surprise; but his experience quickly admonished him of the danger of so useless an experiment. Then he listened intently, and with painful uncertainty, for the sounds of hostility in the quarter where Uncas was left; but nothing was audible except the sighing of the wind, that began to sweep over the bosom of the forest in gusts which threatened a tempest. At length, yielding rather to his unusual impatience than taking counsel from his knowledge, he determined to bring matters to an issue, by unmasking his force, and proceeding cautiously, but steadily, up the stream.

All these small details were noticed by the scout, with a seriousness and interest they probably had never drawn before. He knew that the Huron camp was just half a mile up the stream, and with the typical anxiety of someone who feared hidden danger, he was very worried about not finding any signs of his enemy. A couple of times, he felt tempted to order a rush and try to surprise the village; however, his experience quickly reminded him of the risks of such a pointless attempt. Then he listened carefully, with a painful uncertainty, for any signs of conflict in the direction where Uncas was left; but all he could hear was the wind sighing, starting to sweep over the forest in gusts that threatened a storm. Finally, yielding more to his unusual impatience than consulting his knowledge, he decided to take action by revealing his force and moving cautiously, but steadily, up the stream.

The scout had stood, while making his observations, sheltered by a brake, and his companions still lay in the bed of the ravine, through which the smaller stream debouched; but on hearing his low, though intelligible, signal the whole party stole up the bank, like so many dark specters, and silently arranged themselves around him. Pointing in the direction he wished to proceed, Hawkeye advanced, the band breaking off in single files, and following so accurately in his footsteps, as to leave it, if we except Heyward and David, the trail of but a single man.

The scout had been standing, observing from behind some brush, while his companions were still lying in the bottom of the ravine where the smaller stream flowed out. But when he made his quiet but clear signal, the whole group crept up the bank like shadows and quietly gathered around him. Pointing in the direction he wanted to go, Hawkeye moved forward, and the group split into single-file lines, following his footsteps so closely that, except for Heyward and David, it looked like only one person had passed.

The party was, however, scarcely uncovered before a volley from a dozen rifles was heard in their rear; and a Delaware leaping high in to the air, like a wounded deer, fell at his whole length, dead.

The party was barely uncovered when a volley from a dozen rifles rang out behind them; a Delaware leaped high into the air, like a wounded deer, and then fell flat on the ground, dead.

“Ah, I feared some deviltry like this!” exclaimed the scout, in English, adding, with the quickness of thought, in his adopted tongue: “To cover, men, and charge!”

“Ah, I was afraid something like this would happen!” exclaimed the scout, in English, then quickly added in his adopted language: “Take cover, men, and charge!”

The band dispersed at the word, and before Heyward had well recovered from his surprise, he found himself standing alone with David. Luckily the Hurons had already fallen back, and he was safe from their fire. But this state of things was evidently to be of short continuance; for the scout set the example of pressing on their retreat, by discharging his rifle, and darting from tree to tree as his enemy slowly yielded ground.

The band scattered at the signal, and before Heyward could fully process his shock, he realized he was standing alone with David. Fortunately, the Hurons had already pulled back, so he was out of their line of fire. However, this situation clearly wouldn’t last long; the scout led the way by firing his rifle and moving swiftly from tree to tree as the enemy gradually gave ground.

It would seem that the assault had been made by a very small party of the Hurons, which, however, continued to increase in numbers, as it retired on its friends, until the return fire was very nearly, if not quite, equal to that maintained by the advancing Delawares. Heyward threw himself among the combatants, and imitating the necessary caution of his companions, he made quick discharges with his own rifle. The contest now grew warm and stationary. Few were injured, as both parties kept their bodies as much protected as possible by the trees; never, indeed, exposing any part of their persons except in the act of taking aim. But the chances were gradually growing unfavorable to Hawkeye and his band. The quick-sighted scout perceived his danger without knowing how to remedy it. He saw it was more dangerous to retreat than to maintain his ground: while he found his enemy throwing out men on his flank; which rendered the task of keeping themselves covered so very difficult to the Delawares, as nearly to silence their fire. At this embarrassing moment, when they began to think the whole of the hostile tribe was gradually encircling them, they heard the yell of combatants and the rattling of arms echoing under the arches of the wood at the place where Uncas was posted, a bottom which, in a manner, lay beneath the ground on which Hawkeye and his party were contending.

It seems that the attack was carried out by a small group of Hurons, but their numbers kept increasing as they fell back towards their allies, until their return fire was nearly, if not completely, equal to that of the advancing Delawares. Heyward jumped in among the fighters, and mimicking the caution of his comrades, he fired his rifle quickly. The battle then became intense and stagnant. Few were hurt, as both sides managed to shield their bodies as much as possible behind the trees, only exposing themselves when aiming. However, the odds were slowly turning against Hawkeye and his group. The sharp-eyed scout recognized his peril but was unsure how to fix it. He understood that retreating was more dangerous than holding his position, especially since he noticed the enemy sending men around his flank, which made it extremely difficult for the Delawares to stay covered, nearly silencing their fire. At this tense moment, when they began to suspect that the entire hostile tribe was surrounding them, they heard the battle cries and clashing of weapons echoing through the woods at the location where Uncas was stationed, a low area that lay beneath the ground where Hawkeye and his team were fighting.

The effects of this attack were instantaneous, and to the scout and his friends greatly relieving. It would seem that, while his own surprise had been anticipated, and had consequently failed, the enemy, in their turn, having been deceived in its object and in his numbers, had left too small a force to resist the impetuous onset of the young Mohican. This fact was doubly apparent, by the rapid manner in which the battle in the forest rolled upward toward the village, and by an instant falling off in the number of their assailants, who rushed to assist in maintaining the front, and, as it now proved to be, the principal point of defense.

The effects of this attack were immediate and a huge relief to the scout and his friends. It seemed that, while they had expected his own surprise and it ultimately failed, the enemy, misled about its purpose and his numbers, had left too few troops to withstand the fierce charge of the young Mohican. This was clear both from how quickly the battle in the forest moved toward the village and from the sudden drop in their attackers, who rushed to help hold the front, which now turned out to be the main point of defense.

Animating his followers by his voice, and his own example, Hawkeye then gave the word to bear down upon their foes. The charge, in that rude species of warfare, consisted merely in pushing from cover to cover, nigher to the enemy; and in this maneuver he was instantly and successfully obeyed. The Hurons were compelled to withdraw, and the scene of the contest rapidly changed from the more open ground, on which it had commenced, to a spot where the assailed found a thicket to rest upon. Here the struggle was protracted, arduous and seemingly of doubtful issue; the Delawares, though none of them fell, beginning to bleed freely, in consequence of the disadvantage at which they were held.

Using his voice and setting an example, Hawkeye inspired his followers to charge at their enemies. In this rough type of warfare, the charge was simply about moving from one cover to another, getting closer to the enemy; and they quickly and effectively followed his lead. The Hurons had to pull back, and the scene of the battle swiftly shifted from the open ground where it started to a spot where the defenders found a thicket to take cover. Here, the fight dragged on, was tough, and seemed uncertain; the Delawares, though none were killed, started to bleed heavily due to the disadvantage they faced.

In this crisis, Hawkeye found means to get behind the same tree as that which served for a cover to Heyward; most of his own combatants being within call, a little on his right, where they maintained rapid, though fruitless, discharges on their sheltered enemies.

In this crisis, Hawkeye managed to get behind the same tree that provided cover for Heyward; most of his own fighters were nearby, a little to his right, where they continued to fire quickly, though without success, at their sheltered enemies.

“You are a young man, major,” said the scout, dropping the butt of “killdeer” to the earth, and leaning on the barrel, a little fatigued with his previous industry; “and it may be your gift to lead armies, at some future day, ag’in these imps, the Mingoes. You may here see the philosophy of an Indian fight. It consists mainly in ready hand, a quick eye and a good cover. Now, if you had a company of the Royal Americans here, in what manner would you set them to work in this business?”

“You’re a young man, Major,” said the scout, dropping the butt of his rifle to the ground and leaning on the barrel, a bit tired from his earlier efforts. “You might have the talent to lead armies someday against these troublemakers, the Mingoes. You can see the logic behind an Indian fight. It’s all about having quick reflexes, sharp eyesight, and solid cover. Now, if you had a company of the Royal Americans here, how would you get them involved in this situation?”

“The bayonet would make a road.”

“The bayonet would carve a path.”

“Ay, there is white reason in what you say; but a man must ask himself, in this wilderness, how many lives he can spare. No—horse[1],” continued the scout, shaking his head, like one who mused; “horse, I am ashamed to say must sooner or later decide these scrimmages. The brutes are better than men, and to horse must we come at last. Put a shodden hoof on the moccasin of a red-skin, and, if his rifle be once emptied, he will never stop to load it again.”

“Yeah, there’s some truth in what you’re saying; but a guy has to think about how many lives he can afford to lose out here in this wilderness. No—horse[1],” the scout continued, shaking his head, deep in thought; “in the end, it's the horses that will have to settle these fights. The animals are better than men, and we’ll ultimately have to rely on them. If you step on the moccasin of a Native American and he runs out of bullets, he won't stop to reload it.”

[1] The American forest admits of the passage of horses, there being little underbrush, and few tangled brakes. The plan of Hawkeye is the one which has always proved the most successful in the battles between the whites and the Indians. Wayne, in his celebrated campaign on the Miami, received the fire of his enemies in line; and then causing his dragoons to wheel round his flanks, the Indians were driven from their covers before they had time to load. One of the most conspicuous of the chiefs who fought in the battle of Miami assured the writer, that the red men could not fight the warriors with “long knives and leather stockings”; meaning the dragoons with their sabers and boots.

[1] The American forest allows horses to move easily through it, as there’s not much underbrush and few tangled brambles. Hawkeye's approach has always been the most effective in the conflicts between whites and Native Americans. Wayne, during his famous campaign on the Miami, took enemy fire in formation, then had his dragoons maneuver around the sides, forcing the Native Americans out of their hiding spots before they could reload. One prominent chief who participated in the battle of Miami told the writer that the Native Americans couldn’t compete with the warriors wielding “long knives and leather stockings,” referring to the dragoons with their sabers and boots.

“This is a subject that might better be discussed at another time,” returned Heyward; “shall we charge?”

“This is a topic we might want to talk about later,” Heyward said. “Should we go for it?”

“I see no contradiction to the gifts of any man in passing his breathing spells in useful reflections,” the scout replied. “As to rush, I little relish such a measure; for a scalp or two must be thrown away in the attempt. And yet,” he added, bending his head aside, to catch the sounds of the distant combat, “if we are to be of use to Uncas, these knaves in our front must be got rid of.”

“I don’t see any conflict between a man’s abilities and his moments of thoughtful reflection,” the scout replied. “As for rushing in, I’m not really in favor of that; some scalps will definitely be lost in the process. But,” he continued, tilting his head to hear the sounds of the distant fighting, “if we’re going to help Uncas, we need to deal with these guys in front of us.”

Then, turning with a prompt and decided air, he called aloud to his Indians, in their own language. His words were answered by a shout; and, at a given signal, each warrior made a swift movement around his particular tree. The sight of so many dark bodies, glancing before their eyes at the same instant, drew a hasty and consequently an ineffectual fire from the Hurons. Without stopping to breathe, the Delawares leaped in long bounds toward the wood, like so many panthers springing upon their prey. Hawkeye was in front, brandishing his terrible rifle and animating his followers by his example. A few of the older and more cunning Hurons, who had not been deceived by the artifice which had been practiced to draw their fire, now made a close and deadly discharge of their pieces and justified the apprehensions of the scout by felling three of his foremost warriors. But the shock was insufficient to repel the impetus of the charge. The Delawares broke into the cover with the ferocity of their natures and swept away every trace of resistance by the fury of the onset.

Then, turning with a swift and determined demeanor, he called out to his men in their native language. His words were met with a shout, and at a given signal, each warrior made a quick move around his specific tree. The sight of so many dark figures appearing in front of their eyes at the same time prompted a hurried and ineffective shot from the Hurons. Without pausing to catch their breath, the Delawares sprang forward toward the forest like panthers pouncing on their prey. Hawkeye led the charge, wielding his powerful rifle and inspiring his followers by his example. A few of the older, more cunning Hurons, who weren’t fooled by the trick meant to draw their fire, now took careful aim and fired deadly shots, confirming the scout's fears by taking down three of his leading warriors. But the impact was not enough to stop the force of the charge. The Delawares broke into the cover with fierce intensity and wiped out any sign of resistance with the ferocity of their attack.

The combat endured only for an instant, hand to hand, and then the assailed yielded ground rapidly, until they reached the opposite margin of the thicket, where they clung to the cover, with the sort of obstinacy that is so often witnessed in hunted brutes. At this critical moment, when the success of the struggle was again becoming doubtful, the crack of a rifle was heard behind the Hurons, and a bullet came whizzing from among some beaver lodges, which were situated in the clearing, in their rear, and was followed by the fierce and appalling yell of the war-whoop.

The fight lasted just a moment, hand to hand, and then the attackers quickly fell back until they reached the edge of the thicket, where they clung to their cover with the kind of stubbornness often seen in hunted animals. At this critical moment, when the outcome of the struggle was once again in question, the sound of a rifle shot rang out behind the Hurons, and a bullet zipped in from among some beaver lodges located in the clearing behind them, followed by the terrifying and deafening cry of the war-whoop.

“There speaks the Sagamore!” shouted Hawkeye, answering the cry with his own stentorian voice; “we have them now in face and back!”

“There speaks the Sagamore!” shouted Hawkeye, responding to the cry with his own loud voice; “we have them now in front and behind!”

The effect on the Hurons was instantaneous. Discouraged by an assault from a quarter that left them no opportunity for cover, the warriors uttered a common yell of disappointment, and breaking off in a body, they spread themselves across the opening, heedless of every consideration but flight. Many fell, in making the experiment, under the bullets and the blows of the pursuing Delawares.

The impact on the Hurons was immediate. Disheartened by an attack from a direction that offered no chance for protection, the warriors let out a collective shout of frustration, and, breaking into a group, they scattered across the clearing, ignoring everything except for escape. Many were struck down in the attempt, hit by the bullets and blows of the chasing Delawares.

We shall not pause to detail the meeting between the scout and Chingachgook, or the more touching interview that Duncan held with Munro. A few brief and hurried words served to explain the state of things to both parties; and then Hawkeye, pointing out the Sagamore to his band, resigned the chief authority into the hands of the Mohican chief. Chingachgook assumed the station to which his birth and experience gave him so distinguished a claim, with the grave dignity that always gives force to the mandates of a native warrior. Following the footsteps of the scout, he led the party back through the thicket, his men scalping the fallen Hurons and secreting the bodies of their own dead as they proceeded, until they gained a point where the former was content to make a halt.

We won't go into detail about the meeting between the scout and Chingachgook, or the more emotional conversation that Duncan had with Munro. A few quick words were enough to explain the situation to both sides; then Hawkeye, pointing out the Sagamore to his group, handed over the chief authority to the Mohican chief. Chingachgook took the position he was born into and was qualified for, with the serious dignity that always strengthens the commands of a native warrior. Following the scout's lead, he guided the group back through the brush, his men scalping the fallen Hurons and hiding the bodies of their own dead as they went, until they reached a spot where he was ready to stop.

The warriors, who had breathed themselves freely in the preceding struggle, were now posted on a bit of level ground, sprinkled with trees in sufficient numbers to conceal them. The land fell away rather precipitately in front, and beneath their eyes stretched, for several miles, a narrow, dark, and wooded vale. It was through this dense and dark forest that Uncas was still contending with the main body of the Hurons.

The warriors, who had caught their breath in the previous fight, were now positioned on a flat patch of ground, dotted with enough trees to hide them. The land dropped off steeply in front, and below them lay a narrow, dark, wooded valley that stretched for several miles. It was through this thick and dark forest that Uncas was still battling the main group of the Hurons.

The Mohican and his friends advanced to the brow of the hill, and listened, with practised ears, to the sounds of the combat. A few birds hovered over the leafy bosom of the valley, frightened from their secluded nests; and here and there a light vapory cloud, which seemed already blending with the atmosphere, arose above the trees, and indicated some spot where the struggle had been fierce and stationary.

The Mohican and his friends made their way to the top of the hill and listened intently to the sounds of battle. A few birds hovered over the green valley, startled from their hidden nests; and now and then, a light, misty cloud that seemed to be merging with the air rose above the trees, marking a place where the fighting had been intense and persistent.

“The fight is coming up the ascent,” said Duncan, pointing in the direction of a new explosion of firearms; “we are too much in the center of their line to be effective.”

“The fight is moving up the hill,” said Duncan, pointing towards a fresh burst of gunfire; “we're too much in the center of their line to be useful.”

“They will incline into the hollow, where the cover is thicker,” said the scout, “and that will leave us well on their flank. Go, Sagamore; you will hardly be in time to give the whoop, and lead on the young men. I will fight this scrimmage with warriors of my own color. You know me, Mohican; not a Huron of them all shall cross the swell, into your rear, without the notice of ‘killdeer’.”

“They’ll head into the hollow, where the cover is denser,” said the scout, “and that will put us right on their side. Go, Sagamore; you’ll barely make it in time to shout the signal and lead the young men. I’ll handle this skirmish with warriors of my own kind. You know me, Mohican; not a single Huron will get past the rise into your back without me noticing it.”

The Indian chief paused another moment to consider the signs of the contest, which was now rolling rapidly up the ascent, a certain evidence that the Delawares triumphed; nor did he actually quit the place until admonished of the proximity of his friends, as well as enemies, by the bullets of the former, which began to patter among the dried leaves on the ground, like the bits of falling hail which precede the bursting of the tempest. Hawkeye and his three companions withdrew a few paces to a shelter, and awaited the issue with calmness that nothing but great practise could impart in such a scene.

The Indian chief paused for a moment to assess the signs of the battle, which was now moving quickly up the slope, clearly indicating that the Delawares were winning; he didn't leave the spot until he was alerted to the closeness of both his friends and enemies by the bullets from the former, which started to hit the dry leaves on the ground like pieces of hail before a storm breaks. Hawkeye and his three companions stepped back a bit to find cover and waited for the outcome with a calmness that only extensive experience could bring in such a situation.

It was not long before the reports of the rifles began to lose the echoes of the woods, and to sound like weapons discharged in the open air. Then a warrior appeared, here and there, driven to the skirts of the forest, and rallying as he entered the clearing, as at the place where the final stand was to be made. These were soon joined by others, until a long line of swarthy figures was to be seen clinging to the cover with the obstinacy of desperation. Heyward began to grow impatient, and turned his eyes anxiously in the direction of Chingachgook. The chief was seated on a rock, with nothing visible but his calm visage, considering the spectacle with an eye as deliberate as if he were posted there merely to view the struggle.

It wasn't long before the sounds of the rifles started fading into the woods, sounding more like shots fired in the open air. Then a warrior showed up, appearing here and there, pushed to the edge of the forest, gathering himself as he entered the clearing, like at the place where the final stand would take place. Soon, others joined him, until a long line of dark figures could be seen clinging to the cover with a desperate determination. Heyward began to feel impatient and looked anxiously in Chingachgook's direction. The chief was sitting on a rock, with only his calm face visible, watching the scene with a focus as if he were just there to observe the fight.

“The time has come for the Delaware to strike!” said Duncan.

"The time has come for the Delaware to attack!" said Duncan.

“Not so, not so,” returned the scout; “when he scents his friends, he will let them know that he is here. See, see; the knaves are getting in that clump of pines, like bees settling after their flight. By the Lord, a squaw might put a bullet into the center of such a knot of dark skins!”

“Not at all, not at all,” the scout replied; “when he catches the scent of his friends, he’ll let them know he’s around. Look, look; those guys are crowding into that patch of pines, like bees landing after their flight. Honestly, even a woman could hit the center of that group of dark skins with a bullet!”

At that instant the whoop was given, and a dozen Hurons fell by a discharge from Chingachgook and his band. The shout that followed was answered by a single war-cry from the forest, and a yell passed through the air that sounded as if a thousand throats were united in a common effort. The Hurons staggered, deserting the center of their line, and Uncas issued from the forest through the opening they left, at the head of a hundred warriors.

At that moment, the signal was given, and a dozen Hurons fell to gunfire from Chingachgook and his group. The shout that followed was met with a single war cry from the woods, and a scream rang out that sounded like a thousand voices joined together. The Hurons stumbled, abandoning the center of their line, and Uncas emerged from the forest through the gap they created, leading a hundred warriors.

Waving his hands right and left, the young chief pointed out the enemy to his followers, who separated in pursuit. The war now divided, both wings of the broken Hurons seeking protection in the woods again, hotly pressed by the victorious warriors of the Lenape. A minute might have passed, but the sounds were already receding in different directions, and gradually losing their distinctness beneath the echoing arches of the woods. One little knot of Hurons, however, had disdained to seek a cover, and were retiring, like lions at bay, slowly and sullenly up the acclivity which Chingachgook and his band had just deserted, to mingle more closely in the fray. Magua was conspicuous in this party, both by his fierce and savage mien, and by the air of haughty authority he yet maintained.

Waving his hands back and forth, the young chief signaled the enemy to his followers, who split up to chase after them. The battle was now split, with both sides of the scattered Hurons seeking cover in the woods again, closely pursued by the victorious Lenape warriors. A minute may have passed, but the sounds were already fading in different directions and gradually losing their clarity beneath the echoing trees. One small group of Hurons, however, chose not to find shelter and was retreating, like cornered lions, slowly and sullenly up the slope that Chingachgook and his group had just left to get more involved in the fight. Magua stood out in this group, both for his fierce and savage expression and the air of haughty authority he still held.

In his eagerness to expedite the pursuit, Uncas had left himself nearly alone; but the moment his eye caught the figure of Le Subtil, every other consideration was forgotten. Raising his cry of battle, which recalled some six or seven warriors, and reckless of the disparity of their numbers, he rushed upon his enemy. Le Renard, who watched the movement, paused to receive him with secret joy. But at the moment when he thought the rashness of his impetuous young assailant had left him at his mercy, another shout was given, and La Longue Carabine was seen rushing to the rescue, attended by all his white associates. The Huron instantly turned, and commenced a rapid retreat up the ascent.

In his eagerness to speed things up, Uncas had found himself almost alone; but the moment he spotted Le Subtil, he forgot everything else. He let out a battle cry that summoned six or seven warriors, and without caring about their fewer numbers, he charged at his enemy. Le Renard, who was watching, paused with secret joy to welcome him. But just when he thought that the recklessness of the young attacker had left him vulnerable, another shout rang out, and La Longue Carabine came rushing in to help, accompanied by all his white allies. The Huron quickly turned and began to retreat up the hill.

There was no time for greetings or congratulations; for Uncas, though unconscious of the presence of his friends, continued the pursuit with the velocity of the wind. In vain Hawkeye called to him to respect the covers; the young Mohican braved the dangerous fire of his enemies, and soon compelled them to a flight as swift as his own headlong speed. It was fortunate that the race was of short continuance, and that the white men were much favored by their position, or the Delaware would soon have outstripped all his companions, and fallen a victim to his own temerity. But, ere such a calamity could happen, the pursuers and pursued entered the Wyandot village, within striking distance of each other.

There was no time for hellos or congratulations; Uncas, unaware of his friends nearby, kept chasing with the speed of the wind. Hawkeye called out to him to be cautious, but the young Mohican boldly faced the enemy fire and quickly forced them to flee as fast as he was running. Luckily, the chase didn't last long, and the white men had the advantage of their position; otherwise, the Delaware would have easily outpaced all his companions and could have paid the price for his recklessness. But before that disaster could strike, the pursuers and the pursued arrived at the Wyandot village, close enough to strike at each other.

Excited by the presence of their dwellings, and tired of the chase, the Hurons now made a stand, and fought around their council-lodge with the fury of despair. The onset and the issue were like the passage and destruction of a whirlwind. The tomahawk of Uncas, the blows of Hawkeye, and even the still nervous arm of Munro were all busy for that passing moment, and the ground was quickly strewed with their enemies. Still Magua, though daring and much exposed, escaped from every effort against his life, with that sort of fabled protection that was made to overlook the fortunes of favored heroes in the legends of ancient poetry. Raising a yell that spoke volumes of anger and disappointment, the subtle chief, when he saw his comrades fallen, darted away from the place, attended by his two only surviving friends, leaving the Delawares engaged in stripping the dead of the bloody trophies of their victory.

Excited by the presence of their homes and exhausted from the chase, the Hurons decided to make a stand and fought around their council lodge with fierce desperation. The clash and the outcome were like the arrival and destruction of a whirlwind. Uncas swung his tomahawk, Hawkeye delivered powerful blows, and even the steady hand of Munro was busy in that fleeting moment, and the ground was quickly covered with their enemies. Still, Magua, though bold and heavily exposed, escaped every attempt on his life, enjoying a kind of legendary protection often seen in the tales of favored heroes from ancient poetry. Letting out a yell filled with anger and disappointment, the cunning chief, seeing his comrades fall, quickly fled from the scene, accompanied by his only two surviving friends, while the Delawares focused on stripping the dead of the bloody trophies of their victory.

But Uncas, who had vainly sought him in the melee, bounded forward in pursuit; Hawkeye, Heyward and David still pressing on his footsteps. The utmost that the scout could effect, was to keep the muzzle of his rifle a little in advance of his friend, to whom, however, it answered every purpose of a charmed shield. Once Magua appeared disposed to make another and a final effort to revenge his losses; but, abandoning his intention as soon as demonstrated, he leaped into a thicket of bushes, through which he was followed by his enemies, and suddenly entered the mouth of the cave already known to the reader. Hawkeye, who had only forborne to fire in tenderness to Uncas, raised a shout of success, and proclaimed aloud that now they were certain of their game. The pursuers dashed into the long and narrow entrance, in time to catch a glimpse of the retreating forms of the Hurons. Their passage through the natural galleries and subterraneous apartments of the cavern was preceded by the shrieks and cries of hundreds of women and children. The place, seen by its dim and uncertain light, appeared like the shades of the infernal regions, across which unhappy ghosts and savage demons were flitting in multitudes.

But Uncas, who had unsuccessfully looked for him in the chaos, dashed forward in pursuit; Hawkeye, Heyward, and David were still following closely behind. The most the scout could do was keep the muzzle of his rifle slightly ahead of his friend, which served as a kind of protective shield. At one point, Magua seemed ready to make one last attempt to take revenge for his losses; however, he quickly gave up that idea and jumped into a thicket of bushes, where he was followed by his pursuers, and suddenly entered the cave that the reader already knows about. Hawkeye, who had only held back from firing out of concern for Uncas, let out a shout of victory and announced loudly that they were sure of their prey now. The pursuers rushed into the long and narrow entrance, just in time to see the Hurons fleeing. Their passage through the natural tunnels and underground rooms of the cave was filled with the screams and cries of hundreds of women and children. The place, seen in its dim and uncertain light, looked like the shadows of the underworld, where lost souls and savage demons were darting about in large numbers.

Still Uncas kept his eye on Magua, as if life to him possessed but a single object. Heyward and the scout still pressed on his rear, actuated, though possibly in a less degree, by a common feeling. But their way was becoming intricate, in those dark and gloomy passages, and the glimpses of the retiring warriors less distinct and frequent; and for a moment the trace was believed to be lost, when a white robe was seen fluttering in the further extremity of a passage that seemed to lead up the mountain.

Still, Uncas kept his eye on Magua, as if his life revolved around just one goal. Heyward and the scout were still following close behind him, driven, though perhaps to a lesser extent, by the same feeling. But their path was becoming complicated in those dark and gloomy corridors, and the sightings of the retreating warriors were becoming less clear and less frequent; for a moment, it seemed they had lost the trail when a white robe was spotted fluttering at the far end of a passage that appeared to lead up the mountain.

“’Tis Cora!” exclaimed Heyward, in a voice in which horror and delight were wildly mingled.

“It’s Cora!” Heyward exclaimed, his voice a mix of horror and delight.

“Cora! Cora!” echoed Uncas, bounding forward like a deer.

“Cora! Cora!” shouted Uncas, leaping ahead like a deer.

“’Tis the maiden!” shouted the scout. “Courage, lady; we come! we come!”

"That's the girl!" shouted the scout. "Hang in there, lady; we're on our way! We’re coming!"

The chase was renewed with a diligence rendered tenfold encouraging by this glimpse of the captive. But the way was rugged, broken, and in spots nearly impassable. Uncas abandoned his rifle, and leaped forward with headlong precipitation. Heyward rashly imitated his example, though both were, a moment afterward, admonished of his madness by hearing the bellowing of a piece, that the Hurons found time to discharge down the passage in the rocks, the bullet from which even gave the young Mohican a slight wound.

The chase picked up again, fueled ten times more by the sight of the captive. But the path was rough, uneven, and in some places almost impossible to navigate. Uncas dropped his rifle and charged ahead without thinking. Heyward foolishly followed his lead, but both were soon reminded of his reckless choice when they heard the booming sound of a gun fired by the Hurons, who had time to shoot down the rocky passage. The bullet even grazed the young Mohican, giving him a small injury.

“We must close!” said the scout, passing his friends by a desperate leap; “the knaves will pick us all off at this distance; and see, they hold the maiden so as to shield themselves!”

“We have to get out of here!” said the scout, leaping past his friends in desperation. “The scoundrels will take us all out from this distance; and look, they’re using the girl as a shield!”

Though his words were unheeded, or rather unheard, his example was followed by his companions, who, by incredible exertions, got near enough to the fugitives to perceive that Cora was borne along between the two warriors while Magua prescribed the direction and manner of their flight. At this moment the forms of all four were strongly drawn against an opening in the sky, and they disappeared. Nearly frantic with disappointment, Uncas and Heyward increased efforts that already seemed superhuman, and they issued from the cavern on the side of the mountain, in time to note the route of the pursued. The course lay up the ascent, and still continued hazardous and laborious.

Though his words went unheard, his example was followed by his companions, who, through incredible effort, got close enough to the fugitives to see that Cora was being carried between the two warriors while Magua directed their escape. At that moment, all four figures were outlined against a gap in the sky, and then they vanished. Nearly frantic with disappointment, Uncas and Heyward pushed themselves to the limit, emerging from the cave on the mountain side just in time to catch sight of the route taken by the pursued. The path led up the slope and remained dangerous and exhausting.

Encumbered by his rifle, and, perhaps, not sustained by so deep an interest in the captive as his companions, the scout suffered the latter to precede him a little, Uncas, in his turn, taking the lead of Heyward. In this manner, rocks, precipices and difficulties were surmounted in an incredibly short space, that at another time, and under other circumstances, would have been deemed almost insuperable. But the impetuous young men were rewarded by finding that, encumbered with Cora, the Hurons were losing ground in the race.

Burdened by his rifle and maybe not as invested in the captive as his companions, the scout allowed them to go ahead a bit, with Uncas then leading Heyward. In this way, they managed to tackle rocks, cliffs, and challenges in an impressively short time that under different circumstances would have seemed nearly impossible. However, the eager young men were pleased to discover that, weighed down by Cora, the Hurons were falling behind in the chase.

“Stay, dog of the Wyandots!” exclaimed Uncas, shaking his bright tomahawk at Magua; “a Delaware girl calls stay!”

“Stop, dog of the Wyandots!” shouted Uncas, waving his shiny tomahawk at Magua; “a Delaware girl says stop!”

“I will go no further!” cried Cora, stopping unexpectedly on a ledge of rock, that overhung a deep precipice, at no great distance from the summit of the mountain. “Kill me if thou wilt, detestable Huron; I will go no further.”

“I won't go any further!” shouted Cora, suddenly stopping on a ledge of rock that jutted out over a deep cliff, not far from the top of the mountain. “Go ahead and kill me if you want, you terrible Huron; I won’t go any further.”

The supporters of the maiden raised their ready tomahawks with the impious joy that fiends are thought to take in mischief, but Magua stayed the uplifted arms. The Huron chief, after casting the weapons he had wrested from his companions over the rock, drew his knife, and turned to his captive, with a look in which conflicting passions fiercely contended.

The supporters of the maiden raised their tomahawks with the wicked joy that evil spirits are believed to feel in causing trouble, but Magua stopped their raised arms. The Huron chief, after throwing the weapons he had taken from his companions over the rock, drew his knife and turned to his captive, his face showing a struggle between conflicting emotions.

“Woman,” he said, “chose; the wigwam or the knife of Le Subtil!”

“Woman,” he said, “choose: the cabin or Le Subtil's knife!”

Cora regarded him not, but dropping on her knees, she raised her eyes and stretched her arms toward heaven, saying in a meek and yet confiding voice:

Cora ignored him, but dropping to her knees, she raised her eyes and stretched her arms toward the sky, saying in a gentle yet trusting voice:

“I am thine; do with me as thou seest best!”

"I am yours; do with me as you see fit!"

“Woman,” repeated Magua, hoarsely, and endeavoring in vain to catch a glance from her serene and beaming eye, “choose!”

“Woman,” Magua said hoarsely, trying unsuccessfully to catch a look from her calm and radiant eye, “choose!”

But Cora neither heard nor heeded his demand. The form of the Huron trembled in every fibre, and he raised his arm on high, but dropped it again with a bewildered air, like one who doubted. Once more he struggled with himself and lifted the keen weapon again; but just then a piercing cry was heard above them, and Uncas appeared, leaping frantically, from a fearful height, upon the ledge. Magua recoiled a step; and one of his assistants, profiting by the chance, sheathed his own knife in the bosom of Cora.

But Cora neither heard nor acknowledged his demand. The Huron was shaking with tension, and he raised his arm high but then dropped it again with a confused look, as if he wasn’t sure. He fought with himself once more and lifted the sharp weapon again; but just then, a loud cry rang out above them, and Uncas jumped down frantically from a terrifying height onto the ledge. Magua stepped back, and one of his assistants, taking advantage of the moment, plunged his knife into Cora's chest.

The Huron sprang like a tiger on his offending and already retreating country man, but the falling form of Uncas separated the unnatural combatants. Diverted from his object by this interruption, and maddened by the murder he had just witnessed, Magua buried his weapon in the back of the prostrate Delaware, uttering an unearthly shout as he committed the dastardly deed. But Uncas arose from the blow, as the wounded panther turns upon his foe, and struck the murderer of Cora to his feet, by an effort in which the last of his failing strength was expended. Then, with a stern and steady look, he turned to Le Subtil, and indicated by the expression of his eye all that he would do had not the power deserted him. The latter seized the nerveless arm of the unresisting Delaware, and passed his knife into his bosom three several times, before his victim, still keeping his gaze riveted on his enemy, with a look of inextinguishable scorn, fell dead at his feet.

The Huron lunged like a tiger at his retreating enemy, but Uncas's falling body separated the unnatural fighters. Distracted by this interruption and enraged by the murder he had just seen, Magua buried his weapon in the back of the fallen Delaware, letting out an eerie shout as he committed the cowardly act. However, Uncas rose from the blow, like a wounded panther turning on its attacker, and struck the murderer of Cora with the last of his strength. Then, with a stern and steady gaze, he looked at Le Subtil, conveying with his eyes everything he would have done if he still had the power. The latter grabbed the limp arm of the defenseless Delaware and stabbed him three times in the chest with his knife, while his victim, still locking eyes with his enemy and wearing an expression of unquenchable contempt, fell dead at his feet.

“Mercy! mercy! Huron,” cried Heyward, from above, in tones nearly choked by horror; “give mercy, and thou shalt receive from it!”

“Please! Please, Huron,” shouted Heyward from above, his voice nearly breaking with fear; “show mercy, and you'll be rewarded with it!”

Whirling the bloody knife up at the imploring youth, the victorious Magua uttered a cry so fierce, so wild, and yet so joyous, that it conveyed the sounds of savage triumph to the ears of those who fought in the valley, a thousand feet below. He was answered by a burst from the lips of the scout, whose tall person was just then seen moving swiftly toward him, along those dangerous crags, with steps as bold and reckless as if he possessed the power to move in air. But when the hunter reached the scene of the ruthless massacre, the ledge was tenanted only by the dead.

Whirling the bloody knife up at the pleading young man, the victorious Magua let out a cry that was fierce, wild, and yet so joyful, that it carried the sounds of savage victory to the ears of those fighting in the valley, a thousand feet below. He was answered by a shout from the scout, whose tall figure was just then seen moving quickly toward him along those perilous cliffs, with steps as bold and reckless as if he could fly. But when the hunter reached the scene of the brutal massacre, the ledge was occupied only by the dead.

His keen eye took a single look at the victims, and then shot its glances over the difficulties of the ascent in his front. A form stood at the brow of the mountain, on the very edge of the giddy height, with uplifted arms, in an awful attitude of menace. Without stopping to consider his person, the rifle of Hawkeye was raised; but a rock, which fell on the head of one of the fugitives below, exposed the indignant and glowing countenance of the honest Gamut. Then Magua issued from a crevice, and, stepping with calm indifference over the body of the last of his associates, he leaped a wide fissure, and ascended the rocks at a point where the arm of David could not reach him. A single bound would carry him to the brow of the precipice, and assure his safety. Before taking the leap, however, the Huron paused, and shaking his hand at the scout, he shouted:

His sharp eye quickly scanned the victims and then glanced at the challenges of the climb ahead. A figure stood at the top of the mountain, right at the edge of the steep drop, with arms raised in a threatening pose. Without thinking about his own safety, Hawkeye raised his rifle; but a rock that fell on the head of one of the fleeing people revealed the angry and fierce face of the honest Gamut. Then Magua emerged from a crevice, casually stepping over the body of his last companion, jumped over a wide gap, and climbed the rocks where David couldn't reach him. One leap would take him to the edge of the cliff and guarantee his safety. Before making the jump, though, the Huron paused, shook his hand at the scout, and shouted:

“The pale faces are dogs! the Delawares women! Magua leaves them on the rocks, for the crows!”

“The pale faces are worthless! The Delaware women! Magua leaves them on the rocks for the crows!”

Laughing hoarsely, he made a desperate leap, and fell short of his mark, though his hands grasped a shrub on the verge of the height. The form of Hawkeye had crouched like a beast about to take its spring, and his frame trembled so violently with eagerness that the muzzle of the half-raised rifle played like a leaf fluttering in the wind. Without exhausting himself with fruitless efforts, the cunning Magua suffered his body to drop to the length of his arms, and found a fragment for his feet to rest on. Then, summoning all his powers, he renewed the attempt, and so far succeeded as to draw his knees on the edge of the mountain. It was now, when the body of his enemy was most collected together, that the agitated weapon of the scout was drawn to his shoulder. The surrounding rocks themselves were not steadier than the piece became, for the single instant that it poured out its contents. The arms of the Huron relaxed, and his body fell back a little, while his knees still kept their position. Turning a relentless look on his enemy, he shook a hand in grim defiance. But his hold loosened, and his dark person was seen cutting the air with its head downward, for a fleeting instant, until it glided past the fringe of shrubbery which clung to the mountain, in its rapid flight to destruction.

Laughing hoarsely, he made a desperate leap but fell short, though his hands caught a bush at the edge of the height. Hawkeye crouched like a predator ready to pounce, trembling so intensely with anticipation that the barrel of his half-raised rifle shook like a leaf in the wind. Without wasting energy on fruitless attempts, the crafty Magua let his body drop to the length of his arms and found a ledge for his feet. Then, summoning all his strength, he tried again and managed to pull his knees up to the edge of the mountain. It was at that moment, when his enemy was most vulnerable, that the scout raised his weapon to his shoulder. The surrounding rocks were not steadier than the rifle at that single instant when it released its shot. The Huron's grip loosened, and his body fell back slightly while his knees held their position. With a fierce gaze directed at his enemy, he shook a fist in grim defiance. But then his grip slipped, and for a brief moment, his dark figure was seen tumbling through the air, head down, until it vanished past the bushes clinging to the mountain in its rapid descent to destruction.

CHAPTER XXXIII.

“They fought, like brave men, long and well,
They piled that ground with Moslem slain,
They conquered—but Bozzaris fell,
Bleeding at every vein.
His few surviving comrades saw
His smile when rang their loud hurrah,
And the red field was won;
Then saw in death his eyelids close
Calmly, as to a night’s repose,
Like flowers at set of sun.”
—Halleck.

“They fought bravely for a long time,
They covered the ground with fallen Muslims,
They won—but Bozzaris fell,
Bleeding from every vein.
His few surviving friends saw
His smile when they cheered loudly,
And the bloody field was theirs;
Then they watched as death closed his eyelids
Calmly, as if he were drifting off to sleep,
Like flowers at sunset.”
—Halleck.

The sun found the Lenape, on the succeeding day, a nation of mourners. The sounds of the battle were over, and they had fed fat their ancient grudge, and had avenged their recent quarrel with the Mengwe, by the destruction of a whole community. The black and murky atmosphere that floated around the spot where the Hurons had encamped, sufficiently announced of itself, the fate of that wandering tribe; while hundreds of ravens, that struggled above the summits of the mountains, or swept, in noisy flocks, across the wide ranges of the woods, furnished a frightful direction to the scene of the combat. In short, any eye at all practised in the signs of a frontier warfare might easily have traced all those unerring evidences of the ruthless results which attend an Indian vengeance.

The sun found the Lenape, on the next day, a nation of mourners. The sounds of battle had faded, and they had fully indulged their long-standing grudge, avenging their recent conflict with the Mengwe by destroying an entire community. The dark and gloomy atmosphere surrounding the place where the Hurons had camped clearly revealed the fate of that wandering tribe, while hundreds of ravens, struggling above the mountain peaks or flying in noisy flocks across the vast woods, created a chilling backdrop to the scene of the fight. In short, anyone familiar with the signs of frontier warfare could easily have recognized all those unmistakable signs of the brutal consequences that come with Indian vengeance.

Still, the sun rose on the Lenape a nation of mourners. No shouts of success, no songs of triumph, were heard, in rejoicings for their victory. The latest straggler had returned from his fell employment, only to strip himself of the terrific emblems of his bloody calling, and to join in the lamentations of his countrymen, as a stricken people. Pride and exultation were supplanted by humility, and the fiercest of human passions was already succeeded by the most profound and unequivocal demonstrations of grief.

Still, the sun rose on the Lenape, a nation of mourners. No cheers of success, no songs of victory, were heard in celebration of their win. The last straggler returned from his grim duty only to remove the horrifying symbols of his bloody work and to join in the mourning with his fellow countrymen, as a devastated people. Pride and joy were replaced by humility, and the strongest human emotions were already overtaken by deep and unmistakable expressions of grief.

The lodges were deserted; but a broad belt of earnest faces encircled a spot in their vicinity, whither everything possessing life had repaired, and where all were now collected, in deep and awful silence. Though beings of every rank and age, of both sexes, and of all pursuits, had united to form this breathing wall of bodies, they were influenced by a single emotion. Each eye was riveted on the center of that ring, which contained the objects of so much and of so common an interest.

The lodges were empty, but a crowd of serious faces surrounded a spot nearby, where everyone alive had gathered, now all silent and focused. Although people of all ages, genders, and walks of life had come together to create this barrier of bodies, they were all driven by the same feeling. Every eye was fixed on the center of the circle, which held the source of such widespread and intense interest.

Six Delaware girls, with their long, dark, flowing tresses falling loosely across their bosoms, stood apart, and only gave proof of their existence as they occasionally strewed sweet-scented herbs and forest flowers on a litter of fragrant plants that, under a pall of Indian robes, supported all that now remained of the ardent, high-souled, and generous Cora. Her form was concealed in many wrappers of the same simple manufacture, and her face was shut forever from the gaze of men. At her feet was seated the desolate Munro. His aged head was bowed nearly to the earth, in compelled submission to the stroke of Providence; but a hidden anguish struggled about his furrowed brow, that was only partially concealed by the careless locks of gray that had fallen, neglected, on his temples. Gamut stood at his side, his meek head bared to the rays of the sun, while his eyes, wandering and concerned, seemed to be equally divided between that little volume, which contained so many quaint but holy maxims, and the being in whose behalf his soul yearned to administer consolation. Heyward was also nigh, supporting himself against a tree, and endeavoring to keep down those sudden risings of sorrow that it required his utmost manhood to subdue.

Six Delaware girls, with their long, dark, flowing hair falling loosely over their chests, stood apart and only showed they were there when they occasionally scattered sweet-scented herbs and forest flowers over a pile of fragrant plants that, under a covering of Indian robes, supported everything that remained of the passionate, noble, and generous Cora. Her body was wrapped in several layers of simple cloth, and her face was forever hidden from the eyes of men. At her feet sat the grieving Munro. His aged head was bowed nearly to the ground, forced into submission by the blow of fate; yet a hidden pain struggled on his lined forehead, only partially hidden by the unkempt gray hair that had fallen, neglected, over his temples. Gamut stood beside him, his humble head bare to the sun, while his wandering and worried eyes seemed split between that little book, which held many strange but sacred sayings, and the person he deeply wished to comfort. Heyward was also nearby, leaning against a tree and trying to keep the waves of sorrow in check, which took all his strength to suppress.

But sad and melancholy as this group may easily be imagined, it was far less touching than another, that occupied the opposite space of the same area. Seated, as in life, with his form and limbs arranged in grave and decent composure, Uncas appeared, arrayed in the most gorgeous ornaments that the wealth of the tribe could furnish. Rich plumes nodded above his head; wampum, gorgets, bracelets, and medals, adorned his person in profusion; though his dull eye and vacant lineaments too strongly contradicted the idle tale of pride they would convey.

But as sad and gloomy as this group might be imagined, they were far less touching than another group that occupied the opposite side of the area. Seated, just like in life, with his body and limbs arranged with serious and proper composure, Uncas appeared, dressed in the most extravagant ornaments that the tribe could provide. Colorful plumes waved above his head; wampum, gorgets, bracelets, and medals covered him generously, although his dull eyes and expressionless features contradicted the empty story of pride they were meant to convey.

Directly in front of the corpse Chingachgook was placed, without arms, paint or adornment of any sort, except the bright blue blazonry of his race, that was indelibly impressed on his naked bosom. During the long period that the tribe had thus been collected, the Mohican warrior had kept a steady, anxious look on the cold and senseless countenance of his son. So riveted and intense had been that gaze, and so changeless his attitude, that a stranger might not have told the living from the dead, but for the occasional gleamings of a troubled spirit, that shot athwart the dark visage of one, and the deathlike calm that had forever settled on the lineaments of the other. The scout was hard by, leaning in a pensive posture on his own fatal and avenging weapon; while Tamenund, supported by the elders of his nation, occupied a high place at hand, whence he might look down on the mute and sorrowful assemblage of his people.

Directly in front of the corpse, Chingachgook sat without arms, paint, or any decoration, except for the bright blue markings of his tribe, which were permanently etched on his bare chest. Throughout the long time that the tribe had gathered, the Mohican warrior maintained a steady, anxious gaze on his son's cold and lifeless face. His gaze was so fixed and intense, and his posture so unchanging, that a stranger might have had difficulty distinguishing between the living and the dead, if not for the occasional flickers of a troubled spirit that crossed the dark features of one and the deathly calm that had settled on the other’s face. The scout was nearby, leaning pensively on his own lethal and avenging weapon, while Tamenund, supported by the elders of his tribe, took a prominent place nearby to look down on the silent and grieving crowd of his people.

Just within the inner edge of the circle stood a soldier, in the military attire of a strange nation; and without it was his warhorse, in the center of a collection of mounted domestics, seemingly in readiness to undertake some distant journey. The vestments of the stranger announced him to be one who held a responsible situation near the person of the captain of the Canadas; and who, as it would now seem, finding his errand of peace frustrated by the fierce impetuosity of his allies, was content to become a silent and sad spectator of the fruits of a contest that he had arrived too late to anticipate.

Just inside the edge of the circle stood a soldier in the uniform of a strange nation; outside of it was his warhorse, surrounded by a group of mounted servants, clearly ready for some long journey. The stranger's clothing indicated that he held an important position close to the captain of the Canadas; and it seemed that, finding his mission of peace thwarted by the aggressive impulsiveness of his allies, he was resigned to being a quiet and sorrowful observer of the results of a conflict he had arrived too late to prevent.

The day was drawing to the close of its first quarter, and yet had the multitude maintained its breathing stillness since its dawn.

The day was nearing the end of its first quarter, and yet the crowd had kept its quiet stillness since the morning.

No sound louder than a stifled sob had been heard among them, nor had even a limb been moved throughout that long and painful period, except to perform the simple and touching offerings that were made, from time to time, in commemoration of the dead. The patience and forbearance of Indian fortitude could alone support such an appearance of abstraction, as seemed now to have turned each dark and motionless figure into stone.

No sound louder than a suppressed sob was heard among them, and not even a limb was moved during that long and painful time, except to make the simple and heartfelt gestures that were offered occasionally in memory of the dead. Only the patience and resilience of Indian fortitude could uphold such an expression of distraction, which seemed to have turned each dark and still figure into stone.

At length, the sage of the Delawares stretched forth an arm, and leaning on the shoulders of his attendants, he arose with an air as feeble as if another age had already intervened between the man who had met his nation the preceding day, and him who now tottered on his elevated stand.

At last, the wise man of the Delawares reached out an arm, and leaning on his attendants’ shoulders, he stood up with a frail demeanor, as if another era had passed between the person who had met his people the day before and the one who now wobbled on his raised platform.

“Men of the Lenape!” he said, in low, hollow tones, that sounded like a voice charged with some prophetic mission: “the face of the Manitou is behind a cloud! His eye is turned from you; His ears are shut; His tongue gives no answer. You see him not; yet His judgments are before you. Let your hearts be open and your spirits tell no lie. Men of the Lenape! the face of the Manitou is behind a cloud.”

“Men of the Lenape!” he said in soft, hollow tones that sounded like a voice carrying some prophetic message: “the face of the Manitou is behind a cloud! His gaze is turned away from you; His ears are closed; His voice gives no reply. You cannot see Him; yet His judgments are all around you. Keep your hearts open and let your spirits speak the truth. Men of the Lenape! the face of the Manitou is behind a cloud.”

As this simple and yet terrible annunciation stole on the ears of the multitude, a stillness as deep and awful succeeded as if the venerated spirit they worshiped had uttered the words without the aid of human organs; and even the inanimate Uncas appeared a being of life, compared with the humbled and submissive throng by whom he was surrounded. As the immediate effect, however, gradually passed away, a low murmur of voices commenced a sort of chant in honor of the dead. The sounds were those of females, and were thrillingly soft and wailing. The words were connected by no regular continuation, but as one ceased another took up the eulogy, or lamentation, whichever it might be called, and gave vent to her emotions in such language as was suggested by her feelings and the occasion. At intervals the speaker was interrupted by general and loud bursts of sorrow, during which the girls around the bier of Cora plucked the plants and flowers blindly from her body, as if bewildered with grief. But, in the milder moments of their plaint, these emblems of purity and sweetness were cast back to their places, with every sign of tenderness and regret. Though rendered less connected by many and general interruptions and outbreakings, a translation of their language would have contained a regular descant, which, in substance, might have proved to possess a train of consecutive ideas.

As this simple yet terrible announcement reached the ears of the crowd, a deep and heavy silence followed, as if the revered spirit they worshipped had spoken the words without any human help; even the lifeless Uncas seemed more alive compared to the humbled and submissive crowd surrounding him. As the initial shock slowly faded, a soft murmur began, turning into a sort of chant in honor of the dead. The voices belonged to women, and they were hauntingly soft and mournful. The words didn’t flow in a structured way; as one voice finished, another would join in the praise or lament, expressing their feelings in whatever words came to them in the moment. Occasionally, the speaker was interrupted by loud bursts of grief, as the girls around Cora's body blindly pulled plants and flowers from her, as if lost in sorrow. Yet, during moments of gentler mourning, these symbols of purity and sweetness were carefully returned to their places, showing tenderness and regret. Though their expressions were often disrupted by these collective outbursts, a translation of their words would have revealed a coherent expression that, in essence, contained a series of connected thoughts.

A girl, selected for the task by her rank and qualifications, commenced by modest allusions to the qualities of the deceased warrior, embellishing her expressions with those oriental images that the Indians have probably brought with them from the extremes of the other continent, and which form of themselves a link to connect the ancient histories of the two worlds. She called him the “panther of his tribe”; and described him as one whose moccasin left no trail on the dews; whose bound was like the leap of a young fawn; whose eye was brighter than a star in the dark night; and whose voice, in battle, was loud as the thunder of the Manitou. She reminded him of the mother who bore him, and dwelt forcibly on the happiness she must feel in possessing such a son. She bade him tell her, when they met in the world of spirits, that the Delaware girls had shed tears above the grave of her child, and had called her blessed.

A girl, chosen for the task because of her rank and qualifications, started with humble references to the qualities of the fallen warrior, enhancing her words with those vivid images that the Indians likely brought from the far corners of the other continent, which serve as a connection between the ancient stories of the two worlds. She referred to him as the “panther of his tribe” and described him as one whose moccasin left no trace on the dews; whose leap was like that of a young fawn; whose eye shone brighter than a star in the dark night; and whose voice in battle was as loud as the thunder of the Manitou. She reminded him of the mother who bore him and emphasized how happy she must be to have such a son. She asked him to tell her, when they meet in the spiritual world, that the Delaware girls had shed tears at her child's grave and had called her blessed.

Then, they who succeeded, changing their tones to a milder and still more tender strain, alluded, with the delicacy and sensitiveness of women, to the stranger maiden, who had left the upper earth at a time so near his own departure, as to render the will of the Great Spirit too manifest to be disregarded. They admonished him to be kind to her, and to have consideration for her ignorance of those arts which were so necessary to the comfort of a warrior like himself. They dwelled upon her matchless beauty, and on her noble resolution, without the taint of envy, and as angels may be thought to delight in a superior excellence; adding, that these endowments should prove more than equivalent for any little imperfection in her education.

Then, those who won, shifting their voices to a softer and gentler tone, referenced, with the delicacy and sensitivity often associated with women, the young stranger who had left the surface world just before his own departure, making the will of the Great Spirit unmistakably evident. They urged him to be kind to her and to consider her lack of knowledge about the skills that were so essential for a warrior like him. They spoke of her unmatched beauty and her noble determination, without a hint of jealousy, as angels might take pleasure in a higher excellence; adding that these qualities would more than make up for any minor shortcomings in her upbringing.

After which, others again, in due succession, spoke to the maiden herself, in the low, soft language of tenderness and love. They exhorted her to be of cheerful mind, and to fear nothing for her future welfare. A hunter would be her companion, who knew how to provide for her smallest wants; and a warrior was at her side who was able to protect he against every danger. They promised that her path should be pleasant, and her burden light. They cautioned her against unavailing regrets for the friends of her youth, and the scenes where her father had dwelt; assuring her that the “blessed hunting grounds of the Lenape,” contained vales as pleasant, streams as pure; and flowers as sweet, as the “heaven of the pale faces.” They advised her to be attentive to the wants of her companion, and never to forget the distinction which the Manitou had so wisely established between them. Then, in a wild burst of their chant they sang with united voices the temper of the Mohican’s mind. They pronounced him noble, manly and generous; all that became a warrior, and all that a maid might love. Clothing their ideas in the most remote and subtle images, they betrayed, that, in the short period of their intercourse, they had discovered, with the intuitive perception of their sex, the truant disposition of his inclinations. The Delaware girls had found no favor in his eyes! He was of a race that had once been lords on the shores of the salt lake, and his wishes had led him back to a people who dwelt about the graves of his fathers. Why should not such a predilection be encouraged! That she was of a blood purer and richer than the rest of her nation, any eye might have seen; that she was equal to the dangers and daring of a life in the woods, her conduct had proved; and now, they added, the “wise one of the earth” had transplanted her to a place where she would find congenial spirits, and might be forever happy.

After that, others, in turn, spoke to the young woman in soft, tender words filled with love. They encouraged her to stay positive and not to worry about her future. A hunter would be her companion, one who could meet her every need, and a warrior was by her side, ready to protect her from any danger. They promised her a pleasant journey and a light load. They warned her not to dwell on unhelpful regrets for the friends of her youth and the places where her father had lived, reassuring her that the “blessed hunting grounds of the Lenape” had valleys as lovely, streams as clear, and flowers as sweet as the “heaven of the pale faces.” They advised her to pay attention to her companion's needs and to remember the distinction that the Manitou had wisely established between them. Then, in a wild burst of song, they unified their voices to express the spirit of the Mohican’s heart. They declared him noble, manly, and generous; everything a warrior should be, and everything a maiden could love. By wrapping their thoughts in subtle and distant images, they let slip that, in their brief time together, they had sensed, with the instinct of their nature, his wandering affections. The Delaware girls had not caught his attention! He was from a lineage that had once ruled the shores of the salt lake, and his heart had guided him back to a people living near his ancestors' graves. Why shouldn't such a preference be supported? Anyone could see that her blood was purer and richer than the rest of her nation; her actions had shown that she was capable of facing the dangers and challenges of life in the woods. And now, they added, the “wise one of the earth” had brought her to a place where she would find kindred spirits and might be truly happy forever.

Then, with another transition in voice and subject, allusions were made to the virgin who wept in the adjacent lodge. They compared her to flakes of snow; as pure, as white, as brilliant, and as liable to melt in the fierce heats of summer, or congeal in the frosts of winter. They doubted not that she was lovely in the eyes of the young chief, whose skin and whose sorrow seemed so like her own; but though far from expressing such a preference, it was evident they deemed her less excellent than the maid they mourned. Still they denied her no need her rare charms might properly claim. Her ringlets were compared to the exuberant tendrils of the vine, her eye to the blue vault of heavens, and the most spotless cloud, with its glowing flush of the sun, was admitted to be less attractive than her bloom.

Then, changing topics and tone again, they referenced the virgin who cried in the nearby lodge. They likened her to flakes of snow; as pure, as white, as brilliant, and as likely to melt in the intense summer heat or freeze in the winter cold. They didn’t doubt that she was beautiful in the eyes of the young chief, whose skin and sorrow seemed so similar to hers; however, without directly stating a preference, it was clear they thought she was not as exceptional as the girl they were mourning. Still, they didn’t deny her any need her unique beauty might rightfully demand. Her curls were compared to the lush tendrils of a vine, her eyes to the blue sky, and even the most pristine cloud, glowing with sunlight, was acknowledged to be less appealing than her complexion.

During these and similar songs nothing was audible but the murmurs of the music; relieved, as it was, or rather rendered terrible, by those occasional bursts of grief which might be called its choruses. The Delawares themselves listened like charmed men; and it was very apparent, by the variations of their speaking countenances, how deep and true was their sympathy. Even David was not reluctant to lend his ears to the tones of voices so sweet; and long ere the chant was ended, his gaze announced that his soul was enthralled.

During these songs and others like them, all you could hear were the soothing sounds of the music, occasionally interrupted by those intense outbursts of sadness that could be seen as its choruses. The Delawares listened as if under a spell, and it was clear from their changing expressions just how deep and genuine their sympathy was. Even David was drawn in by the beautiful voices, and well before the chant was over, his expression showed that he was completely captivated.

The scout, to whom alone, of all the white men, the words were intelligible, suffered himself to be a little aroused from his meditative posture, and bent his face aside, to catch their meaning, as the girls proceeded. But when they spoke of the future prospects of Cora and Uncas, he shook his head, like one who knew the error of their simple creed, and resuming his reclining attitude, he maintained it until the ceremony, if that might be called a ceremony, in which feeling was so deeply imbued, was finished. Happily for the self-command of both Heyward and Munro, they knew not the meaning of the wild sounds they heard.

The scout, the only white man who understood their words, shifted slightly from his thoughtful position and turned his face to catch their meaning as the girls continued. But when they talked about Cora and Uncas's future, he shook his head, like someone who recognized the flaw in their naive beliefs. After that, he went back to lying down and stayed in that position until the ceremony—if it could be called a ceremony—filled with so much emotion, was over. Fortunately for Heyward and Munro's self-control, they had no idea what the wild sounds around them meant.

Chingachgook was a solitary exception to the interest manifested by the native part of the audience. His look never changed throughout the whole of the scene, nor did a muscle move in his rigid countenance, even at the wildest or the most pathetic parts of the lamentation. The cold and senseless remains of his son was all to him, and every other sense but that of sight seemed frozen, in order that his eyes might take their final gaze at those lineaments he had so long loved, and which were now about to be closed forever from his view.

Chingachgook was a rare exception among the native audience's interest. His expression remained unchanged throughout the entire scene, and not a muscle of his stiff face moved, even during the most intense or heartbreaking moments of the lament. The cold, lifeless body of his son was all that mattered to him, and every sense but sight seemed frozen so that he could take one last look at the features he had loved for so long, now about to be shut away from his sight forever.

In this stage of the obsequies, a warrior much renowned for deed in arms, and more especially for services in the recent combat, a man of stern and grave demeanor, advanced slowly from the crowd, and placed himself nigh the person of the dead.

In this part of the funeral, a warrior well-known for his acts in battle, especially for his contributions in the recent fight, a man with a serious and stern attitude, slowly stepped forward from the crowd and positioned himself near the deceased.

“Why hast thou left us, pride of the Wapanachki?” he said, addressing himself to the dull ears of Uncas, as if the empty clay retained the faculties of the animated man; “thy time has been like that of the sun when in the trees; thy glory brighter than his light at noonday. Thou art gone, youthful warrior, but a hundred Wyandots are clearing the briers from thy path to the world of the spirits. Who that saw thee in battle would believe that thou couldst die? Who before thee has ever shown Uttawa the way into the fight? Thy feet were like the wings of eagles; thine arm heavier than falling branches from the pine; and thy voice like the Manitou when He speaks in the clouds. The tongue of Uttawa is weak,” he added, looking about him with a melancholy gaze, “and his heart exceeding heavy. Pride of the Wapanachki, why hast thou left us?”

“Why have you left us, pride of the Wapanachki?” he said, speaking to the lifeless ears of Uncas, as if the empty clay still held the spirit of the living man; “your time was like the sun filtering through the trees; your glory brighter than its light at noon. You are gone, young warrior, but a hundred Wyandots are clearing the thorns from your path to the spirit world. Who among those who saw you in battle would believe that you could die? Who before you has ever shown Uttawa the way into the fight? Your feet were like the wings of eagles; your arm stronger than falling branches from the pine; and your voice like the Manitou when He speaks in the clouds. The tongue of Uttawa is weak,” he added, looking around with a sad expression, “and his heart is very heavy. Pride of the Wapanachki, why have you left us?”

He was succeeded by others, in due order, until most of the high and gifted men of the nation had sung or spoken their tribute of praise over the manes of the deceased chief. When each had ended, another deep and breathing silence reigned in all the place.

He was followed by others, one after another, until most of the talented and respected people in the nation had shared their words of praise for the late leader. When one finished, another heavy silence settled over the entire area.

Then a low, deep sound was heard, like the suppressed accompaniment of distant music, rising just high enough on the air to be audible, and yet so indistinctly, as to leave its character, and the place whence it proceeded, alike matters of conjecture. It was, however, succeeded by another and another strain, each in a higher key, until they grew on the ear, first in long drawn and often repeated interjections, and finally in words. The lips of Chingachgook had so far parted, as to announce that it was the monody of the father. Though not an eye was turned toward him nor the smallest sign of impatience exhibited, it was apparent, by the manner in which the multitude elevated their heads to listen, that they drank in the sounds with an intenseness of attention, that none but Tamenund himself had ever before commanded. But they listened in vain. The strains rose just so loud as to become intelligible, and then grew fainter and more trembling, until they finally sank on the ear, as if borne away by a passing breath of wind. The lips of the Sagamore closed, and he remained silent in his seat, looking with his riveted eye and motionless form, like some creature that had been turned from the Almighty hand with the form but without the spirit of a man. The Delawares who knew by these symptoms that the mind of their friend was not prepared for so mighty an effort of fortitude, relaxed in their attention; and, with an innate delicacy, seemed to bestow all their thoughts on the obsequies of the stranger maiden.

Then a low, deep sound was heard, like the background music of distant melodies, rising just high enough in the air to be heard, yet so faintly that its nature and origin remained a mystery. However, it was followed by another and another note, each at a higher pitch, until they caught the ear, starting with prolonged and often repeated intonations, and finally forming words. Chingachgook's lips parted enough to indicate that it was the lament of the father. Although no one turned to look at him or showed the slightest impatience, it was clear from how the crowd tilted their heads to listen that they were absorbing the sounds with an intensity of focus that only Tamenund himself had ever commanded before. But they listened in vain. The notes rose just loud enough to be understood, then faded and trembled, until they eventually disappeared from earshot, as if carried away by a passing breeze. The Sagamore's lips closed, and he sat silently, staring with a fixed gaze and a still form, like a being created by the Almighty with the body but not the spirit of a man. The Delawares, recognizing these signs that their friend was not ready for such a tremendous test of strength, eased their focus; with innate sensitivity, they seemed to direct all their thoughts toward the funeral of the unknown girl.

A signal was given, by one of the elder chiefs, to the women who crowded that part of the circle near which the body of Cora lay. Obedient to the sign, the girls raised the bier to the elevation of their heads, and advanced with slow and regulated steps, chanting, as they proceeded, another wailing song in praise of the deceased. Gamut, who had been a close observer of rites he deemed so heathenish, now bent his head over the shoulder of the unconscious father, whispering:

A signal was given by one of the older chiefs to the women who filled that part of the circle near where Cora's body lay. Following the signal, the girls lifted the bier to head height and moved forward with slow, measured steps, chanting another mournful song in honor of the deceased as they went. Gamut, who had been closely watching what he considered to be such barbaric rituals, now leaned his head over the shoulder of the unconscious father and whispered:

“They move with the remains of thy child; shall we not follow, and see them interred with Christian burial?”

"They're carrying your child's remains; shouldn't we follow them and see that they get a proper Christian burial?"

Munro started, as if the last trumpet had sounded in his ear, and bestowing one anxious and hurried glance around him, he arose and followed in the simple train, with the mien of a soldier, but bearing the full burden of a parent’s suffering. His friends pressed around him with a sorrow that was too strong to be termed sympathy—even the young Frenchman joining in the procession, with the air of a man who was sensibly touched at the early and melancholy fate of one so lovely. But when the last and humblest female of the tribe had joined in the wild and yet ordered array, the men of the Lenape contracted their circle, and formed again around the person of Uncas, as silent, as grave, and as motionless as before.

Munro jumped up, as if the last trumpet had sounded in his ear, and with a quick, worried glance around him, he got to his feet and joined the simple procession, carrying himself like a soldier but feeling the full weight of a parent’s anguish. His friends surrounded him, their sorrow too deep to be called sympathy—even the young Frenchman took part in the procession, appearing genuinely moved by the early and tragic fate of someone so beautiful. But when the last and least important woman of the tribe joined the wild yet orderly group, the men of the Lenape closed their circle and formed around Uncas again, as silent, serious, and still as before.

The place which had been chosen for the grave of Cora was a little knoll, where a cluster of young and healthful pines had taken root, forming of themselves a melancholy and appropriate shade over the spot. On reaching it the girls deposited their burden, and continued for many minutes waiting, with characteristic patience, and native timidity, for some evidence that they whose feelings were most concerned were content with the arrangement. At length the scout, who alone understood their habits, said, in their own language:

The spot chosen for Cora's grave was a small hill, where a group of young, healthy pines had taken root, creating a somber and fitting shade over the place. When the girls arrived, they set down their burden and waited for several minutes, showing their usual patience and natural shyness, hoping for some sign that those most affected were okay with the arrangement. Finally, the scout, who was the only one familiar with their ways, said in their language:

“My daughters have done well; the white men thank them.”

“My daughters have done well; the white men are grateful to them.”

Satisfied with this testimony in their favor, the girls proceeded to deposit the body in a shell, ingeniously, and not inelegantly, fabricated of the bark of the birch; after which they lowered it into its dark and final abode. The ceremony of covering the remains, and concealing the marks of the fresh earth, by leaves and other natural and customary objects, was conducted with the same simple and silent forms. But when the labors of the kind beings who had performed these sad and friendly offices were so far completed, they hesitated, in a way to show that they knew not how much further they might proceed. It was in this stage of the rites that the scout again addressed them:

Satisfied with this testimony in their favor, the girls proceeded to place the body in a shell, cleverly and elegantly made from birch bark; after which they lowered it into its dark and final resting place. The ceremony of covering the remains and hiding the marks of the fresh earth with leaves and other natural, customary items was carried out with the same simple and silent methods. But once the tasks of the kind beings who had performed these sad and compassionate duties were mostly finished, they hesitated, showing that they were unsure about how much further they could go. It was at this point in the rites that the scout spoke to them again:

“My young women have done enough,” he said: “the spirit of the pale face has no need of food or raiment, their gifts being according to the heaven of their color. I see,” he added, glancing an eye at David, who was preparing his book in a manner that indicated an intention to lead the way in sacred song, “that one who better knows the Christian fashions is about to speak.”

“My young women have done enough,” he said. “The spirit of the pale face doesn’t need food or clothing, their gifts depending on the heaven of their color. I see,” he added, glancing at David, who was getting his book ready in a way that suggested he intended to lead the way in a sacred song, “that someone who knows more about Christian customs is about to speak.”

The females stood modestly aside, and, from having been the principal actors in the scene, they now became the meek and attentive observers of that which followed. During the time David occupied in pouring out the pious feelings of his spirit in this manner, not a sign of surprise, nor a look of impatience, escaped them. They listened like those who knew the meaning of the strange words, and appeared as if they felt the mingled emotions of sorrow, hope, and resignation, they were intended to convey.

The women stood modestly to the side, and having been the main participants in the scene, they now became quiet and attentive watchers of what followed. While David expressed his heartfelt emotions in this way, not a single sign of surprise or a look of impatience crossed their faces. They listened as if they understood the meaning of the unusual words and seemed to feel the mix of sorrow, hope, and acceptance that he aimed to convey.

Excited by the scene he had just witnessed, and perhaps influenced by his own secret emotions, the master of song exceeded his usual efforts. His full rich voice was not found to suffer by a comparison with the soft tones of the girls; and his more modulated strains possessed, at least for the ears of those to whom they were peculiarly addressed, the additional power of intelligence. He ended the anthem, as he had commenced it, in the midst of a grave and solemn stillness.

Excited by the scene he had just seen, and maybe influenced by his own hidden feelings, the song master pushed himself beyond his usual limits. His deep, rich voice held its own against the soft tones of the girls; and his more controlled melodies offered, at least for those specifically listening, an extra layer of meaning. He finished the anthem just as he started it, in a moment of serious and solemn silence.

When, however, the closing cadence had fallen on the ears of his auditors, the secret, timorous glances of the eyes, and the general and yet subdued movement of the assemblage, betrayed that something was expected from the father of the deceased. Munro seemed sensible that the time was come for him to exert what is, perhaps, the greatest effort of which human nature is capable. He bared his gray locks, and looked around the timid and quiet throng by which he was encircled, with a firm and collected countenance. Then, motioning with his hand for the scout to listen, he said:

When the final notes faded away for his audience, the nervous, furtive glances exchanged among them, along with their overall subdued movements, revealed that everyone was waiting for the father of the deceased to say something. Munro seemed to realize that it was time for him to make what might be the greatest effort human nature can muster. He uncovered his gray hair and scanned the shy and silent crowd surrounding him with a steady and composed expression. Then, signaling for the scout to pay attention, he said:

“Say to these kind and gentle females, that a heart-broken and failing man returns them his thanks. Tell them, that the Being we all worship, under different names, will be mindful of their charity; and that the time shall not be distant when we may assemble around His throne without distinction of sex, or rank, or color.”

“Tell these kind and gentle women that a heartbroken and struggling man sends his thanks. Let them know that the Being we all worship, by different names, will remember their kindness; and that the time isn’t far off when we can gather around His throne without any difference in gender, rank, or color.”

The scout listened to the tremulous voice in which the veteran delivered these words, and shook his head slowly when they were ended, as one who doubted their efficacy.

The scout listened to the shaky voice in which the veteran said these words and shook his head slowly when he finished, as someone who questioned their effectiveness.

“To tell them this,” he said, “would be to tell them that the snows come not in the winter, or that the sun shines fiercest when the trees are stripped of their leaves.”

“Giving them this information,” he said, “would mean telling them that the snows don’t fall in winter, or that the sun shines the brightest when the trees have no leaves.”

Then turning to the women, he made such a communication of the other’s gratitude as he deemed most suited to the capacities of his listeners. The head of Munro had already sunk upon his chest, and he was again fast relapsing into melancholy, when the young Frenchman before named ventured to touch him lightly on the elbow. As soon as he had gained the attention of the mourning old man, he pointed toward a group of young Indians, who approached with a light but closely covered litter, and then pointed upward toward the sun.

Then, turning to the women, he shared the other’s gratitude in a way he thought would resonate with them. Munro's head had already fallen onto his chest, and he was slipping back into sadness when the young Frenchman, mentioned earlier, gently touched him on the elbow. Once he had the attention of the grieving old man, he gestured toward a group of young Indians who were coming forward with a light but carefully covered litter, and then he pointed up toward the sun.

“I understand you, sir,” returned Munro, with a voice of forced firmness; “I understand you. It is the will of Heaven, and I submit. Cora, my child! if the prayers of a heart-broken father could avail thee now, how blessed shouldst thou be! Come, gentlemen,” he added, looking about him with an air of lofty composure, though the anguish that quivered in his faded countenance was far too powerful to be concealed, “our duty here is ended; let us depart.”

“I get it, sir,” Munro said, his voice struggling to sound strong. “I get it. It’s the will of Heaven, and I accept that. Cora, my child! if the prayers of a heartbroken father could help you now, how blessed you would be! Come on, gentlemen,” he continued, glancing around with a facade of calm, even though the pain etched on his worn face was too intense to hide, “our duty here is done; let’s leave.”

Heyward gladly obeyed a summons that took them from a spot where, each instant, he felt his self-control was about to desert him. While his companions were mounting, however, he found time to press the hand of the scout, and to repeat the terms of an engagement they had made to meet again within the posts of the British army. Then, gladly throwing himself into the saddle, he spurred his charger to the side of the litter, whence low and stifled sobs alone announced the presence of Alice. In this manner, the head of Munro again drooping on his bosom, with Heyward and David following in sorrowing silence, and attended by the aide of Montcalm with his guard, all the white men, with the exception of Hawkeye, passed from before the eyes of the Delawares, and were buried in the vast forests of that region.

Heyward eagerly responded to a call that took them away from a place where he felt his self-control slipping away at any moment. While his friends were getting on their horses, he took a moment to grasp the scout's hand and repeat the promise they made to meet again within the British army's camps. Then, happily mounting his horse, he urged it to the side of the litter, where only low, muffled sobs indicated Alice's presence. In this way, with Munro's head once again resting on his chest, and Heyward and David following in quiet sorrow, along with Montcalm’s aide and his guard, all the white men except for Hawkeye vanished from the Delawares' view and disappeared into the vast forests of the area.

But the tie which, through their common calamity, had united the feelings of these simple dwellers in the woods with the strangers who had thus transiently visited them, was not so easily broken. Years passed away before the traditionary tale of the white maiden, and of the young warrior of the Mohicans ceased to beguile the long nights and tedious marches, or to animate their youthful and brave with a desire for vengeance. Neither were the secondary actors in these momentous incidents forgotten. Through the medium of the scout, who served for years afterward as a link between them and civilized life, they learned, in answer to their inquiries, that the “Gray Head” was speedily gathered to his fathers—borne down, as was erroneously believed, by his military misfortunes; and that the “Open Hand” had conveyed his surviving daughter far into the settlements of the pale faces, where her tears had at last ceased to flow, and had been succeeded by the bright smiles which were better suited to her joyous nature.

But the bond that had brought together these simple forest dwellers and the strangers who visited them, even briefly, was not easily broken. Years went by before the legendary story of the white maiden and the young Mohican warrior stopped captivating their long nights and exhausting journeys or inspiring their youth and bravery with a desire for revenge. The other people involved in these significant events were not forgotten either. Thanks to the scout, who acted as a connection between them and the civilized world for many years, they found out, in response to their questions, that the “Gray Head” had soon passed away—believed to have been weighed down by his military failures; and that the “Open Hand” had taken his surviving daughter deep into the settlements of the pale faces, where her tears eventually dried up, replaced by bright smiles that suited her cheerful nature.

But these were events of a time later than that which concerns our tale. Deserted by all of his color, Hawkeye returned to the spot where his sympathies led him, with a force that no ideal bond of union could destroy. He was just in time to catch a parting look of the features of Uncas, whom the Delawares were already inclosing in his last vestment of skins. They paused to permit the longing and lingering gaze of the sturdy woodsman, and when it was ended, the body was enveloped, never to be unclosed again. Then came a procession like the other, and the whole nation was collected about the temporary grave of the chief—temporary, because it was proper that, at some future day, his bones should rest among those of his own people.

But these were events that happened after the time our story is about. Stripped of all his emotions, Hawkeye returned to the place where his heart led him, with a force that no ideal bond could break. He arrived just in time to catch a last glimpse of Uncas, whom the Delawares were already wrapping in his final covering of skins. They paused to allow the sturdy woodsman a longing and lingering look, and once that was over, the body was enclosed, never to be opened again. Then came a procession similar to the others, and the entire nation gathered around the temporary grave of the chief—temporary, because it was right that, in the future, his remains should rest with his own people.

The movement, like the feeling, had been simultaneous and general. The same grave expression of grief, the same rigid silence, and the same deference to the principal mourner, were observed around the place of interment as have been already described. The body was deposited in an attitude of repose, facing the rising sun, with the implements of war and of the chase at hand, in readiness for the final journey. An opening was left in the shell, by which it was protected from the soil, for the spirit to communicate with its earthly tenement, when necessary; and the whole was concealed from the instinct, and protected from the ravages of the beasts of prey, with an ingenuity peculiar to the natives. The manual rites then ceased and all present reverted to the more spiritual part of the ceremonies.

The movement, like the feeling, happened at the same time and was felt by everyone. The same serious look of sorrow, the same tense silence, and the same respect for the main mourner were seen around the burial site, just as described before. The body was laid to rest in a peaceful position, facing the rising sun, with weapons and hunting gear nearby, ready for the final journey. An opening was left in the shell to keep the body safe from the soil, allowing the spirit to connect with its earthly body when needed; and everything was hidden from the instincts and protected from the attacks of wild animals, thanks to the cleverness typical of the locals. The physical rituals then stopped, and everyone present turned to the more spiritual aspects of the ceremonies.

Chingachgook became once more the object of the common attention. He had not yet spoken, and something consolatory and instructive was expected from so renowned a chief on an occasion of such interest. Conscious of the wishes of the people, the stern and self-restrained warrior raised his face, which had latterly been buried in his robe, and looked about him with a steady eye. His firmly compressed and expressive lips then severed, and for the first time during the long ceremonies his voice was distinctly audible. “Why do my brothers mourn?” he said, regarding the dark race of dejected warriors by whom he was environed; “why do my daughters weep? that a young man has gone to the happy hunting-grounds; that a chief has filled his time with honor? He was good; he was dutiful; he was brave. Who can deny it? The Manitou had need of such a warrior, and He has called him away. As for me, the son and the father of Uncas, I am a blazed pine, in a clearing of the pale faces. My race has gone from the shores of the salt lake and the hills of the Delawares. But who can say that the serpent of his tribe has forgotten his wisdom? I am alone—”

Chingachgook once again became the focus of everyone's attention. He hadn't spoken yet, and people were expecting something comforting and wise from such a well-respected chief on such an important occasion. Aware of what everyone wanted, the stern and self-controlled warrior lifted his face, which had been hidden in his robe, and looked around with a steady gaze. His tightly pressed and expressive lips then parted, and for the first time during the long ceremonies, his voice was clearly heard. "Why do my brothers mourn?" he asked, looking at the group of sorrowful warriors surrounding him. "Why do my daughters cry? Is it because a young man has gone to the happy hunting grounds? Because a chief has lived his life with honor? He was good; he was dutiful; he was brave. Who can argue that? The Manitou needed such a warrior, and He has taken him away. As for me, the son and the father of Uncas, I am like a marked pine in a clearing of white people. My tribe has vanished from the shores of the salt lake and the hills of the Delawares. But who can say that the serpent of his tribe has forgotten his wisdom? I am alone—”

“No, no,” cried Hawkeye, who had been gazing with a yearning look at the rigid features of his friend, with something like his own self-command, but whose philosophy could endure no longer; “no, Sagamore, not alone. The gifts of our colors may be different, but God has so placed us as to journey in the same path. I have no kin, and I may also say, like you, no people. He was your son, and a red-skin by nature; and it may be that your blood was nearer—but, if ever I forget the lad who has so often fou’t at my side in war, and slept at my side in peace, may He who made us all, whatever may be our color or our gifts, forget me! The boy has left us for a time; but, Sagamore, you are not alone.”

“No, no,” cried Hawkeye, who had been looking longingly at his friend's hardened features, trying to keep his composure, but whose patience was wearing thin; “no, Sagamore, you’re not alone. Our backgrounds may be different, but God has put us on this journey together. I have no family, and I can also say, like you, no people. He was your son, a native by birth; and maybe your blood is closer—but if I ever forget the young man who has fought by my side in battle and slept next to me in peace, may the one who created us all, regardless of our skin color or our gifts, forget me! The boy has left us for now; but, Sagamore, you are not alone.”

[Illustration]

Chingachgook grasped the hand that, in the warmth of feeling, the scout had stretched across the fresh earth, and in an attitude of friendship these two sturdy and intrepid woodsmen bowed their heads together, while scalding tears fell to their feet, watering the grave of Uncas like drops of falling rain.

Chingachgook took the hand that the scout had extended over the fresh soil in a moment of warmth, and in a gesture of friendship, these two strong and fearless woodsmen lowered their heads together while hot tears fell to the ground, soaking the grave of Uncas like drops of rain.

In the midst of the awful stillness with which such a burst of feeling, coming as it did, from the two most renowned warriors of that region, was received, Tamenund lifted his voice to disperse the multitude.

In the midst of the terrible silence that followed such an outburst of emotion, which came from the two most famous warriors of that area, Tamenund raised his voice to break up the crowd.

“It is enough,” he said. “Go, children of the Lenape, the anger of the Manitou is not done. Why should Tamenund stay? The pale faces are masters of the earth, and the time of the red men has not yet come again. My day has been too long. In the morning I saw the sons of Unamis happy and strong; and yet, before the night has come, have I lived to see the last warrior of the wise race of the Mohicans.”

“It’s enough,” he said. “Go on, children of the Lenape, the anger of the Manitou isn’t over. Why should Tamenund stick around? The pale faces have taken over the earth, and the time for the red men hasn’t come back yet. My day has been too long. In the morning, I saw the sons of Unamis happy and strong; and yet, before night falls, I’ve lived to see the last warrior of the wise Mohican race.”


Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!